summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
authornfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 15:01:59 -0800
committernfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org>2025-02-06 15:01:59 -0800
commit07ba84d4144b3f1cddb5a95d4d71761998134e53 (patch)
treeba54f34aa5b85a1165a746cb07f70c862e8861a0
parent2cef278fc4298b03897ae6c2467393d97acd40a8 (diff)
NormalizeHEADmain
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/53263-8.txt19375
-rw-r--r--old/53263-8.zipbin326308 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53263-h.zipbin337628 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/53263-h/53263-h.htm18852
7 files changed, 17 insertions, 38227 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..be6485b
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #53263 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/53263)
diff --git a/old/53263-8.txt b/old/53263-8.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index b80791b..0000000
--- a/old/53263-8.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,19375 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Mystery of M. Felix, by B. L. Farjeon
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Mystery of M. Felix
-
-Author: B. L. Farjeon
-
-Release Date: October 12, 2016 [EBook #53263]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Charles Bowen from page scans provided by
-Google Books (The Ohio State University)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Transcriber's Notes:
- 1. Page scan source:
- https://books.google.com/books?id=qdw9AQAAMAAJ
- (The Ohio State University)
- 2. The diphthong oe is represented by [oe].
-
-
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX
-
-
-
-
-BY
-
-B. L. FARJEON
-AUTHOR OF "GREAT PORTER SQUARE," "MISER FAREBROTHER,"
-ETC., ETC.
-
-
-
-
-NEW YORK
-JOHN W. LOVELL COMPANY
-150 WORTH STREET, CORNER MISSION PLACE
-
-
-
-
-
-
-Copyright, 1890,
-by
-J. W. LOVELL CO.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-Chap.
-
-
- I. A CRY FOR HELP FLOATS THROUGH THE NIGHT.
- II. THE SPECTRE CAT.
- III. A THRILLING INCIDENT.
- IV. A DISCUSSION ABOUT RED CATS AND WHITE SNOW.
- V. DR. LAMB TELLS THE CONSTABLES AND MRS. MIDDLEMORE
- WHAT IS THE MATTER WITH MR. FELIX.
- VI. THE "EVENING MOON" INDULGES IN A BOMBASTIC RETROSPECT,
- IN WHICH SOME VERY TALL AND VERY FINE WRITING WILL BE
- DETECTED BY THE OBSERVANT READER.
- VII. AN EXAMINATION OF CERTAIN DISCREPANCIES IN THE STATEMENTS
- OF THE THREE PRINCIPAL WITNESSES.
- VIII. A STARTLING PHASE IN THE MYSTERY.
- IX. INTRODUCES SOPHY.
- X. OUR REPORTER GIVES MRS. MIDDLEMORE SOME SENSIBLE ADVICE.
- XI. THE "EVENING MOON" IS INUNDATED WITH CORRESPONDENCE
- CONCERNING THE DISAPPEARANCE OF THE BODY OF M. FELIX.
- XII. THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" MAKES A DISCOVERY.
- XIII. THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" GIVES SOPHY A TREAT.
- XIV. SOPHY IMPARTS STRANGE NEWS TO THE REPORTER OF THE
- "EVENING MOON."
- XV. A SINGULAR ADVENTURE ON THE THAMES EMBANKMENT.
- XVI. AT THE BOW STREET POLICE STATION.
- XVII. THE SLEEPING BEAUTY.
- XVIII. HOW THE CHARGE WAS DISPOSED OF.
- XIX. WHAT WAS FOUND IN THE RIVER.
- XX. MRS. MIDDLEMORE IS VICTIMIZED.
- XXI. CIRCUMSTANTIAL EVIDENCE.
-
- BOOK SECOND.
- A LIFE DRAMA: LINKS IN THE MYSTERY.
-
- XXII. THE HALF-BROTHERS.
- XXIII. TWO HEARTS THAT BEAT AS ONE.
- XXIV. CIRCUMSTANTIAL EVIDENCE.
- XXV. LOST, OR SAVED?
- XXVI. SLANDER'S FOUL TONGUE.
- XXVII. LEONARD RETURNS HOME.
- XXVIII. THE FALSE FRIEND.
- XXIX. ON THE TRACK.
- XXX. THE FLIGHT AND THE RESCUE.
- XXXI. LIGHT SHINES THROUGH THE DARK CLOUDS.
- XXXII. LEONARD MEETS WITH A FELLOW-SCOUNDREL.
- XXXIII. A FOUL DEED.
- XXXIV. DR. PETERSSEN EXPLAINS HIMSELF.
- XXXV. EMILIA AND LEONARD.
- XXXVI. "ONLY YOU AND I, DARLING, ONLY YOU AND I."
- XXXVII. A GOOD WOMAN.
- XXXVIII. CONSTANCE AND JULIAN.
- XXXIX. IN ENGLAND ONCE MORE.
- XL. DR. PETERSSEN REAPPEARS ON THE SCENE.
- XLI. DR. PETERSSEN BRINGS M. FELIX TO BOOK.
- XLII. EMILIA AND M. FELIX.
-
- BOOK THIRD.
- WHAT BECAME OF M. FELIX, AS RELATED IN THE FIRST PERSON BY ROBERT
- AGNOLD, ON THE REPORTING STAFF OF THE "EVENING MOON."
-
- XLIII. ROBERT AGNOLD TAKES UP THE THREADS OF THE STORY.
- XLIV. EMILIA RETRACES THE OLD ROADS.
- XLV. DR. PETERSSEN IS TRACKED.
- XLVI. I ENTER INTO AN ARRANGEMENT WITH SOPHY.
- XLVII. I RECEIVE A STRANGE VISITOR.
- XLVIII. SOPHY ENTERS DR. PETERSSEN'S ESTABLISHMENT AS A FRIENDLY
- PATIENT.
- XLIX. M. BORDIER JOINS THE HUNT.
- L. CLEVER SOPHY.
- LI. SOPHY MAKES A STRANGE STATEMENT.
- LII. THE GHOST OF M. FELIX.
- LIII. THE PORTRAIT OF GERALD PAGET.
- LIV. OBTAIN AN EXPLANATION FROM EMILIA.
- LV. TREACHERY.
- LVI. NIGHT IN DEERING WOODS.
- LVII. THE CAVERN IN THE CLIFF.
- LVIII. FRIENDS TO THE RESCUE.
- LIX. FROM THE COLUMNS OF THE "THE EVENING MOON," UNDER
- THE HEADING, "THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX SOLVED."
- LX. ROBERT AGNOLD'S LAST WORDS.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER I.
-
-A CRY FOR HELP FLOATS THROUGH THE NIGHT.
-
-
-"Help!"
-
-Through the whole of the night, chopping, shifting winds had been
-tearing through the streets of London, now from the north, now from
-the south, now from the east, now from the west, now from all points
-of the compass at once; which last caprice--taking place for at least
-the twentieth time in the course of the hour which the bells of Big
-Ben were striking--was enough in itself to make the policeman on the
-beat doubtful of his senses.
-
-"What a chap hears in weather like this," he muttered, "and what he
-fancies he hears, is enough to drive him mad."
-
-He had sufficient justification for the remark, for there were not
-only the wild pranks of Boreas to torment and distract him, but there
-was the snow which, blown in fine particles from roofs and gables, and
-torn from nooks where it lay huddled up in little heaps against stone
-walls (for the reason that being blown there by previous winds it
-could get no further), seemed to take a spiteful pleasure in whirling
-into his face, which was tingling and smarting with cold, and as a
-matter of course into his eyes, which it caused to run over with
-tears. With a vague idea that some appeal had been made officially to
-him as a representative of law and order, he steadied himself and
-stood still for a few moments, with a spiritual cold freezing his
-heart, even as the temporal cold was freezing his marrow.
-
-"Help!"
-
-The bells of Big Ben were still proclaiming the hour of midnight. If a
-man at such a time might have reasonably been forgiven the fancy that
-old Westminster's tower had been invaded by an army of malicious
-witches, how much more readily might he have been forgiven for not
-being able to fix the direction from which this cry for help
-proceeded? Nay, he could scarcely have been blamed for doubting that
-the cry was human.
-
-For the third time--
-
-"Help!"
-
-Then, so far as that appeal was concerned, silence. The cry was heard
-no more.
-
-The policeman still labored under a vague impression that his duty lay
-somewhere in an undefined direction, and his attitude was one of
-strained yet bewildered attention. Suddenly he received a terrible
-shock. Something touched his foot. He started back, all his nerves
-thrilling with an unreasonable spasm of horror. Instinctively looking
-down, he discovered that he had been ridiculously alarmed by a
-miserable, half-starved, and nearly whole-frozen cat, which, with the
-scanty hairs on its back sticking up in sharp points, was creeping
-timorously along in quest of an open door. Recovering from his alarm,
-the policeman stamped his feet and clapped his hands vigorously to
-keep the circulation in them.
-
-His beat was in the heart of Soho, and he was at that moment in Gerard
-Street, in which locality human life is represented in perhaps
-stranger variety than can be found in any other part of this gigantic
-city of darkness and light. As a protection against the fierce wind he
-had taken refuge within the portal of the closed door of an old house
-which lay a little back from the regular line of buildings in the
-street. Little did he dream that the cry for help had proceeded from
-that very house, the upper portion of which was inhabited by a
-gentleman known as M. Felix by some, as Mr. Felix by others. Well
-named, apparently, for although he was not young, M. Felix was
-distinguished by a certain happy, light-hearted air, which marked him
-as one who held enjoyment of the pleasures of life as a kind of
-religion to be devoutly observed. The lower portion of the house was
-occupied by the landlady, Mrs. Middlemore, who acted as housekeeper to
-M. Felix. It was the nightly habit of this estimable woman to go for
-her supper beer at half-past eleven, and return, beaming, at a few
-minutes after twelve.
-
-These late hours did not interfere with the performance of her duties,
-because M. Felix was by no means an early riser, seldom breakfasting,
-indeed, before noon. Despite the inclemency of the weather, Mrs.
-Middlemore had not deviated on this night from her usual custom. She
-was a widow, without responsibilities, and no person had a right to
-meddle with her affairs. Besides, as she frequently remarked, she was
-quite able to take care of herself.
-
-A welcome diversion occurred to the constable who was stamping his
-feet within the portal of Mrs. Middlemore's street door. A brother
-constable sauntered up, and accosted him.
-
-"Is that you, Wigg?"
-
-"As much as there's left of me," replied Constable Wigg.
-
-"You may well say that," observed the new-comer, who rejoiced in the
-name of Nightingale. "It's all a job to keep one's self together. What
-a night!"
-
-"Bitter. I've been regularly blown off my feet."
-
-"My case. I'm froze to a stone. The North Pole ain't in it with this,
-and whether I've got a nose on my face is more than I'd swear to.
-Anything up?"
-
-"Nothing, except----"
-
-"Except what?" asked Constable Nightingale, as his comrade paused. He
-put his hand to his nose as he asked the question, his reference to it
-having inspired doubts as to his being still in possession of the
-feature.
-
-"A minute or two ago," said Constable Wigg, "I had half a fancy that I
-heard somebody cry out 'Help!'"
-
-"Ah! Did you go?"
-
-"How could I? I wasn't sure, you know."
-
-"Who could be sure of anything," remarked Constable Nightingale,
-charitably, "on such a night?"
-
-"Nobody. It must have been the wind."
-
-"Not a doubt of it. If anybody told me he saw Polar bears about I
-shouldn't dispute with him." Then Constable Nightingale took a step
-forward, and glanced up at the windows of the front rooms occupied by
-M. Felix, in which shone a perfect blaze of light. "He must be jolly
-warm up there."
-
-"Who?" inquired Constable Wigg, his eyes following his comrade's
-glance.
-
-"Mr. Felix."
-
-"And who's Mr. Felix when he's at home?"
-
-"Why, you don't mean to say you don't know him!"
-
-"Never heard of him. I've only been on the beat two nights."
-
-"I forgot. He's a trump, a regular A-one-er. You're in for a good tip
-or two. I was on night duty here this time last year, and he behaved
-handsome. Tipped me at Christmas, and tipped me at New Year's. Half a
-sov. each time. And at other times, too. Altogether he was as good as
-between four and five pounds to me while I was here."
-
-"That's something like," said Constable Wigg, with something of eager
-hope in his voice; "not many like him knocking around. But"--with
-sudden suspicion--"why should he be so free? Anything wrong about
-him?"
-
-"Not a bit of it," replied Constable Nightingale, blowing on his
-ice-cold fingers. "He's a diamond of the first water--a tip-top swell,
-rolling in money. That's what's the matter with Mr. Felix. Don't you
-wish you had the same complaint? 'Constable,' said he to me, when I
-came on this beat last year, 'you're on night duty here, eh?' 'Yes,
-sir,' I answers. 'Very good,' he says, acting like a gentleman; 'I
-live in this house'--we were standing at this very door--'and I always
-make it a point to look after them as looks after me.'"
-
-"And a very good point it is," remarked Constable Wigg, with growing
-interest, "for a gentleman to make."
-
-"I thought so myself, and I found it so. 'And I always make it a
-point,' says he, of 'looking after them as looks after me.' Fact is,
-Wigg, he comes home late sometimes, with a glass of wine to much in
-him, and he knows the usefulness of us. Carries a lump of money about
-him, and likes to feel himself safe. Never what you call drunk, you
-know. Just a bit sprung, as a real gentleman should be, and always
-with a pleasant word ready. So, whenever I met him coming home late,
-I'd walk behind him to his door here, and give him good-night; which
-he appreciated."
-
-"Much obliged to you for the information, Nightingale."
-
-"Ought to do these little turns for one another, Wigg. The man who was
-on the beat before me gave me the office, and it's only friendly for
-me to give it to you." Constable Nightingale looked pensively over the
-shoulder of his brother constable, and added, "I behaved liberal to
-him."
-
-"I'll do likewise to you," said Constable Wigg, "if anything happens."
-
-"Was sure you would, Wigg," responded Constable Nightingale, briskly.
-"What would the force be worth if we didn't stick together? When I see
-Mr. Felix I'll put in a good word for you. He took a regular fancy to
-me, and told me if I got the beat again to come to him immediate. Once
-you see him, you can't miss knowing him. Tall and slim, with hair
-getting gray. No whiskers; only a mustache, curled. Speaks with a
-foreign accent--parleyvooish. His clothes fit like a glove. Patent
-leather boots always, except when he wears shoes; white tie generally.
-I remember Mrs. Middlemore----"
-
-"Who's she?"
-
-"His landlady. A most respectable woman--made of the right stuff. Ah,
-a real good sort she is! Goes out every night for her supper beer
-between eleven and twelve."
-
-"I must have seen her half an hour ago."
-
-"Of course you did. If it was to rain cats and dogs or snowed for a
-month, she wouldn't miss going. Has she come back?"
-
-"No."
-
-"She stops out as a rule till about this time; fond of a gossip, you
-know. Most of us are. She'll be here soon, if she can keep her feet.
-The snow's getting thicker--and listen to the wind! Let's get close to
-the door. Well, I remember Mrs. Middlemore coming out to me one night,
-and saying, 'You're wanted up there,' meaning in Mr. Felix's
-rooms----"
-
-Constable Wigg interposed. "Just now you said parleyvooish."
-
-"So I did, and so I meant."
-
-"Speaks with a foreign accent, you said."
-
-"I don't deny it."
-
-"And you keep on saying Mr. Felix."
-
-"Well?"
-
-"Shouldn't it be Monseer?"
-
-"Well, perhaps; but not Monseer--Monshure."
-
-"I give in to you, Nightingale; I'm not a French scholar."
-
-"Let's call him Mr., for all that. Monshure twists the tongue unless
-you're born there."
-
-"I'm agreeable. Call him Mr. if you like. Hallo!"
-
-The exclamation was caused by Mrs. Middlemore's street door being
-suddenly opened without any preliminary warning from within, and with
-such swiftness and violence that the policemen almost fell through it
-into the passage. As they were recovering their equilibrium a man
-stepped out of the house, or rather stumbled out of it, in a state of
-great excitement. He had a crimson scarf round his neck; it was
-loosely tied, and the ends floated in the wind. The little bit of
-color shone bright in the glare of white snow. Its wearer pulled the
-door after him and hurried along the street, looking neither to the
-right nor to the left, and taking no notice of the policemen, who
-strained their eyes after him. He walked very unsteadily, and was soon
-out of sight.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER II.
-
-THE SPECTRE CAT.
-
-
-"That's a rum start," said Constable Wigg. "Was it Mr. Felix?"
-
-"No," replied Constable Nightingale, "Mr. Felix is altogether a
-different kind of man. Takes things more coolly. Walks slow, talks
-slow, thinks slow, looks at you slow. This fellow was like a flash of
-lightning. Did you catch sight of his face?"
-
-"He was in such a devil of a hurry that there was no catching sight of
-anything except the red handkerchief round his neck. There was no
-mistaking that. Seemed a youngish man."
-
-"Yes. Been on a visit to Mr. Felix, most likely."
-
-"Or to some other lodger in the house," suggested Constable Wigg.
-
-"There ain't no other," said Constable Nightingale. "Every room in it
-except the basement is let to Mr. Felix."
-
-"A married man, then' with a large family?"
-
-"No," said Constable Nightingale, with a little cough. "Single. Or,
-perhaps, a widower. No business of ours, Wigg."
-
-"Certainly not. Go on with your story, Nightingale. 'You're wanted up
-there' says Mrs. Middlemore."
-
-"Yes. 'You're wanted up there,' she says, meaning Mr. Felix's rooms.
-'Did Mr. Felix send for me?' I ask. 'He did,' she answers. 'He rings
-his bell and says, "Go for a policeman." And he'll not be sorry it's
-you, Mr. Nightingale, because you're a man as can be trusted,' Mrs.
-Middlemore's precise words. You see, Wigg, me and her ain't exactly
-strangers. I'm a single man, and I'm mistook if she ain't got a bit of
-money put by."
-
-"You're a knowing one, Nightingale,' said Constable Wigg, somewhat
-enviously, and it is not to the credit of human nature to state that
-there flashed into his mind the base idea of endeavoring to supplant
-his brother constable in Mrs. Middlemore's good graces. What should
-hinder him? He was a single man, many years younger than Constable
-Nightingale, and much better looking. All was fair in love and war.
-The "bit of money put by" was a temptation from Lucifer.
-
-"That's what brings me round here now and then," continued Constable
-Nightingale, complacently. "A man might go a good deal further than
-Mrs. Middlemore, and fare a good deal worse. 'I suppose,' says I to
-her, 'there's somebody with Mr. Felix as he wants to get rid of, and
-as won't go?' 'I ain't at liberty to say,' she answers, 'but you're
-pretty near the mark. Come and see for yourself, and don't forget that
-Mr. Felix has got a liberal heart, and hates fuss.' Upon that, Wigg, I
-holds my tongue, because I'm a man as knows how to, and I follows Mrs.
-Middlemore into the house. I'd been inside before, of course, but
-never upstairs, always down and Mrs. Middlemore had told me such a lot
-about Mr. Felix's rooms that I was curious to see them. 'Furnished
-like a palace,' Mrs. Middlemore used to say; so up the stairs I steps,
-Mrs. Middlemore showing the way, and I don't mind confessing that
-before we got to the first landing I put my arm round Mrs.
-Middlemore's waist--but that's neither here nor there. She stops on
-the landing, and knocks at the door----"
-
-But here Constable Nightingale was compelled to pause, and to hold on
-tight to his comrade. The storm quite suddenly reached such a pitch of
-fury that the men could scarcely keep their feet, and it would have
-been impossible to hear a word that was spoken. It was not a fitful
-display of temper; so fierce grew the wind that it blew the street
-door open with a crash, and as the policemen were leaning against it,
-the consequence was that they were precipitated into the passage, and
-fell flat upon their backs. The reason of the door being blown open so
-readily was probably, as Constable Nightingale afterward remarked,
-because the man who had recently left the house so hastily had not
-pulled it tight behind him, but the tempest was raging so furiously
-that it might well have made light of such an obstacle as an old
-street door. It was with difficulty the policemen recovered their
-feet, and the strength of the wind as it rushed through the passage
-was so great that the idea that they would be safer inside the house
-than out occurred to both of them at once. To expose themselves to the
-fury of the elements in the open would undoubtedly have been attended
-with danger. Instinctively they advanced to the door, and after a
-struggle succeeded in shutting it. That being accomplished, they stood
-in the dark passage, mentally debating what they should do next.
-
-"There's something moving," whispered Constable Wigg, trembling. He
-was not remarkable for courage, and had a horror of darkness.
-
-Constable Nightingale was made of sterner stuff. He promptly pulled
-out his dark lantern, and cast its circle of light upon the floor; and
-there, creeping timidly along close to the wall, they saw the
-miserable half-starved cat which had shaken Constable Wigg's nerves
-earlier in the night. It had taken advantage of the open street door
-to obtain the shelter for which it had long been seeking.
-
-"It ain't the first time," said Constable Wigg, in a vicious tone,
-"that this little beast has given me a turn. Just before you come up
-it run across me and almost sent my heart into my mouth."
-
-But for a mournful, fear-stricken look in its yellow eyes, the light
-of the dark lantern seemed to deprive the wretched cat of the power of
-motion. It remained perfectly still, cowering to the ground. Even when
-Constable Wigg gave it a spiteful kick it did not move of its own
-volition, and it was only when the attention of the policeman was no
-longer directed toward it that it slunk slowly and stealthily away.
-
-Meanwhile the tempest raged more furiously than ever outside. The
-shrieking wind tore through the streets, carrying devastation in its
-train, and the air was thick with whirling, blinding snow.
-
-"Did you ever hear anything like it?" said Constable Nightingale.
-
-"Never," said Constable Wigg.
-
-"It would be madness to go out," said Constable Nightingale. "We
-should be dashed to pieces. Besides, what good could we do? Besides,
-who would be likely to want us? Besides, who's to know?"
-
-
-* * * * * *
-
-
-There was a world of philosophy in these reflections, which Constable
-Wigg was only too ready to acknowledge.
-
-"What do you propose, Nightingale?" he asked.
-
-"That we go down to Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen," replied Constable
-Nightingale, "and make ourselves comfortable. I know the way."
-
-He led it, and Constable Wigg very cheerfully accompanied him. The
-kitchen was the coziest of apartments, and their hearts warmed within
-them as they entered it. Mrs. Middlemore, like a sensible woman, had
-taken the precaution to bank up the fire before she left the house,
-and it needed but one touch from the poker to cause it to spring into
-a bright glowing blaze. This touch was applied by Constable
-Nightingale, and the shadows upon walls and ceiling leapt into ruddy
-life.
-
-"This is something like," said Constable Wigg, stooping and warming
-himself.
-
-Having no further need for his dark lantern, Constable Nightingale
-tucked it snugly away, and then proceeded to light a candle which, in
-its flat tin candlestick and a box of matches handy, stood on the
-kitchen table. They were not the only articles on the table. There was
-no table-cloth, it is true, but what mattered that? The whitest of
-table-cloths would have made but a sorry supper, and in the present
-instance could not have added to the attractions which the lighted
-candle revealed. There was bread, there was butter, there was cheese,
-there were pickles, there was a plate of sausages, there was half a
-roast fowl, and there was a fine piece of cold pork. Constable Wigg's
-eyes wandered to the table, and became, so to speak, glued there. He
-was now standing with his back to the fire, and was being comfortably
-warmed through. Even a kitchen may become a veritable Aladdin's cave,
-and this was the case with Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen, in the
-estimation of Constable Wigg.
-
-"If there's one thing I like better than another for supper," he said,
-meditatively, and with pathos in his voice, "it is cold pork and
-pickles. And there's enough for three, Nightingale, there's enough for
-three."
-
-Constable Nightingale nodded genially, and, with the air of a man
-familiar with his surroundings, took up a piece of butter on a knife,
-and put it to his mouth.
-
-"The best fresh," he observed.
-
-"You don't say so?" exclaimed Constable Wigg, not contentiously, but
-in amiable wonder.
-
-"Taste it," said Constable Nightingale, handing his comrade the knife
-with a new knob of butter on it.
-
-"It _is_ the best fresh," said Constable Wigg. "She lives on the fat
-of the land." This evidence of good living and the cheerful homeliness
-of the kitchen strengthened his notion of supplanting Constable
-Nightingale in the affections of Mrs. Middlemore, but he was careful
-not to betray himself. "You know your way about, Nightingale. It ain't
-the first time you've been in this here snuggery."
-
-Constable Nightingale smiled knowingly, and said, "Cold pork and
-pickles ain't half a bad supper, to say nothing of sausages, roast
-fowl, and----and----." He sniffed intelligently and inquired, "Ain't
-there a baked tatery smell somewheres near?"
-
-"Now you mention it," replied Constable Wigg, also sniffing, "I
-believe there is."
-
-"And here they are, Wigg," said Constable Nightingale, opening the
-door of the oven, and exposing four large, flowery potatoes baking in
-their skins. "Not yet quite done, not yet quite ready to burst, and
-all a-growing and a-blowing, and waiting for butter and pepper.
-They're relishy enough without butter and pepper, but with butter and
-pepper they're a feast for a emperor."
-
-"Ah," sighed Constable Wigg, "it's better to be born lucky than rich.
-Now just cast your eye at the door, Nightingale. I'm blessed if that
-beastly cat ain't poking its nose in again." And as though there was
-within him a superabundance of vicious energy which required immediate
-working off, Constable Wigg threw his truncheon at the cat, which,
-without uttering a sound, fled from the kitchen. "What riles me about
-that cat is that it moves about like a ghost, without as much as a
-whine. It takes you all of a sudden, like a stab in the back. It'll be
-up to some mischief before the night is out."
-
-"Why, Wigg," said Constable Nightingale, with a laugh, "you talk of it
-as if it wasn't a cat at all."
-
-"I don't believe it is. In my opinion it's a spectre cat, a spirit
-without a solid body. I lifted it with my foot in the street, and not
-a sound came from it. I kicked it in the passage, and it crept away
-like a ghost. I let fly my truncheon at it and hit it on the head, and
-off it went like a shadder, without a whine. It ain't natural. If it
-comes across me again I advise it to say its prayers."
-
-Which, to say the least of it, was an absurd recommendation to offer
-to a cat. But Constable Wigg was in an unreasonable and spiteful
-temper, and he became morose and melancholy when he saw how thoroughly
-Constable Nightingale was making himself at home in Mrs. Middlemore's
-kitchen; or perhaps it was the sight of the tempting food on the table
-which, without lawful invitation, he dared not touch. However it was,
-he was not allowed much time for gloomy reflection, his thoughts being
-diverted by the violent slamming of the street door, and by the
-further sound of a person breathing heavily in her course downstairs.
-
-"It's Mrs. Middlemore," said Constable Nightingale, in a low tone. "I
-never thought she'd be able to open the door alone with such a wind
-blowing. We'll give her a surprise."
-
-They heard Mrs. Middlemore stop outside the kitchen, and exclaim,
-"Well! To think I should 'ave been so foolish as to leave the candle
-alight! I could 'ave swore I blowed it out before I left the room!"
-Then she opened the door, and it was well that Constable Nightingale
-darted forward to her support, for if he had not she would have fallen
-to the ground in affright, and the supper beer would have been lost to
-taste, if not to sight. It was as well, too, that he put his face
-close enough to her lips to partially stifle a kind of a hysterical
-gurgle which was escaping therefrom. It was, however, a proceeding of
-which Constable Wigg did not inwardly approve.
-
-"Pluck up, Mrs. Middlemore," said Constable Nightingale, cheerily,
-"there's nothing wrong. It's only me and my mate, Wigg, who's on night
-duty here. Everything's as right as a fiddle. Take a pull at the
-beer--a long pull. Now you feel better, don't you?"
-
-Mrs. Middlemore--her movements being enviously watched by Constable
-Wigg, whose thirst was growing almost unbearable--removed her lips
-from the jug, and said:
-
-"Ever so much. But how did you get in?"
-
-"Didn't get in at all," said Constable Nightingale, jocosely; "we were
-blown in."
-
-"Blown in!"
-
-"Yes, my dear. We was standing outside, Wigg and me, leaning against
-the door, when the wind come like a clap of thunder, and blew it clean
-open, and of course we went with it, flat on our backs the pair of us.
-When we got on our feet again the wind was tearing so, and the snow
-was pelting down that fierce, that I thought we might venture to take
-a liberty, and we come down here to warm ourselves. And that's the
-long and the short of it, my dear."
-
-He still had his arm round Mrs. Middlemore's waist, and now he gave
-her a hug. She was a pleasant-faced, round-bodied woman, some forty
-years of age, and she looked up smilingly as the constable--her
-favorite constable--hugged her, and said,
-
-"Well, now, I declare you did startle me. When I opened the door, and
-sor two men a-standing in my kitchen, I thought of burglars, and you
-might 'ave knocked me down with a feather.
-
-"And now we're here," said Constable Nightingale, "I don't suppose
-you'd have the heart to turn us out."
-
-"Turn you out!" exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, "I wouldn't turn a cat out
-on such a night as this!"
-
-"More cats," thought Constable Wigg, with his eyes on the cold pork
-and pickles.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER III.
-
-A THRILLING INCIDENT.
-
-
-"The wonder is," said Constable Nightingale, while Mrs. Middlemore
-shook the snow out of her clothes, "how you had the courage to venture
-out in such weather."
-
-"It's 'abit, Mr. Nightingale, that's what it is. Once I get to doing a
-thing regular, done it must be if I want to keep my peace of mind.
-There wouldn't be a wink of sleep for me if I didn't go and fetch my
-supper beer myself every night. I don't keep a gal, Mr. Winks----"
-
-"Wigg," said that gentleman in correction, with a dreamy look at the
-beer-jug.
-
-"I beg you a thousand pardons, Mr. Wigg, I'm sure. I don't keep a gal,
-and that's why my place is always nice and clean, as you see it now.
-If you want your work done, do it yourself--that's my motter. Not that
-I can't afford to keep a gal, but Mr. Felix he ses when he come to me
-about the rooms when I didn't 'ave a blessed lodger in the 'ouse,
-'I'll take 'em,' he ses, 'conditionally. You mustn't let a room in the
-place to anybody but me.' 'But I make my living out of the rooms,
-sir,' ses I, 'and I can't afford to let 'em remain empty.' 'You _can_
-afford,' ses Mr. Felix, 'if I pay for 'em remaining empty. What rent
-do you arks for the whole 'ouse with the exception of the basement?' I
-opened my mouth wide, I don't mind telling you that, Mr. Wigg, when I
-put a price upon the 'ouse. All he ses is, 'Agreed.' 'Then there's
-attendance, sir,' I ses. 'How much for that?' he arks. I opens my
-mouth wide agin, and all he ses is, 'Agreed.' You see, Mr. Wigg,
-seeing as' ow you're a friend of Mr. Nightingale's, and as no friend
-of his'n can be anything but a gentleman, there's no 'arm in my
-telling you a thing or two about Mr. Felix, more especially as you're
-on night duty 'ere."
-
-"Here's to our better acquaintance," said Constable Wigg, laying hands
-on the beer-jug in an absent kind of way, and raising it to his mouth.
-When, after a long interval, he put it down again with a sigh of
-intense satisfaction, he met the reproachful gaze of Constable
-Nightingale, who gasped:
-
-"Well, of all the cheek! Without ever being asked!"
-
-"Love your heart," said Mrs. Middlemore, "what does that matter? He's
-as welcome as the flowers in May, being a friend of your'n." She
-handed the jug to Constable Nightingale, asking, as she did so, "Did
-you ever 'ave a inspiration, Mr. Nightingale?"
-
-Constable Nightingale did not immediately reply, his face being buried
-in the jug. When it was free, and he had wiped his mouth, he said, in
-a mild tone--any harsh judgment he may have harbored against Constable
-Wigg being softened by the refreshing draught--
-
-"I must have had one to-night when I come this way, out of my beat, to
-have a talk with Wigg, and to see that you was all right. The taters
-in the oven'll be burnt to a cinder if they're not took out
-immediate."
-
-"You've got a nose for baked taters, you 'ave," said Mrs. Middlemore,
-admiringly. "Trust you for finding out things without eyes! But you
-always can smell what I've got in the oven."
-
-Constable Wigg rubbed his hands joyously when he saw Mrs. Middlemore
-lay three plates and draw three chairs up to the table. Then she
-whipped the baked potatoes out of the oven, saying,
-
-"Done to a turn. Now we can talk and 'ave supper at the same time.
-Make yourself at 'ome, Mr. Wigg, and 'elp yourself to what you like.
-I'll 'ave a bit of fowl, Mr. Nightingale, and jest a thin slice of the
-cold pork, if you please Mr. Wigg. It's a favorite dish of yours, I
-can see. Mr. Nightingale, _you_ won't make compliments, I'm sure.
-You're the last man as ought to in this 'ouse." Constable Nightingale
-pressed her foot under the table, and she smiled at him, and
-continued, "I was going to tell you about my inspiration when I got
-the supper beer. A pint and a half won't be enough,' ses I to myself;
-a pint and a half's my regular allowance, Mr. Wigg, and I don't find
-it too much, because I don't drink sperrits. 'A pint and a half won't
-be enough,' ses I to myself; 'I shouldn't be surprised if a friend
-dropped in, so I'll double it.' And I did."
-
-"That's something like an inspiration," said Constable Nightingale,
-looking amorously at Mrs. Middlemore, who smiled amorously at him in
-return.
-
-Constable Wigg cut these amorous inclinings short by remarking, "We
-was talking of Mr. Felix. Nightingale commenced twice to-night telling
-a story about him, and it's not told yet."
-
-"Not my fault, Wigg," Constable Nightingale managed to say, with his
-mouth full.
-
-"I'll tell my story first," said Mrs. Middlemore, "and he can tell his
-afterward. Try them sausages, Mr. Wigg. Mr. Felix always 'as the best
-of everythink. I buy 'em at Wall's. So when he ses 'Agreed' to the
-rent and attendance, he ses, 'And about servants?' 'I can't afford to
-keep more than one, sir,' I ses. 'You can, ses he; 'you can afford to
-keep none. You'll find me the best tenant you ever 'ad, and what
-you've got to do is to foller my instructions. 'I'll do my best, sir,'
-ses I. 'It'll pay you,' ses he, 'to let me do exactly as I please, and
-never to cross me.' And I'm bound to say, Mr. Wigg, that it 'as paid
-me never to cross 'im and never to arks questions. 'We shall git along
-capitally together,' ses he, 'without servants. They're a prying, idle
-lot, and I won't 'ave 'em creeping up the stairs on welwet toes to
-find out what I'm doing. So keep none, Mrs. Middlemore,' he ses, 'not
-the ghost of one. You can wait on me without assistance. If I want to
-entertain a visitor or two I'll 'ave the meals brought in ready
-cooked, and if we want hextra attendance I'll git Gunter to send in a
-man as knows 'is business and can 'old 'is tongue.' Of course I was
-agreeable to that, and he pays me down a month in advance, like the
-gentleman he is. Though I don't drink sperrits, Mr. Nightingale,
-that's no reason why you should deny yourself. You know where the
-bottle is, and per'aps Mr. Wigg will jine you."
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore," said Constable Wigg, "you're a lady after my own
-heart, and I'm glad I'm alive. Here's looking toward you."
-
-"Thank you, Mr. Wigg," said Mrs. Middlemore, "and what I say is it's a
-shame that men like you and Mr. Nightingale should be trapesing the
-streets with the snow coming down and the wind a-blowing as it is now.
-Jest listen to it; it's going on worse than ever. Might I take the
-liberty of inquiring--you being on the beat, Mr. Wigg--whether you sor
-a lady come out of the house while I was gone for the supper beer?"
-
-"No lady came out of the house," replied Constable Wigg. "A man did."
-
-"A man!" cried Mrs. Middlemore. "Not Mr. Felix, surely!"
-
-"No, not him," said Constable Nightingale. "A strange-looking man with
-a red handkercher round his neck."
-
-"A strange-looking man, with a red 'andkercher round 'is neck?"
-exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore. "'Ow did he git in?"
-
-"That's not for us to say," said Constable Nightingale. "Perhaps Mr.
-Felix let him in when you was away."
-
-"Yes, most likely," said Mrs. Middlemore, with an air of confusion
-which she strove vainly to conceal from the observation of her
-visitors; "of course, that must be. Mr. Felix often lets people in
-'isself. 'Mrs. Middlemore,' he ses sometimes, 'if there's a ring or a
-knock at the door, I'll attend to it. You needn't trouble yourself.'
-And I don't--knowing 'im, and knowing it'll pay me better to foller
-'is instructions. For there's never a time that sech a thing 'appens
-that Mr. Felix doesn't say to me afterward, 'Here's a half-sovering
-for you, Mrs. Middlemore.'"
-
-"You're in for one to-morrow morning, then," observed Constable Wigg,
-"because it was a man we saw and not a woman."
-
-"He won't forgit it," said Mrs. Middlemore, "not 'im. He's too free
-and generous with 'is money, so long as he's let alone, and not pry'd
-upon. What he does is no business of mine, and I'm not going to make
-it mine."
-
-"Ah," Mrs. Middlemore, said Constable Wigg, emptying his second glass
-of whiskey, "you know which side your bread is buttered."
-
-"I wasn't born yesterday," said Mrs. Middlemore, with a shrewd smile,
-"and I've seed things that I keep to myself. Why not? You'd do the
-same if you was in my shoes, wouldn't you?"
-
-"That we would," replied both the policeman in one breath; and
-Constable Wigg added, "You're a lucky woman to have such a lodger."
-
-"Well," said Mrs. Middlemore, "I don't deny it. I never met with such
-a man as Mr. Felix, and I don't believe there is another. Why, when he
-took possession, he ses, 'Clear out every bit of furniture there is in
-the rooms. Send it to auction if you like and sell it, and pocket the
-money. When I leave you shall either 'ave all my furniture, or I'll
-furnish the rooms over agin according to your fancy, and it shan't
-cost you a penny.' I was agreeable. Because why? Because he give me
-forty pound on account, to show that he was in earnest. Then he begins
-to furnish, and if you was to see 'is rooms, Mr. Wigg, you'd be that
-took aback that you wouldn't know what to say. All sorts of wonderful
-woods, satings, picters, swords and daggers, strange rugs and carpets,
-painted plates and dishes, 'angings, old lamps, and goodness only
-knows what I don't understand 'arf of 'em. There! I've talked enough
-about Mr. Felix for once. Let's talk of something else."
-
-"Do you keep cats, Mrs. Middlemore?" asked Constable Nightingale,
-brewing another grog for himself and Constable Wigg.
-
-"I don't," replied Mrs. Middlemore. "Mr. Felix won't 'ave one in the
-'ouse."
-
-"There's one in the house now, though," said Constable Nightingale.
-"It come in when the wind burst open the street door, and Wigg and me
-fell into the passage. He says it's not a cat, but a spectre, a
-ghost."
-
-"Lord save us!" ejaculated Mrs. Middlemore. "If Mr. Felix sees it
-he'll never forgive me. He 'as a 'atred of 'em. And the ghost of a
-cat, too!" She was so impressed that she edged closer to Constable
-Nightingale.
-
-"It was a spectre cat," said Constable Wigg, desirous to do something
-to divert Mrs. Middlemore's thoughts from Mr. Felix, and also from her
-leaning toward his comrade. "And then there was that cry for 'Help' I
-fancied I heard."
-
-"What cry for help?" asked Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"I thought I heard it three times," said Constable Wigg--but he was
-prevented from going further by an incident which was followed by a
-startling picture. Constable Nightingale, rather thrown off his
-balance by the drink he had imbibed, and desirous to meet the advances
-of Mrs. Middlemore, slyly put his arm round her waist, and to hide the
-movement from the observation of his brother constable, made a clumsy
-movement over the table, and overturned the candle, the effect of
-which was to put out the light and to leave them in darkness. He was
-not sorry for it, for the reason that he was hugging Mrs. Middlemore
-close. But Constable Wigg started up in fear, and cried:
-
-"Somebody has pushed open the door!"
-
-In point of fact the kitchen-door had been quietly pushed open, and
-the other two observed it when their attention was directed toward it.
-
-"What is it?" whispered Mrs. Middlemore, shaking like a jelly, "Oh,
-what is it?"
-
-Constable Nightingale, for the second time that night pulled out his
-dark lantern, and cast its light upon the door. And there, imbedded in
-the circle of light, was the cat which had already twice before
-alarmed Constable Wigg. They uttered a cry of horror, and indeed they
-were justified by the picture which presented itself. The cat was
-_red_. Every bristle, sticking up on its skin, was luminous with
-horrible color. It was a perfect ball of blood.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IV.
-
-A DISCUSSION ABOUT RED CATS AND WHITE SNOW.
-
-
-In a fit of terror the constable dropped the lantern, and the cat,
-unseen by the occupants of the kitchen, scuttled away.
-
-"If you don't light the candle," gasped Mrs. Middlemore, "I shall go
-off." And she forthwith proceeded to demonstrate by screaming, "Oh,
-oh, oh!"
-
-"She's done it, Wigg," said Constable Nightingale. "Strike a light,
-there's a good fellow, and pick up the lantern. I can't do it myself;
-I've got my arms full."
-
-Constable Wigg had now recovered his courage, and inspired by
-jealousy, quickly struck a match and lit the candle. Mrs. Middlemore
-lay comfortably in the arms of Constable Nightingale, who did not seem
-anxious to rid himself of his burden. Stirred to emulative sympathy,
-Constable Wigg took possession of one of Mrs. Middlemore's hands, and
-pressed and patted it with a soothing, "There, there, there! What has
-made you come over like this? There's nothing to be frightened of, is
-there, Nightingale?"
-
-"Nothing at all," replied Constable Nightingale, irascibly, for he by
-no means relished his comrade's insidious attempt to slide into Mrs.
-Middlemore's affections. "You're better now, ain't you?"
-
-"A little," murmured Mrs. Middlemore, "a very little."
-
-"Take a sip of this," said Constable Wigg, holding a glass to her
-lips, "it'll bring you round."
-
-Ignoring her previous declaration that she did not "drink sperrits,"
-Mrs. Middlemore sipped the glass of whiskey, and continued to sip,
-with intermittent shudders, till she had drained the last drop. Then
-she summoned sufficient strength to raise herself languidly from
-Constable Nightingale's arms, and look toward the door.
-
-"Where's it gone to?" she asked, in a trembling voice. "What's become
-of the 'orrid creature?"
-
-"What horrid creature, my dear?" inquired Constable Nightingale,
-winking at his comrade.
-
-"The cat! The red cat!"
-
-"A red cat!" exclaimed Constable Nightingale, in a jocular voice; "who
-ever heard of such a thing? Who ever saw such a thing?"
-
-"Why, I did--and you did, too."
-
-"Not me," said Constable Nightingale, with another wink at Constable
-Wigg.
-
-"Nor me," said that officer, following the lead.
-
-"Do you mean to tell me you didn't see a cat, and that the cat you sor
-wasn't red?"
-
-"I saw a cat, yes," said Constable Nightingale, "but not a red
-'un--no, not a red un'. What do you say, Wigg?"
-
-"I say as you says, Nightingale."
-
-"There's lobsters, now," said Constable Nightingale; "we know what
-color they are when they're boiled, but we don't boil cats, that I
-know of, and if we did they wouldn't turn red. You learned natural
-history when you was at school, Wigg. What did they say about red
-cats?"
-
-"It's against nature," said Constable Wigg, adding, with an
-unconscious imitation of Macbeth, "there's no such thing."
-
-"I must take your word for it," said Mrs. Middlemore, only half
-convinced, "but if ever my eyes deceived me they deceived me jest now.
-If you two gentlemen wasn't here, I'd be ready to take my oath the cat
-was red. And now I come to think of it, what made the pair of you cry
-out as you did?"
-
-"What made us cry out?" repeated Constable Nightingale, who, in this
-discussion, proved himself much superior to his brother officer in the
-matter of invention. "It was natural, that's what it was, natural. I'm
-free to confess I was a bit startled. First, there's the night--listen
-to it; it's going on worse than ever--ain't that enough to startle
-one? I've been out in bad nights, but I never remember such a one-er
-as this. Did you, Wigg?"
-
-"Never. If it goes on much longer, it'll beat that American blizzard
-they talked so much of."
-
-"That's enough to startle a chap," continued Constable Nightingale,
-"letting alone anything else. But then, there was that talk about a
-spectre cat. I ain't frightened of much that I know of. Put a man
-before me, or a dog, or a horse, and I'm ready to tackle 'em, one down
-and the other come up, or altogether if they like; but when you come
-to spectres, I ain't ashamed to say I'm not up to 'em. Its
-constitootional, Mrs. Middlemore; I was that way when I was little.
-There was a cupboard at home, and my mother used to say, 'Don't you
-ever open it, Jimmy; there's a ghost hiding behind the door.' I
-wouldn't have put my hand on the knob for untold gold. It's the same
-now. Anything that's alive I don't give way to; but when it comes to
-ghosts and spectres I take a back seat, and I don't care who knows it.
-Then there was that cry for 'Help,' that Wigg was speaking of. Then
-there was the candle going out"--he gave Mrs. Middlemore a nudge as he
-referred to this incident--"and the sudden opening of the door there.
-It was all them things together that made me cry out; and if brother
-Wigg's got any other explanation to give I shall be glad to hear it."
-
-"No, Nightingale," said the prudent and unimaginative Wigg, "I
-couldn't improve on you. You've spoke like a man, and I hope our
-good-looking, good-natured landlady is satisfied."
-
-This complimentary allusion served to dispel Mrs. Middlemore's fears,
-and in a more contented frame of mind she resumed her seat at the
-table, the constables following her example.
-
-"May the present moment," said Constable Nightingale, lifting his
-glass and looking affectionately at Mrs. Middlemore, "be the worst of
-our lives; and here's my regards to you."
-
-"And mine, my good creature," said Constable Wigg.
-
-"Gents both," said Mrs. Middlemore, now thoroughly restored, "I looks
-toward yer."
-
-Whereupon they all drank, and settled themselves comfortably in their
-chairs.
-
-"What was in that cupboard," asked Mrs. Middlemore, "that your mother
-told you there was a ghost in?"
-
-"What was in it? Now, that shows how a body may be frightened at
-nothing. I didn't find it out till I was a man, and it was as much a
-ghost as I am. But there's a lady present, and I'd better not go on."
-
-"Yes, you must," said Mrs. Middlemore, positively. "You've made me
-that curious that I'll never speak another word to you if you don't
-tell me."
-
-"Rather than that should happen, I must let you into the secret, I
-suppose. But you won't mind me mentioning it?"
-
-"Not a bit, Mr. Nightingale. Speak free."
-
-"Well, if you must know, it was where she kept a spare bustle, and a
-bit or two of hair, and some other little vanities that she didn't
-want us young 'uns to pull about. There, the murder's out, and I
-wouldn't have mentioned the things if you hadn't been so curious; but
-it's a privilege of your sex, Mrs. Middlemore, one of your amiable
-weaknesses that we're bound to respect."
-
-Mrs. Middlemore laughed, and asked Constable Wigg what he was thinking
-of. That worthy had, indeed, put on his considering cap, as the saying
-is; he felt that Constable Nightingale was making the running too
-fast, and that he should be left hopelessly in the rear unless he made
-an attempt to assert himself, and to show that he knew a thing or two.
-
-"I was thinking of the red cat," he said.
-
-"Wigg," said Constable Nightingale, in a tone of reproof, "I'm
-astonished at you. When everything's been made smooth!"
-
-"For the moment, Nightingale, for the moment," said Constable Wigg,
-complacently. "But there's by and by to reckon with. It ain't to be
-expected that Mrs. Middlemore can have us always with her, though I'm
-sure I should ask for nothing better. What could a man want better
-than this? Outside snow and blow, inside wine and shine."
-
-"You're quite a poet, Mr. Wigg," said Mrs. Middlemore, admiringly.
-
-"I don't see it," grumbled Constable Nightingale; "where's the wine?"
-
-"If this," said Constable Wigg, raising his glass and looking at its
-contents with the eye of a connoisseur, "ain't as good as the best of
-wine, I stand corrected. Did you never hear of a poet's license,
-Nightingale?" He asked this question banteringly.
-
-"No, I didn't, and I don't believe you know where to get one, and what
-the Government charges for it."
-
-"I'm afraid, Nightingale," said Constable Wigg, beginning to feel the
-effects of the drink, "that you've no soul for poetry."
-
-"Never you mind whether I have or haven't," retorted Constable
-Nightingale.
-
-"Gents both," interposed Mrs. Middlemore, "whatever you do, don't fall
-out. You're as welcome as welcome can be, but don't fall out."
-
-"I bear no malice," said Constable Nightingale, who was really a
-simple-minded, good-hearted fellow; "shake hands, Wigg, and let
-bygones be bygones. All I want you to do is to let the red cat alone,
-or to stick to the point, and have done with it once and for all."
-
-"Very good, Nightingale," said Constable Wigg, assuming the lofty air
-of a man who had established his claim to pre-eminence. "I'll stick to
-the point, and if I don't make Mrs. Middlemore's mind easy, I'll give
-up. Not easy as long as we're here, but easy when we're gone, as gone
-we must be some time or other, because it don't stand to reason that
-this storm's going to last forever. I'm only thinking of you, I give
-you my word, ma'am."
-
-"You're very kind, I'm sure," murmured Mrs. Middlemore, inclining,
-with the proverbial fickleness of her sex, now to Constable,
-Nightingale and now to Constable Wigg.
-
-"It's the least I can do," proceeded Constable Wigg, addressing
-himself solely to his hostess, "after the way I've been treated here.
-Not for the last time, I hope."
-
-"Not by a many," said Mrs. Middlemore, smirking at the flatterer, "if
-it remains with me."
-
-"You're monarch of all you survey, ma'am," observed the wily Wigg,
-smirking back at her, "and remain with you it must, as long as you
-remain single."
-
-"Oh, Mr. Wigg!"
-
-"It's nobody's fault but your own if you do; there's not many as can
-pick and choose, but you're one as can. Perhaps you're hard to please,
-ma'am----"
-
-"I ain't," said Mrs. Middlemore, so energetically that Constable
-Nightingale began to think it time to interfere.
-
-"You're forgetting the red cat, Wigg," he said.
-
-"Not at all," said Constable Wigg, blandly; "I'm coming to it, but I
-don't forget that Mrs. Middlemore has nerves. It amounts to this,
-ma'am. I've read a bit in my time, and I'm going to give you--_and_
-Nightingale, if he ain't too proud--the benefit of it. You _did_ see a
-red cat, ma'am."
-
-"Did I?" said Mrs. Middlemore, looking around with a shiver.
-
-"You did, ma'am, and yet the cat wasn't red. I thought it was red, and
-so did Nightingale, if he'll speak the truth. I'll wait for him to
-say."
-
-"I won't keep you waiting long," said Constable Nightingale, in a
-surly tone. "As you and Mrs. Middlemore seem to be of one mind, I'll
-make a clean breast of it. I thought it was red, and when I made light
-of it I did it for her sake."
-
-He said this so tenderly that Mrs. Middlemore rewarded him with a look
-of gratitude; but she kept her eyes averted from the kitchen door.
-
-"Now we can get on like a house on fire," said Constable Wigg. "When
-you winked at me, Nightingale, I didn't contradict you, but I fell
-a-thinking, and then what I read come to my mind. You've been out in
-the snow, Mrs. Middlemore, and you saw nothing but white. We've been
-out in the snow, ma'am, and we saw nothing but white. Not for a
-minute, not for five, not for ten but for hours I may say. I remember
-reading somewhere that when you've looked for a longish time upon
-nothing but white, that it's as likely as not the next thing you see
-will be red, never mind what the color really is. That's the way with
-us. The cat's been haunting me, in a manner of speaking, the whole
-livelong night, and what with that and the snow, and being all of a
-sudden shoved into darkness, the minute a light shines on the wretched
-thing it comes to me as red as a ball of fire; and it comes to you the
-same, because the snow's got into your eyes and affected your sight."
-
-"Bosh!" exclaimed Constable Nightingale.
-
-"What's that you say, Nightingale?" asked Constable Wigg.
-
-"Bosh! I didn't want to frighten Mrs. Middlemore, and that's the
-reason I wouldn't harp on it, but now you've raked it up again I'll
-have the matter settled."
-
-So saying, Constable Nightingale rose from his chair.
-
-"Where are you going?" cried Mrs. Middlemore. "What are you going to
-do?"
-
-"I'm going to find that cat," replied Constable Nightingale, "if it's
-in the house. If it isn't red, I give in and apologize. If it is, I
-shall take the liberty of saying for the third time, Bosh!"
-
-He walked toward the door, but started back before he reached it, and
-pointing to the floor, asked,
-
-"What do you call that, Wigg? Is that a deloosion!"
-
-Constable Wigg advanced, looked down, rubbed his eyes, looked down
-again, and answered,
-
-"I'm bound to say there's no mistaking the color. Have you got any red
-ochre in the house, ma'am?"
-
-"Not a bit," gasped Mrs. Middlemore, "as I knows on."
-
-"These," said Constable Nightingale, kneeling, and examining the
-floor, "are marks of the cat's paws, and they're red. Look for
-yourself, Wigg."
-
-"There's no denying it," said the baffled Wigg.
-
-"You're on duty here, Wigg."
-
-"What do you advise, Nightingale? You've been longer in the force than
-me."
-
-"It's got to be looked into by somebody. It ain't for me to do it,
-because I'm out of my beat, and I don't want to be made an example of.
-Would you oblige me by going to the door and giving the alarm?"
-
-"What for?"
-
-"For me, being at a distance, to hear it. For me hearing it, to run to
-your assistance. Do you twig? My being on your beat must be accounted
-for. That will account for it."
-
-This ingenious suggestion relieved Constable Wigg's mind as well as
-his comrade's.
-
-"That's a good idea," he said; "and it'll account, too, for our being
-in the house, supposing anything should be said about it."
-
-"Exactly. Being here with Mrs. Middlemore's permission. You've got a
-lot to learn, Wigg, and one of the lessons I'd advise you to take to
-heart"--here he looked significantly at Mrs. Middlemore--"is not to
-poach on a pal's preserves."
-
-Constable Wigg may have felt the reproach, but he took no notice of
-it. "You may as well come to the door with me, Nightingale."
-
-"I've no objections."
-
-"I'll come too," said Mrs. Middlemore, nervously. "I wouldn't be left
-alone here for anythink you could orfer me."
-
-The three walked upstairs to the passage, Mrs. Middlemore needing the
-support of Constable Nightingale's arm round her waist; but the moment
-the fastenings of the street-door were unloosed, it flew open as
-though a battering ram had been applied to it, and the wind and snow
-swept in upon them with undiminished fury.
-
-"Hanged if it ain't getting worse and worse!" muttered Constable
-Nightingale, helping the others to shut the door, which was
-accomplished with great difficulty.
-
-"Don't make a noise in the passage," whispered Mrs. Middlemore to
-Constable Wigg. "Mr. Felix 'll 'ear it, and he'd never forgive me."
-
-"We'll take it for granted, then, that the alarm is given," said
-Constable Nightingale, "and we'll go downstairs, and consider what
-ought to be done."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER V.
-
-DR. LAMB TELLS THE CONSTABLES AND MRS. MIDDLEMORE WHAT IS THE MATTER
-WITH MR. FELIX.
-
-Arrived once more in that comfortable apartment, they shook off the
-snow dust which had blown in upon them from the street. Then Constable
-Nightingale assumed a judicial attitude.
-
-"In case of anything being wrong," he said, "we must all be agreed
-upon what has took place before it's discovered."
-
-"Before what's discovered?" cried Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"That we've got to find out."
-
-"It's ten to one there's nothing to find out," said Constable Wigg.
-
-"It's ten to one there is," retorted Constable Nightingale. "I go a
-bit deeper than you, Wigg; but whether there is or there ain't, it's
-always well to be prepared with a story. I've got something in my mind
-that you don't seem to have in yours; what it is you shall hear
-presently. Mrs. Middlemore, going out for her supper-beer at her usual
-hour, about half-past eleven shuts the street-door behind her, and
-does not return till past twelve. Is that correct, ma'am?"
-
-"Quite correct, Mr. Nightingale; but what are you driving at?"
-
-"All in good time, my dear. You leave the house safe, and you are sure
-you shut the street-door tight?"
-
-"I'll take my oath of it."
-
-"It may come to that; I don't want to scare you, but it may come to
-that. When you come back with the supper-beer you find the street-door
-open?"
-
-"But I don't."
-
-"Excuse me, you do; it's necessary."
-
-"Oh!"
-
-"And I'll tell you why. When you come home you find Wigg and me here,
-don't you?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"You've heard how we got in, but it's a fact that we had no business
-here unless we was called in. We must have been called in by somebody,
-and whoever it was must have had a reason for inviting us. Is that
-sound, Wigg?"
-
-"As sound as a rock, Nightingale."
-
-"Mr. Felix didn't call us in, and there's no one else in the house
-while you've gone for your supper-beer?" Mrs. Middlemore coughed,
-which caused Constable Nightingale to ask, "What's that for?"
-
-"It ain't for me to say," replied Mrs. Middlemore. "What you want to
-git at is that there's only two people living regularly in the 'ouse,
-Mr. Felix and me. If Mr. Felix makes it worth my while to keep my own
-counsel, I'm going to keep it, and I don't care what happens."
-
-"I wouldn't persuade you otherwise. Gentlemen that's so liberal with
-their money as him ain't to be met with every day. Very well, then.
-There's only you and Mr. Felix living in the house, and he don't call
-us in. It's you that does that. Why? You shut the street-door tight
-when you went out; you find it open when you come back, and at the
-same time you see a man with a red handkercher round his neck run out
-of the house. Of course you're alarmed; Wigg happens to be near, and
-you call him; he, thinking he may want assistance, calls me; and
-that's how it is we're both here at the present moment. That's pretty
-straight, isn't it?"
-
-Both his hearers agreed that it was, and he proceeded:
-
-"But we mustn't forget that we've been here some time already. I make
-it, by my silver watch that I won in a raffle, twenty minutes to two.
-Your kitchen clock, Mrs. Middlemore, is a little slow."
-
-"Do what I will," said Mrs. Middlemore, "I can't make it go right."
-
-"Some clocks," observed Constable Nightingale, with a touch of
-humor--he was on the best of terms with himself, having, in a certain
-sense, snuffed out Constable Wigg--"are like some men and women;
-they're either too slow or too fast, and try your hardest you can't
-alter 'em. We must be able to account for a little time between past
-twelve o'clock and now; there's no need to be too particular; such a
-night as this is 'll excuse a lot. I'll take the liberty of stopping
-your clock and putting the hands back to twelve, so that you won't be
-fixed to a half-hour or so. The clock stopped while you was getting
-your supper-beer, of course. Likewise I stop my watch, and put the
-hands back to about the same time. Now, what do I do when Wigg calls
-me here? I hear what you, ma'am, have to say about the street-door
-being open and a man running out and almost upsetting you, and I make
-tracks after him. I don't catch him, and then I come back here, and
-that brings us up to this very minute. Plain sailing, so far. You'll
-bear it in mind, you and Wigg, won't you?"
-
-"I've got it," said Wigg, "at my fingers' ends."
-
-"So 'ave I," said Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"But what are you going to do now?" asked Constable Wigg.
-
-"To find the cat," replied Constable Nightingale.
-
-"Going to take it up?" This, with a fine touch of sarcasm.
-
-"No, Wigg," said Constable Nightingale, speaking very seriously. "I
-want to make sure where it got that red color from, because, not to
-put too fine a point on it, it's blood."
-
-Mrs. Middlemore uttered a stifled scream, and clapped her hands on her
-hips.
-
-"That," continued Constable Nightingale, in a tone of severity to his
-brother constable, "is what I had in my mind and you didn't have in
-yours. Why, if you look with only half an eye at them stains on the
-floor, you can't mistake 'em."
-
-"Oh, dear, oh, dear," moaned Mrs. Middlemore, "we shall all be
-murdered in our beds?"
-
-"Nothing of the sort, my dear," said Constable Nightingale; "we'll
-look after you. Pull yourself together, there's a good soul, and
-answer me one or two questions. I know that Mr. Felix comes home late
-sometimes."
-
-"Very often, very often."
-
-"And that, as well as being generous with his money, he likes his
-pleasures. Now, are you sure he was at home when you went out for your
-beer?"
-
-"I'm certain of it."
-
-"And that he did not go out before you come back?"
-
-"How can I tell you that?"
-
-"Of course. A stupid question. But, at all events, he ain't the sort
-of man to go out in such a storm as this?"
-
-"Not 'im. He's too fond of his comforts."
-
-"Does he ever ring for you in the middle of the night--at such a time
-as this, for instance?"
-
-"Never."
-
-"Has he ever been took ill in the night, and rung you up?"
-
-"Never."
-
-"Do you ever go up to his room without being summoned?"
-
-"It's more than I dare. I should lose the best customer I ever had in
-my life. He made things as clear as can be when he first come into the
-'ouse. 'Never,' he ses to me, 'under any circumstances whatever, let
-me see you going upstairs to my rooms unless I call you. Never let me
-ketch you prying about. If I do, you shall 'ear of it in a way you
-won't like.'"
-
-Constable Nightingale was silent a few moments, and then he said,
-briskly, "Let's us go and hunt up that cat."
-
-But although they searched the basement through they could not find
-it.
-
-"Perhaps," suggested Constable Wigg, "it got out of the house when we
-opened the street-door just now."
-
-"Perhaps," assented Constable Nightingale, laconically.
-
-Then they ascended the stairs to the ground floor, Constable
-Nightingale examining very carefully the marks of the cat's paws on
-the oilcloth.
-
-"Do you see, Mrs. Middlemore? Blood. There's no mistaking it. And I'm
-hanged if it doesn't go upstairs to the first floor."
-
-"You're not going up, Mr. Nightingale?" asked Mrs. Middlemore, under
-her breath, laying her hand on his arm.
-
-"If I know myself," said Constable Nightingale, patting her hand, "I
-am. Whatever happens, it's my duty and Wigg's to get at the bottom of
-this. What else did you call us in for?"
-
-"To be sure," said Mrs. Middlemore, helplessly, "but if you have any
-feeling for me, speak low."
-
-"I will, my dear. My feelings for you well you must know, but this is
-not the time. Look here at this stain, and this, and this. The spectre
-cat has been up these stairs. Puss, puss, puss, puss! Not likely that
-it'll answer; it's got the cunning of a fox. That's Mr. Felix's room,
-if my eyes don't deceive me."
-
-"Yes, it is."
-
-"But it don't look the same door as the one I have been through; it
-ain't the first time I've been here, you know. Where's the keyhole?
-I'll take my oath there was a keyhole when I last saw the door."
-
-"The key 'ole's 'id. That brass plate covers it; it's a patent spring,
-and he fixes it some'ow from the inside; he presses something, and it
-slides down; then he turns a screw, and makes it tight."
-
-"Can anyone do it but him?"
-
-"I don't think they can; it's 'is own idea, he ses."
-
-"See how we're getting on, Wigg. No one can work that brass plate but
-him; that shows he's at home." He knocked at the door, and called "Mr.
-Felix, Mr. Felix!"
-
-"He'll give me notice to leave," said Mrs. Middlemore, "I'm sure he
-will. He's the last man in the world to be broke in upon like this."
-
-"Leave it to me, my dear," said Constable Nightingale, "I'll make it
-all right with him. What did he say to me when I was on this beat? I
-told you, you remember, Wigg. 'Constable,' says he, 'you're on night
-duty here.' 'Yes, sir,' I answers. 'Very good,' says he, 'I live in
-this house, and I always make it a point to look after them as looks
-after me.' That was a straight tip, and I'm looking after him now. Mr.
-Felix, Mr. Felix!"
-
-But though he called again and again, and rapped at the door twenty
-times, he received no answer from within the room.
-
-"It's singular," he said, knitting his brows. "He must be a sound
-sleeper, must Mr. Felix. I'll try again."
-
-He continued to knock and call "loud enough," as he declared, "to
-rouse the dead," but no response came to the anxious little group on
-the landing.
-
-"There's not only no keyhole," said Constable Nightingale, "but
-there's no handle to take hold of. The door's for all the world like a
-safe without a knob. Mr. Felix, Mr. Felix, Mr. Felix! Don't you hear
-us, sir? I've got something particular to say to you."
-
-For all the effect he produced he might have spoken to a stone wall,
-and he and Constable Wigg and Mrs. Middlemore stood looking helplessly
-at each other.
-
-"I tell you what it is," he said, tightening his belt, "this has got
-beyond a joke. What with the silence, and the bloodstains, and the
-man with the red handkercher round his neck as run out of the house
-while Wigg and me was talking together outside, there's more in this
-than meets the eye. Now, Mrs. Middlemore, there's no occasion for us
-to speak low any more; it's wearing to the throat. Have you got any
-doubt at all that the brass plate there couldn't be fixed as it is
-unless somebody was inside the room?"
-
-"I'm certain of it, Mr. Nightingale, I'm certain of it."
-
-"Then Mr. Felix, or somebody else, must be there, and if he's alive
-couldn't help hearing us, unless he's took a sleeping draught of
-twenty-horse power. There's a bell wire up there; Wigg, give me a
-back."
-
-Constable Wigg stooped, and Constable Nightingale stood on his back
-and reached the wire, which he pulled smartly for so long a time that
-Constable Wigg's back gave way, and brought Constable Nightingale to
-the ground somewhat unexpectedly. Certainly every person in the house
-possessed of the sense of hearing must have heard the bell, which had
-a peculiar resonant ring, and seemed on this occasion to have a
-hundred ghostly echoes which proclaimed themselves incontinently from
-attic to basement. No well-behaved echo would have displayed such a
-lack of method.
-
-"Oughtn't that to rouse him?" asked Constable Nightingale.
-
-"It ought to," replied Mrs. Middlemore, "if----" and then suddenly
-paused, the "if" frozen on her tongue.
-
-"Ah," said Constable Nightingale, gravely, "if!"
-
-There was a window on the landing, and he opened it. The snow dust
-floated through it, but in less quantities, and there was a
-perceptible abatement in the violence of the storm. He closed the
-window.
-
-"It ain't so bad as it was. Mrs. Middlemore, do you think I could
-force this door open?"
-
-"Not without tools," said Mrs. Middlemore. "It's made of oak."
-
-"No harm in trying," said Constable Nightingale. "Here, Wigg, give us
-a pound."
-
-They applied their shoulders with a will, but their united efforts
-produced no impression.
-
-"It's got to be opened," said Constable Nightingale, "by fair means or
-foul. Wigg, do you know of a locksmith about here?"
-
-"I don't."
-
-In point of fact Constable Nightingale knew of one, but it was at some
-little distance, and he did not want to leave Constable Wigg and Mrs.
-Middlemore alone.
-
-"There's one in Wardour Street," he said.
-
-"Is there?" said Constable Wigg. "I'm new to the neighborhood, and I'm
-certain I shouldn't be able to find it."
-
-"All right," said Constable Nightingale, briskly, seeing his way out
-of the difficulty, "we'll go together."
-
-"And leave me alone 'ere after what's happened!" cried Mrs.
-Middlemore. "Not if you was to fill my lap with dymens! That 'orrid
-cat 'd come and scare the life out of me!"
-
-"We can't all go," mused Constable Nightingale, with a stern eye on
-his comrade, "and I ain't a man to shirk a duty; but don't go back on
-a pal, Wigg, whatever you do."
-
-"Nobody could ever bring that against me, Nightingale," said Constable
-Wigg, in an injured tone; "and I don't know what you're driving at."
-
-"I hope you don't," said Constable Nightingale, by no means softened,
-"that's all I've got to say. I hope you don't. You'd better both see
-me to the door, and shut it after me. And mind you keep your ears open
-to let me in when I come back."
-
-Constable Nightingale, a victim to duty, was presently battling with
-the storm through the deserted streets, while Constable Wigg and Mrs.
-Middlemore, at the housekeeper's suggestion, made their way to the
-warm kitchen, where she brewed for her companion a stiff glass of
-grog. "What did Mr. Nightingale mean," asked Mrs. Middlemore, "when he
-said never go back on a pal?"
-
-"I'd rather not say," replied Constable Wigg, and then appeared
-suddenly to come to a different conclusion.
-
-"But why not? The last of my wishes would be to vex you, and when
-you're curious you like to know, don't you, my--I beg you a thousand
-pardons--don't you, ma'am?"
-
-"Mr. Wigg," observed Mrs. Middlemore, "I'm a woman, and I do like to
-know. Oh!" she cried, with a little shriek, "was that somebody moving
-upstairs?"
-
-"No, my dear, no. Keep close to me; I will protect you and proud of
-the chance, as who wouldn't be? When Nightingale threw out that hint,
-he meant, if I'm not mistook, that a lady should have only one
-admirer, hisself."
-
-"Well, I'm sure!"
-
-"He's not a bad sort of fellow, is Nightingale--it ain't for me to say
-anything against him--but when he wants a monopoly of something very
-precious"--and Constable Wigg looked languishingly at Mrs.
-Middlemore--"when he wants that, and as good as says it belongs to him
-and no one else, he touches a tender point. There's no harm in my
-admiring you, my dear; who could help it, that's what I'd like to
-know? Thank you--I _will_ take another lump of sugar. Yes, who could
-help it? Charms like yours--if you'll forgive me for mentioning
-'em--ain't to be met with every day, and a man with a heart would have
-to be blind not to be struck. There! I wouldn't have spoke so free if
-it hadn't been for Nightingale and for your asking me what he meant.
-But a man can't always restrain his feelings, and I hope I haven't
-hurt yours, my dear."
-
-"Not a bit, Mr. Wigg," said Mrs. Middlemore, and the tone would have
-been amorous had it not been for the mysterious trouble in her house;
-"you've spoke beautiful, and Mr. Nightingale ought to be ashamed of
-'isself."
-
-"Don't tell him I said anything, my dear."
-
-"I won't. I give you my 'and on it."
-
-He took it and squeezed it, and said, "What's passed we'll keep to
-ourselves."
-
-"We will, Mr. Wigg."
-
-"Here's to our better acquaintance, my dear."
-
-"I'm sure you're kindness itself. Oh, Mr. Wigg, I 'ope nothing 'as
-'appened to Mr. Felix."
-
-"I hope so, too. My opinion is that he's out, and that the brass plate
-over the keyhole has got there by accident. But Nightingale always
-makes the worst of things. That's not my way. Wait till the worst
-comes, I say; it's time enough. You may worrit yourself to death, and
-be no better off for it after all."
-
-In this strain they continued their conversation, Mrs. Middlemore
-declaring that it was quite a comfort to have Constable Wigg with her.
-She confided to him that she had a bit of money saved, and that Mr.
-Felix had said more than once that he would remember her in his will,
-which elicited from Constable Wigg the remark that he hoped Mr. Felix
-had made his will and had behaved as he ought to; "though, mind you,"
-he added, "I don't believe anything's the matter with him, or that
-he's at home. It's all through that spectre cat, and as for
-bloodstains, they've got to be proved." A knocking and rattling at
-the street-door caused Mrs. Middlemore to cling very closely to him,
-and when she recovered her fright, they both went upstairs to let
-Constable Nightingale in.
-
-"Is that you, Nightingale?" Constable Wigg called out before he turned
-the key.
-
-"Yes, it's me," cried Constable Nightingale, without: "don't keep us
-waiting all night."
-
-"He's got the locksmith with him," whispered Constable Wigg, with his
-lips very close to Mrs. Middlemore's ear. Then he threw open the
-street-door.
-
-Constable Nightingale had somebody else with him besides the
-locksmith. Accompanying them was a tall, thin, gentlemanly-looking,
-but rather seedy young gentleman, who stepped quickly into the
-passage.
-
-"Has anything took place?" inquired Constable Nightingale, glancing
-suspiciously from Constable Wigg to Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"Nothing," replied Constable Wigg. "There ain't been a sound in the
-house."
-
-"Just as we turned the corner," said Constable Nightingale, with a
-motion of his hand toward the seedy young gentleman, "we met Dr. Lamb,
-who was coming home from a case, and as there's no knowing what might
-be wanted, I asked him to favor us with his company."
-
-Mrs. Middlemore knew Dr. Lamb, who kept a chemist's shop in the
-neighborhood, and she gave him a friendly nod. It must have been a
-trying case that the young gentleman had come from, for he looked
-particularly shaky, and was rather unsteady on his legs. The locksmith
-now made some sensible remarks to the effect that he had been awakened
-from a sound sleep, and would like to get back to bed again;
-therefore, had they not better get to work at once? His suggestion was
-acted upon, and they all proceeded upstairs.
-
-"I'll give him another chance," said Constable Nightingale, and he
-forthwith exerted the full strength of his lungs and hammered away at
-the door, to as little purpose as he had previously done. "There's
-nothing for it," he said, very red in the face, "but to force open the
-door in the name of the law."
-
-The locksmith, who had brought a basket of tools with him, declared he
-would make short work of it, but after examining the door was forced
-to confess inwardly that this was an idle boast. It was of stout oak,
-and to remove the brass plate and pick the lock occupied him much
-longer than he expected. However, in the course of about twenty
-minutes the task was accomplished, and the door stood open for them to
-enter. Standing for a moment irresolutely on the threshold they were
-greeted by a blast of cold air. Constable Nightingale was the first to
-notice that the window was open, and he stepped into the room and
-closed it. The others followed, and were treading close on his heels
-when he waved them back, and pointed downward. There, on the floor,
-was a little pool of blood. They shuddered as they gazed upon it.
-
-"I thought as much," said Constable Nightingale, the first to speak.
-"There's been foul play here. Who opened that window, and left it open
-on such a night? The cry for help you heard, Wigg, came from this
-room."
-
-"But there's nobody here," said Constable Wigg.
-
-"That's his bedroom," said Mrs. Middlemore, in an awestruck voice,
-pointing to a room the door of which was ajar.
-
-They stepped softly toward it, Dr. Lamb now taking the lead. In an
-arm-chair by the side of the bed sat a man, his arms hanging
-listlessly down. Dr. Lamb shook him roughly.
-
-"Wake up!"
-
-But the figure did not move. Dr. Lamb leant over the recumbent form,
-and thrust his hand inside the man's waistcoat. Then, with his fingers
-under the man's chin, he raised the head, so that the face was
-visible.
-
-"Good Lord!" cried Mrs. Middlemore. "It's Mr. Felix! What's the matter
-with him?"
-
-Dr. Lamb put his finger to his lips, and did not immediately reply.
-When he removed his hand the head dropped down again, hiding the face.
-
-"If you want to know what's the matter with the man," he said,
-presently, "he's dead."
-
-"Dead!" exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"As a doornail," said Dr. Lamb.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VI.
-
-THE "EVENING MOON" INDULGES IN A BOMBASTIC RETROSPECT,
-IN WHICH SOME VERY TALL AND VERY FINE WRITING WILL BE
-DETECTED BY THE OBSERVANT READER.
-
-
-"In pursuance of the policy which we inaugurated some four years since
-by the romance known as 'Great Porter Square,' we now present our
-readers with a story of to-day, which we with confidence declare to be
-as strange and exciting as that thrilling mystery, which may be
-regarded as the starting-point of a new and captivating description of
-journalism for the people. We use the term 'romance' advisedly, and
-are prepared to justify it, although the incidents which we set before
-hundreds of thousands of readers were true in every particular, and
-occurred in a locality with which every Londoner is familiar. We
-recall with pride the extraordinary variety of opinions which our
-publication of that story of real life, and the means we pursued to
-get at the heart of it, elicited. By many we were inordinately
-praised, by some we were mercilessly condemned. There were critics who
-declared that it was derogatory to the legitimate functions of a
-newspaper to present any matter of public interest in the garb in
-which we clothed it; there were others who, with a juster sense of the
-altered conditions of society by which we are ruled, and to which we
-are compelled to submit, declared that the new departure we made in
-the Great Porter Square Mystery was, to the general mass of readers,
-as wholesome as it was entertaining. Judging by results, these latter
-critics were most certainly in the right. The public read with eager
-avidity the details of that remarkable case as we published them, in
-our own original fashion, from day to day. The demand for copies of
-our several editions was so great that we were absolutely unable to
-satisfy it, and we are afraid that thousands of newspaper readers were
-compelled to pay exorbitant prices to the ragamuffins who vend the
-daily journals in the public streets. We made strong endeavors to put
-a stop to this extortion, but our efforts were vain, chiefly because
-the people themselves were content to pay three and four times the
-established price of the _Evening Moon_ rather than be deprived of the
-pleasure of reading the tempting morsels with which its columns were
-filled. Letters of congratulation poured in upon us from all quarters,
-written by persons occupying the highest positions in society, as well
-as by others moving in the lowest stations, and from that time the
-success of the _Evening Moon_, as a journal which had firmly fixed
-itself in the affections of the people, was assured. If any excuse is
-needed for the system of journalism of which we were the first bold
-exponents, we might find it in the trite axiom that the ends justify
-the means, but we deny that any excuse whatever is required. It was no
-sentimental experiment that we were trying; we had carefully watched
-the currents of public opinion, and we started on our crusade to
-satisfy a need. The present state of society is such that the public
-insist upon their right to be made acquainted with the innermost
-details of cases which are brought before the tribunals; the moment
-these cases come before the public they are public property. There was
-a time when seemly and closed doors were the rule, and under the cloak
-of that pernicious system the most flagrant wrongs were committed; it
-is not so in the present day, and it is right that it should not be
-so. Public matters belong to the people, and so long as a proper and
-necessary measure of decency is observed, so long as private
-characters are not defamed, so long as homes and those who occupy them
-are not made wretched by infamous innuendoes, so long as the pen of
-the literary journalist is not employed for the purpose of scandal and
-blackmail--too often, we regret to say, convertible terms--the
-people's rights in this respect must be observed.
-
-"We point with justifiable pride to the manner in which our example
-has been followed. Imitation is the sincerest form of flattery, and,
-we may add, also of approval, and the columns of numberless newspapers
-with which we have no connection testify to the approval which our new
-system of journalism has won. We mention no names, and have no
-intention of complaining because the credit of initiating the new
-system has been withheld from us; we accept the compliment which has
-been paid to us, and we wish our contemporaries good luck. At the same
-time we point out to our hundreds of thousands of readers that no
-journal has, up to this day, succeeded in presenting public news in as
-tempting a manner as we are enabled to do. The reason for this lies in
-the extraordinary intelligence of our staff. Our writers are picked
-men, who could earn celebrity in other channels than those of
-newspaper columns, but who are content to serve us because they are
-paid as capable journalists ought to be paid, with a liberality which
-other newspaper proprietors would deem excessive, but which we do not.
-This is one of the secrets of our astonishing and unprecedented
-success. Our editors, sub-editors, special correspondents, and
-reporters are zealous as no others are because they are devoted to our
-cause, because they have regular and tangible proof that our welfare
-is theirs, because they share in the profits of our enterprise. Thus
-it is that we are now in possession of particulars relating to 'The
-Mystery of Monsieur Felix,' which not one of our contemporaries has
-been able to obtain, and thus it is that we are in a position to
-present to our readers a romance as thrilling as any that has ever
-emanated from the printing press. It presents features of novelty and
-surprise which can be found in no other _cause célèbre_, and our
-readers may rest assured that we shall follow up every clew in our
-possession with an intelligence frequently wanting in the officials of
-Scotland Yard. And, moreover, we have every right to maintain, and we
-shall establish the fact, that what we do is done in the sacred cause
-of justice. The wronged shall be righted, and the mystery clearly
-brought to light, before we have finished with the case of M. Felix.
-
-"For a long period of time the term 'romance' has been misunderstood.
-Romance was supposed to lie outside the regions of the ordinary
-occurrences of everyday life. There was a glamour about the word, a
-kind of lustre which lifted it above and beyond the commonplace
-features of human struggle. It was, as it were, a castle built upon an
-eminence, with spires, and turrets, and gables, whose points shone
-brightly in the sun; it was, as it were, a species of ideal garden in
-which grew only rare flowers and stately trees; or a land of
-enchantment peopled by knights in silver armor, and by dainty ladies
-flinging kisses to their lords and lovers as they rode forth to the
-tournament or the battle. This was the bygone notion of Romance, the
-false idea which, thanks in a great measure to our efforts, is now
-utterly exploded. It has been found and proved that the truest regions
-of romance lie in humble courts and alleys, where the commonest
-flowers grow, where the air is not perfumed by odorous blossoms, where
-people dwell not in turreted castle or stately palace, but in the
-humblest homes and narrowest spaces, where common fustian and dimity,
-not glittering armor and silken sheen, are the ordinary wear; where
-faces are thin and anxious from the daily cares of toil, where the
-battle is not for vast tracts of country worth millions, but for the
-daily loaf of bread worth fourpence halfpenny. It has been found and
-proved that the police courts are a veritable hot-bed in which romance
-is forever springing up. When we contemplate the shattering of old
-false idols and ideals, it would almost seem as if we were living in
-an age of topsy-turvydom, but the sober fact is that the world is
-healthfully setting itself right, and is daily and hourly stripping
-off the veneer which lay thick upon what have been ridiculously called
-the good old times. We were the first to practically recognize this
-truth, and we have done our best to make it popular. It is from lowly
-annals that we culled the romance of 'Great Porter Square,' and it is
-from somewhat similar annals that we cull the present 'Mystery of M.
-Felix.' The story will be found as strange as it is true. All the
-passions of human nature are expressed in it, and there is one episode
-at least--even up to the point which it has already reached--so
-singular and startling as to be absolutely unique.
-
-"We draw special attention to the words in our last sentence, 'even up
-to the point which it has already reached,' and we beg our readers to
-bear them well in mind. It may be in their remembrance that when we
-commenced to unravel the mystery of 'Great Porter Square' we had no
-knowledge of its conclusion. We held in our hands certain slight
-threads which we followed patiently up, and of which we kept firm
-hold, until we had woven them into a strand which villainy and
-duplicity could not break. We championed the cause of a man who, upon
-no evidence whatever--simply from the officious and mistaken zeal of a
-few policemen--was brought up to the police court on the suspicion of
-being in some undiscovered way connected with a crime with which all
-England was ringing. He was remanded day after day for the production
-of evidence which was never forthcoming, and day after day we
-protested against the injustice of which it was sought to make him a
-victim. The slender threads in our possession we held fast, as we have
-said, until at length we were rewarded with a gratifying success,
-until at length we brought the guilt home to the guilty parties. We
-ourselves were misled by the specious statements of one of the
-miscreants, a woman, we regret to say, who was one of the two
-principal actors in a plot which was very nearly successful, and
-which, indeed, did for a certain time succeed. We are in a similar
-position with respect to the 'Mystery of M. Felix.' The information
-already in our possession leads us to a point of great interest, and
-there strangely breaks off. But we pledge ourselves to pursue the
-story to an end, and to unearth what is at present hidden in darkness.
-Our agents are at work in this country and elsewhere, and we are
-satisfied that they will succeed in removing the veil from a mystery
-which is a common topic of conversation and discussion in all classes
-of society."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VII.
-
-AN EXAMINATION OF CERTAIN DISCREPANCIES IN THE STATEMENTS
-OF THE THREE PRINCIPAL WITNESSES.
-
-
-"The night of the 16th of January will be long remembered. For three
-weeks the snow had fallen, intermittently, it is true, but for hours
-together. The roads were almost blockaded, and traffic was carried on
-under exceptional difficulties. The season, which in the early part of
-December had promised to be unusually mild, suddenly vindicated its
-reputation, and we were treated to an old-fashioned, bitter winter of
-great severity. On the evening of the 15th of January the frost was
-most severe, its intensity lasting until some time after daybreak, the
-thermometer showing at eight o'clock A.M. close upon sixteen degrees
-of frost. When it began to snow again people, congratulated themselves
-that a thaw was setting in. They were mistaken. Had it been possible
-the snow would have frozen as soon as it reached the ground, but it
-fell in too great quantities for such a result. In the evening a
-piercing wind raged through the thoroughfares, and the snow continued
-to fall more heavily than during the day. In some places there was a
-drift almost, if not quite, man high, and our columns on the morning
-of the 17th recorded the discovery of three lifeless persons, one man
-and two women, who had been frozen to death during the night. With
-these unfortunates we have nothing to do; what concerns us and our
-story is that on the night of the 16th, Mrs. Middlemore, a housekeeper
-in one of the old houses in Gerard Street, Soho, very imprudently went
-out just before midnight to fetch her supper-beer. Even the raging
-storm did not prevent her from indulging in her usual habit, the
-temptation of beer being too strong for her, and the prospect of going
-to bed without it being too appalling to risk. She saw that the street
-door was secure when she left the house, and was surprised, upon her
-return, to find it open. These, and many other particulars which will
-be duly recorded, are statements which have already appeared in public
-print, and we are not responsible for them. At the moment of her
-reaching the street door the circumstance of its being open was
-impressed upon her by the appearance of a man hurriedly leaving the
-house. He did not stop to address her, and she had no opportunity of
-asking his business there, because he flew by her 'like a flash of
-lightning,' she says. Naturally alarmed, she raised her voice and
-cried, 'Police!' One, Constable Wigg, happened to be not far distant,
-and he responded to her summons. Having heard what Mrs. Middlemore had
-to say, he saw that there were two things to attend to--one, to
-ascertain whether anything had occurred within the house; the other,
-to follow the man who had escaped from it with such celerity. As he
-could not fulfil these two duties at one and the same time, he in his
-turn summoned to his assistance a brother constable of the name of
-Nightingale. This officer pursued the man, and Constable Wigg and Mrs.
-Middlemore entered the house.
-
-"Now, with the exception of Mrs. Middlemore, there was only one
-regular tenant in the house, M. Felix, who had lived there for nearly
-two years, and concerning whom, up to the night of January 16th, very
-little appears to have been known, except that he was a retired
-gentleman, living on his means, fond of pleasure, and of a generous
-disposition to those who served him well. Mrs. Middlemore speaks in
-the highest terms of him, but she judges only from one point of view,
-that of a landlady who has a liberal lodger. Otherwise, she has no
-knowledge of him, and cannot say where he came from, whether he was
-married or single (the circumstance of his living a bachelor life
-would not definitely decide this question), or whether he has any
-relations in any part of the world. There are many gentlemen of the
-description of M. Felix pursuing their mysterious careers in this
-great city, a goodly number of them under false names.
-
-"M. Felix was a very peculiar gentleman. He paid for the entire house,
-although he occupied only three rooms, a sitting-room, a dining-room,
-and a bedroom. His stipulation when he first entered into possession
-was that under no circumstances should any other tenant but himself be
-allowed to occupy a room, and he went so far as to refuse permission
-to Mrs. Middlemore for any friends of hers to sleep in the building.
-Her duties consisted in attending to him and to his rooms, which she
-entered and set in order only when he directed her, and for these
-slight services she was extravagantly paid. Such a tenant was a
-treasure, and she appreciated him accordingly, not venturing to
-disobey him in the slightest particular. He had taken the greatest
-pains to impress upon her that she was never, under any circumstances
-whatever, to come to his rooms unless she was summoned, and from what
-we have gathered of his character, M. Felix was a gentleman who could
-be stern as well as pleasant, and was not a person who would allow his
-orders to be disobeyed without making the delinquent suffer for it.
-These imperative instructions rendered Constable Wigg's course
-difficult. Mrs. Middlemore had left M. Felix in the house when she
-went to fetch her supper-beer, and it was in the highest degree
-improbable that he should have quitted it during her absence. He was
-not a young man, he was fond of his ease, and the storm was raging
-furiously. Nothing less than a matter of life or death would tempt a
-man of M. Felix's disposition from his cosy fireside on such a night.
-Constable Wigg suggested that he should go up-stairs to M. Felix's
-rooms, and ascertain whether he was in and safe, but Mrs. Middlemore
-would not listen to the suggestion, and of course without her consent
-Constable Wigg could not carry his proposition into effect. In a
-casual examination of those parts of the premises which Mrs.
-Middlemore allowed him to enter he saw nothing to excite his
-suspicions, and he decided to wait for the return of Constable
-Nightingale before he proceeded further.
-
-"We break off here for a moment for the purpose of making brief
-mention of one or two peculiar features in this singular affair,
-leaving Constable Wigg and Mrs. Middlemore standing in the passage or
-the kitchen--(_they_ say the passage, we presume to say the kitchen,
-where doubtless a cheerful fire was blazing; policemen are human)--at
-half-past twelve or a quarter to one in the middle of the night,
-waiting for Constable Nightingale to report progress. Curiously
-enough, the time cannot be exactly fixed, because the kitchen clock
-had stopped, because Constable Nightingale's watch had stopped also,
-and because Constable Wigg did not wear one. In an affair of this
-description it is as well not to lose sight of the smallest details.
-We arrive at the time, half-past twelve or a quarter to one,
-approximately. Even in such a storm as was then raging through the
-streets, Big Ben of Westminster made itself heard, and it transpires,
-from a statement volunteered by Constable Wigg, that the great bell
-was proclaiming the hour of midnight when, tramping half-frozen on his
-beat, he heard a cry for help. Three times was this cry sent forth
-into the night, and, faithful guardian as he was, according to his own
-averment, he endeavored to ascertain the direction from which the
-appeal proceeded. It may well be believed that, with the wind blowing
-seemingly from all points of the compass at once, he failed to make
-the necessary discovery; but it strikes us as singular that when he
-was talking matters over with Mrs. Middlemore it did not occur to him
-that the cry for help may have proceeded from the very house in which
-he was standing. We make no comment upon this singular lapse of
-memory. It strikes us also as by no means unimportant that in the
-statements of Mrs. Middlemore and the two constables there is
-something very like contradiction and confusion. Mrs. Middlemore gives
-an answer to a question as to her movements in connection with those
-of the constables, and presently, being pressed to be definite, says
-something which throws doubt upon her first answer. She excuses
-herself by saying that she was upset and worried, but to us this
-explanation is not satisfactory, if only for the reason that her
-subsequent correction throws doubt upon certain answers given by the
-two constables to certain questions put to them. However, in the
-present aspect of the matter, these contradictions may simply point to
-some dereliction of duty on the part of the constables which they may
-wish should not be known, and perhaps to some agreement on the part of
-these three witnesses to an invented story which, believed, would
-exculpate the constables from any such dereliction. This is mere
-supposition, and we present it for what it is worth.
-
-"It is difficult to ascertain the precise time at which Constable
-Nightingale returned to the house in Gerard Street after his fruitless
-search for the man who had alarmed Mrs. Middlemore by his sudden rush
-from the premises. Truly he must have had the greatest difficulty in
-making his way through the streets. In explanation of our remark that
-in the statements of Mrs. Middlemore and the two constables there is
-something very like contradiction and confusion, we append their
-answers to a few of the questions put to them. We will deal with
-Constable Nightingale first:
-
-"'When you left the house in Gerard Street in pursuit of the man what
-direction did you take?'
-
-"'I went in the direction of Oxford Street.'
-
-"'That is, you went to the right?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Why not to the left?'
-
-"'That would have led me to Leicester Square and Charing Cross.'
-
-"'Did you choose the Oxford Street route at haphazard?'
-
-"'No.'
-
-"'What induced you to take it?'
-
-"'I was told by Constable Wigg that the man went that way.'
-
-"'Did you meet any person on the road?'
-
-"'No one.'
-
-"'Absolutely no one?'
-
-"'Absolutely no one.'
-
-"'How long were you engaged upon your search for the man?'
-
-"'I can't exactly fix it.'
-
-"'May we say an hour?'
-
-"'That would be near the length of time.'
-
-"We will now deal with Constable Wigg. He was asked--
-
-"'How did you summon Constable Nightingale to your assistance?'
-
-"'I blew my police whistle.'
-
-"'Many times?'
-
-"'Not many. He must have been very near.'
-
-"'But he did not make his appearance immediately?'
-
-"'No; not immediately.'
-
-"'Shall we say that two or three minutes elapsed before he joined
-you?'
-
-"'About that.'
-
-"'You explained to him what had occurred?'
-
-"'Yes, with the assistance of Mrs. Middlemore.'
-
-"'You both explained it together?'
-
-"'Well, first one spoke, then the other.'
-
-"'Did you tell Nightingale that the man had fled in the direction of
-Oxford Street?'
-
-"'No.'
-
-"'In point of fact, you did not see the man come out of the house?'
-
-"'No.'
-
-"'And? therefore, could not have given Nightingale the direction?'
-
-"'No, of course I could not.'
-
-"Now for Mrs. Middlemore:
-
-"'When the man rushed by you from the house, you screamed loudly for
-the police?'
-
-"'As loud as I could.'
-
-"'How many times did you call?'
-
-"'I kep' on calling till Constable Wigg came up.'
-
-"'He did not come the moment you raised your voice?'
-
-"'No, not immediate. Per'aps in two or three minutes.'
-
-"'If we say two minutes we shall be within the mark?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Did you inform Constable Nightingale that the man ran away in the
-direction of Oxford Street?'
-
-"'No; I was so flustered that I didn't see which way he run.'
-
-"These are all the extracts we need give for the purpose of our
-illustration, merely asking the reader to bear in mind that each
-witness was examined without the others being present. Is it quite
-unreasonable to infer that, had they been examined in each other's
-presence, their answers would not have been exactly as they are
-reported in the public prints?
-
-"Constable Nightingale has since given an explanation of this
-discrepancy by the admission that he must have made a mistake in
-supposing that he received from Constable Wigg the information of the
-route the man took when he scurried off; but we submit that this
-explanation is not entirely satisfactory.
-
-"Another thing. Constable Nightingale states that he was engaged in
-the search for an hour, and that during the whole of that time he did
-not meet a single person on the road. How is that statement to be
-received? He was hunting in some of the busiest thoroughfares in
-London, and it bears the form of an accusation that he did not for a
-whole hour observe one policeman on his beat. He was on his, he
-declares, at the time he heard Constable Wigg's whistle. Constable
-Wigg was on his beat, according to his own declaration, when he blew
-it. Were they the only two constables in a thronged locality who were
-faithfully performing their duty? Doubtless the other constables on
-duty would indignantly repudiate the allegation, but Constable
-Nightingale distinctly implies as much. We do not wish to be hard on
-this officer, who bears a good character in the force. His movements
-and proceedings between the hours of twelve and two on the night of
-the 16th may have been innocent enough, or, if not quite blameless,
-excusable enough on such a tempestuous night, but we unhesitatingly
-say that his evidence is suspicious, and that we are not inclined to
-accept it as veracious.
-
-"Still another thing. We have ascertained from persons acquainted with
-Constable Nightingale, that he was very proud of his silver watch,
-which he was lucky enough to win in a raffle, and that he was in the
-habit of boasting that it never stopped, and never lost or gained a
-minute. It is singular, therefore, that on this eventful night it
-should have stopped for the first time, and at a time when it might be
-most important to fix the occurrence of events to a minute. Perhaps
-Constable Nightingale's watch stopped in sympathy with the stoppage of
-Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen clock.
-
-"We are anxious to do justice to the parties, and we hasten to say
-that at our request they have allowed a competent watchmaker to
-examine Constable Nightingale's watch and Mrs. Middlemore's clock; but
-this watchmaker reports that they are in perfect order, and that he
-can find no reason why they should both have stopped almost at the
-same moment.
-
-"If any of our readers consider that we are straining too hard on
-trifles, we reply that the importance of so-called trifles cannot be
-over-estimated. The world's greatest poet has said, 'Trifles light as
-air are in their confirmation strong as proofs of Holy Writ.'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER VIII.
-
-A STARTLING PHASE IN THE MYSTERY.
-
-
-"We hark back now to the point at which we left Constable Nightingale.
-He had returned to Gerard Street without having found the man. During
-his absence nothing further had occurred to alarm the housekeeper and
-the constable who kept her company, and they were in doubt as to what
-was best to be done. There was no evidence that the man had entered
-the house with the intention of robbing it, but he might have done so,
-and being disturbed before he effected his purpose, thought it
-expedient to make his escape as quickly as possible. They were
-debating this view when they were startled by what they declare was an
-'apparition.' It was the apparition of a half-starved cat, which in
-some way must have found an entrance into the house before Mrs.
-Middlemore came back with her supper-beer. The cat did not belong to
-the house, for M. Felix had a horror of such creatures, and would not
-allow one to be kept on the premises. It was not the cat that startled
-them, but the color of the cat, which seemed to have been rolling
-itself in blood. They saw it only for an instant, and then it
-disappeared, and has not since been seen again; but it left its marks
-behind it. On the oil-cloth were marks of blood, made by the cat's
-paws. These signs decided their course of action, and they proceeded
-upstairs to the apartments occupied by M. Felix. They knocked and
-called out loudly to him, but received no answer. By an ingenious
-arrangement, devised presumably by M. Felix himself, the keyhole of
-the door by which they stood was masked by a brass plate, the secret
-of which was known only to M. Felix. The silence strengthened their
-apprehensions of foul play, and they determined to force the door
-open. To effect this it was necessary to obtain the assistance of a
-locksmith, and Constable Nightingale issued forth once more, and
-brought back with him not only a locksmith, but a doctor in the
-neighborhood, Dr. Lamb, who was coming home late from a professional
-visit. With some difficulty the door was forced open, and the first
-thing that met their eyes was a pool of blood on the floor of the
-sitting-room. They describe it as such, although subsequent
-examination proved that there was a decided exaggeration in calling it
-a pool, the quantity of blood which had fallen not being very serious.
-M. Felix was not in this room, but when they entered the bedroom
-adjoining they discovered him in an arm-chair, bearing the appearance
-of a man who had fallen asleep. He was not asleep, however; he was
-dead. The natural presumption was that he had been murdered, and that
-the blood on the floor was his, but Dr. Lamb very soon declared that
-this was not the case. M. Felix was dead, certainly, but his death was
-produced by natural causes, heart disease. In this conclusion Dr. Lamb
-was supported by other medical evidence which was sought on the
-following day, and this being supposed to be sufficiently established,
-the necessity of a post-mortem was not immediately recognized. The
-body was lifted on the bed, and there lay, dressed, as it had fallen
-into the arm-chair.
-
-"Accounts of these strange occurrences did not appear in the morning
-newspapers of January 17th, and the first intimation the public
-received of them was through the evening papers of that date. Even in
-this initial stage we scented a mystery, and we despatched our
-reporters to Mrs. Middlemore to obtain such information as would prove
-interesting to our readers. Our reporters, however, were not able to
-see Mrs. Middlemore; neither were they able to get access to the
-house; some absurd orders on the part of the police were being carried
-out, which converted the house into a kind of safe. But such
-ridiculous methods are not difficult to circumvent, and we determined
-that the public should not be robbed of their privileges. On January
-18th, that is, some thirty-four hours after the death of M. Felix, we
-inserted the following advertisement in the first edition of the
-_Evening Moon_, and repeated it in all our subsequent editions. We
-printed it in such bold type, and placed it in such a prominent
-position, that it could not fail to reach the eyes of persons who were
-interested in the case:
-
-"'The Strange Death of M. Felix in Gerard Street, Soho. Persons who
-had private or other interviews with M. Felix between the hours of
-eight in the morning and twelve at night on January 16th, or who are
-in possession of information which will throw light upon the
-circumstances surrounding his death, are urgently requested to call at
-the office of the _Evening Moon_ at any time after the appearance of
-this advertisement. Liberal rewards will be paid to all who give such
-information, and the best legal assistance is offered by the
-proprietors of this journal, entirely at their own expense, to all who
-may desire it and who are in any way interested in M. Felix's death.'
-
-"Meanwhile, so far as the police were concerned, matters remained in
-abeyance. They seemed to do nothing, and certainly discovered nothing.
-One of our contemporaries, in a leading article, has suggested that
-the insertion of this advertisement in our columns was an attempt to
-tamper with justice, or, if not to tamper, to defeat its ends. We can
-afford to smile at such an insinuation. There was no case before the
-public courts, and no person was accused of anything whatever in
-connection with the strange affair. The action we took was taken in
-the cause of justice, to arouse it to action and assist it. In the
-lighted torch of publicity there is an irresistible moral force. It
-would be well if material light were thrown upon the black spaces in
-this mighty city--upon the black spaces in which crimes are committed,
-the perpetrators of which are enabled to escape because of the
-convenient darkness in which they carry their horrible plans to a
-successful issue. If old-time officialism refuses to stir out of the
-old routine of useless and pernicious methods, forces which are not
-amenable to red tapeism must take the reins, must take into their own
-hands the plain duties of lawful authority, duties which they neglect
-and evade to the injury of society at large. We do not preach
-socialism, we preach justice--and light.
-
-"Thus far in our narrative we have brought matters up to the night of
-January 18th. The house in Gerard Street is dark and silent; the body
-of M. Felix is lying on the bed to which it was lifted from the
-arm-chair in which it was discovered.
-
-"The night was unusually dark. The snow-storm had ceased on the
-previous day, and the reflected light of white thoroughfares no longer
-helped to dispel the pervading gloom.
-
-"The morning newspapers of the 19th contained no items of particular
-interest in connection with the death of M. Felix. We were the first
-to announce an extraordinary and apparently inexplicable move in the
-mystery. In order to do this we published our first edition two hours
-earlier than usual.
-
-"At nine o'clock on this morning one of our reporters, in the exercise
-of his duty, was outside the house in Gerard Street, looking up at the
-window of the sitting-room which M. Felix had occupied. He had
-exchanged a few words with a policeman in the street.
-
-"'I am on the staff of the _Evening Moon_,' he said to the policeman.
-'Is there anything new concerning M. Felix?'
-
-"'Nothing,' replied the policeman, quite civilly, and passed on.
-
-"Our reporter remained outside the house. Patient and persevering, he
-hoped to pick up some item of interest which he might be able to weave
-into a paragraph.
-
-"Suddenly the street door was opened from within, and Mrs. Middlemore
-appeared. Her face was flushed, and in her eyes was a wandering look
-as she turned them this way and that. The moment our reporter observed
-these symptoms of distress he came to the conclusion that there was
-some interesting item of which he could avail himself. He stepped up
-to Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'What is the matter?' he asked.
-
-"'He's gone!' gasped Mrs. Middlemore, wringing her hands. 'He's
-vanished!'
-
-"'Who has gone? Who has vanished?' inquired our reporter.
-
-"'M. Felix,' said Mrs. Middlemore, in a faint tone.
-
-"'My good creature,' said our reporter, 'you must be dreaming.'
-
-"'I'm not dreaming,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'He's vanished. If you don't
-believe me, go up and look for yourself. Where are the police. Oh,
-where are the police?'
-
-"'Don't make a disturbance,' said our reporter, soothingly. 'Let us
-see if you're not mistaken.'
-
-"Gladly availing himself of the invitation to go up and look for
-himself, our reporter entered the house, and ascended the stairs,
-followed by Mrs. Middlemore, moaning in a helpless, distracted
-fashion.
-
-"The door of the sitting-room was open, and also the inner door,
-leading to the bedroom. There was no person, living or dead, in either
-of the rooms.
-
-"'Where was he?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'There, on the bed,' moaned Mrs. Middlemore. 'He was there last night
-before I locked the door; and when I looked in a minute ago he was
-gone.'
-
-"It was undeniably true. The bed bore the impression of a human form,
-but that was all. The body of M. Felix had, indeed, disappeared!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER IX.
-
-INTRODUCES SOPHY.
-
-
-"Our reporter gazed at the bed in astonishment, while Mrs. Middlemore
-continued to move her hands and eyes helplessly around, and moan for
-the police. Our reporter is a man of resource, quick-witted,
-ready-minded, and ever ready to take advantage of an opportunity. He
-took advantage of this.
-
-"'My good creature,' he said, 'what is the use of crying for the
-police? Have they assisted you in any way in this mysterious affair?'
-
-"'No, they 'aven't,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, adding
-inconsequentially, 'but where are they--Oh! where are they?'
-
-"'What have they done already for you?' continued our reporter.
-'Brought you into trouble with the newspapers because of their evidence
-contradicting yours; and whatever other people may say, I am sure you
-spoke the truth.' Our reporter observed something frightened in the
-look she cast at him as he made this assertion. 'The best thing for you
-is to confide in a friend who is really anxious to serve you, and
-whose purpose is to get at the truth of the matter.'
-
-"'That's all I want. But where's the friend?'
-
-"'Here. I am on the staff of the _Evening Moon_, which is ready to
-spend any amount of money in clearing the innocent and bringing the
-guilty to justice. They haven't any interested motives to serve; they
-didn't know the dead man, who some people say was murdered, and some
-people say wasn't. If you are an innocent woman you would jump at the
-chance I offer you; if you're guilty, it's a different pair of shoes,
-and I wash my hands of you.'
-
-"The threat cowed Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'I'm innocent, you know I am,' she gasped.
-
-"'Of course I know you are, and I should like the opportunity to
-silence the wretches who speak of you in a suspicious way.'
-
-"'What 'ave they said of me? What 'ave they dared to say?'
-
-"'What you wouldn't like to hear; but never mind them just now. We'll
-soon take the sting out of their tails. Besides, while you are working
-in the cause of innocence your time will not be wasted. You will be
-well paid for the information you give.'
-
-"This appeal to her cupidity settled the point.
-
-"'I'll do it,' she said, 'whatever it is. I'm a innocent woman, and I
-want the world to know it.'
-
-"'The world shall know it,' said our reporter, with inward
-satisfaction at the success of his arguments; 'and when the whole thing
-is made clear through you you'll be looked upon as a heroine, and
-everybody will be running to shake hands with you. People will say,
-"There, that's the woman that brought to light the truth about M.
-Felix. If it hadn't been for her we should never have known it. She's
-a real true woman; no nonsense about her." Why, I shouldn't wonder if
-they got up a subscription for you.'
-
-("We have no doubt, when this meets the eyes of our contemporaries,
-that some of them will be ready to take us severely to task for the
-tactics adopted by our reporter. Let them. We are thoroughly satisfied
-with the means he employed, and we offer him our sincere thanks. There
-is not a move we make in this mystery which is not made in the
-interests of justice, and that we are not ashamed of our methods is
-proved by the absolutely frank manner in which we place before our
-readers every word that passes.)
-
-"'What is it you want me to do?' asked Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'Merely,' replied our reporter, to answer a few simple questions. I
-have my reasons for believing that the police have advised you to say
-nothing to anyone but themselves.'
-
-"'They 'ave, sir, they 'ave.'
-
-"'What better are you off for it? Here are people ready to say
-anything against you, while you are advised to sit in a corner without
-uttering a single word in your own defence. It's monstrous. Upon my
-word, my dear Mrs. Middlemore, it's nothing less than monstrous.'
-
-"'So it is,' said Mrs. Middlemore, all of whose scruples seemed to
-have vanished. 'I'll answer anything you put to me.'
-
-"I shall ask you nothing improper. You say that you locked the door
-before you went to bed last night. Which door? There are two, one
-leading to the first floor landing, one communicating between the
-bedroom and sitting-room. Which of these doors did you lock? Or did
-you lock both?'
-
-"'I won't tell you a lie, sir. When I said I locked the door I thought
-you'd understand me. I mean that I fastened both of 'em. I couldn't
-lock 'em because the bedroom door key's been taken away, and the door
-on the landing's been cut into.'
-
-"'That was done by the locksmith. Who took away the key of the
-bedroom?'
-
-"'I don't know. Perhaps the police.'
-
-"'Without your knowledge?'
-
-"'I didn't know nothing of it.'
-
-"'How badly they are behaving to you! Anyway, the two doors were
-closed?'
-
-"'Yes, I saw to that myself. I ain't in the house without company,
-don't you think that. I wouldn't stop in it alone if you was to offer
-me Queen Victoria's golden crown. My niece is downstairs abed, and
-once she gets between the sheets she's that difficult to rouse that
-it's as much as a regiment of soldiers can do to wake 'er.' (This, our
-reporter thought, was comic, implying that Mrs. Middlemore had engaged
-the services of a regiment of soldiers to get her niece out of bed
-every morning.) 'Come up-stairs by myself in the dark,' continued Mrs.
-Middlemore, 'is more than I dare do. In the daylight I venture if I'm
-forced to, as I did a minute or two ago, because, though I shook Sophy
-till I almost shook 'er to pieces, and lifted 'er up in bed and let
-'er fall back again, it had no more effect on 'er than water on a
-duck's back. All she did was to turn round, and bring 'er knees up to
-'er chin, and keep 'old of the bedclothes as if she was a vice. She's
-that aggravating there's 'ardly any bearing with 'er. So as I couldn't
-get 'er out of bed, I come up 'ere without 'er. And that's 'ow I found
-out Mr. Felix was gone.'
-
-"'You were speaking of what took place last night?' said our reporter.
-'Your niece, Sophy, came up with you, I understand?'
-
-"'Yes, she did, though she had 'old of me that tight I could 'ardly
-shake myself free.'
-
-"'Did she come into this room with you?'
-
-"'No, she didn't; she wouldn't put her foot inside it. I left her in
-the passage while I peeped in. She ain't got the courage of a mouse.'
-
-"'Then she cannot corroborate your statement that the body of M. Felix
-was here before you went to bed?'
-
-"'Ain't my word enough?'
-
-"'For me it is, but it's different with the police and the public. It
-is a good job you've put yourself in our hands; there's no telling
-what trouble you might have got into if you hadn't.'
-
-"'I'll do anything you want me to, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, in
-great distress. 'It's a providence you come up when I opened the
-street door.'
-
-"'It is. You are positive the body was on the bed?'
-
-"'If it was the last word I ever had to speak I'd swear to it.'
-
-"'I believe you without swearing,' said our reporter, opening a
-cupboard door.
-
-"'What are you looking in there for?' asked Mrs. Middlemore. 'Do you
-think a dead man 'd be able to get up and put 'isself on one of the
-shelves?'
-
-"'No,' said our reporter, with a smile, 'but let us make sure the body
-is not in either of the rooms.'
-
-"He looked thoroughly through the apartments, under the bed and the
-couches, and in every cupboard. Mrs. Middlemore followed his movements
-with her eyes almost starting out of her head.
-
-"'Even up the chimneys,' he said genially, and he thrust the poker up,
-and then lit some paper in the stoves to see that the smoke ascended
-freely and that there was no obstruction.
-
-"'The thoughts you put in one's 'ead,' remarked Mrs. Middlemore, in a
-terrified voice, is enough to congeal one's blood.'
-
-"'My dear madam,' said our reporter, 'I am only doing what prudence
-dictates, so that there may be no possible chance of your getting into
-trouble. Suppose the body should be found in any other part of the
-house----'
-
-"'But 'ow could it get there?' interrupted Mrs. Middlemore, excitedly.
-
-"'That is more than either you or I can say, any more than we can say
-how it got out of this room; but out of it it has got, hasn't it?'
-
-"'Nobody can't say nothing different,' assented Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'This is altogether such a mysterious affair,' proceeded our
-reporter, 'that there's no telling what it will lead to. I don't
-remember a case like it ever occurring in London before. Where was I
-when you interrupted me? Oh, I was saying, suppose the body should be
-found in any other part of the house, what would the police say? Why,
-that for some reason or other--and you may be sure they would put it
-down to a bad reason--you had removed it for the purpose of concealing
-it.'
-
-"'Me!' gasped Mrs. Middlemore. What would I do that for?'
-
-"'You wouldn't do it at all, but that's the construction the police
-would put on it, and after that you wouldn't have a moment's peace. My
-dear madam, we'll not give them a chance to take away your character;
-not a stone shall be left unturned. There are rooms above these?'
-
-"'Yes, a lot.'
-
-"'We will have a look through them, and, indeed, through the whole
-house. It's what the police would do, with the idea that you were a
-party to some vile plot; it's what I will do, knowing you to be
-perfectly innocent.'
-
-"He put his design into execution. Accompanied by Mrs. Middlemore, who
-always kept in the rear, he made a thorough examination of the entire
-house, from attic to basement, but, as he anticipated, discovered
-nothing. The last rooms he examined were at the bottom of the house,
-and it was there he made acquaintance with Mrs. Middlemore's niece
-Sophy.
-
-"'Is that you, aunt?' the girl called out, from a room adjoining the
-kitchen.
-
-"'Yes, it's me,' answered Mrs. Middlemore, irascibly. You're a nice
-lazy slut, you are, to be 'ulking in bed this time of the morning.'
-
-"'I ain't abed, aunt,' said Sophy, making her appearance, 'I'm up; but
-oh, I'm so sleepy!'
-
-"She came into the kitchen rubbing her eyes, and presenting a general
-appearance of untidiness which did not speak well for her social
-training. Her short hair was uncombed, her face unwashed, her frock
-open at the back, and she had no boots on. She stared hard at our
-reporter, but was not at all abashed at his presence.
-
-"'I'm a friend of aunt's,' said our reporter. 'You had better finish
-dressing, light the fire, and give yourself a good wash, and then get
-breakfast ready. You needn't come upstairs till you're called.'
-
-"He beckoned Mrs. Middlemore out of the room, and they proceeded
-upstairs to the apartments on the first floor.
-
-"'It will be as well to say nothing before Sophy,' he said. 'Now, if
-you please, we will go on. It is plain that the body of M. Felix is
-not in the house; but it must be somewhere. The question is--Where,
-and how it got there? These rooms were fairly secure before you went
-to bed last night. Is there a chain on the street door?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Did you put it up before you went down to your bedroom?'
-
-"'I puts it up regularly every night.'
-
-"'And you did so last night?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'And turned the key?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Was the door locked and the chain up the first thing this morning?'
-
-"'Yes--no!'
-
-"'What do you mean by that?'
-
-"'I mean I can't remember. I must be sure, mustn't I, sir?'
-
-"'You must be sure, there must not be the possibility of a mistake;
-this putting up of the chain is one of the points upon which a great
-deal may hang. Do you mean to tell me that you have any doubt on the
-subject?'
-
-"'I can't say for certain. I was that upset and bewildered when I
-found M. Felix gone that I don't remember nothing till you came up to
-me at the street door. 'Ow I opened it, or 'ow I got it open, I don't
-remember no more than the dead.'
-
-"'Think a little; it is not longer than half-an-hour since I saw you.
-Your memory cannot have deserted you in so short a time.'
-
-"'I've got no more memory about it than the babe unborn.'
-
-"'But you must try to have. It is a fact that the chain either was or
-was not up, that the door either was or was not locked. Sit down and
-think about it for a minute or two; I will keep quiet while you
-think.'
-
-"But though the woman obeyed our reporter, and sat down and thought of
-the matter, or said she did, she declared she could make nothing of
-it, and had to give it up in despair.
-
-"'It is awkward,' said our reporter, 'to say the least of it. There is
-no telling what construction may be put upon your loss of memory.'
-
-"'I'm a honest woman, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, looking imploringly
-at our reporter; 'you'll put in a good word for me?'
-
-"'You may depend upon that, for I am convinced you are honest and
-innocent, but it is unfortunate. If you _should_ happen to remember,
-you had best let me know before you tell anyone else.'
-
-"'Yes, sir, I'll promise that. I don't know what I should do without
-you.'
-
-"'Get yourself into serious trouble, for a certainty, Mrs.
-Middlemore. You go out for your supper-beer every night?'
-
-"'Yes, every night; I can't do without it.'
-
-"'Beer is a wholesome beverage, if taken in moderation, which I know
-is the case with you. Did you go out for it last night?'
-
-"'Yes, I did.'
-
-"'Before or after you paid your last visit to these rooms?'
-
-"'Before, sir, before. You think of everything.'
-
-"'It shows that I am doing the best I can for you. Before you came up
-to these rooms, you had your supper?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Sophy had some with you?'
-
-"'Yes. She's got a twist on her has Sophy.'
-
-"'A twist?'
-
-"'An appetite. She eats as much as a Grenadier.'
-
-"'All growing girls do. How old is Sophy?'
-
-"'Fourteen.'
-
-"'Then, when you went downstairs, you and Sophy went to bed?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'You both sleep in the same room?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'In the same bed, most likely?'
-
-"'Yes, we do; and the way that girl pulls the clothes off you is a
-caution.'
-
-"'Did you both go to bed at the same time?'
-
-"'No, I sent 'er before me, and when I went in she was as sound as a
-top.'
-
-"'Are you a sound sleeper yourself?'
-
-"'I was before this dreadful thing 'appened, but now I pass the most
-fearful nights.'
-
-"'Dreams?'
-
-"'Awful.'
-
-"'How about last light? Don't answer hastily. This is another
-important point.'
-
-"Thus admonished, Mrs. Middlemore took time to consider; and no doubt
-it was with a certain regret that she felt constrained to say, 'I
-think I must 'ave slept better than ordinary. I was that tired that my
-legs was fit to drop off me.'
-
-"'You slept very soundly?'
-
-"'I must 'ave done, mustn't I, sir?'
-
-"'That is for you to say. You see, Mrs. Middlemore, the body of M.
-Felix could not have been removed without a certain noise. Now, if you
-were awake you must have heard it.'
-
-"'I didn't 'ear nothing. I'll take my Bible oath of it.'
-
-"'At what hour did you wake this morning?'
-
-"'At 'alf-past eight, and I got up at once.'
-
-"'Isn't that rather late for you?'
-
-"'It is, sir, but I've got no one to attend to now.'
-
-"'You were not in any way disturbed in the night?'
-
-"'No, sir.'
-
-"'You positively heard nothing?'
-
-"'Nothing at all.'
-
-"'Did Sophy?'
-
-"'Love your 'eart, sir! Sophy wouldn't wake up if cannon-balls was
-firing all round her!'
-
-"'As a matter of fact, has she told you she heard nothing last night?'
-
-"'I won't say that. I ain't 'ad time to arks her.'
-
-"'I'll ask her myself if you've no objection. Stop here for me; I
-shall not be gone long.'
-
-"'I can't stop 'ere alone, sir. I'll come down, and keep in the passage
-while you speak to Sophy.'
-
-"They went down together, and Mrs. Middlemore remained outside while
-our reporter entered the kitchen.
-
-"His entrance aroused Sophy, who had been sitting in a chair,
-apparently asleep, in the same state of untidiness as he had left her.
-She fell on her knees with a guilty air, and began to rake out the
-stove, making a great rattle with the poker.
-
-"'Fire not lit yet, Sophy?' said our reporter, much amused.
-
-"She looked up with a sly look, and seeing that he was not going to
-scold her, rubbed her nose with the poker and smiled boldly at him.
-
-"'Not yet, old 'un,' she replied, making no attempt to continue her
-work.
-
-"To be addressed as 'old 'un' must have been especially humiliating to
-our reporter, who is a good-looking fellow of eight-and-twenty, but he
-did not resent it.
-
-"'Wood won't catch, I suppose,' he said. 'Too damp, eh?'
-
-"'Soppin',' said Sophy, though as a matter of fact there was no wood
-before her.
-
-"'What are you looking so hard at me for?' asked our reporter. 'You'll
-make me blush presently.'
-
-"'_You_ blush!' laughed Sophy. 'I like that, I do. Look 'ere, old 'un.
-When you wants to blush, you'd better 'ire somebody to do it for you.
-_I'll_ do it for tuppence a time.'
-
-"'You would have to wash your face first,' said our reporter, entering
-into the humor of the situation.
-
-"'I wouldn't mind doing that,' said Sophy, staring harder than ever at
-him, 'if you'd make it wuth my while. As for lookin' at you, a cat may
-look at a king.'
-
-"'I'm not a king,' observed our reporter, 'and you're not a cat.'
-
-"'Call me one, and you'll feel my clors. I'm reckonin' of you up,
-that's what I'm doing of.'
-
-"'And what do you make of me, Sophy?'
-
-"'I sha'n't tell if you're going to act mean. 'Ansom is that 'ansom
-does.'
-
-"Our reporter took the hint, and gave the girl a sixpenny-piece.
-
-"'I say,' cried Sophy, greatly excited, as she tried the coin with her
-teeth. 'Stow larks, you know. Is it a good 'un?'
-
-"'Upon my honor,' said our reporter, placing his hand on his heart,
-with a mock heroic air.
-
-"'Say upon your soul.'
-
-"'Upon my soul, if you prefer it.'
-
-"'Change it for me, then. I'd sooner 'ave coppers.'
-
-"Our reporter had some in his pocket, and he counted out six into
-Sophy's grimy palm. A seventh, by accident, fell to the floor. Sophy
-instantly picked it up.
-
-"'Findin's keepin's,' she said.
-
-"'I'm agreeable. And now what do you make of me?'
-
-"'Wait a bit,' said Sophy. Unblushingly she lifted her frock, and tied
-the coppers in her ragged petticoat, tightening the knots with her
-teeth, which were as white as snow. 'That's my money-box, and I've got
-some more in it. What do I make of you? Oh, I knows what you are. You
-can't gammon me.'
-
-"'What am I?'
-
-"'You belong to the _Perlice Noos_, that's what you do. You've come to
-make pickchers. Pickcher of the 'ouse where the body was found.
-Pickcher of the room where the body was laid. Pickcher of the body's
-bed. Pickcher of the body's slippers. Pickcher of Mrs. Middlemore, the
-body's 'ousekeeper. Oh, I say, make a pickcher of me, will you? I'll
-buy a copy.'
-
-"'Perhaps, if you're good. But you must answer a question or two
-first.'
-
-"'All serene. Fire away!'
-
-"'You went upstairs last night with your aunt after you had your
-supper?'
-
-"'Yes, I did.'
-
-"'You did not go into the rooms?'
-
-"'No, I didn't.'
-
-"'Because you were frightened?'
-
-"'Gammon! It'd take more than that to frighten Sophy.' She added, with
-a sly look, 'Aunty's easily kidded, she is.'
-
-"'Ah,' said reporter, somewhat mystified, 'then you came down and went
-to bed?'
-
-"'Yes, I did, and precious glad to get there.'
-
-"'You like your bed, Sophy?'
-
-"'Rather.'
-
-"'And you sleep well?'
-
-"'You bet!'
-
-"'Did you sleep better or worse than usual last night?'
-
-"'No better, and no wus.'
-
-"'Did you wake up in the night?'
-
-"'Not me!'
-
-"'Then you heard no noise?'
-
-"'Where?'
-
-"'Anywhere.'
-
-"'I didn't 'ear nothink. 'Ow could I?'
-
-"'Thank you, Sophy. That is all for the present.'
-
-"'I say,' cried Sophy, as our reporter was about to leave the kitchen,
-'you'll take my pickcher, won't you?'
-
-"'I'll think about it. I'll see you another time, Sophy; and look
-here,' added our reporter, who is never known to throw a chance away,
-'here's my card; take care of it, and if you find out anything that
-you think I'd like to know about M. Felix, come and tell me, and you
-shall be well paid for it. You'll not forget?'
-
-"'No, I won't forgit. Anythink about M. Felix, do you mean?'
-
-"'Yes, anything.'
-
-"'All right, old 'un. I'll choo it over.' Here Sophy dropped her
-voice, and asked, 'Is Aunt outside?'
-
-"'Yes. Can you keep a secret?'
-
-"'Try me,' said Sophy, holding out the little finger of her left hand.
-
-"'What am I to do with this?'
-
-"'Pinch my nail as 'ard as you can. Never mind 'urting me. As 'ard as
-ever you can.
-
-"Our reporter complied, and Sophy went audibly through the entire
-alphabet, from A to Y Z.
-
-"'There,' said Sophy, 'did I scream when I came to O?'
-
-"'You did not,' said our reporter, remembering the child's game. 'You
-bore it like a brick.'
-
-"'Don't that show I can keep a secret?'
-
-"'It does. Well, then, don't tell your aunt that I gave you my card, or
-asked you to come and see me.'
-
-"'I'm fly.'
-
-"Giving him a friendly wink, Sophy went on her knees, and made a
-pretence of being very hard at work cleaning the grate. The last words
-he heard were:
-
-"'Pickcher of Sophy wearin' 'erself to skin and bone. Ain't I busy?'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER X.
-
-OUR REPORTER GIVES MRS. MIDDLEMORE SOME SENSIBLE
-ADVICE.
-
-
-"Rejoining Mrs. Middlemore, our reporter informed her that he was
-satisfied that Sophy had heard nothing in the night.
-
-"'Of course she didn't,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'Once she's in bed she
-lays like a log.'
-
-"'She's a sharp little thing,' observed our reporter.
-
-"'Sharp ain't the word, sir. What's going to be the end of her is more
-than I can fathom.'
-
-"'Has she a mother?'
-
-"'No.'
-
-"'Father?'
-
-"'If he can be called one. Drunk half his time, in trouble the other
-half.'
-
-"'So that poor Sophy has to look after herself?'
-
-"'Pretty well. She does odd jobs, and picks up a bit 'ere and a bit
-there. When M. Felix first come to live 'ere I'd made up my mind to
-'ave 'er altogether with me, though she'd 'ave worrited the life out
-of me, I know she would; but he wouldn't let me 'ave nobody in the
-house but 'im, and wouldn't let nobody sleep in it a single night, so
-I 'ad to disappoint the child. I did take 'er in once or twice when
-she came round to me almost black and bloo with the way 'er brute of a
-father had served 'er, but I 'ad to be careful that M. Felix shouldn't
-see 'er--smuggling 'er into the kitchen when he was away, and letting
-'er out very early in the morning--or I should never 'ave 'eard the
-last of it.'
-
-"'You are the only friend the girl has, it seems?'
-
-"'She ain't got many more.'
-
-"'Mind what I tell you, Mrs. Middlemore,' said our reporter, with the
-kindest intentions, 'there's capital stuff in Sophy. Now that M. Felix
-is gone it would be a charity to adopt her, if you haven't any of your
-own.'
-
-"'I ain't got none of my own,' said Mrs. Middlemore, shaking her head
-dubiously, 'but since I arksed 'er whether she'd like to live with me,
-and she said she would, she's got into ways that I don't think I could
-abide. You see, sir, she wasn't so old then, and I might 'ave moulded
-her. I don't know as I could do it now.'
-
-"'What ways do you refer to?'
-
-"'Well, sir, I've seen her selling papers in the streets----'
-
-"'That's not a crime,' interposed our reporter; 'especially if she
-does it for food.'
-
-"'If you won't mind my saying so,' said Mrs. Middlemore, with
-considerable dignity, 'I consider it low; but that's not so bad as
-selling matches, which is next door to begging.'
-
-"'But she doesn't beg?'
-
-"'No, I don't think she goes as low as that.'
-
-"'Nor steal?'
-
-"'No,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, with spirit, 'she'll take anything
-that's give to her, but's as honest as the sun, I'll say that of her.'
-
-"'All that you've told me of Sophy, Mrs. Middlemore, is in her favor,
-and I have already a sneaking regard for her.'
-
-"'Lord, sir!' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, misconstruing the sentiment,
-'and you the gentleman that you are!'
-
-"'Yes,' repeated our reporter, complacently, 'a sneaking regard for
-her. Hawking papers and matches is not the loftiest occupation, but it
-is a form of commerce; and commerce, my dear madam, has made England
-what it is.'
-
-"It was not entirely without a selfish motive, although he was
-favorably disposed toward the poor waif, that our reporter wandered
-for a few moments from the engrossing subject of M. Felix's
-disappearance to the less eventful consideration of Sophy's welfare.
-By one of those processes of intuition which come to observant men by
-inspiration, as it were, he was impressed with the idea that Sophy
-might be useful to him and to us in the elucidation of the mystery
-concerning M. Felix. We will not weaken the interest of what is to
-follow by divulging whether this idea was or was not justified by
-results; our readers will be able to judge for themselves later on.
-His views regarding Sophy had their weight with Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'I mean to keep Sophy with me,' said that lady, 'for a little while
-at all events, and if she'll only keep away from the theaytres I'll do
-what I can for 'er.'
-
-"'Does she frequent theatres?'
-
-"'Does she?' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, and immediately answered
-herself after a favorite fashion with certain of her class. 'Doesn't
-she? Why she saves every copper she can get to go to the galleries,
-and when she ain't got no money she hangs round the stage doors to see
-the actors and actresses go in and out. I don't believe she could stay
-away if it was to save her life.'
-
-"'Persons in a much higher social position than ourselves,' said our
-reporter, turning every point to Sophy's advantage, 'are in the habit
-of hanging round stage doors. The stage is a great institution, Mrs.
-Middlemore, greater than ever it was before, and is courted--yes, my
-dear madam, courted--by the highest as well as the lowest in the land,
-from the Prince of Wales at the top to poor little Sophy at the
-bottom. Every fresh thing you tell me of Sophy makes me think better
-of her. But let us return to M. Felix. He would not allow you to have
-any person in the house, you say. What was his motive?'
-
-"'I can't say, sir, except that he wanted to keep 'isself to 'isself.'
-
-"'Did you expostulate with him?'
-
-"'Did I what, sir?'
-
-"'Did you tell him you would feel lonely without a companion
-occasionally?'
-
-"'Not me, sir. M. Felix wasn't the kind of gentleman you could cross.
-He 'ad a way of speaking, when he was giving orders you couldn't
-mistake. His word was lore, and he meant it to be. You ain't
-forgetting, sir, that he was master 'ere?'
-
-"'No, I'm not forgetting that. His orders, then, were to be obeyed
-without question?'
-
-"'They was, sir. He said to me, "When people don't do as I tell 'em,
-Mrs. Middlemore, I get rid of 'em."'
-
-"'A very dictatorial gentleman.'
-
-"'Only when he was saying, "This is to be," or, "That is to be." At
-other times he was as smooth as marble, and always passed a pleasant
-word.'
-
-"'He had visitors occasionally, I suppose?'
-
-"'Oh, yes, sir, but I scarcely ever sor them. Nearly always he let 'em
-in and out 'isself.'
-
-"'In a manner of speaking, then, he led a secret life?'
-
-"'Some might call it so. Gentlemen living in chambers do all sorts of
-things.'
-
-"'So I believe,' said our reporter, dryly.
-
-"'And it ain't for the likes of us to question 'em. We've got our
-living to make, and if it pays us to be mum, mum we must be.'
-
-"'I understand that. From what I can gather, Mrs. Middlemore, M. Felix
-had no family?'
-
-"'Not that I know of, sir.'
-
-"'As to his visitors, now, were they mostly ladies or gentlemen?'
-
-"'Mostly ladies, sir.'
-
-"'Have any of them been here to see his body?'
-
-"'Not one, sir.'
-
-"'That is strange. He might almost as well have died on a desert
-island.'
-
-"'Yes, sir. That's the reason why we've been all at sea what to do.
-There was nobody to give directions.'
-
-"'It is certainly a perplexing situation, unprecedented in my
-experience. Should you happen to meet any of the persons who were in
-the habit of visiting him, would you be able to identify them?'
-
-"'I don't think I should, sir.'
-
-"'Supposing that he came by his death in a violent way--I don't
-say it is so, because the medical evidence does not favor that
-conclusion--but supposing that this evidence was misleading,
-and was proved to be so, there is nobody to take up the matter
-authoritatively, to take measures, I mean, to bring the guilty party
-to justice?'
-
-"'Nobody, sir.'
-
-"'Only the police?'
-
-"'Yes, sir, only the police?'
-
-"'And all they have succeeded in doing is to make things uncomfortable
-for you?'
-
-"'Yes, sir,' sighed Mrs. Middlemore, 'that's all they've done. I said
-to Mr. Nightingale, "A nice friend you've been," I said. I couldn't
-'elp saying it after all I've gone through.'
-
-"'Is it Constable Nightingale you are speaking of?'
-
-"'Yes, it is.'
-
-"'Is he an old friend of yours?'
-
-"'He was on the beat 'ere before Mr. Wigg.'
-
-"'Ah; and that is how you got to know him?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'He knew M. Felix, probably?'
-
-"'Mr. Felix made a point of being always friendly with the policemen
-on the beat.'
-
-"'Sensible man. Tipped them, I daresay?'
-
-"'They'd best answer that theirselves. He never give _me_ nothing to
-give 'em.'
-
-"'What did Constable Nightingale say when you made that remark to
-him?'
-
-"'Nothing,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, with sudden reserve.
-
-"'Surely he must have made some remark, to the effect that he _was_
-your friend, or words bearing the same meaning?'
-
-"'He didn't say nothing.'
-
-"Our reporter gave up the point; it was his cue to keep Mrs.
-Middlemore in a good humor.
-
-"'I'll have one more look in the bedroom,' he said.
-
-"At first his scrutiny was not rewarded by any discovery, but, passing
-his hand over the pillows on the bed, he felt something hard beneath
-them, and upon lifting them up he saw a six-chambered revolver, loaded
-in every barrel.
-
-"'Lord save us!' cried Mrs. Middlemore, starting back.
-
-"'Did you not know it was here?'
-
-"'No, sir, this is the first time I ever saw it. I never knew he kep'
-one.'
-
-"'Do the police know?'
-
-"'They didn't mention it, sir.'
-
-"'Well, we will leave it where it is. Don't touch it, Mrs. Middlemore;
-it's loaded.'
-
-"Before he replaced it, however, he made the following note in his
-pocket-book: 'A Colt's double-action revolver, nickel plated, six
-shots, No. 819.' And, unseen by Mrs. Middlemore, he scratched on the
-metal with his penknife the initial F. Then he looked at his watch,
-and said--
-
-"'It is nearly ten o'clock. My advice now is that you go and give the
-alarm to the police that the body of M. Felix has vanished.'
-
-"'You'll go along with me, sir?'
-
-"'No, for your sake I had better not be seen. Give me two minutes to
-get away, and then go for the police at once. I will come and see you
-again, and help you in every way I can.'
-
-"Shaking her hand, and leaving half a sovereign in it, our reporter,
-accompanied by Mrs. Middlemore, went to the street door, and left her
-standing there."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XI.
-
-THE "EVENING MOON" IS INUNDATED WITH CORRESPONDENCE
-CONCERNING THE DISAPPEARANCE OF THE BODY OF M. FELIX.
-
-
-"As was to be expected, the news of the disappearance of the body of
-M. Felix caused the greatest excitement. In small villages trifling
-incidents are sufficient to create an interest; in great cities events
-of magnitude are required to stir the pulses of the people; and in
-both village and city, to arouse the public from their normal
-condition of apathy, it is necessary that the incidents must have
-local color. Soho was sufficiently central, and, it may be added,
-sufficiently mixed and mysterious in the character of its population,
-to fulfil this imperative condition of popularity. Every resident in
-London knows the locality, and is to some extent familiar with it; it
-is contiguous to the most fashionable thoroughfares; it is within a
-stone's throw of theatres of magnificent proportions; it gives shelter
-to foreign princes deposed for a time from their high estate, and to
-foreign votaries of vice of both sexes who, being outlaws, cannot
-pursue their infamous courses in their native lands. If we were asked
-which part of London contains the most varied material for the weaving
-of modern romance we should unhesitatingly point to the region of
-Soho. A careless stroller through those thoroughfares little dreams of
-the strange and wondrous life which beats beneath the apparently
-placid, the undeniably squalid, aspect of this pregnant locality. The
-elderly woman, poorly clad and closely veiled, who glides past him is
-a prominent member of a Royal family who for a long period held the
-reins of power in one of the greatest European nations; she lives now
-in a garret upon dry bread and German sausage, and makes her own bed
-and fire. Yesterday she wore a crown of diamonds, to-day she wears a
-crown of sorrow. The attenuated man, whose worn-out garments hang
-loosely upon his spare body, and who is now studying _carte du jour_
-in the window of a low French restaurant, nervously fumbling at the
-same moment the few loose coins in his pocket, was, in years gone by,
-one of the greatest financiers in the world; yesterday he dealt in
-millions, had scores of carriages and hundreds of servants, paid
-fabulous prices for rare gems and pictures, and provided funds
-for mighty wars; to-day he is debating whether he can afford an
-eighteen-penny dinner. The man with an overhanging forehead, who
-strides onward with teeth closely set, and the fingers of whose hands
-are continually clinching and unclinching, is the head of a secret
-society whose members number hundreds of thousands, and whose deed of
-blood shall next week convulse the world with horror. We could dwell
-long upon this fascinating theme, but our business is with M. Felix,
-and we must not wander from him.
-
-"As we have already stated, we were the first to give the public the
-intelligence of his strange disappearance, and so intense was the
-interest the news excited that our printing-machines could not supply
-one-fourth of the demand for the various editions of our journal. The
-letters we received upon the subject would form a curious chapter in a
-new 'Curiosities of Literature.'
-
-"'Dear sir' (wrote one correspondent), 'you speak of the disappearance
-of the body of M. Felix as an unparalleled incident. Allow me to
-correct you, and from my own experience to furnish your readers with
-an identical case. It is now ten years ago since I formed the
-acquaintance of a gentleman of great attainments and peculiar habits,
-and whose nationality was always a matter of curiosity with me. Once
-or twice I delicately approached the subject, but he skilfully evaded
-it, and I did not feel warranted in pressing it. He was a wonderful
-chess-player, an accomplished linguist, and his knowledge of the
-niceties of every new discovery in science was simply marvellous. He
-had only one failing--he drank and smoked too much. In those days I
-also was a free liver. We were both single men, I certainly, he
-presumably; there are topics upon which it is good breeding to
-preserve a friendly delicacy. We met frequently, and dined together at
-least twice a week, at my expense. He was a good judge of wine and
-liquor, and very choice in his food. Being much superior to me in this
-respect, I invariably left it to him to decide where to dine and to
-arrange the courses. Perhaps occasionally we took half a bottle of
-wine too much, but that is neither here nor there. It was no one's
-business but our own. He took a peculiar interest in all new
-inventions, and was in the habit of throwing out hints of an
-extraordinary invention of his own which one day was to revolutionize
-the world. He told me very little of his discovery of which anyone
-could make use, but he was so jealous of his secret that he bound me
-down to solemn secrecy on the point; and I trust I am too much of a
-gentleman to violate the confidence he reposed in me. I may, however,
-without scruple, reveal that his invention related to combustion. One
-evening, when we had arranged to dine as usual together at the Royal,
-in Regent Street, he confided to me that he was in temporary want of
-funds, and I lent him all the money I had about me, some fifteen or
-sixteen pounds. Then we dined, and he paid for the dinner. Over the
-meal he talked more frequently than he was in the habit of doing of
-his invention. "It is near completion," he said, "and before I go to
-bed I intend to make some experiments which I am in hopes will put the
-finishing touch to it." Then he looked at me searchingly and
-thoughtfully, and said I might accompany him home if I liked, and
-assist in the experiments. Burning with curiosity, and delighted at
-this mark of his confidence, I gladly consented, and we issued forth
-and proceeded to his rooms, which, singularly enough, were in
-Glasshouse Street, at no very great distance from the house in which
-M. Felix lived. On our way he purchased two bottles of brandy,
-remarking that even when the soul was in its highest state of
-exaltation the body required nourishment and sustaining. I acquiesced.
-He lived on the second floor, in two rooms, one his bedroom, the other
-the room in which he conducted his experiments. There was no evidences
-of the nature of these experiments visible, and he explained this to
-me by stating that, distrusting his housekeeper, he kept them in his
-cupboard. The first thing he did was to light a large fire; then he
-brought forth a brass frying-pan, upon which he emptied a packet of
-powder. "You must not be frightened at what I am about to do," he
-said. "There is no very great danger in it, but it needs courage."
-Being already primed with the wine we had at dinner, and with three
-glasses of the brandy he had purchased, I told him I was prepared for
-anything. Then he informed me that his experiments must be made
-without light from candle or lamp; so that, with the exception of the
-fire, we were in darkness. Then he put the brass frying-pan on the
-fire, and a blue vapor floated through the room. I felt a little
-nervous, but I would not confess it, and I helped myself to another
-glass of brandy, and puffed away at a very large and very strong cigar
-with which he presented me. He bade me sit in a particular chair by a
-little table (upon which he considerately placed the two bottles of
-brandy, one by this time half empty), and he drew around me upon the
-floor, which was destitute of carpet, a circle with a piece of
-billiard chalk, and said that as long as I did not move outside that
-charmed circle I should be safe. "Help yourself to some more brandy,"
-he said, "and do not be frightened." I obeyed him as to the brandy,
-but I must confess I was in great trepidation, more especially as the
-dim objects in the room appeared to be going round and round. He threw
-some more powder into the brass frying-pan, and this time the vapor
-was green. He then asked me if I had anything in the shape of metal
-upon my person, and I answered yes, of course; upon which he stated
-that I might be in danger unless I divested myself of them, as he was
-about to do. At a little distance from me, between me and the fire, he
-drew upon the floor a smaller circle with his piece of billiard chalk,
-and within it placed a trinket or two of his own. I handed him my gold
-watch and chain, my diamond ring, my pearl and ruby pin, and a
-valuable charm of gold which I kept in my pocket for luck. These he
-placed with his own trinkets within the smaller circle, and said that
-now no harm could befall me. The objects in the room went round more
-and more as he muttered some cabalistic words, and to prevent myself
-from being overcome by terror I took some more brandy. Then he threw
-about half a dozen little packets of powder into the fire, one after
-another, and all sorts of colors appeared, and filled the room with a
-peculiar smell, which so affected me that I helped myself to brandy. I
-must not forget to mention that he had locked the door and put the key
-in his pocket. "If what I am doing alarms you," he said, "you may
-close your eyes. You have great courage, and to prove my friendship
-for you I shall present you with half the profits of my invention." I
-tried to thank him, but to my surprise my words were not very clearly
-spoken. Presently my eyes began to close, and I fell asleep. When I
-awoke the room was in darkness. I called to my friend, but he did not
-answer me. Fearful lest he himself should have fallen a victim to his
-hazardous experiments, I rose unsteadily to my feet and felt around
-till my hands reached the door, which, of course, was locked. Luckily
-I had in my pocket a box of matches, and striking one I lit the
-candle. My friend was gone; I was alone in the room; but upon the
-floor was a small heap of ashes. Not only was my poor friend gone, but
-all his trinkets as well as my own were also gone. But there upon the
-floor was the fatal heap of ashes. I could arrive at but one
-conclusion, namely, that the combustion which was the kernel of his
-great invention had reduced him to ashes and destroyed him. There
-could be no other explanation of the extraordinary occurrence, because
-the door was still locked. Fearful lest I might be accused of his
-death, I forced the door open and fled, and from that day to this the
-affair has remained wrapped in mystery. This is the first time I have
-mentioned it, and I do so now in the interests of justice, lest some
-unfortunate person should be accused, as I might have been in the case
-of my friend, of spiriting M. Felix away. May not his disappearance be
-set down to combustion? Are there any charred marks upon the floor of
-the room where his body lay? Were any ashes left? Was he given to
-dangerous experiments? My own experiences may lead you, sir, to the
-proper solution of the mystery which hangs around his fate. I shall
-follow the further developments of the case of M. Felix with interest,
-and am, Yours, etc.'
-
-"Another correspondent wrote:
-
-"'Sir--I am a Spiritualist, and I possess the power of summoning from
-the Caverns of the Unseen and Unknown the spirits of any individual
-upon whom I may call. There is but one way of arriving at the truth of
-the disappearance of the body of M. Felix, and I offer to you the
-exclusive privilege of revealing this truth to an anxious and eager
-public. My fee will be five guineas. Upon your remitting to me this
-sum I undertake to summon the spirit of M. Felix, and to ascertain
-from his own lips what has become of his body. The power I possess is
-worth considerably more than the sum I name, and you, with this
-exclusive information in your possession, will obtain an advertisement
-for your valued newspaper which you could not otherwise obtain for
-five hundred times the amount. I enclose you my name and address,
-which you may or may not publish as you please, and upon the receipt
-of the five guineas I will set to work at once. If you decline my
-offer the disappearance of this particular body will forever remain a
-mystery. I urge you, in your own interests, not to neglect this
-opportunity.
-
-"Another correspondent wrote:
-
-"'Honored Sir--I have been reading all about M. Felix, and now comes
-the cruel news of his disappearance. Just as I was going to see his
-body and identify it! Just as I was going to realize a life-long
-dream! Will you allow me to explain, and will you render an
-inestimable service to a poor widow? I feel that you will, for you
-have a heart. Thirty-two years ago my husband left me suddenly. We
-were having tea, and in the middle of it he got up and said, "I'm off,
-and you'll never see me again." We had had a dispute about something
-(I beg you not ask me what; it was a private matter), when he acted
-thus. He was a most overbearing man, and I had enough to do to bear
-with him. He left the house there and then, and I have never set eyes
-on him since. His name was not Felix, but are you sure that was M.
-Felix's proper name. I advertised for him, and said all would be
-forgiven and forgotten, but he didn't turn up. I heard he had gone to
-Australia, and no doubt he made his fortune there, and came home to
-England to enjoy it; and as _he_ was a man who never forgot and never
-forgave, he took the name? of Felix, and lived the lonely life he did.
-It was only yesterday the idea flashed across me that he was my long
-lost husband, and that, if he did not make a will disinheriting me,
-his lawful wife, his fortune belongs to me by every legal and moral
-right. I would put two or three questions to you, sir, to you who are
-always ready to help the oppressed. Did the supposed M. Felix make a
-will? If he did, where is it? Is there any portrait of him extant? I
-have a portrait of my poor husband--alas! much faded--but it stands to
-reason that it must differ considerably from the late portraits taken
-of the deceased. Show me M. Felix's portrait and I am ready to swear
-to my husband. I put only one more question. In the absence of any
-evidence whatever, and failing the discovery of the deceased's mortal
-remains, is it not competent for me to make oath that he was my
-husband, and thus establish my claim to any property he may have left
-behind him. In deep grief, I am, honored sir, your obliged and
-obedient servant, A LONELY WIDOW.'
-
-"We could fill pages with letters of this description, but the three
-we have given are a sufficient indication of the interest excited by
-the incident. Among all these letters there was only one which offered
-any suggestion likely to be of practical value, and that was the
-letter we have printed, signed 'A LONELY WIDOW.' Her interesting
-hypothesis that M. Felix was her long lost husband was, of course,
-ridiculous, but she made mention of two subjects worthy of
-consideration. The first was did M. Felix make a will; the second, was
-there any portrait of him extant. If a will were in existence, it
-would probably be in the care of a firm of lawyers who could have no
-good reason for keeping it in the background. We set to work at once
-upon this trail, but it led to nothing. No lawyers were found in
-possession of such a document, and it was not forthcoming from other
-quarters. Nor were we more successful with respect to a portrait of M.
-Felix. Mrs. Middlemore had never seen one, and a private search
-through his rooms was futile. Indeed, it is a further proof of the
-strange secrecy in which M. Felix's life was conducted that not a
-document or written paper of any description was discovered in his
-apartments, not even a letter. Some important statements upon this
-head will be presented further on.
-
-"In pursuance of the advice our reporter gave Mrs. Middlemore, she
-communicated to the police the fact of the disappearance of the body
-of M. Felix. There the matter rested, and would have been likely to
-rest but for the initiatory steps we had already taken to throw a
-light upon the mystery. It is all very well to say that nobody's
-business is everybody's business; it is not the case. People talked
-and wrote letters, but we acted. It must be admitted that the police
-were not in a position to move actively in the affair. No definite
-charge had been offered for their investigation; no person was accused
-of a crime; it had not even been proved that a crime had been
-committed. Conjecture was theirs, and that was all. The law cannot
-move, cannot act upon conjecture; facts of a crime, or even of a
-supposed crime, are necessary before the administration of justice can
-be called upon to adjudicate. Suggestions were thrown out as to the
-advisability of offering a reward for the discovery of the body, but
-who was to offer it? Even in the case of a deliberate and ascertained
-murder where the criminal is at large, the Government is notoriously
-slow in issuing such a proclamation, and the full weight of public
-opinion has frequently failed in inducing the authorities to offer a
-reward. It was not, therefore, to be expected that they would do so in
-this instance. Meanwhile there was one feature in the case which we
-desire to emphasize, and of which we never lost sight. Between the
-hours of twelve and one o'clock on the night of the 16th-17th January
-a man with a red scarf round his neck was seen to issue from the house
-in Gerard Street, in which M. Felix resided. The man still remained
-undiscovered. It matters not who saw him, whether Mrs. Middlemore, or
-Constables Wigg or Nightingale, or all three together. The fact seemed
-to be established that he had been in the house for some purpose, and
-had been seen to issue from it.
-
-"Where was that man, and what motive had he for not coming forward?"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XII.
-
-THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" MAKES A DISCOVERY.
-
-
-"On the evening of the 19th our reporter paid a visit to Mrs.
-Middlemore. Sophy opened the street door for him.
-
-"'Hallo, old 'un,' said the girl, 'it's you, is it?'
-
-"'Yes, Sophy,' said our reporter, 'here I am again.'
-
-"'As large as life,' remarked Sophy, vivaciously, 'and twice as--no, I
-won't say that; you ain't arf a bad sort. What's yer little game this
-time, old 'un?'
-
-"'Is Mrs. Middlemore in?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'Yes, aunt's at 'ome. Do you want to see 'er?'
-
-"'That's what I've come for, Sophy.'
-
-"'Who's that, Sophy?' cried Mrs. Middlemore, from the bottom of the
-basement stairs.
-
-"'It's the old 'un, aunt,' screamed Sophy.
-
-"'Don't be absurd,' said our reporter, pinching Sophy's cheek. 'It is
-I, Mrs. Middlemore, the reporter from the _Evening Moon_.'
-
-"'Come down, sir,' cried Mrs. Middlemore, 'if come you must. Don't
-stop talking to that 'uzzy.'
-
-"Sophy put her tongue in her cheek, and whispering, 'Ain't she a
-treat?' preceded our reporter to the kitchen.
-
-"'Good-evening, Mrs. Middlemore,' said our reporter.
-
-"'Good-evening, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'Sophy, 'ave you shut the
-street door tight?'
-
-"'As tight as a drum,' replied Sophy.
-
-"'Mrs. Middlemore sank into a chair with a heavy sigh, and our
-reporter took a seat opposite her. There was a jug of beer on the
-table.
-
-"'Will you 'ave a glass, sir?' asked Mrs. Middlemore, hospitably.
-
-"'No, thank you; I have just dined, and I thought I would come and
-have a chat with you in a general way.'
-
-"'Thank 'eaven it's about nothing particular,' said Mrs. Middlemore,
-in a tone of manifest relief.
-
-"'It may lead to something particular,' observed our reporter,
-genially. 'We're only on the threshold as yet.'
-
-"'Stop a bit, sir, please. Sophy!'
-
-"'Yes, aunty dear,' responded the girl, in a tone of simulated
-sweetness.
-
-"'If I let you go out for a walk, will you come back in arf an hour?'
-
-"Sophy hesitated. Between her longing for a run in the streets and her
-longing to hear what our reporter had to say, she felt herself in a
-difficulty.
-
-"'Well, now,' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, sharply.
-
-"'Oh, aunty dear,' said Sophy, pressing the bosom of her frock, and
-pretending to be greatly startled at her aunt's sharp voice, you send
-my 'eart into my mouth.'
-
-"'Will you promise not to stop out longer than an hour?'
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore's anxiety to get rid of her decided the girl. For
-once she would forego the temptations of the streets.
-
-"'Don't want to go out,' she said, shortly.
-
-"'But you've got to go,' said Mrs. Middlemore, resenting this
-opposition to her authority, 'or I'll bundle you out for good, neck
-and crop. Promise, like a good girl.'
-
-"'Shan't promise,' said Sophy, rebelliously.
-
-"'Oh, dear, oh, dear,' moaned Mrs. Middlemore. 'What am I to do with
-her? And after all the nice things you said of her this morning, sir?'
-
-"'Did you say nice things of me?' asked Sophy, of our reporter.
-
-"'I did, Sophy,' he replied, 'and I'm sure you will do as your aunt
-tells you.'
-
-"'That settles it. I'll go. 'Ow long for, aunty?'
-
-"'An hour. Not a minute more.'
-
-"'I say'--to our reporter--'you might lend us yer watch. Then I
-shouldn't make any mistake.'
-
-"'Get along with you,' said our reporter, laughing. 'The shops are
-full of clocks.'
-
-"'Thank yer for nothing,' said Sophy, proceeding to array herself.
-Spitting on the palm of her hand, she made a pretence of smoothing her
-hair. Then she looked at herself in a piece of looking-glass that was
-hanging on the wall, and turned her head this way and that, smirking
-most comically. Then she shook out her skirts, and looked over her
-shoulder to see that they hung becomingly. Then she tied a piece of
-string round one yawning boot. Then she put on her head something in
-straw that once might have been called a hat, but which had long since
-forfeited all claims to respectability. Then she fished out a poor
-little scarf, about six inches square, and pinned it round her
-shoulders with a coquettishness not devoid of grace. Her toilette
-completed, she asked--
-
-"'Will I do?'
-
-"'Very nicely, Sophy,' said our reporter. But although he spoke gayly
-he was stirred by a certain pity for this little waif, who was so
-conspicuously animated by a spirit to make the best of things--a
-spirit which might with advantage be emulated by her betters--and who
-made a joke even of her poverty and rags.
-
-"'Much obliged,' said Sophy. 'Give us a kiss, aunty. Now I'm off.'
-
-"And off she was, but not without saluting our reporter with an
-elaborate courtesy.
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore waited till she heard the street-door slam, and then
-said,
-
-"'Did you ever see the likes of her?'
-
-"'I declare to you, my dear madam,' said our reporter, 'that the more
-I see of Sophy the more I like her. What have the police done?
-Anything?'
-
-"'Nothing, sir. I went and told 'em what 'ad 'appened, and two
-policemen came and looked at the bed, looked under it, looked in every
-room as you said they would, looked at me, and went away.'
-
-"'And they have not been here again?'
-
-"'No, sir.'
-
-"'Mrs. Middlemore, may I have another peep in M. Felix's rooms?'
-
-"'Certainly, sir.'
-
-"They went up together, Mrs. Middlemore breathing heavily, perfuming
-the air with a flavor of beer. There was an escritoire in the
-sitting-room, and our reporter examined it.
-
-"'I'll tell you what I'm looking for,' he said. 'I see pens, ink, and
-paper, denoting that M. Felix was occasionally in the habit of using
-them, but there is not a scrap of paper about with his writing on it.
-There is not even a monogram on the note paper. If we could find
-something, it might furnish a clue. He received letters, I suppose?'
-
-"'Oh, yes, sir.'
-
-"'And the presumption is that he answered them. Did you ever post any
-of his letters?'
-
-"'Never once, sir.'
-
-"'Here is a waste-paper basket; there must have been in it, at odd
-times, scraps of the letters he received and spoilt sheets of his own.
-Has your dust bin been emptied this week?'
-
-"'No, sir, but you wouldn't find anything of Mr. Felix's in it. It was
-one of his orders that whatever was in the waste-paper basket should
-be burnt here in his own fireplace. I used to sweep this room in the
-morning when he was in bed, and he always said I did my work so
-quietly that he was never disturbed by any noise.'
-
-"'Look round the room, Mrs. Middlemore, and see if you miss anything.
-You would be pretty well acquainted with everything in it. What is the
-meaning of that gasp? You _do_ miss something?'
-
-"'There was another desk, sir, and I don't see it.'
-
-"'What kind of desk?'
-
-"'A small one, sir, that used to smell quite nice.'
-
-"'Ah, made of cedar wood, no doubt. Did M. Felix keep his papers in
-this desk?'
-
-"'Some of his papers, sir.'
-
-"'How do you know that?'
-
-"'I've come into the room when he's rung for me, and saw the desk
-open.'
-
-"'Ocular proof, Mrs. Middlemore.'
-
-"'What sort's that, sir?'
-
-"'Visible to the eye--_your_ eye, my dear madam.'
-
-"'Yes, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, dubiously.
-
-"'Now, Mrs. Middlemore, can you inform me whether those papers you saw
-in the missing desk were private papers?'
-
-"'It ain't possible for me to say, sir.'
-
-"'Neither can you say, I suppose, whether M. Felix set any particular
-store upon them?'
-
-"'Well, sir, now you bring me to it, things come to my mind.'
-
-"'Exactly.'
-
-"'Whenever I come into the room,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'and the desk
-was open, Mr. Felix used to shut it up quick.'
-
-"'Lest you should see them too closely?'
-
-"'I'm sure I shouldn't 'ave made no use of 'em; least of all, bad
-use.'
-
-"'That is not the point. He closed the desk quickly when another
-person was by, with an evident wish to keep all possible knowledge of
-them to himself.'
-
-"'It looks like that. You _do_ push a thing close.'
-
-"Our reporter accepted this as a compliment, and continued:
-
-"'That appears to establish the fact that this desk--which probably
-was brought from India, Mrs. Middlemore--contained M. Felix's private
-papers?'
-
-"'It do, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, admiringly.
-
-"'And, therefore, papers of importance. The desk was inlaid with
-silver, Mrs. Middlemore.'
-
-"'Lor', sir!' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, doubtless regarding our
-reporter as a man who dealt in enchantments. 'How did you find out
-that?'
-
-"'It was, was it not?'
-
-"'Yes, sir, it was.'
-
-"'When M. Felix had visitors, was this desk ever allowed to lie
-carelessly about?'
-
-"'No, sir. At them times he used to keep it in 'is bedroom, on a
-little table by the side of 'is bed.'
-
-"'Let us look through the bedroom, and see if it is there.'
-
-"They searched the bedroom thoroughly, without finding it.
-
-"'It is undoubtedly gone,' said our reporter.
-
-"'It do look like it, sir.'
-
-"'Mrs. Middlemore, when M. Felix was found dead in his chair, was this
-desk in either of the rooms?'
-
-"'I didn't see it, sir.'
-
-"'You could not swear it was not here?'
-
-"'I shouldn't like to, sir.'
-
-"'The probability, however, is that it had gone when the door was
-forced open?'
-
-"'Yes, sir.'
-
-"'The police could scarcely take it away without your knowledge?'
-
-"'They'd 'ave been clever to do it.'
-
-"'Had they done so, they would certainly have been exceeding their
-duties. Now, do not answer the questions I put to you too quickly.
-Were you in these rooms on the day before M. Felix's death?'
-
-"'I were, sir.'
-
-"'Was the desk here then?'
-
-"'It were; I can swear to that.'
-
-"'You saw it with your own eyes?'
-
-"'I couldn't see it with no others,' replied Mrs. Middlemore,
-smirking, in approval of her small wit.
-
-"'Of course, you could not. Is there any particular reason why you are
-so positive of this?'
-
-"'Well, sir, Mr. Felix wanted something, and rung for me; and when I
-come into the room he was sitting at this table with the desk open
-before him, and all the papers scattered about.'
-
-"'That fixes it. Did he seem to be searching for, or examining with
-more than usual interest, any special document?'
-
-"'He seemed flustered and excited, sir. I can't say no more than
-that.'
-
-"'He was not generally of an excitable temperament?'
-
-"'Not at all. He was easy going, and always with a pleasant word.'
-
-"'A model man. I observe that you call him Mr. and not Monsieur?'
-
-"'I can't bring myself to foreign languages, sir. My tongue gits into
-a knot.'
-
-"'He _was_ a foreigner, I suppose?'
-
-"'I suppose so, sir. I ain't the best of judges.'
-
-"'A Frenchman?'
-
-"'So I thought, sir.'
-
-"'Or an Italian?'
-
-"'Perhaps, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, wavering.
-
-"'Or a Spaniard?'
-
-"'Perhaps, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, growing more undecided.
-
-"'Or a Russian?'
-
-"'How _can_ I say, sir?' said Mrs. Middlemore, now quite at sea as to
-M. Felix's nationality.
-
-"'He spoke the English language well?'
-
-"'As well as me, sir.'
-
-"'So that, after all, he might have been an Englishman?'
-
-"'He might,' said Mrs. Middlemore, declining to commit herself, 'and
-he mightn't.'
-
-"Our reporter did not press the point, as to which Mrs. Middlemore had
-evidently disclosed all she knew.
-
-"'If we could find the missing desk, Mrs. Middlemore, it might throw a
-light upon the mystery.'
-
-"Again did Mrs. Middlemore decline to commit herself; again did she
-answer, 'It might, and it mightn't, sir.'
-
-"'I presume there was nothing in the desk that attracted your
-attention besides the papers?'
-
-"'Only one thing, sir--a curious sort of knife.'
-
-"'A paper knife, most likely.'
-
-"'It was more like a dagger,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'It 'ad a 'andle
-like a twisted snake, with a' open mouth and a colored stone in its
-eye. It 'ad a sharp pint, too?'
-
-"'How did you become aware of that? Did you ever try it?'
-
-"'Not me, sir; but once I come in when Mr. Felix 'ad it in 'is 'and,
-playing with it, and all at once he dropped it like a 'ot pertater. He
-pricked 'isself with it, and there was blood on 'is 'and.'
-
-"'You have furnished me with a valuable piece of evidence, Mrs.
-Middlemore. Papers are easily burnt, and a desk broken up and
-destroyed. It would not be so easy to get rid of that knife, which,
-from your description, must be a foreign dagger, and the
-identification of which would be a simple matter. For instance, you
-could swear to it, and so could I, who have never seen it.'
-
-"'Anybody could swear to it, sir; it couldn't be mistook.'
-
-"'Did M. Felix keep this dagger always in his desk?'
-
-"'I should say he did, sir. I never saw it laying about loose, and
-never saw it at all unless the desk was open.'
-
-"'Did you see it on the last occasion you saw the desk open, a few
-hours before M. Felix's death?'
-
-"'Yes, sir, it was among 'is papers.'
-
-"'Have you any suspicion, Mrs. Middlemore, who at this present moment
-has possession of the desk and the dagger?'
-
-"'Not the least, sir. 'Ave you?'
-
-"'I have. A suspicion amounting to a certainty. Have you forgotten the
-man with a red handkerchief round his neck who escaped from the house
-on the night of the eventful discovery?'
-
-"'I'm not likely to forget 'im,' said Mrs. Middlemore, and then added,
-in an excited tone, 'do you think it was 'im as took it?'
-
-"'Him, and no other. Now we arrive at the motive of his visit; it was
-robbery. Not a vulgar robbery such as an ordinary thief would have
-committed, but one of a particular nature, and committed with a
-knowledge that M. Felix's Indian desk contained a secret or secrets of
-value, which no doubt he could turn to good account. We are getting
-on, Mrs. Middlemore, we are getting on,' said our reporter, rubbing
-his hands in satisfaction. 'In these affairs there is nothing like
-patience.'
-
-"'You're as good as a detective, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'and
-you've got the patience of Job. You won't mind my saying that I've
-thought lots of your questions foolish, and only put for the sake of
-saying something. I don't think so now, sir.'
-
-"'Thank you for the compliment. I assure you I have not asked you one
-idle question. Recall to mind whether the man with the red
-handkerchief round his neck carried anything away with him that looked
-like a desk as he escaped from the house.'
-
-"'I don't believe, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, with evident
-reluctance, 'as that will ever be known.'
-
-"'Oh, yes, it will. Answer my question.'
-
-"'I didn't notice nothing,' replied Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"We pause a moment here to observe that it was these reserved replies,
-when any question relating to this man was asked, as well as the
-conflicting testimony of the constables Wigg and Nightingale, that led
-us to the conclusion, already recorded, that the precise truth was not
-revealed as to which one of the three witnesses actually saw the man.
-Having committed themselves to a certain statement for the purpose of
-exonerating the constables from official blame, they could not
-afterward contradict themselves, because such a contradiction would
-have thrown grave doubt upon the whole of their evidence.
-
-"'He could not,' said our reporter, 'very well have carried away an
-article of this description without its being noticed by any one who
-saw him.'
-
-"'Ain't it excusable, sir,' observed Mrs. Middlemore, nervously, 'when
-you think of the storm and the confusion we was in?'
-
-"'Well, perhaps, but it is a pity we cannot obtain definite
-information on the point. Isn't that a knock at the street door?'
-
-"'Yes, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, making no attempt to move from the
-room.
-
-"'You had better go down and see who it is. I will remain here. There
-is really nothing to be frightened at. It might be Sophy come back.'
-
-"At this suggestion Mrs. Middlemore left the room, and went to the
-street door. Being alone, our reporter looked about him, and almost
-immediately made an important discovery. Against the wall, on the
-right hand side of the door as he entered, stood a massive sideboard,
-a very handsome piece of furniture. The lower part of this sideboard
-was close against the waistcoat, above which there was a space between
-the back of the sideboard and the wall of about an inch in width.
-Happening to glance at the back of the sideboard, the light of the
-candle which our reporter held in his hand fell upon something bright.
-Stooping, he drew the object out, and was excited to find it was the
-identical dagger about which he and Mrs. Middlemore had been
-conversing. There could not be the possibility of a mistake. Its
-handle, as Mrs. Middlemore had described, resembled a twisted snake;
-the mouth was open, and in its head was a ruby to represent an eye. A
-dangerous instrument, with a very sharp point, the metal of which it
-was composed being bright steel. But it was not the peculiar shape of
-the handle, nor the bright steel of the blade, nor the ruby eye, which
-excited our reporter. It was the fact that there was rust upon the
-blade, and that this rust was caused by blood, of which there were
-light stains plainly visible on the handle of the dagger."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIII.
-
-THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" GIVES SOPHY
-A TREAT.
-
-
-"In the elucidation of a mystery there are facts which have to be
-slowly and laboriously built up; there are others which need no such
-process but establish themselves instantly in the analytical and
-well-balanced mind. Our reporter is gifted with such a mind, and
-certain facts connected with the case of M. Felix took instant form
-and order. We will set these facts before our readers briefly and
-concisely:
-
-"It is necessary to premise--
-
-"First, that M. Felix kept a loaded revolver beneath the pillows of
-his bed.
-
-"Second, that when Constables Wigg and Nightingale, Mrs. Middlemore,
-and Dr. Lamb entered M. Felix's sitting-room after the door was forced
-open, the window was open.
-
-"We now proceed to the sequence of events.
-
-"Shortly before his death M. Felix, being alone in the house in Gerard
-Street, received a visitor. Whether expected or unexpected, whether
-welcome or unwelcome, we are not prepared to state; nor are we
-prepared to state how this visitor obtained entrance to the house.
-Obtain entrance by some means he undoubtedly did, and mounting the
-stairs, he knocked at the door of M. Felix's sitting-room. At the
-moment M. Felix heard the knock he had his Indian desk open before
-him, and it was in connection with a secret which this desk contained,
-or to which a document in the desk could afford a clue, that the visit
-was made. M. Felix, supposing that it was his housekeeper who knocked,
-opened the door and admitted the intruder. A stormy scene ensued, and
-M. Felix, throwing open his window, screamed for help. The appeal was
-sent forth into the wild night more from the fear that he was about to
-be robbed of this secret than from the fear that his life was in
-danger. The hypothesis is strengthened by the fact that there were no
-marks of personal violence on the body of M. Felix. The visitor laid
-hands upon the desk, and as he did so M. Felix turned from the window,
-snatched up the dagger, and hurled it with all his force at the
-robber. The sharp point struck into the flesh of the intruder, and it
-was his blood which was discovered on the floor of the room. The
-agitation produced by the scene brought on the attack of heart disease
-which caused M. Felix's death. The blind and momentary delirium which
-ensued did not prevent M. Felix from thinking of the revolver beneath
-his pillows; he staggered into his bedroom, but before he reached his
-bed he fell lifeless in a chair. While this was going on the robber
-had seized the desk, and, conscious that to carry away with him the
-evidence of a dagger dripping with blood might lead to his detection,
-he threw it swiftly from him behind the sideboard. He threw it with
-his right hand, his back being toward the door, which accounts for the
-place and position in which our reporter found the weapon. Then, with
-the desk in his possession, he escaped from the house--ignorant of the
-tragedy that had occurred, ignorant that M. Felix was lying dead
-within a few feet of him. He left the door open, but the fierce wind
-through the window blew it shut. It was while it was open that the cat
-which alarmed Mrs. Middlemore and the two constables crept into the
-room, became besmeared with blood, and crept out.
-
-"The departure of the thief was like the falling of the curtain upon a
-pregnant act in an exciting drama. Imagination follows the man as he
-flies with his stolen treasure through the deserted streets;
-imagination wanders to the dead form of M. Felix lying in the chair by
-the bedside. When the curtain rises again, what will be disclosed?
-
-"These thoughts came to the mind of our reporter with lightning
-rapidity. Mrs. Middlemore had opened the street door, had closed it
-again, and was now ascending the stairs. What should he do with the
-dagger?
-
-"To retain it would be an unwarranted act, and might be construed into
-a theft. To take Mrs. Middlemore into his confidence might thwart his
-operations in the future. He put his hand behind the sideboard, and
-let the dagger fall. It was now safely hidden from sight, and its
-presence behind the sideboard could only be discovered, by any other
-person than himself, by the shifting of that piece of furniture.
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore re-entered the room.
-
-"'It was a runaway knock,' she said, 'The boys and girls take a
-pleasure in it. If I could ketch one of 'em I'd bang their head agin
-the wall.'
-
-"'Did you see no one at all?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'Only some people staring up at the winders,' replied Mrs.
-Middlemore. 'The 'ouse 'as become a regular show since that dreadful
-night. What do they expect to see?'
-
-"'Perhaps the ghost of M. Felix,' suggested our reporter, with, it
-must be confessed, a rather feeble attempt at humor.
-
-"'Don't mention sech a thing, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, piteously.
-'It makes my flesh creep.'
-
-"'I only said it in joke; there are no such things as ghosts and
-spirits.'
-
-"'Some people believe otherwise sir.'
-
-"'The more fools they. Well, Mrs. Middlemore, there is nothing more I
-wish to ask you just now; I must get back to my duties. But I must not
-waste your time for nothing.'
-
-"He pressed into her willing palm another half-sovereign, making the
-second he had given her.
-
-"'I'm sure you're very kind, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, after
-furtively glancing at the coin, to see that it was not a sixpence.
-'Shall I see you agin?'
-
-"'Yes. Good-night, Mrs. Middlemore.'
-
-"'Good-night, sir,' she responded, as they went down-stairs. 'I 'ope
-Sophy won't be gone long.'
-
-"'She'll be back soon, I daresay.' He paused in the passage. 'Mrs.
-Middlemore, are you satisfied that I am your friend?'
-
-"'Yes, sir, I am.'
-
-"'Then, if anything new occurs, you will let me know at once.'
-
-"'I will, sir.'
-
-"'And if it should happen,' said our reporter, 'that you remember
-anything you have forgotten to tell me, you will come and let me know
-it?'
-
-"'I'll be sure to, sir.'
-
-"Wishing her good-night again, he left the house, and heard her close
-the street door behind him with a bang.
-
-"It was not without a motive that our reporter had addressed his last
-words to her. He had an idea that she had not been quite frank with
-him respecting M. Felix's visitors feeling assured that she could not
-be so entirely in the dark regarding them as she professed to be. His
-visit had not been fruitless; he had become acquainted with the loss
-of the desk, and he had discovered the dagger with its curiously
-shaped handle. Two steps advanced in the mystery, which might lead to
-something of importance.
-
-"He walked slowly on, revolving these matters in his mind, and
-debating whether he could make any present use of them when his coat
-was plucked by a small hand. Looking down, he saw Sophy.
-
-"'Ah, Sophy,' he said, 'what do you want?'
-
-"'I've been waiting for yer,' said Sophy. 'I've got somethink to
-tell.'
-
-"'Good. Where shall we talk?'
-
-"Sophy's reply was a strange one. 'I know,' she said, where they sells
-fried fish and fried 'taters.' She smacked her lips.
-
-"'You would like some?'
-
-"'Wouldn't I? Jest?'
-
-"'Lead the way, Sophy.'
-
-"'You're a brick, old 'un, that's what you are.'
-
-"She walked close to him, rubbing against him after the fashion of a
-friendly cat, and conducted him toward the purlieus of Drury Lane.
-
-"'You're going to stand treat, ain't yer?'
-
-"'Yes, Sophy, to as many fried potatoes and as much fried fish as you
-can comfortably tuck away.'
-
-"'No gammon, yer know?'
-
-"'I mean what I say, Sophy.'
-
-"'Then there's stooed eels?'
-
-"'All right; you shall have some.'
-
-"'Don't say afterwards as I took you in. My inside's made of injer
-rubber. The more I puts in it the more it stretches.'
-
-"'I don't mind, Sophy.'
-
-"'You're somethink like a gent. I say, was aunty riled at the runaway
-knock?'
-
-"'Oh, it was you, was it?'
-
-"'Yes, it was me; I was gitting tired of waiting for yer. She's close,
-ain't she?'
-
-"'Who? Your aunt?'
-
-"'Yes; but I'm closer, I am. I could tell 'er somethink as 'd make 'er
-'air stand on end.'
-
-"'And you are going to tell it to me?'
-
-"'Per'aps. If yer make it wuth my while.'
-
-"'You shall have no reason to complain, Sophy. Is it about M. Felix?'
-
-"'You wait till I've 'ad my tuck out.'
-
-"Burning as he was with curiosity, our reporter wisely restrained his
-impatience. They had now arrived at the fried-potato shop, and Sophy
-stood before the open window with eager eyes. The potatoes were
-frizzling in the pan, and were being served out hot by a greasy
-Italian. His customers were of the very poorest sort, and most of them
-received the smoking hot potatoes in the street, and went away to eat
-them. You could purchase a half-penny's worth or a penny's worth the
-paper bags in which they were delivered being of different sizes. On
-the open slab in the window were pieces of fried plaice, tails, heads,
-and middles, the price varying according to the size. A few
-aristocratic customers were inside the shop, sitting upon narrow
-wooden benches, and eating away with an air of great enjoyment.
-
-"'Don't they smell prime?' whispered Sophy.
-
-"Our reporter assented, although the odor of fat which floated from
-the pan left, to the fastidious taste, something to be desired.
-
-"'Will you eat your supper outside or in, Sophy?'
-
-"Inside, old 'un,' said Sophy.
-
-"They went into the shop and took their seats. There were no plates or
-knives or forks, but there was a plentiful supply of salt and pepper.
-
-"'Can you manage without a plate?' asked our reporter.
-
-"With her superior knowledge of the ways of this free-and-easy
-restaurant, Sophy replied, 'Plates be blowed!'
-
-"'But you will certainly want a knife.'
-
-"'No I shan't,' said Sophy, 'fingers was made before knives.'
-
-"With two large middle slices of fried fish and a penny's worth of
-fried potatoes spread upon a piece of newspaper before her, Sophy fell
-to with a voracious appetite. In his position of host our reporter was
-compelled to make a sacrifice, and he therefore toyed with a small
-heap of fried potatoes, and put a piece occasionally into his mouth.
-His critical report is that they were not at all bad food; it was the
-overpowering smell of fat that discouraged this martyr to duty.
-
-"'I say,' said Sophy, 'ain't yer going to 'ave some fried fish? Do
-'ave some! You don't know 'ow good it is.'
-
-"'I am eating only out of politeness, Sophy,' said our reporter,
-watching the child with wonder; she had disposed of her first batch
-and was now busy upon a second supply. 'I have not long had my
-dinner.'
-
-"'Ain't we proud?' observed the happy girl. '_I_ like _my_ dinner--when
-I can git it, old 'un--in the middle of the day, not in the middle of
-the night.'
-
-"'You eat as if you were hungry, Sophy.'
-
-"'I'm allus 'ungry. You try and ketch me when I ain't!'
-
-"'Doesn't your aunt give you enough?'
-
-"'She 'lowances me, and ses I mustn't over-eat myself. As if I could!
-I ses to 'er sometimes, "Give me a chance, aunt!" I ses; and she ups
-and ses she knows wot's good for me better than I do myself, and all
-the while she's eating and drinking till she's fit to bust. She's fond
-of her innards, is aunt. Never mind, it'll be my turn one day, you see
-if it won't. There, I'm done. Oh, don't you stare! I could eat a lot
-more, but there's stooed eels to come, I _do_ like stooed eels, I do!'
-
-"Our reporter had no reason to complain of Sophy's extravagance;
-though she had disposed of four slices of fried fish and two helpings
-of fried potatoes, his disbursement amounted to no more than tenpence
-half-penny. Upon leaving the shop Sophy again assumed the command, and
-conducted our reporter to the stewed-eel establishment, where she
-disposed of three portions, which the proprietor ladled out in very
-thick basins. The host of this magnificent entertainment was somewhat
-comforted to find that although fingers were made before knives (and
-presumably, therefore, before spoons), Sophy was provided with a very
-substantial iron spoon to eat her succulent food with. As in the
-fried-potato establishment there was a plentiful supply of salt and
-pepper, so here there was a plentiful supply of pepper and vinegar, of
-which Sophy liberally availed herself. At the end of her third basin
-Sophy raised her eyes heavenward and sighed ecstatically.
-
-"'Have you had enough?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'Enough for once,' replied Sophy, with a prudent eye to the future.
-'I wouldn't call the Queen my aunt.'
-
-"Our reporter did not ask why, Sophy's tone convincing him that the
-observation was intended to express a state of infinite content, and
-had no reference whatever to Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'Now, Sophy,' he said, 'are you ready to tell me all you know?'
-
-"'I'll tell yer a lot,' said Sophy, and if you ain't sapparized--well,
-there!'
-
-"Another colloquialism, which our reporter perfectly understood.
-
-"'What will your aunt say?' he asked--they had left the shop, and were
-walking side by side--'to your coming home late?'
-
-"'Wot she likes,' replied Sophy, with a disdainful disregard of
-consequences. 'If she don't like it she may lump it. Don't frighten
-yerself; she's used to it by this time. Where are you going to take
-me?'
-
-"Our reporter had settled this in his mind. 'To my rooms, where we can
-talk without interruption.'
-
-"'Oh, but I say,' exclaimed Sophy, 'won't they stare!'
-
-"'There will be no one to do that, Sophy, and you will be quite safe.'
-
-"Sophy nodded, and kept step with him as well as she could. It was not
-easy, by reason of her boots being odd, and not only too large for her
-feet, but in a woful state of dilapidation. In one of the narrow
-streets through which they passed, a second-hand clothing shop was
-open, in the window of which were displayed some half-dozen pairs of
-children's boots. A good idea occurred to him.
-
-"'Your boots are worn out, Sophy.'
-
-"'There's 'ardly any sole to 'em,' remarked Sophy.
-
-"'Would a pair of those fit you?'
-
-"'Oh, come along. I don't want to be made game of.'
-
-"'I am not doing so, Sophy,' said our reporter, slipping three
-half-crowns into her hand. 'Go in, and buy the nicest pair you can;
-and mind they fit you properly.'
-
-"Sophy raised her eyes to his face, and our reporter observed, without
-making any remark thereon, that they were quite pretty eyes, large,
-and of a beautiful shade of brown, and now with a soft light in them.
-She went into the shop silently, and returned, radiant and grateful,
-shod as a human being ought to be.
-
-"'Do yer like 'em?' she asked, putting one foot on the ledge of the
-shop window.
-
-"'They look very nice,' he said. 'I hope they're a good fit?'
-
-"'They're proper. 'Ere's yer change, and I'm ever so much obliged to
-yer.'
-
-"The words were commonplace, but her voice was not. There was in it a
-note of tearful gratefulness which was abundant payment for an act of
-simple kindness. Utilitarians and political economists may smile at
-our statement that we owe the poor a great deal, and that but for them
-we should not enjoy some of the sweetest emotions by which the human
-heart can be stirred."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIV.
-
-SOPHY IMPARTS STRANGE NEWS TO THE REPORTER OF THE
-"EVENING MOON."
-
-
-"The chambers occupied by our reporter are situated at the extreme
-river end of one of the streets leading from the Strand to the
-Embankment. They are at the top of the house, on the third floor, and
-a capacious bow-window in his sitting-room affords a good view of the
-river and the Embankment gardens. He describes his chambers as an
-ideal residence, and declares he would not exchange it for a palace.
-In daytime the view from his bow-window is varied and animated, in
-night-time the lights and shadows on the Thames are replete with
-suggestion. From this window he has drawn the inspiration for many
-admirable articles which have appeared in our columns, in which his
-play of fancy illumines his depiction of a busy city's life.
-
-"He let himself in with his latch-key, and Sophy followed close on his
-heels up the silent stairs. On the third floor another latch-key
-admitted them to the privacy of his chambers.
-
-"'It will be dark for a moment, Sophy,' he said; 'you are not
-frightened, I hope?'
-
-"'Not a bit,' replied Sophy.
-
-"It may not be unworthy of remark that she never again addressed him
-as 'old 'un, which he ascribed to the little incident of the purchase
-of the pair of boots. It had raised him to an altitude which rendered
-so familiar an appellation out of place.
-
-"In less than a minute he had lit the gas in his sitting-room, and
-Sophy stood gazing around in wonder and delight. Our reporter is a
-gentleman of taste, no mere grub working from hand to mouth. He
-entered the ranks of journalism from choice, and possesses a private
-income which renders him independent of it; thus he is enabled to
-surround himself with luxuries which are out of the reach of the
-ordinary rank and file of his brother workers, who one and all have a
-good word for him because of the kindnesses they have on numerous
-occasions received at his hands.
-
-"Sophy looked round on the books and pictures and valuable objects
-with which the room was literally packed, and her appreciation--little
-as she understood them--was expressed in her eyes.
-
-"'This is my den, Sophy,' said our reporter. 'What do you think of
-it?'
-
-"As he spoke he applied a lighted match to a couple of bachelor's
-wheels in the stove, and in an instant a cheerful fire was glowing.
-
-"'Well, I never!' exclaimed Sophy. 'It's magic.'
-
-"'No, Sophy, sober fact. Single life nowadays is filled with
-innumerable conveniences to keep a fellow from the path of matrimony.
-This little bachelor's wheel'--holding one up--'is a formidable foe to
-anxious mammas with marriageable daughters. But I am talking above
-you, Sophy; pardon the flight. Go to the window there; you will see
-the river from it.'
-
-"He stood by her side while she gazed upon the wonderful sight, too
-little appreciated by those who are familiar with it. The moon was
-shining brightly, and the heavens were dotted with stars; long lines
-of lights were shining in the water, animated as it were with a
-mysterious spiritual life by the shifting currents of the river. It
-was at this moment that Sophy gave expression to a remarkable effort
-at grammar.
-
-"'I say, 'ow 'igh the Thames are!'
-
-"Our reporter was amused, and did not correct her. 'Yes, Sophy, the
-river has reached an unusual height. And now, little one, as time is
-flying, let us proceed to business.'
-
-"Sophy, brought down to earth, retired from the window, and stood by
-the table, at which our reporter seated himself. He could not prevail
-upon her to take a chair.
-
-"'I can talk better standing,' she said. 'Before I tell what I got to
-tell, I'd like to know wot aunt said of me when you and 'er was up in
-Mr. Felix's rooms this morning. You know. When I'd jest got out of
-bed.'
-
-"'Nothing very particular, Sophy,' said our reporter, 'except that you
-were a sound sleeper.'
-
-"'You arksed 'er that?' said Sophy, shrewdly.
-
-"'Yes, You see, Sophy, I was naturally anxious to learn all I could of
-the strange disappearance of M. Felix's body. It was there last night
-when you and your aunt went to bed; it was not there this morning when
-you got up.'
-
-"'Aunt couldn't tell yer much.'
-
-"'She could tell me nothing. She went to bed, and though she has
-passed bad nights this week----'
-
-"'Oh, she sed that, did she?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Meaning that she don't sleep much?'
-
-"'Yes, that undoubtedly was her meaning.'
-
-"'Well, go on, please,' said Sophy.
-
-"'Though she has passed bad nights lately, it was a fact that last
-night she slept very soundly. Then the idea occurred to me to come
-down and ask you whether you had heard anything in the night--because,
-you know, Sophy, that M. Felix's body could not have disappeared from
-the house without some sound being made. We do not live in an age of
-miracles. The body could not have flown up the chimney, or made its
-way through thick walls. There is only one way it could have been got
-out, and that was through the street door.'
-
-"'Right you are,' said Sophy.
-
-"'Now, Sophy, I am sure you are a sensible little girl, and that I can
-open my mind freely to you.'
-
-"'You can that. I ain't much to look at, but I ain't quite a fool
-neither.'
-
-"'I am certain you are not. I cannot tell you how deeply I am
-interested in this mysterious affair, and how much I desire to get at
-the bottom of it. Whoever assists me to do this will not repent it,
-and somehow or other I have an idea that you can help me. If you can,
-I will be a real good friend to you.'
-
-"You've been that already, the best I ever sor. I took you in once
-this morning, and I ain't going to do it agin.'
-
-"'How did you take me in, Sophy?'
-
-"'I told yer I didn't wake up last night, didn't I?'
-
-"'You did, Sophy.'
-
-"'And that I didn't 'ear no noise?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'They was crammers. I did wake up in the middle of the night, and I
-did 'ear a noise.'
-
-"'Sophy,' said our reporter, repressing his excitement as well as he
-could, 'I feel that you are going to do me a good turn.'
-
-"'Aunt's a awful liar,' said Sophy.
-
-"'Is she?'
-
-"'She ses she sleeps light, and I sleep sound. It's all the other way.
-She goes to bed and drops off like the snuff of a candle, and she
-snores like a pig. I sleep on and off like. I don't let aunt know it,
-'cause I don't want to be rushed out of bed till I've a mind to git
-up, so I pretend to be fast asleep, and I let her shake me as much as
-she likes. I do not lay snuggled up; and I was laying like that last
-night all the while aunt was snoring fit to shake the 'ouse down, when
-I 'eerd wot sounded like somethink movin' upstairs. I wasn't
-scared--yer don't know Sophy if yer think that. "I'll see what it is,"
-thinks I, "if I die for it." So I creeps out of bed, and stands quiet
-a bit in the dark, without moving.'
-
-"'You are a brave little girl, Sophy, and I am proud of you.'
-
-"'I stands listening and wondering, and the sound of somethink moving
-upstairs goes on. Moving quite soft, sir, jest as if it didn't want to
-be 'eerd. "Blowed if I don't go up," thinks I, "and find out wot it's
-all about." I wouldn't light a candle, 'cause that might wake aunt,
-and I wanted to 'ave it all to myself. Well, sir, I creeps to the door
-in my bare feet and opens it, and goes into the passage. Sure enough,
-I ain't deceived; there is somethink on the stairs. Up I creeps, as
-soft as a cat, feeling my way by the bannisters, till I git to the
-passage that leads to the street-door. Then somethink 'appens to me
-that upsets the applecart. I ketches my toe agin a nail, and I
-screams out. But that's nothink to what follers. A 'and claps itself
-on my mouth, and somebody ses, "If yer move or speak out loud I'll
-kill yer!" If I sed I wasn't frightened at that I'd be telling yer the
-biggest crammer of the lot, but I pulls myself together, and I
-whispers under my breath, "Wot is it? Burgulers?" "Yes," ses the
-voice, "burgulers, as'll 'ave yer blood if yer don't do as yer told."
-"I'll do everythink yer want," I ses, "if yer don't 'urt me. My blood
-won't do yer a bit o' good; it ain't much good to me as I knows on. Is
-there more than one of yer?" "There's a band of us," ses the voice.
-"Who's downstairs?" "Only aunt," I ses. "Ain't there nobody else in
-the 'ouse?" arsks the voice. "Not a blessed soul," ses I, "excep' the
-corpse on the fust floor." "Take yer oath on it," ses the voice. "I
-'ope I may never move from this spot alive," ses I, "if it ain't the
-truth I'm telling of yer!"
-
-"Now jest listen to me," ses the voice. "You do as yer told, or you'll
-be chopped into ten thousan' little bits. Set down on the stairs
-there, and shut yer eyes, and don't move or speak till you 'ear a
-whistle; it won't be a loud 'un, but loud enough for you to 'ear. Then
-you git up, and shut the street-door softly--you'll find it open--and
-lock it and put up the chain. Then go downstairs without speaking a
-word, and if yer aunt's awake and arsks yer wot's the matter, say
-nothink; if she's asleep, don't wake her. When she gits up in the
-morning don't say nothink to 'er, and don't answer no questions about
-us. You understand all that?" "Every word on it," I ses. "And yer'll
-do as yer ordered?" ses the voice. "Yes, I will," I ses. "Mind yer
-do," ses the voice, "or somethink orful 'll 'appen to yer. You'll be
-watched the 'ole day long, and if yer let on, look out for yerself.
-Now set yerself down on the stairs." I did, sir, and though I was
-froze almost to a stone, I never moved or spoke. It was that dark that
-I couldn't see a inch before my nose, even when I opened my eyes
-slyly, but I couldn't 'elp 'earing wot was going on. There was a
-creeping, and a bumping, and the sound of the street-door being
-unlocked and the chain being took down. Then everythink was quiet agin
-inside, and all I 'eerd was a policeman in the street outside, trying
-the doors as he passed on. When he'd got well out of the street, as
-near as I could tell, the street-door was opened without as much as a
-creak, and in another minute I 'eerd a low whistle. Then I got up; it
-was all a job, sir, 'cause I was cramped, but I managed it, and I
-crep' to the street-door, and shut it, and locked it, and put the
-chain up. I was glad enough to do it, I can tell yer, and I felt my
-way downstairs and got into bed. Aunt 'adn't as much as moved, and
-nobody knew nothink but me and the burgulers. That's all I know about
-last night.'
-
-"It was enough, in all conscience; a strange story indeed, and related
-by such a common little waif as Sophy. Our reporter had not
-interrupted her once, but allowed her to proceed, in her own quaint
-and original way, to the end.
-
-"'And you have told nobody but me, Sophy?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'It ain't crossed my lips till this minute,' replied Sophy. 'I don't
-know wot I might 'ave done if I 'adn't seed you this morning. You
-spoke civil and nice to me, and I took to yer in a minute. Yer might
-'ave knocked me down with a feather when I 'eered arter you'd gone wot
-the burgulers' little game was, and it come to me in a jiffy that
-you'd like to know wot 'ad become of Mr. Felix's body. "I'll wait till
-I see 'im agin," ses I to myself, "and then I'll tell 'im all about
-it." If you 'adn't come to aunt's to-night I should 'ave come to you.'
-
-"'I am infinitely obliged to you,' said our reporter, 'We'll keep the
-matter to ourselves at present, and if there's any reward offered for
-the recovery of the body, or for any information that may lead to its
-recovery, it shall be yours, Sophy, every farthing of it.'
-
-"Sophy's eyes glistened as she said, 'If they arsks me, then, why I
-adn't spoke before, I'll tell 'em I was too frightened by wot the
-burguler sed he'd do to me if I sed anythink about it.'
-
-"'That excuse will do nicely. Did you hear the sound of many feet?'
-
-"'I think it was only one man as was moving about,' replied Sophy,
-after a little consideration.
-
-"'How do we account, then, for there being more than one man concerned
-in this singular robbery?'
-
-"'Per'aps there wasn't more than one,' suggested Sophy quickly, 'and in
-course he 'ad to carry the body. It couldn't walk of itself, being
-dead.'
-
-"'Quite so, my young logician--a compliment Sophy. Before you put up
-the chain, did you look out into the street?'
-
-"'I didn't dare to.'
-
-"'Then you don't know if there was a cab or a cart waiting at the
-door?'
-
-"'I don't, sir.'
-
-"'Did you hear the sound of wheels moving away after the door was
-secured?'
-
-"'No, I didn't. Everythink was as still as still can be, inside and
-out.'
-
-"'There must have been a vehicle of some sort, however, stationed
-near. A man couldn't carry a dead body through the streets very far
-without being caught. Perhaps he would not allow it to stand too near
-your aunt's house for fear of suspicion being excited. The natural
-conclusion is that a growler was engaged, and that it walked slowly to
-and fro in a given direction till he came up to it.'
-
-"'That must 'ave been it, sir.'
-
-"'If I give you five shillings, Sophy, can you take care of it?'
-
-"'Rather! But you've done enough for me to-night, sir.'
-
-"'Not half enough, my girl. Here's the money.'
-
-"From the expression on Sophy's face she would have liked to resist
-the temptation, but it was too strong for her, so she took the two
-half-crowns, saying gleefully as she tied them in her money-box, I
-shall soon 'ave enough to buy wot I want.'
-
-"'What is it you desire so particularly, Sophy? A new frock?'
-
-"'No,' she replied. 'I want a pair of tights.'
-
-"'In heaven's name, what for?'
-
-"'To see 'ow I look in 'em.' Sophy glanced down at her legs, then
-stood straight up and walked a few steps this way and a few steps
-that, in glowing anticipation of the delights in store for her.
-
-"'You would like to be an actress, Sophy?'
-
-"'Wouldn't I? Jest! I can do a lot of steps, sir. Would you like to
-see me dance?'
-
-"'Not to-night, Sophy,' said our reporter, thinking of the
-proprieties; 'I haven't time, and you had best get back as quick as you
-can to your aunt. I'll see you part of the way. I don't know what
-excuse you will give her for being absent so long.'
-
-"'Let me alone for that. It ain't the fust time, and won't be the
-last.'
-
-"'Well, come along, my girl.'
-
-"They left the house without being observed, and our reporter saw
-Sophy as far as St. Martin's Lane, and then bade her good night.
-Before returning to his chambers he walked in the direction of the
-Embankment with the intention of taking a stroll there. It was a
-favorite promenade of his on fine nights, and on this night in
-particular he desired it, in order that he might think in the quietude
-of that grand avenue of the information he had gained. Elated as he
-was at the progress he was making in the elucidation of the mystery,
-he could not but be conscious that every new discovery he had made
-seemed to add to its difficulty. What he wanted now was a tangible
-clew, however slight, which he could follow up in a practical way.
-Little did he dream that everything was working in his favor, and that
-time and circumstance were leading him to the clew he was so anxious
-to possess.
-
-"There was one thing in the story related to him by Sophy which
-greatly perplexed him. The child could not have assisted him to a
-satisfactory solution, for he was satisfied that she had disclosed all
-she knew of the events of the night, and he therefore had made no
-mention to her of the perplexing point. It was this. Sophy had told
-him that while she was sitting on the stairs with her eyes closed she
-heard the man unlock the street door and take the chain down. That
-being so, the question remained--how had he got into the house?
-Scarcely through the street door, for it was hardly likely that,
-having got in through it, he would have locked it and put the chain
-up, and thus created for himself a serious obstacle to his escape in
-the event of his being discovered before he had accomplished his work.
-Our reporter could think of no satisfactory answer to this question,
-and it had to take its place among other questions to which, in the
-present aspect of the case, no answers could be found.
-
-"He had turned on to the Embankment by way of Westminster Bridge, and
-passing under the arch of the Charing Cross Railway bridge, was
-proceeding onward toward Waterloo when he saw something that caused
-him to quicken his steps in its direction. Fate or chance was about to
-place in his hands the link for which he was yearning--a link but for
-which the mystery of M. Felix might forever have remained unravelled."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XV.
-
-A SINGULAR ADVENTURE ON THE THAMES EMBANKMENT.
-
-
-"He saw before him, at a distance of some thirty yards, as nearly as
-he could judge, the figure of a woman standing upon the stone ramparts
-of the Embankment, close to Cleopatra's Needle. The light of a lamp
-was shining upon her form, which was stooping forward in the direction
-of the river.
-
-"It had already been mentioned that the tide on this night was
-unusually high, and our reporter was apprehensive, from the position
-of the woman, that she was contemplating suicide. If so she had chosen
-a favorable moment to put her sad design into execution, for there was
-no person near enough to prevent her had she been expeditious. She
-looked neither to the right nor to the left, but down before her on
-the rolling river. Our reporter hastened his steps, in fear least he
-should be too late to arrest her purpose.
-
-"Unseen by them another man was approaching the woman, but not so
-rapidly as our reporter. This was a policeman who had emerged from the
-shadows of the Waterloo steps on the opposite side, and as, when he
-started, he was nearer to her than our reporter, they both reached her
-at the same moment. Each becoming aware of the other's presence, they
-would have shown recognition of it had not their attention been
-diverted by a sufficiently startling proceeding on the part of the
-woman. Still unaware that there were witnesses of her movements, she
-leaned forward at a perilous angle, and with all her strength threw
-some heavy object into the water. The force she used destroyed her
-balance, and she would have fallen into the river had not the
-policeman and our reporter laid violent hands upon her, and dragged
-her from her dangerous position on the ramparts.
-
-"'Just in time, thank God!' said our reporter.
-
-"'Just too late,' retorted the policeman. 'A moment sooner, and we
-should have saved her baby.'
-
-"'Her baby!' exclaimed our reporter.
-
-"'Yes. Didn't you hear the poor thing give a scream?'
-
-"'No.'
-
-"'You must be hard of hearing. First a sob, then a scream. Now, then,
-own up!'
-
-"He shook the woman roughly, but obtained no response from her. She
-was cowering to the flagstones, her face hidden in her hands.
-
-"Our reporter is not the stamp of man to stand idly by while the life
-of a human being is in danger. He stripped off his coat and waistcoat
-with the speed of lightning.
-
-"'That's your sort,' said the policeman. 'I can't swim; you can.'
-
-"'Not a stroke,' said our reporter, and was about to plunge into the
-river when the woman sprang up and caught his arm.
-
-"'For God's sake,' she said, trembling with agitation, 'do not risk
-your life for nothing.'
-
-"'Your baby is drowning,' cried our reporter. 'Let me go!' He strove
-vainly to extricate himself from her clutch.
-
-"'You shall not, you shall not!' said the woman. 'As Heaven is my
-judge, I have done no wrong. I have no baby; I came out alone. You are
-a gentleman. By all that is sacred I speak the truth!'
-
-"'The policeman says he heard a scream.'
-
-"'He is mistaken. I beg you to believe me. Oh, unhappy woman that I
-am? Have I not one friend in all the wide world?'
-
-"It was not alone her words that carried conviction with them, it was
-her deep distress, and the evident sincerity with which she spoke.
-Moreover, now that our reporter had the opportunity of observing her
-closely, he saw that she was not of a common stamp. There was a
-refinement in her voice and manner which impressed him.
-
-"'I believe you,' he said, and slowly put on his waistcoat and coat.
-
-"'The chance is lost,' said the policeman, with a scornful smile; 'the
-poor thing is dead by this time. A put-up job, my man. I wasn't born
-yesterday.'
-
-"He had noted the dialogue between the woman and our reporter, some
-portion of which had escaped him, and his suspicions were aroused. He
-was not entirely without justification. Seeing upon one side of her a
-policeman, and on the other side a gentleman, the woman, being
-undoubtedly of the better class, had gravitated naturally toward our
-reporter. Thus at once was established, without premeditation, a
-conflict of interests in the eyes of the policeman. He represented the
-Law, which is invariably more suspicious than sympathetic. Opposing
-him were two strangers who might be in collusion. Hunting in couples,
-one of either sex, was a common trick of the criminal classes, with
-which every policeman is familiar. The officer with whom we are
-dealing was not of an analytic turn; he jumped rather at conclusions
-than motives; therefore, he pronounced the verdict first and examined
-the evidence afterward, or left it to others to examine. All that he
-was honestly concerned in was the performance of his duty.
-
-"'Did you not hear her say,' said our reporter, 'that she was alone,
-and no baby with her?'
-
-"'I heard something of the sort,' replied the policeman, candidly,
-believing it is another matter. 'I believe in my own ears. Are you a
-confederate of hers?'
-
-"Our reporter laughed, and his laugh strengthened the policeman's
-suspicions and excited his ire.
-
-"'Perhaps you will both deny,' he said, 'that something was thrown
-into the river.'
-
-"'I certainly heard a splash,' said our reporter, and he looked at the
-woman for confirmation, but she said nothing.
-
-"'We'll fish it up, whatever it is,' said the policeman. 'If it isn't
-a baby--which I say it is, as I heard it cry--it's stolen property.
-Pretty nigh as bad.' So saying, he blew his whistle.
-
-"The sound terrified the woman; she clung to our reporter.
-
-"'What need is there to summon assistance?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'I know what I'm up to,' replied the policeman. 'I'll trouble you to
-come to the police station.
-
-"'I intend to do so. Are you going to charge this lady?'
-
-"A grateful sob escaped the woman, produced by the reference to her as
-a lady no less than by the considerate tone in which it was made.
-
-"'If you're particularly anxious to know,' said the policeman, 'I am
-going to charge you both.'
-
-"Much amused, our reporter asked, 'What do you charge her with?'
-
-"'First, with drowning her baby; next, with attempting to commit
-suicide.' He paused in the middle of the sentence to blow his whistle
-again.
-
-"'And what is your charge against me?'
-
-"'Aiding and abetting. Come,' he said to the woman, putting his hand
-under her chin and attempting to raise her face to the light, 'let me
-have a look at you. A hundred to one I've seen you before.'
-
-"He was so rough that the woman cried out.
-
-"'Be very careful,' said our reporter, in a warning tone. 'If you use
-violence it will go against you.'
-
-"'It will go against you,' retorted the policeman, who was losing his
-discretion.
-
-"'That is to be seen,' said our reporter, gravely, 'when we reach the
-police-station. Meanwhile, you are acting outside your right in
-compelling this lady to look you in the face.'
-
-"'Very well,' said the policeman, surlily, beginning to be shaken by
-the temperate conduct of our reporter, 'I hear assistance coming; I'll
-wait.'
-
-"The measured tread of another policeman was heard in the near
-distance. Our reporter stood still, perfectly calm and self-possessed.
-
-"The woman, now sobbing bitterly, drew her handkerchief from her
-pocket, and a piece of paper, which she undesignedly and unwittingly
-drew forth with it, fluttered to the ground. Only the sharp eyes of
-our reporter saw it, and he stooped and picked it up. He glanced at it
-without attracting the attention of the policeman, and what he saw
-both greatly astonished him and influenced his future course with
-respect to the woman. He felt instinctively that he held in his hand a
-thread, however slight and slender, in the Mystery of Monsieur Felix.
-
-"Our readers will remember that in certain editions of the _Evening
-Moon_ we inserted an advertisement referring to the death of M. Felix,
-but lest the precise terms of that advertisement should be forgotten
-by them we reprint it here, to refresh their memory. The advertisement
-ran as follows:
-
-"'The Strange Death of M. Felix, in Gerard Street, Soho. Persons who
-had private or other interviews with M. Felix between the hours of
-eight in the morning and twelve at night on the 16th of January, or
-who are in possession of information which will throw light upon the
-circumstances surrounding his death, are urgently requested to call at
-the office of the _Evening Moon_, at any time after the appearance of
-this advertisement. Liberal rewards will be paid to all who give such
-information, and the best legal assistance is offered by the
-proprietors of this journal, entirely at their own expense, to all,
-who may desire it and who are in any way interested in M. Felix's
-death.'
-
-"Up to the present time the advertisement had been productive of no
-result of any value. A great many persons had called at our office
-respecting it, but they knew nothing that was likely to be of
-assistance to us; their aim was to obtain money without giving an
-equivalent for it. That the step we took, however, was not useless was
-proved by what our reporter now held in his hand. It was the
-advertisement, cut carefully from our journal, pasted upon a sheet of
-note-paper, and framed, as it were, in clear lines of red ink. Surely
-it was not without reason that the woman had been thus painstaking
-with this extract. Surely there must be some connecting link between
-her and M. Felix, whose death and subsequent disappearance were still
-enveloped in mystery. Thus thought our reporter the moment his eyes
-fell upon the advertisement.
-
-"The approach of the second policeman afforded him an opportunity of
-speaking to her concerning it. While the two policemen were talking,
-the second asking for information, the first giving it, he exchanged a
-few words with the woman.
-
-"'You have dropped something,' he said.
-
-"She put her hand hastily in her pocket and discovered her loss.
-
-"'I have it,' said our reporter.
-
-"'It is only a piece of paper,' said the woman; 'give it back to me.'
-
-"'You had better let me keep it,' he said. 'You will be charged and
-searched at the police-station----'
-
-"She interrupted him, saying, in a pitiful voice, 'Will they not let
-me go--oh will they not let me go?'
-
-"'They will not,' replied our reporter, 'and they are not to be
-blamed. They are merely doing their duty. You have acted in a way
-which throws suspicion upon you----'
-
-"'I have done nothing wrong,' she said, interrupting him again; and
-that she regarded him as being well disposed toward her was proved by
-her speaking in a low tone, notwithstanding her anguish of mind,
-'indeed, indeed I have not!'
-
-"'I believe you; they will not. I will not ask you what you have done;
-if you confide in me it must be of your own free will; but you may
-truly believe that I am desirous and willing to be your friend, your
-sincere and earnest friend. Something more; I may be able to assist
-you in a manner you little dream of. The paper you have dropped is an
-advertisement from the _Evening Moon_, referring to the death of M.
-Felix.' She shivered at the name, raised her eyes, and dropped them
-again. This gave him an opportunity of observing that they were of a
-peculiar and beautiful tinge of blue, and the soft pathetic light they
-shed touched him deeply. 'Be patient a moment,' he continued; 'I must
-have a little private talk with you before we get to the police
-station, and I think I can manage it.' He had seen and recognized the
-face of the second policeman, who now, as he came forward, greeted him
-respectfully. 'Your comrade here,' said our reporter, jocosely,
-'believes that I am engaged in some unlawful conspiracy. You know who
-I am. Set his mind at rest.'
-
-"It happened fortunately that this second policeman and our reporter
-were old acquaintances, and had spent many an hour together in the
-still watches of the night. A few words whispered in the ear of the
-first policeman settled his doubts.
-
-"'I beg your pardon, sir,' he said, apologetically, 'but mistakes will
-happen in the best regulated families.' A remark which denoted that
-the worthy and zealous officer was not deficient in a sense of humor.
-
-"'A mistake has happened here,' said our reporter. 'I presume that you
-do not now intend to charge me with aiding and abetting.'
-
-"'Not a bit of it, sir. It was only my joke.'
-
-"'You have a queer way of airing your jokes, but I cannot reasonably
-complain; you had grounds for suspicion. And now about this lady.'
-
-"'Don't ask me to neglect my duty, sir. I must take her to the
-station.'
-
-"'She denies that she has done anything wrong.'
-
-"'They all do that, sir.'
-
-"'Do you persist in your charges against her?'
-
-"'Well, sir, about the baby I won't be sure now; it's as likely as not
-I was mistaken in thinking I heard it scream; but we'll try to prove
-the rights of the thing. I don't give way, sir, in my belief that she
-attempted to commit suicide.'
-
-"'I am a properly qualified solicitor,' said our reporter, 'and I shall
-appear for her, and shall also offer myself as an eye-witness of the
-affair. I shall support her in her statement that she had no intention
-of committing suicide.'
-
-"'I can't help that, sir,' said the policeman, with respectful
-pertinacity, 'I can only report what I saw, and I must do my duty. She
-nearly fell into the river; I hope you won't deny that, sir.'
-
-"'I will not deny it. You are speaking now quite fairly and
-temperately, and I hope to bring you round to my view.'
-
-"'To let her off, sir?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'I can't do it, sir.'
-
-"'But listen to reason. She accidentally lost her balance----'
-
-"'And,' interposed the policeman, 'would have fallen in had it not
-been for us.'
-
-"'That does not establish a charge of an attempt at suicide.'
-
-"'It must be looked into, sir,' said the policeman, stiffly.
-
-"'It seems to me,' said the second policeman, 'that it all depends
-upon what it was she threw into the river.'
-
-"Without asking permission our reporter stepped aside with the woman,
-and spoke privately to her. She had listened to the conversation in an
-agonized state of mind, turning her eyes alternately to her accuser
-and her defender with the air of one who was being hunted down.
-Helpless, despairing innocence was depicted in her face, and the
-favorable impression she had produced upon our reporter was
-strengthened. Had she not in his belief been connected in a manner yet
-to be explained with the Mystery of M. Felix he would have been
-inclined to champion her cause, and because of this belief he would
-have ranked himself on her side even if he had supposed that the
-charges brought against her were true. Without a shade of doubt she
-was a lady; her attire, although it bore no indications of worldly
-prosperity, her manners, her speech, unmistakably proclaimed the fact.
-She was apparently a little over forty years of age, and there were
-traces of long-endured suffering on her features. In her youth she
-must have possessed remarkable beauty, which even now could not fail
-in attracting attention; her figure was slight and graceful, her
-movements gentle and refined. These signs rendered her appearance at
-such an hour and under such circumstances sufficiently perplexing, but
-our reporter was satisfied to trust to the future for a satisfactory
-explanation of what at present, to a vulgar mind, was full of
-suspicion.
-
-"In stating that he was a properly qualified solicitor our reporter
-stated a simple fact. He had served articles in a solicitor's office,
-and had abandoned that profession for one which possessed greater
-attractions for him.
-
-"It occurred to him to test her, and he addressed her in French. She
-replied to him in the same language, but with an accent which put his
-to the blush. We shall, however, give what passed between them in our
-native tongue, for the sake of perfect clearness, and in the interests
-of those of our readers who may not be familiar with any other
-language than their own.
-
-"'You have not deceived me?' he asked.
-
-"'Indeed, indeed, I have not,' she replied, earnestly. 'I have spoken
-the truth. You will not desert me?'
-
-"'I will not. You may count upon me as a sincere friend; but you must
-confide in me implicitly. I will serve you honestly and faithfully.
-You have met with misfortunes?'
-
-"'Great misfortunes. I am a most unhappy woman!'
-
-"'Have you any other friends in London in whom you would confide in
-preference to me? If you have and will give me their names and
-addresses, I will bring them to you.'
-
-"'I have no other friend in this city in whom I can confide.'
-
-"'Not one who can assist you?'
-
-"'Not one.'
-
-"'Are you quite unknown here?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'But surely you are not entirely alone?'
-
-"She made an effort to speak, but words failed her; she raised her
-imploring eyes to his face.
-
-"'Strive to master your agitation,' he continued, 'and bend your mind
-upon the position in which you stand. You heard what the policeman
-said?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Will you tell them what it was you threw into the river?'
-
-"'I cannot tell them. It might injure--it might ruin me.'
-
-"'Was it property of your own?'
-
-"'It was.'
-
-"'To which no person but yourself has a claim?'
-
-"'It was my own; no person but myself has a claim to it.'
-
-"'The loss or recovery of which would injure no one?'
-
-"'No one but myself.'
-
-"'Now, consider. You will be taken to the police station and charged.'
-
-"'But they will let me go until to-morrow?'
-
-"'They will not. If I, a stranger to you, offered bail, it would not
-be accepted. You will be locked up till the morning.'
-
-"'My God!' cried the woman. 'What will become of her--oh, what will
-become of her?'
-
-"'Of her? Then you are not entirely alone in this city?'
-
-"'I have a daughter,' she said, in a low, despairing tone. 'She will
-be distracted if I do not return to her to-night.'
-
-"'As I have explained to you, that is out of the question. If you are
-not unwilling, I will go to her and explain matters.'
-
-"'No, no!' cried the woman. 'She must not know the truth! What have I
-done that this misfortune should fall upon me?'
-
-"'I feel deeply for you. If I knew how I could inspire you with
-confidence in me I should be glad. Look at me and say whether you
-cannot trust implicitly in me.'
-
-"They gazed at each other in silence for many moments. The policemen,
-standing apart, did not interrupt them, and as they spoke in French,
-could not have understood if they had heard what was passing. The
-woman put out her hand timidly.
-
-"'I will trust you,' she said. 'It may be that the good Lord has sent
-me a friend when I most needed one. By the memory of all that is
-dearest to you, do not betray me!'
-
-"'I swear solemnly that I will not.'
-
-"The pressure of her hand seemed to instil faith in her. All the
-earnestness of her soul was expressed in the words she now spoke.
-
-"'I give into your charge what is infinitely more precious than
-life--my honor, and my dear daughter's happiness. May Heaven so deal
-by you as you deal by me!'
-
-"'I am content,' said our reporter.
-
-"At this juncture the first policeman thought he had allowed
-sufficient time for a decision.
-
-"'Time presses, sir,' he said.
-
-"'Then we had better go to the station,' said our reporter, 'if you
-persist in your ridiculous charge.'
-
-"'There is nothing else for me to do, sir,' said the policeman.
-
-"'You have no objection to my walking by the side of this lady,
-keeping yourself out of hearing. I wish to receive instructions from
-her.'
-
-"'Give me your word, sir, that there will be no attempt at escape.'
-
-"'There shall not be.'
-
-"'It's all right,' said the second policeman, 'you may take the
-gentleman's word for a good deal more than that. You won't want me.'
-
-"He left them, and our reporter and the woman, preceded by the
-policeman, who occasionally looked over his shoulder to see that they
-were following him, walked to the Bow Street Police Station."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVI.
-
-AT THE BOW STREET POLICE STATION.
-
-
-"'We have but little time for uninterrupted conversation,' said our
-reporter, still speaking in French, 'and must make the best of it. At
-the station we shall not be private, as we are now. An explanation is
-due from me first. I am, as you have heard, a properly qualified
-solicitor, and can therefore defend you legally, although at present I
-see little to defend. But the fact that I am your authorized legal
-adviser should strengthen your confidence in me, for whatever
-information of a secret nature I receive from you I am bound
-professionally to respect. You see, therefore, that your interests are
-safe in my hands.'
-
-"'I am truly grateful to you,' said the woman.
-
-"'Intended for the Law,' continued our reporter, 'I do not follow it
-as a profession. I am a journalist, engaged upon the _Evening Moon_.
-You start. The fact of my being so engaged should still further
-increase your confidence in me. Now, perhaps, you can understand why I
-am so much interested in the advertisement cut from our paper which
-you carry about with you. May I accept it that you have read what has
-been published in the _Evening Moon_ concerning the death and strange
-disappearance of M. Felix?'
-
-"'I have read all that has appeared in the paper,' said the woman, who
-was paying the closest attention to what he was saying,
-
-"'Thank you for the frank admission. To my hands has been entrusted
-the task of clearing up this strange affair, and of bringing it
-forward to the full light of day. That is only a portion of my
-mission. I have taken it upon myself to so sift the matter to the
-bottom, that, if any innocent person has been wronged, his innocence
-shall be made clear, and also to punish the guilty. Where there is
-mystery there is generally crime, and where there is crime the
-presumption is that innocent beings have been brought to sorrow.
-Whether right Or wrong, I have the firmest conviction that there is
-some story of wrong-doing underlying this mystery, and if I am
-right--which time and good fortune can alone establish--this
-wrong-doing must have inflicted suffering upon innocent persons. In
-opening my mind to you upon these issues I may be, in your estimation,
-speaking at random of details of which you are ignorant, and indeed of
-details which exist only in my imagination, and have no foundation in
-fact; but I take the chance of that, believing that no harm can be
-done by a perfectly open confession of the motives which are urging me
-on in the elucidation of a mystery which has caused, and still is
-causing, a great deal of excitement. You will now understand why the
-discovery surprised me that you should have taken the trouble to so
-carefully preserve the advertisement which slipped from your pocket.
-It would scarcely have been done by one whom it did not in some way
-concern, and it remains to you to enlighten me upon this point. Let me
-assure you that the advertisement was inserted in good faith, and that
-its terms will be scrupulously observed. Legal assistance is offered,
-and will be given, and money will be spent if any good purpose can be
-served by it. That is all I have time to say in explanation of the
-interest, to you in all probability the singular interest, I have
-taken in our meeting to-night. The whole of this evening I have been
-engaged in following up a clew connected with the disappearance of the
-body of M. Felix, of which, as you read the _Evening Moon_, you are
-doubtless aware.'
-
-"'Yes,' said the woman, 'I have read of it.'
-
-"'I am on the track, and I venture to affirm that I shall eventually
-succeed in my purpose. I have already more than one ally. May I hope
-that I have gained another?'
-
-"'I do not know,' said the woman, and though they were walking now
-through unlighted spaces and he could not see her face, our reporter
-divined from her broken tones that she was crying. 'I cannot say. All
-is dark before me; there is not a star in the future to light me on my
-way.'
-
-"'Do not give up hope,' said our reporter. 'I am by your side to help
-you. You and your daughter, two women, alone in London as I
-understand, without a friend, can do very little, but an earnest,
-willing man, who has influence and means to back him up, may do much.'
-
-"In his sincere sympathy our reporter pressed the woman's arm, and she
-uttered an exclamation of pain.
-
-"Have I hurt you?' he asked, hurriedly.
-
-"'My arm has been injured,' replied the woman, biting her lip so that
-she should not repeat the cry; 'it has been cut to the bone.'
-
-"'I am very sorry. Is it your left arm?'
-
-"'Yes.'
-
-"'Was it recently done?--but I beg your pardon for questioning you so
-closely.'
-
-"'You have the right to question me. It was done a few days ago.'
-
-"'You are unfortunate in more ways than one.'
-
-"'Truly, truly,' sighed the woman. 'Your voice, your words are kind,
-but I can think of nothing but my dear child. She is waiting for me,
-expecting me, listening for my footsteps on the stairs. If I could
-escape--if I could get away unseen!'
-
-"'You must not dream of it; you would plunge yourself into deeper
-trouble; and my word is pledged.'
-
-"'Yes, yes, I forgot; I am ungrateful.'
-
-"'I will do all I can for you at the Police Station; if it is
-possible, you shall in a few minutes go to your daughter; but I must
-not disguise from you the chances are very small.'
-
-"'But you will try--you will try?'
-
-"'Yes, I will try; I will stand bail for you; I can do no more just
-now.'
-
-"'You have done much, more than I can repay. If they are cruel enough
-to detain me, how long shall I have to wait?'
-
-"'Till to-morrow morning. You will be brought up before a magistrate.'
-
-"'It is a terrible disgrace, a terrible, terrible disgrace! But they
-cannot punish me if I have done nothing wrong?'
-
-"'No, they cannot punish you unless they can prove something against
-you which will render you liable.'
-
-"'Can they upon suspicion?'
-
-"'Upon mere suspicion, no.'
-
-"'When I appear before the magistrate, will you be there?'
-
-"'You may rely upon me. I shall be there to represent you legally, as
-I am willing now to assist you privately. We are near the station.
-Have you nothing more to say to me?'
-
-"'Did you tell me that I should be searched at the station, or is it
-only my fear?'
-
-"'It is almost certain you will be searched.'
-
-"'They must find nothing upon me; they must not know who I am, or my
-daughter's happiness is wrecked.'
-
-"Hastily and stealthily she extracted from her pocket a key, a purse
-and a handkerchief, and slipped them into his hands. As hastily and
-stealthily he slipped them into his own pocket. The policeman had not
-observed the proceeding.
-
-"'Will you not require you handkerchief?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'I must do without it. My initials are worked upon it, and it might
-lead to my identification. They must not, they must not know!'
-
-"This remark would have seriously disturbed our reporter if he had not
-made up his mind to believe thoroughly, for the time being, everything
-the woman told him, and to leave it to the future to decide whether
-she was or was not deceiving him.
-
-"'Should I be detained,' said the woman, 'you will go to my daughter
-and assure her I am in no danger?'
-
-"'I will go with pleasure.'
-
-"'You will not wait till morning? You will go at once?'
-
-"'I will go straight from the station.'
-
-"'Heaven reward you! Believe a suffering, much-wronged woman, sir, your
-confidence is not misplaced.'
-
-"They had not time to exchange another word; they were at the station
-door.
-
-"The Inspector was within, taking the night charges, and our reporter
-saw with satisfaction that it was an officer with whom he was
-acquainted.
-
-"'Good-evening, Mr. Jealous,' he said.
-
-"Inspector Jealous looked up. 'Hallo,' he said, 'what brings you
-here?'
-
-"'I come on behalf of this lady,' replied our reporter, 'against whom
-a policeman on duty on the Thames Embankment has a groundless charge
-to make.'
-
-"The Inspector's eyes wandered from our reporter to the lady. The
-policeman came forward and laid his charge in a temperate manner.
-Inspector Jealous listened in silence.
-
-"'I thought at first,' said the policeman, 'that it was a child she
-had thrown into the river, but the gentleman here thinks the other
-way, and he is as likely to be right as I am. Of her attempt at
-suicide I am certain.'
-
-"'That is a distinct charge,' said Inspector Jealous, dipping his pen
-in the ink. 'The bundle, whatever it is, can, I dare say, be
-recovered.' He called a constable, and gave him some whispered
-instructions; after which the man left the office. 'You can join him
-presently on the Embankment. Do you know the woman?' Pinned to
-formula, Inspector Jealous ignored our reporter's reference to her as
-a lady.
-
-"'Look up,' said our reporter to the woman; 'you have nothing to be
-ashamed of.'
-
-"Thus assured and comforted the woman raised her face, so that
-everyone in the office could see it clearly. Tears were hanging on her
-eyelids, and there was a piteous expression upon the trembling mouth.
-
-"'I don't know her,' said the policeman, honestly.
-
-"The constables in the office craned their necks, then shook their
-heads.
-
-"'She's no better than she ought to be! She's no better than I am! I'm
-as good as her any day of the week! Go to blazes, the lot of yer!'
-
-"The interruption came from a tipsy woman sitting on a bench.
-Inspector Jealous made a slight motion with his head, and the tipsy
-creature was taken away. Then Inspector Jealous turned to our
-reporter.
-
-"'I have nothing to say against the constable making the charge,' said
-our reporter; 'he has performed his duty conscientiously, only he is
-mistaken. I was an eyewitness of the affair, and I say that there was
-nothing thrown in the river that the lady had not a right to throw
-into it--the property being her own--and that she did not attempt to
-commit suicide. Under these circumstances I trust you will not subject
-her to the indignity of being locked up. She will appear in the
-morning; I will be her recognizance.'
-
-"Inspector Jealous nodded his head, and began to dissect.
-
-"'What was in the bundle?' he asked of our reporter.
-
-"'I have told you,' replied our reporter, feeling himself
-immediately at a disadvantage; 'her own property.'
-
-"'What was its nature?'
-
-"Manifestly this was a question which our reporter could not answer.
-
-"'You must excuse my asking,' said the Inspector, 'how you come to know
-it was her property?'
-
-"'She told me as much.'
-
-"This time, instead of nodding his head, Inspector Jealous shook it.
-
-"'I am afraid I cannot accept that. What is her name?'
-
-"Another question which our reporter could not answer.
-
-"'Where does she live?' pursued the logical and inexorable Inspector.
-
-"Our reporter felt the ground slipping from under him. These two or
-three simple questions were like sledge-hammer blows, and he was
-staggered.
-
-"'Surely,' he said, lamely parrying, 'you do not question my honesty
-in the matter?'
-
-"'Not for a moment,' said Inspector Jealous, with perfect good temper,
-'but you must see yourself how it stands. Here is a direct charge
-made----'
-
-"'And denied,' interposed our reporter.
-
-"'Exactly,' assented Inspector Jealous; 'but it is usual, you know, to
-deny such charges, and the authority to decide which side is right is
-not vested in me. There is not only the charge of attempted suicide,
-but there is that bundle that was thrown into the river. I am very
-sorry, but----'
-
-"He did not finish the sentence, but there was no misunderstanding his
-meaning.
-
-"'You must submit,' said our reporter to the woman, and then turned to
-Inspector Jealous. 'I may have a few private words with her, I
-suppose, out of hearing of the officers present?'
-
-"'Certainly,' replied Inspector Jealous, 'after I have entered the
-charge; and although I shall be compelled to detain her here, I
-promise to make her as comfortable as possible for the night.'
-
-"'Thank you,' said our reporter; 'I was about to ask you to do so.'
-
-"Only one charge was entered in the book, that of attempted suicide,
-the constable's suspicions as to the bundle the woman threw into the
-river being deemed of too vague a nature to frame an accusation upon.
-
-"'Your name?' asked the Inspector of the woman.
-
-"At this question she was seized with a sudden trembling; her white
-face grew whiter; her hands wandered feebly, aimlessly around, and had
-it not been for the support afforded her by our reporter, who held her
-up, she might have fallen insensible to the ground.
-
-"'Do not give way,' he whispered, 'think of your daughter.'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVII.
-
-THE SLEEPING BEAUTY.
-
-
-"These words strengthened her, and she drew herself up.
-
-"'Your name?' again asked Inspector Jealous.
-
-"'Mrs. Weston,' she replied, with a certain hesitation, and a sudden
-color in her face.
-
-"'Christian name?'
-
-"'Mary,' said the woman, with a similar exhibition of unreadiness and
-confusion.
-
-"'Mary Weston,' said Inspector Jealous. The equivocal signs were not
-lost upon him, but he made no comment. 'Married?'
-
-"'I decline to answer.'
-
-"Inspector Jealous merely nodded, and entered her reply in the book.
-
-"'Where do you live?'
-
-"'I will not tell you. You cannot compel me.' No defiance was
-expressed in her tone; it was imploring and appealing.
-
-"'No,' said Inspector Jealous, 'we cannot compel you.'
-
-"Then she was taken away to be searched, the report being that she had
-no property of any kind upon her person; 'not even a handkerchief,'
-was the remark.
-
-"'That is all,' said Inspector Jealous to our reporter. 'She will be
-brought up to-morrow morning. If you are going to appear for her,
-eleven o'clock will be early enough.'
-
-"With his consent our reporter then took the woman aside.
-
-"'Tell me now what I can do for you,' he asked.
-
-"'You will find my address on a card in my purse,' she replied. 'It is
-a long distance, two or three miles, think----'
-
-"'I don't mind that.'
-
-"'You need not knock or ring at the street door; the key I gave you
-will open it. But the passage will be dark when you enter it.'
-
-"'I have matches with me. I shall find my way all right.'
-
-"'Our rooms are on the first floor. My daughter will be awake. Do not
-alarm her by knocking loudly on the door.'
-
-"'I will tap very gently. Go on.'
-
-"'I do not know what you will say to her at first. A stranger--and at
-this late hour of the night----'
-
-"'Do not agitate yourself. I will use my best skill and all my
-kindness to assure her that I come as a friend.'
-
-"'I am sure you will, I am sure you will,' said the woman, taking his
-hand and kissing it. 'Heaven has been good to me to send me such a
-friend!'
-
-"'Look at it in that light. What shall I say to your daughter after her
-first surprise is over? Do you not think you had better give me a few
-lines to her?'
-
-"'Can I write them here?'
-
-"'I think so; I will ask the Inspector.'
-
-"He had no difficulty in obtaining permission, and was supplied with a
-sheet of note-paper and an envelope. Then the woman wrote:
-
-
-"'My Darling Child,--The gentleman who brings this is a friend, a true
-friend, and I send this note by his hand to allay your fears at my
-absence. I cannot explain now why I do not come home to-night, but I
-will do so to-morrow when I return. Do not expect me till the
-afternoon, and do not be in the least alarmed about me. All is well,
-and there is hope in the future. God bless you, my darling. With
-fondest love,
-
-"'Your Devoted Mother.'"
-
-
-"She gave the note to our reporter to read, and then put it in the
-envelope. On the envelope she wrote simply the name, 'Constance.'
-
-"'She will be certain to question me,' said our reporter.
-
-"'You have only to tell her that I desired you to say nothing, and
-that I wished to have the pleasure myself of communicating good news
-to her upon my return to-morrow. That will satisfy her. She loves me,
-has faith in me. Good news! Alas, alas!'
-
-"'Keep up your courage. They will treat you kindly here for my sake,
-and you will see me in the morning. The few hours will soon pass.'
-
-"'It will seem an eternity.'
-
-"Feeling that it would be useless to prolong the interview, and
-anxious to go upon his errand, our reporter bade her good-night with a
-friendly pressure of the hand, commended her to the care of the kind
-Inspector, and left the station. He walked a little way into the
-Strand before he stopped to look at the card in the woman's purse; had
-he done so in Bow Street, a policeman might have seen him and reported
-the action, as he had just left the police station. By the light of a
-street lamp he read the address, 21 Forston Street, Kentish Town.
-There was no name on the card, but as there was no other writing in
-the purse he knew that this must be the address to which he was to go.
-He hailed a cab, and bade the man drive quickly.
-
-"His compulsory examination of the purse had led to a knowledge of its
-contents--a small key and two pounds four shillings in gold and
-silver, in addition to the card. He thought himself justified in
-looking at the handkerchief which the woman had given him. It was of
-fine cambric, and in one corner were the initials E. B. According to
-the woman's statement, these were the initials of her name which she
-wished to keep from the eyes of the policeman, so that they might not
-lead to her identification. Then the name she gave to Inspector
-Jealous was false; she was not Mary Weston.
-
-"This discovery would have damped the ardor of a less sympathetic and
-enthusiastic man than our reporter, and would have instilled in him a
-feeling of distrust. But our reporter is made of exceptional stuff,
-and the discrepancy did not weaken his faith in her. She had been
-frank with him; she had told him that she desired to keep her name
-from the knowledge of the police; the hesitation with which she had
-given the false name in the police station proved that she was not an
-adept in duplicity; and in addition, his brief association with her
-had inspired him with so much pity and confidence that it would have
-needed stronger evidence to shake him. The longer he thought of her,
-the firmer was his conviction that she was a lady of gentle culture,
-who had by some strange means been thrown into a cruel position, in
-which she had suffered some deep wrong. This in itself might not have
-been powerful enough to induce him to champion her cause, but what
-wooed and fixed him irresistibly was the strong impression that there
-existed between her and M. Felix a link which, found, would lead to
-the clearing up of the mystery.
-
-"As the cab drew up at 21 Forston Street, Kentish Town, our reporter
-looked at his watch. It was two o'clock." Paying the cabman and
-dismissing him, our reporter paused a moment to consider his position
-and its surroundings.
-
-"The street was very quiet; not a soul was visible. The houses in it
-struck the mean between rich and poor; some were two, some were three
-stories in height, and the rents (our reporter is a judge in such
-matters) would vary between forty and sixty pounds a year. This was
-sufficiently respectable, and he was pleased that his errand had not
-landed him in a poorer locality.
-
-"But two o'clock in the morning. A strange hour to present himself for
-the first time, and under such suspicious circumstances, to a young
-lady waiting in anxious suspense for the return of her mother. It must
-be done, however, and the sooner done the better. He took out the
-latch key, opened the street door, closed it behind him, and stood in
-the dark passage. He did not wait now; he knew that he must go
-straight on with his task. Therefore he lit a match, and by the aid of
-its light made his way to the first floor landing. There were two
-doors, one a side door which he supposed led to the smaller room, the
-other a larger door facing him, through the crevices in which he saw
-the gleam of a lamp or candle. He knocked gently, and waited, holding
-in his hand the purse, the latch key, the handkerchief, and the letter
-which the woman had given him.
-
-"Expedition now did not rest with him; it rested with the occupant of
-the chamber to which he desired admittance. But his gentle tapping,
-repeated again and again, met with no response. What should he do? To
-continue tapping, or to knock aloud, would arouse other inmates, and
-would subject him to an awkward examination. There was nothing for it
-but to try the handle. It turned in his hand, and the door was open.
-
-"Still he paused upon the threshold, and said in his softest tones,
-'Miss Constance! Miss Constance!' He received no reply, but heard a
-gentle breathing. Boldly he entered the room, and pushed the door
-behind him, but did not quite close it.
-
-"There was a lamp alight on the table, and before it a book, the pages
-of which were divided and held apart by a miniature in a gold frame.
-Leaning back in a chair, one arm hanging listlessly down, the other
-resting on the table, the fingers just touching the miniature, was a
-young girl, the beauty of whose face was positively startling. Rather
-dark than fair, with features cut in the Greek mould, and long
-eyelashes veiling the sleeping eyes, with lips slightly parted, the
-picture was one upon which an artist would have loved to dwell. Her
-loosened hair, which was of a rich brown, hung upon her shoulders, but
-did not hide the exquisitely shaped ears; her hands were small and
-white, and the foot in a worked slipper which peeped beneath her dress
-was as beautifully formed. In silence our reporter gazed and admired.
-
-"Truly puzzled was he how to act in a dilemma so bewildering. It was a
-contingency for which he had not mentally provided. Here he stood, a
-stranger, at two o'clock in the morning, in the presence of a young
-and lovely girl whose eyes had never rested on his face. What on earth
-was he to do?
-
-"Her age could not have been more than seventeen or eighteen, and her
-likeness to the woman he had left in the Bow Street Police Station,
-left no room to doubt that she was her daughter, the Constance he had
-come to see. He coughed, and shuffled his feet, and shifted a chair,
-but these movements did not arouse the sleeping beauty. She slept
-calmly on, her bosom gently rising and falling as she breathed.
-
-"He ventured to approach close to the table. The book the young girl
-had been reading was Scott's 'Ivanhoe,' and the miniature lying on the
-page was that of a young man, presumably of the better class. There
-was something singular in the aspect of this young man's eyes; they
-were open, but there was a vacant expression in them which, upon
-examining them more closely, led our reporter to suppose that the
-possessor was blind.
-
-"As his movements were ineffective in arousing the young girl to
-consciousness, our reporter, without any distinct idea as to how he
-should proceed with his task, laid the purse, the key, and the
-handkerchief on the table close to the girl's hand. He retained the
-letter.
-
-"Every moment that passed increased the awkwardness of his position,
-and he now ventured to touch the sleeper's arm. She moved slightly in
-her chair, and shifted the hand that rested upon the table so that it
-reached the miniature. Her fingers closed upon it.
-
-"Again our reporter touched her arm, and in a low tone he called her
-by her name. The arm that had been hanging down was raised, and
-clasped his hand. 'Mamma!' she murmured, and she held his fingers with
-a tender clasp.
-
-"'Really,' thought our reporter, 'this is growing more and more
-perplexing.' Presently, to his relief, her fingers relaxed, and he
-drew his released hand away. By this time he felt that bolder measures
-were necessary. Retreating to the door he overturned a chair, and
-hastily stepped into the passage. The ruse was successful; the young
-girl started to her feet, and called out Mamma! Is that you?'
-
-"The answer she received was a tap at the door. Timidly she approached
-and opened it, but flew back into the room at the appearance of a
-stranger.
-
-"'Do not be alarmed,' said our reporter, standing on the threshold;
-'I come as a messenger from your mother.'
-
-"'As a messenger from my mother!' she stammered, gazing at him from a
-safe distance in evident distress, 'I do not understand you, sir. Do
-not come nearer to me, or I shall call for assistance.'
-
-"'I assure you there is no occasion,' said our reporter. 'I will not
-move a step into the room without your permission. Let me assure you
-that I feel my presence here as awkward as you must yourself; but I
-come, as I have said, from your mother, who has given me a letter for
-you. I am her friend, and she would be annoyed if you called
-unnecessarily for assistance. I sincerely apologize for my intrusion,
-but there was no help for it. Strange as is my appearance here, I come
-only in your mother's interests and yours.'
-
-"'Indeed it is strange,' said the young girl, 'and I cannot help
-feeling alarmed and distressed.'
-
-"'It is natural you should,' said our reporter, speaking, as he had
-spoken all through in his most respectful tone, as a gentleman would
-speak to a lady; 'but read your mother's letter. See--I throw it as
-close to you as I can, and if you wish me to enter after you have read
-it, I will do so; not otherwise, upon my honor as a gentleman.'
-
-"He threw the letter into the room, but it did not quite reach her.
-With timid steps, keeping her eyes fixed upon our reporter, the young
-girl reached the letter, and quickly retreated to the position she
-deemed safe, from which she read what her mother had written.
-
-"'You may enter, sir,' she said, 'but do not close the door.'
-
-"'I will leave it open,' said our reporter, and entered the room, but
-kept a little apart from the young girl, whom we will now call by her
-proper name, Constance.
-
-"'I have been waiting up for my mother's return, sir,' she said, 'and I
-cannot even now understand her absence. Where did you leave her?'
-
-"I may not answer your questions,' replied our reporter. 'It is at her
-own request I do not do so. She desired me to say that she wishes to
-communicate the good news to you herself when she returns to-morrow.
-You see my lips are sealed, and I cannot, as a gentleman, violate the
-confidence your mother reposed in me.'
-
-"'You have nothing more to say, sir, and will leave me now, I hope.'
-Then she murmured softly, 'Good news? Oh, if I dared to hope it!'
-
-"'I will leave you this instant,' said our reporter, and was about to
-do so when Constance's eyes fell upon the purse, and the key, and the
-handkerchief which he had deposited on the table.
-
-"'A moment, sir, I beg,' she said. 'How came these here? They are my
-mother's.'
-
-"'Yes, she gave them to me,' said our reporter, with pardonable
-duplicity, 'to hand them to you, in order that you might be satisfied
-I came from her, and that I am here only as a messenger.'
-
-"'Yes, I understand that, sir, but how came they here?'
-
-"'I must speak frankly,' said our reporter, smiling. 'After admitting
-myself into the house by means of the latchkey, I came upstairs and
-knocked at your door, but could not make myself heard. As I did not
-wish to arouse other people in the house I took the liberty of trying
-whether the door was locked. It was not, and I entered. Seeing you
-asleep I endeavored by some slight sounds to awake you, but did not
-succeed. Then I placed the articles on the table, and overturning this
-chair, retreated from the room, to lessen any alarm you might feel at
-my appearance. It is the truth, believe me.'
-
-"'I do believe you, sir, and I thank you for your consideration, but
-it's all very strange and distressing to me.'
-
-"'It would be stranger were it not. And now, having fulfilled my
-mission, I will take my leave.'
-
-"'Only one more question, sir,' said Constance, imploringly. 'My
-mother is in no danger?'
-
-"'She is not. You will see her to-morrow, and I hope myself to see you
-again, so that I may be justified in your eyes.'
-
-"'You are justified already, sir, and I beg you to pardon me for my
-doubts. I must wait till the morning. My mother will come, will she
-not, in the morning?'
-
-"'Does she not say in her letter that it will not be till the
-afternoon?'
-
-"'Oh, yes, I forgot, but I am confused and troubled. Will you see her
-before then?'
-
-"'Yes, I have an appointment with her.'
-
-"'Where, sir?'
-
-"'I must not tell you. Remember the injunction your mother laid upon
-me. I have no alternative but to respect it.'
-
-"'You are right, sir. Pardon me.' She held out her hand, and our
-reporter advanced to take it; but she withdrew it before he touched
-it. Even now her doubts and fears were not dispelled. 'Good-night,
-sir.'
-
-"'Good-night,' said our reporter, and turned to go.
-
-"But now it was his turn to linger. Something, in the room which he
-had not before observed attracted him. It was a simple article enough,
-a red silk handkerchief which might be worn around the neck.
-
-"'Good-night, sir,' repeated Constance.
-
-"'Good-night,' he said. 'Excuse me.'
-
-"Then he left the room. As he descended the stairs he heard the key
-turned in the door of Constance's room.
-
-"He did not call a cab when he reached the street; he had subject for
-thought, and like most men he could reflect with greater freedom and
-ease when his limbs were in motion.
-
-"A red silk handkerchief--merely that. Why should it have made so
-strong an impression upon him? The explanation might be far-fetched,
-but since he had pledged himself to the elucidation of the mystery of
-M. Felix, he had become microscopical in his observation of trifles
-which might by some remote possibility have a bearing upon it. On the
-night of the death of M. Felix a man was seen escaping from the house
-in Gerard Street in which M. Felix lived; and this man wore round his
-neck a red scarf. It was this coincidence which now occupied his
-thoughts. The possession of a red silk scarf was common enough;
-thousands of persons in London could produce such an article, and shop
-windows abounded with them; but this particular scarf, in connection
-with the exciting incidents of the night, and in its indirect relation
-to the advertisement from the _Evening Moon_, which Constance's mother
-had preserved with such care, suddenly assumed immense importance in
-the eyes of our reporter. His thoughts wandered to the scene on the
-Thames Embankment, and he felt himself becoming morbidly anxious to
-know what it was that Constance's mother had thrown into the river.
-That it had some connection with the mystery upon which he was engaged
-he had not the least doubt. Would its discovery, by throwing direct
-suspicion upon Constance's mother, assist or retard the progress of
-his mission? To-morrow would show, and he must await the event with
-patience. One reflection afforded him infinite satisfaction; his hand,
-and his alone, of all the millions of persons who had no absolute
-direct interest in it, was on the pulse of the mystery, and every step
-he took strengthened him in his resolution to run it to earth without
-the aid of the officials of Scotland Yard."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XVIII.
-
-HOW THE CHARGE WAS DISPOSED OF.
-
-
-"On the following morning, at half-past ten, our reporter presented
-himself at the Bow Street Police Court, and was allowed a private
-interview with Constance's mother, whom we must for the present
-designate by the name she had assumed, Mrs. Weston. She looked worn
-and pale, but beneath these traces of physical fatigue our reporter
-observed in her an undefinable expression of moral strength which
-surprised him. He had yet to learn, as our readers have, that this
-woman's delicate frame was ennobled by those lofty attributes of
-endurance and fortitude and moral power which in human history have
-helped to make both heroes and martyrs.
-
-"'You have passed a bad night,' said our reporter, commiseratingly.
-
-"'In one sense I have,' said Mrs. Weston, 'but hope and prayer have
-sustained me, and the Inspector has been very kind to me. Tell me of
-my daughter.'
-
-"He briefly related the particulars of his interview with Constance,
-but made no mention of the red silk scarf. She thanked him with great
-sweetness for the trouble he had taken, and said that she had been
-wonderfully comforted by the belief that she had providentially met
-with so true a friend.
-
-"'Time will prove,' said our reporter, 'that you are not deceived in
-your belief, but the manifestation of this proof will depend greatly
-upon yourself. To speak more precisely, in your hands appears to me to
-rest the power of accelerating events and of setting wrong things
-right. I am speaking partly in the dark, from a kind of spiritual
-intuition as it were, but when I strike a trail I have something of
-the bloodhound in me; innocence will find in me a firm champion, guilt
-I will pursue till I track it to its threshold.'
-
-"The words were grandiloquent, it is true, but it was scarcely
-possible to doubt their sincerity.
-
-"'In resolving to confide thoroughly in you,' said Mrs. Weston, gazing
-earnestly at him, 'I am risking more than you can possibly imagine. I
-am like a shipwrecked woman to whom a prospect of deliverance has
-suddenly appeared. I ask for no professions; I will trust you.'
-
-"'You will live to thank the chance which has thrown us together,'
-said our reporter. 'I do not hesitate to say that you have aroused in
-me a strange interest; I devote myself to your cause heartily, in the
-conviction that I am championing the cause of right and innocence.'
-
-"Tears sprang in her eyes. 'Shall I be released to-day?'
-
-"'I am confident of it. I want to say a word to the Inspector.'
-
-"To Inspector Jealous, who was standing near, he expressed his thanks
-for the kindness he had shown Mrs. Weston.
-
-"'Well, you see,' said the inspector, in the first place it was enough
-that she is a friend of yours; in the second place, it was enough that
-she is a lady. I can read signs; she does not belong to the classes we
-are in the habit of dealing with.'
-
-"'She does not,' said our reporter. 'The whole affair is a mistake,
-excusable enough on the part of the policeman, but regrettable because
-of the distress it has caused an innocent lady. I shall make no
-complaint against the policeman, on the score of over-officiousness;
-he was within his rights, and on abstract grounds is perhaps to be
-commended for his mistaken zeal.'
-
-"It was a wise and prudent speech, and the Inspector, already kindly
-disposed, conveyed it, before the case was called on, to the ears of
-the policeman who had made the charge. Assured that no attempt would
-be made by our reporter to bring him into disrepute, he toned down his
-evidence considerably, and himself assisted in the dismissal of the
-case, the brief particulars of which we extract from our police
-columns:
-
-"Groundless Charge.--Mary Weston, a woman of respectable appearance,
-was charged with attempting to commit suicide. Constable 382 C said
-that he was on duty on the Thames Embankment last night, about twelve
-o'clock, when he saw the woman standing on the stone parapet close to
-Cleopatra's Needle. Drawing near to her he heard a splash in the
-water, and the woman was falling forward when he seized her and pulled
-her away. A gentleman in court laid hold of the woman at the same
-time, and assisted him in preventing her from carrying out her
-purpose. The gentleman referred to, Mr. Robert Agnold, one of the
-reporters upon the _Evening Moon_, and also a properly qualified
-solicitor, said he appeared for the accused, who distinctly denied
-that she had any intention of committing suicide. He was himself a
-witness of the occurrence, and was convinced that the constable, who
-had behaved very well throughout the affair, had acted under a
-mistaken impression. The magistrate asked the constable what caused
-the splash? The constable replied something the accused threw into the
-river. The magistrate: 'Did you see what it was?' The constable: 'No.'
-Mr. Agnold: 'I should state that the accused admits throwing something
-into the river, and that in the act of doing so she overbalanced
-herself and so aroused the constable's suspicions. Whatever it was
-that she threw away, it was her own property and presumably valueless,
-and, although her action was open to an eccentric construction, it
-could go no farther than that. She had a perfect right to do what she
-pleased with what belonged to her.' The constable said that search had
-been made for it, but it had not been found. The woman went quietly to
-the station, but refused to give her address. She was not known to the
-police, and there was no evidence of her having been charged before.
-The magistrate, to the accused: 'Have you any trouble that urged you
-to put an end to your life?' The accused, whose speech was
-distinguished by great modesty and refinement: 'I have troubles, as
-other people have, but none that could impel me to an act so sinful.
-Nothing was farther from my thoughts than the attempt with which I am
-charged. I have done no wrong.' Mr. Agnold: 'Apart from my position as
-her professional adviser, I will answer for her in every way.' The
-magistrate: 'She is discharged.'
-
-"It was half-past twelve when Mrs. Weston and our reporter issued from
-the police court. They walked in silence toward Leicester Square,
-which, in contrast to the thronged thoroughfares immediately adjoining
-it, is at this time of the day comparatively quiet. Mrs. Weston looked
-around inquiringly.
-
-"'Do you know where we are?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'No,' she replied.
-
-"'Then you are not well acquainted with London?'
-
-"'Not very well.'
-
-"'This is Leicester Square. We are not far from Gerard street, Soho,
-where M. Felix was found dead.' A tremor passed through her, and the
-hand which rested upon our reporter's arm pressed it convulsively. He
-did not pursue the subject, but said, 'All's well that ends well. Your
-daughter will see you earlier than she expects. You will go straight
-home, I suppose?'
-
-"'Not straight. I am fearful of being followed. Heaven knows whether I
-shall be able to accomplish the task that lies before me, but whatever
-I do must be done without drawing notice upon myself. I will not
-disguise from you that I have innocently placed myself in a false
-position, and that I am in danger. I cannot explain my words at this
-moment; I am anxious to see my beloved child; but I must repeat what I
-have said to you before, that no sin or guilt lies at my door.'
-
-"'I understand that, and I will bide your time. You are afraid that we
-are being watched. I see no one in sight that can be dogging us, but I
-can provide against the remotest possibility if you will allow me to
-accompany you part of the way.'
-
-"She accepted his services gratefully, and he hailed a cab, the driver
-of which he directed to proceed in an opposite direction to Forston
-Street, Camden Town. When the cab had gone a couple of miles they
-alighted and walked the length of two or three streets, our reporter
-keeping a sharp lookout; then another cab was hailed, which drove them
-to Camden Town, about a quarter of a mile from Forston Street. They
-walked together to within fifty yards of No. 21, and then Mrs. Weston
-paused.
-
-"'You wish me to leave you here,' said our reporter. 'Shall I see you
-again soon?'
-
-"'This evening, at eight o'clock,' she replied, 'if you will call upon
-me.'
-
-"'I will be punctual.'
-
-"'I ought to tell you before you go,' she said, in a low tone, 'that
-the name I gave at the police station is not my own. I was justified
-in giving a false name; otherwise the knowledge of my--my disgrace
-might have reached my daughter.'
-
-"'You use a wrong term,' said our reporter, 'no disgrace whatever
-attaches to you. Good-by till this evening.'
-
-"He shook hands with her and walked briskly away. He had nothing of
-importance to attend to in the office of the _Evening Moon_, but he
-was expected to present himself there, and it was necessary that he
-should arrange to have the afternoon and evening free. This being
-settled, he turned toward Gerard Street, with the intention of calling
-upon Mrs. Middlemore, to ascertain whether anything fresh had
-transpired. He knocked vainly at the door, however, Mrs. Middlemore
-was not in the house. At the bottom of Gerard Street he encountered
-Sophy.
-
-"'Ah, Sophy,' he said, 'I have just been to your house.'
-
-"''Ave yer?' said Sophy, sidling up to him. 'Aunty ain't at 'ome.'
-
-"'So I discovered. Where is she?'
-
-"'At the perlice station,' answered the girl.
-
-"'Anything wrong?'
-
-"'I don't know.'
-
-"'But what has she gone for?'
-
-"'It's about Mr. Felix.'
-
-"'About Mr. Felix!' he exclaimed.
-
-"'So she ses.'
-
-"'But what is the meaning of it, Sophy?'
-
-"'I can't tell yer. All I know is I meets aunty with a face like
-pickled cabbage, running and blowing and 'olding 'er sides, and I arks
-'er what she's in sech a 'urry about. 'It's about poor Mr. Felix,' she
-ses, as well as she could speak; she was that out of breath she could
-'ardly git 'er words out. 'They've found out somethink, and they've
-sent for me to the perlice station. You go 'ome at once and wait till
-I come back.' 'Ow shall I get in?' I arks; aunty never gives me the
-door-key; ketch 'er doing that! 'Ow shall I get in?' 'There's a gent
-there,' ses aunty, as 'ill open the door for yer.' 'I goes and knocks,
-and as no gent comes and opens the door for me, I takes a walk.'
-
-"'Is that all you know, Sophy?'
-
-"'That's all. I don't keep nothink from you--not likely.'
-
-"'Can you tell me the name of the police station?'
-
-"'Oh, yes, I can tell yer that. Bow Street.'
-
-"Our reporter did not wait to exchange any further words, but hastened
-as fast as he could to the Bow Street Police Court. He was close to it
-when a constable accosted him.
-
-"'I was coming for you at the _Evening Moon_ office, sir,' said the
-constable. 'The Inspector sent me.'
-
-"'What does he want?' asked our reporter.
-
-"'They've fished up something from the river. He thought you would
-like to see it.'
-
-"'I should.'
-
-"As he entered the doors his coat was plucked by Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"'Ah, Mrs. Middlemore,' he said, hastily, 'I will speak to you
-presently. Don't go away; I will be out in a minute or two.'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XIX.
-
-WHAT WAS FOUND IN THE RIVER.
-
-
-"The Inspector conducted our reporter to a small room adjoining the
-court, in which the previous day's charges were still being tried, and
-pointing to a bundle on the table, said:
-
-"'This was found in the river, near Cleopatra's Needle. It has been
-opened and tied up again, in order that you might see it in its
-original form.'
-
-"'In what way do you suppose it concerns me?' asked our reporter, with
-an assumption of indifference, but moving nevertheless to the table
-and proceeding to undo the knots in the bundle.
-
-"'The presumption is,' replied the Inspector, 'that it was the bundle
-which Mrs. Weston, your client, threw into the river last night.'
-
-"'Being found,' contested our reporter, 'close to the place of the
-adventure, the more probable conclusion is that it was deposited in
-the river some distance off, the direction of which might be
-calculated from the flow of the tide.'
-
-"'Ordinarily, yes,' said the Inspector, 'but there are surroundings
-not favorable to such a conclusion. In the centre of the bundle you
-will find a large stone, which would prevent it from dragging far.
-Then again, it was discovered caught in a snag, and our men say it
-must have fallen plumb into its position.'
-
-"Our reporter shrugged his shoulders, and remarked, 'Evidence of that
-kind is in my opinion absolutely valueless in getting at the truth of
-a criminal charge.'
-
-"By this time he had untied the knots and the contents of the bundle
-lay exposed. They consisted of a large stone and a suit of man's
-clothes--trousers, coat, and waistcoat.
-
-"'Well?' he said to the Inspector.
-
-"'Well?' said the Inspector, in return.
-
-"'Do you seriously ask me to believe that a lady would deliberately go
-to a lonely part of the Thames Embankment at a late hour of the night,
-for the purpose of throwing trumpery articles like these into the
-river?'
-
-"'What else can you believe?'
-
-"'Anything but that,' said our reporter. 'In the first place it has to
-be proved that the clothes are hers--an absurd idea, to say the least
-of it. In the second place, what motive could she have had in
-disposing of them in such a manner?'
-
-"'You have hit a nail on the head,' said the Inspector. 'A motive she
-must have had, and a strong one, too. It is a singular affair, and I
-confess that I don't see my way through it. You see, the suit is new;
-being but a short time in the water, that is not hard to prove. It is
-of a rather good description of tweed, and must have cost thirty or
-thirty-five shillings. To my eyes it has been worn very little, not
-more than half a dozen times, perhaps not more than three or four,
-perhaps not more than once. Supposing it to have been worn once only,
-it must have been worn for a certain purpose, which being carried out
-rendered its possession dangerous. Therefore it must be got rid of.
-Now, why throw it into the river? Fifty shopkeepers in fifty
-neighborhoods would be ready to purchase it for six or seven
-shillings. Why not sell it, then? I answer, because it would not do
-for the suit to be still in existence; because the person who disposed
-of it might be traced. Then would come the question--"Why did you
-purchase a new suit of clothes for thirty shillings, and sell it
-immediately afterward for five?" But the clothes may still be traced
-to the original purchaser. It happens that the name of the firm of
-which it was purchased is stamped on the lining of each garment; we go
-to that firm and make inquiries. Unfortunately the firm does a very
-large business, and this will increase the difficulty of discovering
-the purchaser.'
-
-"'Your theories are very interesting,' said our reporter, 'but I do not
-see what they will lead to. Is there anything in the pockets?'
-
-"'Nothing; not so much as a scrap of paper, or a shred of tobacco, or
-a morsel of biscuit. I mention tobacco because whoever wore the
-clothes was not a smoker.'
-
-"'Is it possible to fix that?'
-
-"'Quite. Do you observe that the clothes are of a small size? They
-must have been worn, therefore, by a person of proportionate build. In
-these facts we have a starting-point.'
-
-"'A starting-point, I presume, in some important investigation.'
-
-"'There you have me,' said the Inspector, with a smile. 'I have been
-merely airing my views. I know of no case which can possibly be
-connected in any way with this suit of clothes, and we have too much
-to look after already without making much ado about nothing. If there
-were any grounds for supposing that it bore some relation to, say such
-a mystery as that of M. Felix, we should set to work at once, of
-course. No such luck, however. I sent for you really in the hope that
-you could throw a light upon the bundle of rubbish.'
-
-"'And you see that I cannot. I refuse to believe for one moment that
-it was thrown into the river by the lady I appeared for this morning.'
-
-"'Well,' said the inspector, 'there is no harm done.'
-
-"'Not the least. By the way, you made mention of the case of M. Felix.
-Has any progress been made in it?'
-
-"'We're not a step more forward than we were. Rather the other way, I
-should say, for in such cases every day in which an advance is not
-made marks a point backward. The strangest feature in M. Felix's case
-is what has become of the body. We have made every inquiry, and are
-still making them, all over the country, and can't find the slightest
-trace of it. Taking it altogether, it is about the strangest case in
-my experience.'
-
-"'And in mine,' said our reporter.
-
-"'Oh, yes,' said the inspector, with a keen look at our reporter, 'we
-know you have taken great interest in it, and I suppose have been
-about as successful as ourselves.'
-
-"'Just about as successful.'
-
-"'Your amateur detective,' observed the Inspector, with a certain
-scorn, 'considers himself a mighty clever gentleman, but he finds
-himself compelled in the end to take a back seat.'
-
-"'As I shall have to do,' said our reporter, good humoredly, 'but, as
-you say, there is no harm done; and you must remember that I am
-working in the interests of a great newspaper. I had an object in
-asking you whether you had made any progress in the case of M. Felix.
-A person of my acquaintance informed me that there was something being
-done in it to-day.'
-
-"'Whoever it was,' said the Inspector, 'must be dreaming.'
-
-"'Nothing has been found out?'
-
-"'Nothing.'
-
-"'And there is no inquiry in the police court relating to it?'
-
-"'None.'
-
-"'Thanks. Good-morning.'"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XX.
-
-MRS. MIDDLEMORE IS VICTIMIZED.
-
-
-"Outside the court-house our reporter found Mrs. Middlemore still
-waiting. He took her by the arm, and led her unceremoniously away.
-Stopping on the opposite side of the road, he said to her:
-
-"'Now, Mrs. Middlemore, what brought you here?'
-
-"'I was sent for, sir,' she answered.
-
-"'By whom?'
-
-"'By the magerstate.'
-
-"'Where is the paper?'
-
-"'What paper, sir?'
-
-"'The summons.'
-
-"'I ain't got none. The perlice orficer comes to me and ses, "Mrs.
-Middlemore," he ses, "you must go immediate to the Bow Street Perlice
-Station, and wait outside till yer called." "But what about?" I arks.
-"About Mr. Felix," he answers; "somethink's been found out, and they
-can't git on without yer. Yer'll have to wait a longish time per'aps,
-but if yer move away till yer called it'll be worse for yer." "But
-what am I to do about the 'ouse?" I arks. "Sophy's out, and there's no
-one to mind it." "I'll mind it," ses the perlice orficer, "and when
-Sophy comes back I'll let her in. Off yer go, and don't tell nobody at
-Bow Street what yer've come about. It's a secret, and the Government
-won't stand it being talked of. Yer'll be paid for yer trouble." So
-off I starts, and 'ere 'ave I been waiting for nigh upon two hours,
-and nobody's made a move toward me.'
-
-"'I've heard something of this,' said our reporter, pushing Mrs.
-Middle more into a cab, and giving the driver instructions to drive
-quickly to Gerard Street. It was not without difficulty he succeeded
-in this, for Mrs. Middlemore, with the fear of the 'Government' upon
-her, wanted to remain in Bow Street. 'I met Sophy before I came here,
-and she told me you had been sent for to the police Station. Now be
-quiet, will you? Have you not promised to be guided by me?'
-
-"'But the Government, sir, the Government! I shall be clapped in
-prison!'
-
-"'You'll be nothing of the sort. The Government and I are friends, and
-you are perfectly safe if you do as I tell you.'
-
-"'I must, I serpose, sir. There's nothink else for it, but I'm being
-wore to a shadder. If this goes on much longer I sha'n't 'ave a ounce
-of flesh on my bones. Yer sor Sophy, sir, did yer? Yer've been at the
-'ouse, then?'
-
-"'Yes, I have been at your house, but it was not there that I saw your
-niece. I met her in the street, and she informed me that you were at
-Bow Street Police Station.'
-
-"'What was the 'uzzy doing in the streets?'
-
-"'I can't say, but in the streets she was forced to remain.'
-
-"'Why, sir, the 'ouse was open to 'er. I met 'er and told 'er to go
-'ome and wait till I come back.'
-
-"'Exactly. And she did go, and knocked at the door, as I did, but she
-was as unsuccessful as I was. She did not get in.'
-
-"''Ow can that be, sir? The perlice officer was there, waiting to open
-the door for 'er. The lazy slut! She's been telling yer a parcel of
-lies.'
-
-"'How about myself, Mrs. Middlemore? Am I telling you a parcel of lies
-when I say that I knocked pretty loudly at your door, and that no one
-came to open it.'
-
-"'I wouldn't dispute your word, sir, but I can't make it out.'
-
-"'I can, and I will explain it to you presently, inside your house, if
-we can manage to get in. Here we are. Jump out.'
-
-"The cab being discharged, Mrs. Middlemore knocked and rang, but
-knocked and rang in vain.
-
-"'Allo, anty!' said Sophy, coming up. ''Ave they found Mr. Felix's
-body?'
-
-"''Ush, you 'uzzy,' said Mrs. Middlemore, clapping her hand on the
-girl's mouth. 'What do yer mean by being outside instead of in?'
-
-"'What do I mean?' retorted Sophy, with an air of great enjoyment.
-'Why, 'cause I couldn't git in. I knocked and knocked, jest as you're
-doing of now, but nobody answered.'
-
-"'I understood,' said our reporter to Mrs. Middlemore, 'that you
-generally carry your latchkey with you.'
-
-"'So I do sir, but I didn't 'ave it in my pocket when the perlice
-officer come; it was downstairs on the kitchen table. I wanted to go
-down and fetch it, but he wouldn't let me wait a minute. "If yer
-ain't quick," he said, "yer'll git yerself in trouble;" and he bundled
-me out of the 'ouse. That's 'ow it was, sir.'
-
-"'The question is,' said our reporter, 'how we are to get in. Is there
-a back way?'
-
-"'No, sir.'
-
-"'Then we must get in by the front door or window. The window will be
-the easiest. It is fastened inside in the usual way, I suppose?'
-
-"'Yes, sir.'
-
-"'The easiest plan will be for me to break one of the panes in such a
-manner as to attract as little notice as possible, and then put my
-hand through and undo the fastening. Then we can lift the sash, and
-Sophy can get in and unlock the street door for us.'
-
-"I'm game,' said Sophy, to whom any task of this kind was especially
-inviting.
-
-"Our reporter was about to put his plan into execution when Mrs.
-Middlemore clutched his arm. He instantly withdrew it.
-
-"'Of course, Mrs. Middlemore,' he said, coldly, 'it is your house, and
-I can't commit a trespass without your permission.'
-
-"'It ain't that, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, piteously. 'Sophy's a
-plucky little thing, and though I do give 'er a 'ard word now and
-then, I mean well by 'er, I do indeed, sir.'
-
-"'Yer a good sort, aunty,' said Sophy. 'I don't mind yer 'ard words,
-not a bit.'
-
-"''Old yer saucy tongue, and let me speak to the gentleman. Yes, sir,
-I mean well by Sophy, and I should never 'ave another minute's peace
-if anythink was to appen to 'er.'
-
-"'What do you think will happen to her if I do what I propose?'
-
-"'There's been one sudding death in the 'ouse, sir----.'
-
-"'Go on, Mrs. Middlemore. Don't stop in the middle of a sentence;
-finish what you have to say. Time is very precious just now.'
-
-"There's been one sudding death in the 'ouse, and now there's a man in
-there as won't or can't answer.'
-
-"'You fear he might be dead. If so, he cannot do Sophy any harm. Eh,
-Sophy?'
-
-"'Not 'im. It'd take more nor one dead man to scare Sophy. Jest you
-open the winder, and I'll be in like a shot.'
-
-"'Have I your permission now, Mrs. Middlemore?'
-
-"'But if he shouldn't be dead, sor. If he was laying in wait with a
-crowbar to knock Sophy on the 'ead----'
-
-"'Oh, you are beginning to think the man who called upon you was not a
-police officer, after all?'
-
-"'I'm beginning to have my doubts, sir.'
-
-"'I never had any. He is as much a police officer as you are. He told
-you a cock and bull story, and got rid of you. He was left in the
-house alone, and, more for your sake than my own, I want to find out
-what he has been up to. Decide quickly, please.'
-
-"'Do what you like, sir. You've been right in everything; but things
-are getting more and more mysterious.'
-
-"Without wasting more words our reporter pushed his elbow into a pane,
-and putting his hand through, undid the fastening and raised the
-sash. Sophy climbed in like a cat, and the next minute the street
-door was open. They entered and closed the door behind them.
-
-"'We will proceed systematically,' said our reporter. 'The man spoke
-to you in the passage here.'
-
-"'Yes, sir; and sed he'd wait.'
-
-"'Did you tell him to wait in the kitchen, or the parlor, or in any
-particular room?'
-
-"'No, sir; I left it to 'im.'
-
-"'Doubtless he has been into every room in the house. We will go into
-the kitchen first.'
-
-"Nothing had been disturbed there; the key of the street-door was on
-the kitchen table. Our reporter took it up and examined it closely.
-
-"'As I imagined,' he said. 'He has taken an impression of the key in
-wax.'
-
-"'What for, sir?' asked Mrs. Middlemore, in great trepidation.
-
-"'To enable him to enter the house again secretly, if he wished. When
-I am gone send for a plumber and a locksmith. Let the plumber put in
-the pane of glass, and have another lock put on the street door. Your
-visitor must have been in a hurry, or he would have cleaned this key
-more carefully.'
-
-"From the kitchen they went into the parlor, and apparently nothing
-had been disturbed there. Then they proceeded upstairs to the rooms
-occupied by M. Felix.
-
-"'Look carefully round,' said our reporter, 'and tell me if anything
-has been taken away.'
-
-"'Nothink, sir, that I can see.'
-
-"'But there may have been papers, or money, or something of which he
-wishes to obtain possession, secreted somewhere, and it is quite
-likely he may have found them.'
-
-"'I won't dispute you, sir. You see further than I do; but it don't
-seem as if anythink's been took.'
-
-"'Or moved? The ornaments on the mantelshelf--are they all there?'
-
-"'I don't miss one, sir.'
-
-"'But they have been shifted. Here is this vase; observe the circle
-upon which it stood. The vase has been lifted and put down again, but
-not on the exact spot it occupied when he took it up. This proves the
-object for which he came; he has been searching for something, and has
-probably found it and taken it away. How could you have been so
-foolish as to leave him in the house alone?'
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore sank helpless into a chair, and moaned. 'What else
-could I do, sir, what else could I do? It'll be the death of me, I
-know it will!'
-
-"'Not at all. It only proves that we have cunning persons to work
-against. I am all the more determined to track this mystery down.' He
-opened the bedroom door, and exclaimed, 'Here is direct evidence. The
-fellow has not been so careful in this room. Chairs have been moved,
-the bedclothes are disturbed. Why, where is the revolver?'
-
-"He referred to the revolver which he had found beneath the pillows,
-and which he had replaced. It had been abstracted. Inwardly he
-congratulated himself that he had not only taken a full note of the
-description of the weapon, but had also scratched the initial,'F.' on
-the metal. He took, out his pocketbook and turned to the page upon
-which he had made an entry.
-
-"'Listen to this, Mrs. Middlemore, and be thankful that you have a
-friend like me on your side: "A Colt's double action revolver,
-nickel-plated, six shots, No. 819." I can swear to that revolver, and
-moreover can swear that it was loaded. Are you satisfied now that you
-have been imposed upon, and that the man who visited you came upon a
-bogus errand?'
-
-"'Of course I am, sir, but what could 'ave been 'is objec'--'Oh, what
-could 'ave been 'is objec'?'
-
-"'That has yet to be discovered, and discovered it shall be. The
-abstraction of this revolver may assist us. The fellow does not dream
-that I have its description here, and that it can be sworn to. Surely
-he was not dressed as a policeman?'
-
-"'No, sir, he sed he was a private officer.'
-
-"'And you believed him?'
-
-"Again Mrs. Middlemore moaned, 'What else could I do, sir? what else
-could I do? He spoke that confident and easy that an angel would 'ave
-believed what he sed.'
-
-"'Don't be taken in again. Be just a little more careful in your
-dealings with strangers.'
-
-"'I will, sir, I will.'
-
-"'I don't see that I can do any good by remaining here. I should like,
-though, to take down from your lips a description of the man. You can
-give it to me, I hope?'
-
-"'I can, sir. A tall man, very thin, with a long thin face and thick
-black eyebrows.'
-
-"'Is that all?'
-
-"'All I can remember, sir.'
-
-"Our reporter wrote the words in his pocketbook, and asked, 'Can you
-tell me how he was dressed?'
-
-"'Only that he had dark clothes on.'
-
-"'You would know him again if you saw him?'
-
-"'I could swear to him, sir.'
-
-"'Come, that is a satisfaction. You can swear to the man, and I can
-swear to the revolver. Two direct pieces of evidence, if we can lay
-hands upon them.'
-
-"Sophy unexpectedly presented herself as an additional witness. 'I can
-swear to 'im too,' she said.
-
-"'Ah, Sophy, you are invaluable,' said our reporter.
-
-"'Didn't I say the slut was telling us a parcel of lies?' cried Mrs.
-Middlemore, making a movement as though she were about to fall upon
-the girl.
-
-"'Easy, Mrs. Middlemore, easy,' said our reporter, holding the
-housekeeper back. 'Let us hear what Sophy has to say.'
-
-"But Sophy, firing up, diverged a moment. 'Jest look 'ere, aunty,' she
-said, with spirit. 'Don't yer be so fast with yer sluts and yer
-'uzzies. I'm gitting tired of it, I am. I ain't told one lie yet, and
-if yer don't mind what yer about I'll keep my mouth shut.'
-
-"'No, Sophy, my girl,' said our reporter, 'you will do nothing of the
-sort. You will tell me all you know about this man.'
-
-"'Jest you make 'er be civil, then,' said Sophy. 'She does nothink but
-bully me day and night. She don't pay me no wages, and I ain't going
-to stand it.'
-
-"'Be reasonable Sophy,' said our reporter. 'Your aunt is worried, and
-you must make excuses for her.'
-
-"'Ain't I flesh and blood the same as she is?' continued the irate
-girl. 'I've a good mind to run away from 'er, that I am, and never
-come back no more. I'll do it. Tata, aunty, and thank yer for
-nothink.'
-
-"Had it not been for our reporter, she would have run out of the
-house. He laid his hand gently on her arm, and said:
-
-"'Don't forget your promise to me, Sophy.'
-
-"'I won't; I'll keep it, never fear. I'll wear myself to skin and bone
-for yer--yes, I will, if it'll do yer any good; but I won't be bullied
-by 'er no more.'
-
-"Sophy's threat terrified Mrs. Middlemore; the prospect of being left
-in the house alone was appalling, and she straightway fell to on
-humble pie.
-
-"'I'm sorry for what I sed, Sophy, and I beg yer parding, and I'll
-give yer sixpence a week. There, now, be a good gal. But yer did tell
-us yer couldn't git into the 'ouse.'
-
-"'No more I could. I knocked and rattled and kicked the door, and
-nobody come. 'Ow should I know that a tall, thin man, with a long face
-and thick black eyebrows, was the feller as took yer in?'
-
-"'You saw him, then?' said our reporter, observing that Mrs.
-Middlemore's apology and, the promise of sixpence a week had mollified
-the girl.
-
-"'Yes, I sor 'im before I got to the 'ouse, but I didn't know he come
-out of it. He was jest what aunty sed he was, and what's more, he 'ad
-large flat feet.'
-
-"'If you saw him again you could swear to him?'
-
-"'I'd pick 'im out of a thousan.' He run agin me, he did, and I sed,
-"Who are yer pushing of?" He didn't say nothink, but walked off forty
-to the dozen.'
-
-"'Looking as if he did not wish to attract notice?'
-
-"'Yes, he did look like that.'
-
-"'Was he carrying anything?'
-
-"'Not that I sor. He 'ad 'is coat buttoned up.'
-
-"'When he come to me,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'it was unbuttoned.'
-
-"'Proving that he took something away with him. Anything else Sophy?'
-
-"'Nothink else.'
-
-"'You and your aunt are friends now, are you not?'
-
-"'Oh, I don't bear no malice.'
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore kissed Sophy, and her anger was entirely dispelled.
-Once more our reporter, having made peace between them, attempted to
-leave, but Mrs. Middlemore said, imploringly:
-
-"'Would yer mind looking all over the 'ouse fust? He might be 'iding
-in it to murder us in the night.'
-
-"'Sophy saw him walking away,' said our reporter; 'but to satisfy you
-I will go into every room; and I'll do something more, if you are
-agreeable. Could you make me up a bed?'
-
-"'Yes, sir, I could, in any room you like.'
-
-"'M. Felix's bedroom will do for me. Don't look startled; I am almost
-as brave as Sophy. Put the bed straight, and I'll come some time
-between eleven and twelve o'clock, and pass the night here.'
-
-"Mrs. Middlemore was profuse in her thanks, and our reporter searched
-the house from top to bottom. Assuring the housekeeper that she was
-quite safe, he succeeded in making his escape."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXI.
-
-CIRCUMSTANTIAL EVIDENCE.
-
-
-"He had taken mental note of the name of the firm at which the suit of
-clothes which had been found in the river was purchased, and he went
-direct to that establishment in Tottenham Court Road. It happened,
-fortunately, that business was slack at that time of the day, and as
-customers were few and far between he had little difficulty in
-obtaining an interview with the manager, who, when he heard that our
-reporter was engaged upon the _Evening Moon_, gave him his entire
-attention.
-
-"'It's the smartest paper in London,' said the manager; 'I take it in
-regularly.'
-
-"'I should like you to treat the matter I have come upon as private
-between you and me. We are interested in a certain case which may or
-may not be made public, and in which, perhaps, you can assist us in an
-indirect way. If it prove to be so your establishment will get an
-advertisement for nothing.'
-
-"'We shall be glad to get it,' said the manager. 'A good word from you
-gentlemen of the press is always acceptable. I dare say you notice we
-advertise in your paper. Tell me what I can do for you.'
-
-"'I wish to ascertain, confidentially, under what circumstances a
-certain suit of clothes was purchased in your establishment. All the
-clothing you sell is marked with your name, is it not?'
-
-"'Yes, wherever we can get it in. There are some things that cannot be
-marked, but suits of clothes can; coats on the bands they are hung up
-by, waistcoats on the inner lining, trousers on the waistbands. What
-kind of a suit was it, and on what day was it purchased?'
-
-"'I cannot name the day exactly, but say within the last two or three
-weeks. It was a suit of tweed.'
-
-"'Can you identify the pattern?'
-
-"'Yes, if you will let me see samples of your stock.'
-
-"'I will show you what we have.'
-
-"They looked through a wonderful assortment of men's clothing, but our
-reporter saw none exactly similar to the pattern he wished to
-identify.
-
-"'Was it a suit for a large or a small man?' inquired the manager.
-
-"'For a small man; almost what you would call a youth's suit.'
-
-"'What you have seen is principally our new stock; we have some others
-which our salesmen endeavor to get rid of; we don't like to keep old
-stock too long on our hands.'
-
-"They went through other departments, and at length, on one of the
-upper shelves, our reporter pointed to a pattern he thought he
-recognized.
-
-"'That seems to be it. I shall know on a closer inspection.'
-
-"The suit was taken down, and our reporter saw that he had reached the
-first stage of his inquiry.
-
-"'This is the pattern,' he said.
-
-"'It narrows the matter,' said the manager. 'There is only this one
-suit left of this particular pattern. Three weeks ago there were two,
-so that within that time one has been sold. The salesman in this
-department is a man with a good memory.'
-
-"The salesman being called, our reporter explained what he wanted. The
-man considered a little, and said:
-
-"'I remember something of it, because of a circumstance. I will look
-up my sale book and compare it with the day book, to fix the date.'
-
-"He departed to make the investigation, and, returning, said:
-
-"'I can tell you all about it now. I served the lady myself.'
-
-"'The lady!' exclaimed our reporter.
-
-"'Yes, it was a lady who made the purchase. I served her first with a
-suit which she paid for, and which she brought back later in the day,
-saying it was too large. I changed it for one of this pattern.'
-
-"'Did she say for whom she required the clothes?'
-
-"'For a young man of about her own size. I supposed they were for a
-son or for a brother much younger than herself.'
-
-"'What should you judge her age to have been?'
-
-"'Forty or so.'
-
-"'I told you he had a good memory,' said the manager, with an
-approving smile at his salesman.
-
-"'You speak of her as a lady,' said our reporter. 'Are you certain she
-was one?'
-
-"'She spoke and conducted herself as one. She was not a workingman's
-wife, or she would have been more particular as to price, and might
-have haggled a bit, though all our clothes are marked in plain
-figures. I could see she wasn't used to purchasing men's clothing from
-the remarks she made. All that she was particular about was the fit.'
-
-"'What did she pay for the suit?'
-
-"'Fifty-five shillings. She handed me a five-pound note, and I gave
-her the change. Working women don't pay for their purchases in bank
-notes. Would you like the number of the note?'
-
-"'Can you give it to me?'
-
-"'Yes; we always take down the numbers.'
-
-"Again he departed and returned, and gave our reporter the number of
-the note, written on a bill-head.
-
-"'I am under a great obligation to you,' said our reporter. 'Is this
-suit you have left the only one of the same pattern you have in your
-establishment?'
-
-"'The only one, sir, and we are not likely to have any more.'
-
-"'I will take it with me.'
-
-"The account was made out, settled, and receipted, and our reporter,
-thanking the manager, left the shop--which, in accordance with modern
-ideas, was called an 'Emporium'--with the suit of clothes under his
-arm. He had a distinct motive in making the purchase. The inspector
-might take it into his head to make inquiries at the establishment,
-and our reporter had removed the only evidence of direct
-identification it could furnish.
-
-"It was now six o'clock. His appointment with Mrs. Weston in Forston
-Street was fixed for eight. He had an hour and a half to spare,
-sufficient time to take a chop and a pancake and to arrange his ideas.
-Selecting a quiet-looking restaurant, he took a seat at an unoccupied
-table, ordered his chop and pancake, and began to write in the
-convenient reporter's book which he always kept about him. He did this
-for clearness; he felt that he was approaching an important point in
-the mission he had taken upon himself, and that his interview with
-Mrs. Weston was destined to be pregnant in results. It would be of
-assistance to him to set things down in writing instead of trusting
-entirely to memory. The memoranda he made are now set forth:
-
-"Heads of circumstantial evidence which lead me to the belief that
-Mrs. Mary Weston, otherwise E. B. (initials worked in lady's
-handkerchief), is directly connected with the incidents which happened
-in Mrs. Middlemore's house in Gerard Street, Soho, on the night of the
-death of M. Felix.
-
-"First--On that night a man was seen making a hurried escape from the
-house at the moment (presumably) M. Felix was drawing his last breath.
-The only description, if description it can be called, that has been
-given of this man is that he wore round his neck a red scarf.
-
-"Second--Last night, or rather early this morning, on the occasion of
-my visit to Mrs. Weston's lovely daughter, I observed, before I left
-the young lady, a red silk scarf. Query: Might not this red scarf be
-the same as that which the man who escaped from the house in Gerard
-Street wore round his neck?
-
-"Third--There was blood on the floor of M. Felix's room. There was no
-wound on the body of M. Felix. The blood, therefore, proceeded from a
-wound inflicted on the person of M. Felix's visitor. My discovery in
-M. Felix's room of the dagger, with a handle resembling a twisted
-snake and a ruby in its head to represent an eye, led to the
-incontrovertible conclusion that it was the weapon with which this
-wound was inflicted. The blood stains on the blade prove it. M. Felix,
-snatching up the dagger, flung it at his visitor.
-
-"Fourth--Mrs. Weston has on her left arm a wound which is not yet
-healed. When I inadvertently grasped her arm she cried from pain.
-Inquiring whether I had hurt her she replied that her arm had 'been
-cut to the bone.' Query: Might not this be the wound that was
-inflicted by M. Felix's dagger?
-
-"Fifth--In that case Mrs. Weston must have paid a visit to M. Felix on
-the night of his death. Query: Might she not have paid this visit
-disguised in a man's clothes?
-
-"Sixth--The circumstantial evidence upon which this assumption is
-based: In the first place, Mrs. Weston last night, believing herself
-to be unobserved, threw a bundle into the River Thames. She refused to
-state what this bundle contained. I asked her. 'Will you tell them'
-(the policemen) 'what it was you threw into the river?' She replied, 'I
-cannot tell them. It might injure--it might ruin me.' Deduction--that
-if it were proved that the suit of clothes found in the river this
-morning belonged to her she would be placed in a position of extreme
-danger. The second piece of circumstantial evidence in connection with
-this suit of man's clothing comes from the establishment in Tottenham
-Court Road at which it was purchased. The salesman says that the
-purchaser was a lady. Mrs. Weston is a lady. She paid for it with a
-bank note, the number of which can be traced. The suit would fit a
-person of her height and build. In the third place--She gave a false
-name. This circumstance, supposing that she has committed a wrongful
-act, would weigh heavily against her. In the fourth place--She carried
-about with her an advertisement relating to the death of M. Felix, in
-which the proprietors of the _Evening Moon_ pledged themselves to give
-the best legal assistance to any person or persons who are in any way
-interested in the death of M. Felix. Reasonable deduction--That this
-lady, having taken the trouble to cut out and preserve the
-advertisement with such conspicuous care, must be interested in his
-death.
-
-"There are other items which I will set down and consider later on.
-Meanwhile----
-
-"Do I believe Mrs. Weston, otherwise E. B., to be guilty of any
-wrongful act in connection with M. Felix? I do not. I believe her to
-be a perfectly innocent woman. Upon what grounds? Upon the grounds of
-sympathy--which would not count with such weighty circumstantial
-evidence against her.
-
-"Do I believe that she paid a visit to M. Felix on the night of his
-death, disguised in man's clothes? I do; and I believe that the visit
-was paid without the slightest intention of doing him a personal
-injury. She is delicate and fragile, destitute of the strength
-necessary to carry out a deed of violence. M. Felix must have
-possessed at least to some slight extent a man's strength, more than
-amply sufficient to successfully oppose any design of violence on the
-part of a lady of Mrs. Weston's feeble frame.
-
-"For what object, then, was this visit paid? To right some wrong which
-Mrs. Weston was suffering at his hands. I declare myself to be her
-champion, and the champion of her lovely daughter.
-
-"In conclusion: The most extraordinary feature in the case remains
-still without any light being thrown upon it. Where is his body, and
-for what reason was it stolen from the house in Gerard Street?
-
-"At eight o'clock precisely our reporter arrived at No. 21 Forston
-Street, Camden Town, and was ushered into the room occupied by Mrs.
-Weston and her daughter Constance. Lovely as had been the young girl's
-appearance last night, she was even lovelier now. Then her face was
-darkened with anxiety, now it was free from care, and the most
-careless observer could not have failed to know that a perfect and
-most beautiful love existed between the mother and her child. The
-young lady blushed as our reporter entered, and rose and offered him
-her hand.
-
-"'I beg you to forgive my rudeness last night,' she said. 'I did not
-know then.'
-
-"'Your conduct was perfectly natural, he said, taking her hand, 'such
-as I should have approved of in a sister of my own.'
-
-"She bowed gracefully, and retired to an inner room.
-
-"'It is my wish,' explained the elder lady, 'that our interview should
-be private. What have you there?'
-
-"He had brought the new suit of clothes with him, and he had placed
-the brown paper parcel on the table and was now untying it. Her face
-turned to a deadly whiteness when the suit was exposed.
-
-"'You have nothing to fear,' said our reporter. 'I have brought this
-with me to convince you how necessary it is that you should have by
-you a friend as sincere as I.'
-
-"He then related to her what had passed between him and the inspector
-with reference to the suit which had been found in the river, and also
-the particulars of his visit to the clothing establishment in
-Tottenham Court Road.
-
-"In the interests of our readers we withhold a categorical account of
-the conversation which ensued. Sufficient for the present to state
-that the lady placed in this reliable gentleman the most implicit
-confidence. Our narrative now assumes another shape. A strange and
-pathetic drama is about to be unfolded. The veil which enshrouds the
-past will be uplifted, and we owe our reporter our grateful thanks for
-the manner in which he has chosen to narrate as touching a story as
-has ever been presented to the readers of fiction. It links the past
-with the present, and it is true to the life. For a little while our
-reporter and ourselves disappear from the scene. We may revert
-hereafter to our original plan--indeed we may be compelled to revert
-to it in this way because the matters of which we shall have to speak
-are public property. What follows is a literal copy of the manuscript
-supplied by our reporter; not an incident is exaggerated, not a
-passion disfigured. Step by step, with unswerving zeal and untiring
-devotion, the Mystery of M. Felix is being unravelled and brought to
-light."
-
-
-
-
-
-_BOOK SECOND_.
-
-A LIFE DRAMA: LINKS IN THE MYSTERY.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXII.
-
-THE HALF-BROTHERS.
-
-
-"It is better to be born lucky than rich" is one of the few proverbs
-to which the lie cannot be given by a proverb in the opposite
-direction. If Gerald Paget had had the choice, and had he been blessed
-with wisdom, he would have chosen luck in the place of riches, but he
-could not be credited with either of these conditions. He was born to
-riches, and he was too amiable and easy-natured to ripen into wisdom.
-When he first met Emilia Braham he was twenty-four years of age; she
-was eighteen, and in a position of dependence; Gerald was wealthy, and
-to a certain extent his own master. His father had died three months
-before this meeting with the beautiful young girl, whose association
-was to bring into his life both happiness and woe. He had only one
-close relative, a half-brother, a few years older than himself, who
-was then absent in Australia; the name of this brother was Leonard,
-and it was he who was destined to hold in his hands the skeins of
-Gerald's fate.
-
-Their father had been twice married, and Leonard was the son of his
-first wife. She brought him no fortune, and he himself had but little.
-Shortly after Leonard was born she died, and the widowed husband went
-with his child to Switzerland, where he met with the lady who was to
-replace the wife he had lost. She possessed a large fortune in her own
-right, of which with her husband's full approval, she kept control.
-Although they had met and were married in Switzerland, they were both
-English, and to England they returned, and set up their home there.
-One child blessed their union, Gerald, whom they idolized and did
-their best to spoil. They did not neglect their duty to Leonard; they
-performed it cheerfully and lovingly, but it was nevertheless the fact
-that Gerald was the magnet to which their hearts more constantly
-turned. The difference between the ages of the half-brothers was a bar
-to that close and sympathetic association of interests which
-frequently exists between children of equal age. The child of six and
-the child of fourteen have little in common; still less when one is
-twelve and the other twenty. But despite this disparity and these
-unfavorable conditions, Gerald adored his big brother, and bowed down
-before him as a being of a very superior order. Leonard's tastes was
-for travel, and as a young man he spent much of his time on the
-Continent, picking up foreign ways, and also foreign vices, which he
-kept very carefully concealed from the knowledge of his father and
-step-mother. When he came home from these Continental jaunts he always
-brought with him remembrances for little Gerald, whose affectionate,
-grateful heart magnified their value, and invested with rare qualities
-the spirit which animated the giver. Leonard was supplied with ample
-funds to indulge in his whims and pleasures, and he took life easily,
-accepting it as his right that his purse should be always well filled.
-Presently, however, a change came over the spirit of his dream, a
-change which caused the evil forces within him to spring into active
-life. His stepmother died, and left a will. Its terms were as follows:
-
-To her stepson, Leonard, she left an income of four hundred pounds,
-and expressed a hope that he would adopt some profession or pursuit in
-which he might attain fortune and distinction. His father was
-empowered to further in a practical way any step in this direction. To
-her son Gerald she also left an income of four hundred pounds, but
-there was this difference between the bequests. Leonard's remained
-always the same--four hundred pounds, no more and no less; whereas
-Gerald's, when he reached the age of twenty-one, was increased to one
-thousand pounds. Moreover, upon the death of his father, all that Mrs.
-Paget devised to her husband was to revert to her son, whose income
-would then amount to nearly four thousand pounds. Leonard, studying
-the will, reckoned this up, and said, "I am the elder son, and I have
-exactly one-tenth of the younger son's fortune." There was another
-clause in the will. As upon the death of the father the income that
-was left to him was to fall to Gerald, so, should it happen that both
-Gerald and his father died before Leonard, the entire fortune would
-fall to the elder son. In the event of Gerald marrying this would not
-be the case; Gerald could devise to his wife and children, if he had
-any, all that he possessed, thus, as it were, disbarring Leonard. For
-the soured and disappointed young man there were, then, these chances:
-First, that his father should die. Second, that Gerald should die.
-Third, that he should die unmarried. These conditions fulfilled,
-Leonard would become the master of four thousand pounds a year. It
-occurred to Leonard that the sooner all this occurred the better, and
-the thought having obtained lodgement in his mind, remained there.
-
-Safely hidden, safely concealed. He was not a man who wore his heart
-upon his sleeve. He was one who could present a smiling face while he
-was concocting the cunningest of schemes. He had but one view of life,
-the pursuit of pleasure. There was a certain similarity between him
-and Gerald; they were both easy-natured outwardly, but there was no
-guile in Gerald's disposition, while guile was the very essence of
-Leonard's.
-
-"I can't very well live on four hundred a year," he said to his
-father, after the death of his step-mother. "You never led me to
-expect that I should have to do so."
-
-"I will double it, Len," said the indulgent father; "but you are a man
-now, and understand things. The fortune which has enabled us to
-maintain our position was strictly my wife's and she had a right to do
-what she pleased with it. Had it not been for her money you and I
-would have been poor gentlemen."
-
-"That is all very well," said Leonard, "but the reflection comes too
-late, father. To bring up a person in the expectation of fortune, and
-then to suddenly let him down to poverty, is not what I call just or
-fair. That is all I want--justice, and I have a right to it."
-
-"Every person has a right to it."
-
-"Then you agree with me that I am hardly treated."
-
-"Eight hundred a year is not a bad income, Len."
-
-"But, if you will forgive me for mentioning it, father--I am a man, as
-you say, and can't help thinking of things--that is only during your
-lifetime. Heaven forbid that anything should happen to you, but we are
-all mortal, and down I should drop to a miserable seven or eight
-pounds a week."
-
-"Gerald has the sweetest disposition in the world," said Mr. Paget;
-"you can always depend upon him."
-
-"Depend upon him, depend upon him!" repeated Leonard, fretfully. "Is
-it right, is it just, that the elder should depend upon the younger?"
-
-Mr. Paget sighed; he was not strong in argument.
-
-"I will make it a thousand," he said, "and you must look out for a
-profession which will treble it."
-
-"I'll see what Gerald will do toward it," said Leonard; and he
-actually went to the lad, who ran to his father, and said that poor
-Len must have two hundred a year more; so that subtle Leonard managed
-to obtain an income of twelve hundred pounds, a very fair slice of the
-fortune left by Mrs. Paget. He did not trouble himself to look for a
-profession, but carried out his view of life with zeal and ability. He
-spent his money on himself, but he did not squander it. He generally
-managed to obtain his money's worth, and he was wise in his
-liberality. Nevertheless, pleasure ran ahead of him, and in racing
-after it he came to grief, and had to mortgage his own private income
-of four hundred pounds to such an extent that it presently passed out
-of his hands and became the property of the money-lenders. His father
-and half-brother never failed him; they were living quietly and
-modestly in England, and every appeal Leonard made to them was
-promptly and affectionately responded to. He was not thankful for the
-assistance; there gathers upon some natures a crust of selfishness so
-thick as to deaden the sentiment of gratitude for kindness rendered.
-
-Thus matters went on till the father died. Leonard, as has been
-stated, was in Australia at the time. It was not a spirit of
-enterprise that took him there, nor any idea of business; he was
-enamoured of a pretty face, and he followed, or accompanied it, to the
-antipodes--it matters not which. When he received news of his father's
-death, the enchantment was over, and another chapter in his book of
-selfish pleasures was closed. He cabled home for money. Gerald cabled
-him back a thousand pounds. "By jove," thought Leonard; "he must be
-richer than I thought." It was so. Mr. Paget had saved half his income
-and had invested it well, so that, upon his death, Gerald found
-himself in possession of a handsome sum of money in addition to the
-income which now fell to his share. Leonard remained in Australia long
-enough to spend three-fourths of the thousand pounds--it did not take
-long--and then he took ship to England, with the firm resolve to milk
-his cow, his half-brother Gerald, who received him with open arms. But
-between the day of Mr. Paget's death and the day of Leonard's return
-to England, Gerald met Emilia Braham. That made all the difference.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIII.
-
-TWO HEARTS THAT BEAT AS ONE.
-
-
-There is no position in the world more cruel than that of a young
-girl, born in a good condition of life and delicately brought up, who
-suddenly finds herself bereft of means, of home, of love. Into this
-position was Emilia Braham thrust on the day her father was carried
-dead to the house in which he and his only child had passed many happy
-years. A scaffolding, loosely constructed, had given way as he passed
-beneath it, and he lay under the ruins with the life crushed out of
-him.
-
-It had been a home of love, and the anxieties of the father had not
-been shared by the gentle, beautiful girl whose presence brightened
-it, whose pure spirit sanctified it. For it was indeed a sanctuary to
-the loving father, whose only aim had been to provide for his
-daughter, so that she might be spared the pangs which poverty brings
-in its train. In this endeavor he would almost certainly have
-succeeded had he been spared; but the fatal accident nipped his hopes
-in the bud, and she was left penniless and alone. Mr. Braham had kept
-up his head, as the saying is, and none who knew him had any idea of
-the clever man[oe]uvring he had practised to keep him and his daughter
-from falling out of the ranks in which they had moved all their lives.
-A rash speculation had brought him to this pass, and for years he had
-been struggling to extricate himself from its consequences. Another
-year and all would have been well; but death came too soon, and his
-daughter lived to reap what he had sown.
-
-Even the home had to be sold to satisfy the creditors, and when this
-was done Emilia, a child of eighteen, faced the world with a shrinking
-heart. She had in her purse barely £5; the few trinkets she had
-possessed had been sold; she had set great store upon them, and was
-amazed to discover that their value was so small. For the last, last
-time she walked through the familiar rooms, and touched the walls, and
-knelt by her bed; and then she crept out of the house and proceeded to
-the two rooms she had taken in a street hard by. It would have quite
-broken her heart to go out of the neighborhood in which she and her
-dear father had lived.
-
-Upon the first news of the dreadful loss she had sustained friends
-came and sympathized with her, but when it was known that her father
-died a ruined man, the sympathy expressed proved to be mere vaporing;
-those who had spoken so softly and kindly came no more. Emilia did not
-appeal to them; when they met her in the streets, and passed by with
-hasty nods, she did not stop and ask the reason why. Her heart was
-sorely wounded, but her pride also was touched. The offence and the
-slight were more against the dead than the living, and she suffered
-chiefly for the dear lost father's sake. She went to her lodgings, and
-looked around at the cold walls until she could look no more for the
-tears in her eyes.
-
-She lived quietly and sadly for two weeks, at the end of which time
-she had but a guinea left of her £5. A terrible fear took possession
-of her. What would become of her when her purse was empty? She had not
-been entirely idle, but had made some efforts to obtain a situation as
-governess. She could speak French and German fluently; she could draw,
-she could paint, she was a good musician, she could dance, and her
-manners were refined. But with all these advantages she was
-unsuccessful. And now she had but a guinea to her fortune, and the
-future was before her. She took refuge in prayer; it comforted, but it
-was of no practical assistance to her. Sunrise and sunset, sunrise and
-sunset again, and again, and again; and now her purse was empty. But
-she was saved from absolute despair. At the supreme moment a visitor
-knocked at her door, and entered without waiting to be bidden.
-
-Call her a lady if you will, our business with her will last but a
-brief space. Her name was Seaton.
-
-"I hear, Miss Braham, that you require a situation," said Mrs. Seaton,
-unceremoniously.
-
-"Yes, madam," said Emilia, her hand at her heart. This hard-featured,
-hard-voiced visitor had surely been sent from heaven to succor her.
-"Will you be seated?"
-
-Mrs. Seaton took a chair without a word of thanks. "Have you been out
-before?"
-
-"Out, madam?" says Emilia. Unused to worldly ways and idioms, she did
-not catch the meaning of the phrase.
-
-"I suppose you have had other situations," explained Mrs. Seaton, with
-ungracious condescension.
-
-"No, madam."
-
-"That is not encouragement. You have no character, then."
-
-"My character," faltered Emilia, "is well known. My dear father and I
-have lived in this neighborhood many years."
-
-"I do not like evasions. You know the kind of character I mean.
-Fitness to teach young children, capacity, willingness, experience,
-cheerfulness, readiness to make yourself useful in any way."
-
-"I would be willing to make myself useful, madam, to do all I was
-told. I think I could teach young children. Will you try me? I beg of
-you to do so. I am in a dreadful position; I have not a shilling in
-the world, and not a friend, I am afraid. Try me, madam. I will do
-everything you wish."
-
-"Umph! Not a shilling in the world! And not a friend! Still more
-discouraging, because, Miss Braham, we generally get what we deserve."
-
-"I think I deserve friends, madam," said Emilia, striving to keep back
-her tears, "but I have been unfortunate. I think you would be
-satisfied with me. I would try very, very hard."
-
-She held out her trembling hands; to a tender hearted woman the
-affecting appeal would have been irresistible.
-
-"A lady," said Mrs. Seaton, "has to be careful whom she takes into her
-home. I have six young children. What can you teach?"
-
-In timid accents Emilia went through her accomplishments.
-
-"I have only your word for it," said Mrs. Seaton.
-
-"I am telling the truth, indeed, madam."
-
-"People are so deceitful, and what is almost as bad, so, ungrateful.
-I'll take you on trial, Miss Braham, will you promise to teach my
-sweet children and do everything that is required of you?"
-
-"Yes, madam," replied Emilia, eagerly, "everything; and you will find
-me very grateful--indeed, indeed you will."
-
-"I will wait to convince myself of that. When can you come?"
-
-"At once, madam. To-day, if you wish.
-
-"Not to-day; to-morrow, early. Servants invariably come at night,
-which shows their unwillingness and the spirit in which they accept a
-situation. Here is my address. You understand? I take you on trial
-only."
-
-"Yes, madam, I understand, and I thank you with all my heart."
-
-"Of course, in these circumstances I can give you no wages for the
-first month. If we suit each other we will arrange terms afterward. Is
-that agreeable to you?"
-
-"Quite agreeable, madam. I will come to-morrow morning."
-
-"Very well; I shall expect you before twelve."
-
-That night Emilia went to bed without food; but her week's rent was
-paid and she left her lodgings without disgrace.
-
-Then commenced a life of torture. The children she had to teach were
-quarrelsome and vicious, and no taskmaster could have been harder than
-Mrs. Seaton was to the servants in her house. Two had left; two had
-given notice to leave. The consequence was that Emilia's mistress
-called upon her to do every kind of menial office, and willing as
-Emilia was, she found herself unequal to them. She sat up late at
-night, and rose early in the morning, played the part of nurse,
-schoolmistress, lady's maid, and housemaid, never receiving a word of
-thanks, until existence became unbearable. Driven to despair, without
-a home, without a friend, without money, she did not know which way to
-turn. Delicately nurtured, a lady by instinct and education, refined
-in her manners, and unused to menial work, no more deplorable position
-could be imagined. It was while she was in this sore strait that she
-made the acquaintance of Gerald Paget.
-
-Twice in each week she had the privilege of walking out alone for an
-hour in the afternoon. Gerald, passing her, was attracted by the
-gentle beauty of her face, and blessed his good fortune when he met
-her for the second time. On this second occasion chance assisted him
-to an introduction. She was crossing the road, engrossed in sad
-thought, when warning shouts aroused her from her musings. There were
-cabs coming one way, carts another, and between them she was in danger
-of being run over. She slipped and fell, and Gerald, rushing forward,
-caught her up and bore her to the pavement. But fright and weakness
-had prostrated her, and she lay in his arms in a fainting condition.
-He carried her into a chemist's shop, where she revived. The words of
-kindness and sympathy which fell upon her ears when she opened her
-eyes, the tender consideration expressed in Gerald's voice,
-overpowered the suffering girl, and she burst into a passion of
-hysterical tears. With difficulty he soothed her, but every word he
-uttered rendered more profound the impression he had already produced
-upon the young girl. The unaccustomed notes of tenderness touched
-Emilia's heart, and that night as she lay in bed she recalled the
-words and the voice and dwelt with infinite gratitude upon the image
-of the young gentleman who had treated her with so much gentleness and
-consideration. But he did not leave her before he saw her safely to
-Mrs. Seaton's door; she would have had it otherwise, but he would not
-allow her to have her way, and on their road he heard from her lips
-the pitiful story of her misfortunes, He made inquiries, and learnt
-that her story was true, and this increased his pity for her. As she
-dwelt upon his image on that night, so did he on hers, and thus from
-their first meeting was established a spiritual connection between
-them. On the following day he called at Mrs. Seaton's house to inquire
-how Miss Paget was after her accident, and as this was the first time
-that lady had heard of it she was not in the most amiable of moods
-when she next spoke to the young lady she had engaged, and whom she
-was treating as a slave.
-
-"I cannot," she said, "have young gentlemen calling at my house after
-my domestics."
-
-But Emilia's spirit had been roused by the adventure. The
-consciousness that she was not entirely friendless gave her confidence
-and courage.
-
-"It was not improper that he should call to inquire," she said. "He
-would have done so had I been living at home with my father."
-
-"The cases are different," observed Mrs. Seaton, loftily. "Not
-entirely, madam," said Emilia, with a certain firmness. "Mr. Paget is
-a gentleman, and I am a lady."
-
-"You! A lady!" exclaimed Mrs. Seaton, in great astonishment.
-
-"Yes, madam. Poverty does not degrade one."
-
-Upon this Mrs. Seaton commenced to storm and use bad language, and was
-so violent that Emilia was glad to escape from the room. From that day
-the unkind woman practised a system of oppression which almost drove
-Emilia mad. Had she possessed sufficient means to keep herself for
-even a week she would have fled from the house; but although she had
-now been in Mrs. Seaton's service for longer than the stipulated month
-not a word had been said about salary, nor had she received a shilling
-from her mistress. She remained because she was compelled to remain,
-and because she was powerless. Had Gerald been a lady instead of a
-gentleman she would have mustered courage to ask assistance from him,
-but as it was such a request was impossible. Mrs. Seaton's character,
-however, was well known to her neighbors, and from one with whom he
-had a slight acquaintance Gerald obtained information which made him
-unusually serious and grave. He had continued to call at the house,
-and had contrived to meet Emilia upon her afternoon walks; but Mrs.
-Seaton had received him with unbending stiffness, and he could not
-fail to observe Emilia's unhappiness. He loved the young girl, and it
-was not long before he made his sentiments known to her, but she,
-contrasting their positions, hardly dared to listen to him. For this
-he had partly to thank Mrs. Seaton, who, seeing that Gerald was
-strongly inclined to Emilia, treated the young girl to long and bitter
-dissertations upon the "infamy "--it was the word she used--of
-encouraging his attentions. She declared that such conduct was
-indelicate, unwomanly, disgraceful, and heaven knows what; there was
-no limit to her vituperation, and the unhappy girl, conscious that she
-loved Gerald and was not his equal, passed long nights in tears and
-sighs. When he commenced to speak upon the theme which was nearest his
-heart, she said, "I must not listen to you. I must not, I must not! If
-you have any respect for me, do not continue." Having more than a
-respect for her, having now a love as honest as it was profound, he
-obeyed her for a time; but still when he parted from her at the door
-he said, "Good-by, Emilia," as he pressed her hand, and she did not
-chide him for the familiarity. This gave him what he lacked, courage,
-and he did not lose hope. At length he resolved to put an end to this
-uncertainty, and as she begged him not to speak, he did the next best
-thing. He wrote, and entreated her to reply. But no reply came; and on
-the next occasion of her hour's holiday he did not see her at the
-accustomed place. What was the reason? Had he offended her? Had he
-been mistaken in believing that she loved him? Why did she not write
-to him? Why did she keep away from him? Lovers only who have gone
-through the stages of doubt and uncertainty can understand what he
-suffered.
-
-But on the next occasion she did appear. He hastened to her side.
-
-"Emilia!" he cried.
-
-"Oh! hush," she sighed. "It is not right--it is not right!"
-
-"It cannot be wrong," he said, tenderly, leading her to a sequestered
-spot. "You are unhappy, Emilia."
-
-"Very very unhappy. And I am born to make others so."
-
-"I will not hear you say that and be silent. You were born to make me
-happy, and can--if you only will, Amelia; if you only will!"
-
-His ardor, his impetuosity, his sincerity, made her weak. She clung to
-him for support, and the next moment released herself and stood
-upright, inwardly reproaching herself, for being so foolish. Had she
-been the most artful of her sex she could not, all through, have acted
-more cunningly to fasten the chains which bound him to her; but she
-was only a weak and innocent girl, and when one such as she meets with
-a genuine, honest soul like Gerald, love is more powerful than
-cunning.
-
-"Emilia, why did you not reply to my letter?"
-
-"What letter?" she asked, in surprise.
-
-"The letter I wrote to you. Five days I sent it, and I have counted
-the minutes. It is not like you, Emilia, to make me suffer so."
-
-She turned her sweet face to him.
-
-"I have received no letter, Mr. Paget."
-
-"You have received no letter from me--and you will not call me
-Gerald!"
-
-"I have received no letter," she repeated, "and I cannot call
-you--what you desire."
-
-"Well," he said, with hot impatience, "let that rest awhile; we will
-speak of it again, and you will make me happy, I am sure, by doing
-such a very little thing as that. But my letter? I sent it to
-you--posted it with my own hands. Do you think I would entrust it to
-another?"
-
-"How can I say? I do not even know what was in it. Five days ago! And
-why did you write to me? Oh, Mr. Paget, have you no regard for my
-helpless position?"
-
-"Can you ask me such a question, Emilia?" he said, reproachfully. "Do
-you think there lives in the world a man who has a more sincere
-respect and esteem for you than I have?"
-
-"No, no," she cried. "I did not intend to do you an injustice. I beg
-you to forgive me."
-
-"Freely," he said, and spoke now with less impetuosity. "Whenever I
-have approached the subject of my love for you--do not stop me,
-Emilia; the words are spoken--whenever I have done that, you have
-begged me to desist. Well, I obeyed you; not for all the wide world,
-Emilia, would I cause you one moment's pain. But you did not tell me
-not to write, and so I wrote--what was in my heart, what is in it now,
-and I implored you to send me an answer soon. I am sure you would have
-done so had you received it."
-
-"I do not know. The letter never reached me."
-
-"I addressed it to the care of Mrs. Seaton."
-
-"If it was delivered to her, she did not give it to me."
-
-"It must have been delivered to her; it must have been left at her
-house, and to keep it from you is a crime. She shall be punished for
-it."
-
-"Oh, Mr. Paget, do not make things harder for me than they are
-already!"
-
-It was an involuntary confession, the first she had made to him, and
-it opened his eyes.
-
-"You are not happy with her?" he asked.
-
-She did not reply. To have admitted it would have been almost like
-asking protection from him. Her sensitive nature shrunk from such an
-indelicacy.
-
-"I must go back now," she said, presently. "I have been away too
-long."
-
-"I will go with you, Emilia."
-
-"I entreat you not to do so. It will subject me to further indignity."
-
-In this was conveyed a second involuntary confession; he noted it with
-burning indignation against Mrs. Seaton, but made no open comment upon
-it.
-
-"I obey you," he said, "in this as in everything else. You are
-suffering, and I pity you from my heart of hearts. I am also
-suffering. Will you not give me a little pity?"
-
-"I am very sorry for you, Mr. Paget; indeed, indeed I am. It would
-have been better for you had we never met."
-
-"Can you utter such a heresy--you, the soul of truth and honesty? I
-bless the day on which I met you; it will live forever in my memory as
-the happiest in my life. Give me your hand. Why do you shrink? You
-would give it to the commonest friend, and I am at least that. Thank
-you. There! I merely press it, as an ordinary friend would do--only
-you must feel the pulses of my heart in my fingers. That is not my
-fault. I cannot help it beating, and beating for you, Emilia. May I
-walk with you a little way?"
-
-"Not far. You will not come with me to the door?"
-
-"No, if you insist. I will leave you before we reach it."
-
-"Before we are in the street, Mr. Paget."
-
-"Yes, before we are in the street. But I give you fair warning,
-Emilia. I must have an answer to my letter, and I must find out what
-has become of it. Is not that right?"
-
-"I suppose it is."
-
-"It is not a matter of supposing. It is or it is not. Be as frank with
-me as I am with you, Emilia."
-
-"It is right that you should ascertain what has become of it."
-
-"Of course. It is mine or yours. No one else's. We have something that
-is ours, in which no other person has any business to interfere. I
-shall think of that with satisfaction."
-
-"A simple letter, Mr. Paget."
-
-"A simple letter," he said, very gravely, "in which the happiness of an
-honest gentleman's life is enclosed. There! Do not tremble. I am not
-going to say anything more serious just now, but said it must be soon,
-Emilia, and then I shall know what the future will be for me. And even
-if I were dumb and that letter was never recovered, another can be
-written which shall reach its destination. Why do you stop? Oh, yes,
-you wish me to say good-by here. Well, good-by, Emilia!"
-
-"Good-by, Mr. Paget."
-
-"Will you not call me Gerald? Such a little word, Emilia!"
-
-She fled; but not before she had given him a sweet and timid look
-which caused his heart to throb with hope, as it was already throbbing
-with love.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIV.
-
-SLANDER.
-
-
-Later in the day Mrs. Seaton was informed that a gentleman was waiting
-to see her. Entering the room she saw Gerald Paget. She received him
-as usual with a frown, of which he took no notice. By this time he was
-hardened to the coldness of her receptions of him. Besides, he had
-prepared himself for the interview, and knew pretty well what he
-intended to say to her.
-
-"I thought, Mr. Paget," she said, "that I had made you understand it
-is not my wish to encourage your visits to any of my servants."
-
-"I did not inquire for any of your servants," he said, very politely,
-"but for you."
-
-"What have you to say to me?"
-
-"Something to the point--presently. First, however, I must correct you
-in a misconception into which you appear to have fallen. My visits to
-this house have been quite open, and have not been made to a servant."
-
-"Indeed! To whom, then?"
-
-"To a lady who accepted the position of governess to your children. It
-is not usual to call these gentlewomen servants."
-
-"I decline," said Mrs. Seaton, "to enter into any argument with you on
-the point. I know the exact position of persons in my employ and the
-proper titles to give them. You are a young man, and have much to
-learn."
-
-"I am aware of it, Mrs. Seaton; you, also, have something to learn.
-But I would impress strongly upon you the fact that Miss Braham is a
-lady, and--your equal."
-
-"By no means--but I shall not argue. Oblige me by coming at once to
-the purport of your visit to me."
-
-"The purport is a grave one, Mrs. Seaton, and I shall be sorry if the
-result is not satisfactory to you. A few days ago I addressed a letter
-to Miss Braham, which has not reached her hands."
-
-"What has that to do with me?" Mrs. Seaton asked this question without
-flinching. She had received the letter, read it, and if she had any
-fear of consequences she did not show it. Her manner was rather
-scornful than guilty.
-
-"A great deal I should say," replied Gerald. "It is no light matter to
-purloin a letter addressed to another person."
-
-"Purloin, sir!"
-
-"That is the word I have used, and intended to use. I wish to know
-what you have done with that letter?"
-
-"I have done nothing with it. No such letter was ever left at this
-house to my knowledge."
-
-"What if I set afoot an inquiry which would prove that to be not the
-truth?"
-
-Mrs. Seaton rang the bell. "I must request you to leave the house,"
-she said.
-
-"I will do so in a minute or two. I happen to know that your
-letter-box is kept locked, and that no one opens it but yourself. I
-regret to be compelled to say to a lady that it is a wicked and
-cowardly action to appropriate a letter not addressed to herself. Of
-such an action you have undoubtedly been guilty. May I inquire if the
-letter I refer to is still in existence?"
-
-"You may inquire what you please, sir, but I shall make no reply to
-your insults. I presume you have obtained certain information from
-Miss Braham.
-
-"Yes, she informed me that she had not received a letter I wrote to
-her."
-
-"She informed you," said Mrs. Seaton, with a venomous look. "When?"
-
-"This afternoon."
-
-"I understand. You and she are in the habit of meeting in secret
-outside my house. Such conduct is infamous, and now that I have
-positive knowledge of such proceedings I shall know how to act. Mr.
-Paget, we are speaking here in private, with no listeners to report
-what is said. Let me advise you to be careful as to what you say or do
-about this imaginary letter of yours. The young person you refer to
-may have a good name to lose, and it will be foolish on your part to
-set a lady of my standing in society against her. Mud will stick, Mr.
-Paget, never mind, by whom it is thrown, but when it is thrown by a
-lady or gentleman of repute it will stick all the closer. I learn, too
-late, that you have used my house as an assignation house----"
-
-"You are stating what is false," cried Gerald, indignantly.
-
-"As an assignation house," repeated Mrs. Seaton, with a malicious
-smile. "Having discovered your baseness--for you are no gentleman, Mr.
-Paget, and the other person implicated is no lady--there is only one
-course open to me. That course I shall pursue. If you do not leave my
-presence instantly I shall send for the police to remove you."
-
-With that, the venomous woman threw open the door, and Gerald Paget,
-dismayed and discomfited, took his departure.
-
-"A nice mess I have made of it," he thought, as he walked ruefully
-from the house, without venturing to look back. "What on earth made me
-beard the lioness in her den? The lioness! Not at all. There is
-something of nobility in that breed, and Mrs. Seaton hasn't a particle
-of nobility about her. She is a serpent. Her fangs are poisonous. How
-will she act toward Emilia? Mud will stick, she says. But what does it
-matter if Emilia loves me?"
-
-He allowed himself to be carried away by his enthusiasm. He was young,
-impulsive, honest, and straightforward. Grand weapons in honorable
-warfare, but when is war honorable? The world, with its hidden snares
-and pitfalls, lay before him and Emilia, in whose pure souls faith and
-love shone radiant. How would it fare with them when pitted against
-envy, greed, and malice? Here was Mrs. Seaton, ready to defame and
-blacken; and travelling swiftly toward them was the beggar and
-spendthrift, Leonard, the man of selfish pleasure.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXV.
-
-LOST, OR SAVED?
-
-
-Some three hours after Gerald's departure from the house, Emilia was
-summoned into the presence of Mrs. Seaton. When she received the
-message she was preparing for bed; it was night, and a heavy rain was
-falling.
-
-"I have sent for you," said Mrs. Seaton, gazing at the young girl with
-pitiless eyes, "for the purpose of putting an immediate end to a
-disgraceful state of affairs. On the day I consented to take you upon
-trial, I informed you that I could give you no wages until I was
-satisfied that you would suit me. Is that correct?"
-
-"You said," replied Emilia, "that you could give me none for the first
-month, and that, if we suited each other, you would arrange terms
-afterward."
-
-"You have been here nearly seven weeks, and no terms have been
-arranged."
-
-"That is true, madam."
-
-"The fact being that we do not suit each other."
-
-"I fear it is so."
-
-"In which case--the basis of any terms whatever being suitability--no
-wages are due to you up to this date. Legally you are entitled to
-nothing."
-
-"You know best, madam."
-
-"I have allowed you to remain in my house in the hope that certain
-doubts I entertained would be dispelled. I regret to say they are not
-dispelled. However, I shall not charge you for your board and
-lodging."
-
-Emilia bowed her head. Utterly inexperienced as she was, she had not
-the least doubt that Mrs. Seaton was putting the case fairly, and that
-she could really be called upon to pay for the food and shelter she
-had received.
-
-"Ordinarily," continued Mrs. Seaton, "one would expect gratitude for
-such kindness. I do not. Be kind enough to sign this paper."
-
-Upon the table lay a written document which, with Emilia's signature
-to it, would free Mrs. Seaton from any possible liability. In the last
-sentence of the artfully-worded release, Emilia acknowledged that she
-left Mrs. Seaton's house and service of her own accord. The young girl
-took the pen which Mrs. Seaton held out to her, and was about to sign
-when the elder lady said,
-
-"I wish you to read and understand what you are signing. I shall not
-put it in your power to say that I took advantage of your youth and
-inexperience--for that is the way you would put it, I expect."
-
-Emilia's eyes were blurred with tears, and although she took the paper
-in her trembling hands, she could not read what was written thereon.
-
-"It is perfectly correct, is it not?" asked Mrs. Seaton.
-
-"Yes, madam," replied Emilia, faintly, glad of the opportunity of
-hiding her distress of mind, "if you say it is."
-
-"Of course. You will observe that it places you in an unexpectedly
-favorable position. Leaving my service of your own accord will make it
-easier for you to obtain another situation, if such should be your
-desire. Wait a moment. I should like your signature to be witnessed."
-
-She rang the bell, and a maid appeared, a new servant who had arrived
-only that evening.
-
-"I rang for you, Jane, to witness Miss Braham's signature to this
-paper. You can write?"
-
-"Oh, yes, ma'am."
-
-"Miss Braham has read the document, and perfectly understands its
-terms. That is the truth, is it not, Miss Braham?"
-
-"Yes, madam," said the helpless girl.
-
-"You hear, Jane? Now, Miss Braham, you can sign it if you wish."
-
-Emilia wrote her name, and Jane wrote hers as witness, proud of the
-confidence reposed in her. Then Mrs. Seaton gave the new servant some
-whispered instructions, and she left the room.
-
-Had Emilia's agitation allowed her, she could not have failed to
-notice that while Jane was in the room Mrs. Seaton's voice was kind
-and considerate, in striking contrast to the tone in which she spoke
-when they were alone.
-
-"And now, Miss Braham," said Mrs. Seaton, folding up the paper and
-pocketing it with an air of triumph, "you will leave my house at
-once."
-
-"At once, madam!" exclaimed the bewildered girl.
-
-"This instant. I will not allow you to remain in it another hour. As
-the mother of a family I have a duty to perform. Your presence here is
-a contamination."
-
-"I will not answer your insults, madam," faltered Emilia, "but it is
-night and rain is falling----"
-
-"That is not my affair. You are well known, and can easily find
-lodgement with some of your friends----"
-
-"I have none. You surely cannot be so cruel as to drive me away at
-such an hour."
-
-"I am prepared for anything you may say. The paper you have signed
-fully protects me from any base statements you may make when you are
-no longer under my roof. You have no friends? Why, there is Mr. Paget.
-Do you think I have been blind to your goings on? Assignations, secret
-meetings, under my very eyes. Go to him. I have no doubt you know
-where to find him."
-
-"Madam!"
-
-"Oh, you may madam me as much as you like; it will not alter my
-determination. Ah, Jane"--to the new servant who entered the
-room--"have you locked the door of the room which Miss Braham
-occupied?"
-
-"Yes, ma'am."
-
-"And brought her box down?"
-
-"Yes, ma'am."
-
-"Give me the key of the room. That will do, my good girl; I do not
-require you any more. Go down-stairs and get your supper. Leave the
-door open." The merciless woman waited until Jane had reached the
-basement and was out of hearing; then she spoke again. "If you cannot
-take your box with you to-night, you can send for it in the morning,
-but once out of my house you do not enter it again. Go immediately, or
-I will send for the police."
-
-She advanced toward Emilia, who retreated in affright; step by step
-she hounded the poor girl to the street door, which she threw open.
-The next moment Emilia was standing alone in the dark and gloomy
-night.
-
-Dazed and horrified, she felt as if her senses were leaving her; she
-pressed her hands over her eyes, and cowered to the walls for
-protection. But a friend was near.
-
-Restless with love's fever, Gerald, heedless of the rain--for what is
-so slight a thing to one who loves as he did?--was hovering about the
-house in which his darling lived. He looked up at the windows, and
-choosing one as the window of Emilia's room, gazed at it with fervor,
-making of it a very heaven--a heaven to be glorified by her presence.
-"To-morrow," he mused, as he paced slowly up and down on the opposite
-side, "I will ask her plainly to be my wife. She is unhappy--she told
-me so--and it must be because she is living with such a wicked woman.
-Yes, I will ask her to-morrow. She loves me, I am sure of it. It is
-only that she is poor and I am rich. What of that? It will make it all
-the better for us--a thousand times better than if she were rich and I
-were poor. Then we might never come together. Dear Emilia, sweet
-Emilia, the sweetest, dearest, most beautiful on earth! I love her, I
-love her, I love her!"
-
-Thus ecstatically musing, he saw the street-door suddenly opened and
-as suddenly and violently shut, and a figure thrust forth, as if in
-anger. He had no idea that it was Emilia; the thought was too
-barbarous to be entertained; but out of curiosity he crossed the road
-and went up to it.
-
-"Good God!" he cried; "Emilia!" and caught her up in his arms.
-
-"Oh, Gerald, Gerald!" she sobbed, and lay there, helpless and almost
-heartbroken, and yet with a sweet sense of comfort stealing upon her
-great grief.
-
-What mattered rain and darkness? She had called him Gerald, and he
-knew for a surety that he was loved. He kissed her, and she did not
-resist, but lay, sobbing more quietly now, within the sanctuary of his
-loving arms.
-
-Ecstasy at being permitted to embrace her enthralled him for a time,
-but presently he begged her to explain the meaning of her being thrust
-at such an hour from Mrs. Seaton's house. Before she could render it
-the street-door was opened quietly and slowly, and a woman's face
-peered out--Mrs. Seaton's.
-
-"I thought as much," cried the stony-hearted woman, with a laugh. "A
-pretty pair!" and then the door was closed again, and only the sound
-of the falling rain was heard.
-
-With a feeling of burning indignation Gerald looked down upon the
-white face of his dear girl. Her eyes were closed; her arms hung loose
-at her side; she had fainted.
-
-He was thankful that the street was deserted and that there were no
-witnesses near, for he had sense enough to know that Emilia's
-reputation was at stake.
-
-"You fiend," he muttered, with a dark glance at Mrs. Seaton's house.
-"You abominable fiend!" And then he called softly, "Emilia, Emilia!
-Look up, my darling. We are safe now, and we will never part."
-
-His voice, but not the words he spoke, reached her senses. She opened
-her eyes, and clung more closely to him, murmuring,
-
-"For Heaven's sake, take me from this place."
-
-"Come, then," he said, supporting her. It was not until they had
-traversed two or three streets that Gerald began to feel perplexed.
-Where should he take her? He had no lady friend to whom he could apply
-and who would be willing to receive Emilia. It would be dangerous to
-her character to go to an hotel. The hour, the circumstances, Emilia's
-agitated state, were all against them. She was too weak to speak for
-herself; upon him devolved the responsibility of providing for her, of
-protecting her, and he was conscious that anything he might say to
-strangers would do her more harm than good. There was already a danger
-that she was being compromised. Some persons had passed them in the
-streets, and dark as was the night, they could scarcely fail to see
-that his arm was round her waist and that she was clinging to him. Now
-and then sobs escaped from her overcharged heart. A few of the people
-they met turned and looked after them, and Gerald heard one laugh. It
-went through him like a sharp knife. If he could only get her safely
-housed before she was recognized! But he was by no means sure that
-this danger had been averted. Certainly two men who had passed them
-were men he knew.
-
-As for Emilia, happily or unhappily for herself, she noticed nothing.
-This terrible crisis had completely prostrated her, and all that she
-was conscious of was that she was under the protection of an honorable
-man, and had escaped from the oppression of a vile woman.
-
-Something must be done, and done soon. They could not walk the streets
-the whole night. Every moment added to the dangers of the position.
-
-"Emilia, will you listen to me?"
-
-"I am listening, Gerald."
-
-It was as if she had called him so all her life; and, indeed, in the
-purest innocence, she had often murmured his name in secret to
-herself. He was thrilled with ineffable happiness.
-
-"You understand what I am saying to you, Emilia?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"It is very late."
-
-With sudden terror she cried, "You will not leave me, Gerald? You will
-not desert me?"
-
-"No, indeed. Do not be afraid. I am yours forever, in truth and honor.
-But we must be prudent."
-
-"I will do whatever you bid me, Gerald. I have no friend in the world
-but you."
-
-In his honor and honesty lay her safety. Well was it for her that she
-had by her side a man like Gerald.
-
-"Where did you live before you went to Mrs. Seaton?"
-She shuddered at the name, and answered, "In Grafton Street," and
-mentioned the number.
-
-They were nearly a mile from the house, and in Emilia's weak state it
-took them more than half an hour to get there, but weak as she was she
-did not complain of fatigue. She was content so long as Gerald was
-with her. There was no cessation in the rain, which still fell
-steadily.
-
-There was not a light to be seen in any of the windows of the house.
-Gerald knocked, but knocked in vain. In despair he turned away, and
-Emilia walked patiently with him.
-
-Then it forced itself upon him that there was still the alternative of
-endeavoring to obtain a room for her in a respectable hotel. To
-conduct her to one of doubtful repute was not to be thought of. It was
-close on midnight when they reached the hotel he had in his mind. He
-did not venture to take her inside the building with him. Her swollen
-eyes, her death-white face, her dishevelled hair, her clothes soaked
-with rain, would have ensured failure. Besides, until he was sure of a
-shelter for her, he did not care to expose her to the prying eyes of
-strangers.
-
-He explained to her what he was about to do, but he was doubtful
-whether she quite understood him. All she said was:
-
-"I do whatever you bid me, Gerald. I have no friend in the world but
-you."
-
-She had spoken these words many times, and no appeal could have been
-more plaintive. The pity of it was that every time she uttered them
-her voice had grown fainter.
-
-"Wait here for me, Emilia. I will not be gone long. If anyone speaks
-to you do not answer them."
-
-"You will come back to me, Gerald?"
-
-"Yes, surely, my darling."
-
-He was fated not to succeed. His lame explanations, his stumbling
-words, his references to "a young lady in an unfortunate position,"
-his statement that it would be rendering him a personal obligation,
-ensured failure. The lady manager of the hotel shook her head, and
-said she could not accommodate his friend "under such circumstances,"
-adding that she was surprised he should ask her to do so.
-
-He rejoined Emilia, whose fingers tightened upon his arm as she
-murmured:
-
-"You have come back!"
-
-They had not walked fifty yards before her strength gave way. Again
-she fainted, and but for his support would have fallen to the ground.
-Hailing a passing cab he, with the assistance of the driver, lifted
-her into it, and gave the man instructions to drive to his house. With
-a covert smile the man mounted to his box, and drove in the given
-direction.
-
-The house in which Gerald lived was that his parents had occupied. He
-had been loth to leave it until the arrival of his half-brother
-Leonard, when he had decided to discuss their future movements with
-him. He had had a sincere affection for Leonard, and relied greatly
-upon his judgment. Most of the servants had been dismissed; only two
-remained, a housekeeper and a maid, and these attended to the young
-gentleman's wants. They were in the habit of retiring early to bed;
-Gerald had a latchkey with which he let himself in when he came home
-late. Thus, in the present emergency, a certain privacy was ensured.
-
-Under no other circumstances than these would Gerald have dreamed of
-taking Emilia to his house, but he was driven to a course of which he
-inwardly disapproved. He had no time now to consider consequences;
-Emilia demanded all his attention. She was still unconscious when they
-arrived at the house, and he was compelled to ask the assistance of
-the driver to carry her in. This being accomplished, he paid the man
-liberally and dismissed him.
-
-They had entered without being observed; the housekeeper and the maid
-occupied rooms below, and Gerald supposed them to be both asleep at
-the time. The room into which Emilia had been carried was his favorite
-apartment, on the ground floor, and was somewhat daintily furnished.
-From a sideboard he took wine and biscuits, and from an inner room he
-brought towels and a basin of cold water. The fire in the grate had
-burned low, but he threw wood and coals on it, and it was soon in a
-bright blaze. Then he drew the sofa upon which Emilia was lying close
-to the fireplace, and stood debating with himself what he should do.
-Had the housekeeper been the only servant in the house he would have
-called her in to attend to Emilia; she had been many years in the
-service of his family, and he thought he could trust her; but he was
-sure he could not trust the maid, who was an inveterate chatterbox.
-Before he had decided what to do Emilia revived; struggling to her
-feet she gazed around in stupefaction. In as few words as possible
-Gerald explained what had occurred; she listened to him in silence,
-then sank upon the couch, and burst into a passion of tears.
-
-"Are you angry with me, Emilia?" he asked, in deep concern. "I could
-do nothing else. To have kept you in the streets any longer would have
-been your death. Listen to the rain; it is coming down harder than
-ever. Here at least you are safe for a few hours. The housekeeper is
-asleep down-stairs. I will call her up if you wish, but there is
-another servant who cannot be trusted, I fear."
-
-"If anyone sees me here I shall die of shame," said Emilia, in a low
-tone. "What will become of me--oh, what will become of me?"
-
-"There is nothing to fear," said Gerald, "and no one need be aware
-that you are in the house. Do you not know already that I love you
-with all my heart and soul, and that by consenting to become my wife
-you will make me the happiest man in the world? The position in which
-we are placed has been forced upon us. No one shall have the power of
-placing an evil construction upon it. I will see to that. Your
-happiness, your honor, are in my keeping. Can you not trust me,
-Emilia?"
-
-With these and other words as true and tender, he succeeded in calming
-her. With innate delicacy he did not press her to answer him at such
-an hour; he would wait till to-morrow; meanwhile he explained his plan
-to her. She was to occupy the room till the morning, and to lock
-herself in. He would find a bed elsewhere. Before the servants rose he
-would return to the house and make a confidant of the housekeeper; the
-younger servant should be sent upon a distant errand which would keep
-her from the house till eleven or twelve o'clock. Before that time
-Emilia would be settled elsewhere. Thus the secret would be preserved and
-the tongue of scandal silenced.
-
-"And then, Emilia," he said, gazing upon her with ardent affection, "I
-will ask for my reward."
-
-It was impossible, even if her heart were not already his, that she
-should fail to be touched by his delicacy and devotion. Tenderly and
-humbly she thanked him, and intended to say that she would give him
-his answer on the morrow, but love broke down the barrier of reserve.
-Involuntarily she held out her hands to him, and he clasped her in his
-arms and kissed her on her lips, and said that the embrace was a
-pledge of truth and constancy.
-
-"From you, Emilia, as well as from me!"
-
-"Yes, Gerald," she sighed; "I love you!"
-
-So through the clouds of this dolorous night broke the sun of faithful
-mutual love. It might have been excused him had he lingered, but for
-her sake he would not.
-
-"I shall wait in the passage," he said, "to hear you turn the key. No
-one will disturb you. The housekeeper does not enter this room till I
-ring in the morning, and I am not always an early bird. Good-night,
-dear love."
-
-"Good-night, dear Gerald. Are you sure you will be able to get a bed?"
-
-"I can get a dozen. God bless and guard you!"
-
-They kissed each other once more, and then he left her. He waited in
-the passage to hear the key turned, and with a lover's foolish
-fondness kissed the door which shut his treasure from his sight. He
-listened in the passage a moment or two to assure himself that all was
-still and safe, and then he crept to the street-door, which he opened
-and closed very softly. He did not seek a bed elsewhere, having come
-to the determination that it would be a better security from
-slanderous tongues that it should be supposed he slept in his own
-house that night. So he made pilgrimages through the streets, ever and
-anon coming back to the house which sheltered his darling. But once it
-fatefully happened that he was absent for some thirty or forty
-minutes, during which period a startling and unexpected incident
-occurred, the forerunner of as strange a series as ever entered into
-the history of two loving hearts.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVI.
-
-SLANDER'S FOUL TONGUE.
-
-
-The young servant whose loquacious tongue Gerald did not dare to trust
-was not asleep when he brought Emilia home. She was in bed, it was
-true, but wide-awake, with a candle alight at her bedside. It was
-against the rules of the house, but she did not care for that, being
-deeply engrossed in a thrilling story which set rules at defiance and
-drove sleep away. She heard the street-door opened and closed, then a
-murmur of voices, like the distant murmur of the sea, and then the
-second opening and closing of the street-door. The sounds did not
-arouse her curiosity, she was so profoundly interested in the fate of
-the hero and heroine that nothing short of a miracle could have
-diverted her attention. So she read on with eager eyes and panting
-bosom, long after Gerald had left the house, and would have continued
-to read, had she not come to those tantalizing words, "To be continued
-in our next." Then, with a long-drawn sigh, she turned in her bed--and
-forgot to blow out the candle.
-
-Emilia had intended not to sleep; she would keep awake all the night,
-and wait for Gerald in the morning--the morning of the day which was
-to be for her the herald of a new and happier life. She bore Mrs.
-Seaton no malice for the indignities she had suffered in her house.
-There was no room in Emilia's heart for anything but love. With what
-heartfelt gratitude did she dwell upon the image of Gerald, the
-noblest man on earth. "I thank God for him," she sighed. "Dear Lord, I
-thank Thee that Thou hast given me the love of a man like Gerald. My
-Gerald! Is it true? Can it be real? Ah, yes; I see his dear eyes
-looking into mine; his dear voice sinks into my heart. Make me
-grateful for the happiness before me!" It stretched out into the
-future years, a vista of peace and love and joy. Insensibly she sank
-upon her knees and prayed, and when she rose the room, the world, and
-all that it contained, were transfigured. How fair, how sweet was
-life! She had prayed for Gerald and for herself, had prayed that she
-might prove worthy of him, and might be endowed with power to brighten
-his days. Then she sat before the fire, and clasping her knee with her
-hands, imagined bright pictures in the glowing points of lights. She
-felt herself sinking to sleep. "I will just close my eyes for a few
-minutes," she thought. There were warm rugs about the room. Loosening
-her dress, she threw herself upon the couch, and covering herself with
-the rugs, fell asleep with joy in her heart and a smile on her lips.
-
-At half-past three in the morning Gerald, after an absence of half an
-hour or so, was returning to the street in which his house was
-situated, when he saw an angry glare in the sky, and heard sounds of
-confusion in the near distance. Almost instantly A fire-engine raced
-past him. He hastened after it, partly from instinct, but chiefly
-because it was going in his direction. He had, however, no idea that
-the danger personally concerned him. Long before he reached his street
-he was undeceived. Crowds of people encompassed him, and he found it
-difficult to proceed. Three or four fire-engines were at work;
-firemen were risking their lives in the enthusiasm of their noble
-work; policemen were keeping back the excited lookers-on.
-
-"My God!" he cried, as he turned the corner; "it is my house, and
-Emilia is there!"
-
-Frantically he strove to force his way through the crowd, which would
-not give way for him at first, but he redoubled his efforts, and
-running under or leaping over firemen, policemen, and the men and
-women who were surging round, he tore off his coat, and rushed toward
-the burning building. He was pulled back, and escaping from those who
-held him, darted forward again with despairing cries, and was caught
-in the arms of one who knew him.
-
-"It's all right," cried this man to the firemen. "Mr. Paget has
-escaped from the house."
-
-He who spoke thought that Gerald, instead of striving to enter the
-house, had just emerged from it, and his idea was strengthened by the
-circumstance that Gerald was in his shirt sleeves. One in authority
-came up to Gerald and said:
-
-"We were getting frightened about you, sir. We got out a young lady
-and your two servants----"
-
-"A young lady!" gasped Gerald, and inwardly thanked God that Emilia
-was saved.
-
-"Yes, sir. There's some mystery about her, because your housekeeper
-said there was no young lady there, but out she came, or was carried,
-insensible----"
-
-"For God's sake," cried Gerald, "don't tell me she is injured!"
-
-"I think not, sir; but she was in an insensible condition, and some
-people took her away. Your housekeeper said you were the only one
-left. Now that we know no lives are lost we can get on with our work.
-Your house is a wreck, sir; there'll be very little saved out of it."
-
-"Where was the young lady taken to?" asked Gerald, in a state of
-indescribable agitation, detaining the officer by the sleeve.
-
-"I can't tell you, sir. Excuse me, I must attend to my duty."
-
-Releasing himself from Gerald's grasp, he plunged among his men.
-Gerald, in his eager anxiety for information of Emilia, asked a dozen
-persons around him, and obtained a dozen different answers. One said
-one thing, one said another, and each speaker contradicted the one who
-had previously spoken. At length he saw on the outskirts of the crowd
-his housekeeper talking to a lady, and running toward them, he saw
-that the lady was Mrs. Seaton.
-
-"I am glad you are saved, Mr. Paget," said Mrs. Seaton, with freezing
-politeness. "I was just asking your housekeeper who is the young lady
-who was carried out of your house barely half dressed, and she insists
-that no such person was there. But as a hundred people saw her, there
-is, of course, no disputing a fact so clear. Perhaps you can tell us
-who she is?"
-
-A number of neighbors gathered around, some who knew both Gerald and
-Emilia.
-
-"And I said, sir," said the housekeeper, "that their eyes deceived
-them----"
-
-"Oh, that is very likely," interposed Mrs. Seaton, in her most
-malicious tone.
-
-"Because," continued the housekeeper, "when we went to bed last night
-there was nobody but me and that little wretch of a Susan in the
-house. It was her who set the place on fire, sir, with her novel
-reading. I hope she'll be put in prison for it."
-
-"But enlighten us, Mr. Paget," said Mrs. Seaton. "Who was the young
-lady?"
-
-"You are a malicious scandal-monger," cried Gerald, and tore himself
-away, feeling that he had made for himself and Emilia a more bitter
-enemy in calling Mrs. Seaton by that name.
-
-He continued his inquiries for Emilia, but could obtain no
-satisfaction. So many different stories were related to him that he
-could not tell which was the true one.
-
-The truth was that Emilia, being aroused from sleep by the fire,
-unlocked the door of the room in which Gerald had left her, and rushed
-into the passage. The place was strange to her, and she might have
-been burned to death had not a fireman, who was making his way past
-her, pulled her into the street. There she was taken up by one and
-another, striving all the while to escape the prying eyes of those
-around her, until, overcome by the complicated horror of her position,
-she swooned away. Two compassionate maiden ladies, sisters, pitying
-her state, said they would take care of her, and conveyed her to their
-home.
-
-There they tended her, wondering who she was, for she was a stranger
-to them, as they were to her. But the terrors through which Emilia had
-passed had completely prostrated her; the whole of the succeeding day
-she fell from one faint into another, and the doctor who was called in
-said it would be best to wait awhile before they questioned her too
-closely. "She has had a severe mental shock," he said, "and if we are
-not careful she will have an attack of brain fever." On the evening of
-the following day she was somewhat better, but her mind was almost a
-blank as to what had transpired during the past twenty-four hours. The
-image of Gerald occasionally obtruded itself, and if he had appeared,
-all would have been well; he was her rock, her shield, and, incapable
-as she was of coherent thought, his absence weighed upon her as a
-reproach, and she felt as if God and man had forsaken her. An
-experience still more cruel was in store for her.
-
-It was night, and she heard a voice in the adjoining room that smote
-her with terror, the voice of Mrs. Seaton speaking to the ladies who
-had befriended her. More successful than Gerald, Mrs. Seaton had
-hunted her down.
-
-"It's a neighborly duty," Mrs. Seaton was saying, "to prevent
-kind-hearted ladies like yourselves from being imposed upon. I have
-suffered from her artfulness and wickedness myself, and there was no
-one to warn me; but if you allow yourself to be taken in by her you
-will do it with your eyes open."
-
-"She is very gentle-mannered," said one of the two ladies who had
-befriended her, "and we have a great pity for her. Surely she cannot
-be so bad as you paint her."
-
-"Facts are facts," said Mrs. Seaton. "You do not even know her name."
-
-"She is too weak to enter into particulars," said the lady, "and we
-forbore to press her."
-
-"Too weak!" exclaimed Mrs. Seaton, with a derisive laugh.
-"Fiddlesticks! Excuse me for speaking so, but I hardly have patience
-with her. Her weakness is put on; you are no match for the creature.
-Of course if you do not mind being disgraced by association with such
-a character it is no business of mine; but I ought to know her better
-than you do."
-
-"You use strong words," said the lady very gravely. "Disgraced! It is
-too dreadful to think of. What is her name?"
-
-"Emilia Braham. Her father died deeply involved, and would no doubt
-have swindled his creditors if he had lived; fortunately for them he
-died suddenly, and they were able to step in and save something from
-the wreck. I will tell you the whole story if you care to hear it."
-
-"We ought to hear it."
-
-"You shall. After her father's death she came to me and begged me to
-give her a situation. I took her out of pity. 'I will give you a
-trial,' I said to her. So she came into my house, and I treated her as
-a daughter. After a time I had my suspicions, and I do not mind
-confessing that I set a watch upon her. Then I discovered that she was
-carrying on a disgraceful intimacy with Mr. Gerald Paget, meeting him
-regularly and secretly, and keeping out at all hours. When she found
-that all was known she told her gentleman friend, who came to me and
-bullied me. In return for his insults I showed him the door, and
-forbade his ever entering my house again. Then in the evening I sent
-for the creature and informed her that she must leave my service the
-following morning--that is, to-day. The language she used to me was
-dreadful, and she said she would go at once. I told her I would not
-allow it; badly as she had behaved, I felt that it was not right for
-her, a single girl, to leave the house at night. However, she
-insisted, and I had to give way. To protect myself from her malicious
-slanders, I wrote out a paper which she signed in the presence of
-another servant, who is ready to testify that the creature knew
-perfectly well what she was doing. Here it is; you can read it. The
-other servant witnessed her signature, as you see. Then she left the
-house, and I soon found out why. She had arranged a clandestine
-meeting with Mr. Paget that very night--I saw her with my own eyes in
-his embrace. An hour or two afterward they got into a cab--I can give
-you the number of the cab and the name of the driver--and drove to Mr.
-Paget's residence, he being a bachelor, mind you, and living alone
-with only two female servants in his employ. When he took the creature
-home he knew quite well that his domestics were abed and asleep, and
-that there was no risk of his scandalous doings being discovered. But
-he reckoned without his host. There is a Providence--yes, happily
-there is a Providence. The fire occurred, and the creature you are
-harboring rushed out of Mr. Paget's house. Ask her how she got into
-it. In the middle of the night, too. I ask you, as ladies of
-common-sense, what construction does it bear? No artfully-invented
-tale can explain it away. You should be thankful to me for putting you
-on your guard. Oh, you don't know these creatures!"
-
-"It is a dreadful story," said the lady.
-
-"I hope you will do your duty, as I have done mine. Have I put it too
-strongly in saying that her presence here is a disgrace?"
-
-"No. We are obliged to you for the unpleasant task you have performed.
-To-morrow, if she is strong enough, I will request her to take her
-departure."
-
-"Too lenient by far. In your place I should bundle her out, neck and
-crop. If you wait till she says she is well enough to go you will wait
-a precious long time. I shall take care, for my part, that everybody
-knows the truth."
-
-"Is it not strange," asked the lady, "that Mr. Paget has not called to
-inquire after her?"
-
-"Not at all; he wishes to keep his name out of the disgraceful affair
-if he can. It is perfectly clear that he is ashamed of the connection,
-and wants to be rid of it. So long as it could be kept quiet he didn't
-mind, but now that it is made public--I can't help repeating, in the
-most providential manner--it is another pair of shoes. Why, the whole
-town is talking of it. When the creature shows her face, if she has
-the hardihood to do it, she will meet with a proper reception. I
-shouldn't at all wonder if it gets into the papers. Good-night."
-
-Then there was a rustling of skirts, and Emilia knew that her cruel
-persecutor had taken her leave. She pressed her hands upon her eyes,
-and the scalding tears ran down her fingers. The horror of the
-situation was almost more than she could bear. She could not think
-clearly, but through her aching brain one conviction forced itself.
-She was disgraced, irretrievably disgraced. Her good name was lost
-forever. Nothing could restore it, nothing. If an angel from heaven
-were to declare it, no man or woman would hereafter believe in her
-purity and innocence. What should she do? Wait till the morning to be
-turned from the hospitable house of these kind sisters? Go forth into
-the broad light of day, and be pointed at and publicly shamed? No, she
-would fly at once, secretly and alone, into the hard, cold world, far,
-far from the merciless men and women who were ready to defame her. The
-story which Mrs. Seaton had related to the maiden sisters was false
-and malignant, but it was built upon a foundation of truth. If she
-herself had to give evidence in her own defence she would be
-pronounced guilty. She had been turned from Mrs. Seaton's house late
-in the night, but she had signed a paper saying that she went of her
-own free will. She and Gerald had been together in the streets--for
-how long? She could not remember, but it seemed to be hours. And as if
-that were not shame enough she had taken refuge in his house and had
-accepted his hospitality at an hour that would make virtuous women
-blush. He had pledged his faith to her, he had asked her to be his
-wife, and now, when she most needed a defender, he was absent. It was
-true, then, that he had deserted her. Had it been otherwise would he
-not have sought her long before this, would he not have been present
-to cast the malignant lie in Mrs. Seaton's face? She had believed so
-fully in his faith and honor, in his professions of love! But he was
-false, like all the rest of the world, from which sweetness and life
-had forever fled.
-
-"Oh, God!" she moaned. "In your Divine mercy, let me die to-night!"
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVII.
-
-LEONARD RETURNS HOME.
-
-
-A revulsion took place within her which, for a few moments, imbued her
-with strength. Upon a piece of blank paper she wrote the words, "I am
-innocent, as Heaven is my judge. God bless you for your kindness to
-me--Emilia Braham." Dark as it was she managed to form the letters
-fairly well, and she laid the paper upon the dressing-table. Then
-despair overtook her again. What had Mrs. Seaton said? "The whole town
-is talking of it. When the creature shows her face she will meet with
-a proper reception." But she would not give her revilers the
-opportunity of publicly hounding her down.
-
-With stealthy steps she crept into the passage. No one was near.
-Softly she glided to the door. The next moment she was in the street,
-flying she knew not whither. All that she was conscious of was that
-the direction she was taking led her away from the town. It was her
-wish; no person who knew her must ever look upon her face again. First
-solitude, then death--that was her prayer. She reached the outskirts
-of the town and plunged into a wood. A part of her desire was
-accomplished. In her flight no one had recognized or noticed her, and
-now she was alone with her shame and her despair. For the
-consciousness of her innocence did not sustain her. Judgment had been
-pronounced; she was condemned.
-
-Meanwhile the maiden ladies, believing that Emilia was asleep, sat in
-their room overcome with grief. The revelation which Mrs. Seaton had
-made to them was a great shock to these simple ladies, who were almost
-as ignorant of the world's bad ways and of the worst side of human
-nature as Emilia herself. They did not hear the young girl's footfall
-in the passage, and Emilia had made no noise in opening the street
-door, which she left open, fearing that the sound of its closing would
-betray her. They were silent for many minutes after Emilia's
-departure, and when they spoke it was in whispers.
-
-"It is a frightful story," said the younger lady. "Can it be true?"
-
-Her sister did not reply immediately; she was thinking of the sweet
-and innocent face of the hapless girl, and of the impossibility that
-it could be a mask to depravity. Presently she clasped her sister's
-hand and said:
-
-"We will not judge, dear, till we hear what she has to say."
-
-"You are always right," said the younger sister, and both experienced
-a feeling of relief. "Let us go to her; she may be awake."
-
-They stole into the adjoining room, and one said gently, "Are you
-awake?" Then, presently, "We do not wish to disturb you."
-
-They listened in the darkness and heard no sound of breathing.
-
-"I will get a candle," whispered the elder sister. Returning with it
-they looked around in alarm. "She is gone! Poor child, poor child! She
-must have heard what the lady said, and would not wait to be thrust
-forth. Oh, sister, is it innocence or guilt?"
-
-"Innocence, dear sister, innocence!" replied the younger lady,
-snatching up the paper upon which Emilia had written. "See sister; 'I
-am innocent, as Heaven is my judge. God bless you for your kindness to
-me.--Emilia Braham.' She speaks the truth. She is innocent, she is
-innocent!"
-
-"Yes," said the elder sister, solemnly. "She is innocent. Thank God!"
-
-Tears ran down their cheeks; their faith in goodness was restored.
-
-"But where has she gone? Oh, sister, so young, so sweet, so helpless!"
-
-They threw shawls over their shoulders, and ran to the street door,
-observing that Emilia in her flight had left it open. As they stood
-there, looking anxiously up and down the dark street, two gentlemen
-approached and accosted them. They were Gerald and his half-brother
-Leonard.
-
-In explanation of their presence a retrospect of a few hours is
-necessary.
-
-Leonard, having been absent upon his selfish pleasures for the better
-part of a year, had returned home upon the morning of the fire. It was
-a startling reception for the wanderer; regarding Gerald's money as
-his own his first concern was whether the house and furniture were
-insured. Ascertaining that they were, and that there would be no
-pecuniary loss, his next business was to find Gerald. But in his quest
-he heard something more; "slander, whose edge is sharper than the
-sword," was already doing its horrible work, and from one and another
-he heard for the first time of the existence of Emilia and of her
-having been found in Gerald's house in the middle of the night. "So,"
-thought he, "Gerald is no saint. Well, that sort of thing is better
-than marrying. I must keep him from that, at all hazards. It seems I
-have come home just in time." Soon afterward he met with Gerald, who
-was striving vainly to discover where Emilia was. Despite Gerald's
-agitation he greeted Leonard with much affection.
-
-"It is a stroke of good fortune," he cried, "that you have arrived
-to-day. I need a friend. You will help me to find Emilia."
-
-"Emilia!" echoed Leonard, pretending not to have heard her name
-before.
-
-Then Gerald began to confide in him, but his story threatened to be
-long, and Leonard drew him away from the curious people who thronged
-about them. They went to an hotel, Leonard insisting that it would be
-best, for Gerald wished to continue his inquiries for Emilia in the
-streets.
-
-"Be guided by me," said Leonard; "I can do what you want in half the
-time that you would do it yourself. Can you not trust me?"
-
-"Yes, with my life, Len," replied the warm-hearted young fellow, and
-allowed himself to be persuaded. In a private room in the hotel
-Leonard heard the whole story, and saw that Gerald was very much in
-earnest. This did not please him, but he said not a word to Emilia's
-disadvantage; he was a cunning worker, and he knew which roads were
-the best to compass any designs he had in view. He no more believed in
-Emilia's innocence and purity than the worst of her detractors, but he
-was not going to tell Gerald this. Gerald was trying to throw dust
-into his eyes, but that was a game that two could play at. With his
-own cynical disbelief in womanly purity he laughed at the idea of
-Emilia innocently occupying Gerald's house for a whole night.
-
-"You must not be too angry with people," he said, "for speaking
-against the young lady. We live in a frightfully ill-natured world."
-
-"I know, I know," groaned Gerald, "and it makes it all the harder for
-my poor girl. It was I who thrust her into the position; she was
-insensible when I took her into the house. Can you not see there was
-nothing else to be done?"
-
-"I see it of course, my boy, and I am sincerely sorry for the pair of
-you."
-
-"She must be suffering agonies"----
-
-"Be reasonable, Gerald," said Leonard with affectionate insistance;
-"it's a hundred to one she knows nothing of it. I must exercise my
-authority as an elder brother over you, and as more of a man of the
-world than you are. Now, what is it you want to do?"
-
-"To find out where she has been taken to, and to insist upon her
-marrying me at once. That is the surest way to silence the slanderer.
-I have done her a wrong--not wilfully, Len, you know me too well for
-that--and I must repair it at the very earliest moment. Thank God she
-believes in me, and knows that I am faithful and true. Oh, Len, she is
-an angel, the sweetest, dearest woman that ever breathed! No man could
-help loving her."
-
-"From what you tell me of her, Gerald, we must proceed carefully. A
-nature so sensitive as hers must be dealt with delicately. You see, my
-boy, there is no disguising that if people are speaking against her,
-you are the cause of it. I was wrong in saying that it's a hundred to
-one she knows nothing of it; I ought to have put it the other way.
-Very well, then. Your Emilia is an angel--granted; I believe every
-word you say of her. But she is a woman, nevertheless, and you are
-responsible for dragging her name through the mud."
-
-"Good God!" exclaimed Gerald. "You put it strongly."
-
-"I am bound to do so, as the sincerest friend you have. I hope you
-give me credit for being that, Gerald."
-
-"Len, if you were not here I should go distracted."
-
-"I am only too glad I have come in good time to assist you. To
-continue about Emilia. What does such a woman as she value most in the
-world? Her good name. You have jeopardized hers, Gerald, with the best
-intentions I admit, but jeopardized it is. Hearing the scandal she
-will naturally ask herself, 'Why did Gerald take me into his house
-when I was in a fainting condition, and unable to have a voice in the
-matter? Could he not have waited till I recovered? And now see what
-people are saying of me? He has degraded me; I shall never be able to
-look honest people in the face again.' Is it entirely unnatural, my
-boy, that she should not rush into your arms when you present
-yourself? Just think a bit."
-
-"I have not thought of it in that light," said Gerald ruefully.
-
-"Because you have considered it from your point of view, not from
-hers. Answer me candidly. If she had been in possession of her senses
-would she have consented to enter your house clandestinely with you at
-such an hour last night--you, a single man, and her lover?"
-
-"No, I see it now. Wretch that I am! I deserved to be pilloried for
-it."
-
-"Don't rush into the other extreme. You acted unwisely, but honestly."
-(Leonard had no more belief in the professions he was making than Mrs.
-Seaton would have had, but he knew the nature of the man he was
-playing upon.) "Now, what you want in this crisis is a friend like
-myself, who, a stranger to your Emilia, can explain everything to her
-in a considerate, sensible way. Otherwise she may refuse to have
-anything more to say to you."
-
-This suggestion frightened Gerald. "What do you advise me to do?" he
-asked.
-
-"To place yourself entirely in my hands, and let _me_ bring this
-unfortunate matter to a satisfactory conclusion."
-
-"I will do so, Len. Thank you a thousand, thousand times. I am
-eternally grateful to you."
-
-"Nonsense. I love you, Gerald; our interests are one. Look at yourself
-in the glass; you are a perfect scarecrow."
-
-"I have had no sleep since the night before last.
-
-"Is that a fit condition in which to set about a task so delicate? It
-would be inviting failure. First, you must have some breakfast."
-
-"I can't eat, Len."
-
-"You must. A devilled bone and a glass or two of champagne." He rang
-the bell, and gave the order, and ordered also a warm bath to be
-prepared. "Now, Gerald. The bath first, the devilled bone and a pint
-of champagne next, and then to bed for two or three hours. When you
-awake, refreshed and with a clear mind, I will tell you all about
-Emilia."
-
-"You will find out where she is?"
-
-"I will--if it is to be found out."
-
-"And you will explain everything to her?"
-
-"I will."
-
-"And you will tell her I love her more devotedly than ever?"
-
-"I will; and that your only wish is to hear the wedding bells ring."
-
-"You're a good fellow, Len. I can never repay you. You are my good
-angel. But what a selfish brute I am, to talk only of myself and my
-troubles. You cabled for money, Len, and it was sent to you. How's the
-exchequer?"
-
-"Thank you for the inquiry, dear boy. It never was lower. I have been
-deucedly unfortunate; plunged into a land speculation which I thought
-was going to make my fortune, but which cleaned me out to the last
-sovereign. How on earth I made my way home I don't know. I was
-consoled by one reflection, that I was coming home to the dearest
-brother an unfortunate devil ever had."
-
-Gerald took out his check-book and put his name to a check.
-
-"Here is a blank check, Len. Fill it in for what you like."
-
-"Good boy. I am in debt, Gerald."
-
-"Never mind; there's a balance of over two thousand in the bank."
-
-"May I fill in for a thou----?
-
-"And welcome. I've a lot of money in securities."
-
-"I won't thank you, Gerald," said Leonard, handing the pen to his
-step-brother; "you know what my feelings are toward you. Write the sum
-in yourself."
-
-Gerald wrote, and gave the check back. Leonard just glanced at it, and
-saw that it was drawn out for twelve hundred pounds, payable to
-bearer. He passed his hand over his tearless eyes, and turned his
-head. A very skilful actor indeed was Leonard Paget; he knew to a
-nicety the value of a light touch. The waiter entered and said the
-bath was ready.
-
-"Don't bring up breakfast till I ring for it," said Leonard to the
-man. "Off with you, Gerald. I give you just twenty minutes."
-
-Gerald gone, he looked at the check again. "It is only an instalment,"
-he murmured. "Every shilling he has belongs to me; and I mean to have
-it. As for this girl--bah! They must never come together again."
-
-Upon Gerald's appearance from the bath he greeted him with a smile.
-"You look twice the man you were. Now for breakfast. Tuck in, Gerald."
-
-In any other circumstances Gerald would not have been able to eat, but
-with such a friend and counsellor by his side he made a tolerably good
-meal. Then Leonard saw him to his bedroom, and did not leave it till
-the honest fellow was in bed, and had drank another glass of champagne
-into which Leonard had secretly poured a dozen drops Of a tasteless
-narcotic which he was in the habit of carrying about with him to
-insure sleep.
-
-"That will keep him quiet for six or seven hours," he said. "I must
-have a little time to myself to settle my plans."
-
-The first thing he did when he went from the hotel was to cash the
-check. He was a man again, his pockets well lined, and he was ready
-for any villainy. He had little difficulty in discovering where Emilia
-was, and in ascertaining the character of the ladies who had given her
-shelter. This knowledge conveyed with it a difficulty; the character
-for kind-heartedness which he received of the maiden sisters was not
-favorable to his schemes, and he deemed it best to take no definite
-step on this day. But he was not idle; he learned all there was to be
-learned of Emilia, and, reading between the lines, found himself
-confronted with fresh difficulties. It would not be easy to deceive
-such a girl--a girl who might have committed an imprudence, but who
-was not the artful creature he had supposed her to be. He came to the
-conclusion that the love which existed between her and Gerald was a
-genuine, honest love. "I must trust a little to chance," he thought.
-In the afternoon he returned to the hotel. Gerald was still asleep; he
-waited till the evening, and then heard Gerald moving. He went into
-the bedroom as Gerald jumped out of bed.
-
-"At last!" he exclaimed, before the young man could utter a word. "I
-have been trying these last three hours to rouse you. How thoroughly
-dead beat you must have been to have slept so long!"
-
-Gerald looked round in dismay; evening was fast deepening into night.
-
-"What time is it, Len?"
-
-"Nearly eight o'clock. Do you feel refreshed?"
-
-"I'm a new man. How about Emilia? Have you seen her? Can I go to her?"
-He dressed rapidly as he spoke.
-
-"I am sorry to say," continued Leonard, "that I can obtain no news of
-her. Wait yet a little while; I will go out again and endeavor to find
-her."
-
-"I cannot wait I will go with you."
-
-"I forbid it, Gerald. You will spoil all if you don't mind. I should
-not be here now, but I was getting alarmed about you. I will return in
-an hour."
-
-He hastened away before Gerald could reply. "What am I to do now?" he
-thought. "If Gerald makes inquiries himself he will be certain to
-learn where she is. I have twelve hundred pounds in my pocket. If the
-devil would range himself on my side I would give him half of it with
-pleasure."
-
-He little knew how near he was to the accomplishment of his wishes. At
-that moment Mrs. Seaton was making her way to the house of the maiden
-sisters. He himself was wending his course toward the house, moodily
-debating how he could drive Emilia from it, and from the town forever.
-He knew all about Mrs. Seaton and her animosity against Emilia; the
-woman had been pointed out to him early in the day, and her face was
-familiar to him. He walked slowly, she quickly; thus she overtook and
-passed him, but he had seen and recognized her. He quickened his
-steps, and paused as she paused, before the house of the maiden
-sisters. With unerring intuition he guessed her errand.
-
-"Are you going to see the ladies who live here, madam?" he asked in
-his most respectful tone.
-
-"I am, sir," she replied with asperity. "Who are you, may I inquire?"
-
-"I am a stranger in the town, madam," he said, speaking with the
-greatest deference. "Is it not to this place that the young person was
-taken who was found in Mr. Gerald Paget's house last night?"
-
-"It is, and my business is to expose her. Have you any objections?"
-
-"Not the slightest, madam. I think you are performing a Christian
-duty."
-
-"I am not obliged to you, sir," said Mrs. Seaton, haughtily. "I am in
-the habit of doing my duty without being prompted. The creature who is
-harbored there shall be turned adrift before many hours are over. She
-is a disgrace to the neighborhood, and I will see that she is hunted
-out of it."
-
-"Madam," said Leonard, "the whole town will be in your debt if you rid
-it of the person in question, and I myself shall be deeply grateful to
-you."
-
-He raised his hat and walked away, thinking, with a blithe laugh, "The
-devil _is_ on my side and I have the twelve hundred pounds safe in my
-pocket." After this agreeable reflection he idled an hour, singing
-little snatches of song to himself, and then returned to the hotel
-with a plausible tale which he had invented to put Gerald off the
-scent till the following day, by which time he hoped that Emilia would
-be gone and all traces of her lost. He was a keen judge of human
-nature, and knew what effect Mrs. Seaton's calumnies would have upon a
-young and sensitive girl. Her first impulse would be to fly from a
-spot where she was known--to hide her face anywhere so long as it was
-among strangers. With a strong, determined woman it would be
-different; she would brazen it out, and, give back scorn for scorn,
-and although she could not hope for victory she would have the
-satisfaction of saying bitter things to her revilers. Emilia was not
-this kind of woman; Gerald's descriptions of her had enabled Leonard
-to gauge her correctly, and to forecast how she would act in the face
-of an accusation so vile and degrading. Believing firmly in the
-judgments he formed of matters in which he was personally concerned,
-he had, therefore, reason to congratulate himself upon the course
-which events had taken, and he skipped up the steps of the hotel with
-a mind at ease. Its balance, however, was disturbed when he was
-informed that Gerald was gone.
-
-"Did he say where he was going?" he asked.
-
-"No, sir," was the reply.
-
-"Nor when he would return?"
-
-"No, sir."
-
-"But he left a message for me?"
-
-"No, sir."
-
-"Can you tell me which direction he took?"
-
-"No, sir."
-
-These unsatisfactory iterations produced no outward effect upon
-Leonard; he was a man who never showed his hand. With a pleasant smile
-he left the hotel thinking, "Now where the devil has the young fool
-gone? To make inquiries for his goddess, no doubt. Does that indicate
-impatience merely, or that he cannot trust me? I must no lose my hold
-on him. If it is necessary to humor him, humored he shall be. There is
-more than one way out of a wood." As a measure of precaution he walked
-in the direction of the house of the maiden sisters, and reaching it,
-walked slowly back toward the hotel. This was done with the intention
-of intercepting Gerald, and learning whether the young man had
-discovered Emilia's refuge--in which event he was prepared to disclose
-that he himself had at length discovered it, and was hurrying to his
-dear brother to communicate the welcome intelligence. "By the Lord
-Harry," he muttered, as he stood at the corner of the street, "here
-comes the young fool! It is lucky I am prepared." He strode rapidly
-toward Gerald, and almost upset him in his haste.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXVIII.
-
-THE FALSE FRIEND.
-
-
-"Hallo, Gerald!" he cried. "I meet you by the most fortunate chance. I
-have been hunting for you everywhere."
-
-"I could not wait for you at the hotel," said Gerald, "and had to go
-out and make inquiries for myself. What is the name of this street?"
-
-"Never mind the name of the street," said Leonard, jumping at the safe
-conclusion. "The house is the important thing, and I have discovered
-it."
-
-"Where my Emilia is?"
-
-"Yes, where your Emilia is."
-
-"I also have been told where she was taken to, and I was hurrying to
-her. Have you seen her, Len, have you seen her?"
-
-"I have not, and have not attempted to do so. You see, Gerald, it is
-night, and I am a stranger to her and to the people who have taken
-care of her. It will be best, after all, for you to go first,
-especially as you are no longer the scarecrow you were, and will not
-alarm her by your haggard appearance."
-
-"I am quite fresh now. Are we going to the house?"
-
-"Yes, I am taking you there. Oh, Gerald, how I have hunted for your
-Emilia! If I had been in love with her myself, if she were my
-sweetheart instead of yours, I could not have worked harder to find
-her."
-
-"I am sure you could not. You are a true friend. Forgive me for
-leaving the hotel; I could not bear the suspense."
-
-"You acted naturally, Gerald--as I should have done in your place. I
-am something more than a friend, I am your loving brother, dear boy,
-ready to go through fire and water to serve you."
-
-"God bless you, Len! Are we near the house?"
-
-"There it is, Gerald, on the opposite side, just beyond the
-lamp-post."
-
-"Come, then, come!"
-
-They had scarcely started to cross the road when the street-door was
-opened, and the maiden sisters appeared on the threshold, peering up
-and down the street.
-
-"Which is Emilia?" asked Leonard, grasping Gerald's arm, detaining him
-a moment.
-
-"Neither. Let us go to them."
-
-"It is hard to say to so devoted a lover," said Leonard, "but be a
-little prudent. Any appearance of violent haste might cause them to
-shut the door in our faces."
-
-Thus advised Gerald curbed his impatience, and crossed the road in a
-more leisurely manner. The maiden sisters started back as the two
-gentlemen halted before them.
-
-"I beg your pardon," said Leonard, raising his hat; Gerald was so
-agitated that he could scarcely speak; "but we have been directed here
-to see a young lady who was rescued from the fire last night, and who
-found a refuge in your hospitable house."
-
-"We brought Miss Braham home with us," said the elder lady, "and are
-now in great distress about her. I presume you are friends of hers."
-
-"We are her most devoted friends," said Leonard, "and have been
-searching for her the whole of the day. My name is Leonard Paget; this
-is my brother Gerald."
-
-The sisters were standing hand in hand, and at the mention of these
-names their fingers fluttered, then tightened in their clasp. Gerald
-found his voice.
-
-"Is she ill?" he exclaimed. "Do not hide anything from me, I beg!"
-
-The sisters looked nervously at each other; the elder was first to
-speak.
-
-"Are you aware that we have received a visit from a lady well known in
-the town?"
-
-"No," said Gerald. "Who is the lady and what has her visit to do with
-Miss Braham?"
-
-There was a ring of genuine honesty in his voice, and it made its
-impression. The elder lady touched his arm gently.
-
-"Tell me," she said, "In what special manner are you interested in
-Miss Braham?"
-
-"Madam," replied Gerald, "I hope very soon to have the happiness of
-calling her my wife."
-
-The sisters gave each other a bright look, and the younger lady said,
-"It is cold standing here, and my sister is not strong. Will you not
-walk into the house?"
-
-They accepted the invitation, Gerald gladly, Leonard with curiosity as
-to what the sisters meant when they said they were in great distress
-about Emilia.
-
-"Excuse my impatience," said Gerald, "but I implore you to allow me to
-see Miss Braham at once."
-
-Their pity for him would not admit of Emilia's departure being
-immediately communicated to him; it must be led up to gently. But
-Gerald's indignation would not be restrained; before the conclusion of
-Mrs. Seaton's visit was recounted he interrupted the maiden sisters
-with the truthful version of Emilia's misfortunes and of the unhappy
-circumstances which compelled him to take her to his house a few hours
-before the fire. He blamed himself bitterly for the indiscretion, but
-asked them what else he could have done; and they, completely won over
-by his indignation and by the manifest honesty of his professions,
-threw aside for once all reserve and hesitation, and boldly declared
-that he could not have acted otherwise.
-
-"Sister," said the elder to the younger, "the sweet young lady
-deserves our deepest pity, and is worthy of our love. Mr.
-Paget"--turning to Gerald--"Miss Braham will find a home here, and if
-she will consent, shall be married from our house."
-
-"You are angels of goodness," said the young man, "but do not keep her
-from me any longer. If you do not think right that I should see her
-alone, let me see her in your presence."
-
-"Alas!" said the elder lady; "she must first be found."
-
-"Found!" echoed Gerald, in bewilderment.
-
-"Do not alarm yourself. The dear child cannot have gone far. We have
-not finished what we have to tell you. Listen patiently to the end."
-
-When all was related Gerald stood stupefied for a few moments, holding
-in his hands the pathetic vindication of her innocence which Emilia
-had left behind her. Leonard was secretly exultant. Emilia was gone,
-and if he assisted in the search for her she should never be found. He
-was confident that she had flown from the neighborhood, and that her
-one desire would be to hide herself and her shame among strangers. It
-was not in his nature to believe in womanly purity, and it was not
-likely that he would make an exception in Emilia's favor. She was his
-enemy; she stood in his path; she barred his way to affluence; let her
-sink into the obscurity she was seeking.
-
-These sentiments were not expressed in his eyes, which were full of
-sympathy.
-
-"Come, Gerald," he said, passing his arm around the young man's neck,
-"be a man. As these good ladies say, it will not be difficult to find
-Emilia. Let us seek her; in an hour or two all your troubles will be
-over."
-
-"Your brother is right," said the elderly lady, "no time should be
-lost, for the poor child must be suffering. We rejoice that you have
-so true a friend to assist you. Do not desert him, sir; he is not fit
-to be left alone."
-
-"Desert Gerald!" cried Leonard. "Desert my dear brother in the hour of
-his distress! No, indeed. He will find me true to the last."
-
-The ladies pressed his hands, and gazed at him approvingly and
-admiringly. His face beamed with earnestness and enthusiasm. He had in
-him a touch of the actor's art; he was playing a part in a fine comedy
-of manners and intrigue, and he thoroughly enjoyed it, and commended
-himself for his masterly performance.
-
-The maiden sisters saw the brothers to the street door, and impressed
-upon them that Emilia should be brought to their house at the earliest
-opportunity, and that her room would be ready for her.
-
-Then commenced Gerald's search for Emilia, a search not only without a
-clue to guide him, but with a cunning man at his elbow, suggesting
-that they should go here and there, where he was certain there was
-chance of finding her. There were times, however, when Gerald himself
-said he would go to such and such a house and make inquiries, and
-Leonard never opposed him. It was his one wish to keep Gerald in the
-town, and he breathed no hint of his conviction that Emilia had flown
-from it. Everything was against Gerald; it was late when the search
-commenced, and at an hour past midnight he and Leonard stood in the
-quiet streets, gazing at each other, Gerald helplessly, Leonard
-inquiringly.
-
-"Where now, Gerald?"
-
-"God knows! I think I am losing my mind."
-
-"May I make a suggestion, dear boy?"
-
-"Yes, Len."
-
-"You will not think it treason; you will not blame me for importing a
-little common-sense into our sad position?"
-
-"How can I blame you, Len--you, the truest friend that a man ever had?
-Do not think me ungrateful. I have only one desire in life--to find
-Emilia. I can think of nothing but her."
-
-"Then I may make my suggestion?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Understand, Gerald, that I make it entirely in Emilia's interests."
-
-"I do, Len."
-
-"Our best plan will be to go to the hotel and jump into bed----"
-
-"Len!"
-
-"There, I knew you would storm at me; but just be reasonable."
-
-"I can't be reasonable. I must find Emilia."
-
-"All right, dear boy. I'll stand by you till I drop. Which way shall
-we turn?"
-
-Gerald, in response to this heartless question, led the way aimlessly
-down one street, up another, and on and on, Leonard trudging by his
-side, and neither of them speaking a word. At last Gerald stopped, and
-gazed pitifully around; his eyes fell upon Leonard, who, conscious
-that the gaze was coming, and timing it, closed his with an air of
-pathetic weariness.
-
-"You are tired, Len."
-
-Leonard instantly opened his eyes, and said briskly, "Tired, dear boy!
-Not a bit of it. What should make me tired? Come along, old fellow.
-Let's be moving."
-
-"No, Len, I don't see much use in it."
-
-"It is not I who say that, Gerald."
-
-"No, it is myself. What o'clock is that striking?"
-
-Leonard put up his finger, and they listened to the chiming of the
-bells.
-
-"Two o'clock, Gerald."
-
-"What is Emilia doing now?" murmured Gerald, more to himself than to
-his companion.
-
-"She is asleep, I should say."
-
-"No, Len. I know her better than you do. She is awake, thinking of me,
-as I am thinking of her. You are some years older than I, dear
-brother; have you ever been in love?"
-
-"Yes, Gerald," replied Leonard, quietly.
-
-"And you are still unmarried," said Gerald, pityingly. "How did it
-end?"
-
-"Do not ask me, Gerald."
-
-"Forgive me; it is a painful remembrance. She is dead?"
-
-Leonard did not reply, and Gerald repeated,
-
-"She is dead? I am sorry, very sorry."
-
-"You need not be. She lives."
-
-"How did it happen? You were true to her, I am sure."
-
-"For heaven's sake, Gerald, do not force me to answer you. Let us talk
-of something else."
-
-"I open my heart to you," said Gerald, with sad insistence, "and you
-close yours to me."
-
-"You cut me to the quick. Yes, I was true to her, but she was
-not true to me. There is the tragedy or the comedy--which you like,
-Gerald--related in less than a dozen words. It is a story which all
-men live to tell--all men, I mean, with the exception of yourself."
-
-"I am a selfish brute, to compel you to expose your wounds. Poor Len!
-If she had been like my Emilia you would not have had to tell the
-tale. We can do nothing more to-night."
-
-"Nothing that I can see."
-
-"I am so full of my own grief that I forget to sympathize with yours,
-but I am truly sorry for you. At this moment Emilia is thinking of me;
-there is a spiritual whisper in the air which assures me of this.
-Would it be really best to go back to the hotel?"
-
-"It would be wisest, both for your sake and for Emilia's. Early in the
-morning we can commence again. Gerald, to stop out any longer would be
-folly. You would not dare to knock at the door of any house at this
-hour and inquire for Emilia; it would be the ruin of her. You have her
-honor to guard, as well as your own happiness to look after."
-
-"I am blind, and utterly, utterly selfish. Heaven has sent you to
-guide and counsel me. Yes, we will go."
-
-They returned to the hotel, and Gerald gave directions that he should
-be called early in the morning. He and Leonard wished each other
-good-night, and retired to their separate rooms. As Leonard undressed
-he chuckled at the successful progress he had made. Everything had
-worked in his favor, and would so work to the end. He had no doubt of
-that, with his hand on the wheel. So he closed his eyes, and went to
-sleep contented and happy.
-
-Gerald stood by the window and thought of Emilia. To-morrow they would
-be together; to-morrow all would be well. He threw the window open and
-looked out. Could his sight have reached the distance he would have
-seen a pitiful figure staggering on through country roads, stopping
-ever and anon to recover her breath, then starting feverishly on
-again, with panting bosom and streaming eyes, mournfully grateful for
-the darkness that encompassed her, and dreading the coming day.
-Slander's foul work was being accomplished. Dark as it was, Emilia saw
-the malignant eyes; silent as it was, she heard the hard voices. On
-and on she stumbled, praying for rest. Gerald was false; she did not
-care to live.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXIX.
-
-ON THE TRACK.
-
-
-As early, as practicable in the morning Gerald was astir, continuing
-his inquiries for the missing girl. Leonard, of course, accompanied
-him, with the pretence of being very busy and as anxious as Gerald for
-the success of the search, but inwardly fuming at his step-brother's
-activity. His spirits rose as hour after hour passed fruitlessly by;
-his hopeful anticipations were being realized; Emilia was gone, never
-to return again.
-
-At three o'clock in the afternoon Gerald came to a standstill. The
-tortures he was suffering were reflected in his face.
-
-"Poor boy, poor boy!" said Leonard, in his gentlest tone. "I can truly
-sympathize with you, Gerald."
-
-"I know, Len, I know," said Gerald. "Let me think quietly; don't speak
-to me. Something must be done; something shall be done. It weighs like
-a sin upon my soul that I have driven my dear girl to misery. What
-must she think of me?"
-
-All at once an inspiration fell upon him; his face lighted up; he
-spoke with hope and animation.
-
-"Fool that I am," he cried, "to trust myself. I am going to my
-lawyers; if you care to come with me, Len----"
-
-"Of course I care to come with you," interrupted Leonard. "But why to
-your lawyers? They cannot assist you."
-
-"They can," said Gerald, in a decided tone; and they proceeded to the
-office arm-in-arm.
-
-In a private interview with the head of the firm, at which Leonard was
-present, Gerald explained what he wanted. The firm was to set all
-their machinery to work at once to discover where Emilia had flown to;
-everything was to be done very quietly, and no expense was to be
-spared. When the young girl was found she was not to be informed that
-a search had been made for her, but she was to be carefully and
-secretly watched, and Gerald was to be immediately communicated with.
-That done, and Gerald conducted to the house in which Emilia had
-sought refuge, the business entrusted to the lawyers was concluded.
-Gerald left with the head of the firm a check for a large amount, in
-proof that he was thoroughly in earnest; and it was arranged that he
-or Leonard, or both of them, should return to their hotel and wait for
-news.
-
-"If it is in the middle of the night," said Gerald, "let me know. Not
-a moment must be lost."
-
-Then the step-brothers left the office and walked to their hotel.
-Leonard inwardly gave Gerald credit for being much more practical than
-he had imagined, but still hoped that his good luck would follow him,
-and that the business would fail. To Gerald the misery of entrusting
-the task to other hands lay in the necessity of his remaining inactive
-himself; but although he would not leave the hotel for fear that a
-messenger from the lawyers might arrive in his absence, he could not
-endure to remain idle. He sent a note to the kind maiden ladies who
-had sheltered Emilia, and received one in reply, to the effect that
-they had heard nothing of the lost girl; and at least once in every
-hour he despatched a communication to the lawyers, to which the
-invariable answer was that the inquiry was proceeding, but no clue had
-yet been discovered. Gerald did not undress that night; he slept
-fitfully in an arm-chair. Leonard prepared for any sacrifice in the
-furtherance of his own interests, took off his coat and waistcoat, and
-made himself as comfortable as he could with wraps and rugs on a sofa
-in the same room in which Gerald passed the night. Gerald urged him to
-go to bed, but he would not.
-
-"It is not right," said the unhappy young man, "that you should share
-my fatigue and troubles. Go and have a good night's rest."
-
-"I distinctly decline," replied Leonard, in an affectionate tone.
-"Your troubles are my troubles, and I feel them almost as deeply as
-yourself. My name is Thorough."
-
-"There is no other man like you, I believe," said Gerald. "I will try
-and repay you one day."
-
-"You shall repay me one day," thought Leonard, "and whatever I get
-will be richly earned."
-
-Aloud, he said, "The only repayment I ask, my dear boy, is to see you
-happy with your Emilia. There, let us say no more about it. If you
-want me in the night you have only to call me, you will find me ready
-for anything."
-
-Gerald woke a dozen times before daylight, and moved gently about so
-that he should not disturb his noble friend. He stole down to the
-night porter.
-
-"No one has come for me?"
-
-"No one, sir."
-
-"If anyone calls send him to me instantly."
-
-"Yes, sir."
-
-It was a fortunate night for the porter, the tips he received from the
-distracted young man making a very handsome total. Gerald was grateful
-when morning broke. It would not be long before Emilia was in his
-arms. He made an effort to repair the disorder in his clothes and
-appearance, and long before the door of the lawyers' office was open
-one of his messengers was waiting for tidings. Still the same answer,
-always the same answer; no traces of Emilia had been found. He paced
-the room with the restlessness of a wild animal.
-
-Once he stopped, and leaning heavily on Leonard's shoulder, whispered,
-"If she should be dead! Good God, if she should be dead!"
-
-"So much the better for everybody," thought Leonard, as he passed his
-arm round Gerald's waist and endeavored to soothe him.
-
-At noon the lawyer paid Gerald a visit.
-
-"You have brought me news?" cried Gerald.
-
-"None of a satisfactory nature," replied the lawyer. "We have
-ascertained for certain that the young lady is not in the town."
-
-"But when she left the house in which she was sheltered," said
-Leonard, for Gerald was too overpowered to speak, "someone must have
-seen her."
-
-"If so," said the lawyer, "we have not discovered the person, who has
-a good reason for coming forward, as we have offered handsome rewards
-for definite information of any kind concerning her. However, we have
-now taken other steps, and it is for the purpose of making Mr. Paget
-acquainted with them that I have paid this visit."
-
-He paused, and Gerald motioned to him to continue.
-
-"Being convinced that Miss Braham has left the town, we have
-despatched agents in every direction to track her down. These agents
-understand that they are to pursue their mission in the most delicate
-manner, and they are instructed to keep in regular telegraphic
-communication with us. My errand here is to communicate these
-proceedings to you, and to advise patience and"--with a significant
-look at Gerald--"peace of mind."
-
-"I shall not know peace," said Gerald, "till she is found."
-
-"All that is humanly possible is being done; we can do no more."
-
-It was poor comfort, and it did not diminish the young man's distress.
-The lawyer remained for a few minutes longer, and then took his
-departure. The day waned, and the night, without any tidings, and on
-the following morning despair seemed to have reached its height in
-Gerald's mind.
-
-"Upon my soul," thought Leonard, "I think he is going mad. Well, that
-would not be a bad ending to this insane hunt. I should be his
-guardian, and should know how to take care of him--and his money. His?
-No, mine, by the laws of nature."
-
-During this day copies of telegrams received by the lawyers were sent
-to Gerald, but not one of them satisfactory.
-
-"She is lost to me forever," groaned Gerald.
-
-"Amen!" thought Leonard.
-
-Early the next morning, however, a telegram was handed in with these
-words, "On the track." The lawyer hastened to Gerald.
-
-"It is from one of our best men," he said. "Something will be known in
-the course of the day."
-
-But it was not till another night had passed that Gerald learned where
-Emilia was.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXX.
-
-THE FLIGHT AND THE RESCUE.
-
-
-The terrors of the night on which Emilia fled to escape from her
-traducers produced an indelible effect upon her mind. Often in
-afterlife, when the brief gleam of sunshine she was destined to enjoy
-had died away, did she reflect with shudders upon the experiences of
-those few pregnant hours. From the moment of her departure until
-sunrise flooded the land with light, but brought only a deeper anguish
-to her soul, there was an interval of darkness lasting barely seven
-hours, but it seemed to her that it might have been seven times seven,
-so heavily charged were the minutes with black woe. Feeble as she was,
-and fragile as was her frame, she travelled a surprising distance
-during these interminable hours. When, compelled by exhaustion to
-rest, she had so far recovered as to be able to proceed, she ran with
-fleet foot to make up for lost time, until, breathless and panting,
-she came to a standstill, and caught at the nearest object for
-support, generally a fence or the branch of a tree. Sometimes she
-caught at shadows and fell, and lay supine awhile, to rise again in
-ever-growing despair and continue her flight; but moral forces are
-powerless against the forces of physical nature, and shortly after
-sunrise her strength gave way, and now when she fell she was unable
-from exhaustion to rise. She might have been able to continue her
-flight for still a brief space, had she not been climbing a hill, the
-exertion of which completely overpowered her. The spot upon which she
-fell commanded a view of a river. It stretched to the north and south
-of her, and in its waters were mirrored the gorgeous splendors of the
-rising sun. She did not see it at first, for it came into view only at
-the point she had reached; lower down the hill it was not visible to
-sight.
-
-Presently, opening her eyes, she saw the jewelled shadows playing on
-the surface, and they so distressed her--yearning as she was for peace
-and rest--that her eyelids drooped, and she turned her head to avoid a
-picture which in happier circumstances she would have gazed upon with
-delight. But she knew the river was there.
-
-For full half an hour she lay with her eyes closed, struggling with a
-horrible temptation. Then she turned to the water, struggled into a
-sitting posture, and gazed with wild eyes upon it. Not voluntarily and
-of her own free will; some evil spiritual power within her compelled
-her to do so.
-
-It was quieter now. The gorgeous colors had died out of the skies and
-the river was in repose. "Come," it whispered, "come to my embrace,
-and end your woes." But the strong religious instinct within her
-enabled her to struggle with the frightful suggestion. "No, no!" she
-murmured, feebly putting her hands together. "Help me, dear Lord, to
-avoid the crime!" Her appeal did not banish the silent voices which
-urged her to seek oblivion, and, in oblivion, peace. How the struggle
-would have ended it is difficult to say, had not her fate been taken
-out of her own hands.
-
-There came to her ears the crack of a whip and the sound of a human
-voice urging horses up the hill. She bowed her head upon her lap to
-hide her face from the stranger who was approaching her.
-
-He was an old man in charge of a wagon and a team of horses. The
-cattle were willing enough, and fresh for their day's work, and it was
-only from habit that their driver was shouting words of encouragement
-to them. They reached the summit of the hill, and the wagoner,
-merciful to his beasts, eased them a bit. It was then his eyes fell
-upon the form of Emilia. He approached her and laid his hand upon her
-shoulder. She shivered and shrank from his touch. At this human
-contact, the first she had experienced since her flight from the house
-of the maiden sisters, there seemed to come upon her a more complete
-consciousness of the shame and degradation into which she had been
-thrust. That it was unmerited mattered not. It clung to her, and was
-proclaimed in her face. How, then, could she raise her head to meet
-the gaze of any human being?
-
-"In trouble, my lass?" asked the wagoner, kindly. With but an
-imperfect observation of her, he knew that she was young.
-
-Emilia made no reply, but let her shoulder droop, so that his hand
-might not touch her.
-
-"Can I help you?"
-
-No sound, and now no further movement, from the hapless girl. He
-lingered a moment or two longer, and then slowly left her. Giving the
-word, his team began to descend the hill. But at the bottom of the
-descent, with a level road before him, he pulled up his cattle again,
-and turned with sad eyes to the spot where he had left Emilia, who was
-hidden from his sight.
-
-This man had a history--as what man has not?--and it is probable that
-Emilia was saved from suicide by the remembrance of the most dolorous
-experience in his life. He was nearer seventy than sixty years of age,
-but he was strong and lusty still, and his heart had not been soured
-or embittered by trouble. The story of his special grief is a common
-one enough, and can be narrated in a few words. He was a married man,
-and his old wife was waiting at home for him, five and thirty miles
-away. Children had they none, but thirty years ago they had a
-daughter, who left them secretly upon the persuasion of a scoundrel.
-The villain took her to London, and after she had enjoyed a brief
-spell of false happiness she found herself deserted and friendless. In
-her despair she crept back to the home of which she had been the joy,
-but she had not the courage to enter it and beg for forgiveness. Her
-body was discovered in a river hard by, and in her pocket a letter to
-her parents, relating her story, and praying them to think kindly of
-her. That is all.
-
-It was the memory of this daughter that caused the wagoner to turn
-toward Emilia. Perhaps the poor girl was in a strait similar to that
-of his own lost child. Had _she_ met a kind heart, had a helping hand
-been stretched out to her, she might have been saved to them, might
-have been living at this very day to comfort and cheer her aged
-parents. He would make another effort to ascertain the trouble of the
-lonely girl who had shrunk from his touch. Up the hill he climbed,
-having no fear for his horses, who would only start again at the sound
-of his voice.
-
-Emilia had risen to her feet, and her trembling hands were extended to
-the river, as though to push it from her, while her form swayed toward
-it. He saw her face now, and his heart beat with pity for her. It may
-have been fancy, but he fancied he saw in her a resemblance to his
-lost child. So engrossed was Emilia in the terrible struggle that was
-raging in her soul that she was not aware she was observed until the
-wagoner seized her arm, and said,
-
-"My dear, let me help you in your trouble."
-
-It was like the voice of an angel who had come to her rescue. She
-threw her arms about him, and cried, in a voice of exhaustion:
-
-"Save me, save me!"
-
-"It's what I've come for, my dear," said the wagoner, holding her up.
-"Where is your home?"
-
-"Home!" she echoed, hysterically, "I have none! I am alone in the
-world--alone, alone!"
-
-"No father or mother?"
-
-"None."
-
-"No friends?"
-
-"None--not one."
-
-"What can I do for you?"
-
-"Take me from the river. Hark! Do you not hear what it is whispering
-to me? I am exhausted; my strength is gone, and I can no longer
-resist. If you leave me here I shall die!"
-
-"But you do not know where I am going."
-
-"It does not matter. Anywhere, anywhere, so that I can have rest. Hide
-me--hide me! Oh, my heart, my heart!"
-
-Upon this she burst into a passionate fit of weeping, and the good
-wagoner saw that she was not in a fit state to answer further
-questions. Endeavoring to calm her, he assisted her down the hill to
-where his team was standing, but before they reached it she swooned.
-It was not an easy task to lift her into the shelter of his wagon, but
-he managed it, and made up a bed of straw upon which he laid her. Then
-he started his horses again, and was careful to avoid ruts, in order
-not to jolt his fair guest too roughly. He had the whole day before
-him, and it would do if he reached his home before night. Now and
-again he mounted the wagon to look at Emilia, and was concerned that
-he could obtain no coherent words from her. The poor girl's trials had
-produced their effect upon her weak frame, and she was fast relapsing
-into delirium. All that he could distinguish in her feverish
-mutterings were the words, "I am innocent, I am innocent! I have done
-no wrong. God will speak for me!" Even these pathetic utterances came
-from her at intervals, and he had to piece them together. Her youth
-and beauty deeply impressed the kind-hearted man, and he did not
-regret the course he had taken. In the middle of the day he arrived at
-a village, and gave his horses two hours' rest. He utilized these two
-hours by hunting up a doctor, who, feeling Emilia's pulse and putting
-his hand on her hot forehead, said, "She is in a high state of fever.
-The only thing you can do is to get her home as quickly as possible."
-He believed her to be the wagoner's daughter, and he gave the old man
-a draught which Emilia was to be persuaded to take, should she have an
-interval of consciousness before they reached their journey's end. The
-wagoner's anxiety now was to get home as soon as possible, and the
-roads being good he put his horses to a trot. At six o'clock in the
-evening the journey was over, and the team stood at the door of his
-cottage. His old wife ran out to greet him, and he rapidly explained
-to her what he had done, and why he had done it.
-
-"Was it right, mother?" he asked.
-
-The tears rushed to her eyes. It was thirty years since he had
-addressed her by that endearing term, and she thought, as he had
-thought, of the daughter they had lost in the time gone by. There are
-memories that never die.
-
-"Quite right, John," murmured the old woman, and together they carried
-Emilia into their cottage and laid her upon a bed. There the wagoner
-left his wife to attend to the young girl; he had his horses to look
-after, and when this was done he returned to the cottage, to find
-Emilia undressed and in bed, with the old woman standing by her side.
-
-"We must have a doctor, John," she said, and away he went for one.
-
-The report was not favorable; Emilia was prostrate, and now that the
-strain was over a dangerous reaction had set in. The doctor gave it as
-his opinion that she would not be well for weeks, and so it proved.
-But long before she was convalescent Gerald, accompanied by Leonard,
-made his appearance, and thus the unfortunate girl had near her one
-enemy and three friends. Which side would triumph in the end?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXI.
-
-LIGHT SHINES THROUGH THE DARK CLOUDS.
-
-
-Leonard cursed his ill luck, cursed Gerald for his infatuation, cursed
-Emilia for stepping in to spoil his plans, cursed the wagoner and his
-wife for their kindness toward her--in short, cursed everything and
-everybody except himself, whom he regarded as the person who was being
-wronged in the affair. But he wore a constant smile upon his lips, his
-words were honey, and the consideration he expressed for Emilia was
-perfect in its way. Sometimes when he spoke of her it was in a choked
-voice, and he was certainly successful in deceiving everyone around
-him. His one hope now was that Emilia would die, and could he have
-done so without risk to himself, he would cheerfully have given her a
-cup of poison to bring about that consummation.
-
-Gerald's great grief was that Emilia did not recognize him. Indeed,
-she knew no one. Even when she was able to move about her mind was a
-blank. She allowed him to take her hand in his, and to retain it, but
-to the tender pressure of his fingers she made no response. They took
-woodland rambles together, hand in hand, and she gathered wild flowers
-which she arranged afterward in the cottage. She listened to all he
-said, nodding her head gently from time to time in a manner which made
-his heart beat with hope that she understood what he was speaking of.
-Of course the subject-matter, when originated by Gerald, was personal.
-He dilated upon his love for her, and explained again and again how it
-was that he had not come to her the day after the fire; and when he
-finished she gazed at him with a pitiful smile on her lips and a
-vacant look in her eyes, which proved too well that his words had
-fallen upon ears insensible to their meaning. Upon abstract matters
-she was more intelligent. She loved the animals about the cottage, and
-the dumb creatures loved her and obeyed her least motion; she loved
-the flowers that were gathered, but Gerald observed with pain that she
-tended with care only those she gathered herself. When he gave her any
-she accepted them gently, but presently they dropped from her hand,
-and she made no effort to pick them up. "I have wrecked her reason,"
-he groaned. "Monster that I am, I have ruined my dear girl's life!" As
-for Leonard, he derived some satisfaction from what was transpiring.
-"She is drifting into a confirmed idiot," he thought. "It is not so
-good as getting rid of her altogether, but I am grateful for small
-mercies."
-
-It had been arranged between Gerald and Leonard that a certain secrecy
-should be observed in their proceedings. Leonard did not exactly know
-how this would be to his advantage, but he had a dim idea that it
-might be so turned, and that at all events it would be better than
-making a full disclosure of all that had transpired. When Leonard
-mooted the plan Gerald asked what would be the good of it, and Leonard
-answered:
-
-"My poor boy! What a simpleton you are, and how little you know the
-world. It is the publicity of the thing that has driven Emilia to the
-injudicious course she has pursued, for I do not disguise from you
-that it would have been far better for her had she remained to face
-matters boldly."
-
-"It was impossible she should do so," said Gerald. "My dear girl's
-nature is far too sensitive and delicate to cope with such snakes in
-the grass as Mrs. Seaton."
-
-"Granted; but although there would have been suffering, I still
-maintain it would have been the better course. I repeat that it is the
-publicity of the unfortunate affair that has directed her movements.
-Would she have run away, had she not been found in your house?"
-
-"No, she would have had no motive for doing so."
-
-"Exactly; and the motive that urged her on was the publicity of the
-thing. You would only be adding to her unhappiness by making affairs
-still more public. Scandal is a feminine bird with a thousand pairs of
-wings, my boy, and she would fly here, and render Emilia's life
-intolerable. There is nothing that people enjoy so much. Every man's
-door flies open when she knocks, and if it should chance to remain
-shut the jade creeps in through the crevices. Emilia would not thank
-you if she discovered that it was through you she was being pursued by
-the wretched innuendoes circulated by Mrs. Seaton. Let sleeping dogs
-lie. And bear in mind that Emilia has made things a hundred times
-worse by running away from her enemies."
-
-"How so?"
-
-"She has left them in possession of the field, and therefore in the
-position of victors. I am not speaking from my heart, but with the
-usual worldly tongue, which I most heartily despise, when I say that
-Emilia's flight is in itself an admission of guilt. It is really so,
-Gerald. She has piled difficulty upon difficulty, and you must not
-assist her in the work. Her sensitive nature, yes, I grant you all
-that, but it is for the man to be strong and wise, and to let his
-actions be guided by a cool brain."
-
-"You are a true counsellor, Leonard. But for you Heaven knows to what
-a pass we should be driven. Still it sounds cruel."
-
-"We must be cruel only to be kind, dear boy. The people in these parts
-are like people in our own town, like people all over the world. There
-isn't a pin to choose between them. So for your Emilia's sake we will
-be mum."
-
-So it was settled. Had Leonard had his wish, their names would have
-been concealed and they would have adopted others; but to this Gerald
-would not consent. Leonard was secretly exultant, although, as has
-been said, he did not exactly know how it would be of advantage to
-him. But he did know that secrecy would make matters worse for Emilia
-instead of better, and that when her acquaintances became aware of the
-plan adopted--as become aware they should if the necessity arose--it
-would place another weapon in their hands against her.
-
-Thus six weeks passed, and Emilia remained in the same condition.
-Leonard wondered for how much longer they were going to stop. The
-quietude of the place palled upon him; there were no amusements, no
-society, and Gerald being with him, he was compelled to be on his best
-behavior. He longed for the busy world and its pleasures and
-excitements. He ventured to speak to Gerald about their stay.
-
-"I shall not leave," said Gerald, "until Emilia is better, or until we
-are married."
-
-This staggered Leonard. "Surely," he said, "you have no notion of
-marrying her while she remains as she is?"
-
-"If it were possible," said Gerald, very seriously, "I should not
-hesitate. Leonard, my dear brother, you are my superior in every way,
-but at least in this affair I know what is right. Leave me here to
-myself, then. Why should I condemn you to a life which must be
-intolerably dull to you? You have already assisted me in a manner
-which no other man in the world could or would have done, and to my
-last hour I shall be grateful to you."
-
-"I shall not leave your side," said Leonard, pressing his hand, "until
-you drive me from you."
-
-"That will be never," said Gerald, affectionately. "Leonard, with your
-worldly wisdom, can you suggest any plan by which Emilia's mind could
-be restored to her?"
-
-"None, my dear boy."
-
-"The doctor who attends her," said Gerald, in a musing tone, "is a
-worthy gentleman, but there may be cleverer than he to be found in
-cities."
-
-"So far as I can see," said Leonard, much disturbed by this
-observation, "he has done all that is possible in such a case."
-
-"There will be no harm in my having a conversation with him. I shall
-go at once."
-
-"I am with you, Gerald, if you want me."
-
-"I always want you, my dear brother. Let us go."
-
-They found the doctor, an elderly gentleman, at home, and he received
-them politely, but not exactly with cordiality. They fell immediately
-into conversation about Emilia, but both Leonard and Gerald observed
-that the doctor expressed himself with marked reserve. At length he
-seemed to arrive at a certain resolution, and, with a significant look
-at Leonard, he said:
-
-"Would you mind leaving your brother and me in private a while?"
-
-"Not at all," replied Leonard, somewhat startled. "If there is any
-particular reason for it."
-
-"I have a particular reason," said the doctor, "or I should not
-request it."
-
-"What do you say, Gerald?" asked Leonard.
-
-"The doctor wishes it," said Gerald.
-
-Leonard rose, and went to the door. Gerald ran after him into the
-passage and whispered, "I will tell you everything that passes,
-Leonard. You must not be hurt."
-
-"Nothing can hurt me that is for your good," said Leonard. "I will
-walk up and down the street, and wait till you come out." He was
-furious with the doctor. "Officious fool!" he muttered when he was
-outside. "What mischief will he be up to?"
-
-"Now," said the doctor, when Gerald rejoined him, "I can speak more
-freely. I have nothing whatever to say against your brother----"
-
-"Nothing can be said against him," interrupted Gerald, warmly.
-
-"It is pleasant to see the affection that exists between you,"
-remarked the doctor; "but he is not the young lady's lover."
-
-"No," said Gerald, "I am."
-
-"It is for that reason," said the doctor, with a slight frown, "that I
-desire to confer with you alone. Young gentleman, it is my intention
-to speak very plainly to you. You are the young lady's lover, you
-declare. Her honorable lover, may I ask?"
-
-"Her honorable lover," replied Gerald, "as I am a gentleman."
-
-"Declared and accepted?"
-
-"Declared and accepted."
-
-"Have you any objection to my saying what is in my mind?"
-
-"Not the slightest."
-
-"You love her honorably. Therefore you would do much to restore her to
-health?"
-
-"I would give all I possess in the world. I would sacrifice my life
-for her dear sake."
-
-"You are rich?"
-
-"I am very well-to-do."
-
-"Have you a thousand a-year?"
-
-"Three, at least, and funds in hand besides."
-
-"What is the young lady's income?"
-
-"She has none."
-
-"She is poor, then?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"And friendless?"
-
-"With the exception of ourselves and two good maiden ladies who have
-known her only for a day, she has no friends."
-
-"Nor family--parents, I mean, brothers and sisters?"
-
-"She has none."
-
-"Your frank answers make my task easier, but at the same time do not
-remove my doubts. I am taking the liberty of an old man, for I am old
-enough to be your grandfather. The young lady interests me greatly,
-and all that I know of her I have learned from the good people who,
-perfect strangers to her, have taken her to their bosoms with as much
-sincerity and almost as much affection as if she were a child of their
-own."
-
-"God bless them for it!"
-
-"They have told me all they know. It is very little. Shortly after
-being taken into their hospitable house, you and your brother present
-yourselves. You are not related to her in any way--interrupt me if I
-am wrong--and you at once place yourself on terms of loving intimacy
-with her. You walk with her, hand in hand, you conduct yourself as a
-lover toward her. Your behavior places her in an equivocal position--I
-have no hesitation in saying so much--and I, an old-fashioned
-gentleman, with old-fashioned notions of honor, regard your
-proceedings with disfavor. The restoration of her health is placed in
-my hands, and I, a physician of some experience, find in the patient
-herself obstacles which it is out of my power to surmount. You two
-gentlemen do not assist me in the least; you give no information
-concerning her which may assist me in the duty devolving upon me as a
-professional man. For there is here some mental disturbance, the
-result of a severe shock, I judge to her heart and feelings, of which
-I am in complete ignorance, and which renders me practically
-powerless. Nevertheless, the interest she has created in me causes me
-to make a study of the case, and I have a vague notion that I could
-find a road to a cure if I were in possession of the particulars of
-her history. Control your excitement."
-
-But Gerald was not to be restrained. He started to his feet, and
-bending toward the doctor, said, in his most earnest tone:
-
-"Doctor, there is no fee you can name which I should deem too high if
-you can restore the mind of my dear girl."
-
-"My fee," said the doctor, dryly, "is half-a-crown a visit, medicine
-included, and the poor young lady is in no position to pay even so
-small a bill."
-
-"I am responsible for everything."
-
-"From you, as matters stand, I should decline to accept a penny. You
-are acquainted with the story of the young girl's life?"
-
-"I am."
-
-"I have no right to force your confidence. If you choose to confide in
-me, I may be able to do as I have said."
-
-"I will tell you everything unreservedly," said Gerald, "on the
-understanding that it does not pass your lips to another person."
-
-"Let it be so," said the doctor, after a little pause, "for the young
-lady's sake."
-
-"It is for her sake," said Gerald, "that I exact the pledge of
-secrecy."
-
-Then he began the story, and related it faithfully, down to the
-smallest detail. It occupied him some time, but the doctor did not
-once interrupt him, but kept his eyes fixed upon Gerald's face, his
-own growing brighter and brighter as the young man proceeded. The
-story finished, there was silence for a minute or two, during which
-the doctor sat with his head resting in his hand.
-
-"Is there hope, doctor?" cried Gerald, the first to speak. "Tell me,
-is there hope?"
-
-"There is," replied the doctor, removing his hand. "The road is open
-to you if you will take it."
-
-"Does it, then, depend upon me?" exclaimed Gerald.
-
-"Upon you, and upon no other man. It is my firm belief that from the
-moment you take her in your arms and whisper the word, 'Wife,' the
-cure will be commenced. The windows of her mind, of her heart, will be
-opened for the light, and it will shine upon her soul, which will leap
-up exultant in the knowledge that she stands purified in her own eyes
-and in the eyes of the world. The stain that now lies upon her, the
-heartless, merciless, unjust degradation which has been forced upon
-her, have weighed her down, have clouded her mind. And let me tell you
-that God has been merciful in this visitation. Had she recovered her
-reason, and with her reason, the consciousness of her shame, she might
-have gone mad from the horror of it. She is in your hands now, not in
-mine."
-
-He spoke solemnly, but no less solemnly than Gerald when he said, "As
-I deal by her, may I be dealt by! how can I atone quickly for the
-unconscious suffering I have inflicted upon her? Is a marriage in
-church possible?"
-
-"In her present state I fear not," said the doctor, "and I consider it
-vital that there should be no delay, for she is sinking into
-melancholia, from which she would never emerge. The registry office is
-open to you, and a marriage there is as binding as a marriage at the
-altar."
-
-Gerald's joy at the suggestion was unutterable. All he could do was to
-seize the good doctor's hands and press them convulsively, and mutter
-incoherent words of gratitude. The doctor understood him, however, and
-smiled brightly upon him.
-
-"One word more of advice," he said. "On the day you and my patient are
-married, take her away immediately. Do not tarry here an hour. Have
-all your preparations made, and start at once for France, or Italy, or
-Switzerland. Let her move among new scenes--they will help her to
-forget her misery, and will bring back memories of a happiness she
-believes is lost to her forever. There, there. Go now, and see about
-it. A gentleman offers you his hand."
-
-They shook hands cordially, and Gerald hastened away.
-
-Leonard banished the gloomy look from his face when Gerald came from
-the house, but when he heard what Gerald had to tell him he was seized
-with consternation. All his fine plans were about to be upset, and he
-was powerless. He recognized instantly that nothing he could say would
-stop the marriage, and that there was no alternative but to keep
-Gerald bound to him, and to do whatever was required. But fair as was
-his face, smooth as were his words, his heart was as the heart of a
-demon, and he was already at work, scheming for the future, scheming
-for the destruction of honest love and happiness.
-
-Gerald found no difficulties in the way. The doctor's assistance
-rendered everything easy. In fifteen days from that on which he had
-made a confident of the good doctor Gerald and Emilia were on their
-way to the registry office.
-
-"You understand, Emilia," he said. "We are to be married this
-morning."
-
-"Yes, Gerald," she said softly, "I understand."
-
-It was Gerald's wish that no one should accompany them to the office.
-The witnesses, of whom there were three--Leonard, the doctor, and the
-old wagoner--were to wait for the couple, and to make no demonstration
-whatever. The ceremony was to be perfectly quiet, and the registrar
-with a twenty-pound fee, managed this so perfectly that not a soul in
-the place with the exception of those present at the marriage, was
-aware that it was being performed.
-
-When Emilia said to Gerald, "Yes, Gerald I understand," he looked with
-heartfelt hope and gladness into her face. There was already a new
-note in her voice; her soul was struggling to the light. They passed a
-poor woman with a baby in her arms and some withered violets in her
-hand. Emilia turned and gazed at the poor creature and the infant.
-Gerald took some gold pieces from his pocket and pressed them into
-Emilia's hand. She gave him a sweet look. The light was coming.
-
-"Will you sell me two bunches of your violets?" said Emilia.
-
-"Take them, my lady; two bunches for a penny."
-
-The woman held out her hand, but Emilia, before she paid for the
-flowers stooped and kissed the little child. Then she dropped the gold
-pieces into the woman's palm.
-
-"Oh, my God!" cried the woman, with a bewildered look, her fingers
-closing tightly on the gold.
-
-As they walked along Emilia gave Gerald one of the bunches of the
-withered violets, which he put into his buttonhole, and she pinned the
-other bunch to the bosom of her dress. Then she lowered her head and
-touched Gerald's hand with her lips.
-
-"My darling, my darling," murmured Gerald, with moist eyes, "may I
-live to brighten all your future life!"
-
-The ceremony was performed. Gerald placed the ring on Emilia's finger.
-She caught her breath, and pressed her bosom with her right hand,
-holding out her left.
-
-"Be brave!" whispered Gerald. "My dear wife!"
-
-The light had come: It shone in her eyes, in her face, it irradiated
-her whole form. For the second time she lowered her head, and kissed
-the hand of her faithful lover.
-
-In a sequestered spot, at some distance from the registry office, two
-carriages were waiting, one for Emilia and her husband, one for
-Leonard. There had been a brief parting between Emilia and the wagoner
-and his good wife, who had kissed her and bade her farewell. Then came
-Gerald's parting from those friends and from the doctor. He left with
-that worthy man two checks, the first being for the exact amount of
-the doctor's account, calculated at half-a-crown a visit--he would
-accept no more--the second for a substantial amount, to be given to
-the wagoner when the newly-married couple had departed.
-
-"You will join us at Interlaken to-day fortnight," said Gerald aside
-to Leonard.
-
-"Depend upon me," said Leonard; and so for that brief space they
-parted from each other.
-
-"My wife!" said Gerald, as they rode away in the bridal carriage, "my
-darling wife!"
-
-She lay in his arms, quiet and happy. Heaven's light was never sweeter
-than that which shone within her wakened soul.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXII.
-
-LEONARD MEETS WITH A FELLOW-SCOUNDREL.
-
-
-The few months that passed were the happiest period in Emilia's life.
-Gerald's love, his care and devotion, his wonderful thoughtfulness,
-were in their effect something like divine revelations to the
-tender-hearted and confiding young girl, who was enjoying a very
-heaven upon earth. Leonard joined them in Interlaken, as had been
-arranged, and accompanied them through the loveliest parts of
-Switzerland and Italy. Gerald's plan was not to rush from place to
-place, but to proceed leisurely from one scene of loveliness to
-another, and to linger and dawdle wherever the fancy seized them. It
-suited Leonard, who could make little detours to neighboring cities
-which offered greater attractions to him, and he never went away from
-them without making it understood that it was for their sake, and not
-for his own, that he left them.
-
-"I know what young people like yourselves enjoy most," he said, "their
-own society. I am like the fifth wheel in a coach."
-
-Gerald did not dispute with him on this point. Much as he loved
-Leonard he loved Emilia more, and his greatest happiness was derived
-from that delicious intercourse of soul and soul which can only be
-made manifest when lovers are alone together.
-
-"Leonard is the dearest fellow in the world," he said to Emilia, "and
-I don't know what we should do without him. You do not know what we
-owe him. If it had not been for him I doubt if you would be with me at
-the present moment."
-
-Emilia was only too willing to subscribe to this affectionate estimate
-of Leonard's character; she grew, like Gerald, to have never one
-moment's doubt of the sincerity of his affection. From this it will be
-seen how thoroughly the villain had succeeded in deceiving them.
-
-Giving himself up entirely to the blissful enjoyment of the present,
-Gerald, at the instigation of Leonard, had delivered over to him the
-management of his monetary matters. Leonard thus became a kind of
-steward to Gerald's estate, and so absolutely did he succeed in
-getting matters into his hands that he now drew all the checks for the
-current expenses of the tour, supplying Gerald with loose cash as the
-young man required it. Ostensibly, therefore, Leonard, was the master
-and Gerald the dependent.
-
-In this manner five months of happiness passed, and then it was that
-Emilia, with burning blushes and a palpitating heart, whispered to
-Gerald the solemn, joyful news that a new life was born within her.
-
-"If anything was needed to complete my happiness," said Gerald,
-pressing his wife fondly to his heart, "it was this."
-
-Leonard, ever on the watch, knew that some fresh spring of happiness
-had been found, and he wormed the news out of Gerald. It drove him
-almost mad. If a child was born to them he might bid farewell forever
-to every chance of stepping into possession of the fortune which
-Gerald possessed, and which ought by right to have been his. "I must
-find a way," he thought, with burning hatred in his heart, "I must
-find a way, and soon, or it will be too late."
-
-"My dear boy," he said to Gerald, "I am overjoyed at the tidings.
-Heaven bless you, and Emilia, and the little one--my nephew or my
-niece, Gerald; which!--who is going to cheer our hearts!"
-
-It was evening when this confidence passed between Gerald and Leonard.
-They had been travelling for a few days in the Valais, and were making
-for the village of Vissoye, where they intended to remain a little
-while if they could find accommodation, and make it the starting-point
-of idle excursions in the romantic neighborhood. They had mules and
-guides; Emilia was riding in front, alone for a few minutes, while the
-step-brothers, walking in the rear, were conversing. Gerald was too
-enamoured of Emilia to leave her long alone, and presently he was
-walking by her side, with his hand in hers. The guides took no notice,
-being well accustomed to these loving exchanges on the part of foreign
-tourists.
-
-"Do you hear Leonard singing?" asked Gerald. "I wish he could meet
-some one like you--but that, I think, is impossible, Emilia--to make
-him happy as you have made me. He deserves everything that is good."
-
-While he uttered these words, Leonard, who was carolling a mountain
-song to show how light of heart he was, gazed at the precipice over
-which they were passing, and thought, even in the midst of his
-singing, "If she would only topple over! Things would be so much
-easier then. Such accidents have occurred. Now, if the guides were
-absent, and Gerald had gone on a little ahead, just round that turn
-where he could not see what was going on, I daresay it could be
-managed. It would not take a moment. A bold sweep, a scream, and all
-would be over." He stopped singing, to give full play to his thoughts,
-and he mentally acted the tragic scene, from its initiatory stage to
-the point where he stood with his arms round the distracted Gerald,
-endeavoring to console him for the horrible loss. It did not appear so
-difficult; he was a clever fellow, and he ought to be able to manage
-it. But it would have to be done very, very carefully; no shadow of
-suspicion must rest upon him. Corrupt as was Leonard's nature, he
-would go only to a certain length; he stopped short where there was
-fear of danger to himself.
-
-They found rough but clean accommodation in the village, and after the
-evening meal Leonard left the lovers alone, and went out to smoke and
-think. So far as a full purse and creature comforts went he was in
-clover. He had plenty of money, and was enjoying the best of
-everything. The cigar he was smoking was of the finest brand that
-could be obtained; when they stopped at good hotels every luxury that
-could be obtained was his; the largest rooms with the grandest views,
-the most famous vintages, the most delicate dishes--nothing was
-spared. But how long would it last? When the child was born a new
-interest would be created which was certain to be injurious to him.
-Curse them! He was but a pauper, after all, and what he enjoyed was at
-the will of another, to be continued or taken away at a moment's
-notice. And he did not trust Emilia. He trusted no woman. They were a
-false, selfish lot, thinking only of themselves, with no sense of
-justice. It was intolerable that he should be at the mercy of one of
-the falsest and most selfish of the crowd.
-
-He was out of the village now, and stood smoking and musing, facing a
-tremendous range. The evil thoughts by which he was animated were
-expressed in his face; being alone, as he thought, there was no reason
-for concealment, and although he generally kept perfect control over
-his features, there were rare occasions upon which he indulged in the
-luxury of frankness. This was such an occasion.
-
-He was mistaken in believing himself to be alone. A man, also smoking
-a good cigar, was sitting on a jutting rock, observing him. Leonard
-threw away the end of his cigar, and took another from his case. Then
-he took another from his case. Then he took out his matchbox, and
-found that it was empty. "The devil take it!" he muttered. "The whole
-world is against me!" Low as was the tone in which the words were
-spoken, the stranger heard them.
-
-"Allow me to offer you a light."
-
-Leonard started, and his countenance became instantly composed. The
-stranger laughed aloud. Irritated by the laugh, in which there was a
-malicious, if not a sinister note, Leonard turned on his heel.
-
-"Why so fast?" said the stranger, stepping to Leonard's side. "A match
-is a very simple offering for a friend to make."
-
-"A friend!" exclaimed Leonard, and looked the stranger full in the
-face.
-
-"Allow me to introduce myself anew," said the stranger. "Your memory
-is not good. Dr. Peterssen, at your service."
-
-"What, Peterssen!" cried Leonard.
-
-"The same."
-
-"I should never have recognized you," said Leonard, taking the lighted
-match and applying it to his cigar.
-
-"Small wonder. When we last met I was in low water, and my face was
-bearded. You remember me now?"
-
-"Yes, I remember you now."
-
-"Voices do not change. Let me see. It is eighteen months ago since we
-saw each other. Ballarat I think the place was.
-
-"Yes, it was on Ballarat."
-
-"A marvellous gold field, though we got none of the precious metal,
-partly from indolence, partly from ill luck."
-
-Dr. Peterssen and Leonard had met in Australia, and had struck up an
-acquaintance there. _Arcades ambo_. It would not have been to their
-credit if some of their mutual experiences were known. Leonard was
-painfully conscious of the fact, and could not just at this moment
-make up his mind whether the meeting was one to be hailed with
-satisfaction, or the reverse. He knew Dr. Peterssen to be ripe for any
-villainy, and at this juncture it might be handy to have such a friend
-near him; but how far would it be safe to trust the man?
-
-"What brings you here, Peterssen?"
-
-"Business, Royce, business. I have a mission."
-
-"You remind me," said Leonard, with an awkward smile. "When I was at
-the antipodes I thought the name of Royce an easy one to go by."
-
-"But it was not your own."
-
-"It was not my own."
-
-"What I always admired in you," said Dr. Peterssen, "was your candor.
-The soul of truth, upon my honor! I used to ask of myself, 'Can Royce
-lie?' Excuse my sticking to the name till you supply me with another.
-Yes, I used to ask of myself, 'Can Royce lie?' There was but one
-invariable answer, 'No, he cannot.'"
-
-The laugh with which he accompanied his words was so distinctly
-opposed to their sense that Leonard's face flushed, and Dr. Peterssen
-laughed still louder when he observed this sign of emotion. Of all the
-men whom Leonard had met in the course of his varied experiences Dr.
-Peterssen was the only one whom he was conscious he could not deceive.
-Peterssen spoke good English, with just a touch of foreign accent. He
-was by descent a Dane, and was a past-master in every species of craft
-and villainy. It would not have been easy to find his match in a
-scheme of evil cunning. Leonard was smooth-spoken, suave, and
-persuasive; Dr. Peterssen was brutally outspoken, calling a spade a
-spade, and, if it served his purpose, something worse--never something
-better.
-
-"Don't be a fool, Peterssen," said Leonard. "You are lying yourself,
-and you know it."
-
-"True, true, Royce--but really this is awkward, addressing a friend by
-a name he has no right to bear. What name do you pass by now?"
-
-"My own," replied Leonard, convinced that Dr. Peterssen would bring
-him to the proof through other persons; "Paget."
-
-"Christian name?"
-
-"Leonard."
-
-"Mr. Leonard Paget. Rather nice-sounding. When did you arrive here?"
-
-"This evening."
-
-"When do you leave?"
-
-"I can't say."
-
-"You can, Leonard, you can."
-
-"I tell you I cannot."
-
-"Let us test it. I have something of the breed of your English mastiff
-in me. Do you go away to-morrow?"
-
-"I think not."
-
-"On the following day?"
-
-"It is uncertain."
-
-"Your movements, then, do not depend entirely upon yourself? You are
-not alone?"
-
-"Am I in the witness-box," demanded Leonard, beginning to lose his
-temper.
-
-"You are. And when I have done with you, you shall place _me_ in the
-witness-box, and I will be frank with you. It is best for men like
-ourselves to be friends, Leonard. Who knows? We may be able to serve
-each other. Allow me to remind you that you are in my debt. Our last
-transaction in Ballarat was when we laid a snare to sell a man of
-substance a golden claim. The price was five thousand pounds. The
-stuff at the bottom of the shaft was salted--with gold purchased with
-my money. At that time you had none--that is, you said you had none;
-so I expended my last fifty pounds in the purchase of twelve ounces,
-which we distributed cunningly in the wash-dirt below. The plant
-almost came off, but it was discovered one moment too soon. We had
-only to fly; and then we lost sight of each other. You did not wait to
-pay the half of the fifty pounds--a shabby trick."
-
-From his pocket-book Leonard extracted twenty-five pounds in bank
-notes, which he handed to Dr. Peterssen.
-
-"I am out of your debt."
-
-"Not at all. There is the interest, which I shall not exact to-night,
-but in the future, from time to time. You pay so readily that you are
-worth sticking to; you think so lightly of twenty-five pounds that you
-must be rolling in money. Back to my questions. You are not alone?"
-
-"I am not."
-
-"Shall we say, a lady? Ah, fortunate man! Susceptible heart! Forever
-putting itself into chains. There was a lady on the other side. And
-there is a lady on this. I see it in your face.",
-
-"She is none of mine; she is one of our party."
-
-"How many in all?"
-
-"I am sick of your questions. Here is the plain truth. I am travelling
-with my brother and his wife. They are on their honeymoon. There, you
-have the whole thing in a nutshell."
-
-"Apparently. But how about the kernel? I have an odd idea there is a
-maggot inside. How arrived at? Easily. It is you yourself who have
-engendered the suspicion. You come to this spot to think and smoke,
-leaving your brother and his bride to their honeymooning. That is
-considerate, and as a tender-souled man I commend you for it. You
-believe yourself to be alone, but I am here, communing with Nature.
-Looking up, I see you, and on your face I see that which you would not
-like your friends to see. There is a convulsive twitch in your
-features. What is the cause? Do you love your brother's wife?"
-
-"No."
-
-"The tone in which you speak that little word convinces me that you
-hate her. Do you remember we used to congratulate each other in
-Australia that we could read men's faces and voices? Why do you hate
-her? There must be a reason."
-
-"Peterssen, you are going a little too far."
-
-"Between friends? No, Leonard, I have not yet gone far enough. Give
-ear, Leonard, to something analytical--not very deep, only in a
-superficial way. You and I are alike in our aims but not in our
-methods. We are both adventurers--why disguise it? The supreme
-motive-power in our natures is self-interest. To serve that we would
-go any lengths--except, perhaps, that I would go a little farther than
-you. We have no honest regard for each other, it is only our
-self-interest that draws us together. Why, Leonard, if I could profit
-largely by it I would have no more compunction in pushing you over
-that precipice than I have in flinging away this cigar. Give me
-another, will you? I warrant yours are better than mine. Thank you.
-And the compunction on your side, should it be to your advantage to
-serve me the same, would be as small as my own. Commend me for being
-an honest man, for I take it the quality of sincerity is vital to
-honesty--and my sincerity cannot be disputed. What reason have you for
-hating your brother's wife?"
-
-"Could not the agitation you observed in my face spring from some
-other cause than love or hate?"
-
-"Yes, one--money; and you have proved to me that money is not the
-cause by paying me the twenty-five pounds so readily. For really it is
-a debt that I could not have enforced in a court of law."
-
-"Well, let the matter bide, Peterssen. Your searching questions have
-exhausted me."
-
-"We will suspend it, then. There is time before us. Meanwhile I attach
-myself, and with myself another, to your party."
-
-"Are you mad?" cried Leonard. "Why that would ruin all!"
-
-Dr. Peterssen's previous laughter was tame in comparison to the sounds
-of merriment he emitted now. He made the echoes ring again.
-
-"So there _is_ work to be done," he said when his merriment ceased.
-"Good. Two things to be kept always in view--personal safety and the
-reward to be earned for the work. Still I attach myself to your party,
-but now secretly. I follow you wherever you go, but I do not mix with
-you. Our parties may meet, but it shall be in a casual, accidental
-way, and there shall be no close intimacy. I do not affect disguise,
-Leonard. I follow you for the purpose of making money out of you. I
-have very little; I want some. I put a question to you, to which I
-must have an answer. Without encroaching further on your confidence, I
-wish you to inform me what the end you are scheming for is worth,
-supposing I accomplish it in safety. I do not ask what that end is,
-but how much it would be worth to me? You are silent. Shall we say a
-thousand pounds?"
-
-"Yes," replied Leonard, slowly, "say a thousand pounds."
-
-"Much obliged to you. The subject is now dismissed. Have you any
-questions to ask me? I put myself in the witness-box."
-
-"When did you come here?" asked Leonard.
-
-"Yesterday."
-
-"When do you go away?"
-
-"To-morrow if I like; the next day if I like; next week, or month, if
-I like. It depends absolutely on myself."
-
-"Are you alone?"
-
-"I remember, you said you were here on business."
-
-"What business?"
-
-"Professional. I am a doctor: I have a patient in my care."
-
-"Male or female?"
-
-"Male."
-
-"The disease?"
-
-"Madness."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIII.
-
-A FOUL DEED.
-
-
-Leonard gazed fixedly at Dr. Peterssen, doubting for the moment
-whether the man was in earnest. There was no doubt of it, however. Dr.
-Peterssen was speaking the truth.
-
-"I will enlighten you," said Dr. Peterssen, "I am not quite a
-pretender. I am a doctor with a diploma, and I have practised in all
-parts of the world. My specialty is diseases of the mind. I do not say
-I am fond of the study, but when needs must, the devil drives.
-Returning home--that is, to England, which I look upon as home--chance
-throws me in the way of a patient with a rich father. The father
-cannot keep his son at home, and he shrinks from sending him to a
-regular madhouse. Can he find a capable man who, for a consideration,
-will take charge of the young man and devote himself to him? I present
-myself; I am ready to do anything for a consideration. Between
-ourselves, my diploma is not exactly what it should be, and I could
-not practise regularly in England; there would be difficulties in my
-way, there are so many censorious people about. I have no difficulty
-in convincing the father of my patient that I am what I represent
-myself to be, and a bargain is struck. The young man, whose name is
-George Street, is given into my charge, and away we go. One reason
-that the father wishes to obtain without delay a guardian for his son
-is that he himself is compelled to leave England for a year or two for
-his health; another reason is that about twice a year he has a
-dangerous fit upon him. It lasts for two or three days, and he has to
-be carefully watched. While the father is absent I have to write to
-him on the first of every month, acquainting him with the condition of
-his son. I am to do what I like with the young man, to the extent of
-indulging in foreign travel for the purpose of diverting his mind. My
-expenses are paid, but I have to render a strict account, and though I
-garble them a little I cannot make much out of it. Then I am, like
-yourself, naturally extravagant, and I am also at heart, I am afraid,
-a bit of a gambler. I have not been very fortunate hitherto, but my
-turn will come. In addition to the trifle I make out of cooked
-accounts--shockingly mild cooking, Leonard, my patient's father being
-the soul of meanness--I receive three hundred a year. Of course, all
-my personal expenses are paid, but what can a man do with three
-hundred a year? It is a miserable pittance. My patient is now asleep;
-he is perfectly harmless, and he sleeps fifteen hours out of the
-twenty-four. I have no difficulty with him. He is as tractable as a
-lamb. 'Get up.' He gets up. 'Come out.' He comes out. 'Read for an
-hour.' He reads for an hour, or pretends to. 'Sit still till I
-return.' He sits still till I return. Thus all is plain sailing, and I
-have nothing to complain of except the salary. However, there is a
-better prospect before me, perhaps."
-
-Leonard did not respond to the sharp look which Dr. Peterssen gave
-him. He was revolving things in his mind, groping for a crooked path
-by which he could reach his goal.
-
-"Well, friend of my heart?" said Dr. Peterssen.
-
-"There is nothing more to be said at present," said Leonard. "It is
-time for me to join my friends."
-
-"I will go with you."
-
-"We agreed that you were not to intrude upon us."
-
-"I do not intend to. I merely wish to see where you put up. Don't try
-to give me the slip, Leonard."
-
-"Why should I? You may be of use to me."
-
-They walked together to the little inn in which they had rooms, and
-there Dr. Peterssen wished Leonard good night.
-
-He was not as good as his word. The next day he contrived that the
-parties should meet, but he was clever enough to make it appear as if
-it were an accidental meeting, and Leonard, being to some extent in
-his power, did not quarrel with him. His patient, George Street, was a
-quiet young gentleman, whom no person, without foreknowledge, would
-have supposed to be mad. Upon certain subjects he spoke rationally,
-but as a rule he was silent and reserved, with the air of one who had
-some deeply-rooted cause for melancholy. He seemed to fear Dr.
-Peterssen, and a dog could not have been more obedient to the least
-motion of its master. He was of about the same age as Gerald, and
-their statures differed very slightly. In accordance with the advice
-of Dr. Peterssen, Leonard informed Gerald and Emilia that the young
-man was not exactly in his right mind, and that they were to be under
-no apprehension concerning him, as he was as tractable and docile as a
-child. Emilia conceived a great pity for him, and occasionally walked
-with him, accompanied by Gerald; for Dr. Peterssen evinced no
-immediate intention of leaving their society.
-
-"The presence of a lady so gentle as yourself," he said to Emilia, "is
-good for the poor fellow; he is benefiting by your kindness already."
-
-"He will get well, I hope," said Emilia, solicitously. "There is no
-doubt of it," said Dr. Peterssen. "In less than twelve months his cure
-will be perfect."
-
-Some three weeks passed, and they were now in the Engadine, located in
-a comfortable inn in the valley of Roseg. For some reason of his own
-which he disclosed to not one of the party, not even to Leonard, Dr.
-Peterssen gave out that he expected from day to day to be called home
-by his patient's father, and that he might be compelled to leave them
-suddenly. His mind was busy with a diabolical scheme, which, however,
-he might not have succeeded in carrying out had not circumstances
-favored him. During the time they had been together he had extracted
-cleverly from one or the other information relating to the positions
-the step-brothers held toward each other, by which he learnt that the
-fortune enjoyed by Gerald would revert to Leonard if Gerald were out
-of the way. Leonard was annoyed by his pertinacious desire for details
-and particulars, but Dr. Peterssen, with his hand on the plough, never
-turned back. The fatality which assisted him to the cruel end he had
-in view was the indisposition of Emilia, who, in the Roseg Valley,
-exhibited signs of fatigue and depression. The local doctor prescribed
-rest, and Gerald gave up the mountain excursions which afforded him so
-much pleasure.
-
-"When you are quite strong," he said to her, "we will return to
-England." And whispered, "Our child shall be born there."
-
-Emilia, whose head was reclining on his shoulder, kissed him softly,
-and hid her face in his breast.
-
-"Before we leave these beautiful scenes, my darling," he said, "I
-shall pluck some edelweiss for you with my own hands. That will insure
-you good luck all your life."
-
-A woman in one of the villages had told Emilia that purchased
-edelweiss lost its charm, and that its potency could only be preserved
-if plucked and presented by the man one loved. Emilia had told this to
-Gerald, and he had set his heart upon finding the white flower for
-Emilia. Hitherto he had been unsuccessful. It was no secret between
-Gerald and Emilia; the whole of the party were acquainted with the
-wish of the loving couple; and it was this simple and innocent desire
-which was to bring a woful tragedy into the lives of Gerald and
-Emilia.
-
-It was afternoon, and Emilia was sitting at the window, gazing upon
-the wondrous vista of snow mountains which lined the horizon. Gerald
-came to her with excitement in his face.
-
-"Mr. Street and the doctor are below," he said. "They are going in
-search of the edelweiss, and they know where it is to be found."
-
-"You wish to go with them," said Emilia, with a smile. "Go, love."
-
-"But you will be alone."
-
-"I shall be very happy and contented, Gerald. Go and pluck me the
-magic flower with your own dear hands."
-
-How often in after life did these fatal words recur to her. "Go and
-pluck me the magic flower with your own dear hands!" Ah, if the effect
-of words were known before they were uttered, how many breaking hearts
-would at this moment be filled with happiness!
-
-"I may not have another opportunity," said Gerald. "I shall be home
-before sunset. Good-by, dear love. God bless you!"
-
-He was gone, and Emilia waved her handkerchief to him from the window.
-He looked back and smiled, and waved his hand gayly, and soon was lost
-to sight. "My darling!" she murmured, and leaned back in her chair,
-and thought with ineffable bliss of the time soon to come when she
-would hold out her babe to him for a father's kiss. One arm rested
-upon a table which Gerald had drawn close to her side. Upon the table
-was an open cedar-wood desk of Indian workmanship, inlaid with silver,
-and Emilia's fingers touched a dagger which Gerald was in the habit of
-using as a paper-knife, its handle resembling a twisted snake, the
-mouth open, and in its head a ruby to represent an eye. For a few
-moments she toyed with it idly, thinking of words Gerald had spoken to
-her with reference to the desk. "There is a secret drawer in this
-desk, Emilia, and in the desk something which concerns you nearly." He
-had said it smilingly, and she had merely nodded, but now, between
-sleeping and waking, she dwelt upon the words, and indolently resolved
-to ask Gerald when he came home what it was the secret drawer
-contained which concerned her nearly. With these thoughts in her mind
-she fell asleep.
-
-George Street turned to Dr. Peterssen when they were at some distance
-from the village. Dr. Peterssen nodded, and the four men--for Leonard
-was with them--paused.
-
-"This foolish fellow," said Dr. Peterssen to Gerald, laying his hand
-kindly on his patient's shoulder, "has a great wish to lead you
-himself to where the edelweiss is to be found--you and he alone, and I
-am almost inclined to humor him."
-
-"Why not?" asked Gerald, who had never yet detected any sign of
-insanity in his young companion.
-
-Dr. Peterssen took Gerald aside. "He knows the road to take, but he is
-in my care. Between you and me he is as sensible as we are, but still
-I feel somewhat anxious. I am responsible for him to his father you
-know."
-
-"We shall be able to take care of ourselves," said Gerald.
-
-"Then go. We will await your return at the inn." Away went the young
-men, and Dr. Peterssen and Leonard were left together.
-
-"What does it all mean?" asked Leonard.
-
-"Simply that you can compass your wishes if you desire it."
-
-"I do desire it."
-
-"Come with me, then."
-
-They turned in another direction, but not toward the valley. They
-continued to ascend the rocky ranges.
-
-"We shall get there half an hour before them," said Dr. Peterssen. "I
-have carefully studied the route, and have traversed it twice--in your
-interests."
-
-"Explain yourself."
-
-"I will, as we walk along. There is nobody in sight, is there?"
-
-"Not a living being."
-
-"We must be sure of that, as we proceed. Answer me, Mr. Leonard Paget.
-If I remove your step brother from your path--he is, after all, no
-relation to speak of--what will you give me?"
-
-"You said something about a thousand pounds," said Leonard, his face
-growing white.
-
-"Not enough. Not half enough."
-
-"There is his wife also in the way, remember."
-
-"Rubbish! She may die; the shock will probably kill her."
-
-"But if it should not?"
-
-"If--if--if--!" exclaimed Dr. Peterssen, impatiently. "There is no if
-in the case when two clever scoundrels like ourselves are in the game.
-Has he made a will?"
-
-"I am sure he has not.
-
-"Make a clean breast of everything if you want to succeed. I know only
-half the story. I must know the rest, and I will stake my future that
-I show you a dozen ways to conquer her, even if she lives. Don't lag.
-It is hard work mounting these ranges, but the reward is worth it. Did
-you observe that they took the tracks to the left. We are taking those
-to the right; and we are both making for the same point. Now, Leonard,
-out with every detail of this romantic story, which is as yet only
-half finished. It is your last chance, old fellow."
-
-Thus urged, Leonard related everything he knew concerning Gerald and
-Emilia. Dr. Peterssen laughed, and instilled into Leonard's ear
-certain counsel which Leonard was only too ready to follow. It was a
-risk, but as Dr. Peterssen said, the reward was worth it.
-
-In a couple of hours they had reached the spot they had been making
-for. They had not met a soul on the way, and they saw nothing of
-Gerald and George Street.
-
-"They will come into view in half an hour or so," said Dr. Peterssen,
-"and if not we will go and hurry them up."
-
-They had halted on a wild spot. They were surrounded by enormous
-glaciers, and all around them lay dangerous precipices. At a dozen
-points an unsuspicious man might be pushed without effort into abysses
-where he would be almost certain to meet with death. It was this
-infernal plan which Dr. Peterssen had conceived, and which Leonard
-guessed at, but was too timid to ask about. Easy to carry out a bloody
-deed in such a place, without a living witness to bring evidence
-against them.
-
-"Sit down," said Dr. Peterssen.
-
-He pulled out a flask of brandy, and gave it to Leonard. The
-treacherous friend took a long drink. Dr. Peterssen also drank, but
-more sparingly.
-
-"If I don't mistake," he said, "you have a check book in your pocket."
-
-"What if I have?"
-
-"Everything. Answer my questions. You are acting as your brother's
-treasurer."
-
-"I am."
-
-"With full authority, as I understand."
-
-"With full authority."
-
-"The bank in which his money is deposited has written instructions to
-that effect."
-
-"It has--but what are you driving at?"
-
-"Easy, Mr. Paget, easy. Do you know that I am about to lose a
-patient?"
-
-"Your own doing."
-
-"But for your ends. Now, I want a guarantee. I had a little private
-conversation with your step-brother yesterday, in which I skilfully
-pumped him. What do you think I learned? That you had been realizing a
-quantity of valuable securities for him lately, and that there was a
-very considerable balance at the bank to his credit."
-
-"You are an infernal meddler."
-
-"All in your interest, Leonard, and a little, a very little, in my
-own. You will give me here, and now, a check for two thousand pounds."
-
-"You are out of your senses."
-
-"Most absolutely and positively in them, my dear fellow. What I am
-about to do for you is worth ten times the sum, so I am not hard on
-you. In brains, Leonard, you have the best of me--I am a very candid
-and honest scoundrel, you must admit--but when the pinch comes you
-lose your nerve. Take another pull at the brandy. Down with it, man.
-It will bring some color to your cheeks, and perhaps some false
-courage to your chicken heart. We--fellows like myself--are the real
-men. If I had lived three or four centuries ago I should have been a
-man of mark. Produce your check-book."
-
-"What is the use? I have no pen and ink."
-
-"Ha ha, my honest comrade, I have provided for that. I had just enough
-brains to think of the contingency. Here are the requisites. Now, fill
-in and sign. Date it two days ago."
-
-There was a brute ferocity in Dr. Peterssen which compelled and
-overawed Leonard, and with a sullen look he wrote the check and signed
-it.
-
-"I warrant," said Dr. Peterssen, examining the check narrowly and
-carefully pocketing it, "that you have feathered your nest pretty
-well. In the event of Gerald Paget leaving a widow behind him--though
-that will not be so in this case, Leonard, for there can be no widow
-where there was no wife--you could strip her of every farthing of
-ready cash by drawing the entire balance from the bank, dating the
-check yesterday, as a measure of precaution. Hush--they are coming!
-Behind this rock--crouch down, and don't so much as breathe!"
-
-Almost breathless Gerald and George Street halted within two feet of
-them, standing side by side on the edge of a precipice.
-
-"It makes me dizzy looking down," said George Street. "Does it not
-you?"
-
-"No," said Gerald. "And we have not found the edelweiss after all. It
-is a great disappointment to me."
-
-"It grows on the edge of the precipice," said George Street. "Let us
-kneel and look over. I am sure this was the spot Dr. Peterssen pointed
-out to me."
-
-The young men knelt down and looked over the precipice, Gerald keeping
-tight hold of his companion. As they bent their heads there came a
-fierce and sudden movement behind them, and with a loud cry the two
-young men sank into the abyss.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIV.
-
-DR. PETERSSEN EXPLAINS HIMSELF.
-
-
-"What have you done?" exclaimed Leonard, starting to his feet in
-irrepressible excitement, but cooling immediately as Dr. Peterssen
-turned to him with a smile on his lips. It was seldom, indeed, that
-Leonard was taken off his guard, but the suddenness of this foul deed
-startled him. When engaged in a scheme of villainy he was in the habit
-of being more deliberate.
-
-"Be more careful with your pronouns," said Dr. Peterssen, inclining
-toward the abyss, and putting his hand to his ear. "You mean what have
-_we_ done?"
-
-"I did not stir."
-
-"You lie," said Dr. Peterssen, with a brutal laugh. "With my own eyes
-I saw you hurl your step-brother over the precipice. In the attempt to
-save himself he caught hold of my poor patient, but he was just one
-little minute too late. Instead of saving himself he destroyed his
-companion, and thus at one fell swoop I was robbed of three hundred a
-year. I, with a record at least as spotless as your own--we are a fine
-pair of white doves, you and I--am ready to take my Bible oath to this
-version of the catastrophe; and I'll bet you a hundred to one, my
-buck, that I swear you down in any court of justice you can name. A
-likely thing, isn't it, that I should wish to get rid of my poor
-patient, when by doing so I lose a sure income? You, on the contrary,
-have everything to gain by your step-brother's death. Dying
-unmarried--you understand?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"You have only to be firm with Emilia and the point is carried. After
-what she has gone through, and plunged into despair as she will be,
-she can be made to believe anything, especially when she learns that
-you are prepared to behave generously to her. To resume, Gerald, dying
-unmarried, you come into all the property. Therefore his death is a
-distinctly desirable event in your eyes. Do not, therefore, my dear
-comrade, in this little affair, attempt to shirk your share of the
-responsibility, or I will throw it all upon your shoulders, and send
-you to the gallows. Mr. Leonard Paget, I should be inclined to call
-you a fool if I did not know you better. What is done cannot be
-undone, nor, with all your cant, would you wish it undone."
-
-"But," said Leonard, inwardly acknowledging the weight of his
-companion's arguments, "we are in danger."
-
-"We are in none. Your step-brother Gerald, ardently desiring to gather
-with his own hands some edelweiss for his lady love, is informed by my
-unfortunate patient that he knows where the flower is to be found.
-Unwilling that they shall go alone, we express our intention to
-accompany them. Off we start with merry hearts. But we have not gone
-far before the young gentlemen beg to be allowed to enjoy their
-excursion without our society, and we, two fond and indulgent
-guardians, yield to their implorings, and leave them to themselves.
-Lured by the balmy weather, we stroll up the mountains, scarcely
-noting in which direction we are wandering. We stop and dilate upon
-the sublime beauty of the scenery, our souls exalted by the thoughts
-it inspires, when our ecstatic musings are rudely interrupted by
-screams of anguish. We hasten to the spot from which they proceed, and
-see--nothing. But our ears, ever open to the calls of humanity, cannot
-have deceived us. No, that is impossible. So we hunt and look about,
-calling out all the while to the poor souls who may be in peril to
-give us some indication how we can assist them. At length our
-attention is attracted by signs of a disturbance at the edge of this
-precipice, and kneeling"--he suited the action to the word, and
-Leonard knelt by his side--"we observe marks in the soil which
-engender the suspicion that a human creature has fallen over. We call
-out loudly, and are answered by a groan and scarcely distinguishable
-but undeniably pathetic appeals for help."
-
-"I do not hear them," interrupted Leonard.
-
-"Then you ought to. Are you quite devoid of imagination? Our hearts
-are rent by these appeals. We are not practised mountaineers, and are
-unable to render assistance. Therefore we hasten to the nearest
-village, and return with men and ropes to the rescue. But by that time
-it is too late."
-
-"By that time," said Leonard, in a questioning tone, "they are dead?"
-
-"By that time," repeated Dr. Peterssen, "they are dead. And"--with a
-steady look at Leonard--"of this fact we must convince ourselves
-before the introduction of other characters into the melancholy
-scene."
-
-"How is that to be done?"
-
-Dr. Peterssen rose to his feet, and cast sharp glances around.
-
-"We are quite alone, I think."
-
-"Not a person is in sight," said Leonard, watching his ruthless
-companion with curious eyes.
-
-"Be silent a minute or two."
-
-They stood perfectly still, all their senses on the alert.
-
-"There is no doubt," said Dr. Peterssen, "that we are the only
-witnesses of the unhappy occurrence, and, thus far, safe. Now to make
-sure."
-
-He divested himself of coat and waistcoat, and unwound a rope which he
-had adjusted round his waist.
-
-"It is not very thick," he said, "nor very long, but it will help to
-steady us. See, I wind and fasten it about this slim trunk which
-providence has grown here to further our ends. Try it; you will find
-it quite secure."
-
-"Yes, it can hardly get loosened of itself."
-
-"The descent, as you will observe, is not very difficult after all.
-All that is required is steadiness and confidence. About 30 feet
-down--I reckon it is not more than that--you see a broad plateau of
-rock upon which half a dozen men can stand easily."
-
-"But neither Gerald nor your patient is there."
-
-"They have rolled over it, and we must ascertain their position, if it
-is possible to do so. Descend."
-
-"Descend!" cried Leonard, retreating.
-
-"Descend," repeated Dr. Peterssen, calmly. "I will follow you."
-
-"But why do you not go first?"
-
-"Because, cherished idol of my soul, I do not trust you. You above and
-I below, you might easily finish me off, and have the game entirely in
-your own hands. You are quite safe with me, dear friend. It is to my
-advantage to keep you alive; I intend to get money out of you in the
-future. It would be to your advantage if I were in the same plight as
-our friends below, for then you would save the money you will have to
-pay me. Even as a lad I was distinguished for frankness. Descend."
-
-He was master of the situation, and Leonard was compelled to submit.
-Steadying himself by the rope he descended, and reached the plateau.
-Dr. Peterssen climbed down after him with the agility of a cat.
-
-"I see them," he said, "though not very distinctly. They seem to be
-lying side by side. Luckily it will not be at all difficult to get to
-them. Between being hurled down these rocks unaware and descending
-them voluntarily there is a great difference. We will go together.
-Careful, Leonard, careful; I must not have my milch cow injured."
-
-They reached the spot where the bodies lay. The violence with which
-they had been dashed over the precipice had told its tale. Of the two
-Dr. Peterssen's patient was the more injured. In his descent his
-features had been so dreadfully cut and lacerated that they were
-scarcely distinguishable.
-
-"My poor ward is done for," said Dr. Peterssen, adding, with eyes
-sanctimoniously raised to heaven, "he is now in a better world."
-
-"And Gerald?" whispered Leonard.
-
-It was some time before Dr. Peterssen replied, and when he spoke there
-was a strange note in his voice.
-
-"Gerald lives."
-
-"Then what has been done," cried Leonard, in a tone of mingled despair
-and fury, "has been done in vain!"
-
-"Easy to finish the job," remarked Dr. Peterssen.
-
-But, hardened as he was, Leonard shrank from the ruthless suggestion.
-Had he been alone he might have nerved himself to the desperate
-expedient, but in the presence of a witness----
-
-"Are you certain be lives?"
-
-"Quite certain," said Dr. Peterssen. "His head is badly cut, and there
-is no saying in what condition he will be when he opens his eyes. He
-has a long illness before him, which may terminate fatally."
-
-"But, before the end he may be able to assure Emilia that they are
-legally married. Before the end he may make his will!"
-
-"He may. It would be bad for both of us"
-
-"Is there no road but one out of it?"
-
-"I have a strong gift of invention," said Dr. Peterssen. "There is
-another road, a hazardous one, the risk and trouble of which will be
-mine; but I don't mind, so long as I am properly paid for it, and you
-will be rich enough to arrange that to my satisfaction."
-
-"Speak plainly, in the devil's name."
-
-"In the name of that august myth I will endeavor to do so. What
-hazards and what personal inconvenience will not such a sacred
-friendship as ours incur for a quid pro quo! The two men lying
-helpless before us, one dead and one living, are about the same
-height. Perhaps you have observed that?"
-
-"I have not."
-
-"I have. And not only about the same height but about the same build.
-The color of their hair is not dissimilar, and it really seems to have
-been ordained by fate that neither of them should wear mustache or
-beardeek."
-
-"For the life of me I can't see your drift."
-
-"The quality of your mental powers is not generally opaque, but you are
-remarkably dense at this moment. Dressed in each other's clothes, who is
-to distinguish them? Thus attired, my poor patient, whose features are
-battered beyond recognition, is carried back to the village as your
-luckless brother Gerald. As Gerald he is buried; the tombstone you
-lovingly erect over his remains proclaims it. Thus attired, he is
-carried back to the village as my patient, and I attend on him; no one
-else sets an eye upon him, though that risk might be run with safety.
-To-morrow comes a summons from his father, which I invent, to take him
-back to England. It grieves me to leave you in your grief, to leave the
-bereaved Emilia in her sorrow--but what can I do? Duty is my watchword,
-and I set it before me unflinchingly, and perform it. Without delay I
-return home, bearing my patient with me. Do you see the drift of my
-plan now?"
-
-"I do," replied Leonard, setting his teeth close. "But will you be
-able to carry it out?"
-
-"To the bitter end--till Gerald is dead."
-
-They exchanged glances; the compact was made.
-
-"If he should recover consciousness while we are changing their
-clothes!" whispered Leonard.
-
-"Accept my professional word. The injuries he has received are so
-severe that he will not recover his senses until he is on the road to
-England. Not even then, perhaps. Trust me to manage him. I am
-responsible to no one, and there are potent drugs which I can use to
-any end I wish. As a matter of fact my poor patient's father is
-thousands of miles away, and will learn just as much as it pleases me
-to impart, and at the time I choose to impart it. What kind of friend
-am I?"
-
-"The best of friends. Let us set to work."
-
-Dr. Peterssen laughed internally; in this villanous scheme he saw what
-was hidden from Leonard.
-
-An hour afterward they stood again on the edge of the precipice, and
-the rope they had used was once more concealed round Dr. Peterssen's
-body. He had forced down Gerald's throat ah opiate which insured
-insensibility for many hours to come. Leonard hoped that his
-step-brother would die under its influence, but Dr. Peterssen did not
-share the hope. He wanted Gerald to live--at least for the present.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXV.
-
-EMILIA AND LEONARD.
-
-
-On the evening of the following day a closed carriage was waiting at
-the door of the inn to convey Dr. Peterssen and Gerald to the nearest
-railway station. The plot he and Leonard had hatched had been cruelly
-successful. Strangers in the little village, and living during their
-stay upon terms of affectionate intimacy, their movements and actions
-were absolutely untrammelled, and not a shadow of suspicion had been
-aroused. Emilia, overwhelmed by the shock, was attacked with brain
-fever, and was lying in a dangerous condition. Dr. Peterssen declared
-it likely that she would never rise from her bed, and his opinion was
-shared by the village doctor. Gerald's condition was not less
-perilous. Dr. Peterssen had devoted the greatest attention to him, and
-Leonard learned from his partner in villainy that there was something
-more than a possibility that even if Gerald recovered his health he
-might never recover his reason. Their simulation of grief was perfect,
-and every person in the village spoke in praise of their devotion, and
-sympathized with them. Leonard, of course, was to remain behind to
-attend to Emilia, and to perform the last sad offices for his dearly
-beloved brother.
-
-In a state of unconsciousness Gerald was carried out of the inn and
-placed in the carriage, and Dr. Peterssen and Leonard stood a little
-apart, conversing privately. The landlord and all the attendants quite
-believed that it was Dr. Peterssen's patient, and not Gerald, who was
-about to be taken to England.
-
-"Up to this point," said Dr. Peterssen, "there has not been a hitch.
-We could not hope to have succeeded better, and should Emilia recover,
-there is no chance of a mishap if you play your cards properly."
-
-"I shall not fail to do that," said Leonard, gazing at Dr. Peterssen
-with a certain mistrust. "I am in hopes that I shall be spared the
-awkwardness of an explanation."
-
-"Meaning that you are in hopes she will die. Well, there is an even
-chance of that, but it is as well to be prepared. And now, friend of
-my soul, you and I must come to terms."
-
-"We will leave all that till we meet in England," said Leonard.
-
-"There will be plenty to talk of there," said Dr. Peterssen. "We will
-settle preliminaries here, before we part."
-
-"What do you want?" asked Leonard, with a dark look.
-
-"A clear understanding, and an undertaking in writing. You see, old
-comrade, I am doing _your_ dirty work, not my own. I don't object to
-your enjoying the lion's share of the spoil, but I must have some
-guarantee of a sure and certain income."
-
-"It is already agreed that you are to have three hundred a year, which
-with the three hundred you will receive from the father of your
-patient, makes you very comfortable."
-
-"Not as comfortable as I ought to be," said Dr. Peterssen, placidly.
-
-"What the mischief do you want? You have got a check for two thousand
-out of me."
-
-"A retainer, my dear Leonard, merely a retainer. I should have stuck
-out for more, but I am always sacrificing myself for others. The three
-hundred must be six. Don't look black; a heart-stricken expression is
-advisable, with strangers observing us. The eyes of half-a-dozen are
-fixed on us at the present moment, and there would be the devil to pay
-if they suspected there was the smallest difference of opinion between
-us. Remember the stake you are playing for."
-
-"You seem to hold the winning cards."
-
-"I never play a game without them, dear old chum, but you must admit
-that my winnings are small in comparison with yours. Notice the smile
-of sad resignation on my face, with which I cajole our friends the
-simple villagers. Yes, Leonard, the three hundred must be six."
-
-"I carry your brother Gerald from the carriage back to the inn. He is
-not in a fit state to travel, I say in reply to questions; I will not
-risk his life. I nurse him into health, I restore his senses--quite
-possible, I believe. I keep a watchful eye upon Emilia also, in order
-that you shall play no tricks, and she, too, gets well. Then I bring
-the two together, and leave you, noble captain, to your own devices.
-All very beautifully arranged, is it not, sweet child?"
-
-"You shall have the six hundred, curse you," said Leonard, careful to
-follow Dr. Peterssen's advice as to the play of expression on his
-features.
-
-"A million million thanks. And now be kind enough to sign this paper
-binding you to the arrangement. Go into the inn, and affix your
-signature in a bold, clear hand. No arguments, Leonard, but do it. If
-you delay we shall miss the train, and I shall have to return with
-your brother to the enjoyments of your society."
-
-Leonard had no choice; he went into the inn and presently reappeared
-with the document, which he handed to Dr. Peterssen, who examined and
-pocketed it.
-
-"Farewell, old comrade, farewell," he said, with his handkerchief to
-his eyes. "This is a dramatic moment; deeply do I feel the parting.
-Adieu, till we meet in England. By the way, I have informed Father
-Anselm, the good priest, that I have left five hundred francs in your
-hands which you will give him in my name for the relief of the poor.
-He blessed and thanked me. He will remind you of the benediction if
-you need reminding, but your best plan will be to give him the money
-soon, with a cheerful heart. Once more, farewell. Speak well of me
-when I am gone."
-
-With profound sighs and melancholy looks he wrung Leonard's hand and
-entered the carriage, bidding the driver to proceed gently. Leonard
-and a few of the villagers watched the carriage till it was out of
-sight, and then the remaining actor in the vile plot entered the inn,
-enraged at the extortion--for so he inwardly declared it to be--that
-Dr. Peterssen had practised upon him. But he felt that he was in this
-man's power, and that it was advisable to submit with as good grace as
-possible. What was done could not be undone, nor would he have had it
-undone. The future was before him with all its possibilities of
-pleasure; a life of ease was his when the scheme was carried out to
-its bitter end. Even were he willing to forego his ruthless design he
-had gone too far now to retract. In the event of Emilia's recovery to
-health, his next move was to impose upon her and reduce her to
-silence, and he did not doubt his ability to achieve his purpose.
-
-There were certain official formalities to go through with respect to
-the fictitious death of Gerald. He testified that the body was that of
-his brother, and he was supported by the independent testimony of
-witnesses, who identified the clothes of the deceased. The official
-record of the death of Gerald Paget was duly made, and in a few days
-the funeral took place, Leonard being the chief mourner. Over the
-grave was placed a flat tombstone, with the inscription--"To the
-memory of my dear brother Gerald." Nothing more.
-
-Throughout the whole of these proceedings Emilia lay between life and
-death, and consequently knew nothing of what was going on. But her
-ravings proved that she was at least conscious of the fatal blow her
-happiness had received. She called upon her dear Gerald in Heaven, and
-implored to be taken to him; and then, and then--stirred by the
-mysterious promptings of approaching maternity--she as earnestly
-implored to be spared for the sake of her child yet unborn. For six
-weeks she lay in a dangerous condition, and then youth and a sound,
-though delicate, constitution triumphed, and her health began to
-improve. Another fortnight, and she was convalescent.
-
-Before this took place Leonard, who was sedulously employed in earning
-a character for charity and kindness, had succeeded in blasting her
-good name. The simple priest of the village was shocked at the
-disclosure that Emilia had no right to wear the wedding-ring on her
-finger.
-
-"Alas," he said, "that one so fair should be so frail!"
-
-"Unhappily," said Leonard with a hypocritical sigh, "it is frequently
-so with the fairest of women. Weak as they appear, they are strong in
-vice."
-
-The priest nodded his head sadly. How could he disbelieve a man so
-charitable and sweet-mannered as Leonard? How could he mistrust
-one who consecrated the memory of a beloved brother by donations to
-the little church and by constant benefactions to the poor and
-suffering among his flock? In the total it was not a large sum that
-Leonard parted with, but it was magnificent in the eyes of the
-poverty-stricken priest, who had never experienced such free-handed
-generosity. Leonard, was looked upon as a benefactor, and his false
-benevolence gave weight to every word that fell from his lips. He
-explained to the priest that the reason of his accompanying his
-brother Gerald and the young woman who had led him into vice was his
-earnest desire to break the guilty tie which bound them. "Death has
-done that for me," he said, covering his eyes. "A good man," thought
-the priest, "a good and noble man!" He inquired of Leonard how he
-intended to act when Emilia regained her health.
-
-"I shall not desert her," replied Leonard; "Heaven forbid that I
-should do so! She has sinned, but the door of repentance shall not be
-closed upon her--she shall not lose the chance of leading a better
-life. I will insure her a small income, sufficient for any woman's
-wants, upon which she can live in comfort. She will be able to do so,
-will she not, upon two thousand francs a year?"
-
-The priest raised his hands in astonishment. Two thousand francs! It
-was affluence.
-
-"May your kind intentions be fruitful," he said. "May the erring woman
-lead in the future a virtuous life."
-
-His flock were distinguished by a singular morality, and he, a
-simple-minded man, regarded with horror any backsliding from the
-straight path. On the following Sabbath he took the theme for his
-text, and without mentioning names, referred to two strangers in their
-midst, one distinguished for his noble deeds of charity, the other
-degraded by her vicious conduct. Every one in the chapel knew to whom
-he referred, and were prepared to receive Emilia with something more
-than coldness. The first knowledge of this state of feeling came to
-her on a day she was able to sit at her window to breathe the sweet
-air. The innkeeper's daughter had grown fond of her, and had performed
-many kindly offices for the hapless woman. The whole of this day the
-young girl had not made her appearance in Emilia's room, and yearning
-for female companionship she rang the bell for her. It was answered by
-the innkeeper.
-
-"I wish to see your daughter," said Emilia.
-
-"She will not come," said the innkeeper. "She shall not come."
-
-"Why?" asked Emilia, in wonder at his rough tone.
-
-"Answer the question yourself," replied the innkeeper. "When you are
-strong enough to leave my house I must request you to seek a shelter
-elsewhere."
-
-He left the room without another word.
-
-There was a significance in his manner as well as in his words which
-brought a flush into Emilia's face. "She will not come! She shall not
-come!" What fresh misery was in store for her? A terrible fear stole
-upon her. The undeserved shame she had passed through in her native
-town glided from the past and hovered like a spectre over her. She
-turned with a sob toward Leonard, who a short time afterward made his
-appearance. He pretended not to notice her agitation, and did not
-afford her an opportunity of opening a conversation with him.
-
-"Would you like to come into the open air?" he asked.
-
-"Yes, Leonard," she said, noting also the coldness of his voice. "Will
-you assist me down?"
-
-He nodded, and she took his arm; but she missed the gentle and
-considerate guidance which she had a right to expect.
-
-He placed a chair for her in front of the inn, and stood a few paces
-from her. Not a soul spoke to her. Men and women whom she remembered,
-whose faces she recognized, and with whom she was upon friendly terms
-when Gerald was with her, passed to and fro, and exchanged cordial
-words with Leonard, but did not address a single word to her. If by
-chance their eyes met hers, which, after a little while, were turned
-appealingly toward them, they turned abruptly from her, with looks of
-displeasure and aversion which chilled her heart. Even the innkeeper's
-daughter came near her, but did not approach close enough to speak to
-her. Yet she spoke to Leonard. Emilia beckoned to him.
-
-"I cannot remain here any longer," she said. "I must go to my room."
-
-She did not ask for his arm, nor did he offer it. Weak, and beset with
-torturing doubts, she clung to the wall as she ascended the stairs. In
-silence they entered the room. Leonard stood mute by the door.
-
-"Have you nothing to say to me?" she asked presently.
-
-"Nothing," he replied, "until you are stronger."
-
-"I have borne so much in the past," she said, "that I can bear
-anything you have to tell.
-
-"I will wait," he said, and left the room.
-
-Long did she ponder over the strange conduct of those who were once
-her friends, but she could not account for it. She felt herself alone
-in a strange land. Gerald was lost to her, and she was without a
-friend. She did not give way to despair; she nerved herself to
-strength and fortitude; another life would soon be dependent upon her;
-for the sake of her unborn child it was her duty to keep up her heart.
-
-Some days passed, and not a friendly word was spoken to her, not a
-friendly hand was held out. She suffered without remonstrance; dark as
-was the present there was a sweet light in the future. She would have
-her child in her arms before many weeks elapsed, Gerald's child.
-Spiritual baby eyes looked into hers; spiritual baby hands were
-stretched toward her. "For your sake, my darling, for your sake!" she
-murmured.
-
-She was now able to walk alone, without assistance, and one day she
-walked to the village churchyard, to visit the grave of her beloved.
-She read the inscription, "To the memory of my dear brother Gerald."
-Should not her name have been there? She was nearer to him than any
-other human being. She resolved to seek without delay an explanation
-from Leonard.
-
-On her way to and from the churchyard she met with many persons, and
-was avoided by all. A woman and her young daughter, a girl of sixteen,
-passed close to her; the mother drew her child away from Emilia so
-that their dresses should not come in contact. She met the village
-priest, who looked at her reprovingly, and then turned in an opposite
-direction. Was she, then, a pariah? What crime had she committed?
-
-Once more in her room in the inn she forced herself to a practical
-examination into a matter which had surprised her. Certain articles of
-jewellery had been given to her by Gerald. They were gone. All that
-she possessed in remembrance of her dear husband were her wedding-ring
-and a ring set with diamonds, which had never left her fingers.
-Possibly if these had been lying loose they would have shared the fate
-of her other mementos. Quite as strange was the circumstance that
-everything belonging to Gerald had been removed during her illness
-from the rooms she and her husband had occupied. Her purse, too, was
-empty; there was not a coin in it. She could not remember whether she
-had any money before she received the terrible news of Gerald's death;
-indeed, with reference to past events, her memory was in the same
-state as it had been after the good old wagoner had taken her to his
-home in England. During that period she was not in a condition to gain
-any knowledge of her surroundings, and she did not even know the name
-of the place in which she and Gerald had been married. Up to the
-morning of that day her mind had been a blank, and Gerald, out of
-consideration for her, had made no attempt to revive memories which in
-their inception had brought so much suffering to his dear girl. The
-only thing that was clear to Emilia was the memory of the shame into
-which she had been plunged by Mrs. Seaton's calumnies, and when her
-mind reverted to the experiences of those dark days she strove
-shudderingly to thrust them from her. But there was something in her
-present position which seemed, in some dread manner, to be connected
-with that shame and with the horror of the slanders which had ruined
-her good name, and strive as she would she could not banish the
-remembrance.
-
-She sent for Leonard and he came at her bidding.
-
-"I have visited my husband's grave," she said.
-
-"My dear brother Gerald's grave," he said in correction. "I said my
-husband's grave," she repeated.
-
-"And I replied, my dear brother Gerald's grave."
-
-There was a dark, stern look in his eyes, and she did not have the
-courage to come straight to the point.
-
-"I believe you to be my friend," she said.
-
-"I did not wish to distress my poor brother," he rejoined.
-
-"Then you deceived me by professing what you did not feel?"
-
-"I have no explanation to give."
-
-"Yet you have remained here with me during my long illness."
-
-"I had a duty to perform."
-
-"Was it not out of love that you have stayed with me?"
-
-"It was not."
-
-She strove to look at him steadily, but her eyes wavered; his were
-unflinching.
-
-"On the last day I saw my dear husband--What is the meaning of that
-gesture?" For Leonard had put up his hand with scornful motion.
-
-"Your assumption of innocence and indignation does not deceive me; it
-will deceive no one who knows you. Go on. On the last day you saw my
-dear brother----"
-
-"I had reason to believe," she continued, "that I had won the respect,
-if not the affection, of those around me, strangers though they were.
-I passed through a dangerous illness, and have been mercifully spared.
-I thank God humbly for it. Recovering, I am met with coldness
-whichever way I turn. People avoid me. Why?"
-
-"Search your own heart for the answer."
-
-"I have questioned my heart, and find none. I have done no wrong."
-
-"You have singular ideas of morality. Is living with a man as his
-mistress a virtuous act?"
-
-"Great God! How dare you speak those words to me?"
-
-"Because they are true. People avoid you because the truth is known.
-Spare hysterics; they will not help you. You are not fit to associate
-with virtuous women."
-
-"How dare you, how dare you? Gerald and I were man and wife."
-
-"You never were. You and my dear, fond brother--dear to me, weak
-though he was--were never married. With his death ended your life of
-deceit. You were Gerald's mistress, not his wife."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVI.
-
-"ONLY YOU AND I, DARLING, ONLY YOU AND I."
-
-
-The horror of this infamous statement so completely overwhelmed her
-that she lost the power of speech. The room swam before her; in her
-excitement she had risen to her feet, and her slight form swayed like
-a reed in the throes of a pitiless storm. Presently Leonard spoke
-again, and his voice brought some clearness to her distracted mind;
-but every word he uttered cut into her heart like a sharp knife.
-
-"If you are not sufficiently composed to hear what it is my duty to
-say, I will leave you and come again in an hour."
-
-She motioned to him to remain, and her trembling hands then stretched
-themselves toward a bottle of water on the table. He poured some into
-a glass, which he placed close to her. Rallying a little she managed
-to raise the glass to her lips, and to drink, the cold draught revived
-her fainting senses.
-
-"Speak," she said. "Say what you have to say."
-
-"Had my brother lived," said Leonard, "the time would have come when
-he would have been compelled to make the disclosure himself. Being
-gone, the duty which was his devolves upon me. It may be that he would
-have righted the wrong he did you, for he was weak and easily
-prevailed upon. I do not seek to excuse him, and it is certain that he
-acted as he deemed best when he deceived you. Are you attending to me?
-Shall I go on?"
-
-"Yes," she gasped, "go on."
-
-"When you were lying at death's door in the village to which you had
-flown, the name of which you probably remember--" He purposely paused
-here, to afford her an opportunity of answering him.
-
-"I do not remember it," she said. "If I heard it, it has gone from me.
-My mind was a blank."
-
-"He was informed by the doctor," continued Leonard, with guilty
-satisfaction, "who attended you that there was only one means of
-restoring your reason, and that was to make you his wife. It was then
-he conceived the idea of a sham marriage ceremony. It must be clear to
-you, as it is to every person gifted with common-sense, that it was
-not possible for you to marry him or any man in your state of mind. No
-minister would have sanctioned such a marriage, and you could not,
-therefore, be married in church. It was easy for Gerald to devise a
-mock civil marriage, and to carry you away immediately to a foreign
-country in order that you should not discover the deception. You have
-been witness of the love which existed between him and me; his death
-is to me an irreparable loss. I endeavored to dissuade him from his
-purpose, but he would not listen to me: weak and amiable as he was, he
-had a soul of obstinacy when his mind was strongly set, and my words
-of counsel fell upon ears which were deaf to all the arguments I could
-use. I saw that there was a danger that the strong love we had for
-each other might be sapped if I thwarted him, and I could bear
-anything but that. My dear, dear brother! His spirit is with me day
-and night, and I forgive him for the action, although many would
-condemn him for it. Now, perhaps, you can understand why you are
-looked upon with disfavor here in this place--with something more than
-disfavor, indeed, with repugnance. They regard your presence as a
-shame and a scandal, and young girls are enjoined by their parents to
-avoid you. Since my dear Gerald's death the true story of your
-relations with him has in some way become known. It is not unlikely
-that he himself confided it to some person, perhaps to the village
-priest; and, to speak plainly, your position here is a little worse
-than it was in your native town in England, from which you had to fly.
-It is out of a feeling of kindness to you that I tell you it will be
-best for you to leave as soon as possible. The simple people will not
-tolerate you among them, and they may show their feelings toward you
-in a more practical manner than they have yet done. To enable you to
-escape I have a proposition to make to you, if you care to listen to
-it."
-
-To escape! Had it come to that? Was it to be ever her fate to fly from
-unmerited shame, to be oppressed and hunted down? But it was not of
-herself alone she thought; her unborn babe appealed to her. A life of
-duty lay before her. It was merciful that this view of the position in
-which she stood came to her aid; otherwise her great despair might
-have driven her to the last desperate expedient of those wretched
-mortals to whom life has become a burden too hard to be longer
-endured.
-
-"What is your proposition," she asked, faintly.
-
-"My brother had a regard for you," said Leonard, "and when the time
-had arrived when, supposing that he had lived, he would have been
-compelled to separate himself from you, he would most likely have made
-some provision for you. I stand in his place, and I do loving honor to
-his memory by acting as he would have done. You shall not face the
-world in poverty, and besides, you shall not have the power to say
-that you have been first betrayed and then cast forth penniless. I
-will provide for you, and will undertake to pay, through a lawyer whom
-I shall appoint, a sum of two pounds a week so long as you lead a
-respectable life and say nothing to my dear brother's hurt. You may
-live where you like, but I would advise you to choose some other
-country than England. There the story of your shame would cling to
-you, would follow you everywhere. Away from England no one would know,
-and life would be easier for you. Do you accept?"
-
-"Leave me to myself," said Emilia. "I will send for you presently."
-
-"I will wait below," said Leonard; "but do not be long in deciding, or
-I may change my mind."
-
-Alone with her grief and her shame, Emilia, by a supreme effort of
-will, forced herself to calmness. The solemn sense of responsibility
-imbued her soul with strength. She was no longer a girl, dependent
-upon others for counsel, for guidance, for love. Not a friend in the
-world had she, but a helpless being would soon be lying at her breast
-who would claim from her all that it was in the power of a loving
-woman to give. A new life lay before her. How would she commence it?
-
-She strove for a few minutes to bring the past back to her mind, but
-it presented itself to her in pictures so blurred and indistinct that
-she relinquished the effort. Up to the point of her being driven from
-Mrs. Seaton's house everything was clear, but her memory was gone upon
-all that had occurred afterward until she found herself with Gerald in
-a foreign land. The names of places, the names of people with which
-and whom she had been associated within that interval were completely
-blotted out. She did not doubt the base story which Leonard had
-related. Had she and Gerald been legally married he would have placed
-in her hands the certificate which proved her a lawful wife. The fatal
-omission proved Leonard's story to be true. Not a word about their
-marriage had ever passed between Gerald and herself during their
-honeymoon. He, with his careless easy nature, living with Emilia a
-life of sweetest happiness, left everything to the future; he had
-thought it wisest, too, to allow a long time to elapse before reviving
-memories which had brought Emilia so much sorrow; she would regain her
-full strength, she would be better able to think of the past. This was
-not known to Emilia; she could only decide upon her future action by
-what was within her cognizance.
-
-She felt no bitterness toward Gerald. He had, no doubt, acted for the
-best, and had imposed upon her by a mock ceremony of marriage, in
-order that she might be restored to health and reason. Would it have
-been better that she had died? No. Her child would soon be in her
-arms, bringing with it hope, and light, and peace perhaps. But the
-child must not open her eyes among those who knew her unhappy mother's
-story. The duty to the unborn which Emilia had to perform must be
-performed elsewhere. Gerald's brother was right in advising her to
-choose some other country than England in which to reside. But she had
-to think of his offer to provide for her.
-
-The moment she set her mind upon the subject she indignantly rejected
-the offer. It was too late to remedy the errors of the past into which
-she had been unwittingly led, but there should be no bridge between
-the past and the future. Even had she been willing to entertain the
-offer, it had been made in terms so insulting that no woman of decency
-could have accepted it without covering herself with shame. "You shall
-not have the power to say that you have been first betrayed and then
-cast forth penniless." The provision, then, assumed the shape of a
-bribe. And it was to be paid so long as she led a respectable life--a
-tacit admission that hitherto her life had been disreputable within
-her own knowledge. No, she would reject the offer, and would, with the
-labor of her own hands, support herself and child.
-
-At this point of her musings the landlord of the inn unceremoniously
-entered the room.
-
-"I wish you to leave my house to-day," he said.
-
-She smiled sadly. This was the second time in her young life that she
-had been undeservedly thrust forth upon the world. But she ventured a
-gentle remonstrance.
-
-"Give me till to-morrow," she pleaded, "and I will go. It is so
-sudden, and I am not prepared."
-
-"I have nothing to do with that," he said roughly. "You must go
-to-day."
-
-"If it must be," she said, resignedly, "I must submit. Will you kindly
-ask Mr. Leonard Paget to come to me?"
-
-Needless to say that this cruel move had been prompted by the villain
-with whom Emilia was presently once more face to face.
-
-"Have you reflected upon my offer?" he asked.
-
-"Yes," she replied. "I cannot accept it."
-
-He shrugged his shoulders, but not exactly at his ease. Did the
-rejection mean that she intended to fight for her rights? This might
-prove awkward. Her next words reassured him and made him jubilant
-again.
-
-"I prefer to depend only upon myself, and to get my own living."
-
-"How? Where?"
-
-"I am well educated, and may be fortunate enough to obtain a situation
-as governess in a family or school where a knowledge of English is
-desirable. I thank you for your advice as to my future place of
-residence, and I shall remain abroad. I have no friends in
-England--nor, indeed, anywhere," she added, with a pitiful sigh, "and
-I never wish to see it again."
-
-"The landlord informs me," said Leonard, "that he has given you notice
-to leave the inn immediately."
-
-"He has been here with the same unkind order. Of course I must go."
-
-"Of course: He has a right to send people away of whom he does not
-approve. What will you do? No one else in the village will give you
-shelter. I have made myself responsible for the expenses you have
-incurred since my dear brother's death."
-
-"That is hardly just," said Emilia, "as I have no claim upon you; but
-my purse is empty. I must go away before night." She paused a moment
-or two before she resumed. "Things have been removed from my room
-during my illness which I might sell, and thus be enabled to take my
-departure. I am not strong enough to go away on foot."
-
-"Everything belonged to my brother."
-
-"I do not dispute that."
-
-"Would it not be sensible on your part to reconsider your
-determination. Accept the offer I have made to you."
-
-"I cannot." Her eyes fell upon the rings on her finger--the wedding
-ring which Gerald had placed there, and the diamond ring which he had
-given her. With a lover's extravagance he had purchased one of
-considerable value. Leonard knew the price he had paid for it, one
-hundred guineas. "These," said Emilia, pathetically, "are my own."
-
-"I lay no claim to them," said Leonard, ungraciously.
-
-"But they are really my own?"
-
-"Consider them so."
-
-She removed the diamond ring from her finger. "Is there any person in
-the village who will purchase this of me?"
-
-"No one rich enough. I will do so, if you wish."
-
-"I humbly thank you. Give me what you like for it."
-
-"I will give you a thousand francs," said Leonard, with a sudden fit
-of generosity.
-
-"But I do not want more than it is worth," said Emilia, with a joyful
-flush. A thousand francs! It meant a safe escape from a place where
-she was avoided; it meant sufficient to pay for a few weeks' board and
-lodging.
-
-"We will say it is worth that."
-
-"You are most kind," said Emilia, giving him the ring. "And I can pay
-what I owe the landlord."
-
-"You cannot do that out of a thousand francs. Try and be a little
-sensible, and say nothing more about it. After all, it was Gerald who
-brought you here, and the responsibility, which was his, is now mine.
-Here is the money. You will give me a receipt for it? Otherwise I
-should not be able to account for my possession of a ring you have
-always worn upon your finger."
-
-"Kindly write out the receipt," said Emilia, "and I will sign it."
-
-Leonard wrote the receipt, which Emilia signed.
-
-"This will not do," he said. "You have signed it in a name which does
-not belong to you."
-
-She had signed "Emilia Paget." She shuddered at Leonard's remark.
-
-"How else should I sign it?"
-
-"In the name which is your own," said Leonard, tearing up the paper,
-and writing another; "Emilia Braham."
-
-He placed the fresh receipt before her, and with trembling fingers she
-affixed the name, "Emilia Braham." Leonard exulted. Here was a proof
-which he had not thought of obtaining. Being dated, it might serve as
-an open admission that Emilia, living with his brother, was quite
-aware that she was not his wife. The confession and the renunciation
-were of her own doing.
-
-"Can I do anything more for you?" he asked.
-
-"Yes. Get me a carriage, and accompany me out of the village. I need
-protection from insult."
-
-"You shall not be insulted. I promise it. How long will you be getting
-ready?"
-
-"I shall be ready in less than an hour."
-
-Her preparations for departure helped to divert her mind from the
-grief which oppressed it. Into one trunk she packed what belonged to
-her. She would have liked to take the desk, inlaid with silver, of
-Indian manufacture, which she had regarded as her own, but it had been
-removed with other articles which she believed were hers. She made no
-complaint; even to herself she did not repine; she submitted to
-everything, her only wish being to find herself in a place where she
-was unknown. All was ready when Leonard came to tell her that the
-carriage was waiting.
-
-"Where do you wish to go?" he asked.
-
-"It does not matter," she replied, "so long as I am among strangers."
-
-He named a town at a distance of eighteen or twenty miles, and she
-said it would do as well as any other. Soon they were at the door of
-the inn, about which were assembled the usual idlers. The carriage
-which Leonard had procured was a closed one, and he assisted Emilia
-into it, saying that he would sit by the driver. She appreciated the
-act, and believed it proceeded from thoughtfulness; it was her desire
-to be alone with her thoughts.
-
-The driver was a long time starting; he fidgeted with his horses, with
-his reins, with the harness, and then he fortified himself with half a
-bottle of red wine. No one approached Emilia while he was thus
-employed; no one breathed "farewell," or gave her a kind look. But
-when at length the driver took his seat on the box, with Leonard
-beside him, and was gathering up his ragged reins, the landlord's
-daughter passed the open window of the carriage, and furtively threw
-something in. It fell into Emilia's lap, and she, with eyes suddenly
-overflowing, and lips convulsed with emotion, covered it with her
-handkerchief, lest it should be taken from her. Then with a shout, the
-driver set his horses in motion, and they commenced their journey.
-
-Emilia lifted her handkerchief. In her lap lay a little bunch of
-flowers, tied together with string, attached to which was a piece of
-paper, and written upon the paper the words, "From his grave." She
-pressed the flowers to her breast, to her lips, and murmured a prayer
-of thankfulness. The sense of the deep and irreparable wrong which
-Gerald had inflicted upon her passed away, and she thought of him only
-as one to whom she had given her heart and the full measure of her
-love. He was her child's father; better to think of him with love and
-kindness, which would soften her heart, than with harshness and
-bitterness, which would harden it. It would help to smooth the roads
-of the future she was to pass in the loving companionship of her
-child. "Only you and I alone, darling," she murmured; "only you and
-I!"
-
-How kind of the young girl to send her away with this token of pity
-and sympathy. "Heaven bless her for it!" thought Emilia. "Heaven
-brighten her life, and save her from misery!" Had Emilia possessed a
-nature which would have hardened under such sufferings as she was
-enduring, the young girl's simple offering would have humanized and
-softened it. No wonder, then, that with a nature as sweet as ever
-woman was blessed with, she looked upon the flowers from Gerald's
-grave as an angel's gift, sent to her as a divine solace and
-strengthener. "I _will_ be strong," she thought. "A duty of love is
-mine to perform, and I will perform it in humbleness and gratitude."
-
-From time to time Leonard came to the door of the carriage and asked
-if he could do anything for her. She gently declined his offers of
-refreshment, and said she needed nothing. He did not press his
-attentions upon her, and she gave him credit for a kindness of heart
-to which he had no claim.
-
-It was ten o'clock at night when they reached the town to which
-Leonard was conveying her. The carriage drew up at the door of at
-hotel of some pretension, and there Leonard had no difficulty in
-obtaining accommodation for Emilia. He told her he did not intend to
-pass the night at the hotel, and she was grateful to him.
-
-"To-morrow I shall return," he said. "Shall I say good-by to you now
-or then?"
-
-"Now," she replied.
-
-"Very well. Good-by." He hesitated a moment, and then offered her his
-hand.
-
-She hesitated, also, before she accepted it. From him she had received
-information of the blow which had dishonored her; could she touch his
-hand in friendship? No, not in friendship, but why should she be
-sullen and churlish? He had done her no direct wrong, he had even
-shown her consideration and kindness. To refuse his hand would be a
-bad commencement of the new life. She held out hers, and he took it in
-his cool palm.
-
-"You are still resolved not to accept my offer?" he asked.
-
-"I am resolved."
-
-"I will not endeavor to prevail upon you, for I see your mind is made
-up."
-
-"It is. You cannot turn me."
-
-He gazed at her in surprise. There was a firmness in her, voice, a new
-note he had not heard before.
-
-"Is it your intention," he asked, "to come back to England?"
-
-"I shall never set foot in England again," she said.
-
-"Neither from that determination can anything turn me."
-
-"It is a wise resolve. I promise to keep your secret." She turned from
-him, saying in a low tone, "I shall be grateful if you never speak of
-me."
-
-"I promise not to do so. And you on your part should never mention my
-name or my dear brother's."
-
-"I will never do so. He is dead to me. You will be, when you pass out
-of this room."
-
-"I should tell you," he said, lingering still a moment, "that I have
-entered your name in the hotel book as Emilia Braham."
-
-"I should have done so myself. It is the name I shall bear for the
-future."
-
-"Being your right one. Well, good-by."
-
-"Good-by," she said.
-
-So they parted, to meet again--when?
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVII.
-
-A GOOD WOMAN.
-
-
-As briefly as possible must now be sketched the story of Emilia's life
-during the next eighteen years. To her resolution not to return to
-England she remained firm during that period. Two days after Leonard
-left her she quitted the town to which he had brought her, and twelve
-months afterward she found herself settled in Geneva. It was her good
-fortune to meet an elderly lady who required a companion. The name of
-this lady was Madame Lambert, and she was attracted by the gentleness
-of Emilia's manner. These two ladies happened to be staying at the
-same hotel for a few days, and Emilia was enabled to render Madame
-Lambert some slight service. Like Emilia, the elder lady was
-travelling alone, and one evening Madame Lambert was seized with a
-sudden faintness at the _table d'hôte_. Emilia, who was sitting next
-to her, assisted her to her room, and remained with her during the
-night, sharing her bed by invitation. In her situation Emilia was
-compelled to register her name as Mrs. Braham, and Madame Lambert,
-questioning her, was told by Emilia that she was a widow. Emilia did
-not attempt to justify herself to her conscience; she knew that the
-duplicity was necessary for the credit of her unborn child.
-
-"Are you quite alone?" asked Madame Lambert.
-
-"Yes," replied Emilia. "My husband died poor, and left me very little.
-My intention is to seek a situation as governess."
-
-"In England?"
-
-"No, here in Switzerland. I shall be happier here. I have no friends
-in England, and my knowledge of the English language will perhaps
-enable me to obtain a situation more easily here than there."
-
-"You will soon," said Madame Lambert, in a tone of kindly
-significance, "be compelled to rest a while. For a little time at
-least you will not be able to fill a situation as governess."
-
-Emilia blushed and sighed. "I have thought of that," she said, "with
-fear and trembling."
-
-"Because you are poor?" questioned Madame Lambert, speaking still with
-the utmost kindness.
-
-"Yes," said Emilia, softly. Frankness was best under the
-circumstances.
-
-"My dear," said Madame Lambert, "I am sure you are a lady."
-
-"My father was a gentleman," said Emilia. "He fell into misfortune,
-and when he died I was penniless."
-
-"And you married a penniless gentleman. Ah, how imprudent is youth!
-But I have been young myself, and have loved and lost. My dear,
-neither am I rich, but I have a life income which is sufficient. It
-dies with me, I regret to say. I have a reason for telling you this.
-Like yourself, I am alone in the world. I was born in Geneva, and when
-a course of travel, which my doctor recommended for my health, is
-over, shall return there to live. Will you travel with me as my friend
-and companion? I can offer you very little in the shape of salary, but
-it will be enough to provide you with clothes, and perhaps a little
-more. Then you will have a lady with you when your baby is born. What
-do you say?"
-
-"What can I say," replied Emilia, in a voice of gratitude that
-completed the conquest she had began, "but thank you from my inmost
-heart for your kind offer? I can scarcely believe it real."
-
-"It is real, my dear. Heaven is very good, and sends us friends when
-we least expect them. I am sure we shall get along very well together.
-You accept, then?"
-
-"I accept with gratitude." She raised the hand of the kind lady to her
-lips, and her tears bedewed it. "Yes, God is very good to me. I will
-prove worthy of your kindness. You shall never repent it."
-
-"If thought otherwise I should not press it upon you, my dear. You
-will really be rendering me a greater service than it is in my power
-to render to you. It is miserable to travel alone, without a kindred
-soul to talk to and confide in. So it is settled. We shall be true
-friends."
-
-From that day Madame Lambert and Emilia travelled together, not as
-mistress and companion, but as friends, until the time arrived when
-Madame Lambert saw that it was imperative that Emilia should remain
-for a few weeks quiet and free from the fatigues of a wandering life.
-Thus faith and goodness were rewarded.
-
-In a picturesque and retired village Emilia's baby, a girl, was born,
-and baptized in the name of Constance, Madame Lambert's christian
-name. Sweet and profound was the happiness with which the young
-mother's heart was filled when she held her baby to her breast. A
-sacred joy was hers, in which she found a holy consolation for the
-troubles through which she had passed. Madame Lambert was delighted,
-and drew from the mother and child a newborn pleasure. She never tired
-of showing them kindness; had they been of her own blood she could
-scarcely have been more considerate and thoughtful. She called
-Constance "our child," and was as nervous over the little one's trials
-as Emilia herself. In such sympathetic companionship, and with such a
-sweet treasure as she now possessed, Emilia could only be happy. She
-never dwelt with sorrow upon the past. With rare wisdom she destroyed
-the bridge behind her, and buried the memories which had threatened to
-utterly wreck and ruin her life. Constance was a child of love, not of
-shame. Emilia's pure soul exonerated her from self-reproach, and shame
-could never be her portion now that there was no link, except the
-loving link of a baby's hands, between the past and the future.
-Wherever she turned she met looks of kindness; no longer was she
-avoided and repulsed. The world once more was sweet, and bright, and
-beautiful, and when she prayed to our Father in Heaven it was in the
-happy consciousness that He knew her to be a pure and innocent woman.
-
-"Baby, baby, baby!" she whispered to the child in her "You have
-restored me to life, to joy, to happiness. Oh, my baby, my baby! Can I
-ever be sufficiently grateful to you? Dear Lord in Heaven, give me
-strength and wisdom to guide her aright, to keep her from pitfalls, to
-see her grow in purity and innocence to a happy womanhood! Do not take
-her from me. Let her remain with me as a shield and protector. Through
-her I see goodness and light. Oh, my angel, my angel!"
-
-She wiped her happy tears away, and sang and crooned and worshipped as
-only a good mother can. Ah, the little fingers, the childish prattle,
-the pattering of little feet, what would the world be without them?
-Religion would be dead, and faith a mockery not to be indulged in
-without a sneering devil creeping close to lay its icy hands upon
-hearts in which sweet thoughts are harbored. Flowers of the human
-garden, let us be humbly grateful for the light they shed upon the
-dark spaces which at one time or other every mortal has to tread. In
-the midst of the gloom which surrounds us shines a star illumining a
-fair face and a head with flowing curls. In the midst of the stillness
-by which we are encompassed steals a musical voice, with its divine
-melody of childish laughter. What is that light in the distance? A
-bright cloud shining on a little bed, by the side of which kneels a
-small form clad in white. The pretty hands are clasped, and from the
-lovely lips issue the words, "Our Father which art in Heaven, hallowed
-be Thy name!"
-
-It was impossible that Emilia could forget Gerald, but her thoughts of
-him were ever gentle and kind and forgiving. "You see our child, dear
-Gerald"--thus ran her thoughts--"watch over her. I forgive you for the
-wrong you committed. Do not trouble and sorrow over it. It is done and
-gone, and only sweetness remains. You have given me a flower which
-makes my heart a garden of love. God bless you, dear Gerald!" So from
-the bitterest woe in which a human being could be plunged uprose a
-heavenly light.
-
-"We must not spoil our child," said Madame Lambert.
-
-"We cannot spoil her," said Emilia. "Is she not beautiful?"
-
-"The loveliest baby that ever drew breath, my dear. You happy woman!
-If I were as young as you are I should be jealous of you."
-
-The good lady was amazed at the new beauty which now dwelt in Emilia's
-face. The young mother was transfigured. A holy radiance shed its
-light upon her. Madame Lambert found herself presently worshipping the
-mother almost as much as she worshipped the child.
-
-"If you were my own daughter, my dear," she said, "I could not love
-you more."
-
-"You are the best woman in the world," responded Emilia. "Heaven
-guided my feet when it led me to you."
-
-"Now it is time," said Madame Lambert, "to think of returning to
-Geneva. There is our baby's education to be attended to."
-
-"Yes," said Emilia, gravely. "She must be taught everything that is
-good."
-
-And baby was only four months old! But mothers let their thoughts run
-ahead.
-
-They did not, however, return at once to Madame Lambert's home. They
-lingered for two or three months in the valleys and mountains, and
-gathered garlands and posies for their child, which they pressed and
-preserved as though they were jewels of inestimable value. And,
-indeed, there are no jewels to compare with memories so sweet and
-pure. At length the happy rambles were over, and they were in Geneva.
-
-"Welcome home," said Madame Lambert.
-
-Her apartments, in a good position in the city, consisted of five
-rooms and a kitchen. Two of these rooms Madame Lambert gave to Emilia,
-one a sitting-room, the other a bedroom for her and the baby. During
-Madame Lambert's absence the apartments had been taken care of by an
-old servant, who acted as cook and general domestic, to whom Madame
-Lambert had sent certain written instructions. When Madame Lambert
-said to Emilia, "Welcome, home," she conducted Emilia to the rooms set
-apart for her, and the young mother's eyes overflowed as they fell
-upon the flowers which welcomed her and at the other evidences of a
-loving friendship which the thoughtfulness of Madame Lambert had
-provided.
-
-"How good you are to me!" she murmured.
-
-"We are going to be very happy here," said Madame Lambert.
-
-"I should be undeserving, indeed," said Emilia, kissing her kind
-friend and putting the baby into her arms, "if I were not happy with
-you."
-
-Madame Lambert was well known in Geneva, and had many friends there,
-to all of whom she introduced Emilia. It was through these
-introductions that Emilia was enabled to obtain employment as a
-governess, which occupied her four or five hours a day, and her
-sweetness and gentleness soon made her loved by all who knew her. In
-this way passed five happy years, and then a calamity occurred. Madame
-Lambert fell ill, and the doctors said that she could not recover.
-When this verdict was imparted to Madame Lambert, she received it with
-resignation.
-
-"I have only one regret, my dear," she said to Emilia, "that I must
-say farewell to you and our child. But my spirit will be with you
-always."
-
-"Dear friend, dear friend!" murmured Emilia.
-
-"It's a great comfort to me to know," said the dying woman, "that you
-are well established here, and can get a living. You are so much loved
-that I have no fears of your future. I am truly sorry that I cannot
-leave you and our Constance a fortune. There is a little money, very
-little, but it will be useful; and in my will I have left the
-furniture of our home to you. Then I have been clever enough to pay
-the rent in advance for the next three years, so that you will be able
-to put by a little more. God bless you, my dear; you have brightened
-the last years of an old woman's life."
-
-In a voice choked with emotion Emilia thanked and blessed the good
-lady, who smiled and fondled her hand. She saw little Constance
-frequently, but she would not allow the child to be saddened by
-keeping her too long in the room of a dying woman.
-
-"Childhood should be bright," she said. "I want our child to remember
-me in my cheerful moods."
-
-"She will remember and pray for you all her life," sobbed Emilia, "as
-I shall, dearest and best of friends."
-
-The end came a little after midnight.
-
-"Do you think," she whispered, with a pause between each word, "that
-you could let me kiss our dear child without awaking her?"
-
-"I will bring her," said Emilia.
-
-"Kiss me first, dear," said the dying lady.
-
-Emilia kissed her, and lay a few moments with her face nestling to
-that of her friend. Then she went and brought the child in her arms.
-Constance was asleep. Emilia had lifted her very lightly from her bed,
-and now she laid her by Madame Lambert's side, and covered her with a
-warm shawl. The child's fragrant breath flowed upon the dying lady's
-face.
-
-"Our little angel is the sweetest flower the world contains," murmured
-Madame Lambert. "Good-by, sweet one. Heaven guard and protect you!"
-
-She closed her eyes, and did not open them again. And so the good soul
-passed away, with the child's breath fanning her face.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXVIII.
-
-CONSTANCE AND JULIAN.
-
-
-The tide in Emilia's affairs which had led her to Geneva proved to be
-most auspicious and fortunate. Her home with Madame Lambert was happy
-and peaceful, and when that good friend had passed away there was no
-break in the even tenor of her days. The connections she had formed
-were lasting and endurable, and she was never without pupils. One
-family recommended her to another, and she was constantly employed,
-meeting respect everywhere. Her earnings were not large, but they were
-sufficient for her modest wants. Blessed with the companionship of a
-child whose loveliness and sweet disposition won the hearts of all who
-came into association with her, the life led by Emilia and her
-daughter may be likened to a peaceful lake nestling in a valley beyond
-the reach of storm and tempest. The love Emilia bore for Constance was
-deep and profound, and represented for the devoted mother the light
-and joy of the world. So years passed until Constance was seventeen.
-
-All these years Emilia had heard no news from England, and had not
-seen a face she had known in her youth. The past was buried in a grave
-destined, as she believed, never to be disturbed, and there was not a
-cloud in the horizon to warn her of a coming storm. It was the
-happiest time of her life.
-
-Constance had many young friends, and among them, as was
-natural--being a beautiful and accomplished girl, with winning and
-amiable manners--an unreasonable number of young gentlemen who adored
-her. Of these the favored one was Julian Bordier.
-
-M. Bordier, his father, was the head of an important watch
-manufactory, a concern the reputation of which was world wide.
-The name of Bordier was famous; his sign-manual engraved on the
-back-plate of a watch was a guarantee of excellence. Consequently the
-Bordiers--father, mother, son, and two daughters--were rich.
-
-Social grades are not so unfairly marked in Geneva as in other cities.
-To have been well introduced, to be well educated, to live a reputable
-life, to have good manners, form the open sesame to polite society.
-Emilia and her daughter supplied all these requirements, and their
-circle of acquaintance was large and reputable. It was through the
-young people that Emilia was introduced to the house of the Bordiers,
-and once admitted she was always welcomed with cordiality. In all
-respects Julian Bordier was a gentleman and a man of refined
-instincts; unhappily his sight was failing him, and the Genevese
-specialists seemed to be powerless in their efforts to arrest the
-affliction of blindness which threatened him. The effect which this
-had upon the love which grew between Constance and Julian was to
-instil into her feelings for him a sentiment of divine pity. Before
-they were absolutely aware of it their hearts were engaged.
-
-Emilia watched the progress of this mutual affection with solicitous
-eyes, but she did not speak of it to her daughter. It was for
-Constance to introduce the subject, and that she had not done so was a
-proof that there had been no love-making between the young people.
-Constance believed her secret was not known, but the insight of a
-mother's love is keen and strong, and Emilia knew it almost before her
-daughter. The knowledge disquieted her. They were poor, the Bordiers
-were rich. But it was not in her power to guide the current; she must
-wait and hope for the best.
-
-One night Emilia and Constance came home later than usual. They had
-been spending a musical evening at the Bordiers' house, and Emilia had
-noticed for the first time that Julian's attentions to her child were
-more than ordinarily marked. Now and again she looked apprehensively
-at M. Bordier, who was sitting in his usual corner, and seemed to be
-taking notice of his son's attentions to Constance; the father's face
-was grave and observant, but there was no trace of disapproval on it.
-This was comforting, but it did not remove Emilia's apprehensions. It
-was a fine night, and Julian walked home with them. It needed not a
-loving mother's insight to detect the newborn tenderness of Julian's
-manner when he bade Constance good-night and held her hand in his.
-
-Mother and daughter derived delight from attending upon each other,
-but on this night Emilia dispensed with Constance's services. She
-brushed her own hair quickly, and then pressed Constance gently into a
-chair, and busied herself over the abundant tresses of her beloved
-child. With what loving care did she comb out the flowing locks, her
-heart beating with infinite love for this sweet and only treasure of
-her life! Then she coaxed Constance into bed, and knelt by the bedside
-and prayed.
-
-"Mamma!"
-
-Emilia rose from her knees, and bent her face down to Constance.
-
-"Yes, dear child."
-
-"I am almost afraid to speak, mamma."
-
-"Is it about Julian Bordier, dear?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Tell me, my darling."
-
-"You will not be angry, mamma?"
-
-"Angry, darling--with you!"
-
-"He is coming to speak to you to-morrow, mamma."
-
-"He loves you, Constance."
-
-"Yes, mamma."
-
-"And you love him."
-
-The young girl hid her face on her mother's neck.
-
-"You are not sorry, mamma, are you?"
-
-"I think only of your happiness, darling. I have no other object in
-life."
-
-"Oh, mamma, you are the sweetest, dearest mother in the world. It is
-ungrateful of me; but, mamma, I cannot help it."
-
-"I know, I know, my darling. What does his father say?"
-
-"He dues not know--no one knows. Are you not surprised, mamma?"
-
-"I think I have seen it for some time past, my sweet."
-
-"And you never mentioned it, mamma--never even whispered it?"
-
-"It was for you to speak first, Constance, and I waited."
-
-"I can scarcely believe it. Oh, mamma, mamma, I love him, I love him!"
-
-"Dear child! When does he intend to speak to his father?"
-
-"After he has seen you. He did intend to speak to both of you first
-before he said a word to me, but somehow, mamma--I don't know really
-how it happened, nor does he--Mamma, you are crying!"
-
-"I cannot help it, dear. You are my only one, my only one----"
-
-"But, mamma, we shall still be together. Julian says so. We shall
-never, never be separated."
-
-Emilia smiled sadly. "I have always liked Julian, dear, and if all
-should turn out well I am sure he will make you happy."
-
-"He loves you dearly, mamma. I shall be glad when to-morrow is over."
-
-"It will soon be over, dear child. Time passes quickly. Now go to
-sleep, my dear, dear child!"
-
-They kissed and embraced again and again, and then Constance's head
-sank upon the pillow, and she fell asleep with her mother's arm
-encircling her neck. Emilia lay awake for hours. Her daughter's
-confession had revived memories of the past, and she could not banish
-forebodings. Of all the young men whom she knew, Julian Burdier was
-the one she would have chosen for Constance, but she dreaded the
-coming meeting with his father. She could not explain her fears, but
-she was haunted by threatening shadows. Daylight was dawning when she
-fell asleep, and she rose unrefreshed from her bed. Constance,
-dressed, was sitting by her side when she awoke. Never had she seen
-her daughter look so beautiful; love made her radiant with angelic
-loveliness.
-
-"I want you to look very, very bright, mamma," said Constance. "I will
-help you dress."
-
-Engrossed in her own happy dreams she did not notice the tired
-expression on her mother's face, which, after a little while, wore
-away beneath the influence of Constance's gentle ministrations.
-
-"Julian will be here early, mamma," she said, when breakfast was over.
-"I don't know what to do with myself. Shall I go out, or remain at
-home? Hark! Yes; that is his step?"
-
-"Go to your bedroom, darling," said Emilia, with fond kisses, "and
-wait till I call you."
-
-Constance obeyed, and Emilia admitted the young man, who entered the
-room with flowers for Constance and her mother. She motioned him to a
-seat; she was palpitating with emotion, but she succeeded in
-preserving an apparently calm demeanor.
-
-"You expected me," he said, after she had accepted the flowers and
-laid them aside.
-
-"Constance told me you would come," said Emilia, gravely.
-
-"Is she well?"
-
-"Quite well."
-
-Then there was an awkward pause, but soon the young man took heart of
-grace, and in modest, manly fashion laid his petition before Emilia.
-
-"I cannot hope to be worthy of her," he said; "no man could be, but I
-can promise sincerely to do all in my power to make her happy. I love
-her very dearly. What can I say more? You will not refuse me?"
-
-"If it depended upon me," said Emilia, speaking very slowly, "I should
-be contented to place my daughter's happiness in your keeping, for I
-believe you to be worthy of her."
-
-"How can I thank you?" said Julian, impetuously. "It does depend upon
-you. Then all is settled. May I see Constance?"
-
-She gently shook her head. "Not yet. I could have wished you had
-consulted me before you said anything to Constance. I am not blaming
-you--I know there are feelings it is difficult to keep in check, but I
-think it would have been better if you had confided in me first. I
-could then have advised you."
-
-"To do what? You have no objection to entrusting me with her; and
-indeed, indeed, your trust shall not be misplaced. Perhaps you are
-right, but it can make no difference now that I know you approve."
-
-"There is one," said Emilia, steadily, "to whom you should have spoken
-even before you addressed me or Constance."
-
-"My father?"
-
-"Yes, your father."
-
-"Again, I daresay you are right. But I am sure of my father. He loves
-me, and will not thwart me----"
-
-Emilia held up her hand. "Have you considered the difference in our
-position?"
-
-"No--except that I have always felt that Constance is far above me, if
-that is what you mean."
-
-"It is not what I mean. Parents are compelled to view such matters in
-a different light. I can give Constance no dowry."
-
-"I want none. I want her."
-
-"And with your father's approval, you shall have my consent. It is my
-duty to say this to you, and as you have consulted me first I should
-wish him to know that I have so expressed myself, and that my answer
-is in his hands."
-
-"Very well, I will go to him at once. There is not the least doubt of
-his answer, and I have yours already."
-
-"No," interrupted Emilia, firmly, but with a tender inclining toward
-the young man, "you have not mine already. I cannot give it to you
-definitely until I have seen or heard from your father."
-
-"How precise you are," said Julian, in a gay tone; "but my dear
-Constance's mother cannot be wrong in anything she does." He raised
-her hand to his lips and kissed it. "You will not turn me away without
-allowing me to see her?"
-
-"I will not turn you away at all, but I cannot sanction anything more
-than kind friendship between you and my child till your father has
-spoken. Julian, do you not see that I am striving to perform a duty
-which I consider right?"
-
-"Of course I do, and I am greatly to be blamed for worrying you. But
-let me see her for one moment. It is only to say good-morning and to
-shake hands. You would not have refused me yesterday."
-
-"Nor will I now. I rely upon your honor, Julian."
-
-"You may, implicitly."
-
-She called her daughter, and turned from them while they spoke. They
-exchanged only a few words, but Constance's hand remained in Julian's
-and that was happiness enough for the present. Then Julian called out
-to Emilia:
-
-"Good-morning. I shall be here again very soon."
-
-She accompanied him to the door, and sent him away with a bright
-smile, but there was a fear at her heart which she could not have
-defined had she endeavored to set it clearly before her.
-
-An hour afterward M. Bordier was announced.
-
-"Constance," said Emilia, "I think you had best take a walk while I
-speak to Julian's father."
-
-Constance kissed her mother in silence, and was leaving the room as M.
-Bordier entered it.
-
-"Are you going for a walk?" he asked, holding out his hand.
-
-His voice and manner were so affectionate that her heart was filled
-with joy. Emilia's heart also throbbed with hope.
-
-"Yes, sir," replied Constance, raising her eyes timidly to his face.
-
-"It is a bright morning, my dear," he said. "I am glad for your sake
-and for Julian's."
-
-She wiped away the happy tears as she descended the stairs and out
-into the sunshine.
-
-"I thought I would lose no time," said M. Bordier to Emilia, "although
-really it seemed as if I were not master of my own movements. Julian
-was so impatient that he almost thrust me from the house. We will not
-beat about the bush, my dear madam. Julian is my only son, and that
-which affects his happiness affects me almost as nearly."
-
-"Then you have no objection to the engagement?" said Emilia, eagerly.
-
-"None. Julian has related to me all that passed between you and him,
-and said you chided him for not coming to me first."
-
-"I considered it the right course."
-
-"Perhaps, but young people in love are impetuous, and do not reflect.
-We ourselves were young, and can recall the time when we were in their
-position." A shiver passed through Emilia at this allusion. "You made
-some reference to Julian about the difference in our circumstances. I
-intend to speak very plainly, you see, because I want the ground
-cleared once and for all, for all our sakes. Well, there is a
-difference, I admit, but it is not to be taken into account. You can
-give your daughter no dowry. It is not needed; I am rich enough to
-make the future easy for them. My son is a gentleman, your daughter is
-a lady. I approve of her, and I shall be proud to receive her into my
-family." Emilia gazed at him with swimming eyes; the fear at her heart
-was fading away. "She is a great favorite in our home, and we are all
-very fond of her. I am glad that the matter has come to an issue
-before Julian leaves Geneva----"
-
-"Is he going away, then?" asked Emilia, startled at the news.
-
-"For a short time only, I hope, and I shall go with him. His failing
-sight has caused us great anxiety, and the doctors here can do nothing
-for him. We intend to go to Paris, to consult an eminent specialist,
-and I trust he will come home quite cured. So that it is as well he
-has spoken to Constance. Indeed I suspect his projected departure
-caused him to open his heart to her earlier than he intended. Some
-persons are opposed to early marriages; I am not; and to judge from
-your looks you must be of my opinion. You married young?"
-
-"Yes," replied Emilia, faintly. Her fears revived; her undefined
-apprehension of evil was beginning to take shape.
-
-"Your name Braham, might belong to any nationality. Was your husband
-French?"
-
-"He was English." Her throat was dry; she could scarcely articulate
-her words. M. Bordier looked at her in concern. "You are not well."
-
-"A sudden faintness, that is all," said Emilia, in a firmer tone. She
-must not give way; her daughter's happiness was at stake. "It has
-passed off now."
-
-"English? And you are English also?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"I remember when the good Madame Lambert brought you here, that there
-was some curiosity felt as to your nationality, but Madame Lambert
-silenced it by saying that you would prefer not to refer to the past.
-That was woman's talk, and it soon ceased. Your daughter bears Madame
-Lambert's name, Constance."
-
-"Madame Lambert wished it."
-
-"Were you and she related--excuse my interminable questions, but now
-that we are about to become closely connected we should know more of
-each other's antecedents."
-
-"We were not related."
-
-"Ah, well. While I am away I may run over to England. I should not be
-sorry for the opportunity of calling upon your friends there."
-
-"I have no friends there."
-
-"Some relatives surely."
-
-"None."
-
-"Well, your late husband's relatives."
-
-"M. Bordier," said Emilia, summoning all her courage to her aid,
-"there are in the world persons whose past is so fraught with unhappy
-memories that it is painful to revive them. Such has been my past, and
-the simple references you have made have opened wounds I hoped were
-healed. Pray question me no more."
-
-"I will not," said M. Bordier, kindly, but also with a certain gravity
-which impressed itself strongly upon Emilia, "we will say nothing more
-about it at present, and I ask your pardon for causing you pain. But
-still, when the formal preliminaries to the marriage between Constance
-and Julian are prepared--which cannot be done until Julian and I
-return to Geneva--some necessary information of your past will have,
-of course, to be given to make the contract legal and binding. Until
-then we will let the matter drop. And now allow me to assure you that
-I give my consent to the engagement with satisfaction and pleasure.
-Julian's mother and I have often discussed the future of our children,
-and shall be quite satisfied if they marry into families of
-respectable character. That is all we ask, and all we consider we have
-a right to demand. As to worldly prospects, we will make that our
-affair, being, I am thankful to say, able to provide for our children
-and the mates they may choose."
-
-He held out his hand to Emilia, and with old-fashioned courtesy kissed
-her, saying, "You and your daughter will make our house your home
-while Julian and I are absent."
-
-"How long do you expect to be away?" asked Emilia.
-
-"It depends upon what the specialists say of Julian's sight. But under
-any circumstances we shall be absent for at least three months, I
-expect. Of course the young people will correspond. The first part of
-their courtship will have to be done by correspondence."
-
-Soon after M. Bordier's departure Constance returned, and was made
-happy by the account of the interview. Emilia said nothing of M.
-Bordier's references to the past, a theme which had only been dropped
-to be taken up again when M. Bordier and Julian came back to Geneva.
-The evil day was postponed, but Emilia would not darken the joy of the
-lovers by speaking of it, or by hinting at her fast-growing fears of
-what the final issue would be. M. Bordier had made it clear to her
-that it was absolutely necessary that those who formed matrimonial
-connections with his children must be persons of respectable
-character. What was she? What was her darling Constance? Unknown to
-all in Geneva, where they were both respected and loved, they bore the
-maiden name of the mother. Let this fact be revealed, let the story of
-her life be made public, and they would be irretrievably disgraced,
-their position lost, their happiness blasted. Julian remained in
-Geneva two days after Emilia's interview with M. Bordier, and now that
-there was no restraint upon the relations between the young lovers,
-Emilia recognized how irrevocably Constance's happiness was linked
-with Julian. Was it to be left to her, the fond, the suffering mother,
-to wreck the future of the child she adored? Was it fated that she
-should be compelled to say to Constance, "You cannot wed the man you
-love. He is a gentleman, with an unstained record. You are a child of
-shame, and are not fit to associate with respectable people. Take your
-rightful place in the world--in the gutters--and look at me and know
-that I have put you there." Yes, this, in effect, was the judgment she
-would have to pronounce. The agony she endured during those two happy
-days of courtship is indescribable; but she schooled herself to some
-semblance of outward composure, and successfully parried the
-solicitous inquiries of those by whom she was surrounded. As to what
-was to be done, she would not, she could not think of it till Julian
-and his father were gone. They were to be away at least three months;
-within that time much might be accomplished--she did not know what or
-how--but she would pray to God to guide her. So she suffered in
-silence, and kissed Julian good-by, and sat quiet in her room while
-the lovers were exchanging their last words of affection. Were they to
-be indeed the last? Were they never to meet again, to fondly renew
-their vows of unchangeful love? It was for her, the tender mother, to
-answer these questions. She was the Sibyl who held in her hands the
-skeins of fate. It was for her to shed light or darkness upon the
-future of her darling child.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XXXIX.
-
-IN ENGLAND ONCE MORE.
-
-
-The whole of that night Emilia spent in prayer and thought. She sought
-for guidance, and her prayers were answered. With one exception the
-events of the past came clearly before her. The death of her father,
-her life in Mrs. Seaton's house, her first meeting with Gerald, what
-occurred on the night she was turned by the cruel woman into the
-streets, the kindness of the maiden sisters, her flight after
-overhearing the vile calumnies which Mrs. Seaton uttered against her,
-her meeting with the good old wagoner--and then a blank. She could not
-remember where the wagoner's cottage was situated, and she knew it
-would be impossible to find it without some practical clue. The
-marriage at the registrar's office she now distinctly recalled, and
-although she had never held the marriage certificate in her hand, she
-was certain the ceremony had been performed. Then came the memory of
-the happy honeymoon, and with that memory certain words which Gerald
-had spoken to her with reference to the desk of Indian workmanship
-which he had said was her property, but which his brother Leonard
-retained with other articles which rightfully belonged to her. The
-words were these: "There is a secret drawer in this desk, Emilia, and
-in the desk something which concerns you nearly." It flashed upon her
-with the power of a divine revelation that what he referred to was the
-marriage certificate, which, if she could obtain it, would insure her
-daughter's happiness and save them both from disgrace. She placed
-credence no longer in the infamous statement made by Leonard, that she
-had gone through a false ceremony; she had believed it at the time
-because of her wish to escape from her persecutors and defamers,
-because Gerald was lost to her, because she thought only of the
-present. The image of Gerald, with his truthful eyes, rose before her;
-she heard his voice, the voice of truth and honor, say mournfully,
-"And could you believe that I could be so unutterably base and
-infamous as to deceive you so shamefully, that I could plot and lie
-for your ruin, whom I loved so faithfully?" No, she would no longer
-believe it. Gerald had behaved honorably toward her, and she had
-allowed herself to be tricked by the specious tale of a villain whose
-object was to obtain possession of the fortune which would have fallen
-to her. He was welcome to that, but she would at least make an effort
-to rescue her darling child from despair. She would go to England and
-endeavor to find Leonard. That done she would boldly confront him, and
-tell him to his face that he had lied to her, and that she would
-expose him if he did not furnish her with the opportunity of
-establishing her marriage with Gerald. She would not confide in
-Constance, for the present, and for as long as it was in her power to
-do so, she would preserve her secret. Time enough when she was
-compelled to reveal it.
-
-She acted as she was inwardly directed. The following day she told
-Constance that business of a private nature necessitated her going to
-England. Constance was to go with her, and they would be away from
-Geneva probably some six or seven weeks.
-
-"We shall be back before Julian returns," said Constance, and then was
-seized with consternation. "But his letters, mamma, his letters!"
-
-"We can leave directions," said Emilia, "that they shall be forwarded
-to the London Post-Office. It will only be a delay of a day or two,
-and you can make your letters to Julian longer, as a recompense."
-
-Emilia named London, a city she had never visited, because she had
-often heard Leonard say that it was the only place in England worth
-living in. With money at command that would be the most likely place
-in which to find him.
-
-Julian's family were surprised at this sudden departure, but Emilia
-easily explained it by saying that it was upon private business of
-importance. By her directions Constance wrote to Julian at once,
-informing him of their movements, and bidding him address his future
-letters to her to the General Post-Office in London. Then Emilia made
-arrangements for a lady to take her place with her pupils during her
-absence, and all her preparations being completed, she and Constance
-started for England.
-
-What would have embarrassed her had Constance been of a less sweet and
-confiding disposition was the necessity of her conducting her
-inquiries alone, without the knowledge of her daughter. She explained
-this to Constance as well as she was able.
-
-"You will not mind being left a good deal alone, dear?" she said,
-when they were established in lodgings in London.
-
-"No, mamma, if you wish it," said Constance.
-
-"It is necessary, darling. I have some business of a very private
-nature to look after; if you were with me it would hamper me. I cannot
-tell you now what it is, but it is for your good and mine."
-
-"And Julian's," said Constance.
-
-"Of course, and Julian's. You will not mind, will you?"
- "No, mamma, not at all. I can get books, and I can write to Julian."
-
-"You think only of him, dear."
-
-"And of you, mamma," said Constance, reproachfully.
-
-"Yes, my dear, yes. I think I must be growing jealous."
-
-"There is no reason, mamma dear. I love you both with all my heart.
-And Julian loves us both with all his. And you love us both with all
-yours. So it is really equal all round."
-
-"Constance," said Emilia, "if it were ever to happen that you had to
-choose between Julian and me----"
-
-"Mamma," cried Constance, "you frighten me!"
-
-"Forgive me, darling, forgive me," said Emilia, hastening to repair
-her error by caresses, "but all sorts of notions come into a foolish
-mother's head when she is about to lose her child."
-
-"Now, mamma," said Constance, forcing her mother into a chair and
-kneeling before her, "I am going to be very severe with you. How, can
-you talk of my choosing between Julian and you? Why, mamma, it is
-impossible, it would break my heart! And how can you talk of losing
-your child? You will never lose her, darling mamma. Instead of losing
-me you will have another to look after as well as me; you will have
-Julian, who loves you nearly, not quite--I will not have that--as much
-as I do."
-
-"Never, Constance."
-
-"And you will never think it again?"
-
-"Never, dear," said Emilia; and she was careful from that hour to keep
-a more jealous guard over her tongue.
-
-At this period of Emilia's life there entered into her soul a
-surprising strength. She became strong, morally and physically. All
-her energies, all her intellectual faculties, were braced up almost
-abnormally in the momentous mission upon which she was engaged.
-Feeling the importance of a starting-point, she determined to visit
-her native town, and to visit it alone. She learnt from the
-time-tables that a train started at 5 P.M. and arrived at 10. On the
-following day a train from London started at 4 P.M. and was due some
-six hours after, so that she need be absent from Constance for one
-night only. It was her first separation from her child, but she nerved
-herself to it, and instilled the same spirit into Constance, who
-consented without a murmur. Constance was to have her meals at home,
-to keep her doors locked and not stir out, and to wait up the second
-night for her mother's return.
-
-"I shall be quite safe, mamma," said Constance, "and I shall not be
-dull. Nearly all the time you are away I shall be writing to Julian."
-
-That night Emilia was once more in her native town. Eighteen years had
-passed since she left it, and it was with sadness she recognized
-familiar landmarks with which her childhood had been associated. She
-had taken the precaution of effecting a change in her appearance. She
-darkened her eyebrows and arranged her hair in a fashion so strange as
-to be startled when she looked into the glass. Moreover, she wore a
-thick veil. "No one will know me," she thought. But when she issued
-from the hotel the next morning she was a little afraid, for among the
-first persons she met was Mrs. Seaton. The cruel woman was but little
-altered; her features were more pinched, her eyes more stern than of
-yore, but Emilia knew her instantly. Mrs. Seaton, however, did not
-recognize Emilia, although she looked at her sharply, as was her wont
-with strangers. There was in the town a gossip who kept a small shop,
-and thither Emilia went, and, entering the shop, was greeted by the
-same woman who used to serve her in former years. Making some
-purchases and bargaining for others, Emilia drew the woman into
-conversation, and learned all she wished to know. Oh, yes, the woman
-remembered the brothers Paget very well, very well indeed. They were
-not brothers, no, they were stepbrothers. There was a fire in their
-house, and it was burned down, how many years ago? Eighteen or twenty,
-she could not quite say to a year or two; and a young lady, Miss
-Braham--Emilia Braham, that was her right name--rushed out of the
-house in the middle of the night while the fire was raging. There was
-a lot of talk about it. Miss Braham's father died suddenly--was killed
-by the falling of a scaffold--and Emilia was left alone, without a
-shilling in the world. Then she got a situation with Mrs. Seaton--Oh,
-everybody knew Mrs. Seaton; she had a sharp tongue, and had more
-enemies than friends--and she left her mistress' house at a moment's
-notice. Late at night, too. Mrs. Seaton said she had planned a secret
-meeting with Mr. Gerald Paget--he was the handsomest and the youngest
-of the step-brothers--and that was the reason of her going away so
-suddenly. It did look suspicious, didn't it? And it looked more than
-suspicious when she rushed out of Mr. Gerald's house in the middle of
-the night to save herself from being burned alive. That is often how
-people are found out in a way they little expect. But there were some
-people afterward who took Miss Braham's part, and said she wasn't
-guilty, though appearances were so much against her. That was because
-two ladies--old maids they were, and sisters--stood up for her, and
-went about saying all sorts of kind things about Miss Braham. What is
-that you say? God bless them for it! Yes, they deserve all that; they
-were kind-hearted ladies. They're in the churchyard now, and know more
-than we do. Well, these old maids took Miss Braham home on the night
-of the fire, when she was in a high fever, and no wonder, with what
-was on her mind; and Mrs. Seaton went there and told them they were
-being imposed upon by a shameless young woman. It was a hard thing to
-do, and she might have held her tongue, but that is not Mrs. Seaton's
-way. Once she takes a grudge against a body she don't let them alone,
-not she. While she was, with the old maids talking against Miss
-Braham, the young lady herself heard it, it seems, and she ran away,
-no one knew where to. Mr. Gerald, who must have been very much in love
-with her, was in a dreadful way about her, and the lawyers were busy
-trying to find her; and his step-brother, Mr. Leonard, who had come
-home from Australia that very morning, helped him, too. Then the two
-brothers went away together, and nothing was heard of them, or of Miss
-Braham, for months and months, till it got about that poor Mr. Gerald
-had been killed by falling over a precipice in foreign parts. Then Mr.
-Leonard came home, and took possession of the property, which all fell
-to him. What did he do with it? He sold it all off, and went to London
-to live, and that's where he is now, for all she knew. It was a lot of
-money he came into; some say as much as five or six thousand pounds a
-year, but he was just the sort of gentleman to make ducks and drakes
-with it. That was the whole story of the two brothers and Miss Emilia
-Braham. You would like to know something more! What is it? When Mr.
-Leonard Paget came home didn't he say anything about Miss Braham? No,
-not a word, so far as she knew, and she would have been sure to hear
-of it if he had. No, she was positive he never said one single word
-about her. She did not suppose he knew what became of her, and most
-likely, after a time, he forgot her altogether.
-
-Then the garrulous shopwoman, having exhausted her budget, reckoned up
-the purchases which Emilia had made, and having received payment, bade
-her customer good day.
-
-Emilia's next visit was to a flower shop, where she bought some loose
-flowers; then to the churchyard, where she was directed to the grave
-of the maiden sisters. She knelt and prayed there, and left the
-flowers on their grave.
-
-She had learned that Leonard was in London, and as there was no
-occasion for her to remain any longer in the town she took an earlier
-train than that she had marked, and arrived home four hours before
-Constance expected her. Reflecting upon her situation during that
-night, she felt how powerless she was. Leonard, she had every reason
-to believe, was in London, but to look for him in that vast city in
-the hope of finding him was scarcely within reason. And, indeed, had
-she not been befriended by some strange chance she might have remained
-in London for years without meeting the man for whom she was seeking.
-But it happened so, and an important stage was reached in her inquiry.
-
-The weather was bitterly cold, and snow was falling heavily, but this
-did not keep her at home. In a kind of fever she traversed the streets
-of the city, selecting those which a man of fashion and fond of
-pleasure would be most likely to frequent. On the fourth day of her
-search she was walking in Regent Street, when she suddenly stopped
-with her hand at her heart. It was as much as she could do to prevent
-herself from screaming aloud, for walking leisurely before her, with a
-light step and jaunty air, was Leonard Paget himself. By a powerful
-effort she controlled her agitation, and set herself the task of
-following him. She had caught a glimpse of his face, and she could not
-be mistaken. He looked older and thinner, but his expression was that
-of a man who was enjoying the pleasures of the world and making the
-most of them. Having thus providentially tracked him down, Emilia
-determined not to lose sight of him. Her desire was to ascertain where
-he lived, and in the doing so to keep herself from his sight. To
-accost him in the open street would be madness. No, she must speak to
-him in a place where he could not easily escape from her, where he
-could not thrust her off. "If he takes a cab," she thought, "I will
-take another and follow him. If he walks all day and night, I will
-walk after him. He shall not, he shall not, evade me now." No
-detective could have been more determined and wary than she, but her
-present task did not occupy her very long. The cold day was no
-temptation to the man before her, and it happened fortunately for
-Emilia, that his face was homeward turned. He walked to the bottom of
-Regent Street, and plunged into the narrow tangle of thoroughfares on
-the left. The numbers of people favored her pursuit, and she was not
-noticed. True, the man did not know he was being followed, and only
-looked back when a pretty girl passed him. Presently he was in Soho,
-and in one or two of the streets through which she passed Emilia
-feared detection, there being fewer persons in them; but still he had
-no suspicion, and walked carelessly, gayly on. At length he stopped
-before a house in Gerard Street, took a latch-key from his pocket,
-opened the door, entered, and closed it behind him.
-
-Emilia drew a long breath. It was there he lived; but she would make
-sure.
-
-A boy with a basket of bread slung across his shoulders had stopped at
-the next house to deliver a loaf. Leonard Paget had passed the boy,
-who looked at him while he was opening the street door. Then the boy,
-having received some money, lounged on to the house which Leonard had
-entered, and knocked and rang. The housekeeper, Mrs. Middlemore,
-answered the summons, and took in a loaf. When the street door was
-closed again Emilia crossed over to the lad, and asked him if he would
-like a shilling, to which the boy facetiously replied that he would
-like two, but would put up with one if he could not get more.
-
-"I will give you two," said Emilia, "if you answer a few questions."
-
-"Off we start," said the boy.
-
-"I want to know who that gentleman is who went into the house you have
-just left?"
-
-"That gent as let himself in with his latch-key. Oh, that's Mr.
-Felix."
-
-"It's not true," said Emilia.
-
-"Oh, you're going to cry off, are you? I call that mean, I do. I tell
-you it's Mr. Felix."
-
-Emilia considered a moment. What more likely than that Leonard Paget
-was living there under an assumed name?
-
-"Are you sure? Here is the first shilling."
-
-"Cock sure. Why, he's lived there years and years, and there's nobody
-in the house but him. There's a housekeeper, Mrs. Middlemore; she took
-in a loaf from me."
-
-"Does this Mr. Felix live there regularly?"
-
-"I see him regularly, so he lives there regularly. Anything more I can
-do for you?"
-
-"No, thank you; here is your other shilling."
-
-"Thank you." And the boy walked off, whistling.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XL.
-
-DR. PETERSSEN REAPPEARS ON THE SCENE.
-
-
-For the unexpected good fortune of this discovery Emilia was very
-grateful, and her mind was now occupied in considering how to make the
-best use of it. She did not linger in Gerard Street lest she should be
-seen by Gerald's brother, but before she left it she ascertained that
-he was known not as Mr., but as Monsieur Felix. For what reason had he
-concealed his right name? For what reason had he assumed that of a
-foreigner? It was perhaps because she had but one subject to think of,
-but one supreme end to attain, that she mentally decided that she
-herself was not unconnected with his motive for concealing his
-identity. If that were the case it would be difficult indeed to obtain
-an interview with him. If she presented herself in person, or sent up
-her name, he would refuse to receive her; if she forced herself upon
-him he would not listen to her, and the next time she went to him she
-would find that he had flown. Thus her mission would be a failure and
-the unhappiness of her daughter insured. It behooved her to be very
-careful in her movements; the least slip would be fatal.
-
-The whole of that day and the whole of the next she bent her mind to
-the consideration of the peculiar position in which she was placed.
-She did not remain at home; she spent many hours in the vicinity of
-Soho, making inquiries of M. Felix's habits and character, in such a
-manner as to draw no suspicion upon herself. Small tradesmen of whom
-she made purchases were the medium of these inquiries, and they were
-able to give her much information because of the gossiping disposition
-of Mrs. Middlemore, the housekeeper. It was at this time that she
-developed a talent for intrigue. To insure that she should not be
-recognized by M. Felix in a chance meeting in the streets, she took a
-room that was to let midway between Soho and the apartments occupied
-by herself, stating that she was an actress; and at one shop in the
-Strand, and at another in a street running out of that thoroughfare,
-she purchased a box of "make-up" and a wig of a different color from
-her own hair. It was a short wig, and when her own locks were
-concealed beneath it, and she had used certain pigments on her face,
-no one who knew her as Emilia Braham could possibly recognize her.
-These changes were made in the room she had taken unknown to
-Constance, and she gave no person in the house an opportunity of
-observing her. Independent, however, of these changes she was no
-further advanced at the end of the second day than when she met M.
-Felix in Regent Street, and she could think of no means of obtaining
-the interview she desired.
-
-On the third day she went out again in the direction of Gerard Street,
-drawn thither, as it were, by a magnetic current. But indeed all her
-hopes, and the future of herself and child, were centred in the house
-in which Gerald's brother lived under the name of M. Felix. Snow was
-still falling heavily, but she did not shrink from the chill blasts
-which swept through the narrow spaces of Soho. She had struck up an
-acquaintance with the mistress of a shop in which foreign provisions
-were sold, and she was now standing before the counter conversing with
-the woman, and picking up further information of the domestic habits
-which reigned in M. Felix's house. She learnt that it was Mrs.
-Middlemore's custom to go out every night for her supper-beer at
-half-past eleven, and that she was generally absent for not less than
-half an hour. A wild plan instantly suggested itself; she felt that
-something must be done, and that she must be bold. At eleven o'clock
-this very night she would be on the watch outside the house in
-Gerard Street, waiting for the housekeeper to go upon her usual
-nightly errand. Then she would go up to her, before she closed the
-street-door, and say she came by appointment to see M. Felix. She had
-already ascertained that he occupied apartments on the first floor;
-she had seen on the previous night the lights shining through his
-windows, and she would know in the same way on this night whether he
-was at home. If she played her part well, and controlled her voice so
-that it did not betray her, the housekeeper would doubtless take her
-word, and thus she would obtain entrance to the house without M. Felix
-being aware of it. As to what she should do when she confronted him
-she was as yet undecided, but certain unformed ideas loomed in her
-mind which seemed to give her hope that this nocturnal visit would not
-be fruitless. It would be necessary, however, that she should not
-present herself to the housekeeper dressed as a woman, for that would
-almost certainly bring suspicion upon her. In the disguise of a man
-her story would be more credible. Well, she would buy a suit of male
-clothing, and so disguise herself. The moral energy by which she was
-supported caused her to accept any suggestion, however daring and
-bold, by means of which she could attain success.
-
-She went out of the provision shop full of the scheme, but had not
-gone ten yards before she made a discovery which occasioned her as
-much surprise as her meeting with Gerald's brother a couple of days
-ago. A man brushed quite closely to her, and this man was none other
-than Dr. Peterssen. Another fateful thread in her sad story. What did
-his presence in that locality portend?
-
-He took no notice of her as he passed, but lingered before the window
-of the provision shop, looking through the panes, not at the goods
-displayed, but into the shop to see who was there. Throughout this
-series of adventures Emilia's senses were preternaturally sharpened,
-and nothing escaped her which seemed to bear upon her sad story.
-Presently Dr. Peterssen entered the shop, and without a moment's
-hesitation Emilia followed him.
-
-He had already commenced a conversation with the mistress of the
-establishment, who, saying to him, "I beg your pardon," went to
-Emilia.
-
-"I have forgotten something I wanted to buy," said Emilia, in a low
-tone, "but I can wait till you have attended to that gentleman."
-
-She took care that her voice should not reach his ears, and as the
-woman stepped toward him she turned her back, with the air of a person
-who was not in the least interested in his business. The first words
-she spoke caused Emilia's heart to beat violently; but she still kept
-her face from him.
-
-"Yes, sir, M. Felix lives very near here, in the next street."
-
-"Thank you," said Dr. Peterssen. "It was very careless of me to lose
-the letter he sent me containing his address. Would you mind writing
-it down on paper for me?"
-
-"Not at all, sir."
-
-The woman wrote the address, and Dr. Peterssen, thanking her, left the
-shop. Then she asked Emilia what she wished; it was common enough for
-people to come and ask the address of persons living in the
-neighborhood, and she attached no importance to it. Emilia made
-another small purchase, and again took her departure.
-
-Instead of leaving Soho, as was her original intention, to buy the
-suit of man's clothing necessary for the carrying out of her scheme,
-she walked slowly through Gerard Street. Dr. Peterssen was on the
-opposite side of the road to that on which M. Felix's house was
-situated, and he was gazing up at the windows with an expression of
-triumph on his face. There had been a note of triumph also in his
-voice when he had thanked the shopkeeper for the information she gave
-him, and Emilia judged from those signs that he, as well as herself,
-had been hunting for M. Felix. For what reason, and why, had M. Felix
-hidden himself from a man he knew so well? Here again Emilia did not
-stop to reason. In the selfishness of the task upon which she was
-engaged she jumped at conclusions, and the conclusion she formed now
-was that Dr. Peterssen's search for M. Felix was in some way connected
-with herself and the husband she had lost.
-
-No detective could have acted more warily than she. With extreme
-caution she watched Dr. Peterssen's movements. He stood for a few
-moments looking up at the windows, then he crossed the road, and noted
-the number of the house, and then, with an exulting smile, he slowly
-walked away. Emilia was now more than ever resolved to carry out her
-scheme on this night.
-
-She had observed that there were large clothing establishments in
-Tottenham Court Road, and at one of these she purchased a suit of
-clothes for a small-made man. Hastening to the room she had taken she
-tried them on and found them too large. She went back to the shop and
-exchanged the suit for a smaller one, which fitted her fairly well.
-Then leaving the clothes behind her, she joined Constance, and
-remained with her till eight o'clock.
-
-"Must you go out to night, mamma?" asked the girl.
-
-"Yes, Constance," replied Emilia, "and I may not be home till late.
-You had better go to bed soon."
-
-"No, mamma," said Constance, "I will wait up for you." She went to the
-window. "Mamma, you cannot possibly go out. The snow will blind you.
-There is not a person in the streets."
-
-"I must go, dear child," said Emilia, firmly.
-
-"But, mamma, dear--look!"
-
-It was the night of January 16th, and a terrible snowstorm was raging.
-For over two weeks now the snow had been falling in London, and many
-of the thoroughfares were blocked with drift, which the efforts of
-great numbers of laborers could not remove; and on this night the
-tempest had reached its height. So engrossed had Emilia been in the
-task which had brought her from her happy home in Geneva that she
-thought little of the storms of nature which she had encountered as
-she trudged through the white-carpeted thoroughfares of the city. What
-physical sufferings was she not prepared to bear, and to bear
-cheerfully, for the sake of her beloved child? Only when her strength
-gave way would she yield, and she was sustained now by an abnormal
-strength which enabled her to endure that from which on ordinary
-occasions she would have shrunk. During this trying period of her life
-her powers of endurance were astonishing.
-
-"You will not go out in such a storm, mamma!"
-
-"Do not try to dissuade me, darling, I must go. Do not fear for me;
-God is watching over me. I shall be quite safe."
-
-"Let me go with you," pleaded Constance.
-
-"Impossible. You know, dear child, I always do what I believe to be
-right; I am doing it now, and you must not thwart me, nor make things
-more difficult for me than they are."
-
-"Are they difficult, mamma!" asked Constance, in a tone of tender
-solicitude. This was the first time her mother had hinted at
-difficulties, and the admission had slipped from Emilia unawares.
-
-"Yes, dear, but I cannot tell you what they are. Perhaps the time may
-come when I shall tell you all, but for the present trust in me, have
-faith in me."
-
-The solemnity of her voice had its effect, and Constance no longer
-attempted to prevail upon her.
-
-"Are you warm enough, mamma?"
-
-"Yes, dear child, and my boots are dry and thick. God bless my
-darling, and shield her from harm."
-
-Constance tied a red silk scarf round her mother's neck, who left her
-with bright smiles and cheering words. Then Emilia made her way to her
-other lodging of one room, and effected the change in her garments.
-There was no other lodger in the house but herself, and she had a
-latchkey to let herself in; she experienced little difficulty in
-preserving the secrecy necessary for her operations, and she entered
-and left the house always without being observed.
-
-She surveyed herself in the little bit of broken looking-glass which
-rested on the deal chest of drawers against the wall. "It is not
-possible for anyone to recognize me," she thought, and was about to
-leave the room, when her eyes fell upon the red scarf which Constance
-had tied round her throat. With a tender smile she took it up and put
-it on. She looked at her watch; it was a quarter to ten. "I have still
-a few minutes," she said, and she knelt by the side of the bed she had
-not yet occupied, and prayed for strength and for a successful issue
-of her dangerous errand. Then she went out into the streets.
-
-They were almost deserted; all the better for her task. On such a
-night who would notice her? As she turned into Gerard Street the
-church clocks chimed a quarter to eleven. She had three-quarters
-of an hour to wait. But the hot blood rushed over her face and neck as
-she saw, three or four paces ahead of her, the form of a man
-proceeding in the direction she was taking--and that man no other
-than Dr. Peterssen. He knocked--a peculiar knock seemingly by
-pre-arrangement--and Emilia timed her steps so that she reached and
-passed the door as it was opened by someone from within. She stooped
-just beyond the street-door, and while she was pretending to tie her
-shoestring heard what passed, which may fitly be given here in
-dramatic form:
-
-Dr. Peterssen: "Ah, my dear friend, at last we meet!"
-
-M. Felix (starting back): "You!"
-
-(His voice, although it had spoken but one word, was to Emilia a
-confirmation. It was the voice of Gerald's brother, Leonard.)
-
-Dr. Peterssen (airily): "I, sweet comrade in the shady paths, I, Dr.
-Peterssen--nu ghost, flesh and blood. You received my note."
-
-M. Felix: "Written in a woman's hand, signed in a woman's name!"
-
-Dr. Peterssen: "I knew that was the best bait to hook my fish. And the
-knock, too, that you yourself and no one else--no prying housekeepers
-or servants--must answer. Still the same Don Juan as ever. But it is
-biting cold here. Let us get into your cosy room and talk."
-
-M. Felix: "Not to-night."
-
-Dr. Peterssen: "I am not to be put off, friend of my soul. We will
-have our little say to-night."
-
-M. Felix: "I have friends with me. I cannot receive you now."
-
-Dr. Peterssen: "A lie. You have no friends with you." (His tone
-changing to one of undisguised brutality.) "If you keep me waiting
-here one minute longer I will ruin you. Do you forget our pleasant
-partnership in Switzerland nineteen years ago? Do you forget your
-brother Gerald?"
-
-M. Felix: "Hush! Come in. Step softly."
-
-That was all. The door was closed, and all was still.
-
-Emilia stood upright, with a face as white as the falling snow. The
-words with their hidden meanings, the voices with their varying tones,
-the trick by which Dr. Peterssen had found it necessary to obtain
-admission to the presence of M. Felix, the veiled threats, the
-allusions to the partnership in Switzerland and to her dear
-Gerald--what did all these portend? What but a secret plot, unknown to
-her, unknown to all but its accomplices, a plot in which Gerald had
-been involved, and therefore she? Oh, for some beneficent gift to
-pierce those walls, to hear what those villains were saying! But it
-was idle and might be hurtful to indulge in vain, impracticable
-wishes. She summoned all her fortitude. Scarcely now could she hope to
-obtain speech to-night with the man whom she believed had ruined her
-life, and who could ruin it still further. But she would not desert
-her post; she would wait and hope. She heeded not the bitter, piercing
-cold; she seemed to be divinely armed against physical suffering. So
-she tramped slowly up and down the street through the deep snow,
-keeping her eyes fixed ever on the windows of the room in which the
-conspirators were conversing, walking backward with her face to them
-when she went from the house. Visions of the past rose before her; the
-white snow falling even in this narrow street brought back the snow
-mountains of Switzerland, where last she had seen the two enemies
-within hail of her. "Strengthen me, oh, God of the universe!" she
-murmured. "Endow me with power to fulfil my task, so that I may keep
-shame and sorrow from my beloved child."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLI.
-
-DR. PETERSSEN BRINGS M. FELIX TO BOOK.
-
-
-When Dr. Peterssen entered M. Felix's sitting-room he sank into a
-chair, and gazed around upon the luxurious furnishings with an air of
-scornful approval. A cigar-case was on the table, and without
-invitation the unwelcome visitor helped himself to a cigar, which he
-lighted and smoked in silence for two or three minutes. Meanwhile M.
-Felix looked on and said nothing.
-
-"You are comfortably lodged here," said Dr. Peterssen, at length, "and
-your cigars are very fine; but you were ever a man of taste in the
-matter of your own enjoyments; the best were always good enough for
-you. By the by, the friends you were entertaining? Where are they?" M.
-Felix smiled sourly, and Dr. Peterssen laughed aloud. The next moment,
-however, he became grave. "Let us proceed to business."
-
-"With all my heart," said M. Felix. "I shall be rid of you all the
-sooner."
-
-"You will never be rid of me, dear comrade. I am curious to learn for
-what reason Mr. Leonard Paget has transformed himself into M. Felix."
-
-"You are curious to learn nothing of the sort; you are acquainted with
-the reason. It was to escape from your rapacity, which in another year
-or two would have beggared me."
-
-"A good reason, from a purely selfish point of view, but you lost
-sight of a most important element. You and I are one, sweet boy; our
-fortunes are one; if I swim, you swim; if I sink, you sink. I am not
-at all sure, as to the latter, whether I could not save myself and
-bring you to destruction at the same time. Why did you cut and run
-from the tender-hearted individual upon whom your safety depends? I
-asked you now and then for a trifle of money to help me through
-difficulties; you always objected, I always insisted. I put the matter
-before you plainly. If I did not discharge certain obligations----"
-
-"Brought about by your mad gambling," interrupted M. Felix.
-
-"Granted, dear boy, but men with minds are never free from weaknesses
-of one kind or other, and I freely admit I like a little flutter
-occasionally."
-
-"You would have bled me," said M. Felix, with a dark frown, "till I
-had lost every shilling of my fortune."
-
-"Of _our_ fortune, comrade, of _our_ fortune. It is in my power to
-strip you of it at any moment, therefore, in common equity, the money
-is as much mine as yours."
-
-"We made a bargain, and I adhered to it--have adhered to it up to this
-day."
-
-"Quite correct. Every quarter-day I find paid into my bank the sum of
-one hundred and fifty pounds. Woe to you if there had been a single
-omission. I might have advertised for you, in terms which would have
-drawn unpleasant notice upon you; I would have left no stone unturned
-to unearth you. I think it is five years ago since we last met. It was
-not an amicable meeting; angry words passed between us. You gave me
-the money I asked for and insisted upon having, but you declined to
-accept the view I presented for your consideration, that you were but
-the treasurer of a common fund. We parted, not the best of friends,
-and the next thing I heard of you was conveyed in a letter you wrote
-to me from Brindisi--it was actually posted from there--informing me
-that you had left England never to return, and that the six hundred a
-year would be paid regularly into my bankers in quarterly instalments,
-as usual. My dear friend, that letter naturally did not please me, and
-I did not propose to submit patiently to the desertion. I was working
-for you, for your ease, for your safety; I had an establishment to
-keep up. My little private asylum in the country, with its patients
-and keepers, entails upon me a great expense. I am getting tired of
-it; it chains me down; I have to be very watchful and careful; I have
-to wheedle and bribe, and, besides, I have to live. I knew that you
-lied when you wrote that you had left England never to return; I knew
-that it was the only country in the world you cared to live in, and I
-set to work to discover your hiding place. For five years I have been
-hunting for you; I have been in London a dozen times; I have searched
-everywhere. Oh, the money you have cost me, every shilling of which
-you shall refund. You shall; I have kept an account, and you shall pay
-me not only what I am out of pocket, but so much a day for my personal
-labor. But you are extraordinarily cunning, and it is only now I have
-succeeded in tracking you down. And being tracked, I mean to keep my
-hold upon you; I mean to have my due; I mean to share equally with
-you. It was by the merest chance that I obtained a clue, and I
-followed it up, until, behold, in the person of M. Felix, who passes
-as a foreigner, I discover my dearest friend, Mr. Leonard Paget, a
-partner with me in a conspiracy which, if it were made public, would
-insure, for you, certainly, for me probably, penal servitude for life.
-Now, what is it you propose to do?"
-
-"What do you want?" demanded M. Felix.
-
-"I have already stated--an equal share of the fortune for which we
-both conspired."
-
-"What if I told you that it was pretty well squandered, and there was
-but little left?"
-
-"I should not believe you."
-
-"It is a fact."
-
-"It is a lie."
-
-"Do you think I should be living in such seclusion as this if it were
-not the truth?"
-
-"I think what I please. What more can a man desire than what I see
-around me? You must be enjoying your days, Leonard."
-
-"I repeat," said M. Felix, "that I have lost the greater part of the
-money. You can prove it for yourself if you like. I have speculated
-unluckily; I have lost large sums at Monaco. You can't get blood out
-of stone."
-
-"If you are the stone I will have either blood or money. Understand
-me; I am quite resolved. You see, dear friend, you have unfortunately
-roused a feeling of animosity in me by your bad treatment. I was to
-have all the kicks, you all the ha'pence. Unfair, monstrously unfair.
-Whose was the immediate risk in the conspiracy? Mine. Over whose head
-has hung, at any chance moment, the peril of discovery? Over mine. Who
-has done all the work? I. And you, living your life of ease and
-pleasure, laughed in your sleeve all the time, and thought what an
-easy tool it was who was doing all the dirty work for you, while you
-posed as a gentleman of immaculate virtue. Leonard, do not mistake me
-you will have to do as I command; I am not your slave; you are mine. I
-hold you in the hollow of my hand. You have escaped me once, you shall
-not escape me again."
-
-"You speak bravely," said M. Felix, with an attempt at bravado. "What
-would you do if I defy you?"
-
-"What would I do if you defy me?" repeated Dr. Peterssen, musingly. "I
-would have my revenge, most certainly. I would bring destruction upon
-you, most certainly. I would make a felon of you, most certainly."
-
-"You forget that you would be implicated in these unpleasant
-consequences."
-
-"I forget nothing; but you are mistaken, friend of my soul. There are
-roads open to me which are closed to you. I could turn Queen's
-evidence. I could do better than that. I could hunt up your brother
-Gerald's wife, who deems herself a dishonored woman. I could say to
-her that I was a tool in your hands, that you bribed me and played
-upon my poverty. I could say that the tale you told her of a mock
-marriage was false, and that she was truly Gerald's wife. I could
-inform her that her husband was at this moment alive, and was to be
-found at----"
-
-"Hush!" cried M. Felix.
-
-"Why? I am not afraid. Having revealed the plot to her I should
-disappear. She would come to England, if she were not here already;
-she would lose not a moment in ascertaining whether I spoke the truth;
-and then, my very cunning and clever friend, where would you be, I
-should like to know? Not only would you be brought to the bar of
-justice, but you would have to make restitution. You would be beggared
-and irretrievably disgraced; your life of ease and pleasure would be
-at an end. As I am a living man, I would bring you to this pass; and I
-have little doubt, when I wrote to Gerald's wife from my chosen place
-of exile, that she would listen to the tale of pity I should relate,
-and would reward me for restoring her husband to her arms, and for
-restoring the good name which you filched from her by the basest of
-tricks."
-
-"Enough of this," said M. Felix, "I capitulate. Nothing can be done
-to-night. Come to me to-morrow, and we will make terms. I can say no
-more."
-
-"Perhaps not," said Dr. Peterssen. "You will be here to-morrow?"
-
-"I will be here."
-
-"At noon?"
-
-"At noon."
-
-"Then we will go into accounts."
-
-"As you will."
-
-"Attend to me, dear friend. By my blood, by my life, if you deceive
-me, if you attempt to evade me, if you try once again to escape, I
-will make the story public through Gerald's wife! Then you may say
-your prayers--which will be a novel thing for you to do." He raised
-his hand and swore a frightful oath that he would do as he threatened
-if he did not find M. Felix at home at the time he had named.
-
-"You will find me at home," said M. Felix, sullenly.
-
-"What noise is that?" asked Dr. Peterssen, as the sound of the
-shutting of the street-door came to his ears.
-
-"It is the housekeeper going out for liquor. She does so every night."
-
-"She must have a passion for liquor to go out on such a night. An
-obliging housekeeper, no doubt, dear friend."
-
-"She does as she is directed."
-
-"You have a commanding way with you which goes down with the weak. Are
-there other lodgers in this house?"
-
-"I am the only one."
-
-"As I have heard."
-
-"You have been making inquiries of me?"
-
-"I have. So, we two are alone. Not a soul on the premises but
-ourselves. One of us might murder the other, and have time to escape
-before discovery was made."
-
-"It would not pay either of us to proceed to such an extremity."
-
-"It would not. You are not an affectionate brother, Leonard. You have
-never inquired after Gerald."
-
-"He is still alive, then?
-
-"He is still alive."
-
-"You might be deceiving me. He may have died years ago."
-
-"That might have been, but it is not so. Would you care to convince
-yourself? Come down and see him. He might recognize you."
-
-"No," said M. Felix, with a shudder. "I will take your word."
-
-"Do you not wish to know how he is?"
-
-"How is he?"
-
-"In bodily health, better than you would suppose; but his mind"--Dr.
-Peterssen did not complete the sentence, but watched with some
-curiosity the effect of his words upon his companion.
-
-"He is really mad?" exclaimed M. Felix, eagerly.
-
-"By no means. It is merely that he is plunged into a chronic
-melancholy. He passes days in silence, speaking not a word. I give him
-books, and sometimes he reads, but I am not sure whether he
-understands what he reads."
-
-"No one sees him?"
-
-"No one but myself and those about me, who know him, as you are aware,
-as George Street, possessed with an insane idea that he is somebody
-else."
-
-"Street's father--does he not come to see his son?"
-
-"He does not. Long ago he took the advice I gave him, that it would be
-best and most merciful for him not to attempt to see his son. Had he
-not agreed with me, it might have been awkward. Once he came; and I
-fortunately happened to have in the house a patient absolutely mad,
-one given to loud raving. It was curious, was it not, that at the time
-of Mr. Street's visit this patient was in one of his strongest
-paroxysms? Mr. Street turned pale when he heard the shouts. 'Is that
-my poor son?' he asked. 'That is your poor son,' I answered. 'I will
-not answer for the consequences if his eyes fell upon you.' The father
-went away, with sighs, saying before he went, 'Nothing better can be
-done for him than you are doing?' 'Nothing better,' I answered. 'He is
-receiving every kindness here. In another establishment he would be
-worse off than he is with me.' He came no more, but I send him regular
-reports, and occasionally go to see him."
-
-"He pays you regularly?"
-
-"Yes; he is a prosperous man." Dr. Peterssen rose. "Good-night. I will
-be here at noon. I must make my way through this awful storm as well
-as I can."
-
-"May you perish in it!" thought M. Felix.
-
-"It occurs to me," continued Dr. Peterssen, "that I ought to have some
-guarantee with me. You have some money about you?"
-
-"Not much."
-
-"Give me what you have."
-
-M. Felix took his pocketbook from his pocket, which Dr. Peterssen
-seized before he could open it.
-
-"You shall have it back to-morrow, minus the cash."
-
-He caught sight of the desk of sandal-wood which Emilia would have
-remembered so well. It was open, and by its side lay the dagger with
-its handle representing a twisted snake and its ruby eye. With a swift
-motion Dr. Peterssen closed the desk and lifted it from the table. "I
-will take this with me as a guarantee."
-
-"I will not allow you," cried M. Felix.
-
-"It is not for you to allow," said Dr. Peterssen, coolly. "With me it
-goes, and to-morrow shall be returned. It contains private papers
-perhaps; all the better." The key being in it, he turned it in the
-lock, and threw it to M. Felix. "You cannot object now, and it would
-make no difference if you did. My locking it proves that I do not
-intend to pry into your secrets unless you force me. Good-night."
-
-He spoke with an air of fierce determination, and M. Felix felt
-himself powerless. Sitting almost helpless in his chair, he saw the
-man who held his fate in his hands pass out of the door, and heard his
-steps descending the stairs.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLII.
-
-EMILIA AND M. FELIX.
-
-
-Emilia, watching in the snow-clad street, saw Mrs. Middlemore issue
-from the house with a large jug in her hand. She dared not go up to
-the housekeeper while Dr. Peterssen was in the house, and with a
-sinking heart she recognized that the hope she had entertained of
-obtaining entrance by means of the story she had mentally rehearsed
-was lost. But she would not leave the spot until Dr. Peterssen
-appeared. She had no intention of accosting him, for that she felt
-would be disastrous, but she would follow him, if she could do so
-safely, to see where he lived or lodged. It might be a point gained,
-although she did not at that moment see how it could be used to her
-advantage. She had not long to wait. About ten minutes after Mrs.
-Middlemore left the house, the street-door was opened again, and Dr.
-Peterssen appeared. He carried beneath his right arm that which would
-have sent a thrill of passionate emotion to Emilia's heart, but she
-was too deeply observant of his personal movements to see the desk
-which he had taken away with him as a guarantee. He made no pause, but
-plunged immediately into the snow, and Emilia was about to follow him
-when she suddenly observed that he had not closed the door behind him.
-Her attention was instantly diverted from the man. Here was the
-opportunity for which she had disguised herself, for which she had
-been waiting. Without thinking of the consequences, she glided into
-the house and shut the door. Emilia would have scarcely known how to
-proceed now had it not been that M. Felix, hearing the street-door
-closed, rose to close his own, which Dr. Peterssen had left ajar.
-Before putting his intention into execution he opened it a little
-wider, and inclined his head to the stairs, as if in the act of
-listening. The stream of light which this action threw into the
-passage was a guide to Emilia, who, without hesitation, ran up the
-stairs and confronted him. Startled by her appearance he fell back a
-step or two, which afforded Emilia space to enter the apartment.
-
-"Who are you? What do you want?" gasped M. Felix, dreading at first
-whether this was not part of a plot which Dr. Peterssen had devised
-for his injury. But his doubts were immediately dispelled.
-
-"I am Emilia Paget," said Emilia, "and I want justice."
-
-With a face of terror he retreated farther into the room, and Emilia
-followed him. His heart almost ceased to beat, and a singular numbness
-of sensation came over him.
-
-"Through all these years," said Emilia, "I have left you in peace, if
-peace can ever be the portion of a man like yourself. I come now to
-force a confession from your lips. I want nothing from you in the
-shape of money. All that you have, and that once was your brother
-Gerald's, is yours, and shall remain yours. I do not desire it; if I
-have any right to it I renounce it; I am here to demand justice."
-
-This speech gave M. Felix time to recover himself somewhat. Though
-still conscious of a strange deadness of feeling at his heart, he saw
-the situation, and asked in a faint voice--
-
-"What kind of justice?"
-
-Emilia put a wrong construction upon the low tone in which he spoke.
-Deeming it a sign of relenting on his part, the defiant air she had
-boldly assumed gave way to one of imploring.
-
-"When we last met in Switzerland," she said, bending toward him, "you
-told me that your brother, my dear Gerald--who, in my innermost heart,
-I believe never did harm to woman--had imposed upon me by a mock
-ceremony of marriage. At that time I was so overwhelmed by despair and
-so persecuted by injustice, that I did not dispute your statement. I
-thought only of the present; I wished only to escape from the cruel
-eyes and tongues of those to whom I had been maligned; I wished only
-to fly to a spot where I was unknown, and where I might live out my
-days in peace. What I yearned for was accomplished. God was good to
-me; He raised up a friend who took me to her bosom, and who conducted
-me to a haven of rest. For eighteen years I have lived in a foreign
-land, contentedly, even happily, with my child, Gerald's child. But
-circumstances have occurred which render it vitally necessary for our
-happiness that the proof should be forthcoming that I am a married
-woman. To obtain this proof I have come to England to find you, and by
-a happy chance have so far succeeded. I beg, I entreat of you, to give
-me means to establish my marriage with your brother. That done, I will
-leave you in peace, as Heaven is my judge. I will bind myself to this
-in any way you wish. I will swear the most solemn oath, I will sign
-any document you may draw up. Give me the means of preventing a
-shameful exposure which will ruin my child's life and mine. Think of
-what I have silently suffered, and have pity for me. I will pray for
-you--I will bless you----"
-
-But her voice was broken by emotion, and she could not proceed. M.
-Felix gazed at her sternly; as she grew weak, he grew strong.
-
-"I cannot give you what is impossible," he said. "You and Gerald were
-never married."
-
-"I will not use hard words," said Emilia, restraining herself. "It may
-be as you say; but give me at least the information that will enable
-me to establish the truth. You cannot deny me this--you cannot, you
-cannot!"
-
-"What kind of information do you desire?" asked M. Felix.
-
-"When I was ill and very near to death," she replied; "when reason had
-forsaken me and I was lying stricken down, Gerald and you came to me
-in the place where afterward a civil ceremony was performed which I
-had every right to believe made me an honorably married woman. Tell me
-the name of that place. It is little to ask, but I ask no more. If you
-have a spark of compassion in you, tell me this, and I will go away
-blessing you."
-
-"You do not remember it?" said M. Felix, with triumph in his eyes.
-
-"God help me, I have not the least remembrance of it, nor of the roads
-I took which led me to it."
-
-M. Felix stepped to the window and threw it open. Then he cried in as
-loud a voice as he could command:
-
-"Help!"
-
-"Why do you cry for help?" asked Emilia, advancing toward him.
-
-"Do not come nearer to me," he replied, "or I will strangle you. Why
-do I cry for help? To bring the police here--to give you into
-custody--to expose and brand you as you deserve to be exposed and
-branded. How you forced your way into this house I do not know:
-perhaps you have been in hiding until you were assured I was alone.
-You come here to rob and murder. I will swear to it." Again he called
-from the window,
-
-"Help!"
-
-Frozen with terror Emilia stood like a statue, white with the fear of
-a horrible exposure which would blast her and her child forever in
-this world.
-
-"You talk of ruin," snarled M. Felix. "It is upon you now. Disguised
-as a man you steal upon me here for a vile purpose. You will go away
-blessing me, will you? What do I care for your blessing or your curse?
-I will make your name a byword of shame, as it has been made before!"
-For the third time he sent out into the night his cry for "Help!"
-
-Emilia's strength returned to her; she was able to speak once more.
-
-"I will go," she said. "You shall not have the opportunity of still
-further disgracing me. But I will not rest till the truth is made
-clear to me--not with your help, but with the help of"----
-
-"Of whom?" asked M. Felix, with a sneer.
-
-She had intended to say "with the help of God," but an inspiration
-fell upon her which impelled her to utter a name almost as hateful to
-her as that of Leonard.
-
-"With the help of Dr. Peterssen. If you can ruin me, he has it in his
-power to ruin you."
-
-"Ah!" cried M. Felix, and in a sudden frenzy he snatched the snake
-dagger from the table and hurled it at her. It struck her in her left
-arm, and she caught it in her right hand. As she held it thus, dazed
-with pain, for a moment, M. Felix was struck with partial blindness.
-He saw, through the mist which fell upon him, the dagger with blood
-dripping from it, and thought that it was Emilia's intention to use it
-against him. He had a revolver in his bedroom. Blindly he staggered
-thither, and fell, motionless, into a chair by the side of the bed.
-The pain of the wound and the horror of the situation deprived Emilia
-of her senses, and she sank to the ground. How long she remained in
-that condition she did not know, but when she opened her eyes all was
-silent. M. Felix was not present. Had he gone to carry out his threat
-and to bring the police to his aid? The dagger was still in her hand
-and the wound in her arm was still bleeding. Shudderingly she threw
-the weapon behind the sideboard, and intent now only on escaping from
-the shame with which she was threatened, she bound her handkerchief
-tightly round the wound, and fled down the stairs. Constables Wigg and
-Nightingale were outside the door as she threw it open, but she
-scarcely saw them, although she knew that they were the forms of men.
-Terror lent wings to her feet, and in a moment she was out of sight,
-flying for her life.
-
-
-
-
-
-_BOOK THIRD_.
-
-WHAT BECAME OF M. FELIX, AS RELATED IN THE FIRST PERSON BY ROBERT
-AGNOLD, ON THE REPORTING STAFF OF THE "EVENING MOON."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIII.
-
-ROBERT AGNOLD TAKES UP THE THREADS OF THE STORY.
-
-
-In setting forth the incidents narrated in Book Second of this story,
-under its heading "A Life Drama--Links in the Mystery," I have had no
-occasion to speak of myself, my acquaintance with Emilia beginning
-after the 16th of January, on which night the Book fitly ends. In what
-has now to be told, however, I played a not unimportant part, and it
-is proper, and will be more convenient, that I should narrate what
-followed in the first person. I think my name, Robert Agnold, has been
-mentioned only once or twice in these pages, and it is not for the
-purpose of making myself better known to the public, but simply for
-the sake of clearness, that I depart from the journalistic method
-(with which in other circumstances I am very well contented) in what I
-am about to write. I do so with the full approval of the conductors of
-the newspaper with which I have the honor to be connected. It is
-perhaps unnecessary for me to state that in the preparation of Book
-Second I have been guided both by what I have heard from the lips of
-its heroine, Emilia herself, and by what subsequently came to my
-knowledge; but it is as well to state this, in order to prove that I
-have not drawn upon my imagination.
-
-I now take up the threads of the story.
-
-When Emilia made her escape from M. Felix's house on the night of the
-16th of January, she was, as may be supposed, in a state of extreme
-agitation. Her errand had failed, and she had nothing to hope for at
-the hands of Gerald's brother, whom I shall continue to speak of as M.
-Felix. She hardly dared to think of the future, and indeed the pain of
-her wound and the personal danger in which she stood were sufficient
-occupation for her mind at that juncture. As quickly as she could she
-made her way to the one room she had taken unknown to her daughter,
-and there she bathed and dressed the wound--throwing the stained water
-out of the window, so that it might not betray her--and effected the
-necessary change in her attire. In woman's clothes she left the house,
-and proceeded to her lodgings in Forston Street, Kentish Town. She was
-thankful that her daughter was asleep when she reached home; it saved
-her the necessity of an immediate explanation, and gave her time to
-make more plausible the story she had thought of to account for the
-injury to her arm. Creeping into bed without disturbing Constance she
-lay awake for hours, and sank into slumber only when daylight was
-beginning to dawn. She slept till past noon; fortunately for her,
-Nature's claims were not to be resisted, and she arose strengthened if
-not refreshed, and with still a faint hope that she might yet succeed.
-She would make one more appeal to M. Felix, this time in daylight. She
-would go to him this very afternoon, and endeavor to soften his heart
-by offering to bind herself to any terms he might dictate, if he would
-but furnish her with the name of the place in which the marriage
-ceremony had been performed. The echo of the statement he had made in
-Switzerland that she and Gerald were never married, although it struck
-a chill to her heart, found no lodgement therein. Most firmly did she
-believe that she had been honestly and honorably married, and until
-she was convinced to the contrary by absolute evidence she would
-continue to believe it. If M. Felix failed her she would set a watch
-upon Dr. Peterssen's movements, and endeavor by some means to gain her
-end through him. She had not the remotest idea how she should proceed
-with this man, but she trusted in God to guide her.
-
-Constance, as was natural, was in great distress at the wound her
-mother had received, but Emilia made light of it, although it caused
-her exquisite pain. It was an accident, Emilia said; she had slipped,
-and fell upon some broken glass; and Constance did not dream that the
-story was untrue. The young girl was very anxious on this morning;
-she expected a letter from her lover, Julian Bordier, and she told her
-mother that in her last letter to Julian she had given him the address
-of their lodgings in Forston Street. Emilia could not chide her for
-doing so, but she was inwardly distressed by the idea that the
-Bordiers might present themselves at any unexpected moment. M. Bordier
-would almost certainly make some inquiries as to the nature of the
-business that brought her to England. How should she reply? He was a
-penetrating man, and she could foresee nothing but calamity from a
-renewal at present of close relations with him. She could do nothing,
-however, to avert the dangers by which she was threatened. All she
-could do was to wait and hope.
-
-She went to the post office for letters, and received one for
-Constance and one for herself. She rode back immediately to Forston
-Street to give Constance her lover's letter, and in the cab she read
-her own. It was short but most affectionate and tender, and it
-confirmed her fears. There was every likelihood that the Bordiers
-would be in London within the next few weeks.
-
-Delivering Julian's missive to the eager girl, Emilia left her once
-more with the intention of proceeding to Gerard Street. She rode only
-part of the way, getting out of the cab at Regent's Circus. It was
-bitterly cold, but in this city of startling contrasts there are
-wheels that never stop. Though darkness enveloped the streets for
-weeks together the newspaper boys would still perambulate the
-thoroughfares with the last editions of the newspapers; would still
-bawl out at the top of their voices the tempting news they had to
-dispose of. Emilia had scarcely alighted from the cab when her ears
-were assailed by cries from these venders of the afternoon journals:
-"Murder! murder! Sudden Death in Gerard Street, Soho! Mr. Felix
-Murdered! Escape of the Murderer!" The shock which these startling
-announcements caused her was so great that she stumbled and would have
-fallen had not a policeman caught her by the arm.
-
-"Be careful how you walk," said the officer. "The streets are awful
-slippy."
-
-She murmured a frightened inarticulate expression of thanks and
-staggered on, the iteration of the news-venders' dreadful cries
-sounding in her ears like the clanging of a thousand bells proclaiming
-her doom. Her terror was so great that she would have succumbed under
-it if there had not risen in the white space before her the vision of
-a young girl at home reading her lover's letter. She saw the lovely
-lips form the words, "Mamma, listen to what Julian says." This fancy
-was her salvation. Her daughter was in this terrible city, dependent
-upon her, with no supporter, with no friend but the mother whose heart
-was charged with woe and despair. She must be strong for her child's
-sake. Her strength came back to her; the policeman who had saved her
-from falling was still looking at her, and now, seeing that she had
-recovered, passed on. Controlling her agitation, she bought a copy of
-the _Evening Moon_, and walked mechanically toward Gerard Street. When
-she was within a short distance of it she wavered in another
-direction. Dared she go there? Dared she be seen there? Why not? It
-was hardly likely that she would be noticed; it would depend upon
-herself whether she attracted attention. She turned her face toward
-Gerard Street. A magnetic current drew her on, and she could no more
-have effectually resisted it than she could have changed day into
-night by closing her eyes. She _must_ go and see for herself.
-
-The street was busy with people, drawn there as she was drawn, but, as
-she shudderingly confessed to herself, with a different knowledge of
-the truth. Outside the house in which M. Felix had lived there was a
-throng of people gazing up at the windows.
-
-"That's the window of his sitting-room. Is he there now? Yes,
-stretched out, dead and done for. He was a gentleman, wasn't he? Yes,
-with heaps of money. He always kept a pile of gold and bank notes in
-his room. What's become of it? Ah, what? When was it done? About
-midnight, when there was no one but the murderer and the murdered
-gentleman in the house. The housekeeper had gone out for her supper
-beer. They forced the door open, and there he was, murdered. Who did
-it? A man, of course? Maybe--maybe not. Just as likely it was a woman.
-It doesn't matter to him now. He's dead, and won't come back to tell.
-Have they caught the murderer? Not yet, but they've got a clew, they
-say. Ah, they always say that. But it's true this time. They'll catch
-him, never fear, and when he's caught, the Lord have mercy on him!"
-
-Thus the chatter ran, and for a time Emilia, glued to the spot, stood
-and listened. Then a spiritual whisper fell on her senses and set her
-in motion again. "The suit of clothes you dressed in last night. Get
-rid of it. Destroy it." She walked swiftly from the street and
-proceeded in the direction of her room. She did not waver now;
-suggestions of a frightful nature came to her, but she walked on, as
-if impelled by a hidden force. She reached the street in which the
-room was situated. It was quiet and deserted. There was comfort in
-that. Then the police had not been there. If they had there would have
-been as many people there as in Gerard Street. With desperate courage
-she opened the street door with her latch-key, and went up the stairs
-unobserved. She turned the key in the lock and entered the room. The
-clothes she had worn were in a corner, where she had left them the
-previous night. She breathed more freely. All this time she had kept
-in her hand the copy of the _Evening Moon_ she had purchased, and now,
-in the solitude of her chamber, she nerved herself to read the
-particulars of the tragedy in which she was involved. Gerald's brother
-was dead; that was the end; all hope was gone. She no longer thought
-of appealing to Dr. Peterssen; she felt instinctively that by so doing
-she would be digging a pit for herself. She could throw herself on the
-mercy of M. Bordier--that course was open to her. She could tell him
-her story, strengthening her statements by most solemn assurances of
-their truth, and leave it to him to decide. She had but little hope in
-the result. She knew it was exactly the kind of tale which a guilty
-woman would relate, and that, without a shadow of proof, few men would
-accept it. There was no time, however, to determine upon any definite
-course at present. The suit of clothes she had worn when she visited
-M. Felix must be destroyed; until that was done her position was one
-of extreme danger. She folded them carefully, and inclosed them in the
-copy of the Evening Moon, and with the bundle under her arm proceeded
-to Forston Street. She went at once to her bedroom, and locked the
-clothes in her box. Already the plan had suggested itself of throwing
-the clothes into the river in the dead of night, when she could make
-sure that she was not being watched. After that she would come to some
-decision as to her future movements. What transpired on the night she
-made the attempt is known to the reader, and I now take up the
-sequence of events of which I may claim to be the originator.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIV.
-
-EMILIA RETRACES THE OLD ROADS.
-
-
-After I had learned all that Emilia had to tell me, I informed her
-that I would take a day or two to decide upon my plan of action. In
-the meantime she was to make no movement whatever, but to keep herself
-and daughter in absolute privacy. She placed herself entirely in my
-hands, and promised not to deviate by a hair's-breadth from the
-instructions I gave her.
-
-"Be sure of that," I said, "and I feel that I shall be able to further
-your heart's wishes."
-
-On the third day certain ideas had taken some kind of practicable
-shape, and I determined to set to work. I must mention that I visited
-Mrs. Middlemore regularly during my deliberations, and had taken the
-rooms which had been inhabited by M. Felix. She had no news of the
-slightest importance to communicate to me although she was in the mood
-to make mountains out of molehills. Nothing further had transpired in
-the Gerard Street house; no person had called to make inquiries, and
-she had not been upset by any more false messages. I saw my little
-friend Sophy also. She was as cheery and sharp as ever, and she
-informed me that "Aunty was ever so much nicer than she used to be,"
-and I expressed my delight at the good report.
-
-"But I say," remarked Sophy, "ain't yer got nothink to give me to do
-for yer?"
-
-"Not just yet, Sophy," I replied. "Presently, perhaps."
-
-"The sooner the better," said Sophy. "I likes to be busy."
-
-"You will not go away, Sophy? I may want you at any moment."
-
-"I shall be ready for yer. I'll do anythink for yer, never mind what
-it is."
-
-I explained to her on my last visit that I should not see her for a
-week or so, as I was going out of London upon particular business, and
-that while I was away she was to keep her eyes open. If she happened
-to see the man who had sent her aunt on a false errand to the Bow
-Street Police Court she was to follow him secretly and find out where
-he lived, and upon my return to London she was to tell me everything
-that had happened. Satisfied with her assurances of obedience I left
-the grateful little creature, and an hour later was closeted with
-Emilia. I had not yet informed her of the trick which had been played
-upon Mrs. Middlemore, and of the disappearance of the revolver; I did
-so now, and asked if she had any suspicion who the man was.
-
-"No," she replied, "I cannot imagine."
-
-"Describe Dr. Peterssen's appearance to me," I said, "as you last saw
-him." She did so, and I continued, "It is as I supposed. He is the man
-who gave Mrs. Middlemore the false message, and got her out of the
-house to afford him the opportunity of obtaining what he wanted.
-Money, of course, if he could lay his hand on any, but chiefly papers
-and documents which might be valuable to him in the future--documents
-probably connected with your story."
-
-"Why should he wish to obtain possession of such things?" asked
-Emilia. "They can be of no use to him he dare not appear."
-
-"Publicly he dare not; privately he may. You know of his visit to M.
-Felix; he does not know of yours. Say that he succeeded in obtaining
-possession of something which would establish your marriage." Emilia
-clasped her hands. "He would surely conceive the plan of discovering
-where you were, and coming to you privately for the purpose of making
-a bargain for these proofs."
-
-"I would give him anything--everything," exclaimed Emilia.
-
-"That is certain," I said, "and it might be worth while to come to
-terms with him; but I should not allow him to rob you. M. Felix, so
-far as we know, did not make a will. Doubtless he has left property of
-some kind, and should your marriage be proved the property would be
-yours. Indeed, in that case it would be yours if M. Felix were living
-and in this room at the present moment."
-
-Emilia shuddered, and looked around timorously.
-
-"Have you any idea what can have become of his body?" she asked in a
-whisper.
-
-"No; I can form no theory upon that mystery. I would give a great deal
-to unravel it."
-
-"Is it possible that Dr. Peterssen can have taken it away?"
-
-"It is more than possible, it is probable; but his motive for doing so
-is as great a mystery as the disappearance of the body without his
-intervention. A deliberate act of that kind is done with a deliberate
-motive, and I can think of none which would prompt him to carry into
-execution a scheme so full of risk. And now listen attentively to what
-I say. Setting aside the danger attendant upon your nocturnal visit to
-M. Felix--a danger which I trust will in time entirely disappear--it
-is of the highest importance to you that you should obtain proof of
-your marriage with Gerald Paget."
-
-"It is all I desire," said Emilia. "That obtained, I should be content
-to die."
-
-"It will be better to live, to draw happiness from the union of your
-daughter and Julian Bordier. My plan is this: That you and I go to
-your native town, and starting from the house of the maiden ladies who
-were so good to you on the night of the fire, endeavor to trace the
-road you took when you flew from the shelter they gave you. You
-remember the river----"
-
-"I can never, never forget it," said Emilia, "nor the fearful thoughts
-which seemed to force me toward it."
-
-"There will be little difficulty in ascertaining your route thus far
-on your journey. From that point we will make inquiries, and it may be
-that we shall succeed in discovering the road the kind old wagoner
-took toward his home. That done, all the rest is easy."
-
-"Dear friend," she said, pressing my hand, "how can I thank you?"
-
-"Thank me when success crowns our efforts. Are you ready to take the
-journey? We will start to-morrow morning."
-
-"But Constance!" she exclaimed. "She cannot go with us. She is
-ignorant of my sad story."
-
-"Let her remain so. I have provided for her comfort while we are away.
-I have spoken to my mother--a lady in whom you can place implicit
-confidence--and she will be glad if your daughter will accept her
-hospitality during our absence. You may trust her; your daughter will
-be well cared for."
-
-"I know that, I know that," said Emilia, her tears overflowing. "But
-what have I done to merit such goodness? What claim have I upon you?"
-
-"The claim of a helpless, persecuted lady," I replied, gently. "What I
-do is willingly, cheerfully done. Accept my offer, and you will make
-me your debtor. It will be ample reward if I succeed."
-
-"God is very good to me," she murmured. "Thankfully, gratefully do I
-accept it."
-
-"That is well. You had better arrange to retain these rooms, and we
-will leave my mother's address with the landlady, in case the Bordiers
-should come and make inquiries."
-
-"You think it right that they should see us?" inquired Emilia.
-
-"You will be acting injuriously to yourself if you affect any secrecy.
-Certainly they must see you and your daughter; their first inquiries
-will be for you and you will lay yourself open to the worst
-construction if you keep out of their way. Be advised by me."
-
-"I will, in all things."
-
-"My sister will accompany us on our journey. It will be pleasant for
-you to have a lady companion, and it will leave me free to make any
-inquiries that may suggest themselves."
-
-She appreciated the delicacy of the act and it was arranged that I
-should call for her and Constance in the evening to conduct them to my
-mother's house. This was done, and in the morning Emilia, my sister,
-and I started on our journey.
-
-I will waste no words in a description of our proceedings. There was no
-difficulty in finding the house in which the kind maiden sisters had
-resided, and from the street in which it was situated there was but
-one outlet to the open country. From the time occupied by Emilia in
-her flight on that never-to-be-forgotten night I judge that she must
-have walked some eleven or twelve miles, and at about that distance
-from the town lay the river Arbor. There we halted on the second day
-of our journey, and from that spot our real difficulties began. There
-was the hill Emilia had mounted, on the crown of which she had fallen
-in a state of exhaustion, with the river stretching to the left of
-her. It was inevitable that my sister should be taken into our
-confidence, and in the distressing reminiscences which the scene
-recalled to Emilia she was a true solace to the poor lady. I gently
-wooed her to describe the impressions of that terrible night's
-wanderings, and had any doubts been in my mind as to the truth of her
-story the pathos of that recital would have effectually dispelled
-them. But I entertained no doubts, and more strongly than ever did I
-resolve to champion her cause and not to relinquish it till success
-rewarded me, or absolute failure stared me in the face. As Emilia's
-suffering tones fell upon my ears I could almost hear the tinkling
-bells of the horses in the wagon and the driver's kindly exhortations
-to his cattle. He came in view, in my fancy, and spoke to Emilia, and
-receiving no encouraging answer, passed down the hill with his team.
-He returned and addressed her again, and she implored him to save her
-from the river. Supported by him, she descended the hill, and was
-lifted into the wagon, where she lay in a blind stupor of
-forgetfulness and insensibility. I declare that I saw the pictures of
-this human agony as if they were actually presented to my sight. As
-for my good sister, she was continually wiping the tears from her
-eyes, and when we reached the bottom of the hill, and Emilia said, "It
-was here the wagon stood, I think," she pressed the unfortunate lady
-in her arms, and they mingled their tears together.
-
-It was at this spot, I repeat, that our real difficulties began, for
-at about a couple of hundred yards along the road the wagon must have
-taken (there being no other) it branched out in three directions,
-north, south, and east. Now, which road led to the wagoner's home?
-
-Emilia could not inform us. We took one, the broadest--though why he
-should have selected the broadest instead of the narrowest I cannot
-explain, all three roads being equally available for horse
-traffic--and pursued it for a mile or so, and were confronted by four
-cross roads, which multiplied our difficulty. I will not enlarge upon
-the labor of this perplexing enterprise. It is sufficient to say that
-at the end of the twelfth day I was compelled to confess that we were
-as far from success as on the first day of our journey. Of course I
-made innumerable inquiries, but I was speaking of eighteen years ago,
-and I could not elicit the slightest information of a reliable nature
-to guide me in the search we were prosecuting. I spared no labor, and
-although I was greatly discouraged I did not allow my companions to
-observe my despondency. At length I came to the conclusion that it
-would be useless to employ further time in the quest, and I told
-Emilia and my sister that we should return to London on the morrow.
-Emilia looked at me mournfully.
-
-"Don't feel down-hearted," I said, with a cheerful smile. "This is the
-smallest arrow in my quiver. I have a surer one to adjust when we
-reach town."
-
-It was touching when we arrived at my mother's house, to see the
-meeting between Emilia and her daughter. We left them to themselves
-awhile, and when they joined us I conveyed to Emilia a pressing
-request from my mother that they would stop with her as long as they
-remained in London. It needed persuasion to induce Emilia to comply,
-but she saw that Constance wished her to accept, and she did so with
-much grace, but with a humbleness of manner which powerfully affected
-me. Constance had some news to communicate. The Bordiers had arrived
-in London, and had visited her. I was impressed by a certain
-tremulousness in her voice as she spoke of them, but I made no comment
-upon it, not feeling myself warranted to intrude upon her confidence.
-
-"My mother's house is open to your friends," I said. "They will be
-always welcome here."
-
-She thanked me, and shortly afterward I was hurrying to the W. C.
-district, first to present myself at the office of the _Evening Moon_,
-and afterward to go to my chambers, where, in response to a telegram I
-had forwarded from the country, I expected a visitor.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLV.
-
-DR. PETERSSEN IS TRACKED.
-
-
-The name of the visitor I expected, and who hopped up the stairs which
-led to my chambers half an hour after I entered them, was Bob Tucker.
-He is a friend of mine, with plenty of money at command, and has no
-need to work for a living; but he has a fad, if I may so express it.
-This fad lay in the detective line, and to give him a job in that
-direction was to bestow a favor upon him. He entered upon it _con
-amore_, and pursued it with a zest never to be found in the
-professional, who works by the job, or the hour, or the day. He has
-often said to me that if he were to lose his money he would start an
-office of his own and lead a jolly life. Whether that meant a jolly
-life to others is a doubtful point. Anyway, he is an enthusiastic
-young fellow of about six and twenty, and is never so happy as when he
-can adopt a disguise and hunt something or somebody down. He objects
-to be called Robert, which he insists is not his proper name. He
-distinctly remembers, he avers, being christened Bob, so Bob Tucker he
-is to all his friends. So far as I am personally concerned, this is
-convenient to me, my name being Robert, which I prefer to Bob.
-
-I had foreseen the likelihood of the failure of the search upon which
-I had entered with Emilia, and the surer arrow in my quiver to which I
-referred when I spoke to Emilia about returning to London was Dr.
-Peterssen. It was my intention, if all else failed, to break a lance
-with him, directly or indirectly, and with this object in view I had
-instructed Bob Tucker to find out where he lived, what kind of
-establishment he kept, what his neighbors thought of him, the
-character he bore, and, in short, anything and everything about his
-establishment which could possibly be learned. Bob was delighted with
-the task, and undertook it eagerly.
-
-"Does he live in London?" he asked.
-
-"Don't know," I answered.
-
-This increased Bob's delight, and he said he would show me something
-when he made report to me. Of course I told him all I knew of the man,
-and that he had charge of at least one patient who was not in his
-right mind.
-
-"Well, Bob?" I said, on this evening.
-
-"Give me a drink first," was Bob's rejoinder.
-
-I gave him one, and took one myself. We clinked our glasses and
-emptied them. Then Bob lit a cigar, and so did I.
-
-"Ready?" said he.
-
-"Quite ready," said I.
-
-"Keeps a private madhouse," said Bob.
-
-"Queen Anne's dead," said I.
-
-"Has more than one patient."
-
-"Has three. A man, or gentleman, and two children."
-
-"Children?"
-
-"Children. Prefers them. Less trouble. Besides, longer expectations
-with young 'uns. More time for them to grow old."
-
-"True," said I. It will be observed that it was a speciality of Bob's
-to speak in short sentences.
-
-"Man, or gentleman," continued Bob, "harmless. Gentle as a dove.
-Greengrocer's boy told me. Sees him sometimes. In the grounds. Pities
-him."
-
-"How old is this poor gentleman, Bob?"
-
-"Forty, perhaps. Forty-five, perhaps. Not more than fifty at the
-outside. Hair quite gray, but youngish face."
-
-"Where is this private madhouse, Bob?"
-
-"Sheldon. Forty-three miles from London. Population seven hundred and
-thirty. Two beerhouses. Shut at ten."
-
-"Has the establishment a name?"
-
-"Tylney House. Enclosed. Stone wall all round it. Easy to get over in
-one part. All the other parts, broken glass at top."
-
-"Character?"
-
-"Difficult to get at. Population has no opinions. I should say, damned
-scoundrel."
-
-"Why should you say so?"
-
-"Impression."
-
-"Is Dr. Peterssen always at home?"
-
-"Seldom. Away for days together. Comes back. Stops for a day and a
-night. Goes away again next morning."
-
-"Who takes care of Tylney House in his absence?"
-
-"Keeper, with only one idea. Liquor."
-
-"Does he take it at the beershops?"
-
-"No. Private stock. Keeps a dog. Savage."
-
-"Is anyone admitted to the house?"
-
-"No admittance except on business."
-
-"Do many people go there upon business?"
-
-"None. House like a prison."
-
-"Is it a large house, Bob?"
-
-"Largish. Room for more."
-
-"More patients?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Look here, Bob. I want to tackle this Dr. Peterssen in some way as
-yet unthought of, but before I do so I should like to make sure of a
-certain point. How is it to be done?"
-
-"Don't understand you."
-
-"Well, this is how it is. I am morally convinced he has something in
-his house to which he has no claim, and which I would pay a good price
-to get hold of."
-
-"Property?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Portable?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"Any objection to say what it is?"
-
-"We're tiled in, Bob?"
-
-"Honor bright and shining. Unless you give consent, not to be
-mentioned outside this room."
-
-"Thank you, Bob. The property is a desk."
-
-"Buy it of him. My opinion he would sell anything. His own mother if
-he had one."
-
-"He would not dare to sell it. He would deny that he had ever seen
-it."
-
-"Might bring him into trouble?"
-
-"Yes. There are a lot of things hanging to the possession of this
-desk."
-
-"Spirit it away."
-
-"How?"
-
-"Get a patient in--a friendly patient. A child for choice. A sharp one
-it would have to be."
-
-"By Jove, Bob, you put an idea into my head."
-
-"Glad to hear it. Act on it."
-
-"You wouldn't mind assisting me?"
-
-"Anything in my power."
-
-"You are a trump. But you have been making personal inquiries in the
-village. If you went down again--supposing you consent to do what I
-want--you would be recognized."
-
-"Not at all. Disguise. I'd take Old Nick himself in, much less Dr.
-Peterssen and a parcel of clod-hoppers." (This was a long sentence for
-Bob.) "Try me."
-
-"Supposing I could find such a friendly patient--a smart little girl
-who knows her way about--would you go down and arrange that she should
-be taken care of in Tylney House?"
-
-"Delighted."
-
-"You've not heard of any cruelties being practised there?"
-
-"No. Besides, I should be on the spot. Could arrange a system of
-signals. Piece of white paper, with a stone in it, thrown over wall.
-All's well. Piece of blue paper, with a stone in it, thrown over wall.
-Getting frightened. Come and take me away. No paper at all thrown over
-wall. Ring the bell and demand to see friendly patient."
-
-"Bob, you're a genius."
-
-"Thanks. When shall it be?"
-
-"Come and see me to-morrow at one."
-
-"I shall be here; to the minute."
-
-He gave me a wink, and after another drink took his departure. He
-would have stopped longer had I not told him that I had business of
-importance to attend to, to which he responded, "A wink's as good as a
-nod," and hastened to say good-night.
-
-The idea he had put into my head was that he should take Sophy down to
-Sheldon as a relative of his own, and arrange for her admission to
-Tylney House, and the desk I wished to get hold of was the Indian desk
-of sandalwood, inlaid with silver, which Mrs. Middlemore had informed
-me was in M. Felix's apartment on the morning of the 16th of January,
-but which was not there when we searched the rooms a couple of days
-after. The housekeeper was positive that she saw it on the 16th, and
-was almost as positive that the police had not removed it. If not
-they, who? Why, Dr. Peterssen in his interview with M. Felix, on the
-night of the 16th, leaving behind him the snake-shaped dagger which M.
-Felix had thrown at Emilia a few minutes later. Emilia had repeated to
-me Gerald's words to her with reference to this desk, during their
-honeymoon in Switzerland--"There is a secret drawer in this desk,
-Emilia, and in the desk something which concerns you nearly." What if
-this should mean the copy of the marriage certificate? In my mind I
-set it down as meaning it, and I thought, also, that there was a fair
-chance of finding it in the desk even at this length of time. The
-secret drawer was known to Gerald; Emilia, who had used the desk, was
-not aware of this secret drawer until Gerald spoke of it. It might be
-that Gerald's brother did not know of it, and that it had remained all
-these years undiscovered. Granted that the chance was a slender one,
-still it should not be neglected. I had no compunction in enlisting
-Sophy in the plan I had devised. My moral sense was not blunted, and I
-felt myself perfectly justified in fighting Dr. Peterssen with his own
-weapons. Before I sought Sophy I thought it necessary to have a few
-private words with Emilia, and I drove at once to my mother's house
-for that purpose.
-
-"I can stop only five minutes," I said, in excuse of my hurried
-arrival and departure; "I have a hundred things to attend to
-to-night." I beckoned to Emilia, and she followed me to an unoccupied
-room. "I wish you," I said to her, "to bend your mind most earnestly
-on the night of the 16th of last month. Don't tremble; there is
-nothing to be frightened at; I am hard at work in your interests, and
-I am full of hope. Are you quite calm?" She nodded, and I continued.
-"You saw Dr. Peterssen go into the house in Gerard Street; you saw him
-come out of it. When he went in did he carry a parcel with him?"
-
-"No."
-
-"You are sure of it?"
-
-"I am sure I should have noticed it. I had perfect control over
-myself, and nothing escaped my attention."
-
-"When he came out of the house did he have a parcel with him?"
-
-"Yes, now you mention it, I remember that he did. I attached no
-importance to it at the time, my mind being bent upon my own errand."
-
-"That is all I wish to know at present. Keep a stout heart. All may
-yet be well."
-
-So, with a bright smile, I left her, and bade the cabman drive to
-Gerard Street, Soho.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVI.
-
-I ENTER INTO AN ARRANGEMENT WITH SOPHY.
-
-
-At the corner of the street I dismissed the cab, and hurried after a
-familiar figure. It was Sophy, who seemed to be literally flying along
-the pavement, now on one leg, now on the other, and had she not
-suddenly wheeled round in my direction I should have had to run at the
-top of my speed to catch her. Seeing me she pulled up, and, with her
-face scarlet with excitement, greeted me boisterously.
-
-"Why, what on earth are you doing, Sophy?" I asked, laughing and
-wondering at her.
-
-She lifted her feet, one after another, for my inspection; she was
-skating on wheels.
-
-"I'm the champion skater," she said, triumphantly; "I shall git a turn
-at the music halls before long. Look 'ere; I can beat the lot of 'em."
-
-Away she flew with marvellous swiftness for a space of fifty yards or
-so, then wheeled round and round and reached my side by executing a
-series of circles in the cleverest manner possible. I have no doubt
-that there are technical terms to describe her feats, but I am not
-acquainted with them.
-
-"There!" she cried. "What do you think of that?"
-
-"You'll break your neck if you don't mind," I said.
-
-"Break my neck!" she exclaimed. "Not me! That's nothink to what I can
-show yer. I _am_ glad to see yer back, I am? Aunty sed you'd give us
-up. 'Not 'im,' sed I; 'he ain't one of the giving-up sort.' You look
-tired out; ain't yer been well?"
-
-"Quite well, Sophy, but, like you, very busy. Is your aunt at home?"
-
-"Yes," said Sophy, bursting into a fit of laughter; "she's down in the
-kitching, with a pore man's plaster on 'er side. I got 'er to put on
-the roller-skates--leastways I put 'em on for 'er--and the minute she
-stood up in 'em she toppled over and fell agin the dresser. She ain't
-'urt much, but she likes to make a lot of a little. I'm all over
-bruises, I am, but I don't fuss over 'em."
-
-"You shouldn't play tricks on her," I said gravely; "she has been a
-good friend to you."
-
-"Oh, I don't know about that," said Sophy, with a rebellious toss of
-her head. "She makes me pay for it, nagging at me morning, noon, and
-night. But there, I ain't going to say nothink agin 'er. She's got a
-temper, and so 'ave I."
-
-"She has been greatly worried, Sophy; you must be gentle with her."
-
-"I'll do anythink _you_ tell me; you don't bully a gal, you don't. If
-you told me to go and jump off the top of the Monument I'd do it--yes,
-I would, though you mightn't believe me."
-
-"I shall not ask you to do anything so stupid, but you can render me a
-service, if you have the will and the pluck."
-
-"Can I?" she exclaimed, eagerly. "I ain't much to look at, but I've
-got the pluck of a big 'un. Only you tell me what it is."
-
-"It will first depend upon whether your aunt can spare you. We will go
-in and see her."
-
-"She'll 'ave to spare me, and if she don't like it she may lump it.
-Now I know yer want me, I ain't going to let yer off."
-
-"You appear anxious to serve me, Sophy."
-
-"I'm going to serve yer," she said, with emphatic nods. "There's
-nothink mean about _you_. When a gent makes a promise he sticks to
-it."
-
-"A promise, Sophy!"
-
-"Didn't yer promise yer'd give me somethink to do for yer--and didn't
-yer say jest now it depends upon whether I've got the pluck to do it?
-That settles it. I've got the pluck, and the thing's as good as done.
-Nobody in all the world 'as been as good to me as you've been, and it
-ain't likely I shall ever forgit it. You'll see. One day when I'm
-Somebody," and here the grateful girl gyrated round me gently, and
-really with grace--"yer'll be proud of 'elping me on, and then I'll
-show yer I can remember."
-
-"Your aunt can't be left alone," I said, after a moment's
-consideration. "Do you know of any girl or woman who would take your
-place here while you are away for a week or two?"
-
-"I know twenty that'll be glad of the job. I'm to go away, am I?" Her
-eyes glittered at the prospect of an adventure. "I'm ready this minute
-Where to?"
-
-"I'll tell you all about it after I've spoken with your aunt. It isn't
-an easy task I shall set you, Sophy."
-
-"The 'arder it is the better I shall like it."
-
-"Do you think you could play a part?" I asked.
-
-"On the stage?" she cried, eagerly.
-
-"No; off the stage."
-
-"On or off," she said, with a shade of disappointment, "it don't
-matter. I'm game for anythink. Let's git aunty settled fust."
-
-Sophy, being now provided with a latch-key, opened the street door,
-and taking off her roller skates in the passage, preceded me
-down-stairs. Mrs. Middlemore was darning stockings, and seemed
-cheerful enough, but when she looked up and saw us her face assumed a
-colorless expression, and she pressed her hand to her side. Sophy
-winked at me, and said, in a whisper, "She's putting of it on; she
-ain't 'urt a bit, no more than you are."
-
-"Oh, good evening, sir," said Mrs. Middlemore, mournfully. "What are
-yer whispering about, Sophy?"
-
-"Only telling the gent," replied the unblushing girl, "not to speak
-too loud, 'cause of yer nerves, aunty."
-
-"It's all Sophy's doings, sir," moaned Mrs. Middlemore. "She made me
-put on a pair of rollers that's going to break 'er legs afore she's
-done with 'em. She's a double 'andful, sir; I can't manage 'er."
-
-"She has told me of the accident," I said, "and is very sorry for it.
-Sophy means well, Mrs. Middlemore."
-
-"I won't dispute with you, sir, but she'll be the death of me if she
-goes on as she's a-doing of now. You've been away a long time, sir."
-
-"Not so very long; I had important business in the country to attend
-to. Nothing has happened, except your accident, during my absence, I
-suppose?"
-
-"Nothink as I can think of, sir."
-
-"No more visitors in disguise; no more false summonses to the police
-court?"
-
-"No, sir--only I've got my fancies."
-
-"What kind of fancies?"
-
-Mrs. Middlemore looked timorously around, and Sophy answered for her.
-"There's a sperrit in the 'ouse, she ses. She 'ears it moving about,
-and she's ready to swear in the middle of the night that it's
-a-standing at the foot of the bed."
-
-"Do you also hear and see it, Sophy?" I asked.
-
-"Not me," replied Sophy, contemptuously. "It's a wide-awake sperrit,
-and makes itself scarce when I'm about."
-
-"Ah, well," I said, "there's no accounting for fancies. Let us get to
-business, Mrs. Middlemore. I intend to rob you of Sophy for a little
-while."
-
-"Rob me of Sophy, sir!" exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore. "What on earth am I
-to do without 'er?"
-
-"Oh, you will get along very well without her----"
-
-"But you don't know what a 'elp she is to me, and 'ow good she's been.
-I've got that fond of 'er that I don't like 'er to be out of my sight.
-You're joking, sir, ain't yer?"
-
-"Not at all," said I, smiling at this sudden display of affection. "I
-have something for Sophy to do, and if she undertakes it she will get
-well paid for the job."
-
-"Never mind about my being paid for it," interposed Sophy; "I'm going
-to do it, whatever it is."
-
-"And leave me 'ere all alone!" whimpered Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"You will not be alone. The first thing in the morning a girl shall be
-engaged to keep in the house with you, and I will pay her wages; and
-you shall have an allowance while Sophy's away. Remember what I have
-done for you, and don't make any further objections."
-
-"I'm sure you've been very good, sir," said Mrs. Middlemore, her
-trouble lessened by the prospect of gain; the virtues of golden
-ointment are not to be excelled. "Might I take the liberty of arksing
-whether it's got anythink to do with Mr. Felix?"
-
-"I cannot answer you," I said. "What Sophy will do will be a secret
-between her and me for the present. By and by, perhaps, she will tell
-you all about it."
-
-"You've got a way with you, sir, that nobody can't resist. You'll come
-back to me, Sophy?"
-
-"Course I will, aunty," said the girl, "when the job's done."
-
-"And now, Sophy," I said "if you will come upstairs with me we will
-have a little chat. Then you can decide."
-
-"I've decided already," said Sophy, and she followed me to the
-sitting-room which had been occupied by M. Felix.
-
-Everything apparently was the same as on the night of the
-disappearance of M. Felix's body. I was aware of only one article
-which was missing after Dr. Peterssen's visit to the house, and that
-was the revolver which M. Felix kept under his pillow. I had no doubt
-in my mind that Dr. Peterssen had taken advantage of his being alone
-in the house, on the occasion of Mrs. Middlemore's unnecessary visit
-to the Bow Street Police Station, to appropriate other articles, but
-only the revolver and the desk--which he had taken away on the night
-of his interview with M. Felix--were within my knowledge. It is true
-that even this knowledge was gained by means of circumstantial
-evidence which would scarcely have been admitted in a court of law,
-but I was quite satisfied on the point, and I had the strongest moral
-conviction that time would prove the correctness of my conclusions.
-
-"Sit down, Sophy," I said, "and think of nothing else but what I am
-about to say to you."
-
-"I'm a-doing of it," said Sophy, with a look of absolute concentration
-that strengthened my confidence in her, and spoke volumes in favor of
-her being, as she hoped, somebody one day.
-
-"You remember the day on which your aunt was sent to Bow Street Police
-Court by a man whom she left in the house alone?"
-
-"Yes, I do."
-
-"You said you saw the man. Would you know him again?"
-
-"I'd swear to 'im."
-
-"On the night that Mr. Felix's body disappeared you were the only
-person in the house who knew anything at all of the matter. You
-behaved like a little heroine on that occasion, Sophy."
-
-"That's something good, ain't it?"
-
-"Something very good. There is no possibility, I suppose, of your
-being able to give me a description of the man who, by some strange
-means, got into the house on that night?"
-
-"I can't tell you nothink more about 'im. It was in the dark, yer
-know, and when he spoke it was under 'is breath."
-
-"The question was an idle one, but I was bound to ask it. It may or
-may not have been the same man who deceived your aunt. Sophy, the man
-you saw and can swear to is an infernal scoundrel, and I look upon him
-as my enemy."
-
-"That's enough for me; he's mine, too, and I'm 'is."
-
-"You can keep a secret, Sophy."
-
-"You tell me one, and wild 'orses sha'n't tear it from me."
-
-"You are a faithful little soul, and I put great trust in you.
-Everything I am saying to you is a secret."
-
-"That's enough," said Sophy, touching her lips with her fingers. "Red
-'ot pinches shouldn't git it out of me."
-
-"The man you saw was in this house, to my certain knowledge, once
-before--while M. Felix was alive. Your aunt did not know it; M. Felix
-opened the street door for him. It was the night M. Felix was found
-dead, and when the man went away he took a desk with him that belonged
-to M. Felix."
-
-Sophy nodded. "Aunty's spoke to me about that desk. She never could
-make out, she ses, what 'd become of it."
-
-"I will describe it to you, Sophy." I did so, and she listened
-attentively, nodding from time to time with surprising intelligence.
-"If you happen to see this desk in the possession of the man whom I
-look upon as my enemy, do you think you could identify it?"
-
-"Know it again? Yes, I should. But 'ow am I to git to the man?"
-
-"I have thought of a plan, or rather a friend of mine has, which
-requires courage to carry it out successfully. It requires something
-more than courage; without great good sense and coolness the plan
-would fail. The question is whether you possess those qualities."
-
-"It ain't no question at all; I've got what you want, and can do what
-you want."
-
-"There is something in the desk, Sophy, that is of the utmost
-importance to me."
-
-"And I'm to git it for yer. All right. Smuggle me into the 'ouse, and
-consider it done."
-
-"But you don't know what kind of a place it is, my girl. It's a
-private madhouse." Sophy did not blench; she simply nodded, and fixed
-her large brown eyes on my face. "The man's name," I continued, "is
-Peterssen, Dr. Peterssen. If he wanted a young girl as a servant you
-should apply for the situation, but I don't think there is a vacancy
-in his establishment. He is ready to take more patients, though, and
-he likes young patients better than old ones."
-
-"You're going to put me in there as a mad gal," cried Sophy, in a tone
-of irrepressible excitement, which lasted, however, only for a moment.
-She cooled down instantly, and said in her usual tone, "Crikey! That's
-a good move. I'm game! It's a good part to play, and no mistake."
-
-"You'll do it, then?"
-
-"Do it? Won't I do it? Why, I never thought I'd 'ave sech a chance."
-
-"You will have to be respectably dressed, Sophy, hands and face nice
-and clean, and hair very tidy. How long in the morning will it take
-you to do that?"
-
-"You git me the clothes and I won't keep yer waiting. I'll give myself
-a good scrub to-night."
-
-"I've only one fear for you," I said, "which you won't mind my
-mentioning. Going as a girl in a respectable position, your language
-might draw suspicion upon you. I can't see a way out of that
-difficulty."
-
-"I can," said Sophy, with a merry twinkle. "Why should I speak at all?
-Let me go as a dumb gal. It'll be more than ever they can manage to
-git a word out of me if I was there for a year."
-
-I looked at her admiringly. Her sharp wits had solved a problem which
-had greatly perplexed me.
-
-"You are sure you will not be afraid, Sophy?"
-
-"Not a bit afraid; I shall enjoy it. It'll be a reg'lar game."
-
-"Very well, then. You can sleep upon it to-night, and if you alter
-your mind you can let me know. I shall sleep here myself, and shall be
-up early in the morning. There will be a great deal to do, and no time
-must be lost. Goodnight. Say nothing to your aunt."
-
-She nodded smilingly, bade me good-night, and left me to my
-reflections.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVII.
-
-I RECEIVE A STRANGE VISITOR.
-
-
-Before I went to bed a little incident occurred which it may be as
-well to mention. It will be in the remembrance of the reader that when
-I discovered the dagger which M. Felix had thrown at Emilia on the
-occasion of her visit to him, I placed it behind the massive sideboard
-in the sitting-room, my purpose being to conceal it from prying eyes.
-Curious to see whether the weapon had been disturbed I took a candle
-and looked. It was still there, and I was about to move away when my
-attention was attracted to another object which lay edgewise by its
-side. This object was a photograph, which had evidently dropped behind
-the sideboard, and had lain there neglected for some time. Thinking it
-might be the photograph of M. Felix I managed to nick it forward, and
-presently was able to reach it with my hand. It was covered with dust,
-which I blew away, disclosing the picture of a young man with a
-handsome, prepossessing face. "If this is a likeness of M. Felix," I
-mused, "it proves how little the features of a man are an index to his
-character." There was something peculiarly winning in the expression
-of the face; and there was a smile in the eyes and on the lips. The
-picture had faded with time, but was still distinct and clear in its
-outlines. I determined to ask Mrs. Middlemore in the morning whether
-it was a likeness of M. Felix, and I put it on the table and retired
-to bed. I had had a long and tiring day, and I slept soundly. At eight
-o'clock I jumped up, ready and eager to resume the task upon which I
-was engaged. I had almost finished dressing when my eyes fell upon the
-picture I had found upon the previous night, and I took it again in my
-hand and examined it by the morning's light. Looking at the back of
-the card I saw some writing there, the name of a man and a date which
-fixed the time at nineteen years ago. The name was "Gerald Paget."
-
-I was inexpressibly relieved. The picture, then, was not that of M.
-Felix, but of Emilia's husband. I was glad to possess it, and glad
-also of the mute evidence it presented, denoting that the original
-must have been of a frank and honest nature. I put it in my pocket
-without scruple; intrinsically the portrait was of no value, and I
-considered myself entitled to appropriate it. To make sure, however,
-that the likeness was not that of M. Felix, I showed it to Mrs.
-Middlemore, without informing her how I had become possessed of it.
-She had never seen it, she said, and it was not a portrait of M.
-Felix, who was a different kind of man. Satisfied on this point I went
-out with Sophy to hire a servant to take her place in her absence. We
-had no difficulty in obtaining one; as Sophy had said, we could have
-obtained a score, and we picked out the nicest and most amenable, the
-choice being Sophy's, upon whose judgment in this selection it was
-safest to depend. The new domestic being officially installed in Mrs.
-Middlemore's kitchen, I gave that worthy woman "something on account,"
-and bade her good-morning, and told her that Sophy and I would
-probably be absent for two or three weeks.
-
-"You'll take care of 'er, sir, I'm sure," said Mrs. Middlemore.
-
-"You need have no anxiety," I replied. "She will be quite safe with
-me."
-
-Before these words were exchanged I had asked Sophy whether she was
-still of the same mind as she had been on the previous evening.
-
-"'Course I am," said Sophy. "I wouldn't give it up for nothink you
-could orfer me."
-
-She had given herself "a good scrub," and had tidied her hair, and I
-was surprised at the difference this made in her appearance.
-
-"Now, Sophy," I said, after I had bidden Mrs. Middlemore good-by,
-"here are four sovereigns. Go to some wardrobe shop where you are not
-known, and buy a complete outfit of second-hand decent clothes,
-stockings, petticoats, boots, and everything you wear, and come to my
-rooms in them at half-past one. Be careful that you choose neat
-clothing, nothing showy or conspicuous; the way you are dressed the
-next time I see you will prove whether you understand what it is I
-wish you to do."
-
-"You sha'n't find fault with me," said Sophy, with tears in her eyes.
-"I never thought I should 'ave sech a slice of luck as this."
-
-At noon I was in my chambers, having arranged with the editor of the
-_Evening Moon_ for another absence from duty. Bob Tucker was to come
-at one, and I employed the intervening minutes in setting things right
-in my rooms. I should have liked to go to Emilia for the purpose of
-showing her the picture I had found, and of receiving confirmation
-that it was a portrait of her husband, but I had not the time. The
-chimes of Westminster had just proclaimed the half-hour when I heard a
-knock at the outer door of my chambers. "Bob is early," I thought, and
-I went and opened the door. A stranger confronted me, a middle-aged
-man, with sandy hair and light fluffy whiskers, and of a rather
-ponderous build.
-
-"I have come to see Mr. Agnold," said the stranger.
-
-"He is busy," I replied, testily, "and cannot be seen." I did not know
-the man, and the business I had to transact was too important for
-interruption.
-
-"I will wait," said the stranger, coolly.
-
-"It will be useless waiting," I said. "Mr. Agnold cannot be seen
-to-day."
-
-"I will wait till to-morrow," said the stranger, pulling his fluffy
-whiskers, and gazing at me with more than warrantable attention.
-
-"Yes," I said, "call to-morrow, and unless your errand is urgent and
-personal do not call at all. Mr. Agnold's time is valuable."
-
-I closed the door unceremoniously in his face and re-entered my
-sitting-room. My behavior is open to an unfavorable construction, I
-admit, but bachelors living in chambers in the houses roundabout are
-much annoyed by persons who intrude at all unseasonable hours, and who
-for the most part turn out to be commercial travellers desirous to
-show you samples of goods you do not want. But there was another
-reason in this particular instance for my unceremonious treatment of
-the uninvited visitor. All the time he was speaking to me I was
-conscious that he was observing me in a manner which I resented. There
-was an intentional rudeness in his pertinacious scrutiny which aroused
-in me a certain anger, which, reasonably or unreasonably, was a guide
-in my conduct toward him.
-
-I resumed my employment, but my mind was disturbed by the incident,
-and I could not drive it away. The man could not be a commercial
-traveller, I reflected, for those individuals are models of pleasantry
-and politeness, and do everything in their power to win your good
-graces. What, therefore, could be his object in paying me a visit? Had
-I done wrong in sending him away without inquiring its nature?
-
-"Confound the fellow!" I said. "He has got into my head and is likely
-to remain there, a fixture. I suppose he has gone."
-
-I went to the door and threw it open. On a little bench in the lobby
-outside sat the man, quietly and patiently.
-
-"Not gone!" I cried.
-
-"Not gone," he replied.
-
-"You heard what I said, did you not?"
-
-"Perfectly. You said Mr. Agnold cannot be seen to-day. Upon which I
-replied that I would wait till to-morrow."
-
-"To wait here?" I exclaimed.
-
-"Yes, to wait here till to-morrow, or the next day, or the next. In
-point of fact, to wait till I have had a few minutes' chat with Mr.
-Agnold."
-
-"I am Mr. Agnold," I said, angrily.
-
-"I knew that all along," he said, with irritating politeness.
-
-"What is it you want with me? Will you detain me long?"
-
-"Not very long; it will depend upon yourself. I come on behalf of Dr.
-Peterssen."
-
-My anger instantly subsided; I became as cool as my visitor.
-
-"Enter," I said, "and let us get it over. Who is Dr. Peterssen, and
-what has he got to do with me, or I with him?"
-
-These last words were spoken when my visitor and I were standing face
-to face in my sitting-room.
-
-"Oh, I am not here to answer questions," said my visitor. "I have a
-commission to execute, and a question or two myself to ask on behalf
-of Dr. Peterssen."
-
-"Which I shall answer or not, as I please."
-
-"Of course it is entirely within your discretion; I cannot force you;
-I am merely an instrument."
-
-"I must know with whom I am conversing," I said, "before we proceed
-further."
-
-He handed me a card, on which was printed, "Mr. Nettlefold, The Elms,
-Ealing."
-
-"I never heard of you," I said, putting the card on the table.
-
-"I can't help that," he responded. "Perhaps it will expedite matters
-if I inform you that I do not come from Dr. Peterssen direct. Before
-presenting myself to you I paid a visit to Mr. Bob Tucker."
-
-I was confounded. Was the cunning scheme suggested by Bob, and to
-carry out which I had enlisted Sophy's services, to be nipped in the
-bud?
-
-"Mr. Tucker," continued Mr. Nettlefold, "refused all explanations, and
-referred me to you, who, it seems, are the prime mover in this
-affair."
-
-"In what affair?"
-
-"As you are aware, Dr. Peterssen resides at Tylney House, Sheldon. He
-desires this fact to be widely known, having no motives for secrecy.
-Mr. Bob Tucker has been prowling about this neighborhood lately,
-making inquiries concerning Dr. Peterssen, and prying into his private
-affairs in a manner to which Dr. Peterssen does not propose to
-submit."
-
-"A nice mess Bob has made of it," I thought. "What a fool I was to
-trust to him!"
-
-"I beg your pardon," said Mr. Nettlefold, "did you speak?"
-
-"I did not."
-
-"I thought I saw your lips move. To continue. Mr. Bob Tucker could not
-have been aware that while he was thus clumsily playing Paul Pry, he
-was himself being watched, and that all the information given to him
-of Dr. Peterssen's affairs was false. When Mr. Tucker left Sheldon he
-was followed and his address in London discovered. He paid you a visit
-last night, and your address was discovered. I am commissioned by Dr.
-Peterssen to inquire your motive for your proceedings?"
-
-"I shall answer no questions. Finish your commission, and go."
-
-"Very well. I am instructed to say that should Mr. Bob Tucker, or you,
-or any person in your employ, come again to Sheldon for the purpose of
-making injurious inquiries, he, you, or the other person will receive
-a sound horsewhipping, and after that a ducking in a convenient pond.
-That is all. Have you anything to say?"
-
-"Just one observation. You can tell Dr. Peterssen in the plainest
-possible terms that I know him to be an infernal scoundrel, and that
-it is my intention to expose him. I shall visit Sheldon very soon, and
-he will have an opportunity of putting his threats into execution; it
-will then be seen who has the most to fear, he or I. There is the
-door, Mr. Nettlefold. Remove yourself quickly, if you do not wish to
-be removed."
-
-To my astonishment, my visitor, instead of hurrying to the door, threw
-himself into my most comfortable arm-chair, and burst into a loud fit
-of laughter. I had not recovered from my astonishment before he spoke.
-
-"Capital. Capital. Settled my disguise last night. Carried it out this
-morning. Took me about an hour. Altered my voice. Altered the way I
-speak as Bob Tucker. Changed my clothes. And my hair. And my manner.
-Rather good isn't it? Compliment me."
-
-And there in my chair sat, not Mr. Nettlefold, but my old friend Bob
-Tucker, laughing and wagging his head at the trick he had played me.
-
-"Upon my word, Bob," I said with a feeling of great relief, "you gave
-me a turn. I should never have known you."
-
-"Thought you wouldn't. When I looked in the glass didn't know myself.
-Thought I was another fellow. Thought I'd try it on you first, to make
-sure, you know."
-
-"Bob," I said, shaking hands heartily with him, "you're splendid.
-Scotland Yard's a fool to you. I would trust you with my life."
-
-"You might. It would be quite safe with me. So long as you kept your
-breath. Think I'm a match for Peterssen?"
-
-"For a dozen Peterssens. You're a gem of the first water. I've hardly
-got over it."
-
-"Don't think any more of it. Plenty of time by and by. Always knew I
-was cut out for this sort of thing. Let's to business. You see what
-I've done. What have you done?"
-
-"I have got the girl."
-
-"Good. Sharp! Clever! Cool!"
-
-"You shall see her; she will be here soon."
-
-Then I related to him everything I knew of Sophy, and dwelt especially
-upon her behavior on the night of the disappearance of the body of M.
-Felix, which I could see made a powerful impression upon him.
-
-"By Jove!" he exclaimed. "Got pluck, that girl. Seems just the article
-we want."
-
-His admiration increased when I told him of the expedient suggested by
-Sophy to keep her lack of education from the knowledge of Dr.
-Peterssen's people.
-
-"She's a nugget," he said. "Take quite an interest in her already.
-Possibilities in that girl. She will come through this affair with
-flying colors."
-
-"That is my opinion, Bob. She will be a relation of yours, I suppose."
-
-"Step-daughter," he said, with a wink. "By my first wife. The girl in
-the way then. Much more in the way now. Why? Her mother's dead, and
-I'm married again. Conundrum. What relation is she to my second wife?
-Work it out. Name, Maria. A perfect encumbrance. Dumb from her birth.
-And silly. Horrible nuisance. No vice in her. Not dangerous in the
-least. Therefore, friendly patient. No restraint or punishment. To be
-allowed to go about the house and grounds. Do as she likes. Must sleep
-in room by herself. Will give no trouble. Quarter paid in advance.
-Make her happy, and she shall remain for years. Must be kindly
-treated. Will programme do?"
-
-"It is excellently arranged."
-
-"I go down as Mr. Nettlefold, The Elms, Ealing. Cousin of mine lives
-there. Should letters addressed Nettlefold arrive, will forward them
-on to me wherever I am. As I say, go down as Mr. Nettlefold. Leave
-Sheldon as such. Return to Sheldon as another man. To watch over
-Sophy, otherwise Maria. Got danger signals ready." He produced a
-number of small pellets, some blue, some white, weighted, and attached
-to thin cords. "Sophy," he continued, "otherwise Maria, ties these to
-underclothing. Stays. String of petticoat. Anything. Detaches one when
-required. I'll instruct her. Every day one thrown over wall. None
-thrown, go in and see her. Quite safe. Will she remain long?"
-
-I answered that I thought she would be able to get hold of the desk in
-less than a week, and that under no circumstances should she remain
-longer than a fortnight. If she could not accomplish her task in that
-time it would be useless to keep her there. We continued talking about
-the arrangements till half-past one, when my faithful and punctual
-Sophy made her appearance. She looked the picture of neatness, and her
-eyes beamed when I expressed approval of her attire. Bob gazed upon
-her with satisfaction.
-
-"She'll do," he said. "You keep quiet. I'll take her in hand."
-
-I left it to him to explain matters and to teach her her lesson. He
-could have had no apter pupil; in less than half an hour she was
-proficient.
-
-"We start, the three of us," said Bob, "at three o'clock. Not for
-Sheldon. Four miles from there is a large village, Nutford. We put up
-there. Arrive six-twenty. Have dinner. Dark night. Walk to Sheldon.
-Reconnoitre. Show you the wall, where you can get over. If you want
-to. Show you where to throw pellets. Four o'clock every afternoon.
-Convenient time. Dr. Peterssen probably away. Feel all right?"
-
-"As right as a trivet," said Sophy.
-
-"You're a girl--after my own heart. Have something to eat before we
-start. Tuck away."
-
-At three o'clock we were in the train which was to convey us to our
-destination.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLVIII.
-
-SOPHY ENTERS DR. PETERSSEN'S ESTABLISHMENT AS A FRIENDLY
-PATIENT.
-
-
-Having engaged comfortable quarters at the Bell and Horns, Nutford, we
-had a tea-dinner, and started to walk to Sheldon. It was a fine night,
-and Sophy distinguished herself as a pedestrian; the four-mile walk
-was accomplished in an hour and twenty minutes by the watch. The one
-narrow street of which the village could boast was still and quiet;
-not a soul was to be seen in it.
-
-"After seven o'clock at night," said Bob, "place like a churchyard.
-Sleepy Hollow a paradise compared to it."
-
-There was something inexpressibly depressing in the aspect of the
-street; the two or three poor shops were closed, and neither in them
-nor in the cottages was there a sign of life. The suggestion of a
-grave came to my mind.
-
-"Remember Eden?" asked Bob, who was in the best of spirits. "Mark
-Tapley would have grown fat here."
-
-At the end of the street we crossed a common, and then traversed an
-avenue of mournful trees, bounded by a stone wall.
-
-"The outskirts of Tylney House," said Bob, with the air of a
-professional guide. "House can't be seen from this point. Nor from any
-point in particular. Lies in a valley. Observe the jagged glass at top
-of wall. Just here there's a bare spot. Think you could climb over it,
-Sophy, otherwise Maria?"
-
-"Git over it like a bird," said Sophy. The conversation was carried on
-in low tones, Sophy's voice being sepulchral, in view of the part of
-the dumb patient she was presently to enact.
-
-"Good girl. Prove yourself. There's a tree. Show us a climb."
-
-It was a branchless tree, with scarce a knob on its straight trunk,
-and with nothing to hold on by, but Sophy tackled it unhesitatingly,
-and was a dozen feet above our heads in a twinkling. There she
-perched, peering over the wall into the grounds of Tylney House.
-Presently she scrambled down, and nudging Bob, said,
-
-"Will that do?"
-
-"You've got the heart of a lion," said Bob, admiringly. "I've no fears
-for you. Can you read?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Write?"
-
-"No."
-
-"Tell the time?"
-
-"Oh, I can do that."
-
-"That's a blessing. Here's a silver watch. A stem-winder. When we get
-back to Nutford I'll show you how to wind it up. What's the time now?"
-
-"'Arf past eight."
-
-"Correct. That tree is thirty feet high. Or thereabouts."
-
-"What of that?"
-
-"I should say it could be seen by anybody inside that stone wall. By
-you, when you're inside them. Now, Sophy, otherwise Maria, you have
-peculiarities. One, that you're dumb."
-
-"Inside them walls," said Sophy, "I am. Dumb as a fish."
-
-"Another, that you've an unconquerable habit of shying stones."
-
-"I'm a dab at that," said Sophy.
-
-"As a friendly patient," continued Bob, "you must be indulged. When
-you get it into your head to shy stones you're to be let alone. That's
-one of the conditions of your becoming a friendly patient."
-
-"I twig. I'm to shy stones at that tree."
-
-"You are. At certain times of the day. At twelve o'clock by the silver
-watch. At four o'clock by the same."
-
-"Crikey!" exclaimed Sophy. "Yer don't mean to say I'm to have the
-ticker?"
-
-"I do. Bought it for the special purpose. And it's not to be taken
-from you. When you shy stones at hours already stated I shall be
-outside. You don't shy many. Three, or four, or five. One of the
-stones is made of lead. I supply you with them. Here they are." He
-produced the pellets. "I give you some paper that you'll keep in your
-pocket. Lead stone wrapped in white paper means that you're quite
-comfortable. Lead stone wrapped in blue paper means you want to be
-taken away. Things not as they ought to be. That provides for your
-safety. We'll see you're not hurt, Sophy, otherwise Maria. I shall
-understand signals. An idea. Can you whistle?"
-
-"Rather."
-
-"Another of your peculiarities. As a friendly patient you're to be
-allowed to whistle. At twelve o'clock and at four I shall be in this
-neighborhood. I hear you whistle. I see the stones you shy, _and_ the
-bit of lead wrapped in white paper. She's safe, I say to myself.
-Sophy, otherwise Maria, is quite comfortable with her weather eye
-open. Do you take all this in? Or shall I go over it again?"
-
-"I know it by 'eart," replied Sophy. "It's a reg'lar game, that's what
-it is."
-
-Here I thought it necessary to say a word.
-
-"Suppose no stones at all are thrown, Bob?"
-
-"In that case," said Bob, "without one minute's delay I ring the bell.
-I insist upon seeing my stepdaughter, Sophy, otherwise Maria. Leave it
-to me. I'll undertake that she comes to no harm. Time to get back to
-Nutford."
-
-We left Sheldon without having been observed, I a little doubtful now
-that the adventure was to be seriously commenced, Bob very confident,
-and Sophy very bright. Before we went to bed we had a great deal of
-conversation, and Sophy convinced us that she perfectly understood
-Bob's instructions; then the silver watch was delivered to her as a
-prospective gift in the event of her success, and we retired to rest.
-Bob and I had each brought a Gladstone bag down with us, and Bob gave
-me another instance of his thoughtfulness by producing from his a
-small handbag, furnished with certain necessaries for a girl of
-Sophy's age, which he had purchased in London.
-
-"You have really no fears for her, Bob?" I said as we undressed. He
-and I occupied a double-bedded room.
-
-"Not the least," replied Bob. "She's a gem. Of the first water. Wash
-and comb her regularly--dress her decently--teach her to read and
-write--give her two or three years to grow up in--and there's no
-telling what she may become. Much obliged for the introduction. Much
-obliged also for the business in hand." He said this with perfect
-sincerity. Bob Tucker was in his element.
-
-On the following morning he and Sophy set off for Tylney House. By
-Bob's advice I remained behind in Nutford. It would be best, he said,
-that Dr. Peterssen should not see me.
-
-I waited in great anxiety for his return, and at three o'clock in the
-afternoon he was with me again.
-
-"All arranged," he said. "Sophy is now a friendly patient in Tylney
-House. Did not tell you, did I, that I telegraphed to Peterssen from
-London yesterday afternoon?"
-
-"No," I replied, "I was not aware of it. You lay your plans well,
-Bob."
-
-"No use undertaking a job unless you do. I sent him telegram--'Coming
-to your establishment to-morrow with young patient. SILAS NETTLEFOLD.'
-We arrive in a fly--ring the bell--man appears. I ask, 'Dr. Peterssen
-at home?' 'Name?' inquires the man. 'Silas Nettlefold,' I answer. 'Dr.
-Peterssen is at home,' says man. 'Walk in.' I do. Sophy slouches by my
-side--good actress, that girl. Man eyes her. She doesn't notice him
-apparently. All the same she sees him--and reckons him up. In the
-grounds she picks up stone--looks at it--turns it over in her
-hand--shies it over the wall. 'A way she's got,' I say to man.
-Slip two half-crowns into his hand. He grins, and leads the way.
-Peterssen--damned scoundrel--receives us. I introduce myself--and my
-stepdaughter Maria. He shakes hands with me--no suspicion in his
-manner. I was looking out for that. Puts his thumb under my
-step-daughter's chin--raises her face. She gives a silly laugh, and
-turns away. I explain matters, saying first, 'Can I speak plainly to
-you?' 'I am a man of the world,' he says. 'So am I,' I respond. I
-give him a sly look; he gives me one. I motion Sophy, otherwise Maria,
-out of the room. He rings for man to take her into the grounds. 'Not
-my daughter,' I say; 'my first wife's. Widow when I married her. Now,
-dead. Six weeks ago I married again. Second wife wants her out of the
-house. So do I. More comfortable for all parties. Dumb from her birth;
-quite silly, but has, or will have when she's of age, property.
-Meanwhile I am her guardian. Willing to pay well to have her well
-taken care of. Must not be ill-treated. Am a Christian--so are you.'
-Peterssen smiles; I smile. I continue: 'It is to my interest that she
-shall be happy. I wish her to live a long life--in such an
-establishment as yours--at so much a year, paid in advance. I should
-like her to get fat. The longer she lives, the better for me. If she
-died her property would pass out of my control.' And so on, and so on.
-Peterssen comprehends--grasps the situation. Promises everything I
-ask. Shall be treated as friendly patient, but of course the charge
-will be proportionate. 'Quite so,' I say. Everything then is arranged.
-She will have perfect liberty inside the stone walls. Will be kindly
-treated. Will be allowed to walk freely about the grounds, and to
-indulge her harmless habit of occasional stone-throwing. So far, all
-plain sailing. Then comes question of terms. 'Two hundred a year,' says
-Peterssen, rather stiff. 'We'll not haggle,' I say. Peterssen much
-relieved. He's devilish hard up. Saw it with half an eye. His hand
-stretched out to clutch the money. Took advantage of his eagerness.
-Gave him twenty pounds on account of first quarter. Promise to pay the
-other thirty in a month. After that, regular quarterly payments in
-advance. Peterssen made lame attempts to hold out for larger sum down
-on the nail. I stood my ground. Peterssen gave way. If he'd been flush
-of money would have seen me further first. Interview terminated. We go
-out to Sophy, otherwise Maria. Girl very happy, playing with two
-stones. 'Let her have her way,' I say, 'won't give you a bit of
-trouble.' I wish her good-by. She takes not the slightest notice of
-me. Begins to whistle. Clever girl, Sophy. Gives me a silly look,
-that's all. I speak to man, otherwise keeper, aside. 'Don't bother
-her,' I say, 'and she won't bother you. Treat her kindly, and you get
-a crown a week. Here's first fortnight in advance.' Keeper promises to
-be good to her, and not to interfere with her. A crown a week buys him
-body and soul. Sophy all right. Shake hands with Peterssen, pat Sophy
-on the head, and make my way here. Not in a straight line. Hired fly
-some distance off in another direction. Leave Bob Tucker alone for
-putting people off the scent."
-
-There was nothing to find fault with in Bobgs description; all that I
-had wished for had been cleverly carried out, and everything seemed
-now to depend upon whether the desk of Indian wood was in Dr.
-Peterssen's establishment and whether Sophy would be able to obtain
-possession of it. But it was not without an uneasy feeling that I
-thought of Sophy being at the mercy of such a man as the master of
-Tylney House. Bob did his best to dispel my uneasiness. He was
-positive that Sophy was quite safe. Dr. Peterssen was seldom in the
-house, his inclinations and pleasures lying elsewhere, and the
-management of the establishment was left almost entirely in the hands
-of the keeper who Bob said he had bought for five shillings a week.
-
-"Doesn't get a tip once in a blue moon," said Bob. "That was evident
-from his manner of accepting mine. It was such a novelty that it
-almost knocked him over. Doesn't get too well paid, either. There's a
-tumbledown air about Tylney House which made me think of a man on his
-last legs. One thing is certain. Peterssen's heart is not in it. Mind
-occupied by matters more engrossing. Generally savage look upon his
-face. The fellow's ripe."
-
-"For what, Bob?"
-
-"For any kind of villainy, from pitch and toss to manslaughter.
-Wouldn't stop short of manslaughter. Oh, I know my customer."
-
-"Did you see any of the other patients?" I asked.
-
-"No," answered Bob. "Kept out of the way, most likely. Looked about
-for harmless patient green-grocer's boy spoke of. Didn't catch a
-glimpse of him."
-
-We left Nettlefold that evening, and went to another village on the
-other side of Sheldon. This was done to enable Bob to assume a
-different disguise, in which he was to pay his daily visits to the
-tree outside the stone walls of Tylney House, which was to serve as a
-target for Sophy's stones twice a day; and he told me that he had
-given Sophy explicit instructions how to reach us at our new address.
-It seems that he had the removal in view when we were at Nettlefold,
-and had let Sophy into the secret; and I commended and admired his
-thoughtfulness.
-
-The change of quarters safely made, I had nothing to do but to await
-the course of events. I considered it expedient to keep Bob company,
-so as to be on the spot in case Sophy should make an unexpected
-appearance. Bob's proceedings and methods afforded me some amusement.
-At a quarter to eleven every morning he started for Sheldon, returning
-at a quarter to two. An hour afterward he started again for the same
-place, returning at a quarter to six. He was punctuality itself, and
-his movements resembled those of a well-regulated clock. Every time he
-returned he said, "Sophy quite safe. Three stones, and a pellet
-wrapped in white paper. Whistling like a bird. Sophy getting fine
-markswoman. Two of the stones hit tree. Capital exercise for muscles
-this stone-throwing. Pity Sophy can't write. She would be able to tell
-us news." He kept an exact record of all his proceedings, and devoted
-a separate page, more than one, if necessary, to each entry. "In
-matters like this," he said, "avoid confusion. Be precise. My diary
-saves a world of trouble in deciding absolutely what was done at such
-an hour on such a day." The time, I must confess, hung heavily on my
-hands, and I would much rather have been an active worker in the task
-upon which we were engaged. However, I had no choice. I wrote
-regularly to my people at home and to Emilia, who thus became
-acquainted with my country address, and it was to Emilia's knowledge
-of my whereabouts which led to unforeseen diversions in the plans I
-had so carefully mapped out.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER XLIX.
-
-M. BORDIER JOINS THE HUNT.
-
-
-On the twelfth day I said:
-
-"Bob, I think I shall run up to London."
-
-"By all means," said Bob, cheerfully, a sign that my society was not
-indispensable to him, and that he was not wearying of his task.
-"Should anything occur I will telegraph to you. To which address,
-though?"
-
-"Repeat your telegrams," I said, "to my chambers and my mother's
-house. I shall be back in two days, and if by that time things are
-still in the same position I think you should pay a visit to Sophy,
-and contrive somehow to speak to her. This inaction is intolerable."
-
-"You have no patience," said Bob. "The train is laid. What more do you
-want?"
-
-"Movement, Bob, movement." I looked at my watch. "Mustn't lose the
-train. I'm off."
-
-And off I was, and in a few minutes whirling toward London. It was
-destined, however, that I should not reach there as early as I
-expected. We were midway when the train slackened, crawled along a few
-hundred yards, then came to a standstill.
-
-"What's the matter?" I called to the guard, thrusting my head out of
-the window.
-
-"Engine broke down, sir," was the answer. "Can't get on."
-
-"Confound it!" I cried. "How long shall we have to wait?"
-
-"There's no knowing, sir. Not till to-morrow morning, perhaps."
-
-"But it is impossible for me to remain here all night."
-
-"Very sorry, sir. It doesn't depend upon me. Accidents will happen."
-
-Fretting and fuming would not mend matters, and I was compelled to
-submit. It turned out as the guard had indicated. Something else had
-occurred on the line which rendered it out of the question that
-another engine could be sent to our aid, and we did not arrive in
-London till the afternoon of the following day. I hastened at once to
-my chambers, then visited the office of the _Evening Moon_, and then
-proceeded to my mother's house, which I did not reach till six o'clock
-in the evening. The moment the street door was opened Emilia ran into
-the passage to greet me.
-
-"You have seen him," she cried, "and he has explained all."
-
-"Seen whom?" I asked, very much astonished, "and what is there to
-explain?"
-
-"You have not met M. Bordier, then," she said, falling back.
-
-"No," I replied. "I left the country suddenly yesterday, and an
-accident happened to the train. I was detained all night."
-
-"I sent you a letter also," said Emilia, "it was posted yesterday
-morning."
-
-"That accounts for my not receiving it. It must have arrived after my
-departure."
-
-I saw that she was agitated, and I led her to the sitting-room, where,
-after exchanging a few words with my mother, we were left alone. Then
-I learnt what had taken place.
-
-M. Bordier, it appears, had visited Emilia every day during my
-absence, and had observed in her signs of suppressed excitement which
-had caused him deep concern. At first he made no comment upon this
-change in her, but at length he questioned her, and, receiving no
-satisfaction, told her with delicate pointedness that he deemed it her
-duty to confide in him if she were in any trouble. Still she evaded
-his inquiries, and this with marks of such extreme distress that he
-became more pressing in his desire that she should be candid and
-straightforward with him. I will give what afterward transpired in
-Emilia's own words.
-
-"He came the night before last," she said, "and asked to speak
-privately with me. I could not refuse him; it appeared to me as if my
-refusal to appease his natural curiosity had aroused suspicions which
-might be fatal to my daughter's happiness. He spoke very kindly, but
-very firmly. Considering the relations in which we stood to each
-other, he had come to a decision which it was right should be
-communicated to me. Before doing so he would ask me a question or two
-to which he expected frank answers. He asked me how long I had known
-your family. I replied, about two weeks. Had I any previous knowledge
-of them? I said no. Through whom had I become acquainted with them? I
-said, through you. He then asked who and what you were; I told him,
-trembling all the time, because his questions were leading straight to
-the secret I was hiding from him. Had I any previous knowledge of you,
-he asked; were you related to me in any way? I answered that you were
-not related to me, and that I had made your acquaintance only since my
-arrival in London. Were you acquainted with the cause of my trouble,
-he asked. I said yes, you were, and that you were endeavoring to
-befriend me. He reflected a little before he continued, and when he
-spoke it was in the same kind and gentle voice, but more firmly than
-before. 'It amounts to this,' he said, 'that you have a secret which has
-brought grief upon you, and that you confide this secret to a stranger
-and deny it to me. I draw from this a reasonable inference--that you
-have a trouble of a private nature which you are deliberately concealing
-from those who have a right, if anyone has the right, to share it with
-you. Is it a pecuniary trouble?' I answered that it was not, and he said
-that he regretted it, as then it might be easily got over. He then
-referred to the conversation we had in Geneva, when he came to speak to
-me about Julian's attachment to my dear child, and to a remark he had
-made that the time would arrive when it would be necessary that he
-should become acquainted with certain particulars of my past life. My
-heart fainted within me when he bluntly inquired whether my secret was
-in any way connected with my past history. I could make but one reply,
-yes. 'Do you not see,' he said, 'that you are creating suspicions in my
-mind, and that I am beginning to ask myself whether I should be doing
-my duty as a father if I allowed the engagement between our children to
-continue? Be advised for your own sake, for theirs. Tell me everything;
-accord to me at least the privileges you have accorded to a stranger. I
-have the reputation of being a just man, and I know that I have none
-but kindly feelings toward you. There are difficulties, I admit, in
-many human lives which need the skill of a strong man to surmount. I
-place my knowledge of the world and my goodwill at your service, and if
-you refuse to avail yourself of them your conduct will inspire me with
-very grave doubts.' Thus driven, what could I do? It seemed to me that
-it would be the wisest course to confide implicitly in him, and I did
-so. I laid bare the story of my life, from my earliest remembrance to
-the hour the disclosure was made. The errand upon which I came to
-England, my adventures here, my meeting with you, my interview with
-Gerald's brother--nothing was concealed; I even searched my mind to be
-sure that not a detail was omitted. And then I threw myself upon his
-mercy. I swore solemnly to the truth of my story, and to my belief that
-the marriage ceremony was genuine. 'To part from your son now,' I said,
-'will break my daughter's heart. In mercy to her, have pity!' 'From my
-inmost soul I pity you,' he said. 'I believe your story; I believe you
-to be honestly married; but it must be proved; we must be able to hold
-up our heads in the face of the world. You say there is a chance of
-the copy of your marriage certificate being hidden in the secret
-drawer of the writing-desk you have described, and that a scheme is in
-operation which holds out a hope that the desk may be found. Julian
-loves your daughter; his happiness is bound up in her; and because I
-am his father and love him most sincerely I will do all that lies in
-my power to set this crooked matter straight. I will go down to your
-friend Mr. Agnold as your representative and champion. Give me a
-letter to him which will confer upon me the right to act for you.
-There are means in my hands which Mr. Agnold may not possess, or would
-not naturally be willing to employ, by which we can attain our object.
-I can go myself to this Dr. Peterssen, and offer to purchase the desk
-from him, supposing it to be in his possession. To such a man a large
-sum of money would be a temptation; I would not stop short of five
-thousand pounds; and this, with a guarantee that he shall not be
-molested, and time afforded him to reach another country, may be the
-crowning inducement. Even if he has not the desk, he is pretty sure to
-have learnt from Mr. Gerald Paget the name of the place in which the
-marriage ceremony was performed, and would be willing to sell the
-information for the sum I have named. The proof then would be easy.
-Write a letter at once; I will start to-morrow.' His words, his voice,
-gave me hope. I wrote the letter, and yesterday he left London to
-present it to you."
-
-This was the story which Emilia narrated to me, and I could not blame
-her for acting as she had done. Only I was angry with myself for
-leaving Bob; had I remained I should have seen M. Bordier, and we
-might have discussed matters and brought them to a head. In view of
-what Bob had said of his impression that Dr. Peterssen was very hard
-up, the temptation which M. Bordier was ready to offer would be too
-strong for him. Five thousand pounds was a grand bait, and Dr.
-Peterssen would have accepted it and fled the country.
-
-"You have done right," I said to Emilia.
-
-"How thankful I am that you approve!" she exclaimed. "It seemed to me
-ungrateful that I should take a step so important without consulting
-you."
-
-"You had no choice," I said, "and M. Bordier is a gentleman. Did his
-son accompany him?"
-
-"Poor Julian! I do not know. I fear he is scarcely in a fit state."
-
-I inferred from this that Julian Bordier was ill, but before I had
-time to make an inquiry my mother entered the room.
-
-"A telegram for you," she said, and handed it to me.
-
-I tore it open and read it. "I have strange and important news for
-you. Sophy is with me. Come down at once. Bob."
-
-There was an A B C in the house, and I turned over the pages
-feverishly. I had just twenty-two minutes to catch a train, the last
-of the day, which would enable me to get to Bob at about eleven
-o'clock. Late as it would be I knew that he would expect me. I rapidly
-explained to Emilia the necessity of my immediate departure, and ran
-out of the house. Fortunately a cab was passing. "Drive as if Old Nick
-was at your heels," I said to the cabby, jumping in. "Treble fare."
-The driver cracked his whip, and away we rattled.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER L.
-
-CLEVER SOPHY.
-
-
-Bob was waiting for me on the platform. He was smoking a cigar, and
-did not appear the least flurried. His calm demeanor, being somewhat
-antagonistic to the tone of his telegram, annoyed me.
-
-"Well, Bob?" I said.
-
-"Well, old man?" said he. "Knew you would come down by this train."
-
-"Of course you did," I said irritably. "Now for your news."
-
-"No hurry," he said, phlegmatically. "Plenty of time before us."
-
-"Don't trifle, there's a good fellow. Have you seen M. Bordier?"
-
-"I have seen a gentleman of that name. Introduced himself to me.
-Showed me a letter from your lady friend. It was addressed to you, but
-he made free with it. He had a right to do so perhaps, as it was in an
-unsealed envelope. Who is the gentleman? Has he anything to do with
-this affair?"
-
-"He is an important person in our inquiry, Bob," I replied, "and is
-intimately connected with it."
-
-"Ah," said Bob, dryly. "If I'd been in your place I should have
-mentioned him earlier. He came like a bombshell upon me, and vanished,
-so to speak, like a flash of lightning. Any better, Sophy?"
-
-Then for the first time I noticed the girl. She was crouched up on a
-bench, with her cloak over her head. The words Bob and I had exchanged
-were uttered at a little distance from her, and she had not heard my
-voice. I stepped close to her and removed the cloak from her head.
-
-"Sophy," I said, "are you ill?"
-
-She jumped up and took the hand I held out to her, but did not answer.
-Her face was very white, and there was a look of fear in her eyes.
-
-"Good God!" I cried, with a pang. "Have they been ill-treating her?
-What's the matter with you, Sophy?"
-
-"Not afore 'im," she said. Her throat seemed to be parched, her voice
-was so choked.
-
-"No, they have not ill-treated her," said Bob; "I can answer for that.
-When she came with the desk----"
-
-"You've got the desk!" I cried. Notwithstanding my anxiety for Sophy
-the news excited me, and my attention was diverted from her for a
-moment.
-
-"Yes," said Bob, with a laugh in which I detected a shade of
-bitterness, "we've got the desk. For all the good it's worth. When she
-hopped into my room with it she was as bright as a cricket. Later on
-sent her to bed. Supposed her to be asleep, when she tumbled into the
-room again with a face like--well, look at it. Thought she'd have a
-fit. She'd had a nightmare."
-
-"I hadn't," gasped Sophy.
-
-"I'll take your word for it," said Bob. "Anyway, she wouldn't open her
-lips to me. Very mysterious. She will to you, most likely."
-
-"Yes, I will," said Sophy, still clinging to me; she was trembling all
-over.
-
-"Thought as much," said Bob, who seemed to feel this lack of
-confidence in him very acutely. "There are things to tell. My
-proposition--if I may be allowed to make one--is that we begin at the
-beginning, else we shall get muddled."
-
-"It's the properest way," said Sophy.
-
-"Thank you. Even this slight mark of approval appreciated by yours
-truly. Do I gather that we are friends, Sophy, no longer Maria?"
-
-"In course we are; but I ain't 'ad no nightmare, I've 'ad a scare."
-She offered him her hand, and it really put life into him. He spoke
-more briskly.
-
-"Let us get back to the hotel," he said. "Everything down there in
-black and white--except Sophy's scare--the reason for which I shall be
-glad to hear, if permitted."
-
-"If he likes," said Sophy, "he can tell yer everythink when he 'ears
-it 'isself. It's best it should be led up to." She addressed these
-last words to me.
-
-"For which purpose," said Bob; "march."
-
-I listened to all this in amazement, but I fell in with their humor to
-have Sophy's scare properly led up to, and we walked to the inn in
-comparative silence.
-
-"When did you have your last meal, Sophy?" I asked.
-
-"Two o'clock. Biled beef and cabbage."
-
-"You oaf," I said good-humoredly to Bob, "that's the reason of her
-being so white. She has been ten hours without food."
-
-Bob clapped his hand to his forehead. "I am an ass," he said.
-
-"You ain't," said Sophy, promptly, "and it ain't what made me white.
-But I shouldn't turn my back on a bit of grub."
-
-"And a bit of grub you shall have," said Bob, "the moment we are in
-our room. I've got the right side of the landlady. Cold meat and
-pickles always on tap for Bob Tucker."
-
-In the room Bob was as good as his word. A cold supper was spread
-before Sophy, and a glass of weak brandy and water mixed for her. She
-ate with avidity, and while she was thus employed Bob turned his
-attention to me.
-
-"My diary comes in handy here," he said, and he pushed the book toward
-me. "You will find everything entered, saves a world of talk."
-
-I skimmed through the pages till I reached yesterday's date, under
-which I found my departure for London duly recorded, the brief entry
-being:
-
-"Agnold restless. Gone to London. For no particular reason--but gone."
-
-Further on the record of the present day:
-
-"Six P.M. Just returned from Tylney House. A surprising number of
-stones thrown by Sophy, otherwise Maria. She usually throws three or
-four, never more than five, including pellet in white paper, denoting
-happiness and safety. But this afternoon, quite a shower, including
-four pellets in white paper. Counted altogether eighteen. Does it mean
-anything? Wait till to-morrow. Logical interpretation, that things
-going on more satisfactorily than ever. Something discovered, perhaps.
-A thousand pities Sophy, otherwise Maria, cannot read or write. If the
-latter, could obtain positive information. When this particularly
-clever girl comes out she must begin to learn immediately. Talents
-must have a fair chance. Cruel they should be wasted. See to it.
-Singular no letter from Agnold. But did not promise to write."
-
-Following this was a revelation:
-
-"Sent telegram to Agnold, advising him to come down at once. This is
-putting cart before horse--in this instance allowable. Begin now at
-the beginning of exciting chapter.
-
-"At half-past seven was sitting alone, smoking and ruminating.
-Door suddenly burst open, and Sophy, no longer Maria, rushes in. I
-cry--'What, Sophy!' 'Yes,' she says, out of breath, 'it's me. I've got
-it; I've got it. Where's the other?' (meaning Agnold). I briefly
-explain that he has gone to London, but will return the moment
-telegraphed for. 'Do you mean to tell me,' 'I said,' as excited as
-herself, 'that you've brought the desk?' 'It's 'ere,' she says, and she
-plumps it on the table, also a large door-key. She had carried the
-desk wrapped in her cloak. There is no doubt about the article; it
-exactly answers description given by Agnold. Remarkable girl, Sophy.
-
-"This is her tale--and glad she was to set her tongue going after the
-lock it has had on it for so many days. At Tylney House one day is so
-like another that a lengthy experience of it must be perfectly
-appalling. Sophy says it is like a long funeral. As a friendly patient
-Sophy had the run of the house, and she knows every room in it except
-one--Dr. Peterssen's private apartment, which he occupies when he is
-in evidence. He is seldom in evidence. Absent six days out of seven.
-As there was no sign of desk in any other part of the house, Sophy
-decides that it is in Peterssen's room, if in the house at all. She
-was right.
-
-"Peterssen only been at home two days during Sophy's residence as
-friendly patient. The first time last week. The second time, this. In
-point of fact, this very day. Last week Peterssen stopped about two
-hours in private room. Sophy passed door, through passage, while he
-was within. Couldn't get a peep. Consequently knew nothing of desk.
-Peterssen came out of room, locked door, went away. Most girls would
-have been discouraged at the prospect of such small chance of success.
-Not Sophy. She had made up her mind that the desk was there. There's
-nothing like moral conviction. To-day at one o'clock Peterssen puts in
-an appearance. After dinner, Sophy, on her way into the grounds,
-passes private room. Door ajar. She gets a peep. On the table sees
-desk, cedar-wood, inlaid with silver. Heart beats. Time not wasted.
-Discovery made, but not yet utilized. Watches like a cat. Hears keeper
-say Peterssen going to stop all night. Heart beats faster. Now or
-never. But how is this to be accomplished. This explains meaning of
-such a number of stones thrown over wall. Symbolical, but at the time
-undecipherable to present writer. Quite clear now.
-
-"At ten minutes past five by Sophy's silver watch (her own property
-now), letter arrives for Peterssen. Delivered to him by keeper.
-Evidently unexpected. Evidently of an exciting nature. He reads it,
-and hurries out of house. What has he done with the key of the private
-room? Sophy hears a bunch rattle in his pocket as he rushes past her.
-Almost despairs, but not quite.
-
-"Sophy creeps into passage again. The door is closed. She tries to
-peep through keyhole, but it is blocked. By what? A key. The key being
-inside, Peterssen in haste must have forgotten to lock the door. It
-proves to be so. Sophy has only to put her hand on handle, to turn it
-softly round, and presto! she is in the room. But the desk is not on
-table. Where, then? Under the bed. Before you can say Jack Robinson
-Sophy seizes it, creeps out of room. But first a stroke of genius. She
-removes key of door from inside to outside, turns it in lock, removes
-it from keyhole and retains it. Sublime! When Peterssen returns he
-will find door locked. Will naturally think he has locked it himself.
-Will feel in his pocket for key, without finding it. Will spend time
-in searching for it. All in Sophy's favor. Bravo, little one!
-
-"Sophy reconnoitres. Keeper in grounds. Presently enters house, goes
-up to his bedroom--for private nap, of course. Coast clear. Like a
-shot Sophy is in the grounds. Like a shot she is over the wall, where
-there is no broken glass. How she did it she does not remember.. She
-does not know. Neither do I. But it is done. There she is, over the
-wall, outside Tylney House, instead of inside, with the key of the
-door in her hand, and the precious desk under her arm. It takes my
-breath away.
-
-"Getting here to me takes hers away, She makes mistakes in the roads,
-and comes seven miles instead of four. But she runs the distance, and
-here she is.
-
-"'Sophy,' I say, 'you are a treasure.'
-
-"'I done it all right, didn't I?' she says.
-
-"'You did, my girl, and you deserve a medal.'
-
-"I formally make over the silver watch to her, and promise her a
-silver chain to match. She is in ecstasies, but not quite happy
-because Agnold is not here. I tell her he will be here to-morrow, and
-then I examine the desk. An intense desire seizes me to open it. Right
-or wrong, I determine to do so. I'll chance what Agnold may say when
-he comes back. He should have remained. What made him go to London? He
-had no immediate business there. His immediate business was here.
-
-"Not one of my keys will open the desk. But I can pick a lock, and I
-have some delicate tools with me. For an ambitious man, in the line to
-which I have devoted myself, they are necessary and invaluable.
-
-"I set to work, and very soon, without injuring the lock in the least,
-the desk is open. There are papers in it, but no copy of a marriage
-certificate. Agnold said it would be most likely in a secret drawer,
-but no secret drawer could I discover.
-
-"I was so much engrossed in the examination I was making that I did
-not hear the door opened. But open it was, and the shadow of a man
-fell upon me. Sophy's eyes were closed. She was tired. I looked up. A
-stranger stood before me."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LI.
-
-SOPHY MAKES A STRANGE STATEMENT.
-
-
-"I had never seen Dr. Peterssen, and I imagined it was he who had so
-unexpectedly presented himself. In that case I was in a quandary. The
-desk had been stolen from Dr. Peterssen's house, and the clever little
-thief was dozing in the room. I was implicated in the theft, and had
-forced the lock with burglar's tools. Without counting the cost we had
-taken the law into our own hands--usurped its functions, so to speak.
-Bringing such a man as Dr. Peterssen to book might prove an awkward
-fix for us. However, I determined to brazen it out.
-
-"The desk being open, the wood of which it was made and the silver
-with which it was inlaid were not so apparent as they would have been
-had it been closed. The stranger's eyes did not rest upon it, but
-wandered to Sophy. My gaze followed his, and I was surprised to
-observe that there was no sign of recognition in his face. But he may
-be acting a part, I thought.
-
-"I soon discovered that all my conjectures were wrong.
-
-"'Am I right in supposing that I am addressing Mr. Agnold?' he asked.
-He spoke with a foreign accent.
-
-"'No,' I said, 'my name is not Agnold.'
-
-"'Mr. Tucker, then?'
-
-"'You are right there.'
-
-"'Mr. Agnold mentioned your name in his letters to Mrs. Braham,' said
-the stranger. 'Both you and Mr. Agnold are working in that lady's
-interests. It is exceedingly kind of you.'
-
-"I stared at him. This was not the language that Dr. Peterssen would
-have used, and my first doubts being dispelled, I saw that my visitor
-was a gentleman--which Dr. Peterssen is not. But who could he be? I
-thought it best to hold my tongue; I wished to avoid compromising
-myself.
-
-"'I, also,' continued the stranger, 'am here in Mrs. Braham's
-interests. My business admits of no delay. It is necessary that I
-should see Mr. Agnold immediately.'
-
-"'He is in London,' I said.
-
-"This information appeared to discompose him; but only for a moment.
-
-"'You represent Mr. Agnold?'
-
-"'Yes, I think I may say as much.'
-
-"'Thank you. I have a letter here addressed to him, but it is in an
-open envelope, and as Mr. Agnold's representative there can be no
-objection to your reading it.'
-
-"I read the letter, and now in my turn I must have exhibited some sign
-of discomposure. Without being able to recall its contents word for
-word, I can sufficiently explain its nature. It was to the effect that
-the gentleman who presented it, M. Bordier, was empowered by the lady
-we were working for to join us, if he desired, or to take the affair
-entirely in his own hands, and assume the direction of it.
-
-"'You are M. Bordier?' I said.
-
-"He bowed. 'I am M. Bordier. The position in which Mrs. Braham and I
-stand to each other warrants my presence here at this untimely hour.
-It is due to Mrs. Braham that I should say it was at my urgent request
-she has given me authority to act for her. I am acquainted with all
-the circumstances of your proceedings, so far as they have been
-disclosed in Mr. Agnold's letters.' Again his eyes wandered to Sophy,
-and he moved a step or two toward her with a look of sympathetic
-eagerness. 'Is that the young girl who was taken to Dr. Peterssen's
-establishment as a patient?'
-
-"'Yes,' I replied.
-
-"'Her task, then, is ended. She was in search of a desk. She is a
-brave little girl, and shall be rewarded. A desk of cedar-wood, inlaid
-with silver.' He turned suddenly to me, and approached the table. 'She
-has succeeded,' he said, laying his hand upon the desk and raising the
-lid. 'Yes, it is the desk. How did you open it? Did you have the key?'
-
-"'No,' I said, with a guilty glance at the tools with which I had
-picked the lock.
-
-"'Ah, I see. There is a secret drawer in this desk, and you have been
-seeking for it. Allow me. When I was a young man I had some knowledge
-of this kind of thing, and was acquainted with the tricks employed by
-ingenious makers to construct a receptacle in which important papers
-might be safely concealed. This is no common piece of work, and the
-so-called drawer may be merely a false panel, with little space
-behind, but sufficient for the purpose. I will take the liberty of
-making use of your tools. This dumb shape of wood, Mr. Tucker, may be
-the arbiter of the happiness of human lives, may be the means of
-bringing a foul wrong to light.' While he spoke he was busy measuring
-the thickness of the sides and back and every part of the desk,
-putting down figures on paper to prove whether any space was not
-accounted for. He knew what he was about, and I followed his movements
-with curiosity, learning something from them which may be useful in
-the future. 'There is no actual drawer,' he continued; 'it must be a
-panel.' He completely emptied the desk of its papers, and then began
-to sound the bottom and the sides, listening for signs of a hollow
-space. 'It is a clever piece of workmanship, but if there is a panel I
-will find it. I would rather not destroy the desk, but I will do it
-before I give up the hunt, if I do not succeed in a legitimate way.
-Ah, I have it! There is a panel. A man might have this desk in his
-possession a lifetime and not suspect it. See, it moves in a groove,
-and there is a paper behind.'
-
-"Sure enough, M. Bordier succeeded in sliding a panel in a cunningly
-made groove, and in drawing forth a paper which had been carefully
-folded and flattened and inserted in its hiding-place. There was an
-eager light in his eyes, and his fingers trembled as he unfolded the
-paper and read what was written thereon. A long sigh of satisfaction
-escaped him, and he murmured:
-
-"'Thank God! Poor lady, poor lady! But your sufferings are ended now!'
-
-"'M. Bordier,' I said, will you allow me to read the document?'
-
-"He folded it up again, preserving its original creases, and put it in
-his pocket.
-
-"'Mr. Tucker,' he said, speaking with great politeness; but this he
-had done all through; the document I have found relates to a private
-matter of exceeding delicacy, and I cannot show it to you. It is,
-indeed, a family secret, and none but those directly interested have a
-right to see it. Thanks for your courtesy, and good-night.'
-
-"Before I had time to remonstrate with him for his high-handed
-proceeding he was gone. I was dumfounded. It is not often that I find
-myself unable to act on the spur of the moment, but M. Bordier had
-deprived me of my self-possession. In a moment or two, however, I
-recovered myself, and ran out of the room after my visitor. I saw no
-signs of him. He had vanished. I made my way immediately to the
-telegraph office, and sent Agnold a telegram--which brings me back to
-the commencing words of this entry.
-
-"I returned to my room in the inn. Sophy was still dozing. I began to
-be beset by doubts. What if the stranger who had introduced himself to
-me as M. Bordier should turn out not to be M. Bordier, after all? What
-if the letter he gave me to read from Mrs. Braham should be a forged
-letter? I am greatly to blame. I deserve to have my head punched."
-
-By the time I came to the end of this strange story Sophy had finished
-her supper, and now came nearer to us.
-
-"Well, Bob," I said, "you have made a mess of it."
-
-"Admitted," said Bob. "Take your share of the blame. You should not
-have run away to London. Relieve my doubts. Was it, or was it not, M.
-Bordier who came here?"
-
-"It was certainly M. Bordier," I replied. "The lady you call Mrs.
-Braham gave him such a letter as you have described, and it is
-scarcely possible any other person could have obtained possession of
-it."
-
-"That is some satisfaction. All the same, I have behaved like a fool.
-I ought not to have allowed him to escape me. I ought to have laid
-violent hands on him, and detained him till your arrival."
-
-"You would not have succeeded, Bob. From the opinion I have formed of
-him he would not have submitted, and you would have found yourself
-worsted. If the document he discovered is what I hope it is, he has a
-better right to it than you or I. And now, Sophy," I said, turning to
-the girl, "what is this scare of yours which has taken all the blood
-out of your face?"
-
-"Stop a bit," said Bob. "It is Sophy's desire that things should be
-led up to. Let us lead up to this."
-
-Sophy nodded, and I said, "Go on, Bob."
-
-"Well," said he, "I woke Sophy up when I got back here, and told her
-it was best she should go to bed. Her room was ready for her, and she
-was dead tired. She refused, and said she would wait up for you--I had
-told her I had sent you a telegram to come down immediately. I would
-not let her wait up, but insisted upon her going to bed. She gave in,
-and I took her to her room. Imagine my surprise. An hour before your
-arrival she rushed into this room with a face as white as a sheet, and
-fell down all of a heap into the corner there. I thought she must have
-had a nightmare, but I could get nothing out of her. She was too
-frightened to be left alone, and when I started to meet you at the
-station she came with me. Tried to pump her on the road. Useless.
-Offers of bribes thrown away. Not a word would she say of the cause of
-her fright. She promises to be more communicative to you."
-
-"Speak out, Sophy," I said. "I have no secrets from Mr. Tucker, and he
-must hear what you have to tell."
-
-"You'll never believe me," said Sophy, in a low, fear-stricken tone,
-"but if it's the last I ever speak it's the truth, and the 'ole truth,
-and nothink but the truth. I sor it as plain as I see you."
-
-"Saw what?" I asked.
-
-"The ghost of Mr. Felix," she replied.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LII.
-
-THE GHOST OF M. FELIX.
-
-
-She put her hand on my arm as if for protection as she uttered these
-words, and I took it in mine to reassure her; it was cold as ice. It
-was clear that she had received a shock, and I was disposed to ascribe
-it to the strain she had undergone during the past fortnight. But this
-view was shaken when I thought of her courage and daring.
-
-"What did I tell you?" said Bob, sticking to his guns. "Nightmare."
-
-"That's somethink yer must be in bed to 'ave, ain't it?" said Sophy.
-
-"Yes," said Bob, "and asleep."
-
-"I wasn't neither," said Sophy; "I was as wide-awake as you are."
-
-"Oh, you didn't go to bed when I put you in your room?"
-
-"No, I didn't. I waited a minute or two, and then I went out."
-
-"What made you do that, Sophy?" I asked.
-
-"I don't know, 'xcep' that I wanted to go to the mad'ouse--outside,
-yer know--to see if they'd found out about the desk."
-
-"It was a dangerous thing to do," I said.
-
-"Well, I didn't do it. I 'adn't got 'arf way there when a sperrit
-crep' past me. I told Aunty I didn't believe in sperrits, but I do
-now. I didn't think it was a sperrit at fust, I thought it was a man;
-and I sed to myself, If you can creep, so can I,' and I crep' after
-it."
-
-"But why, Sophy?"
-
-"I don't know why. I did it 'cause somethink made me. All at once it
-stopped and turned, and the moon lit up its face. It was the ghost of
-Mr. Felix."
-
-She was speaking more quietly now, and there was a note of conviction
-in her voice that startled me.
-
-"Is that what you call a nightmare?" she asked of Bob, whose eyes were
-fixed intently upon her.
-
-"No," he replied, "but you were mistaken. It was only a fancied
-resemblance."
-
-"It wasn't nothink of the sort, and I wasn't mistook. I'm ready to
-take my dying oath on it. There ain't two Mr. Felixes, there's only
-one, and it was 'is ghost I sor."
-
-"What did you do, Sophy?" I inquired.
-
-"I stood like a stone, and couldn't move. But when it looked at me,
-and when I 'eered its voice, and when I sor it moving up to me, I give
-a scream, and run away. But I fell down over the stump of a tree, and
-it caught 'old of me and lifted me up. Then it wrenched my face to the
-light, and poked it's 'ead for'ard, and I sor clearer than ever that
-it was Mr. Felix's ghost. I don't know 'ow I managed it, but I twisted
-myself away, and run as I'd never run in my life before till I got
-'ere."
-
-"Is that all, Sophy?"
-
-"That's all I can tell yer. Ain't it enough?"
-
-"If there is any truth in it, my girl, it is more than enough? You
-cannot say whether it followed you?"
-
-"No, I never look behind. It was more than I dared do."
-
-"You heard it speak, you say. What words did it utter?"
-
-"It said, 'What the devil!'"
-
-"Nothing more?"
-
-"Nothink as I 'eerd."
-
-She had told all she knew, and it was useless to question her farther
-upon the subject, so I put it aside for a moment, with the intention
-of talking it over with Bob when we were alone. But I had not yet done
-with Sophy; before I parted with her for the night I was desirous of
-obtaining fuller information of Dr. Peterssen's establishment than she
-had given Bob. She was perfectly willing to tell everything she knew,
-and seemed to be relieved to have her attention turned to other
-matters.
-
-"You had the run of Dr. Peterssen's house, Sophy?"
-
-"Yes, I 'ad."
-
-"How many servants are there in it?"
-
-"Only one--the keeper."
-
-"What is his name?"
-
-"Crawley."
-
-"Did no woman come to do the cleaning or cooking?"
-
-"Nobody come. Crawley did everythink."
-
-"You were not ill-treated?"
-
-"Oh, no."
-
-"Did you have your meals alone?"
-
-"No; the three of us 'ad 'em together."
-
-"The three of you. Dr. Peterssen, Crawley, and you?"
-
-"No; Dr. Peterssen never 'ad nothink with us. I mean the other
-patient."
-
-"But there was more than one?"
-
-"There wasn't while I was there. There was only one."
-
-I turned to Bob. "You said there were children, Bob?"
-
-"So I was informed, but I may have been misled."
-
-"I 'eerd Crawley say the young 'uns were took away the day before I
-come," said Sophy.
-
-"That explains it. So there was only one patient left?"
-
-"Only one."
-
-"A man?"
-
-"A gentleman."
-
-"How did you find out he was a gentleman?"
-
-"Yer can't be mistook between a man and a gent. You're a gent; Mr.
-Tucker's another."
-
-"Much obliged, Sophy," said Bob.
-
-"What is the name of the gentleman patient, Sophy?"
-
-"He didn't 'ave none that I know of. I 'eered the greengrocer's boy
-say to Crawley once, 'Ow's Number One, Mr. Crawley?' That's how I got
-to know 'ow he was called, and what the keeper's name was. I couldn't
-arks nothink, of course, 'cause I was deaf and dumb. 'Same as ever,'
-said Crawley to the boy, 'mem'ry quite gone.'"
-
-"Poor fellow! There is no doubt, I suppose, about his being mad?"
-
-"I don't know about that. He never did nothink, and 'ardly ever spoke
-a word. But he was very kind to me, and I was very sorry for 'im. He'd
-put 'is 'and on my 'ead, and smooth my 'air, and look at me pitiful
-like, with tears in 'is eyes which made 'em come into mine."
-
-"A case of melancholia, Bob," I said. Bob nodded. "Was no effort made,
-Sophy, to bring his memory back to him?"
-
-"Nobody did nothink; he was let alone, the same as I was. I did want
-'ard to talk to 'im, but I didn't dare open my lips, or I should have
-been found out. I do wish somethink could be done for 'im, that I do.
-Look 'ere, you're rich, ain't you?"
-
-"Not exactly rich, Sophy, but I am not poor."
-
-"Well, then. Crawley's to be bought."
-
-"How do you know that?"
-
-"I 'eerd Crawley say to 'isself, 'If I 'ad a 'underd pound I'd cut the
-cussed concern, and go to Amerikey.'"
-
-"Ah! We'll think over it. A hundred pounds is a large sum. It's late,
-Sophy. I've nothing more to ask you to-night. Get to bed, like a good
-girl."
-
-But Sophy began to tremble again; her thoughts reverted to M. Felix.
-
-"I daren't go to the room Mr. Tucker took me to; Mr. Felix's ghost'd
-come agin. Let me sleep 'ere, please."
-
-"There's no bed, my girl. I tell you what you shall do. There are two
-beds in the next room--see, this door opens into it--which Mr. Tucker
-and I were to occupy. We'll bring a mattress and some bedclothes in
-here, and we'll manage for the night; I'll lie on the sofa. You shall
-sleep in there, where no ghost can get to you. It would have to come
-through this room first."
-
-Sophy busied herself at once in bringing the mattress and bedclothes
-from the adjoining room, and after extemporizing a couple of beds for
-Bob and me wished us a grateful good-night.
-
-Bob and I were alone. "Now, Bob," said I, "what do you think of her
-story?"
-
-"There's more in it than meets the eye," said Bob. "Agnold, if any
-other person had related it I should set it down to an overwrought
-mind. But Sophy is an exceptional being; she is sharp, she is clever,
-she is brave, she is clear-witted. Naturally it is a puzzling affair,
-and I think it is worth arguing out."
-
-"Let us do so, Bob," I said.
-
-"It is always a mistake," said Bob, "in matters of conjecture, to pin
-one's self to a fixed point. This mistake, in my opinion, has been
-committed in all inquiries relating to the mystery of M. Felix. Having
-accepted a certain conclusion every person privately or professionally
-interested in the mystery started from that fixed point and branched
-out in all directions, north, east, south, and west, utterly ignoring
-the possibility--in this case I should say the probability--of the
-conclusion they accepted being a false one, as misleading as a
-will-o'-the-wisp."
-
-"Am I included in this sweeping condemnation?" I asked.
-
-"You are. The police I can excuse, but not a man of your
-discrimination and logical power."
-
-"What fixed point, Bob, did I, in common with everyone else, start
-from in wild directions?"
-
-"The fixed point," replied Bob, "that M. Felix is dead."
-
-"But he was proved to be dead."
-
-"Nothing of the sort. There was no post-mortem, there was not even an
-inquest. He is said to have died of heart disease. He lies inanimate
-on a bed for an inconsiderable number of hours, and then he
-disappears. My dear Agnold, have you ever heard of such a thing as
-suspended animation?"
-
-"Of course I have."
-
-"Have you ever heard of a person falling into a trance, and remaining
-to all appearance dead for three or four times as many hours as M.
-Felix lay before he disappeared? People have been buried alive in such
-conditions; others have been happily rescued at the moment the lids of
-their coffins have been about to be nailed down. I can furnish you
-with scores of instances of this kind of thing."
-
-"There is no need; I know that they have occurred. Your theory opens
-out a wide field of possibilities. Then you believe that Sophy was
-right; that she did see, not M. Felix's ghost as she supposed, but M.
-Felix himself in the flesh?"
-
-"It is my belief. Sophy is no fool; she has the nerve of a strong and
-healthy man; she does not believe in the supernatural; she has a heart
-susceptible of such kindness as you have shown her, but she is at the
-same time practical and hard-headed. Agnold, M. Felix is alive."
-
-"Do you argue that he simulated death in the first instance for the
-purpose of carrying out some plan?"
-
-"No. His apparent death was not a trick devised by himself. He had a
-seizure undoubtedly, to which he was compelled to succumb. After a
-time he recovered, and for his own ends resolved to take advantage of
-the opportunity to disappear, whether permanently or not I cannot say.
-He had a perfect right to do as he pleased with his own body, and he
-had good reasons for the device. He was threatened on two sides.
-Choosing for certain motives to drop his proper name of Leonard Paget
-and to adopt that of M. Felix, he finds himself suddenly standing on a
-rock with a precipice yawning on each side of him. A bold movement on
-the part of his sister-in-law hurls him into one; a desperate movement
-on the part of Dr. Peterssen hurls him over the other--either way,
-destruction. Of the special power which Dr. Peterssen holds over him I
-am ignorant, but it must be very potent. We are acquainted, however,
-with the power his sister-in-law holds over him. Her marriage proved,
-his life has been one long fraud, and he could be made to pay the
-penalty. Her unexpected presence in London confounds him, and he sees
-before him but one means of escape--flight. On the night of his
-supposed death he has had two agitating interviews, one with Dr.
-Peterssen, the other with his sister-in-law. She, waiting in the
-street to obtain an interview with M. Felix, overhears words which
-unmistakably prove that Peterssen has him at his mercy. Peterssen
-threatens to ruin M. Felix; he refers to a pleasant partnership in
-Switzerland nineteen years ago; he asks M. Felix if he has forgotten
-his brother Gerald. Then he goes into the house with this precious
-Felix, and when he issues from it he has in his possession the desk
-which is now on the table before us. After that, the lady in whose
-behalf we have been working obtains admission to the house and
-confronts the villain who has ruined her happiness. We know what
-passed between them; we know that M. Felix was worked up to
-desperation. The excitement was too much for the plausible scoundrel,
-who saw the sword about to fall upon him. He staggers into his bedroom
-with the undoubted intention of getting his revolver; he presses his
-hand to his heart; he sinks into a chair and becomes insensible. He is
-to all appearance dead, and is so pronounced. On the following night
-when he recovers his senses, he hails the mishap as a fortunate
-chance; he resolves to disappear, and so put his enemies off the
-scent. Now, follow me. Sophy is below in bed. She hears a noise in the
-upper part of the house; the brave girl creeps up-stairs from the
-basement as M. Felix creeps down-stairs from his apartments. He dare
-not betray himself. He seizes her, disguises his voice, and works upon
-her fears. Exit M. Felix; for as long or as short a time as he
-pleases, he is dead to the world. It is a wonder he does not take his
-revolver with him, but that is an oversight. In such a crisis one
-cannot think of everything. It may happen--for there is work for us to
-do, Agnold--that this oversight will work in our favor. I do not
-despair of tracing the revolver, and you did a good stroke when you
-wrote down such a description of the weapon as will enable you to
-identify it. There is no room for doubt that the man who presented
-himself to Mrs. Middlemore as a police official, and who sent her on a
-false errand to Bow Street Police Station, was Peterssen. Alone in M.
-Felix's room he appropriates the revolver; other things as well,
-perhaps; but of the revolver we are morally convinced. What is his
-object in going there? I will tell you. He has doubts of M. Felix's
-death; he believes it to be a trick, and he thinks he may find
-something in M. Felix's room which will put him on the track of the
-man who had slipped out of his power. Reasoning the mystery out in
-this open way is very satisfactory, Agnold. Mists disappear; we see
-the light. How does it strike you?"
-
-"You have convinced me, Bob," I said. "We will pursue the matter a
-little further. M. Felix is a man who is fond of pleasures which can
-be purchased only with money. Do you think he would voluntarily
-deprive himself of the means of obtaining it--for this is what his
-disappearance would lead him to, so long as he chose to conceal
-himself.
-
-"Not at all likely," replied Bob, with a knowing look. "I can
-enlighten you on the point. It happens that I am acquainted with the
-manager of the branch bank at which M. Felix kept an account. After
-you had enlisted me in the present cause I became interested in
-everything concerning M. Felix, and in a confidential conversation
-with the bank manager I asked him whether M. Felix had a large balance
-standing to his credit. I learnt that he never had a large balance at
-the bank, and that he had certain bonds and shares of which he himself
-was the custodian. Ordinarily one entrusts such securities to the safe
-custody of the bank which transacts his business, but it was not so
-with M. Felix, and this fact leads to the presumption that it was his
-habit to keep himself personally possessed of negotiable property in
-preference to entrusting it to other keeping. From time to time checks
-from stock-brokers were paid in to the credit of M. Felix. In every
-instance the money was not allowed to lie in the bank for longer than
-a day or two. M. Felix invariably drew his own check for something
-near the amount of the last deposit, receiving payment in gold and
-bank notes. Two days before his supposed death a check for six
-thousand pounds odd was paid in to his credit, and on the following
-morning he went to the bank and drew out six thousand pounds in notes
-of various denominations, the numbers of which of course are known.
-Thus, unless he paid this money away, which is not at all likely, he
-must have been in possession of it when he disappeared. I am of the
-opinion that he had much more than the amount I have named, and if so
-he was well provided for. The peculiar position in which he stood
-would predispose him to keep always by him a large available sum of
-money in case of some emergency arising; an emergency did arise, and
-he could snap his fingers at the world, so far as money was
-concerned."
-
-"This is a piece of valuable information, Bob. Do you know if any of
-these last bank notes have been presented for payment?"
-
-"I do not. There was nothing to call for special investigation into
-the matter."
-
-"But the notes can be traced."
-
-"Perhaps. The habit of a man to keep large sums by him is generally of
-long standing, and Peterssen was probably acquainted with M. Felix's
-peculiarity in this respect. The visit he paid to Mrs. Middlemore and
-the plan he carried into effect for being left alone in the house may
-have been inspired by the hope that he would discover one of M.
-Felix's hiding-places for his money. I conclude that he was
-disappointed; on the night of M. Felix's disappearance he left no
-money behind him. Too old a bird for that."
-
-The earnestness with which Bob had set forth his views had caused him
-to forget his cultivated method of speaking in short sentences. Now he
-relapsed into it.
-
-"Adopting your theory," I said, "that M. Felix is living, do you think
-that he and Dr. Peterssen have met?"
-
-"Should say not. To-night--when Sophy saw his ghost--was probably on
-his way to Tylney House. For what purpose, to us unknown."
-
-"Bob, you said there was work for us to do. I confess myself at a loss
-how to proceed. M. Bordier's visit to you and his appropriation of the
-document hidden in the secret drawer have snapped the threads of my
-plans. Have you anything to suggest?"
-
-"I have. Early to-morrow morning endeavor to find M. Bordier. Then
-consult with him."
-
-"You do not propose that we should leave this spot at once?"
-
-"No. If M. Bordier not in the village do something else before
-leaving. Pay a bold visit to Tylney House."
-
-"For what purpose?"
-
-"Confront Peterssen. Ascertain if M. Felix has been there."
-
-"Psha! We can get nothing of Peterssen."
-
-"Not so sure. He is hard up. Offer of a good reward too tempting a
-bait not to nibble at."
-
-"Why, Bob, those are very nearly the words M. Bordier used to Emilia,
-and your scheme is the same as that which he suggested."
-
-"Proves it a good one. M. Bordier a wealthy man, I judge?"
-
-"He is."
-
-"Wouldn't mind expending money to bring matter to a satisfactory
-conclusion?"
-
-"He has said as much."
-
-"Word to be depended upon?"
-
-"Thoroughly."
-
-"Depend upon him, then, for the needful. Peterssen will bite."
-
-"And if he does not?"
-
-"Crawley, the keeper. Remember what Sophy overheard him say. If he had
-a hundred pounds he would cut the cursed concern, and go to America.
-Emphatic--and doubtless true. Two birds to shoot at. Peterssen missed,
-Crawley remains. Aim well, bring him down."
-
-"To-morrow morning, early, we will resume work, Bob."
-
-"The earlier the better. Good-night."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIII.
-
-THE PORTRAIT OF GERALD PAGET.
-
-
-At nine o'clock next morning Bob, Sophy, and I breakfasted together.
-Sophy's fears were abated, although she had not quite got over her
-fright. During breakfast I succeeded in dispelling it completely by
-imparting to her, in confidence, the opinion we had formed that M.
-Felix was alive, and that it was his veritable self, and not his
-ghost, she had seen on the previous night. She listened with her mouth
-and eyes wide open.
-
-"You heard him speak, Sophy?" She nodded. "Ghosts can't speak. He
-caught hold of you; he lifted you up; you felt his touch?" She nodded
-again. "Ghosts can't touch; they can't make you feel them; they are
-made of air, Sophy; you can walk right through them. Be easy in your
-mind. If it _was_ M. Felix you saw"--she nodded again two or three
-times--"then he is alive, and we intend to hunt him down."
-
-I gave her time to revolve the matter over in her mind, and conversed
-with Bob while she went through the process.
-
-"Crikey!" she exclaimed presently. "What a game it is! Then it must
-'ave been 'im as scared me in the night when I left aunty asleep in
-the kitchen. I never could make out 'ow it was he knew 'is way about
-in the dark as he did. He's a deep 'un, he is, and no mistake. Well,
-of all the moves! But what did he do it for?"
-
-"It would take too long to explain," I said, "and then you might not
-understand. We are going out soon, and you may as well come with us.
-It would not be safe, perhaps, to leave you here alone."
-
-Bob and I had debated the advisability of sending Sophy back to
-London, and had agreed to keep her with us, at least for a time, as
-there was a likelihood of her being useful.
-
-Our first task when we sallied forth was to endeavor to obtain some
-information of M. Bordier, but in this we were unsuccessful. Not a
-person of whom we inquired could give us the slightest satisfaction,
-and we were reluctantly compelled to abandon our quest. I discussed
-with Bob whether I should write an account of what had occurred to
-Emilia, and we decided I should not do so.
-
-It would take too long to give her a description of all circumstances,
-and anything short of a full description would only agitate her. Then,
-in all probability, M. Bordier had returned to London, and had seen
-her. I dispatched a telegram to her, to the effect that if she had
-anything of importance to communicate to us she had better do so by
-telegraph. This done we walked to Tylney House. Our search for M.
-Bordier had occupied us three or four hours, and when we reached the
-gloomy-looking building it was two o'clock. To our surprise, the gate
-was open. Without hesitation we entered the grounds, and there we saw
-a van, and three men piling furniture on it. This furniture was of the
-commonest kind, and the men appeared to be in a hurry. We looked at
-each other in amazement. What did it all mean?
-
-"A break-up, I should say," suggested Bob. "Peterssen giving up
-business."
-
-"There's Crawley, the keeper," whispered Sophy, pulling my coat.
-
-The man had lounged from the house, and was regarding the removal of
-the furniture with dissatisfaction. Bob stepped to his side and we
-followed.
-
-"Hallo, Maria," said Crawley; "you've been up to some fine tricks, you
-have. But I'm hanged if I can make head or tail of it." Bob motioned
-to Sophy not to speak. "Have you two gentlemen come on business?"
- continued Crawley. "Well, you've come too late. The brokers are in,
-and we're sold up."
-
-"Then we cannot see Dr. Peterssen," I said.
-
-"No, you can't," replied Crawley. "He's gone for good."
-
-"I owe you," said Bob, in a bland voice, "ten shillings. Here's the
-money. Do you want to earn a ten-pound note, which might swell into
-fifty? There's a gentleman friend of ours who would stand that, and
-more perhaps, for services rendered."
-
-"What kind of services?" inquired Crawley, pocketing the ten
-shillings.
-
-"Information. Truthful and accurate information. The ten pound note
-sure. That much we guarantee, and wouldn't mind giving half on
-account. The fifty-pound almost as sure. Here, let me speak to you
-aside."
-
-They walked a little way from us, and I did not interrupt their
-conversation, which lasted some twenty minutes. At the end of that
-time Bob left Crawley to say a few words to me.
-
-"Go back to the inn," he said, "you and Sophy, and wait for me. Will
-join you there in an hour or so. Crawley and I going to have a drink."
-
-I obeyed him without wasting time in asking questions, and Sophy and I
-returned to the inn. It was a disappointment that a telegram from
-Emilia had not arrived. But before Bob made his appearance an incident
-occurred which profoundly agitated me. I was sitting at the table,
-making, as was usual with me, a record of what had happened, in the
-doing of which I had occasion to take some papers from my pockets.
-Among these papers which I placed on the table was the photograph of
-Gerald Paget which I had found in M. Felix's room, his name being
-written on the back. While I wrote, Sophy remained quiet. The girl has
-a discretion; she knows when to speak and when to hold her tongue. My
-writing done I took up the papers to put them in my pocket, and in
-doing so the photograph dropped to the ground. Sophy stooped and
-picked it up, and was about to give it to me, when her eyes fell on
-it.
-
-"Well, I never!" she exclaimed. "If it ain't the pickcher of Number
-One!"
-
-"What?" I cried.
-
-"It is," she said, looking at it with absolute tenderness. "It's the
-image of 'im, though he's older now than when it was took; but it's
-'is face as clear as clear can be."
-
-"Sophy," I said, rising in my excitement, "are you mad? Do you know
-what you are saying?"
-
-"'Course I do. It's Number One I tell yer. I'll take my Bible oath on
-it!"
-
-"You must be dreaming," I said. "This is the portrait of a gentleman
-who died many years ago."
-
-"If he's dead," she persisted, "he's come to life agin, like Mr.
-Felix. It's Number One's pickcher, and nobody else's."
-
-She was so positive that I was confounded by the possibilities her
-statement opened up, supposing her not to be mistaken. Nothing that I
-said could shake her conviction.
-
-"I know 'is face as well as I know your'n," she said. "I can't be
-mistook. It's the pickcher of Number One."
-
-At this juncture Bob entered the room. Anxious as I was to hear his
-news I first explained the incident to him, and it was an additional
-surprise to me when he ranged himself on Sophy's side.
-
-"I accept everything," he said. "No villainy too monstrous for
-Peterssen. Corroborative evidence handy. Crawley!"
-
-The man was outside in the passage, and at the summons he came in.
-
-"Know this portrait?" asked Bob, handing it to him.
-
-"Of course I do. It's Number One. How did you get hold of it?"
-
-"Never mind. Are you positive it is his portrait?"
-
-"I'll swear to it."
-
-"That will do. Go and get something to eat, and be ready when I call
-you. Mind, no drinking."
-
-Crawley gone, Bob turned his attention to me.
-
-"Before I tell you arrangements entered into with Crawley, finish
-about this picture. Sophy says, portrait of Number One. Crawley will
-swear it. I believe it--name of Gerald Paget back of picture.
-Deduction--portrait of Gerald Paget. Further deduction--Number One and
-Gerald Paget same person. Startling--but Peterssen and M. Felix,
-damned scoundrels, pair of them. No villainy too monstrous for them.
-In circumstance of Number One and Gerald Paget being same person, his
-solution of Peterssen's power over M. Felix. What does lady we are
-working for overhear? Overhears Peterssen threaten to ruin M. Felix;
-overhears him refer to a pleasant partnership in Switzerland nineteen
-years ago. Overhears him ask M. Felix if he has forgotten his brother
-Gerald. Not idle words. On the contrary, deeply, darkly significant.
-To my mind, quite clear--and convincing. Splendid links of
-circumstantial evidence. Gerald Paget alive instead of dead,
-additional reason for M. Felix's disappearance. Threatened not on two
-sides, but on three. Peterssen--Gerald Paget--Gerald Paget's wife.
-Desperate fix for M. Felix. Your opinion, Agnold?"
-
-"Coincides with yours, Bob. Light is truly breaking in upon this
-mystery."
-
-"Right you are. Now to explain Crawley. Have taken him in our
-service--for one month, certain--thirty shillings a week. Matters
-brought to satisfactory conclusion, promise of passage to America,
-with few pounds in his pocket. No doubt M. Bordier will do what we
-wish, and indemnify us. If not, won't ruin us. Agreed?"
-
-"Agreed."
-
-"I come now to Peterssen and Tylney House. Briefly. Things been going
-wrong for some time past. Peterssen in pecuniary difficulties. Dunned
-on all sides for money owing. Tradesmen threaten to stop supplies.
-Last night, Peterssen in frightful rage. Door of private room locked.
-Key missing. Door forced open. Something stolen from room. Crawley
-doesn't know what. We do. Sophy, otherwise Maria, nowhere to be found.
-Row between Peterssen and Crawley. Peterssen accuses Crawley of
-treachery. Crawley calls him another. At midnight Crawley hears bell
-ring. Peterssen answers it--admits visitor. Crawley doesn't see him.
-Visitor sleeps there--is there this morning--but Crawley can't catch
-sight of him. Keeps himself dark. Crawley sent on bogus errand.
-Occupies him three hours. Returns to find visitor gone, Peterssen
-gone, Number One gone. Note left for Crawley from his master. Concern
-burst up. In note, small sum for wages due. Not half what is due.
-Crawley furious, but helpless. I have enlisted him. He is to assist us
-to track Peterssen. That's all."
-
-"Bob," said I, "Peterssen must be hunted down and brought to justice."
-
-"He must," said Bob, "and shall be."
-
-"There is some fresh villainy hatching," I said. "If possible we must
-prevent it. You will stand by me?"
-
-"To the end," said Bob.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIV.
-
-OBTAIN AN EXPLANATION FROM EMILIA.
-
-
-It was now between five and six o'clock, and we did not wait for the
-night to pass before we commenced the task of hunting Dr. Peterssen
-down. The immediate result, however, was unsatisfactory. Indefatigable
-as we were we learnt nothing, and Crawley proved to be rather in our
-way than otherwise. Dr. Peterssen's movements must have been cunningly
-made indeed to so baffle us. We went to the railway station, but the
-station-master was positive that three such men as we described had
-not taken tickets for any place during the day. He could have
-identified Dr. Peterssen; of Peterssen's patient or of M. Felix he had
-no knowledge.
-
-"There isn't much traffic here," he said, "and we know pretty well who
-comes and goes."
-
-"But strangers sometimes pass through," I observed.
-
-"That goes without saying," he responded.
-
-"They might have travelled separately," suggested Bob.
-
-"They might," said the station-master.
-
-"It is hardly likely," I said aside to Bob, "that this would be the
-case. If Peterssen and M. Felix have come together again, Peterssen
-would not lose sight of his villainous partner; and neither of them
-would lose sight of the gentleman they have wronged."
-
-I consulted the time-table. There was no other direct train to London
-that night, but a train passed through, without stopping, at 11.40. I
-inquired of the station-master whether it was possible for the train
-to stop a few seconds to take me up to London, and he answered that it
-could be managed. Having arranged the matter with him I left the
-station, accompanied by Bob and Sophy. Crawley lingered behind; he had
-a flask with him, out of which he took frequent drinks. I had already
-arrived at the conclusion that he would be of little assistance in
-tracking Dr. Peterssen, but as his evidence might be valuable in the
-event of our hunting Peterssen down I thought it advisable to keep him
-about us.
-
-"What is your idea?" asked Bob, as we walked from the station to the
-inn.
-
-"If I do not receive a satisfactory letter or telegram from London
-before eleven o'clock," I replied, "I shall go on to London to see
-Emilia."
-
-"For what purpose?"
-
-"To gain some information of M. Bordier. Something may come of it--I
-cannot say what; but to remain inactive would be fatal to our
-chances."
-
-"Peterssen has a good start of us," said Bob. "He has given us check."
-
-"But not checkmate, Bob. I have hopes that it remains with us to score
-the game."
-
-Neither telegram nor letter had arrived for me at the inn, and a
-little after eleven I was at the station, awaiting the train. It was
-punctual to time, and stopped just long enough to enable me to jump
-in. Then we whirled on to London, which we reached at three o'clock in
-the morning. At such an hour a visit to Emilia was out of the
-question, and I had perforce to bide till morning. The delay gave me
-opportunity for a few hours' sleep, and at nine o'clock I was in the
-presence of Emilia. Although she received me with signs of
-perturbation I observed a change in her. Her eyes were brighter, and
-there was a certain joyousness in her manner which I was glad to see.
-
-"You have had good news," I said.
-
-"I have," she replied, "the best of good news. But what brings you
-again to London so unexpectedly, dear friend?"
-
-I thought of the secret in my possession which identified Dr.
-Peterssen's patient, Number One, as Gerald Paget, whom she had mourned
-as dead for nineteen years. But I did not dare to whisper it to her
-lest I should inspire delusive hopes. The proof had yet to be
-established, and until that was done it would be best and most
-merciful to preserve silence.
-
-"I come entirely upon your business," I said, "and I wish to get back
-at once."
-
-"How good you are to me!" she murmured. "Never, never can I repay you
-for all your kindness."
-
-"We will not speak of that. But you can give me some return now. I
-think I may truly say that I deserve your confidence."
-
-"Indeed, indeed you do."
-
-"I sent you a telegram yesterday."
-
-"Yes, I received it."
-
-"I expected one from you."
-
-"I am sorry," she said, "but I had nothing to communicate, and M.
-Bordier desired me neither to write nor telegraph to anyone till he
-saw me. I was bound to obey him with so much at stake."
-
-"Yes, I understand all that. He is aware that I am a reporter on a
-newspaper, and he fears I shall make improper use of information. I
-cannot blame him, but he is mistaken. Did not M. Bordier return to
-London yesterday?"
-
-"No."
-
-"He gave you instructions, then, by letter."
-
-"By letter and telegrams."
-
-She took from her pocket a letter, and two telegrams in their familiar
-buff-colored envelopes, and, after a little hesitation, handed me the
-latter.
-
-"I cannot think I am doing wrong in letting you see them," she said.
-
-The first telegram ran: "I have good news, the best of news. Keep a
-good heart. Julian unites with me in love to you and Constance."
-
-"His son is with him?" I asked.
-
-"Yes," she replied. "Poor Julian!"
-
-In my last interview with her, two days since, she had referred to
-Julian Bordier in the same pitying tone. I had not then asked for an
-explanation, and I had not time now. The moments were too precious to
-waste in questions which did not bear immediately upon the matter in
-hand. I read the second telegram: "We may be absent a day or two.
-Meanwhile send no letters or telegrams to any person whatsoever. I
-particularly desire to avoid publicity of any kind. To Mr. Agnold, who
-has so generously and kindly befriended you, I will give a full
-explanation when we meet. Our united love."
-
-For a moment or two I was nettled, but I very soon got over the small
-feeling. Had I been present when M. Bordier surprised Bob Tucker in
-the inn and found the document in the secret drawer of the desk, he
-would doubtless have taken me into his confidence. It was natural that
-he should look upon Bob in a different light, for the probable reason
-that he supposed him to be a professional detective.
-
-"M. Bordier," said Emilia, "repeats the injunction in his letter. I
-could not but obey him."
-
-She read from the letter words to the same effect as the second
-telegram.
-
-"You infer," I said, "from these communications that M. Bordier places
-no obstacles in the way of your daughter's union with his son."
-
-"Yes," she replied; "it is my happy belief. My heart is lighter than
-it has been for months. I have endured what seemed to me an eternity
-of sorrow, but that has passed, and Heaven's light is shining upon my
-life."
-
-She was transfigured. There was indeed a heavenly light in her eyes,
-and her manner was as that of one who had been raised from deepest woe
-to supreme happiness.
-
-"I rejoice with you," I said, cordially. "Is it a breach of confidence
-for me to ask from what part of the country M. Bordier has written to
-you?"
-
-"His letter bears no address," she said.
-
-"Does he give you no information of what he has done and is about to
-do?"
-
-"None."
-
-"Nor of any discovery that has been made?"
-
-"No."
-
-She looked at me wistfully; I took her hand. As to certain matters
-there was on my part no motive for secrecy. Why should I withhold from
-her even for an hour that which would strengthen the new-born hopes
-which animated her? To a heart so sorely bruised as hers had been, to
-one who had borne suffering so sweetly and patiently, it would be
-cruel to keep back the least word of comfort, and I narrated to her
-all that had taken place between M. Bordier and Bob. She was greatly
-excited when I told her of the recovery of the desk, of M. Bordier's
-search for the secret drawer, and of his subsequent discovery of the
-hidden document.
-
-"It is the copy of the marriage certificate," she cried.
-
-"That is my impression, and now I can relieve your mind of another
-discovery. It is our firm belief that the man who assumed the name of
-M. Felix lives."
-
-I gave her our reasons for this belief, and made her acquainted with
-Bob's theory of the seizure which threw M. Felix into a state of
-unconsciousness and insensibility, and which was simply pronounced to
-be death. She was profoundly agitated, and the grateful tears flowed
-down her face.
-
-"I have been distracted by a horrible fear," she said, "that I was the
-indirect cause of his death. Surely Heaven sent you to my aid on the
-night we first met. Without you I should not have dared to move, and
-indeed whatever steps I might have taken must have proved futile.
-Through you and your friends, Dr. Peterssen is unmasked, and my honor
-established. How I long to embrace that brave girl, Sophy! No reward
-can be too great for her, and M. Bordier, I am sure will do all in his
-power to advance her. Dear friend, dear friend! My words are weak--my
-heart is full."
-
-She pressed my hand and kissed it, and she promised to let me know
-everything upon M. Bordier's return. I did not tell her why I was
-anxious to return to the village with as little delay as possible, but
-I incidentally showed her the photograph which I had found in M.
-Felix's rooms. Her tears bedewed it, she kissed it again and again.
-
-"It is my dear husband's portrait," she sobbed. "His name is in his
-own handwriting. Dear Gerald! They would have had me believe you
-false. Heaven forgive them for their treachery to you, to me!"
-
-She begged me to leave the picture with her, but I was compelled to
-refuse; I needed it to track Dr. Peterssen and his patient. Of course
-I kept my reasons to myself, and I promised her that I would only
-retain the portrait a short time, and that it should soon be hers.
-
-"I do not exactly know," I said, "where I shall be during the next few
-days; I may be travelling from place to place, but I shall continue to
-telegraph to you wherever I am; in order that you may communicate with
-me."
-
-"But why do you go away again?" she asked; "you have discovered what
-you wished; nothing more remains to be done."
-
-If she but knew, I thought, how different would be her desire--how she
-would urge me to fly, how she would implore, entreat, and urge me on!
-
-"Much remains to be done," I said, "Dr. Peterssen must be found; he
-must not be allowed to escape."
-
-"Leave him to Heaven's justice," she said.
-
-"That will overtake him; but man's justice shall also be meted out to
-him. Would you leave Leonard Paget also in peace?"
-
-"I would," she replied.
-
-"He has squandered your fortune, but there may be some small portion
-left. It must be recovered; it will serve as your daughter's dowry."
-
-"She needs none. M. Bordier and Julian will be content to take her as
-she is; and for me--has not happiness shone upon me in the darkest
-hour of my life? Let both those men go their way."
-
-"No," I said, firmly, "my mission is not yet ended, and you, if you
-knew all, would not seek to restrain me."
-
-She looked at me questioningly, and I accounted for my rash remark by
-saying, "There are public as well as private duties, my dear madam,
-and I should be false to my trust if I neglected the one for the
-other. I should like to shake hands with your daughter before I go."
-
-She went from the room and returned with Constance, who received me
-cordially. As they stood side by side, their lovely countenances
-irradiated by thoughts of the bright future in store for them, I was
-glad to know that I had had some small share in their better fortune.
-
-"It is something to have done," I said to myself as I hastened to the
-station, "to have assisted to bring joy to the hearts of two good
-women; this in itself is ample reward. Then, old fellow, you have
-gained two earnest and sincere friends. One of these fine days you
-shall go to Switzerland, and be witness of the happiness to which you
-have contributed. And if you can restore to the one a husband, to the
-other a father----"
-
-I rubbed my hands and stepped on gaily. The mystery of M. Felix had
-engaged and engrossed me for a considerable time, but I was never more
-interested in it than I was at the present moment. "I will not
-desist," thought I, "till the end is reached. A bitter ending for the
-snarers, a sweet ending for the snared."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LV.
-
-TREACHERY.
-
-
-"News, Agnold!" cried Bob, when I joined him in the country.
-
-"Bravo!" I said, "out with it."
-
-"Three men answering to the description of those we are seeking were
-seen yesterday on the road to Monkshead."
-
-"Where is that?"
-
-"Thirty-two miles from here, as the crow flies."
-
-"Who gave you the information?"
-
-"Crawley. The fellow is of some use, after all."
-
-I was not so sure, but when I questioned Crawley he was so precise and
-circumstantial in his account that I saw no valid reason to discredit
-him. He had received the news from a teamster, he said, who had passed
-the men on the road. Were they walking? Yes. How did the teamster know
-they were going to Monkshead? They were on the high road. How far from
-Monkshead? About ten miles.
-
-"I have asked questions," said Crawley, "of every stranger who has
-passed through the village, and this was the only one who could tell
-me anything at all."
-
-"Did you describe Dr. Peterssen's appearance to him?" I asked.
-
-"Yes, and he said it was something like another of the men."
-
-"Did you describe the third?"
-
-"How could I, when I never saw him?"
-
-I had put the last question as a test of Crawley's truthfulness; if he
-had answered otherwise, the doubts I had of his veracity would have
-been strengthened.
-
-"You believe he is speaking the truth, Bob?" I asked my friend,
-Crawley being out of hearing.
-
-"What reason has he to tell lies?" asked Bob, in return.
-
-"To show that he is doing something toward earning his wages."
-
-"That's cutting it rather fine," said Bob. "You are giving Crawley
-credit for intellect; I think he is not overstocked in that respect.
-Can't afford to throw away a chance, Agnold."
-
-"Certainly not, and this chance shall not be slighted. But we will not
-risk everything upon the hazard. My plan is this. Crawley, Sophy, and
-I will go to Monkshead on a voyage of discovery. You shall remain here
-to take advantage of anything that may turn up. I will keep you posted
-as to our movements; you will keep me posted as to yours. Blessings on
-the electric telegraph. You will repeat all telegrams that arrive for
-me to such places as I shall direct, retaining the originals in case
-of miscarriage. Do you agree to all this?"
-
-"I must," said Bob, "though I would rather go with you."
-
-"There would then be no one left in command here, and we should be
-burning our ships."
-
-"All right. You are welcome to Crawley. Must you take Sophy?"
-
-"I must. She is the only one in our party who is familiar with M.
-Felix. If we hunt Peterssen down, M. Felix will most likely be with
-him, and Sophy is at hand for the purpose of identification. Should I
-have reason to believe we have struck the right trail, I will wire to
-you, and you can come on to us. Say agreed, old fellow."
-
-"Agreed, old fellow."
-
-After that Bob and I were closeted together for an hour, setting down
-all our arrangements in black and white; then I prepared to depart.
-
-"Good luck, Agnold," said the faithful Bob. "Send for me soon."
-
-"As soon as I can. I want you to be in at the death."
-
-I spoke these words lightly, with no notion of their ominous
-significance, and a carriage and pair having been got ready for us,
-Crawley, Sophy, and I took our seats in it, and bowled along to
-Monkshead. We arrived there at noon on the following day, and at the
-post-office I found two telegrams sent by Bob, one from himself saying
-that stagnation was the order of things, the other a copy of one
-forwarded from Emilia in London, in which she said that she had not
-heard from M. Bordier, and expected that he was on his way to her. The
-whole of the afternoon I was engaged in the attempt to discover
-whether any persons answering to the description of Dr. Peterssen and
-his companions had made any stay in Monkshead. I learnt nothing of a
-satisfactory nature, and, thoroughly exhausted, I was discontentedly
-refreshing the inner man, Sophy sitting at the same table with me,
-when Crawley, who had been out making inquiries, came in with a man
-who looked like what he was--a tramp.
-
-"Here's a fellow," said Crawley, "who can tell us something."
-
-"If I'm paid for it," said the tramp.
-
-"You shall be paid for your trouble," I said, giving him a shilling.
-"This is on account. You shall have another if your information is
-satisfactory."
-
-"He has tramped from Deering," said Crawley, "and passed the parties
-we are looking for."
-
-"How far off?" I asked.
-
-"A matter of forty miles," replied the tramp.
-
-"Were they riding or walking?"
-
-"Two was riding, one was walking."
-
-"What was the conveyance?"
-
-"What do you mean?"
-
-"Were they riding in a carriage?"
-
-"No, in a cart; top of sack of hay."
-
-"What is the man who was walking like?"
-
-His description enabled me to recognize Dr. Peterssen; it tallied with
-that given to me by Emilia, Bob, and Sophy.
-
-"And the two men riding on the hay?" I asked. "Can't be so sure of
-them," said the tramp; but his description warranted the belief that
-they were Dr. Peterssen's patient and M. Felix. As to the latter I
-consulted Sophy, and she said it was something like M. Felix.
-
-"How do you know," I inquired, "that these men were travelling in
-company?"
-
-"'Cause two of 'em--one as was walking and the other as was
-riding--was talking to one another."
-
-"Did you hear what they said?"
-
-"No, I didn't."
-
-He had nothing more to tell me, and he took his departure after
-receiving his second shilling.
-
-I turned to Crawley and asked him how he had picked up the tramp.
-
-"I was having half a pint at the Staff's Head," replied Crawley, "when
-he came in. Seeing he was a tramp, stood him a pint, and asked him
-where he'd come from. From Deering, he said. Then I asked him whether
-he'd met anybody in particular on the road, and he said nobody; but
-when I spoke of three men in company, and gave him an idea of what Dr.
-Peterssen was like, he brightened up and told me what he told you. I
-thought you had better see him, so I brought him along."
-
-I nodded and said we would start for Deering in the morning, and
-Crawley went to the bar to refresh himself. Now, whether I was
-influenced by my original latent suspicions of Crawley, or by the
-non-success I was meeting with, one thing was certain. I was not
-entirely satisfied with Crawley, and my dissatisfaction was not
-lessened by the fact that I could find no valid reasons for
-mistrusting him. Later on it will be seen whether I was right or wrong
-in my impressions, but, as will also presently be seen, the trail I
-was following up, whether it were true or false, led to important
-results, the mere remembrance of which will abide with me as long as I
-live.
-
-We did not reach Deering till late the next night. The post-office was
-closed, and I could not obtain the telegrams which I had directed Bob
-to forward till the morrow. As on the previous day, there were
-two--one from Bob with no news, the other from Emilia expressing
-anxiety regarding the continued silence and absence of M. Bordier. I
-myself considered it strange, and I sympathized with Emilia's
-unexpressed fears that she had been buoyed up by false hopes. Things
-altogether were looking gloomy; we seemed to be drifting without a
-rudder, and my experiences in Deering tended still further to
-discourage me. There were no traces of the men I was seeking, and
-after dispatching letters and telegrams to Bob and Emilia, I seriously
-discussed with myself the advisability of returning to London and
-awaiting news of M. Bordier. Sophy broke in upon my cogitations.
-
-"I've found 'em out," she said, with a flushed face. "That there
-Crawley is taking of us in, you see if he ain't. He's been telling a
-pack of lies with 'is 'ay cart and 'is tramp. He's got 'old of another
-cove, and is bringing of 'im 'ere. I 'eerd 'im telling the chap what
-to say to yer. I'm mum. 'Ere he is."
-
-Sure enough there entered Crawley with another tramp, who told me a
-plausible story of having met Dr. Peterssen and his companions some
-thirty miles off. The fellow played his part fairly well, and when I
-refused to give him money, began to bully. I soon silenced him,
-however, by threatening to give him into custody on a charge of
-conspiracy, and he slunk away without another word, but with a secret
-sign to Crawley, which I detected. Crawley would have followed him,
-but I had got between him and the door.
-
-"You miserable sneak," I said, "your game's at an end. So, you've been
-coached by your scoundrelly employer, Peterssen, to deceive us, and I
-was fool enough to be taken in by you. What have you to say about it?"
-
-He looked at me slyly, but did not speak.
-
-"You are frightened that you may criminate yourself, but you have done
-that already. I can prove that you have robbed us of money under false
-pretences; I can prove that you have entered into a conspiracy against
-us. Do you know the punishment for conspiracy? It is penal servitude,
-my friend. You wince at that. Honesty would have served your interests
-better, my fine fellow. Had you not behaved treacherously you would
-have been made for life. And now you will find that you have fallen
-between two stools. You think that Dr. Peterssen will reward you. You
-are mistaken. He has promised you a sum of money for misleading us.
-You will not get a penny of it. You fool! Better for you to have
-trusted straightforward gentlemen who had the means, and had the will,
-to richly reward you, than a scoundrel like your master, who has used
-you as a tool. You are to report the success of your treachery to him
-personally. Where? In London? Go to him there, go to the address he
-gave you, and try and find him. As he has rogued others, he has rogued
-you. Before you are many hours older, you will learn that honesty
-would have been your best policy."
-
-The play of his features proved to me that all my shots were faithful
-and had struck home. I gave him a parting one.
-
-"I will put the police on your track. You are a marked man from this
-day, and you and your master will have to answer in the criminal dock
-for the crimes of which you are guilty."
-
-I had moved from the door, and he, seizing the opportunity, darted
-through it and was gone.
-
-"Fine words!" I exclaimed. "Much good they will do!"
-
-"Never mind," said faithful Sophy. "You gave it 'im 'ot, and no
-mistake. You frightened 'im out of 'is life; he'll shy at every peeler
-he meets."
-
-"It will not help us," I said, in a rueful tone. "We are at a
-dead-lock."
-
-"Never say die," said Sophy, cheerfully. "That ain't a bit like yer."
-
-Upon my word her encouragement put fresh life into me, and I grew less
-despondent. Determined to leave Deering as quickly as possible, I went
-to see about a trap, and here I met with another disappointment. I
-could not get a trap till the following day.
-
-"We shall have to wait until to-morrow, Sophy," I said. "So let us
-make ourselves comfortable. I wonder if there's a local newspaper
-about. I will read you the news if there is; it will help to pass the
-time."
-
-Upon what slender foundations do momentous issues hang! A pregnant
-proof of this truism was at hand. There was no newspaper printed at
-Deering, but at Fleetdyke, the nearest place of importance, was
-published a small daily sheet called the _Fleetdyke Herald_. The
-landlord at the inn at which we put up did not take in the paper, but
-it happened that a traveller, making pause there, had left behind him
-two copies of as recent date as yesterday and the day before. These
-the landlord brought in to me, and I sat down to entertain Sophy, who
-prepared herself for an hour of great enjoyment.
-
-"What things in a newspaper do you like best, Sophy?" I asked.
-
-"Perlice Courts," she replied, "when I gets the chance of anybody
-reading 'em out--about once in a bloo moon, yer know."
-
-"Police Courts it shall be," I said. "I have a fancy for them myself."
-
-So evidently had the Editor of the _Fleetdyke Herald_, who seemed to
-make it a special feature of his paper to gather the police-court news
-of a rather wide district around his locality as an attraction to his
-subscribers. I had read aloud to Sophy four or five of the most
-entertaining cases when I was startled by the heading, "Tampering with
-a registrar's book. Strange case." I read the report under this
-heading rapidly to myself, and Sophy, observing that something had
-startled me, sat in silence and did not speak a word. The case was not
-concluded in the paper I was reading from. The last line ran:
-"Adjourned till to-morrow for the production of an important witness
-from London." I looked at the date of the newspaper--it was the day
-before yesterday. The other paper which I had not yet taken up was of
-yesterday's date, and I found in it the conclusion of the case. The
-first day's report, with its pregnant heading, startled me, as I have
-said. The second day's report startled me still more. By the merest
-accident my fingers were on the pulse of the torture of Emilia's life.
-I ran down to the bar; the landlord stood behind it, wiping some
-glasses.
-
-"Is the village of Glasserton at a great distance from here?" I asked.
-
-"Oh, no," replied the landlord, "about eleven miles. You can shorten
-it by two miles if you cut through Deering Woods."
-
-I glanced at the clock--half-past four. "It's a melancholy walk
-through the woods," remarked the landlord, "but to be sure the moon
-will rise at ten."
-
-"Can anyone show me the short cut?"
- I asked. "I wish particularly to go to Glasserton to-night."
-
-"My daughter will put you in the way of it."
-
-"Thank you. Ask her to get ready. I will give her half-a-crown for her
-trouble."
-
-I called to Sophy, and asked her if she was ready fur a long walk.
-
-"I am ready for anything," she said, "along o' you."
-
-"Ten miles there, and ten miles back, Sophy," I said, for it was my
-intention to return to the inn that night.
-
-"I'll walk all night if yer want me to."
-
-"Come along, then, my girl."
-
-I settled my account with the landlord before I left, and then,
-accompanied by his daughter, a girl of fourteen, we walked to Deering
-Woods.
-
-"There!" said she, "keep on this track and it will take you right
-through the woods till you reach the road for Glasserton. When you
-come to two tracks keep to the left."
-
-The directions she gave were clear, and I made her happy with the
-promised half-a-crown.
-
-"How far do the woods extend?" I asked.
-
-"You'll have to walk six or seven miles," she replied, "before you get
-out of 'em--and mind you take care of the cliffs. They're dangerous."
-
-"We shall see them, I suppose, before we come on them?"
-
-"Oh, you'll see 'em right enough, but nobody goes nearer to 'em than
-they can help."
-
-She stood looking after us till thick clusters of trees hid us from
-her sight.
-
-"Step out, Sophy," I said, "we've got a long walk before us."
-
-An explanation of the motive for my sudden visit to Glasserton will be
-found in the following extracts from the _Fleetdyke Herald_:
-
-
-THE FIRST EXTRACT.
-
-"_Tampering with a Register Book. Strange Case_.--M. Bordier and his
-son, Julian Bordier, of Swiss extraction, were charged with erasing a
-name, and writing another over it, from a marriage entry in the
-register book of marriages in the parish of Glasserton. Mr. Hare, the
-registrar, stated that the accused visited him yesterday afternoon,
-for the purpose, as they said, of verifying a copy of a marriage
-certificate which they brought with them. The marriage in question was
-solemnized over nineteen years ago, and, according to the entry as it
-now stands, was between Gerald Paget and Emilia Braham, The elder of
-the accused made the examination, and professed himself satisfied. He
-then requested the registrar to step out of the office with him,
-saying that he wished to make some private inquiries of him. The
-registrar consented, and the two went outside for a few minutes, the
-questions which M. Bordier asked relating to the witnesses to the
-marriage, Julian Bordier meanwhile remaining alone in the office with,
-the register book. Mr. Hare, who has been registrar for nine or ten
-months only, answered the questions to the best of his ability, and
-then M. Bordier summoned his son from the office, and the accused
-departed. In the evening Mr. Hare had occasion to consult the register
-book, and as a matter of curiosity he referred to the entry which his
-visitors in the afternoon had called to verify. To his astonishment he
-discovered that the name of the bridegroom had been erased, and the
-name of Gerald Paget written over the erasure. His suspicions fell
-immediately upon M. Bordier and Julian Bordier, and learning that they
-had left the village, he obtained a warrant for their arrest, and,
-with a policeman, started in pursuit. The accused were greatly
-agitated when told to consider themselves under arrest, and the elder
-of the two commenced an explanation, to which, however, Mr. Hare and
-the constable refused to listen. He then begged to be permitted to
-write and telegraph to London for legal and professional assistance
-which, he said, would establish their innocence, and his request being
-granted, he wrote and despatched both letters and telegrams. The
-registrar having finished his evidence, the magistrate said the case
-was quite clear, and asked the accused what they had to say in their
-defence. M. Bordier, who assumed the office of spokesman, his son
-preserving a somewhat scornful silence, handed the magistrate two
-telegrams he had received from London in reply to those he had
-despatched. M. Bordier said that he refrained from putting any
-questions to the registrar, giving as a reason that he was ignorant of
-the procedure in English Courts of Justice. The magistrate, having
-read the telegrams, remarked that the names attached to them were
-those of eminent and renowned gentlemen whose time must be very
-valuable. As they promised to attend the court on the following
-morning and were anxious to return on the same day the accused were
-therefore remanded till to-morrow for the production of these
-important witnesses from London."
-
-
-THE SECOND EXTRACT.
-
-"_Tampering with a Register Book. Strange and Important
-Evidence.--Result_.--M. Bordier and his son, Julian Bordier, were
-brought up on remand on the charge of altering a signature in a
-marriage entry in the register book of the parish of Glasserton. Upon
-the case being called Mr. Lawson, of the well-known firm of Lawson &
-Lawson, St. Helen's, London, who said he appeared for the defence,
-asked that Mr. Shepherd, the eminent expert in caligraphy, should be
-allowed to examine the register book, and the application was granted.
-The clerk read the evidence given yesterday by Mr. Hare, the
-registrar, who stated, in reply to a question from the magistrate,
-that he had nothing to add to it. Mr. Lawson then proceeded to
-cross-examine the witness:
-
-"'You state that the register book was examined in your
-presence?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'Was there any possibility of the signature being tampered with while
-you were by?'--'It could not possibly have been done in my presence.'
-
-"'Was M. Bordier left alone in the office with the book?'--'No.'
-
-"'In point of fact, you did not lose sight of him during the whole of
-the visit?'--'I did not.'
-
-"'Not even for a moment?'--'Not for one moment.'
-
-"'Then he could not have made the erasure or have written the name
-over it?'--'He could not.'
-
-"'You do not accuse him?'--'Of actually committing the offence, no. Of
-being an accessory, yes. He called me out of the office to give his
-accomplice time to do what he wished.'
-
-"'We shall see. Only M. Julian Bordier could possibly have altered the
-entry?'--'Only him.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson (to the Magistrate): 'This proves that M. Bordier could not
-have made the erasure.'--Magistrate: 'Exactly.'
-
-"Cross-examination resumed: 'It is not important to the case, but are
-you familiar with the record of the marriage of Emilia Braham and
-Gerald Paget, or between her and any other person?'--'No, I never had
-occasion to refer to this particular entry.'
-
-"'Were M. Bordier and his son the only visitors you received on that
-day who wished to verify an entry in the register book?'--'The only
-visitors.'
-
-"'After they left you did you leave your office?'--'For an hour in the
-evening.'
-
-"'Before you discovered that the entry had been tampered with?'--'Yes,
-before that.'
-
-"'Who was in charge of the premises while you were away?'--'The
-servant, Jane Seebold.'
-
-"'When you made the discovery of the erasure, did you ask Jane Seebold
-if anyone had called in your absence?'--'I did not.'
-
-"'Did you at any time inform her that the book had been tampered
-with?'--'I did not.'
-
-"'You jumped at the conclusion that the gentlemen you accuse must be
-guilty?'--'There is no other conclusion.'
-
-"'That will do. Call Mr. Shepherd.'
-
-"Mr. Shepherd stepped into the witness-box.
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'You are an expert in handwriting?'--'Witness: I am; it
-is my profession.'
-
-"'You have given evidence in many celebrated cases?'--'I have.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'Mr. Shepherd's name and reputation are well known.'
-
-"'Have you examined the entry of the marriage between Emilia Braham
-and Gerald Paget?'--'I have.'
-
-"'There is an undoubted erasure of the signature of the
-bridegroom?'--'There is.'
-
-"'The name, Gerald Paget, as it now appears, has been recently
-written?'--'Quite recently, within the past week. The state of the ink
-in which the name is freshly written proves it.'
-
-"'You put a marked emphasis upon the words "freshly written." Have you
-a reason for doing so?'--'I have. Upon a careful examination of the
-entry I am of the firm opinion that the name erased is the same as the
-name written above the erasure. The letters have been very cleverly
-traced.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'That sounds very strange.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'It does; but it is a puzzle that may be solved. Say that
-there is here a question of property which would fall to the Emilia
-Braham who is married according to this entry. To become possessed of
-this property, she must prove her marriage with Gerald Paget. Some one
-interested on the other side gets hold of the register book, and
-erases the name of Gerald Paget. What name shall be substituted in its
-place? What but that of Gerald Paget? This opens up the suggestion
-that a friend of Emilia Braham (speaking of her in her maiden name)
-has also paid a visit to the register, book, has erased the
-bridegroom's name, and written in its place that of Paget, to prove
-the said Emilia's marriage with him. A formidable suspicion is thrown
-upon her, and the very entry upon which she relies is weighty evidence
-against her.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'It is an ingenious theory, but I cannot see that it
-has any bearing upon the present case.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'It has an indirect bearing. I have here a copy of the
-marriage certificate, which I must ask you to compare with the entry
-in the register book. You will see in the copy that the name is Gerald
-Paget, and you cannot doubt that the copy is genuine."
-
-"The Magistrate: 'There can be little doubt of that. The state of the
-paper is a proof.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'If the copy had been lost, it would have greatly
-strengthened those whose interests are opposed to Mrs. Paget's. I have
-nothing further to ask you, Mr. Shepherd. Call Jane Seebold.'
-
-"Jane Seebold was shown into the witness-box.
-
-"'Your name is Jane Seebold?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'You are in the service of Mr. Hare?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'Do you remember the day before yesterday?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'In the evening Mr. Hare went out for an hour?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'Was the office in which the official books are kept open?'--'Yes, it
-was, and I was sweeping it out.'
-
-"'Did anybody call while you were so employed?'--'Yes, a gentleman.'
-
-"'Did he inquire for any one?'--'Yes, my master.'
-
-"'Well?'--'I told him he was out.'
-
-"'What did he say to that?'--'He said he would wait for him.'
-
-"'You allowed him to wait?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'In the office?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'What did you do while he waited?'--'I had work in other parts of the
-house, and I went and did it.'
-
-"'For how long was the gentleman left alone in the office?'--'Half an
-hour, perhaps.'
-
-"'Then you went in to him?'--'Yes, and he said he was going, and he
-went.'
-
-"'Did you tell your master of the gentleman's visit when he
-returned?'--'No, I didn't.'
-
-"'Why didn't you?' The witness hesitated. 'Why didn't you? Remember
-that you are on your oath, and that if you prevaricate or speak
-falsely you may get yourself into serious trouble. Why did you not
-tell your master of the gentleman's visit?'--'Well, he gave me five
-shillings, and told me to say nothing about it. I don't see that I've
-done any harm.'
-
-"'You can step down.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'Stop a moment. Where were the official books while
-the gentleman was in the office?'--'In their proper place--the desk.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'Was the desk locked?'--'The lock's been broke all the
-time I've been in the place.'
-
-"'So that all a person had to do to get hold of the books was to lift
-the lid?'--'Yes.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'Your conduct was very reprehensible.'
-
-"The witness then left the box.
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'We have brought the inquiry now to this point. Supposing
-the erasure to have been made on the day in question, the commission
-of the offence lies between M. Julian Bordier and the person who
-visited the registrar's office in his absence.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'Quite so. I think the registrar should keep these
-important public books in a more secure place--in an iron safe.'
-
-"The Registrar: 'I am not supplied with one, your Worship, and I
-cannot afford to buy one. My servant's evidence comes upon me as a
-surprise.'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'I repeat what I said. These official records should
-be kept in safer custody. The authorities should provide proper
-receptacles for them.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'I shall proceed now to prove that it is an utter
-impossibility that M. Julian Bordier can be guilty of the offence with
-which he and his father are charged. Call Mr. Wordsworth.'
-
-"This gentleman, whose name and fame are world-renowned, then gave his
-evidence, which was short, conclusive, and surprising.
-
-"'You are an oculist?'--'I am.'
-
-"'You are attending M. Julian Bordier?'--'Yes.'
-
-"'Is that the gentleman?'--'That is the gentleman.'
-
-"'What are you attending him for?'--'For his sight.'
-
-"'Could he the day before yesterday have erased a name from the
-register book and written another name above it?'--'It is utterly
-impossible.'
-
-"'Why?'--'Because he was blind. He is blind now; His eyes are open,
-but he cannot see. It is against my express wish that he left London.
-If he does not return immediately and abide by my instructions, I
-shall despair of restoring his sight.'
-
-"M. Bordier: 'May I say a word?'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'Certainly.'
-
-"M. Bordier: 'I came to Glasserton to compare the copy of a marriage
-certificate with the original entry. My son's happiness hung upon this
-proof, and he insisted upon accompanying me. He would not be
-dissuaded, and although I feared there was a risk, I yielded to his
-wish. When we were arrested I endeavored to explain matters to the
-registrar and the officer, but they would not listen to me. Ignorant
-of the methods of English courts of justice, I thought it wisest to
-obtain counsel and assistance from London. That is all I have to say.'
-
-"Mr. Lawson: 'Is it necessary, your worship, for me to address you?'
-
-"The Magistrate: 'No. The gentlemen are discharged, and I regret that
-they have had to submit to this trial. I trust, Mr. Wordsworth, that
-you will be able to cure M. Julian Bordier.'
-
-"Mr. Wordsworth: 'If he will be guided by me, I hope to restore his
-sight.'
-
-"The parties then left the court."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVI.
-
-NIGHT IN DEERING WOODS.
-
-
-I had a twofold object in going to Glasserton. In the first place I
-wished to see for myself the original record of the marriage in the
-register book; in the second place I wished to obtain from the
-registrar's servant, Jane Seebold, a description of the visitor she
-allowed to remain in the office while her master was absent from the
-house. It was evident that she had no knowledge of the purpose of the
-visit which M. Bordier and his son Julian paid to the registrar in the
-morning; and it was equally evident that the man who bribed her to
-silence was the man who erased the signature. I had no doubt that it
-was either M. Felix or Dr. Peterssen, who by this artful trick hoped
-to pave the way to a doubt of the genuineness of Emilia's marriage
-with Gerald Paget. The scoundrels had no idea that the copy of the
-marriage certificate had been found, or that M. Bordier and his son
-were in the village on the same day as themselves. All that they
-wished to do was to make some provision for a possible contingency in
-the future. If, as was very likely, they read the case in the
-newspaper, they must have been confounded by the conviction that they
-were hoist with their own petard. Another thing, I was now satisfied
-that when I left Bob I had started on a true trail, despite the
-knavish devices of Dr. Peterssen's tool, Crawley.
-
-The walk through Deering Woods was a dreary one, but it would have
-been much more dreary had it not been for Sophy, who was always
-entertaining and original, and never more so than on the present
-occasion. I let her partly into my confidence, and she was delighted
-to know that she had been the direct means of throwing light on a
-cruel injustice. We trudged along side by side, the most amicable and
-agreeable of companions.
-
-"It'll wake aunty tip when she 'ears everything," said Sophy. "She'll
-think me good for something now."
-
-"You are the best and brightest little girl in my acquaintance,
-Sophy," I said.
-
-"I didn't take _you_ in, did I?" she asked.
-
-"No, indeed," I replied. "It was a lucky day for me when I first met
-you."
-
-"Not so lucky for you as for me," she said. "I've got a silver watch."
-
-"It will turn into a gold one by the time you're a woman."
-
-"Will it?" she exclaimed. "Shan't I be proud!"
-
-About half way through the woods I saw the cliffs of which the
-landlord's daughter had warned me. In the dark they would have been
-dangerous indeed to one unfamiliar with them. At some time or other
-there had been a great landslip, which had opened up a chasm of great
-depth; in parts slight fences had been put up, but there were spaces
-entirely unprotected, and I was thankful we had been warned of the
-danger. It was half-past seven by my watch when we reached Glasserton,
-and I had no difficulty in finding the registrar's house. He was at
-home when I called, and did not receive me too cordially. He had been
-upset by the trial, and it was with the greatest difficulty I
-succeeded in obtaining a glance of the original entry of the marriage.
-It was only by bribery and threats that I effected my purpose, and I
-had to use extreme persuasion to induce him to grant me an interview
-with Jane Seebold. I elicited very little from her in consequence of
-the state of confusion she was in, but I was satisfied in my own mind
-that it was M. Felix who had tampered with the book. From her
-imperfect description of the man I judged that he must in some way
-have disguised himself for the purpose of the visit, and I was
-assisted to this conclusion partly by the height of her visitor, who
-she said was not a tall man. Dr. Peterssen was not less than six feet,
-and having to decide between him and M. Felix I decided unhesitatingly
-in favor of the latter. The registrar had been in Glasserton but three
-or four years, whereas Jane Seebold had been in it all her life, and I
-learned from her that two of the three witnesses to the marriage, the
-doctor and the old wagoner, had long been dead. At nine o'clock my
-inquiries were ended, and Sophy and I started back for the inn.
-
-"Tired, Sophy?" I asked.
-
-"Not a bit," she answered, cheerfully, "I could walk all night."
-
-Still we did not get along so fast as in the early part of the
-evening; it would have been cruel to take unfair advantage of Sophy's
-indomitable spirit; the girl would have walked till she dropped, and I
-had some consideration for her. Therefore it was that we did not reach
-the middle of Deering Woods till past ten, by which time the moon had
-risen. When I was not talking to Sophy my mind was occupied by the
-task upon which I had been engaged. Since my first introduction to the
-Mystery of M. Felix a great deal had been accomplished. The mystery
-has been practically solved, although the public were not yet in
-possession of the facts. Emilia's agony was over, as I believed, for
-my wildest dreams would not have compassed what was to occur during
-the next few weeks; she had been fortunate in gaining a champion so
-noble and generous as M. Bordier, and her daughter's happiness was
-assured. I could understand now her anxiety as to M. Bordier's silence
-since his discovery of the copy of the marriage certificate, and I
-divined his reason for it. With a horror of publicity, and out of
-regard for her, he did not wish her to become acquainted with his and
-his son's arrest until he himself informed her of it, and he
-entertained a hope that the report of the case would not get into the
-London papers. I also now understood her anxious references to M.
-Julian's state of health; they bore upon his failing sight, to restore
-which he and his father had come to London. The young man had been
-imprudent, but I trusted to Mr. Wordsworth's assurances that he could
-make a cure of him if Julian would abide by his instructions. I had no
-doubt, now that Emilia's good name was established, that Julian would
-submit to the guidance of this eminent oculist, whose heart was as
-kind as his skill was great.
-
-So far, all was well, but I was not satisfied; I could not consider my
-task accomplished till I had brought Dr. Peterssen and M. Felix to the
-bar of justice and restored to Emilia's arms the husband she believed
-she had lost in Switzerland.
-
-Sophy broke in upon my musings.
-
-"Is there a man in the moon?" she asked.
-
-"They say so," I answered, lightly.
-
-"I see 'is face," said Sophy, "as plain as plain can be."
-
-We were near the fallen cliffs as these words passed between us, and
-before I had time to utter another my attention was arrested by the
-sound of a shot.
-
-"What's that?" cried Sophy.
-
-"A gun or pistol fired," I replied, "and not far off."
-
-"I don't mean the firing," said Sophy, "I mean the scream. Didn't yer
-'ear it?"
-
-"No, Sophy, no scream reached my ears."
-
-"It reached mine. I can 'ear anything, if it's in the next street."
-
-"Was it after or before the shot?" I asked.
-
-"About the same time, I think. They come both together."
-
-"Let us go and see what it is, if you're not afraid."
-
-"Me afraid," she said contemptuously, and she ran before me in the
-direction from which the sounds had proceeded. We had not gone fifty
-yards before we both stopped simultaneously, with an exclamation of
-horror on our lips. On the ground before us lay the body of a man,
-pressing his hand to his heart, from which the blood was flowing. He
-struggled into a sitting posture, and was endeavoring to rise to his
-feet, when he fell back with a groan, and moved no more.
-
-I rushed to his side and bent over him.
-
-"There has been murder done," I said. "He is dead."
-
-"Yes," said Sophy in a low tone, as she stooped over the body. "He's
-dead this time, and no mistake.
-
-"Dead this time!" I repeated in wonder.
-
-"Don't yer see who it is?" she asked. "It's Mr. Felix!"
-
-M. Felix! This, then, was the end of the ill-spent life. The evil
-record was thus suddenly snapped, and the man who was supposed to have
-died in Gerard Street, Soho, on the night of the 16th of January, lay
-dead before me in the lonely Deering Woods, his last breath but just
-drawn.
-
-"Are you sure, Sophy?"
-
-"Ain't _you_ sure?"
-
-"I cannot be. I never saw him in life."
-
-"I can't be mistook. It's Mr. Felix--but oh, ain't it orfle! who could
-'ave done it?"
-
-"Who, Sophy? Who but his companion in crime, Dr. Peterssen?"
-
-At this moment, from an unseen hand behind, Sophy was struck to the
-ground. Her scream of pain was frozen on her lips, and she lay prone
-before me.
-
-"You infernal villain," I cried, and turned.
-
-The moon was shining brightly, and by its light I saw the form of Dr.
-Peterssen. In his upraised hands he held a heavy stake. I strove to
-avoid the blow, and received it on my arm. Before I could recover
-myself the stake was raised again, and again it descended upon me,
-this time upon my head. The earth swam round. Again I was struck with
-savage violence, and as I fell the last thing I saw was the moon with
-a face in it which smiled upon me in the likeness of Dr. Peterssen.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVII.
-
-THE CAVERN IN THE CLIFF.
-
-
-I opened my eyes in darkness. How long I had remained insensible I did
-not know, nor did I know where I was. All that I was conscious of at
-first was a dull pain in my head, but presently I was sensible of
-other facts. My hands were tied behind me, and my mouth was gagged, so
-that I could only utter unintelligible moans. To my astonishment my
-moans were answered by similar sounds at a short distance from me.
-Pain and suffering are selfish and dominant qualities, and some few
-moments passed before I thought of my brave Sophy. Then it occurred to
-me that the moans I heard proceeded from her, and that she was in the
-same condition as myself. My immediate feeling was one of thankfulness
-that she was alive. In vain did I strive to free my hands; in vain did
-I strive to speak intelligible words; in vain did I strive to pierce
-the black darkness in which we were enveloped. I did not know whether
-it was day or night, and I shuddered to think of the fate in store for
-us. Soon I found myself forgetting my own peril entirely, and dwelling
-only upon poor Sophy's. Bitterly did I reproach myself for bringing
-her to this pass, for it was I, and I alone, who was responsible for
-the doom which would surely overtake her. I had no doubt that we were
-imprisoned here to die, and it was I who had sealed her fate.
-
-My thoughts did not flow steadily and uninterruptedly. Every now and
-then I relapsed into unconsciousness, and when I revived it seemed to
-me as if I took up quite naturally the thread of my reflections at the
-point at which they were broken off. These intervals of insensibility
-may have been long or short for all I knew. I was starving; I was
-parched; I would have given the world for a drink of water; but I can
-say truthfully that if water had been available for only one of us, I
-would have set my lips hard and given the relief to my companion in
-misery. I have read of exquisite tortures inflicted upon unfortunate
-people by barbarous nations--aye, and by some civilized nations as
-well--but no tortures could have been keener than those I endured.
-Minutes were like hours, hours like days. It was impossible under such
-conditions to keep count of time.
-
-There were sounds of movement outside our prison house, if house it
-was, sounds of scraping feet and falling stones. I strained my ears.
-Nearer and nearer came these sounds, until they were within a few feet
-of me in my rear, but I was so securely bound that I could not turn my
-head. One word was spoken in the form of a question:
-
-"Alive?"
-
-The voice was that of Dr. Peterssen. I had never heard it, but I would
-have staked my hopes of release upon the issue. Not by the faintest
-moan did Sophy or I answer this ruthless question. A match was struck,
-a candle was lighted, and Dr. Peterssen stood between us, holding the
-candle above his head: With malicious significance he put the candle
-close to poor Sophy's face, then close to mine, and waved his left
-hand as though he were introducing us to each other. I gazed at Sophy,
-who was as little able to move as I was myself, and the tears came
-into my eyes as I noted the absence of reproach in her observance of
-me. Indeed, her expression was one of pity, and not for herself.
-
-"Touching, isn't it?" asked Dr. Peterssen, and then cried savagely,
-"You pair of beauties! You reap what you have sown!"
-
-By the dim light I perceived that we were in a kind of cave, the
-entrance to which was at the back of us, and I judged that the cavity
-was low down one of the dangerous cliffs of which we had been warned.
-After his attack upon us Dr. Peterssen must have carried us here and
-buried us alive, as it were. I subsequently learned that my surmise
-was correct, and that I had hit upon the exact method of our
-imprisonment.
-
-Dr. Peterssen stuck the candle, in a niche, and approached me.
-
-"Would you like to be free to speak?" he inquired. "If so, move your
-head."
-
-I moved my head.
-
-"You will not shout?" he continued. "You will not cry for help? Move
-your head again, and I accept it as your word of honor. You are a
-gentleman, and would not forfeit it." There was a frightful scorn in
-his voice when he referred to me as a gentleman.
-
-I moved my head again, and he took the gag from my mouth.
-
-"Raise your voice above its natural tone, and I cut this beauty's
-fingers off."
-
-He took a clasp-knife from his pocket and opened the blade. It was
-sharp, it was bright, and I knew he would keep his word.
-
-"A drink of water," I murmured.
-
-"I have it here. Drink." He held an uncorked bottle to my lips.
-
-"Not for me," I said. "For her."
-
-"You will drink first," he said; "then she shall have her turn. If you
-refuse neither of you shall touch it."
-
-I drank, and I saw that Sophy closed her eyes while I did so. Nectar
-was never so sweet as that long draught, for he did not stint me. Then
-he replaced the gag in my mouth, and removing Sophy's, went through
-the same process with her.
-
-"That's jolly," said Sophy, faintly.
-
-"Yes," said the scoundrel, "you will be very jolly by the time I have
-done with you. Listen to me. You clever couple are as completely in my
-power as if we were on a desert island. Not a human being is within
-miles of us. To show you how little I care for your cries, I free both
-your tongues." Once more he took the gag from my mouth. "Only if you
-speak too loudly, each shall suffer for the other. I will cut you to
-pieces before each other's eyes if you disobey me. So my clever little
-beauty, you came into my house as a dumb girl. _Are_ you dumb?
-Answer--quick!"
-
-"No, I ain't," said Sophy; "you know that as well as I do."
-
-"But you played your part well--I will say that of you--and went
-about like a sly mute, eyes and ears open, ready for treachery. If I
-had suspected, you would never have got out alive. Answer my
-questions, and answer them truthfully, if you do not wish to be
-tortured to death. Did you steal the desk?" Sophy was silent; he laid
-the keen blade of the knife he held on her face. "Answer!"
-
-"Answer him, Sophy," I said, fearing for the child.
-
-"Yes," she said, "I did steal the desk."
-
-"Who set you on?"
-
-"I did," I replied, quickly. "She is not to blame. Upon me should fall
-the punishment, not upon her."
-
-"It shall fall upon both of you, and upon your comrade who brought her
-to me, if only I can lay hands on him. There was a secret in that
-desk, was there not? Don't keep me waiting too long."
-
-"There was," I said.
-
-"Did you find it?"
-
-"Not I, but another found it."
-
-"Your friend, and that sharp-witted gentleman from Switzerland. A copy
-of a marriage certificate, was it not?"
-
-"Yes."
-
-"To think," he said bitterly, "that that fool should have had the desk
-in his possession all these years, and never discovered it? He is
-rightly served. He can play no fool's tricks where he is now.
-
-"He is dead?" I said.
-
-"He is dead. I killed him, as I intend to kill you, only yours will be
-a longer and more lingering death. Do you think my confession
-injudicious? You are mistaken. You will never more see the light of
-day; you will never more set eyes upon a human being but myself. You
-are here, in a tomb. This is your grave. I can afford to be candid
-with you. Open speaking is a luxury in which I can freely indulge.
-Here, eat." He fed us with hard dry bread, and we both ate ravenously,
-he watching us the while with malignant eyes. "Am I not a merciful
-jailer? But I don't want you to die just yet. You shall suffer still
-more. Tell me why you have been hunting me down?"
-
-"I was engaged in befriending a much-injured lady."
-
-"You had better have looked after your own business, and left me to
-manage my own unmolested. A much-injured lady? Christian name,
-Emilia?"
-
-"Yes. I cannot injure her by answering you truthfully. She has
-powerful friends near her who are capable of protecting her."
-
-"Doubtless. Something more was discovered through this little witch
-here, was there not? Remember what I have threatened you with. The
-truth I will have, if I have to cut it out of your heart. What more
-have you discovered?"
-
-"To what do you refer?"
-
-"I had a patient--I speak in the past tense, because I have given up
-business--concerning whom you entertained some curiosity. You know who
-that patient was. His name? Quick!" He touched Sophy's hand with the
-point of his knife, and drew blood. She never winced.
-
-To save the poor girl, I answered, "Gerald Paget."
-
-"Good. These compelling measures are admirable. But do not think you
-are telling me news. I can find my way through a maze as well as most
-people. It is in my power to give _you_ some interesting information.
-For instance as to where this Gerald Paget is at the present moment."
-
-"You have not disposed of him, then," I ventured to say.
-
-"Oh, no. Another kind of death is in store for him. He is in prison
-for the murder of a gentleman unknown to the law, but known to us as
-Leonard Paget, to many others as M. Felix."
-
-I repressed the indignant words that rose to my lips. Dr. Peterssen
-smiled and continued: "It is a remarkable complication. A man is found
-dead in Deering Woods, shot through the heart. This man is Leonard
-Paget, alias M. Felix. There is found upon his person nothing that can
-lead to his identity. The murder is perpetrated at a distance from
-London, and no one suspects there can be any connection between the
-murdered man and the M. Felix who so mysteriously disappeared from the
-purlieus of Soho. The last whose suspicions are likely to be roused
-are Emilia Paget--I am courteous enough, you see, to call her by her
-right name--and her friends. Wrapped up in their own concerns, a
-murder so remote has no interest for them. And murders are common.
-They occur all over the country. The housekeeper who attended upon M.
-Felix would be able to identify him, but what should bring her into
-this part of the world? So far, you must acknowledge, I have managed
-fairly well, and if it had not been for your meddling I should be
-safe. Curse you! But I am even with you now."
-
-"I do not expect you to answer me," I said, "but how is it that the
-unfortunate gentleman whom you and your confederate have so sorely
-oppressed has to answer for a crime which you perpetrated?"
-
-"Why should I not answer you? What passes in this grave will never be
-known, and I can afford to be magnanimous. The fool you pity was found
-near the body, in possession of the pistol with which the deed was
-done. Give me credit for that little man[oe]uvre."
-
-"Does he not declare his innocence?"
-
-"He declares nothing. The small spark of reason which was left to him
-is extinguished, and he utters no word. His silence, his vacant looks,
-are proofs of guilt. They will make short work with him. He will be
-committed for trial; the assizes are near, and he will be tried and
-condemned. No living persons but ourselves can establish his
-innocence. If you were free you could accomplish it, but you never
-will be free. Fret your heart out. It will be a pleasure to me to
-witness your sufferings."
-
-"Retribution will fall upon you," I said. "Your presence here
-convinces me that you are yourself in danger."
-
-"I should be if I walked abroad, but I have disappeared. In this
-charming retreat I propose to hide till Gerald Paget is done for.
-Then, the interest of the affair at an end, I can provide for my own
-safety. Meanwhile, I can manage, at odd times, to purchase food enough
-to keep things going. Already I have in stock a few tins of preserved
-provisions, a supply of biscuits, some bread, spirits to warm me,
-tobacco to cheer me--to be smoked only at nights. Trust me for
-neglecting no precautions. It is not a life a gentleman would choose,
-but I am driven to it--by you." He filled his pipe and lit it.
-
-"Is it night now?" I said.
-
-"It is night now. I am fond of society; that is the reason I spare you
-for the present. When you have served my turn I will rid myself of
-you."
-
-"Have you no pity?"
-
-"None."
-
-"If we refuse the food you offer us, if we prefer to die, at once, we
-can deprive you of the pleasure of torturing us."
-
-"You can suit yourself. My experience is that life is sweet; hope
-lives eternal, you know. You can amuse yourself with the hope that you
-have still a chance. Do so; it is immaterial to me. I know what the
-end will be. Be silent now; you have talked enough."
-
-He examined our fastenings to see that they were secure, and then he
-gagged us. Before he did so, however, I said to Sophy:
-
-"Can you forgive me, my dear, for bringing this upon you?"
-
-"There ain't nothink to forgive," she replied. "If I've got to die
-I'll die game."
-
-Dr. Peterssen laughed sardonically, and did not give me time to say
-another word. The spirit of the child amazed me; she was of the stuff
-of which heroes are made. "If by a fortunate chance," I thought, "we
-escape the deadly danger which holds us fast she shall be richly
-rewarded." I saw no hope of escape, but I would cling to life to the
-last. Dr. Peterssen was right in his conjecture; I would not hasten
-the doom with which we were threatened, and which seemed inevitable. I
-slept fitfully, and in my intervals of wakefulness I judged from
-Sophy's regular breathing that she slept more peacefully than I. I was
-thankful for that. Where our gaoler took his rest I do not know. He
-did not disturb us for many hours. My eyes had grown accustomed to the
-darkness, and when I fully awoke I could dimly see Sophy's face. She
-could see me too, for when I smiled at her she smiled at me in return.
-Clearly it was Dr. Peterssen's intention to keep us alive for some
-time at least. He gave us bread and biscuits to eat and water to
-drink. Days passed in this miserable way and if I do not dwell upon
-them it is because I have little that is new to relate. Occasionally
-Dr. Peterssen allowed us to talk, and bandied words with us for his
-own malicious gratification. I asked him once whether we could
-purchase our release.
-
-"You would give a large sum for it," he said.
-
-"All that I possess in the world," I answered.
-
-"If it could be done with safety to myself," he said, "I would
-entertain the offer; but you know as well as I do that it could not be
-so done."
-
-"Why not?" I asked.
-
-"You would betray me."
-
-"I will swear a solemn oath that your name shall never pass my lips."
-
-"An oath that you would break at the first convenient opportunity. You
-are a man with a conscience, and you would hasten to prove the
-innocence of Gerald Paget. How would you accomplish that without
-mention of my name? Come, now--air your sophistry, and see if you can
-persuade me to act like an idiot. As for money, I am well supplied.
-When I am rid of you and this stubborn little witch I mean to enjoy
-myself in another country."
-
-He pulled out a bundle of bank-notes, and flourished them before my
-eyes. I thought of Bob's words that M. Felix kept always a large sum
-of money on his person, and I knew that the notes had once been his.
-Our gaoler took pride in such like acts of ostentatious candor, to
-show how completely he had us in his power and how little he had to
-fear from us. I cannot say at what period of our imprisonment I fell
-into a stupor which would have lasted till the hour of my death had
-Dr. Peterssen's fell intentions succeeded. It seemed to last for an
-eternity of days and nights, and in the few intervals of consciousness
-which came to me I prayed that I might not grow mad. Sometimes I heard
-Dr. Peterssen's voice as he forced water and sopped biscuit down my
-throat. I had no desire to refuse the food, but my strength was gone,
-and it was with difficulty that I could swallow. I could have borne my
-fate better had it not been that Sophy was never absent from my mind.
-Sleeping or waking I thought of her, and my misery was increased
-tenfold. I remember an occasion when I whispered to Dr. Peterssen:
-
-"Is she still alive?"
-
-"She is still alive," he said with a brutal laugh. "She has the pluck
-and strength of a dozen men."
-
-Those were the last words he addressed to me, in my remembrance, nor
-do I remember speaking to him again. Delirious fancies held possession
-of me, and although I must have had periods of utter insensibility I
-do not recall them. I could not now distinguish the real from the
-unreal. I heard voices that did not speak; I saw pictures that had no
-existence; I passed through experiences as intangible as the gloom
-which encompassed us. All the people I knew, but chiefly those with
-whom I had been lately associated, played their parts in my wild
-fancies. The scene on the Thames Embankment with Emilia, my midnight
-visit to her daughter Constance, my adventures with Sophy, the
-episodes in the police court and M. Felix's chambers, my journeys to
-and fro in search of clews to the mystery, the introduction of Bob
-Tucker into the affair, all these and every other incident associated
-with my championship of a wronged and injured lady, took new and
-monstrous forms in my disordered imagination. I grew weaker and
-weaker. Surely the end must soon come.
-
-It came. There were loud shouts and cries, and voices raised in
-menace, terror, and defiance. These sounds conjured up a host of
-confused forms struggling around me. A hand touched my face, an arm
-was passed round my neck; my head lay upon a man's shoulder.
-
-"Agnold!"
-
-My mouth, my limbs, were free, but I could not speak, I could not
-move.
-
-"Agnold! Don't you hear me? It's Bob--Bob Tucker! I've found you at
-last--you're saved! Speak one word to me; move your head, to show you
-understand me."
-
-I smiled feebly; I had had so many of these dreams; I did not open my
-eyes.
-
-"Great God! Have I come too late? Oh, you black-hearted villain, your
-life shall pay for it!"
-
-Gentle hands raised my head. My eyes, my face, were bathed with cold
-water; a few drops of weak spirits were poured into my mouth, which I
-swallowed with difficulty. Surely there was here no delusion!
-
-"That's right, Agnold; that's right old friend. We'll soon pull you
-round. You are too weak to speak--I see that. But don't you want to
-hear about Sophy?"
-
-Sophy? I strove to struggle to my feet, and fell back into the
-friendly arms ready to receive me. I opened my eyes; they fell upon
-Bob, who smiled and nodded at me. If this was delusion then, indeed, I
-was mad.
-
-"For God's sake don't deceive me, Bob!" He must have followed my words
-in the movement of my lips, for sound scarcely issued from them. "This
-is real. You are my friend, Bob Tucker?"
-
-"I am your friend, Bob Tucker, who ought to be whipped at the cart's
-tail for not having found you before. But I am in time, and I thank
-God for it!"
-
-"You spoke of Sophy?" I did not dare to ask the question which was in
-my mind.
-
-"I did. Your voice is getting stronger already. She's all right. Don't
-you fret about her."
-
-"I want to know the solemn truth, Bob. She lives?"
-
-"She lives. It is the solemn and happy truth, dear friend. She is near
-you at the present moment."
-
-"Bring her close to me. Let me touch her hand."
-
-It was placed in mine and guided to my lips. I kissed it, and a weak
-voice stole upon my ears:
-
-"I am as well as well can be, Mr. Agnold! I'll dance yer a hornpipe if
-yer like!"
-
-"My brave girl--my dear, brave Sophy! O God, I thank Thee!"
-
-Then everything faded from my sight and I heard nothing more.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LVIII.
-
-FRIENDS TO THE RESCUE.
-
-
-Sophy and I were lying on two couches placed so that my eyes could
-rest upon her face. A day and a night had elapsed since our rescue,
-and I had gained strength surprisingly. With the help of Bob I had
-dressed myself in the afternoon, and seeing that the exertion had
-nearly exhausted me he insisted upon my lying down on a couch. I, on
-my part, upon learning that Sophy had also with assistance dressed
-herself, in "spick and span new clothes," as she afterwards informed
-me, insisted feebly but firmly that she should be brought into my
-room, so there we were, gazing at each other, and rapidly recovering
-from the terrible ordeal through which we had passed. Warm baths, an
-entire change of clothing, rest in a soft bed--surely the clean sheets
-were the most delicious that mortal ever lay between--nourishing food,
-and the blessed sense of safety, had done wonders for us. Bob had
-refused with stern kindness to give me any account of his movements
-until I was in a fit condition to listen to him, and it was not until
-this day that he consented to place me in possession of the facts. His
-statement, up to a certain point, will be best explained in his own
-words.
-
-"Two days having passed," he said, "without hearing from you, I became
-anxious. The last letter I received from you was written in Monkshead,
-and in it you informed me that you were going farther on, but you did
-not mention the name of the place for which you were bound. As you had
-left Monkshead, it was useless my wiring or writing to you there, so I
-was compelled to wait your pleasure. Of course, in these
-circumstances, one always thinks that a letter has gone wrong, and as
-no other arrived I inferred that you had given me some information of
-your movements in the supposed missing letter, without which I had no
-idea what to do. At length I came to the conclusion that you had
-returned to London, and I determined to follow you. Even if I did not
-see you there, I might learn from your family or friends something
-which would enlighten me as to where you were, and what you were
-doing. Your family had not heard from you, and as they did not appear
-in any anxiety concerning you, I said nothing, you may be sure, that
-would cause them alarm. Then I sought an interview with the lady whose
-cause you espoused, and whom should I meet with her but M. Bordier. He
-was the soul of politeness, and I could not fail to be impressed by
-the radiant happiness which shone in the lady's face. I ascribed this
-joyful expression to the document which M. Bordier had found in the
-secret drawer of the desk, the particulars of which he had jealously
-concealed from me. Neither he nor the lady had heard from you. 'We
-hope to see him soon,' the lady said, 'to thank him for his wonderful
-kindness to us.' Before I left them M. Bordier drew me aside, and
-expressed a hope that I would do nothing to make public what had
-transpired with respect to the purloining of the desk, and the
-discovery of an important document in it. 'I assure you,' he said,
-'that it is entirely a private matter, and that publicity would cause
-the deepest pain to unoffending persons.' I replied that I should do
-nothing of my own accord, and that the matter rested with you, and you
-alone. He thanked me, and we parted."
-
-I interrupted Bob here. "Did M. Bordier make no reference to a trial
-in which he had been involved?"
-
-"Nothing."
-
-"Have you read of no trial in which his name appears?"
-
-"No. Let me finish first; you will have plenty to tell me when I have
-done. From M. Bordier I went to the office of the _Evening Moon_, and
-was equally unsuccessful in obtaining news of you. Somewhat puzzled I
-made my way back to the neighborhood of Tylney House, and thence went
-on to Monkshead. I had no particular fears for your safety, but I
-resolved, if possible, to track you. It was only on the second day of
-my arrival at Monkshead that I obtained news which led me to believe
-you had gone to Deering. Away I posted to Deering, and there I learned
-that you had gone to Glasserton, on what errand was not known. The
-landlord's daughter had shown you a short cut through the woods. I
-took the high road, as less likely to mislead me: but I may mention
-that before I started from Deering the girl who directed you informed
-me that only you and a young girl had gone to Glasserton. What, then,
-had become of Crawley? At Glasserton I heard that two persons
-answering to the description of you and Sophy had been in the village,
-that you had remained but a few hours, and had then started back
-toward Deering. I immediately returned to Deering, but you had not
-reappeared there. It was then that a fear of foul play flashed upon
-me; it was then and then only that I began to fear for your safety.
-There had been a mysterious murder committed in Deering Woods, and the
-murderer was committed for trial----"
-
-"My God!" I cried.
-
-Strange as it may appear, I had not until this moment thought of the
-murder which had been perpetrated in the woods. Heaven knows it was
-not from indifference that this lapse of memory had occurred to me,
-and I can only ascribe my forgetfulness to the intensity of my misery
-for several days past, during which I had been completely and entirely
-engrossed in the frightful sufferings I had endured. But now Bob's
-reference to the foul deed brought Gerald Paget's peril to my mind. I
-was so terribly excited that Bob caught hold of me in alarm, for I had
-started from my couch and was swaying to and fro on my feet.
-
-"In Heaven's name," exclaimed Bob, "what is the matter with you?"
-
-"Do not ask questions," I said, speaking with feverish haste, "but
-answer mine, and follow any instructions I may give you. The murderer
-is committed for trial, you say. Has the trial taken place?"
-
-"It is taking place now," replied Bob, speaking as rapidly as I did;
-the contagion of my excitement had seized him. "The Assizes are on."
-
-"What is the time?"
-
-"Five minutes past four."
-
-"When did the trial commence?"
-
-"This morning, I heard."
-
-"Is it over?"
-
-"I do not know."
-
-"Will it take you long to ascertain how it is proceeding?"
-
-"I might do it in half an hour."
-
-"Do it, in less time if you can, I am not mad, Bob; I am as sane as
-you are. This is a matter of life and death, and, God forgive me, I
-have allowed it to escape me. One more question. You have not spoken
-of Dr. Peterssen. Where is he?"
-
-"In prison, under arrest."
-
-"That is good news. Go now, quickly--and send the landlord up to me
-immediately, with some telegraph forms."
-
-He hastened from the room, and in a very short time the landlord made
-his appearance. The vital necessity of immediate action had inspired
-me with strength of mind if not with strength of body, and my mental
-powers were quickened and sharpened by the crisis. I had settled upon
-my plan of action, and when the landlord handed me the telegraph forms
-I wrote the messages I wished to send with celerity and clearness. The
-most urgent and lengthy of these telegrams was addressed to M.
-Bordier, and in it I implored him to come to me without a moment's
-delay, and to bring Emilia with him. I told him that the husband whose
-death Emilia had so long mourned was now on a trial for murder of
-which he was innocent, that I had been mercifully rescued myself from
-a cruel death and held in my hands proofs of Gerald Paget's innocence,
-and that my case would be strengthened by the presence of Emilia and
-himself. I requested him to acknowledge my telegram the instant he
-received it, and to say when I might expect him to join me; it was
-imperative that there should not be the least delay, and he was to
-spare no expense in attending to my instructions. In addition to this
-telegram I despatched messages to my mother, to the editor of the
-_Evening Moon_, and to Mrs. Middlemore. Without further detail I may
-say that I did everything in my power to bring the persons to my side
-whose presence I considered necessary for the work before me, and my
-despatches were winging to London before Bob returned. He reported
-that the case for the prosecution was not yet concluded, that it was
-expected that the defence would be brief, and that the summing up of
-the judge would occupy some time. It was almost certain that the
-verdict would not be delivered until to-morrow. Counsel had been
-deputed by the judge to defend the prisoner, who throughout the trial
-had maintained a strange silence, which some ascribed to obstinacy,
-and others to aberration of intellect. Having heard what Bob had to
-say, I addressed a letter to the counsel for the defence, urging him
-at the adjournment of the case, to call upon me immediately, as I had
-news to communicate to him of the highest importance to the prisoner.
-My letter despatched, there was nothing more to do for at least a
-couple of hours, and I consented to listen to the completion of Bob's
-narrative. When he heard that a murder had been committed in Deering
-Woods fears for my safety flashed upon him, and he went to see the
-body of the murdered man. He was greatly relieved to find that the
-body was that of a stranger--(it must be borne in mind here that he
-had never set eyes on M. Felix during that man's lifetime)--but it did
-not dispel his fears. I had started back to Deering through the woods,
-and from that moment neither I nor Sophy had been heard of. He
-determined to remain on the spot and keep watch about the woods, in
-the hope of discovering what had happened to me. The idea of foul play
-between Deering and Glasserton had taken morbid possession of him, and
-he did not attempt to banish it. Day after day he searched and watched
-without result, until one night he saw a man walking stealthily
-through the woods with provisions he must have purchased somewhere in
-the neighborhood. The stealthy movements of this man aroused Bob's
-suspicions, but although he followed him warily the man suddenly
-disappeared. This circumstance strengthened Bob's suspicions, and,
-with or without reason, he now came to the conclusion that the man,
-whose movements proclaimed that he was engaged in an unlawful
-proceeding, had something to do with my disappearance. He hired two
-men to watch with him, and at length his efforts were rewarded. The
-man was seen again at night creeping stealthily through the woods;
-again he disappeared at the same spot as on the previous occasion. It
-was at the edge of the fallen cliffs that this took place, and the men
-Bob had hired, who were more intimate with the locality than their
-employer, pointed out a downward track which bore marks of having been
-recently used. This track was noiselessly followed, with the result
-already recorded. Sophy and I were saved.
-
-"I did not come an hour too soon," said Bob, when he had concluded his
-story.
-
-"Not an hour, Bob. I believe I could not have lived another day."
-
-A telegram was brought into me. It was from M. Bordier: "We shall be
-with you to-night. Have not informed Mrs. Paget of the particulars.
-Not advisable to agitate her unnecessarily. Decide when we meet."
-Other telegrams were also brought to me, and I learned from them that
-my sister, a friend on the staff of the _Evening Moon_, and Mrs.
-Middlemore would also soon be with me. Bob had been thoughtful enough
-to arrange for the despatch of news from the court in which the trial
-was taking place. Seven o'clock, eight o'clock, nine o'clock, and the
-court was still sitting. The Judge was summing up, and had expressed a
-desire that the trial should be finished that night.
-
-"He is of the opinion," I said to Bob, "that the jury will not be long
-in giving their verdict."
-
-"It looks like it," said Bob.
-
-"Does this strike you as guilty or not guilty?"
-
-"Guilty," replied Bob.
-
-A note was here delivered to me from the counsel for the defense: "I
-cannot leave the court. The Judge will soon finish his summing up,
-which is unfavorable to the prisoner. He anticipates a rapid decision
-on the part of the jury, and a verdict of guilty. If your news is
-really of importance and, advantageous to the prisoner, come to the
-court immediately."
-
-I gave the note to Bob to read, and rose.
-
-"Sophy," I said, "are you strong enough to come with me? I am going to
-the court."
-
-"I'm ready," said Sophy.
-
-"Yes, Agnold," said Bob, "you must go."
-
-He ran down, and by the time we reached it a trap was waiting for us.
-
-"Have a couple of traps in waiting," I said to him, "and the moment
-the persons I expect arrive bring them to the court. Especially Mrs.
-Paget, M. Bordier, and Mrs. Middlemore, and send also any telegrams
-that may come."
-
-"Depend upon me, Agnold," said the good fellow. "Not a point shall be
-missed." He waved his hand as we drove away, and called out, "Good
-luck!"
-
-And now I must encroach upon the columns of the _Evening Moon_ for a
-description of the events of this agitating night. A cooler head and a
-steadier hand than mine have made the record, and all that I have to
-do is to vouch for its accuracy.
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LIX.
-
-FROM THE COLUMNS OF THE "THE EVENING MOON," UNDER
-THE HEADING, "THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX SOLVED."
-
-
-"The stirring incidents of a great city are so numerous, and so
-pressing in their demands upon the space of the local papers, that it
-occasionally happens that incidents as stirring and exciting which
-occur at a distance from the Metropolis are either overlooked or
-dismissed in a short paragraph at the bottom of a column. This
-happened in a trial for murder which took place in the Midland
-Circuit, and, were it not that this particular case bears directly
-upon the mystery known as The Mystery of M. Felix, its remarkable
-features would probably have escaped notice in the Metropolitan
-journals. The circumstances of the case, so far as they were known to
-the public on the day on which the trial took place, are as simple as
-they are singular. A man was found murdered in Deering Woods. He was a
-stranger in the neighborhood, and nothing was found on him which could
-establish his identity. His pockets were empty, and his underclothing
-was unmarked. He met his death by a shot fired from a revolver, and
-the bullet was extracted from his body. In the same woods on the same
-night a man suspected of the murder was taken into custody. He had in
-his possession a six-barrelled revolver, and one of the barrels had
-been discharged. Upon being questioned he refused to answer, but
-looked vacantly about him. The bullet which was extracted from the
-body of the murdered man fitted the discharged barrel, and was similar
-to the bullets, with which the remaining five barrels were loaded. The
-accused, who was properly committed for trial, was, like the victim, a
-stranger in the neighborhood, and bore about him nothing that could
-lead to his identification. His silence was a suspicious element in
-the charge against him, and the revolver with which the deed was done
-being found upon him, there was little room for doubt that he was the
-murderer. What the motive for the crime could have been it is
-impossible to say; if it were robbery the stolen property was
-carefully hidden away, for no traces of it were discovered. The
-evidence was simple, but appeared to be complete, and the accused lay
-in prison until the Assizes, which were held soon after he was
-committed. At the trial he preserved the same stubborn silence as he
-had maintained before the magistrate. Asked to plead, he made no
-answer, and a plea of not guilty was recorded. He had no counsel, and
-one was assigned to him. The young barrister to whom the defence was
-entrusted had a difficult task before him. He could obtain not the
-least assistance from the prisoner, who stood in the dock apparently
-unconcerned regarding his fate. But it is said that there could
-occasionally have been observed on his features a pitiful expression,
-which aroused the sympathy of the spectators. This expression has been
-described by an onlooker as that of a man who had borne the cruellest
-and bitterest of buffets in his course through life, and who had been
-brought to a pass in which he looked upon death as the kindest mercy
-which could be meted out to him. There were women in court who sobbed
-as they gazed upon his sad and hopeless face, and yet could not have
-accounted for their tears on any other ground than those of
-unreasoning sentiment. That this mute and unconscious appeal had a
-powerful effect upon the jury will be seen a little further on; it
-certainly led them to act in a manner which is perhaps unprecedented
-in a trial for murder in an English court of justice. It will be seen
-that there were very few witnesses. The surgeon who extracted the
-bullet, a gun-maker who testified that the barrel had been recently
-discharged, and that the bullet was one of six with which the weapon
-had been loaded, the constables who arrested the prisoner--these were
-all that were called for the prosecution. The Crown counsel elicited
-all the facts in a fair and impartial manner, and it was evident that
-he considered the case conclusive. The cross-examination was skilfully
-conducted, severe tests being applied to the evidence respecting the
-bullet; but the witnesses remained unshaken. The cross-examination of
-the constables was directed principally to the demeanor and conduct of
-the prisoner. Did he make any resistance?--No. When he was arrested,
-was he endeavoring to make his escape?--It did not appear so; he was
-wandering through the woods. Was it, to all appearance, an aimless
-wandering?--Yes. Did he make any excuses for, or give any explanation
-of his presence in the woods?--He did not utter a single word. Did he
-endeavor to hide or get rid of the revolver?--No. For the defence a
-physician who had examined the prisoner was called. His testimony was
-to the effect that the prisoner was afflicted with melancholia, and
-that his mind was in such a condition as to render him irresponsible
-for his actions. It was clear that the line set up for the defence was
-that the prisoner was insane. The cross-examination of the physician
-somewhat damaged the weight of his evidence. Did he base his belief
-that the prisoner was afflicted with melancholia and was not
-responsible for his actions on the circumstance of his refusing to
-speak?--Partly, but only to a slight extent. Had he not met in his
-professional experiences with cases in which persons accused of crime
-preserved an obstinate and dogged silence for the express purpose of
-being considered insane and irresponsible?--Yes, there had been such
-cases. Scanty as was the evidence it occupied several hours. Counsel
-for the defence made an eloquent and impassioned defence on the plea
-of irresponsibility and insanity, and then the prosecuting counsel
-addressed the jury. He dealt in hard and plain facts; he spoke coldly
-and without passion; he refused to entertain the line of the defence,
-and said it was more than likely that the prisoner's demeanor
-proceeded from a cunning nature, and that he hoped by this means to
-escape the consequences of a ruthless murder committed in cold blood.
-The Judge, who said that there was no reason why the trial should not
-be concluded that night, and that the Court would sit late to receive
-the verdict, summed up dead against the prisoner. Following in the
-train of the counsel for the Crown, he laid down the law in the
-clearest manner, and he directed the jury to consider certain issues
-and be guided by them, and to perform conscientiously the duty for
-which they were called together. At a quarter to ten o'clock the jury
-retired, and the Judge left the court, with directions that he should
-be called when the jury returned.
-
-"It was at this stage of the inquiry that the case promised to assume
-a new aspect. Our reporter, Mr. Agnold, with whom our readers are
-acquainted, and to whom the public are indebted for the light thrown
-upon the Mystery of M. Felix, entered the court in the company of the
-young girl, Sophy, and immediately fell into earnest conversation with
-the counsel for the defence. Their conversation lasted a considerable
-time, during which the counsel took copious notes, breaking off
-occasionally to put questions to Sophy, who answered them readily.
-Once the counsel turned Sophy's attention to the prisoner, and she
-moved toward him. He, turning, saw her, and greeted her with a smile
-of much sweetness, to which she pitifully responded. This sign of
-mutual recognition, indicating as it did an acquaintanceship between
-the prisoner and the young girl, heightened to fever-pitch the
-interest and excitement of the spectators, but before any explanation
-of the incident could be given, the return of the jury was announced.
-Almost at the same moment the Judge made his appearance. The names of
-the jury were about to be called out, when the counsel for the defence
-rose for the purpose of making a remark, but was desired by the Judge
-to resume his seat until the verdict of the jury was given.
-
-"Counsel for the defence: 'If your Lordship knew the importance of the
-observations I wish to make----'
-
-"The Judge: 'I must request you to be seated until we have done with
-the jury. Then I will hear you.'
-
-"The jury having answered to their names, were asked if they had
-agreed upon a verdict; whereupon the following conversation took
-place:
-
-"The Foreman of the Jury: 'My Lord, the jury wish me to say that they
-are morally convinced that the prisoner is not guilty.'
-
-"The Judge: 'That is not a verdict. It is not a question of being
-morally convinced; it is a question of being legally convinced.'
-
-"The Foreman: 'But the jury have the strongest moral doubts, my Lord.'
-
-"The Judge: 'They would not be sufficient to lead to a verdict. The
-doubts must be legal doubts. It is not for me to influence you one way
-or another. I have put the facts of the case before you, and it is
-upon those facts you must decide and pronounce your verdict.'
-
-"The Foreman (after a brief consultation with his brother jurymen):
-'Our verdict, my Lord, is Not guilty.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Upon what grounds have you arrived at your verdict?'
-
-"The Foreman: 'Upon the grounds of moral conviction, my Lord.'
-
-"The Judge: 'It is my duty to tell you again that those grounds are
-insufficient. Sentiment has nothing whatever to do with a criminal
-case. I must request you to retire and reconsider your verdict.'
-
-"The Foreman: 'With all respect, my Lord, it is useless. We have
-resolved to return no other verdict than the one we have given, and
-upon the grounds I have stated.'
-
-"Several of the jury gave audible assent to their foreman's words.
-
-"The Judge: 'I cannot receive your verdict, accompanied by your
-statement. You will retire and give the matter further consideration.'
-
-"The Foreman: 'If we are locked up all night, my Lord, we shall return
-no other verdict.'
-
-"The Judge: 'I do not wish to be harsh or oppressive. Equally with
-yourselves I have a duty to perform. If you do not rightly comprehend
-any part of the evidence, say so, and I will explain it to you.'
-
-"The Foreman: 'We have no doubts, my Lord. We understand the evidence
-thoroughly.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Oh, if you cannot agree----'
-
-"The Foreman: 'We are thoroughly agreed, my Lord.'
-
-"The Judge: 'You will retire.'
-
-"The jury were then conducted out of court.
-
-"The Judge, addressing counsel for the defence: 'I am ready to hear
-you now.'
-
-"Counsel: 'My Lord, during your Lordship's absence from court, while
-the jury were considering their verdict, the most important
-revelations have been made to me.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Bearing upon this case?'
-
-"Counsel: 'Bearing directly upon this case. Two persons are present
-now, who, if I had been able to call them, would have thrown an
-entirely different light upon the case. One of them is personally
-acquainted with the prisoner, the other does not know him personally,
-but knows his name.'
-
-"The Judge 'The Crown is not represented. The learned counsel is not
-in court. I cannot now hear statements from other persons; but you can
-go on with your statement. His name is known, you say?'
-
-"Counsel: 'Yes, my Lord. It is Gerald Paget.'
-
-At this mention of his name the prisoner became violently agitated.
-His countenance was convulsed, and he stretched forth his arms, which
-trembled from excess of emotion.
-
-"The Judge: 'The prisoner appears to be ill. Is there a doctor in
-court?'
-
-"The prisoner (speaking for the first time): 'I am not ill. I want to
-hear what he has to say.'
-
-"Counsel: 'For nineteen years he has been supposed to be dead, and, in
-pursuance of a diabolical plot, has been confined in a private
-madhouse as another person. It is this cruel imprisonment which has
-reduced him to the condition in which we now see him.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Your statement is an extraordinary one.'
-
-"Counsel: 'I shall be able, my Lord, to establish its truth, and the
-truth of other facts as extraordinary. The strange story which has
-been revealed to me is too lengthy and complicated to narrate at this
-hour, but if your Lordship will adjourn until to-morrow I undertake to
-prove the unfortunate prisoner's innocence, and also the guilt of the
-man who should now be standing in his place.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Is the man known? Can he be found?'
-
-"Counsel: 'He is known, and is now in prison under another charge
-which is directly connected with the murder for which the prisoner has
-been tried.'
-
-"The Judge: 'If your statements are true the case is unprecedented.'
-
-"Counsel: 'It is, my Lord. The person who is guilty of the murder was
-the prisoner's keeper. There has hitherto been no identification of
-the murdered man; I am now in a position to prove who he was. He bore
-the name of Leonard Paget.'
-
-"The Judge: 'Paget is the name of the prisoner.'
-
-"Counsel: 'They were half brothers. There is a question of property
-involved.'
-
-"An officer of the court here presented himself, and said that the
-jury wished to speak to the judge.
-
-"The Judge: 'Let them be brought in.'
-
-"Upon this being done, the Judge asked the foreman what he had to say.
-
-"The Foreman: 'It is simply, my Lord, that there is not the remotest
-possibility of our returning any other verdict than that we have
-delivered, and in the precise terms in which we have delivered it.
-There is not the slightest difference of opinion between us; we are
-absolutely unanimous.'
-
-"The Judge: 'As I have already told you, it is no verdict. Officer,
-what is that noise?'
-
-"Counsel: 'Witnesses from London have just arrived, my Lord, who are
-ready to prove the truth of the statements I have made.'
-
-"An extraordinary scene ensued. One of the newly-arrived witnesses was
-a lady, whose eyes travelled round the court, and finally rested upon
-the prisoner. In this lady our readers will have no difficulty in
-recognizing Emilia Paget The moment she saw the prisoner a look of
-incredulous joy sprang into her eyes.
-
-"'Merciful God!' she cried. 'Has the dead returned to life? Am I awake
-or dreaming?'
-
-"The Prisoner, with a wild scream: 'Emilia!'
-
-"Emilia: 'It is his voice! Gerald! Gerald!'
-
-"She rushed to the prisoner, and no attempt was made to restrain her.
-Throwing her arms round his neck she drew his head down to her breast.
-Convulsive sobs shook their frames.
-
-"Counsel, solemnly: 'My Lord, the prisoner is this lady's husband,
-whom she has mourned as dead for nineteen years.'
-
-"The Foreman of the Jury: 'My Lord, if anything was needed to prove
-the justice of our verdict, the proof is now supplied.'
-
-"The Judge: 'You are discharged. The Court is adjourned. Remove the
-prisoner.'
-
-"Counsel: 'My Lord, my Lord! May not this afflicted couple be allowed
-a few minutes' intercourse?'
-
-"The Judge: 'I leave it to the discretion of the officers in charge of
-the prisoner.'
-
-"Counsel: 'Direct them my lord. Say that it may be allowed.'
-
-"The Judge: 'It may be allowed. But all the persons not directly
-concerned in this unparalleled case must retire.'
-
-"Slowly and reluctantly the spectators left the court in a state of
-indescribable excitement."
-
-
-
-
-CHAPTER LX.
-
-ROBERT AGNOLD'S LAST WORDS.
-
-
-I resume and conclude the Mystery of M. Felix in my own person. What
-transpired after the incidents of that exciting night is soon related.
-Before Gerald Paget was released Dr. Peterssen was put on his trial
-for the murder. The minor charge of his attempt upon Sophy's life and
-mine was set aside, and was only incidentally referred to in the
-evidence and speech of the prosecuting counsel. Guilt was never more
-clearly proved than his. The revolver with which the murder was
-committed was the same he had purloined from the rooms in Gerard
-Street, when he sent Mrs. Middlemore upon a false errand to the Bow
-Street Police Court. On this head Mrs. Middlemore's evidence was
-valuable; but my evidence on the point was still more valuable. The
-initial "F." I had scratched on the metal, and the entry I had made in
-my pocket book, "A Colt's double-action revolver, nickel-plated, 6
-shots, No. 819," enabled me to swear positively to the weapon.
-Peterssen's own confession of guilt to me when Sophy and I were
-imprisoned in the cavern in Deering Woods was fatal, and Sophy, who
-was one of the two heroines of this celebrated trial, won the
-admiration of all England by the manner in which she gave her
-evidence. It was imperative that Emilia should be called, and she
-narrated with great feeling all the circumstances of her brief but
-fateful acquaintance with Peterssen during the honeymoon tour in
-Switzerland. There was found upon Peterssen a large sum of money in
-bank notes, and the manager of the bank in which the murdered man,
-under the name of M. Felix, kept his account, proved, by the numbers
-on the notes, that they had been paid to Peterssen's victim across the
-bank counter. Another witness called was George Street's father, upon
-whom Peterssen had so long and so successfully imposed. He testified
-that Gerald Paget was not his son, and said that on every occasion on
-which he desired to see the patient, Peterssen had declared that a
-fatal result would be the certain consequence of an interview. Gerald
-Paget was brought into court, but he was so weak and ill that his
-evidence could not be taken. The case, however, was complete without
-him. There was practically no defence; the jury debated for a few
-minutes only, and brought in a verdict of guilty; the villain was
-sentenced, and he paid the penalty of his crimes. For Leonard Paget,
-alias M. Felix, no pity was expressed; the fate he had met with was
-richly deserved.
-
-Needless to say that the case excited immense interest, and it was
-universally admitted that its sensational disclosures were without
-parallel in the history of crime. I may mention that Crawley was not
-traced; up to this day he has succeeded in concealing himself; but his
-hour will come.
-
-After all was said and done, I think that Sophy held rank as _the_
-heroine of the mystery. A daily paper suggested that a subscription
-should be got up for her; to this suggestion practical effect was
-given, and money flowed in from all ranks and classes of people. Close
-upon a thousand pounds were subscribed; so Sophy is rich. Fame has not
-turned her head. She said to me but yesterday, "I ain't proud; not a
-bit of it. Whenever you want me, Mr. Agnold, you'll find me ready." In
-time she will improve in her language, and one day she may be really a
-lady.
-
-The words Sophy addressed to me were spoken in Geneva, where these
-lines are being written. The wedding of Constance Paget and M. Julian
-Bordier took place yesterday, and we were invited to it. The father of
-the bride was present. The rescue from his living tomb, the new and
-happier life, and the care and devotion of his wife Emilia, upon whose
-sweet face he never tires of gazing, has already brought about a great
-change for the better, and confident hopes are entertained that before
-long his reason will be permanently restored. It is pleasant to be
-able to record that the kind and skilful oculist who had given
-evidence in what I may call the marriage certificate case has made a
-cure of M. Julian Bordier. He can see, and the terror of blindness no
-longer afflicts him.
-
-This morning the oculist (who gave himself a week's holiday to attend
-the wedding) and I had a chat about M. Felix, whose supposed death in
-Gerard Street, Soho, caused so great a sensation. He has been hunting
-up cases of suspended animation, and he read to me half a dozen, each
-of which lasted for a much longer time than M. Felix's. Since
-Peterssen's trial there has been a great deal written in newspapers
-and magazines concerning these instances of apparent death, and wonder
-has been expressed that, upon M. Felix's disappearance, no one thought
-it was likely that he had gone through such an experience. My answer
-to this expression of wonder is that it is easy to be wise after the
-event.
-
-While we were engaged in our conversation, the oculist and I were
-sitting at a window of the house which Constance and her husband are
-to occupy when they return from their honeymoon. The window overlooks
-a garden in which Emilia and Gerald are walking.
-
-"A good and sweet woman," said the oculist, smiling at Emilia, who had
-looked up and smiled at us. "She deserves happiness."
-
-"She will have it," I said. "The clouds have disappeared from her
-life. Her trials are over."
-
-
-
-THE END.
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Mystery of M. Felix, by B. L. Farjeon
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX ***
-
-***** This file should be named 53263-8.txt or 53263-8.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/2/6/53263/
-
-Produced by Charles Bowen from page scans provided by
-Google Books (The Ohio State University)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
diff --git a/old/53263-8.zip b/old/53263-8.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index c2d9d54..0000000
--- a/old/53263-8.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53263-h.zip b/old/53263-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index b2213c1..0000000
--- a/old/53263-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/53263-h/53263-h.htm b/old/53263-h/53263-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 4f83384..0000000
--- a/old/53263-h/53263-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,18852 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE HTML PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD HTML 4.01 Transitional//EN">
-<html>
-<head>
-<title>The Mystery of M. Felix</title>
-<meta name="Author" content="B. L. Farjeon">
-
-<meta name="Publisher" content="John W. Lovell Company">
-<meta name="Date" content="1890">
-<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=ISO-8859-1">
-<style type="text/css">
-body {margin-left:10%;
- margin-right:10%; background-color:#FFFFFF;}
-
-
-p.normal {text-indent:.25in; text-align: justify;}
-p.center {text-align: center}
-p.right {text-align:right; margin-right:20%;}
-
-p.continue {text-indent: 0in; margin-top:9pt;}
-
-h1,h2,h3,h4,h5 {text-align: center;}
-
-span.sc {font-variant: small-caps; font-size:110%;}
-span.sc2 {font-variant: small-caps; font-size:90%;}
-
-hr.W10 {width:10%; color:black; margin-top:0pt; margin-bottom:0pt}
-
-hr.W20 {width:20%; color:black; margin-top:12pt; margin-bottom:12pt}
-
-hr.W50 {width:50%; color:black;}
-hr.W90 {width:90%; color:black;}
-
-p.hang1 {margin-left:3em; text-indent:-3em;}
-p.hang2 {margin-left:3em; text-indent:0em;}
-
-</style>
-
-</head>
-
-<body>
-
-
-<pre>
-
-The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Mystery of M. Felix, by B. L. Farjeon
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
-other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of
-the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have
-to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook.
-
-Title: The Mystery of M. Felix
-
-Author: B. L. Farjeon
-
-Release Date: October 12, 2016 [EBook #53263]
-
-Language: English
-
-Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
-
-*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX ***
-
-
-
-
-Produced by Charles Bowen from page scans provided by
-Google Books (The Ohio State University)
-
-
-
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<p class="hang1">Transcriber's Notes:<br>
-1. Page Scan Source:<br>
-https://books.google.com/books?id=qdw9AQAAMAAJ<br>
-(The Ohio State University)</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h3>THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX</h3>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h5>BY</h5>
-
-<h4>B. L. FARJEON</h4>
-<h5>AUTHOR OF &quot;GREAT PORTER SQUARE,&quot; &quot;MISER FAREBROTHER,&quot;<br>
-ETC., ETC.</h5>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><span style="font-size:smaller">NEW YORK</span><br>
-JOHN W. LOVELL COMPANY<br>
-<span class="sc">150 Worth Street, Corner Mission Place</span></h4>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h5><span class="sc">Copyright, 1890,<br>
-by</span><br>
-<span class="sc">J. W. LOVELL CO.</span></h5>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h3>THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX.</h3>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<table cellpadding="10" style="width:90%; margin-left:5%; font-weight:bold">
-<colgroup><col style="width:35%; vertical-align:top; text-align:left"><col style="width:65%; vertical-align:top; text-align:left"></colgroup>
-<tr>
-<td colspan="2"><h4><b>CONTENTS</b></h4></td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_01" href="#div1_01">I.</a></td>
-<td>A CRY FOR HELP FLOATS THROUGH THE NIGHT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_02" href="#div1_02">II.</a></td>
-<td>THE SPECTRE CAT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_03" href="#div1_03">III.</a></td>
-<td>A THRILLING INCIDENT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_04" href="#div1_04">IV.</a></td>
-<td>A DISCUSSION ABOUT RED CATS AND WHITE SNOW.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_05" href="#div1_05">V.</a></td>
-<td>DR. LAMB TELLS THE CONSTABLES AND MRS. MIDDLEMORE WHAT IS THE MATTER
-WITH MR. FELIX.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_06" href="#div1_06">VI.</a></td>
-<td>THE "EVENING MOON" INDULGES IN A BOMBASTIC RETROSPECT,
-IN WHICH SOME VERY TALL AND VERY FINE WRITING WILL BE
-DETECTED BY THE OBSERVANT READER.
-</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_07" href="#div1_07">VII.</a></td>
-<td>AN EXAMINATION OF CERTAIN DISCREPANCIES IN THE STATEMENTS
-OF THE THREE PRINCIPAL WITNESSES.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_08" href="#div1_08">VIII.</a></td>
-<td>A STARTLING PHASE IN THE MYSTERY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_09" href="#div1_09">IX.</a></td>
-<td>INTRODUCES SOPHY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_10" href="#div1_10">X.</a></td>
-<td>OUR REPORTER GIVES MRS. MIDDLEMORE SOME SENSIBLE
-ADVICE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_11" href="#div1_11">XI.</a></td>
-<td>THE "EVENING MOON" IS INUNDATED WITH CORRESPONDENCE
-CONCERNING THE DISAPPEARANCE OF THE BODY OF M. FELIX.
-</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_12" href="#div1_12">XII.</a></td>
-<td>THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" MAKES A DISCOVERY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_13" href="#div1_13">XIII.</a></td>
-<td>THE REPORTER OF THE "EVENING MOON" GIVES SOPHY
-A TREAT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_14" href="#div1_14">XIV.</a></td>
-<td>SOPHY IMPARTS STRANGE NEWS TO THE REPORTER OF THE
-"EVENING MOON."</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_15" href="#div1_15">XV.</a></td>
-<td>A SINGULAR ADVENTURE ON THE THAMES EMBANKMENT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_16" href="#div1_16">XVI.</a></td>
-<td>AT THE BOW STREET POLICE STATION.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_17" href="#div1_17">XVII.</a></td>
-<td>THE SLEEPING BEAUTY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_18" href="#div1_18">XVIII.</a></td>
-<td>HOW THE CHARGE WAS DISPOSED OF.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_19" href="#div1_19">XIX.</a></td>
-<td>WHAT WAS FOUND IN THE RIVER.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_20" href="#div1_20">XX.</a></td>
-<td>MRS. MIDDLEMORE IS VICTIMIZED.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_21" href="#div1_21">XXI.</a></td>
-<td>CIRCUMSTANTIAL EVIDENCE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div0Ref_02" href="#div0_02">BOOK SECOND.</a></td>
-<td>A LIFE DRAMA: LINKS IN THE MYSTERY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_22" href="#div1_22">XXII.</a></td>
-<td>THE HALF-BROTHERS.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_23" href="#div1_23">XXIII.</a></td>
-<td>TWO HEARTS THAT BEAT AS ONE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_24" href="#div1_24">XXIV.</a></td>
-<td>SLANDER.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_25" href="#div1_25">XXV.</a></td>
-<td>LOST, OR SAVED?</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_26" href="#div1_26">XXVI.</a></td>
-<td>SLANDER'S FOUL TONGUE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_27" href="#div1_27">XXVII.</a></td>
-<td>LEONARD RETURNS HOME.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_28" href="#div1_28">XXVIII.</a></td>
-<td>THE FALSE FRIEND.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_29" href="#div1_29">XXIX.</a></td>
-<td>ON THE TRACK.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_30" href="#div1_30">XXX.</a></td>
-<td>THE FLIGHT AND THE RESCUE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_31" href="#div1_31">XXXI.</a></td>
-<td>LIGHT SHINES THROUGH THE DARK CLOUDS.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_32" href="#div1_32">XXXII.</a></td>
-<td>LEONARD MEETS WITH A FELLOW-SCOUNDREL.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_33" href="#div1_33">XXXIII.</a></td>
-<td>A FOUL DEED.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_34" href="#div1_34">XXXIV.</a></td>
-<td>DR. PETERSSEN EXPLAINS HIMSELF.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_35" href="#div1_35">XXXV.</a></td>
-<td>EMILIA AND LEONARD.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_36" href="#div1_36">XXXVI.</a></td>
-<td>"ONLY YOU AND I, DARLING, ONLY YOU AND I."</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_37" href="#div1_37">XXXVII.</a></td>
-<td>A GOOD WOMAN.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_38" href="#div1_38">XXXVIII.</a></td>
-<td>CONSTANCE AND JULIAN.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_39" href="#div1_39">XXXIX.</a></td>
-<td>IN ENGLAND ONCE MORE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_40" href="#div1_40">XL.</a></td>
-<td>DR. PETERSSEN REAPPEARS ON THE SCENE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_41" href="#div1_41">XLI.</a></td>
-<td>DR. PETERSSEN BRINGS M. FELIX TO BOOK.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_42" href="#div1_42">XLII.</a></td>
-<td>EMILIA AND M. FELIX.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div0Ref_03" href="#div0_03">BOOK THIRD</a></td>
-<td>WHAT BECAME OF M. FELIX, AS RELATED IN THE FIRST PERSON BY ROBERT
-AGNOLD, ON THE REPORTING STAFF OF THE "EVENING MOON."</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_43" href="#div1_43">XLIII.</a></td>
-<td>ROBERT AGNOLD TAKES UP THE THREADS OF THE STORY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_44" href="#div1_44">XLIV.</a></td>
-<td>EMILIA RETRACES THE OLD ROADS.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_45" href="#div1_45">XLV.</a></td>
-<td>DR. PETERSSEN IS TRACKED.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_46" href="#div1_46">XLVI.</a></td>
-<td>I ENTER INTO AN ARRANGEMENT WITH SOPHY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_47" href="#div1_47">XLVII.</a></td>
-<td>I RECEIVE A STRANGE VISITOR.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_48" href="#div1_48">XLVIII.</a></td>
-<td>SOPHY ENTERS DR. PETERSSEN'S ESTABLISHMENT AS A FRIENDLY
-PATIENT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_49" href="#div1_49">XLIX.</a></td>
-<td>M. BORDIER JOINS THE HUNT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_50" href="#div1_50">L.</a></td>
-<td>CLEVER SOPHY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_51" href="#div1_51">LI.</a></td>
-<td>SOPHY MAKES A STRANGE STATEMENT.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_52" href="#div1_52">LII.</a></td>
-<td>THE GHOST OF M. FELIX.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_53" href="#div1_53">LIII.</a></td>
-<td>THE PORTRAIT OF GERALD PAGET.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_54" href="#div1_54">LIV.</a></td>
-<td>OBTAIN AN EXPLANATION FROM EMILIA.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_55" href="#div1_55">LV.</a></td>
-<td>TREACHERY.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_56" href="#div1_56">LVI.</a></td>
-<td>NIGHT IN DEERING WOODS.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_57" href="#div1_57">LVII.</a></td>
-<td>THE CAVERN IN THE CLIFF.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_58" href="#div1_58">LVIII.</a></td>
-<td>FRIENDS TO THE RESCUE.</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_59" href="#div1_59">LIX.</a></td>
-<td>FROM THE COLUMNS OF THE "THE EVENING MOON," UNDER
-THE HEADING, "THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX SOLVED."</td>
-</tr><tr>
-<td><a name="div1Ref_60" href="#div1_60">LX.</a></td>
-<td>ROBERT AGNOLD'S LAST WORDS.</td>
-</tr></table>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h3>THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX.</h3>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-
-<h4><a name="div1_01" href="#div1Ref_01">CHAPTER I.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A CRY FOR HELP FLOATS THROUGH THE NIGHT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Through the whole of the night, chopping, shifting winds had
-been tearing through the streets of London, now from the north, now from the
-south, now from the east, now from the west, now from all points of the compass
-at once; which last caprice--taking place for at least the twentieth time in the
-course of the hour which the bells of Big Ben were striking--was enough in
-itself to make the policeman on the beat doubtful of his senses.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What a chap hears in weather like this,&quot; he muttered, &quot;and
-what he fancies he hears, is enough to drive him mad.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He had sufficient justification for the remark, for there were
-not only the wild pranks of Boreas to torment and distract him, but there was
-the snow which, blown in fine particles from roofs and gables, and torn from
-nooks where it lay huddled up in little heaps against stone walls (for the
-reason that being blown there by previous winds it could get no further), seemed
-to take a spiteful pleasure in whirling into his face, which was tingling and
-smarting with cold, and as a matter of course into his eyes, which it caused to
-run over with tears. With a vague idea that some appeal had been made officially
-to him as a representative of law and order, he steadied himself and stood still
-for a few moments, with a spiritual cold freezing his heart, even as the
-temporal cold was freezing his marrow.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The bells of Big Ben were still proclaiming the hour of
-midnight. If a man at such a time might have reasonably been forgiven the fancy
-that old Westminster's tower had been invaded by an army of malicious witches,
-how much more readily might he have been forgiven for not being able to fix the
-direction from which this cry for help proceeded? Nay, he could scarcely have
-been blamed for doubting that the cry was human.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">For the third time--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then, so far as that appeal was concerned, silence. The cry
-was heard no more.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The policeman still labored under a vague impression that his
-duty lay somewhere in an undefined direction, and his attitude was one of
-strained yet bewildered attention. Suddenly he received a terrible shock.
-Something touched his foot. He started back, all his nerves thrilling with an
-unreasonable spasm of horror. Instinctively looking down, he discovered that he
-had been ridiculously alarmed by a miserable, half-starved, and nearly
-whole-frozen cat, which, with the scanty hairs on its back sticking up in sharp
-points, was creeping timorously along in quest of an open door. Recovering from
-his alarm, the policeman stamped his feet and clapped his hands vigorously to
-keep the circulation in them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His beat was in the heart of Soho, and he was at that moment
-in Gerard Street, in which locality human life is represented in perhaps
-stranger variety than can be found in any other part of this gigantic city of
-darkness and light. As a protection against the fierce wind he had taken refuge
-within the portal of the closed door of an old house which lay a little back
-from the regular line of buildings in the street. Little did he dream that the
-cry for help had proceeded from that very house, the upper portion of which was
-inhabited by a gentleman known as M. Felix by some, as Mr. Felix by others. Well
-named, apparently, for although he was not young, M. Felix was distinguished by
-a certain happy, light-hearted air, which marked him as one who held enjoyment
-of the pleasures of life as a kind of religion to be devoutly observed. The
-lower portion of the house was occupied by the landlady, Mrs. Middlemore, who
-acted as housekeeper to M. Felix. It was the nightly habit of this estimable
-woman to go for her supper beer at half-past eleven, and return, beaming, at a
-few minutes after twelve.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">These late hours did not interfere with the performance of her
-duties, because M. Felix was by no means an early riser, seldom breakfasting,
-indeed, before noon. Despite the inclemency of the weather, Mrs. Middlemore had
-not deviated on this night from her usual custom. She was a widow, without
-responsibilities, and no person had a right to meddle with her affairs. Besides,
-as she frequently remarked, she was quite able to take care of herself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A welcome diversion occurred to the constable who was stamping
-his feet within the portal of Mrs. Middlemore's street door. A brother constable
-sauntered up, and accosted him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is that you, Wigg?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As much as there's left of me,&quot; replied Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You may well say that,&quot; observed the new-comer, who rejoiced
-in the name of Nightingale. &quot;It's all a job to keep one's self together. What a
-night!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bitter. I've been regularly blown off my feet.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My case. I'm froze to a stone. The North Pole ain't in it
-with this, and whether I've got a nose on my face is more than I'd swear to.
-Anything up?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing, except----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Except what?&quot; asked Constable Nightingale, as his comrade
-paused. He put his hand to his nose as he asked the question, his reference to
-it having inspired doubts as to his being still in possession of the feature.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A minute or two ago,&quot; said Constable Wigg, &quot;I had half a
-fancy that I heard somebody cry out 'Help!'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah! Did you go?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How could I? I wasn't sure, you know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who could be sure of anything,&quot; remarked Constable
-Nightingale, charitably, &quot;on such a night?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nobody. It must have been the wind.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a doubt of it. If anybody told me he saw Polar bears
-about I shouldn't dispute with him.&quot; Then Constable Nightingale took a step
-forward, and glanced up at the windows of the front rooms occupied by M. Felix,
-in which shone a perfect blaze of light. &quot;He must be jolly warm up there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who?&quot; inquired Constable Wigg, his eyes following his
-comrade's glance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And who's Mr. Felix when he's at home?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why, you don't mean to say you don't know him!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never heard of him. I've only been on the beat two nights.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I forgot. He's a trump, a regular A-one-er. You're in for a
-good tip or two. I was on night duty here this time last year, and he behaved
-handsome. Tipped me at Christmas, and tipped me at New Year's. Half a sov. each
-time. And at other times, too. Altogether he was as good as between four and
-five pounds to me while I was here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's something like,&quot; said Constable Wigg, with something
-of eager hope in his voice; &quot;not many like him knocking around. But&quot;--with
-sudden suspicion--&quot;why should he be so free? Anything wrong about him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit of it,&quot; replied Constable Nightingale, blowing on
-his ice-cold fingers. &quot;He's a diamond of the first water--a tip-top swell,
-rolling in money. That's what's the matter with Mr. Felix. Don't you wish you
-had the same complaint? 'Constable,' said he to me, when I came on this beat
-last year, 'you're on night duty here, eh?' 'Yes, sir,' I answers. 'Very good,'
-he says, acting like a gentleman; 'I live in this house'--we were standing at
-this very door--'and I always make it a point to look after them as looks after
-me.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And a very good point it is,&quot; remarked Constable Wigg, with
-growing interest, &quot;for a gentleman to make.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought so myself, and I found it so. 'And I always make it
-a point,' says he, of 'looking after them as looks after me.' Fact is, Wigg, he
-comes home late sometimes, with a glass of wine to much in him, and he knows the
-usefulness of us. Carries a lump of money about him, and likes to feel himself
-safe. Never what you call drunk, you know. Just a bit sprung, as a real
-gentleman should be, and always with a pleasant word ready. So, whenever I met
-him coming home late, I'd walk behind him to his door here, and give him
-good-night; which he appreciated.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Much obliged to you for the information, Nightingale.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ought to do these little turns for one another, Wigg. The man
-who was on the beat before me gave me the office, and it's only friendly for me
-to give it to you.&quot; Constable Nightingale looked pensively over the shoulder of
-his brother constable, and added, &quot;I behaved liberal to him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll do likewise to you,&quot; said Constable Wigg, &quot;if anything
-happens.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Was sure you would, Wigg,&quot; responded Constable Nightingale,
-briskly. &quot;What would the force be worth if we didn't stick together? When I see
-Mr. Felix I'll put in a good word for you. He took a regular fancy to me, and
-told me if I got the beat again to come to him immediate. Once you see him, you
-can't miss knowing him. Tall and slim, with hair getting gray. No whiskers; only
-a mustache, curled. Speaks with a foreign accent--parleyvooish. His clothes fit
-like a glove. Patent leather boots always, except when he wears shoes; white tie
-generally. I remember Mrs. Middlemore----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who's she?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;His landlady. A most respectable woman--made of the right
-stuff. Ah, a real good sort she is! Goes out every night for her supper beer
-between eleven and twelve.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must have seen her half an hour ago.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course you did. If it was to rain cats and dogs or snowed
-for a month, she wouldn't miss going. Has she come back?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She stops out as a rule till about this time; fond of a
-gossip, you know. Most of us are. She'll be here soon, if she can keep her feet.
-The snow's getting thicker--and listen to the wind! Let's get close to the door.
-Well, I remember Mrs. Middlemore coming out to me one night, and saying, 'You're
-wanted up there,' meaning in Mr. Felix's rooms----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg interposed. &quot;Just now you said parleyvooish.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So I did, and so I meant.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Speaks with a foreign accent, you said.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't deny it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you keep on saying Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Shouldn't it be Monseer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, perhaps; but not Monseer--Monshure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I give in to you, Nightingale; I'm not a French scholar.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let's call him Mr., for all that. Monshure twists the tongue
-unless you're born there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm agreeable. Call him Mr. if you like. Hallo!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The exclamation was caused by Mrs. Middlemore's street door
-being suddenly opened without any preliminary warning from within, and with such
-swiftness and violence that the policemen almost fell through it into the
-passage. As they were recovering their equilibrium a man stepped out of the
-house, or rather stumbled out of it, in a state of great excitement. He had a
-crimson scarf round his neck; it was loosely tied, and the ends floated in the
-wind. The little bit of color shone bright in the glare of white snow. Its
-wearer pulled the door after him and hurried along the street, looking neither
-to the right nor to the left, and taking no notice of the policemen, who
-strained their eyes after him. He walked very unsteadily, and was soon out of
-sight.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_02" href="#div1Ref_02">CHAPTER II.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE SPECTRE CAT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's a rum start,&quot; said Constable Wigg. &quot;Was it Mr. Felix?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; replied Constable Nightingale, &quot;Mr. Felix is altogether
-a different kind of man. Takes things more coolly. Walks slow, talks slow,
-thinks slow, looks at you slow. This fellow was like a flash of lightning. Did
-you catch sight of his face?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He was in such a devil of a hurry that there was no catching
-sight of anything except the red handkerchief round his neck. There was no
-mistaking that. Seemed a youngish man.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes. Been on a visit to Mr. Felix, most likely.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Or to some other lodger in the house,&quot; suggested Constable
-Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There ain't no other,&quot; said Constable Nightingale. &quot;Every
-room in it except the basement is let to Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A married man, then' with a large family?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, with a little cough.
-&quot;Single. Or, perhaps, a widower. No business of ours, Wigg.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Certainly not. Go on with your story, Nightingale. 'You're
-wanted up there' says Mrs. Middlemore.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes. 'You're wanted up there,' she says, meaning Mr. Felix's
-rooms. 'Did Mr. Felix send for me?' I ask. 'He did,' she answers. 'He rings his
-bell and says, &quot;Go for a policeman.&quot; And he'll not be sorry it's you, Mr.
-Nightingale, because you're a man as can be trusted,' Mrs. Middlemore's precise
-words. You see, Wigg, me and her ain't exactly strangers. I'm a single man, and
-I'm mistook if she ain't got a bit of money put by.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're a knowing one, Nightingale,' said Constable Wigg,
-somewhat enviously, and it is not to the credit of human nature to state that
-there flashed into his mind the base idea of endeavoring to supplant his brother
-constable in Mrs. Middlemore's good graces. What should hinder him? He was a
-single man, many years younger than Constable Nightingale, and much better
-looking. All was fair in love and war. The &quot;bit of money put by&quot; was a
-temptation from Lucifer.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's what brings me round here now and then,&quot; continued
-Constable Nightingale, complacently. &quot;A man might go a good deal further than
-Mrs. Middlemore, and fare a good deal worse. 'I suppose,' says I to her,
-'there's somebody with Mr. Felix as he wants to get rid of, and as won't go?' 'I
-ain't at liberty to say,' she answers, 'but you're pretty near the mark. Come
-and see for yourself, and don't forget that Mr. Felix has got a liberal heart,
-and hates fuss.' Upon that, Wigg, I holds my tongue, because I'm a man as knows
-how to, and I follows Mrs. Middlemore into the house. I'd been inside before, of
-course, but never upstairs, always down and Mrs. Middlemore had told me such a
-lot about Mr. Felix's rooms that I was curious to see them. 'Furnished like a
-palace,' Mrs. Middlemore used to say; so up the stairs I steps, Mrs. Middlemore
-showing the way, and I don't mind confessing that before we got to the first
-landing I put my arm round Mrs. Middlemore's waist--but that's neither here nor
-there. She stops on the landing, and knocks at the door----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But here Constable Nightingale was compelled to pause, and to
-hold on tight to his comrade. The storm quite suddenly reached such a pitch of
-fury that the men could scarcely keep their feet, and it would have been
-impossible to hear a word that was spoken. It was not a fitful display of
-temper; so fierce grew the wind that it blew the street door open with a crash,
-and as the policemen were leaning against it, the consequence was that they were
-precipitated into the passage, and fell flat upon their backs. The reason of the
-door being blown open so readily was probably, as Constable Nightingale
-afterward remarked, because the man who had recently left the house so hastily
-had not pulled it tight behind him, but the tempest was raging so furiously that
-it might well have made light of such an obstacle as an old street door. It was
-with difficulty the policemen recovered their feet, and the strength of the wind
-as it rushed through the passage was so great that the idea that they would be
-safer inside the house than out occurred to both of them at once. To expose
-themselves to the fury of the elements in the open would undoubtedly have been
-attended with danger. Instinctively they advanced to the door, and after a
-struggle succeeded in shutting it. That being accomplished, they stood in the
-dark passage, mentally debating what they should do next.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's something moving,&quot; whispered Constable Wigg,
-trembling. He was not remarkable for courage, and had a horror of darkness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale was made of sterner stuff. He promptly
-pulled out his dark lantern, and cast its circle of light upon the floor; and
-there, creeping timidly along close to the wall, they saw the miserable
-half-starved cat which had shaken Constable Wigg's nerves earlier in the night.
-It had taken advantage of the open street door to obtain the shelter for which
-it had long been seeking.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It ain't the first time,&quot; said Constable Wigg, in a vicious
-tone, &quot;that this little beast has given me a turn. Just before you come up it
-run across me and almost sent my heart into my mouth.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But for a mournful, fear-stricken look in its yellow eyes, the
-light of the dark lantern seemed to deprive the wretched cat of the power of
-motion. It remained perfectly still, cowering to the ground. Even when Constable
-Wigg gave it a spiteful kick it did not move of its own volition, and it was
-only when the attention of the policeman was no longer directed toward it that
-it slunk slowly and stealthily away.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Meanwhile the tempest raged more furiously than ever outside.
-The shrieking wind tore through the streets, carrying devastation in its train,
-and the air was thick with whirling, blinding snow.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you ever hear anything like it?&quot; said Constable
-Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never,&quot; said Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It would be madness to go out,&quot; said Constable Nightingale.
-&quot;We should be dashed to pieces. Besides, what good could we do? Besides, who
-would be likely to want us? Besides, who's to know?&quot;</p>
-
-
-<p class="center" style="letter-spacing:25px">* * * * * *</p>
-
-
-<p class="normal">There was a world of philosophy in these reflections, which
-Constable Wigg was only too ready to acknowledge.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you propose, Nightingale?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That we go down to Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen,&quot; replied
-Constable Nightingale, &quot;and make ourselves comfortable. I know the way.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He led it, and Constable Wigg very cheerfully accompanied him.
-The kitchen was the coziest of apartments, and their hearts warmed within them
-as they entered it. Mrs. Middlemore, like a sensible woman, had taken the
-precaution to bank up the fire before she left the house, and it needed but one
-touch from the poker to cause it to spring into a bright glowing blaze. This
-touch was applied by Constable Nightingale, and the shadows upon walls and
-ceiling leapt into ruddy life.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This is something like,&quot; said Constable Wigg, stooping and
-warming himself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Having no further need for his dark lantern, Constable
-Nightingale tucked it snugly away, and then proceeded to light a candle which,
-in its flat tin candlestick and a box of matches handy, stood on the kitchen
-table. They were not the only articles on the table. There was no table-cloth,
-it is true, but what mattered that? The whitest of table-cloths would have made
-but a sorry supper, and in the present instance could not have added to the
-attractions which the lighted candle revealed. There was bread, there was
-butter, there was cheese, there were pickles, there was a plate of sausages,
-there was half a roast fowl, and there was a fine piece of cold pork. Constable
-Wigg's eyes wandered to the table, and became, so to speak, glued there. He was
-now standing with his back to the fire, and was being comfortably warmed
-through. Even a kitchen may become a veritable Aladdin's cave, and this was the
-case with Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen, in the estimation of Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If there's one thing I like better than another for supper,&quot;
-he said, meditatively, and with pathos in his voice, &quot;it is cold pork and
-pickles. And there's enough for three, Nightingale, there's enough for three.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale nodded genially, and, with the air of a
-man familiar with his surroundings, took up a piece of butter on a knife, and
-put it to his mouth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The best fresh,&quot; he observed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You don't say so?&quot; exclaimed Constable Wigg, not
-contentiously, but in amiable wonder.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Taste it,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, handing his comrade
-the knife with a new knob of butter on it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It <i>is</i> the best fresh,&quot; said Constable Wigg. &quot;She lives
-on the fat of the land.&quot; This evidence of good living and the cheerful
-homeliness of the kitchen strengthened his notion of supplanting Constable
-Nightingale in the affections of Mrs. Middlemore, but he was careful not to
-betray himself. &quot;You know your way about, Nightingale. It ain't the first time
-you've been in this here snuggery.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale smiled knowingly, and said, &quot;Cold pork
-and pickles ain't half a bad supper, to say nothing of sausages, roast fowl,
-and----and----.&quot; He sniffed intelligently and inquired, &quot;Ain't there a baked
-tatery smell somewheres near?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now you mention it,&quot; replied Constable Wigg, also sniffing,
-&quot;I believe there is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And here they are, Wigg,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, opening
-the door of the oven, and exposing four large, flowery potatoes baking in their
-skins. &quot;Not yet quite done, not yet quite ready to burst, and all a-growing and
-a-blowing, and waiting for butter and pepper. They're relishy enough without
-butter and pepper, but with butter and pepper they're a feast for a emperor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah,&quot; sighed Constable Wigg, &quot;it's better to be born lucky
-than rich. Now just cast your eye at the door, Nightingale. I'm blessed if that
-beastly cat ain't poking its nose in again.&quot; And as though there was within him
-a superabundance of vicious energy which required immediate working off,
-Constable Wigg threw his truncheon at the cat, which, without uttering a sound,
-fled from the kitchen. &quot;What riles me about that cat is that it moves about like
-a ghost, without as much as a whine. It takes you all of a sudden, like a stab
-in the back. It'll be up to some mischief before the night is out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why, Wigg,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, with a laugh, &quot;you
-talk of it as if it wasn't a cat at all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't believe it is. In my opinion it's a spectre cat, a
-spirit without a solid body. I lifted it with my foot in the street, and not a
-sound came from it. I kicked it in the passage, and it crept away like a ghost.
-I let fly my truncheon at it and hit it on the head, and off it went like a
-shadder, without a whine. It ain't natural. If it comes across me again I advise
-it to say its prayers.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Which, to say the least of it, was an absurd recommendation to
-offer to a cat. But Constable Wigg was in an unreasonable and spiteful temper,
-and he became morose and melancholy when he saw how thoroughly Constable
-Nightingale was making himself at home in Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen; or perhaps
-it was the sight of the tempting food on the table which, without lawful
-invitation, he dared not touch. However it was, he was not allowed much time for
-gloomy reflection, his thoughts being diverted by the violent slamming of the
-street door, and by the further sound of a person breathing heavily in her
-course downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's Mrs. Middlemore,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, in a low
-tone. &quot;I never thought she'd be able to open the door alone with such a wind
-blowing. We'll give her a surprise.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They heard Mrs. Middlemore stop outside the kitchen, and
-exclaim, &quot;Well! To think I should 'ave been so foolish as to leave the candle
-alight! I could 'ave swore I blowed it out before I left the room!&quot; Then she
-opened the door, and it was well that Constable Nightingale darted forward to
-her support, for if he had not she would have fallen to the ground in affright,
-and the supper beer would have been lost to taste, if not to sight. It was as
-well, too, that he put his face close enough to her lips to partially stifle a
-kind of a hysterical gurgle which was escaping therefrom. It was, however, a
-proceeding of which Constable Wigg did not inwardly approve.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Pluck up, Mrs. Middlemore,&quot; said Constable Nightingale,
-cheerily, &quot;there's nothing wrong. It's only me and my mate, Wigg, who's on night
-duty here. Everything's as right as a fiddle. Take a pull at the beer--a long
-pull. Now you feel better, don't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Middlemore--her movements being enviously watched by
-Constable Wigg, whose thirst was growing almost unbearable--removed her lips
-from the jug, and said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ever so much. But how did you get in?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Didn't get in at all,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, jocosely;
-&quot;we were blown in.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Blown in!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, my dear. We was standing outside, Wigg and me, leaning
-against the door, when the wind come like a clap of thunder, and blew it clean
-open, and of course we went with it, flat on our backs the pair of us. When we
-got on our feet again the wind was tearing so, and the snow was pelting down
-that fierce, that I thought we might venture to take a liberty, and we come down
-here to warm ourselves. And that's the long and the short of it, my dear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He still had his arm round Mrs. Middlemore's waist, and now he
-gave her a hug. She was a pleasant-faced, round-bodied woman, some forty years
-of age, and she looked up smilingly as the constable--her favorite
-constable--hugged her, and said,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, now, I declare you did startle me. When I opened the
-door, and sor two men a-standing in my kitchen, I thought of burglars, and you
-might 'ave knocked me down with a feather.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And now we're here,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, &quot;I don't
-suppose you'd have the heart to turn us out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Turn you out!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I wouldn't turn a
-cat out on such a night as this!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;More cats,&quot; thought Constable Wigg, with his eyes on the cold
-pork and pickles.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_03" href="#div1Ref_03">CHAPTER III.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A THRILLING INCIDENT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The wonder is,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, while Mrs.
-Middlemore shook the snow out of her clothes, &quot;how you had the courage to
-venture out in such weather.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's 'abit, Mr. Nightingale, that's what it is. Once I get to
-doing a thing regular, done it must be if I want to keep my peace of mind. There
-wouldn't be a wink of sleep for me if I didn't go and fetch my supper beer
-myself every night. I don't keep a gal, Mr. Winks----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wigg,&quot; said that gentleman in correction, with a dreamy look
-at the beer-jug.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I beg you a thousand pardons, Mr. Wigg, I'm sure. I don't
-keep a gal, and that's why my place is always nice and clean, as you see it now.
-If you want your work done, do it yourself--that's my motter. Not that I can't
-afford to keep a gal, but Mr. Felix he ses when he come to me about the rooms
-when I didn't 'ave a blessed lodger in the 'ouse, 'I'll take 'em,' he ses,
-'conditionally. You mustn't let a room in the place to anybody but me.' 'But I
-make my living out of the rooms, sir,' ses I, 'and I can't afford to let 'em
-remain empty.' 'You <i>can</i>
-afford,' ses Mr. Felix, 'if I pay for 'em remaining empty. What rent do you arks
-for the whole 'ouse with the exception of the basement?' I opened my mouth wide,
-I don't mind telling you that, Mr. Wigg, when I put a price upon the 'ouse. All
-he ses is, 'Agreed.' 'Then there's attendance, sir,' I ses. 'How much for that?'
-he arks. I opens my mouth wide agin, and all he ses is, 'Agreed.' You see, Mr.
-Wigg, seeing as' ow you're a friend of Mr. Nightingale's, and as no friend of
-his'n can be anything but a gentleman, there's no 'arm in my telling you a thing
-or two about Mr. Felix, more especially as you're on night duty 'ere.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Here's to our better acquaintance,&quot; said Constable Wigg,
-laying hands on the beer-jug in an absent kind of way, and raising it to his
-mouth. When, after a long interval, he put it down again with a sigh of intense
-satisfaction, he met the reproachful gaze of Constable Nightingale, who gasped:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, of all the cheek! Without ever being asked!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Love your heart,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;what does that
-matter? He's as welcome as the flowers in May, being a friend of your'n.&quot; She
-handed the jug to Constable Nightingale, asking, as she did so, &quot;Did you ever
-'ave a inspiration, Mr. Nightingale?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale did not immediately reply, his face
-being buried in the jug. When it was free, and he had wiped his mouth, he said,
-in a mild tone--any harsh judgment he may have harbored against Constable Wigg
-being softened by the refreshing draught--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must have had one to-night when I come this way, out of my
-beat, to have a talk with Wigg, and to see that you was all right. The taters in
-the oven'll be burnt to a cinder if they're not took out immediate.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've got a nose for baked taters, you 'ave,&quot; said Mrs.
-Middlemore, admiringly. &quot;Trust you for finding out things without eyes! But you
-always can smell what I've got in the oven.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg rubbed his hands joyously when he saw Mrs.
-Middlemore lay three plates and draw three chairs up to the table. Then she
-whipped the baked potatoes out of the oven, saying,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Done to a turn. Now we can talk and 'ave supper at the same
-time. Make yourself at 'ome, Mr. Wigg, and 'elp yourself to what you like. I'll
-'ave a bit of fowl, Mr. Nightingale, and jest a thin slice of the cold pork, if
-you please Mr. Wigg. It's a favorite dish of yours, I can see. Mr. Nightingale, <i>
-you</i> won't make compliments, I'm sure. You're the last man as ought to in
-this 'ouse.&quot; Constable Nightingale pressed her foot under the table, and she
-smiled at him, and continued, &quot;I was going to tell you about my inspiration when
-I got the supper beer. A pint and a half won't be enough,' ses I to myself; a
-pint and a half's my regular allowance, Mr. Wigg, and I don't find it too much,
-because I don't drink sperrits. 'A pint and a half won't be enough,' ses I to
-myself; 'I shouldn't be surprised if a friend dropped in, so I'll double it.'
-And I did.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's something like an inspiration,&quot; said Constable
-Nightingale, looking amorously at Mrs. Middlemore, who smiled amorously at him
-in return.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg cut these amorous inclinings short by
-remarking, &quot;We was talking of Mr. Felix. Nightingale commenced twice to-night
-telling a story about him, and it's not told yet.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not my fault, Wigg,&quot; Constable Nightingale managed to say,
-with his mouth full.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll tell my story first,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;and he can
-tell his afterward. Try them sausages, Mr. Wigg. Mr. Felix always 'as the best
-of everythink. I buy 'em at Wall's. So when he ses 'Agreed' to the rent and
-attendance, he ses, 'And about servants?' 'I can't afford to keep more than one,
-sir,' I ses. 'You can, ses he; 'you can afford to keep none. You'll find me the
-best tenant you ever 'ad, and what you've got to do is to foller my
-instructions. 'I'll do my best, sir,' ses I. 'It'll pay you,' ses he, 'to let me
-do exactly as I please, and never to cross me.' And I'm bound to say, Mr. Wigg,
-that it 'as paid me never to cross 'im and never to arks questions. 'We shall
-git along capitally together,' ses he, 'without servants. They're a prying, idle
-lot, and I won't 'ave 'em creeping up the stairs on welwet toes to find out what
-I'm doing. So keep none, Mrs. Middlemore,' he ses, 'not the ghost of one. You
-can wait on me without assistance. If I want to entertain a visitor or two I'll
-'ave the meals brought in ready cooked, and if we want hextra attendance I'll
-git Gunter to send in a man as knows 'is business and can 'old 'is tongue.' Of
-course I was agreeable to that, and he pays me down a month in advance, like the
-gentleman he is. Though I don't drink sperrits, Mr. Nightingale, that's no
-reason why you should deny yourself. You know where the bottle is, and per'aps
-Mr. Wigg will jine you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore,&quot; said Constable Wigg, &quot;you're a lady after
-my own heart, and I'm glad I'm alive. Here's looking toward you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you, Mr. Wigg,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;and what I say
-is it's a shame that men like you and Mr. Nightingale should be trapesing the
-streets with the snow coming down and the wind a-blowing as it is now. Jest
-listen to it; it's going on worse than ever. Might I take the liberty of
-inquiring--you being on the beat, Mr. Wigg--whether you sor a lady come out of
-the house while I was gone for the supper beer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No lady came out of the house,&quot; replied Constable Wigg. &quot;A
-man did.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A man!&quot; cried Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;Not Mr. Felix, surely!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, not him,&quot; said Constable Nightingale. &quot;A strange-looking
-man with a red handkercher round his neck.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A strange-looking man, with a red 'andkercher round 'is
-neck?&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;'Ow did he git in?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's not for us to say,&quot; said Constable Nightingale.
-&quot;Perhaps Mr. Felix let him in when you was away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, most likely,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, with an air of
-confusion which she strove vainly to conceal from the observation of her
-visitors; &quot;of course, that must be. Mr. Felix often lets people in 'isself.
-'Mrs. Middlemore,' he ses sometimes, 'if there's a ring or a knock at the door,
-I'll attend to it. You needn't trouble yourself.' And I don't--knowing 'im, and
-knowing it'll pay me better to foller 'is instructions. For there's never a time
-that sech a thing 'appens that Mr. Felix doesn't say to me afterward, 'Here's a
-half-sovering for you, Mrs. Middlemore.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're in for one to-morrow morning, then,&quot; observed
-Constable Wigg, &quot;because it was a man we saw and not a woman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He won't forgit it,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;not 'im. He's too
-free and generous with 'is money, so long as he's let alone, and not pry'd upon.
-What he does is no business of mine, and I'm not going to make it mine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah,&quot; Mrs. Middlemore, said Constable Wigg, emptying his
-second glass of whiskey, &quot;you know which side your bread is buttered.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wasn't born yesterday,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, with a shrewd
-smile, &quot;and I've seed things that I keep to myself. Why not? You'd do the same
-if you was in my shoes, wouldn't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That we would,&quot; replied both the policeman in one breath; and
-Constable Wigg added, &quot;You're a lucky woman to have such a lodger.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I don't deny it. I never met
-with such a man as Mr. Felix, and I don't believe there is another. Why, when he
-took possession, he ses, 'Clear out every bit of furniture there is in the
-rooms. Send it to auction if you like and sell it, and pocket the money. When I
-leave you shall either 'ave all my furniture, or I'll furnish the rooms over
-agin according to your fancy, and it shan't cost you a penny.' I was agreeable.
-Because why? Because he give me forty pound on account, to show that he was in
-earnest. Then he begins to furnish, and if you was to see 'is rooms, Mr. Wigg,
-you'd be that took aback that you wouldn't know what to say. All sorts of
-wonderful woods, satings, picters, swords and daggers, strange rugs and carpets,
-painted plates and dishes, 'angings, old lamps, and goodness only knows what I
-don't understand 'arf of 'em. There! I've talked enough about Mr. Felix for
-once. Let's talk of something else.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you keep cats, Mrs. Middlemore?&quot; asked Constable
-Nightingale, brewing another grog for himself and Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't,&quot; replied Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;Mr. Felix won't 'ave one
-in the 'ouse.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's one in the house now, though,&quot; said Constable
-Nightingale. &quot;It come in when the wind burst open the street door, and Wigg and
-me fell into the passage. He says it's not a cat, but a spectre, a ghost.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Lord save us!&quot; ejaculated Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;If Mr. Felix sees
-it he'll never forgive me. He 'as a 'atred of 'em. And the ghost of a cat, too!&quot;
-She was so impressed that she edged closer to Constable Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was a spectre cat,&quot; said Constable Wigg, desirous to do
-something to divert Mrs. Middlemore's thoughts from Mr. Felix, and also from her
-leaning toward his comrade. &quot;And then there was that cry for 'Help' I fancied I
-heard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What cry for help?&quot; asked Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought I heard it three times,&quot; said Constable Wigg--but
-he was prevented from going further by an incident which was followed by a
-startling picture. Constable Nightingale, rather thrown off his balance by the
-drink he had imbibed, and desirous to meet the advances of Mrs. Middlemore,
-slyly put his arm round her waist, and to hide the movement from the observation
-of his brother constable, made a clumsy movement over the table, and overturned
-the candle, the effect of which was to put out the light and to leave them in
-darkness. He was not sorry for it, for the reason that he was hugging Mrs.
-Middlemore close. But Constable Wigg started up in fear, and cried:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Somebody has pushed open the door!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In point of fact the kitchen-door had been quietly pushed
-open, and the other two observed it when their attention was directed toward it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is it?&quot; whispered Mrs. Middlemore, shaking like a jelly,
-&quot;Oh, what is it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale, for the second time that night pulled
-out his dark lantern, and cast its light upon the door. And there, imbedded in
-the circle of light, was the cat which had already twice before alarmed
-Constable Wigg. They uttered a cry of horror, and indeed they were justified by
-the picture which presented itself. The cat was
-<i>red</i>. Every bristle, sticking up on its skin, was luminous with horrible
-color. It was a perfect ball of blood.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_04" href="#div1Ref_04">CHAPTER IV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A DISCUSSION ABOUT RED CATS AND WHITE SNOW.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">In a fit of terror the constable dropped the lantern, and the
-cat, unseen by the occupants of the kitchen, scuttled away.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If you don't light the candle,&quot; gasped Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I
-shall go off.&quot; And she forthwith proceeded to demonstrate by screaming, &quot;Oh, oh,
-oh!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She's done it, Wigg,&quot; said Constable Nightingale. &quot;Strike a
-light, there's a good fellow, and pick up the lantern. I can't do it myself;
-I've got my arms full.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg had now recovered his courage, and inspired by
-jealousy, quickly struck a match and lit the candle. Mrs. Middlemore lay
-comfortably in the arms of Constable Nightingale, who did not seem anxious to
-rid himself of his burden. Stirred to emulative sympathy, Constable Wigg took
-possession of one of Mrs. Middlemore's hands, and pressed and patted it with a
-soothing, &quot;There, there, there! What has made you come over like this? There's
-nothing to be frightened of, is there, Nightingale?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing at all,&quot; replied Constable Nightingale, irascibly,
-for he by no means relished his comrade's insidious attempt to slide into Mrs.
-Middlemore's affections. &quot;You're better now, ain't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A little,&quot; murmured Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;a very little.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Take a sip of this,&quot; said Constable Wigg, holding a glass to
-her lips, &quot;it'll bring you round.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Ignoring her previous declaration that she did not &quot;drink
-sperrits,&quot; Mrs. Middlemore sipped the glass of whiskey, and continued to sip,
-with intermittent shudders, till she had drained the last drop. Then she
-summoned sufficient strength to raise herself languidly from Constable
-Nightingale's arms, and look toward the door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where's it gone to?&quot; she asked, in a trembling voice. &quot;What's
-become of the 'orrid creature?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What horrid creature, my dear?&quot; inquired Constable
-Nightingale, winking at his comrade.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The cat! The red cat!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A red cat!&quot; exclaimed Constable Nightingale, in a jocular
-voice; &quot;who ever heard of such a thing? Who ever saw such a thing?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why, I did--and you did, too.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not me,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, with another wink at
-Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nor me,&quot; said that officer, following the lead.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you mean to tell me you didn't see a cat, and that the cat
-you sor wasn't red?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I saw a cat, yes,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, &quot;but not a red
-'un--no, not a red un'. What do you say, Wigg?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I say as you says, Nightingale.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's lobsters, now,&quot; said Constable Nightingale; &quot;we know
-what color they are when they're boiled, but we don't boil cats, that I know of,
-and if we did they wouldn't turn red. You learned natural history when you was
-at school, Wigg. What did they say about red cats?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's against nature,&quot; said Constable Wigg, adding, with an
-unconscious imitation of Macbeth, &quot;there's no such thing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must take your word for it,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, only
-half convinced, &quot;but if ever my eyes deceived me they deceived me jest now. If
-you two gentlemen wasn't here, I'd be ready to take my oath the cat was red. And
-now I come to think of it, what made the pair of you cry out as you did?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What made us cry out?&quot; repeated Constable Nightingale, who,
-in this discussion, proved himself much superior to his brother officer in the
-matter of invention. &quot;It was natural, that's what it was, natural. I'm free to
-confess I was a bit startled. First, there's the night--listen to it; it's going
-on worse than ever--ain't that enough to startle one? I've been out in bad
-nights, but I never remember such a one-er as this. Did you, Wigg?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never. If it goes on much longer, it'll beat that American
-blizzard they talked so much of.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's enough to startle a chap,&quot; continued Constable
-Nightingale, &quot;letting alone anything else. But then, there was that talk about a
-spectre cat. I ain't frightened of much that I know of. Put a man before me, or
-a dog, or a horse, and I'm ready to tackle 'em, one down and the other come up,
-or altogether if they like; but when you come to spectres, I ain't ashamed to
-say I'm not up to 'em. Its constitootional, Mrs. Middlemore; I was that way when
-I was little. There was a cupboard at home, and my mother used to say, 'Don't
-you ever open it, Jimmy; there's a ghost hiding behind the door.' I wouldn't
-have put my hand on the knob for untold gold. It's the same now. Anything that's
-alive I don't give way to; but when it comes to ghosts and spectres I take a
-back seat, and I don't care who knows it. Then there was that cry for 'Help,'
-that Wigg was speaking of. Then there was the candle going out&quot;--he gave Mrs.
-Middlemore a nudge as he referred to this incident--&quot;and the sudden opening of
-the door there. It was all them things together that made me cry out; and if
-brother Wigg's got any other explanation to give I shall be glad to hear it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, Nightingale,&quot; said the prudent and unimaginative Wigg, &quot;I
-couldn't improve on you. You've spoke like a man, and I hope our good-looking,
-good-natured landlady is satisfied.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This complimentary allusion served to dispel Mrs. Middlemore's
-fears, and in a more contented frame of mind she resumed her seat at the table,
-the constables following her example.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;May the present moment,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, lifting
-his glass and looking affectionately at Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;be the worst of our
-lives; and here's my regards to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And mine, my good creature,&quot; said Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Gents both,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, now thoroughly restored,
-&quot;I looks toward yer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Whereupon they all drank, and settled themselves comfortably
-in their chairs.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What was in that cupboard,&quot; asked Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;that your
-mother told you there was a ghost in?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What was in it? Now, that shows how a body may be frightened
-at nothing. I didn't find it out till I was a man, and it was as much a ghost as
-I am. But there's a lady present, and I'd better not go on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, you must,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, positively. &quot;You've
-made me that curious that I'll never speak another word to you if you don't tell
-me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Rather than that should happen, I must let you into the
-secret, I suppose. But you won't mind me mentioning it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit, Mr. Nightingale. Speak free.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, if you must know, it was where she kept a spare bustle,
-and a bit or two of hair, and some other little vanities that she didn't want us
-young 'uns to pull about. There, the murder's out, and I wouldn't have mentioned
-the things if you hadn't been so curious; but it's a privilege of your sex, Mrs.
-Middlemore, one of your amiable weaknesses that we're bound to respect.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Middlemore laughed, and asked Constable Wigg what he was
-thinking of. That worthy had, indeed, put on his considering cap, as the saying
-is; he felt that Constable Nightingale was making the running too fast, and that
-he should be left hopelessly in the rear unless he made an attempt to assert
-himself, and to show that he knew a thing or two.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I was thinking of the red cat,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wigg,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, in a tone of reproof, &quot;I'm
-astonished at you. When everything's been made smooth!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For the moment, Nightingale, for the moment,&quot; said Constable
-Wigg, complacently. &quot;But there's by and by to reckon with. It ain't to be
-expected that Mrs. Middlemore can have us always with her, though I'm sure I
-should ask for nothing better. What could a man want better than this? Outside
-snow and blow, inside wine and shine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're quite a poet, Mr. Wigg,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore,
-admiringly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't see it,&quot; grumbled Constable Nightingale; &quot;where's the
-wine?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If this,&quot; said Constable Wigg, raising his glass and looking
-at its contents with the eye of a connoisseur, &quot;ain't as good as the best of
-wine, I stand corrected. Did you never hear of a poet's license, Nightingale?&quot;
-He asked this question banteringly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I didn't, and I don't believe you know where to get one,
-and what the Government charges for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm afraid, Nightingale,&quot; said Constable Wigg, beginning to
-feel the effects of the drink, &quot;that you've no soul for poetry.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never you mind whether I have or haven't,&quot; retorted Constable
-Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Gents both,&quot; interposed Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;whatever you do,
-don't fall out. You're as welcome as welcome can be, but don't fall out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I bear no malice,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, who was really
-a simple-minded, good-hearted fellow; &quot;shake hands, Wigg, and let bygones be
-bygones. All I want you to do is to let the red cat alone, or to stick to the
-point, and have done with it once and for all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very good, Nightingale,&quot; said Constable Wigg, assuming the
-lofty air of a man who had established his claim to pre-eminence. &quot;I'll stick to
-the point, and if I don't make Mrs. Middlemore's mind easy, I'll give up. Not
-easy as long as we're here, but easy when we're gone, as gone we must be some
-time or other, because it don't stand to reason that this storm's going to last
-forever. I'm only thinking of you, I give you my word, ma'am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're very kind, I'm sure,&quot; murmured Mrs. Middlemore,
-inclining, with the proverbial fickleness of her sex, now to Constable,
-Nightingale and now to Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's the least I can do,&quot; proceeded Constable Wigg,
-addressing himself solely to his hostess, &quot;after the way I've been treated here.
-Not for the last time, I hope.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not by a many,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, smirking at the
-flatterer, &quot;if it remains with me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're monarch of all you survey, ma'am,&quot; observed the wily
-Wigg, smirking back at her, &quot;and remain with you it must, as long as you remain
-single.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, Mr. Wigg!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's nobody's fault but your own if you do; there's not many
-as can pick and choose, but you're one as can. Perhaps you're hard to please,
-ma'am----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I ain't,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, so energetically that
-Constable Nightingale began to think it time to interfere.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're forgetting the red cat, Wigg,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all,&quot; said Constable Wigg, blandly; &quot;I'm coming to it,
-but I don't forget that Mrs. Middlemore has nerves. It amounts to this, ma'am.
-I've read a bit in my time, and I'm going to give you--<i>and</i>
-Nightingale, if he ain't too proud--the benefit of it. You <i>did</i> see a red
-cat, ma'am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did I?&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, looking around with a shiver.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You did, ma'am, and yet the cat wasn't red. I thought it was
-red, and so did Nightingale, if he'll speak the truth. I'll wait for him to
-say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I won't keep you waiting long,&quot; said Constable Nightingale,
-in a surly tone. &quot;As you and Mrs. Middlemore seem to be of one mind, I'll make a
-clean breast of it. I thought it was red, and when I made light of it I did it
-for her sake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He said this so tenderly that Mrs. Middlemore rewarded him
-with a look of gratitude; but she kept her eyes averted from the kitchen door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now we can get on like a house on fire,&quot; said Constable Wigg.
-&quot;When you winked at me, Nightingale, I didn't contradict you, but I fell
-a-thinking, and then what I read come to my mind. You've been out in the snow,
-Mrs. Middlemore, and you saw nothing but white. We've been out in the snow,
-ma'am, and we saw nothing but white. Not for a minute, not for five, not for ten
-but for hours I may say. I remember reading somewhere that when you've looked
-for a longish time upon nothing but white, that it's as likely as not the next
-thing you see will be red, never mind what the color really is. That's the way
-with us. The cat's been haunting me, in a manner of speaking, the whole livelong
-night, and what with that and the snow, and being all of a sudden shoved into
-darkness, the minute a light shines on the wretched thing it comes to me as red
-as a ball of fire; and it comes to you the same, because the snow's got into
-your eyes and affected your sight.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bosh!&quot; exclaimed Constable Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What's that you say, Nightingale?&quot; asked Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bosh! I didn't want to frighten Mrs. Middlemore, and that's
-the reason I wouldn't harp on it, but now you've raked it up again I'll have the
-matter settled.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So saying, Constable Nightingale rose from his chair.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where are you going?&quot; cried Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;What are you
-going to do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm going to find that cat,&quot; replied Constable Nightingale,
-&quot;if it's in the house. If it isn't red, I give in and apologize. If it is, I
-shall take the liberty of saying for the third time, Bosh!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He walked toward the door, but started back before he reached
-it, and pointing to the floor, asked,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you call that, Wigg? Is that a deloosion!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg advanced, looked down, rubbed his eyes, looked
-down again, and answered,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm bound to say there's no mistaking the color. Have you got
-any red ochre in the house, ma'am?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit,&quot; gasped Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;as I knows on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;These,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, kneeling, and examining
-the floor, &quot;are marks of the cat's paws, and they're red. Look for yourself,
-Wigg.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's no denying it,&quot; said the baffled Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're on duty here, Wigg.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you advise, Nightingale? You've been longer in the
-force than me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's got to be looked into by somebody. It ain't for me to do
-it, because I'm out of my beat, and I don't want to be made an example of. Would
-you oblige me by going to the door and giving the alarm?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What for?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For me, being at a distance, to hear it. For me hearing it,
-to run to your assistance. Do you twig? My being on your beat must be accounted
-for. That will account for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This ingenious suggestion relieved Constable Wigg's mind as
-well as his comrade's.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's a good idea,&quot; he said; &quot;and it'll account, too, for
-our being in the house, supposing anything should be said about it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Exactly. Being here with Mrs. Middlemore's permission. You've
-got a lot to learn, Wigg, and one of the lessons I'd advise you to take to
-heart&quot;--here he looked significantly at Mrs. Middlemore--&quot;is not to poach on a
-pal's preserves.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg may have felt the reproach, but he took no
-notice of it. &quot;You may as well come to the door with me, Nightingale.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I've no objections.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll come too,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, nervously. &quot;I wouldn't
-be left alone here for anythink you could orfer me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The three walked upstairs to the passage, Mrs. Middlemore
-needing the support of Constable Nightingale's arm round her waist; but the
-moment the fastenings of the street-door were unloosed, it flew open as though a
-battering ram had been applied to it, and the wind and snow swept in upon them
-with undiminished fury.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Hanged if it ain't getting worse and worse!&quot; muttered
-Constable Nightingale, helping the others to shut the door, which was
-accomplished with great difficulty.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't make a noise in the passage,&quot; whispered Mrs. Middlemore
-to Constable Wigg. &quot;Mr. Felix 'll 'ear it, and he'd never forgive me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We'll take it for granted, then, that the alarm is given,&quot;
-said Constable Nightingale, &quot;and we'll go downstairs, and consider what ought to
-be done.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_05" href="#div1Ref_05">CHAPTER V.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>DR. LAMB TELLS THE CONSTABLES AND MRS. MIDDLEMORE WHAT IS THE MATTER WITH
-MR. FELIX.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Arrived once more in that comfortable apartment, they shook
-off the snow dust which had blown in upon them from the street. Then Constable
-Nightingale assumed a judicial attitude.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In case of anything being wrong,&quot; he said, &quot;we must all be
-agreed upon what has took place before it's discovered.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before what's discovered?&quot; cried Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That we've got to find out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's ten to one there's nothing to find out,&quot; said Constable
-Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's ten to one there is,&quot; retorted Constable Nightingale. &quot;I
-go a bit deeper than you, Wigg; but whether there is or there ain't, it's always
-well to be prepared with a story. I've got something in my mind that you don't
-seem to have in yours; what it is you shall hear presently. Mrs. Middlemore,
-going out for her supper-beer at her usual hour, about half-past eleven shuts
-the street-door behind her, and does not return till past twelve. Is that
-correct, ma'am?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite correct, Mr. Nightingale; but what are you driving at?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All in good time, my dear. You leave the house safe, and you
-are sure you shut the street-door tight?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll take my oath of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It may come to that; I don't want to scare you, but it may
-come to that. When you come back with the supper-beer you find the street-door
-open?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But I don't.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Excuse me, you do; it's necessary.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And I'll tell you why. When you come home you find Wigg and
-me here, don't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've heard how we got in, but it's a fact that we had no
-business here unless we was called in. We must have been called in by somebody,
-and whoever it was must have had a reason for inviting us. Is that sound, Wigg?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As sound as a rock, Nightingale.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Felix didn't call us in, and there's no one else in the
-house while you've gone for your supper-beer?&quot; Mrs. Middlemore coughed, which
-caused Constable Nightingale to ask, &quot;What's that for?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It ain't for me to say,&quot; replied Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;What you
-want to git at is that there's only two people living regularly in the 'ouse,
-Mr. Felix and me. If Mr. Felix makes it worth my while to keep my own counsel,
-I'm going to keep it, and I don't care what happens.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wouldn't persuade you otherwise. Gentlemen that's so
-liberal with their money as him ain't to be met with every day. Very well, then.
-There's only you and Mr. Felix living in the house, and he don't call us in.
-It's you that does that. Why? You shut the street-door tight when you went out;
-you find it open when you come back, and at the same time you see a man with a
-red handkercher round his neck run out of the house. Of course you're alarmed;
-Wigg happens to be near, and you call him; he, thinking he may want assistance,
-calls me; and that's how it is we're both here at the present moment. That's
-pretty straight, isn't it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Both his hearers agreed that it was, and he proceeded:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But we mustn't forget that we've been here some time already.
-I make it, by my silver watch that I won in a raffle, twenty minutes to two.
-Your kitchen clock, Mrs. Middlemore, is a little slow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do what I will,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I can't make it go
-right.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Some clocks,&quot; observed Constable Nightingale, with a touch of
-humor--he was on the best of terms with himself, having, in a certain sense,
-snuffed out Constable Wigg--&quot;are like some men and women; they're either too
-slow or too fast, and try your hardest you can't alter 'em. We must be able to
-account for a little time between past twelve o'clock and now; there's no need
-to be too particular; such a night as this is 'll excuse a lot. I'll take the
-liberty of stopping your clock and putting the hands back to twelve, so that you
-won't be fixed to a half-hour or so. The clock stopped while you was getting
-your supper-beer, of course. Likewise I stop my watch, and put the hands back to
-about the same time. Now, what do I do when Wigg calls me here? I hear what you,
-ma'am, have to say about the street-door being open and a man running out and
-almost upsetting you, and I make tracks after him. I don't catch him, and then I
-come back here, and that brings us up to this very minute. Plain sailing, so
-far. You'll bear it in mind, you and Wigg, won't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I've got it,&quot; said Wigg, &quot;at my fingers' ends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So 'ave I,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But what are you going to do now?&quot; asked Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To find the cat,&quot; replied Constable Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Going to take it up?&quot; This, with a fine touch of sarcasm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, Wigg,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, speaking very
-seriously. &quot;I want to make sure where it got that red color from, because, not
-to put too fine a point on it, it's blood.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Middlemore uttered a stifled scream, and clapped her
-hands on her hips.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That,&quot; continued Constable Nightingale, in a tone of severity
-to his brother constable, &quot;is what I had in my mind and you didn't have in
-yours. Why, if you look with only half an eye at them stains on the floor, you
-can't mistake 'em.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, dear, oh, dear,&quot; moaned Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;we shall all be
-murdered in our beds?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing of the sort, my dear,&quot; said Constable Nightingale;
-&quot;we'll look after you. Pull yourself together, there's a good soul, and answer
-me one or two questions. I know that Mr. Felix comes home late sometimes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very often, very often.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And that, as well as being generous with his money, he likes
-his pleasures. Now, are you sure he was at home when you went out for your
-beer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm certain of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And that he did not go out before you come back?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How can I tell you that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course. A stupid question. But, at all events, he ain't
-the sort of man to go out in such a storm as this?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not 'im. He's too fond of his comforts.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does he ever ring for you in the middle of the night--at such
-a time as this, for instance?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Has he ever been took ill in the night, and rung you up?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you ever go up to his room without being summoned?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's more than I dare. I should lose the best customer I ever
-had in my life. He made things as clear as can be when he first come into the
-'ouse. 'Never,' he ses to me, 'under any circumstances whatever, let me see you
-going upstairs to my rooms unless I call you. Never let me ketch you prying
-about. If I do, you shall 'ear of it in a way you won't like.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale was silent a few moments, and then he
-said, briskly, &quot;Let's us go and hunt up that cat.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But although they searched the basement through they could not
-find it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perhaps,&quot; suggested Constable Wigg, &quot;it got out of the house
-when we opened the street-door just now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perhaps,&quot; assented Constable Nightingale, laconically.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then they ascended the stairs to the ground floor, Constable
-Nightingale examining very carefully the marks of the cat's paws on the
-oilcloth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you see, Mrs. Middlemore? Blood. There's no mistaking it.
-And I'm hanged if it doesn't go upstairs to the first floor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're not going up, Mr. Nightingale?&quot; asked Mrs. Middlemore,
-under her breath, laying her hand on his arm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If I know myself,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, patting her
-hand, &quot;I am. Whatever happens, it's my duty and Wigg's to get at the bottom of
-this. What else did you call us in for?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To be sure,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, helplessly, &quot;but if you
-have any feeling for me, speak low.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will, my dear. My feelings for you well you must know, but
-this is not the time. Look here at this stain, and this, and this. The spectre
-cat has been up these stairs. Puss, puss, puss, puss! Not likely that it'll
-answer; it's got the cunning of a fox. That's Mr. Felix's room, if my eyes don't
-deceive me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But it don't look the same door as the one I have been
-through; it ain't the first time I've been here, you know. Where's the keyhole?
-I'll take my oath there was a keyhole when I last saw the door.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The key 'ole's 'id. That brass plate covers it; it's a patent
-spring, and he fixes it some'ow from the inside; he presses something, and it
-slides down; then he turns a screw, and makes it tight.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can anyone do it but him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't think they can; it's 'is own idea, he ses.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;See how we're getting on, Wigg. No one can work that brass
-plate but him; that shows he's at home.&quot; He knocked at the door, and called &quot;Mr.
-Felix, Mr. Felix!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He'll give me notice to leave,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I'm
-sure he will. He's the last man in the world to be broke in upon like this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Leave it to me, my dear,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, &quot;I'll
-make it all right with him. What did he say to me when I was on this beat? I
-told you, you remember, Wigg. 'Constable,' says he, 'you're on night duty here.'
-'Yes, sir,' I answers. 'Very good,' says he, 'I live in this house, and I always
-make it a point to look after them as looks after me.' That was a straight tip,
-and I'm looking after him now. Mr. Felix, Mr. Felix!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But though he called again and again, and rapped at the door
-twenty times, he received no answer from within the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's singular,&quot; he said, knitting his brows. &quot;He must be a
-sound sleeper, must Mr. Felix. I'll try again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He continued to knock and call &quot;loud enough,&quot; as he declared,
-&quot;to rouse the dead,&quot; but no response came to the anxious little group on the
-landing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's not only no keyhole,&quot; said Constable Nightingale,
-&quot;but there's no handle to take hold of. The door's for all the world like a safe
-without a knob. Mr. Felix, Mr. Felix, Mr. Felix! Don't you hear us, sir? I've
-got something particular to say to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">For all the effect he produced he might have spoken to a stone
-wall, and he and Constable Wigg and Mrs. Middlemore stood looking helplessly at
-each other.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I tell you what it is,&quot; he said, tightening his belt, &quot;this
-has got beyond a joke. What with the silence, and the bloodstains, and the man
-with the red handkercher round his neck as run out of the house while Wigg and
-me was talking together outside, there's more in this than meets the eye. Now,
-Mrs. Middlemore, there's no occasion for us to speak low any more; it's wearing
-to the throat. Have you got any doubt at all that the brass plate there couldn't
-be fixed as it is unless somebody was inside the room?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm certain of it, Mr. Nightingale, I'm certain of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then Mr. Felix, or somebody else, must be there, and if he's
-alive couldn't help hearing us, unless he's took a sleeping draught of
-twenty-horse power. There's a bell wire up there; Wigg, give me a back.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Wigg stooped, and Constable Nightingale stood on his
-back and reached the wire, which he pulled smartly for so long a time that
-Constable Wigg's back gave way, and brought Constable Nightingale to the ground
-somewhat unexpectedly. Certainly every person in the house possessed of the
-sense of hearing must have heard the bell, which had a peculiar resonant ring,
-and seemed on this occasion to have a hundred ghostly echoes which proclaimed
-themselves incontinently from attic to basement. No well-behaved echo would have
-displayed such a lack of method.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oughtn't that to rouse him?&quot; asked Constable Nightingale.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It ought to,&quot; replied Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;if----&quot; and then
-suddenly paused, the &quot;if&quot; frozen on her tongue.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, gravely, &quot;if!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was a window on the landing, and he opened it. The snow
-dust floated through it, but in less quantities, and there was a perceptible
-abatement in the violence of the storm. He closed the window.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It ain't so bad as it was. Mrs. Middlemore, do you think I
-could force this door open?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not without tools,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;It's made of oak.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No harm in trying,&quot; said Constable Nightingale. &quot;Here, Wigg,
-give us a pound.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They applied their shoulders with a will, but their united
-efforts produced no impression.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's got to be opened,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, &quot;by fair
-means or foul. Wigg, do you know of a locksmith about here?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In point of fact Constable Nightingale knew of one, but it was
-at some little distance, and he did not want to leave Constable Wigg and Mrs.
-Middlemore alone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's one in Wardour Street,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is there?&quot; said Constable Wigg. &quot;I'm new to the neighborhood,
-and I'm certain I shouldn't be able to find it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All right,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, briskly, seeing his
-way out of the difficulty, &quot;we'll go together.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And leave me alone 'ere after what's happened!&quot; cried Mrs.
-Middlemore. &quot;Not if you was to fill my lap with dymens! That 'orrid cat 'd come
-and scare the life out of me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We can't all go,&quot; mused Constable Nightingale, with a stern
-eye on his comrade, &quot;and I ain't a man to shirk a duty; but don't go back on a
-pal, Wigg, whatever you do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nobody could ever bring that against me, Nightingale,&quot; said
-Constable Wigg, in an injured tone; &quot;and I don't know what you're driving at.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I hope you don't,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, by no means
-softened, &quot;that's all I've got to say. I hope you don't. You'd better both see
-me to the door, and shut it after me. And mind you keep your ears open to let me
-in when I come back.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale, a victim to duty, was presently
-battling with the storm through the deserted streets, while Constable Wigg and
-Mrs. Middlemore, at the housekeeper's suggestion, made their way to the warm
-kitchen, where she brewed for her companion a stiff glass of grog. &quot;What did Mr.
-Nightingale mean,&quot; asked Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;when he said never go back on a pal?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'd rather not say,&quot; replied Constable Wigg, and then
-appeared suddenly to come to a different conclusion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But why not? The last of my wishes would be to vex you, and
-when you're curious you like to know, don't you, my--I beg you a thousand
-pardons--don't you, ma'am?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Wigg,&quot; observed Mrs. Middlemore, &quot;I'm a woman, and I do
-like to know. Oh!&quot; she cried, with a little shriek, &quot;was that somebody moving
-upstairs?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, my dear, no. Keep close to me; I will protect you and
-proud of the chance, as who wouldn't be? When Nightingale threw out that hint,
-he meant, if I'm not mistook, that a lady should have only one admirer,
-hisself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, I'm sure!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He's not a bad sort of fellow, is Nightingale--it ain't for
-me to say anything against him--but when he wants a monopoly of something very
-precious&quot;--and Constable Wigg looked languishingly at Mrs. Middlemore--&quot;when he
-wants that, and as good as says it belongs to him and no one else, he touches a
-tender point. There's no harm in my admiring you, my dear; who could help it,
-that's what I'd like to know? Thank you--I <i>will</i> take another lump of
-sugar. Yes, who could help it? Charms like yours--if you'll forgive me for
-mentioning 'em--ain't to be met with every day, and a man with a heart would
-have to be blind not to be struck. There! I wouldn't have spoke so free if it
-hadn't been for Nightingale and for your asking me what he meant. But a man
-can't always restrain his feelings, and I hope I haven't hurt yours, my dear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit, Mr. Wigg,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, and the tone
-would have been amorous had it not been for the mysterious trouble in her house;
-&quot;you've spoke beautiful, and Mr. Nightingale ought to be ashamed of 'isself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't tell him I said anything, my dear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I won't. I give you my 'and on it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He took it and squeezed it, and said, &quot;What's passed we'll
-keep to ourselves.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will, Mr. Wigg.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Here's to our better acquaintance, my dear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm sure you're kindness itself. Oh, Mr. Wigg, I 'ope nothing
-'as 'appened to Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I hope so, too. My opinion is that he's out, and that the
-brass plate over the keyhole has got there by accident. But Nightingale always
-makes the worst of things. That's not my way. Wait till the worst comes, I say;
-it's time enough. You may worrit yourself to death, and be no better off for it
-after all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In this strain they continued their conversation, Mrs.
-Middlemore declaring that it was quite a comfort to have Constable Wigg with
-her. She confided to him that she had a bit of money saved, and that Mr. Felix
-had said more than once that he would remember her in his will, which elicited
-from Constable Wigg the remark that he hoped Mr. Felix had made his will and had
-behaved as he ought to; &quot;though, mind you,&quot; he added, &quot;I don't believe
-anything's the matter with him, or that he's at home. It's all through that
-spectre cat, and as for bloodstains, they've got to be proved.&quot; A knocking and
-rattling at the street-door caused Mrs. Middlemore to cling very closely to him,
-and when she recovered her fright, they both went upstairs to let Constable
-Nightingale in.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is that you, Nightingale?&quot; Constable Wigg called out before
-he turned the key.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, it's me,&quot; cried Constable Nightingale, without: &quot;don't
-keep us waiting all night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He's got the locksmith with him,&quot; whispered Constable Wigg,
-with his lips very close to Mrs. Middlemore's ear. Then he threw open the
-street-door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constable Nightingale had somebody else with him besides the
-locksmith. Accompanying them was a tall, thin, gentlemanly-looking, but rather
-seedy young gentleman, who stepped quickly into the passage.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Has anything took place?&quot; inquired Constable Nightingale,
-glancing suspiciously from Constable Wigg to Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing,&quot; replied Constable Wigg. &quot;There ain't been a sound
-in the house.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Just as we turned the corner,&quot; said Constable Nightingale,
-with a motion of his hand toward the seedy young gentleman, &quot;we met Dr. Lamb,
-who was coming home from a case, and as there's no knowing what might be wanted,
-I asked him to favor us with his company.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Middlemore knew Dr. Lamb, who kept a chemist's shop in
-the neighborhood, and she gave him a friendly nod. It must have been a trying
-case that the young gentleman had come from, for he looked particularly shaky,
-and was rather unsteady on his legs. The locksmith now made some sensible
-remarks to the effect that he had been awakened from a sound sleep, and would
-like to get back to bed again; therefore, had they not better get to work at
-once? His suggestion was acted upon, and they all proceeded upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll give him another chance,&quot; said Constable Nightingale,
-and he forthwith exerted the full strength of his lungs and hammered away at the
-door, to as little purpose as he had previously done. &quot;There's nothing for it,&quot;
-he said, very red in the face, &quot;but to force open the door in the name of the
-law.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The locksmith, who had brought a basket of tools with him,
-declared he would make short work of it, but after examining the door was forced
-to confess inwardly that this was an idle boast. It was of stout oak, and to
-remove the brass plate and pick the lock occupied him much longer than he
-expected. However, in the course of about twenty minutes the task was
-accomplished, and the door stood open for them to enter. Standing for a moment
-irresolutely on the threshold they were greeted by a blast of cold air.
-Constable Nightingale was the first to notice that the window was open, and he
-stepped into the room and closed it. The others followed, and were treading
-close on his heels when he waved them back, and pointed downward. There, on the
-floor, was a little pool of blood. They shuddered as they gazed upon it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought as much,&quot; said Constable Nightingale, the first to
-speak. &quot;There's been foul play here. Who opened that window, and left it open on
-such a night? The cry for help you heard, Wigg, came from this room.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But there's nobody here,&quot; said Constable Wigg.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's his bedroom,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, in an awestruck
-voice, pointing to a room the door of which was ajar.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They stepped softly toward it, Dr. Lamb now taking the lead.
-In an arm-chair by the side of the bed sat a man, his arms hanging listlessly
-down. Dr. Lamb shook him roughly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wake up!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But the figure did not move. Dr. Lamb leant over the recumbent
-form, and thrust his hand inside the man's waistcoat. Then, with his fingers
-under the man's chin, he raised the head, so that the face was visible.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good Lord!&quot; cried Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;It's Mr. Felix! What's
-the matter with him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Lamb put his finger to his lips, and did not immediately
-reply. When he removed his hand the head dropped down again, hiding the face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If you want to know what's the matter with the man,&quot; he said,
-presently, &quot;he's dead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Dead!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As a doornail,&quot; said Dr. Lamb.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_06" href="#div1Ref_06">CHAPTER VI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE &quot;EVENING MOON&quot; INDULGES IN A BOMBASTIC RETROSPECT, IN WHICH SOME VERY
-TALL AND VERY FINE WRITING WILL BE DETECTED BY THE OBSERVANT READER.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In pursuance of the policy which we inaugurated some four
-years since by the romance known as 'Great Porter Square,' we now present our
-readers with a story of today, which we with confidence declare to be as strange
-and exciting as that thrilling mystery, which may be regarded as the
-starting-point of a new and captivating description of journalism for the
-people. We use the term 'romance' advisedly, and are prepared to justify it,
-although the incidents which we set before hundreds of thousands of readers were
-true in every particular, and occurred in a locality with which every Londoner
-is familiar. We recall with pride the extraordinary variety of opinions which
-our publication of that story of real life, and the means we pursued to get at
-the heart of it, elicited. By many we were inordinately praised, by some we were
-mercilessly condemned. There were critics who declared that it was derogatory to
-the legitimate functions of a newspaper to present any matter of public interest
-in the garb in which we clothed it; there were others who, with a juster sense
-of the altered conditions of society by which we are ruled, and to which we are
-compelled to submit, declared that the new departure we made in the Great Porter
-Square Mystery was, to the general mass of readers, as wholesome as it was
-entertaining. Judging by results, these latter critics were most certainly in
-the right. The public read with eager avidity the details of that remarkable
-case as we published them, in our own original fashion, from day to day. The
-demand for copies of our several editions was so great that we were absolutely
-unable to satisfy it, and we are afraid that thousands of newspaper readers were
-compelled to pay exorbitant prices to the ragamuffins who vend the daily
-journals in the public streets. We made strong endeavors to put a stop to this
-extortion, but our efforts were vain, chiefly because the people themselves were
-content to pay three and four times the established price of the <i>Evening Moon</i>
-rather than be deprived of the pleasure of reading the tempting morsels with
-which its columns were filled. Letters of congratulation poured in upon us from
-all quarters, written by persons occupying the highest positions in society, as
-well as by others moving in the lowest stations, and from that time the success
-of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, as a journal which had firmly fixed itself in the
-affections of the people, was assured. If any excuse is needed for the system of
-journalism of which we were the first bold exponents, we might find it in the
-trite axiom that the ends justify the means, but we deny that any excuse
-whatever is required. It was no sentimental experiment that we were trying; we
-had carefully watched the currents of public opinion, and we started on our
-crusade to satisfy a need. The present state of society is such that the public
-insist upon their right to be made acquainted with the innermost details of
-cases which are brought before the tribunals; the moment these cases come before
-the public they are public property. There was a time when seemly and closed
-doors were the rule, and under the cloak of that pernicious system the most
-flagrant wrongs were committed; it is not so in the present day, and it is right
-that it should not be so. Public matters belong to the people, and so long as a
-proper and necessary measure of decency is observed, so long as private
-characters are not defamed, so long as homes and those who occupy them are not
-made wretched by infamous innuendoes, so long as the pen of the literary
-journalist is not employed for the purpose of scandal and blackmail--too often,
-we regret to say, convertible terms--the people's rights in this respect must be
-observed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We point with justifiable pride to the manner in which our
-example has been followed. Imitation is the sincerest form of flattery, and, we
-may add, also of approval, and the columns of numberless newspapers with which
-we have no connection testify to the approval which our new system of journalism
-has won. We mention no names, and have no intention of complaining because the
-credit of initiating the new system has been withheld from us; we accept the
-compliment which has been paid to us, and we wish our contemporaries good luck.
-At the same time we point out to our hundreds of thousands of readers that no
-journal has, up to this day, succeeded in presenting public news in as tempting
-a manner as we are enabled to do. The reason for this lies in the extraordinary
-intelligence of our staff. Our writers are picked men, who could earn celebrity
-in other channels than those of newspaper columns, but who are content to serve
-us because they are paid as capable journalists ought to be paid, with a
-liberality which other newspaper proprietors would deem excessive, but which we
-do not. This is one of the secrets of our astonishing and unprecedented success.
-Our editors, sub-editors, special correspondents, and reporters are zealous as
-no others are because they are devoted to our cause, because they have regular
-and tangible proof that our welfare is theirs, because they share in the profits
-of our enterprise. Thus it is that we are now in possession of particulars
-relating to 'The Mystery of Monsieur Felix,' which not one of our contemporaries
-has been able to obtain, and thus it is that we are in a position to present to
-our readers a romance as thrilling as any that has ever emanated from the
-printing press. It presents features of novelty and surprise which can be found
-in no other <i>cause célèbre</i>, and our readers may rest assured that we shall
-follow up every clew in our possession with an intelligence frequently wanting
-in the officials of Scotland Yard. And, moreover, we have every right to
-maintain, and we shall establish the fact, that what we do is done in the sacred
-cause of justice. The wronged shall be righted, and the mystery clearly brought
-to light, before we have finished with the case of M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For a long period of time the term 'romance' has been
-misunderstood. Romance was supposed to lie outside the regions of the ordinary
-occurrences of everyday life. There was a glamour about the word, a kind of
-lustre which lifted it above and beyond the commonplace features of human
-struggle. It was, as it were, a castle built upon an eminence, with spires, and
-turrets, and gables, whose points shone brightly in the sun; it was, as it were,
-a species of ideal garden in which grew only rare flowers and stately trees; or
-a land of enchantment peopled by knights in silver armor, and by dainty ladies
-flinging kisses to their lords and lovers as they rode forth to the tournament
-or the battle. This was the bygone notion of Romance, the false idea which,
-thanks in a great measure to our efforts, is now utterly exploded. It has been
-found and proved that the truest regions of romance lie in humble courts and
-alleys, where the commonest flowers grow, where the air is not perfumed by
-odorous blossoms, where people dwell not in turreted castle or stately palace,
-but in the humblest homes and narrowest spaces, where common fustian and dimity,
-not glittering armor and silken sheen, are the ordinary wear; where faces are
-thin and anxious from the daily cares of toil, where the battle is not for vast
-tracts of country worth millions, but for the daily loaf of bread worth
-fourpence halfpenny. It has been found and proved that the police courts are a
-veritable hot-bed in which romance is forever springing up. When we contemplate
-the shattering of old false idols and ideals, it would almost seem as if we were
-living in an age of topsy-turvydom, but the sober fact is that the world is
-healthfully setting itself right, and is daily and hourly stripping off the
-veneer which lay thick upon what have been ridiculously called the good old
-times. We were the first to practically recognize this truth, and we have done
-our best to make it popular. It is from lowly annals that we culled the romance
-of 'Great Porter Square,' and it is from somewhat similar annals that we cull
-the present 'Mystery of M. Felix.' The story will be found as strange as it is
-true. All the passions of human nature are expressed in it, and there is one
-episode at least--even up to the point which it has already reached--so singular
-and startling as to be absolutely unique.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We draw special attention to the words in our last sentence,
-'even up to the point which it has already reached,' and we beg our readers to
-bear them well in mind. It may be in their remembrance that when we commenced to
-unravel the mystery of 'Great Porter Square' we had no knowledge of its
-conclusion. We held in our hands certain slight threads which we followed
-patiently up, and of which we kept firm hold, until we had woven them into a
-strand which villainy and duplicity could not break. We championed the cause of
-a man who, upon no evidence whatever--simply from the officious and mistaken
-zeal of a few policemen--was brought up to the police court on the suspicion of
-being in some undiscovered way connected with a crime with which all England was
-ringing. He was remanded day after day for the production of evidence which was
-never forthcoming, and day after day we protested against the injustice of which
-it was sought to make him a victim. The slender threads in our possession we
-held fast, as we have said, until at length we were rewarded with a gratifying
-success, until at length we brought the guilt home to the guilty parties. We
-ourselves were misled by the specious statements of one of the miscreants, a
-woman, we regret to say, who was one of the two principal actors in a plot which
-was very nearly successful, and which, indeed, did for a certain time succeed.
-We are in a similar position with respect to the 'Mystery of M. Felix.' The
-information already in our possession leads us to a point of great interest, and
-there strangely breaks off. But we pledge ourselves to pursue the story to an
-end, and to unearth what is at present hidden in darkness. Our agents are at
-work in this country and elsewhere, and we are satisfied that they will succeed
-in removing the veil from a mystery which is a common topic of conversation and
-discussion in all classes of society.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_07" href="#div1Ref_07">CHAPTER VII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>AN EXAMINATION OF CERTAIN DISCREPANCIES IN THE STATEMENTS OF THE THREE
-PRINCIPAL WITNESSES.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The night of the 16th of January will be long remembered. For
-three weeks the snow had fallen, intermittently, it is true, but for hours
-together. The roads were almost blockaded, and traffic was carried on under
-exceptional difficulties. The season, which in the early part of December had
-promised to be unusually mild, suddenly vindicated its reputation, and we were
-treated to an old-fashioned, bitter winter of great severity. On the evening of
-the 15th of January the frost was most severe, its intensity lasting until some
-time after daybreak, the thermometer showing at eight o'clock A.M. close upon
-sixteen degrees of frost. When it began to snow again people, congratulated
-themselves that a thaw was setting in. They were mistaken. Had it been possible
-the snow would have frozen as soon as it reached the ground, but it fell in too
-great quantities for such a result. In the evening a piercing wind raged through
-the thoroughfares, and the snow continued to fall more heavily than during the
-day. In some places there was a drift almost, if not quite, man high, and our
-columns on the morning of the 17th recorded the discovery of three lifeless
-persons, one man and two women, who had been frozen to death during the night.
-With these unfortunates we have nothing to do; what concerns us and our story is
-that on the night of the 16th, Mrs. Middlemore, a housekeeper in one of the old
-houses in Gerard Street, Soho, very imprudently went out just before midnight to
-fetch her supper-beer. Even the raging storm did not prevent her from indulging
-in her usual habit, the temptation of beer being too strong for her, and the
-prospect of going to bed without it being too appalling to risk. She saw that
-the street door was secure when she left the house, and was surprised, upon her
-return, to find it open. These, and many other particulars which will be duly
-recorded, are statements which have already appeared in public print, and we are
-not responsible for them. At the moment of her reaching the street door the
-circumstance of its being open was impressed upon her by the appearance of a man
-hurriedly leaving the house. He did not stop to address her, and she had no
-opportunity of asking his business there, because he flew by her 'like a flash
-of lightning,' she says. Naturally alarmed, she raised her voice and cried,
-'Police!' One, Constable Wigg, happened to be not far distant, and he responded
-to her summons. Having heard what Mrs. Middlemore had to say, he saw that there
-were two things to attend to--one, to ascertain whether anything had occurred
-within the house; the other, to follow the man who had escaped from it with such
-celerity. As he could not fulfil these two duties at one and the same time, he
-in his turn summoned to his assistance a brother constable of the name of
-Nightingale. This officer pursued the man, and Constable Wigg and Mrs.
-Middlemore entered the house.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now, with the exception of Mrs. Middlemore, there was only
-one regular tenant in the house, M. Felix, who had lived there for nearly two
-years, and concerning whom, up to the night of January 16th, very little appears
-to have been known, except that he was a retired gentleman, living on his means,
-fond of pleasure, and of a generous disposition to those who served him well.
-Mrs. Middlemore speaks in the highest terms of him, but she judges only from one
-point of view, that of a landlady who has a liberal lodger. Otherwise, she has
-no knowledge of him, and cannot say where he came from, whether he was married
-or single (the circumstance of his living a bachelor life would not definitely
-decide this question), or whether he has any relations in any part of the world.
-There are many gentlemen of the description of M. Felix pursuing their
-mysterious careers in this great city, a goodly number of them under false
-names.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;M. Felix was a very peculiar gentleman. He paid for the
-entire house, although he occupied only three rooms, a sitting-room, a
-dining-room, and a bedroom. His stipulation when he first entered into
-possession was that under no circumstances should any other tenant but himself
-be allowed to occupy a room, and he went so far as to refuse permission to Mrs.
-Middlemore for any friends of hers to sleep in the building. Her duties
-consisted in attending to him and to his rooms, which she entered and set in
-order only when he directed her, and for these slight services she was
-extravagantly paid. Such a tenant was a treasure, and she appreciated him
-accordingly, not venturing to disobey him in the slightest particular. He had
-taken the greatest pains to impress upon her that she was never, under any
-circumstances whatever, to come to his rooms unless she was summoned, and from
-what we have gathered of his character, M. Felix was a gentleman who could be
-stern as well as pleasant, and was not a person who would allow his orders to be
-disobeyed without making the delinquent suffer for it. These imperative
-instructions rendered Constable Wigg's course difficult. Mrs. Middlemore had
-left M. Felix in the house when she went to fetch her supper-beer, and it was in
-the highest degree improbable that he should have quitted it during her absence.
-He was not a young man, he was fond of his ease, and the storm was raging
-furiously. Nothing less than a matter of life or death would tempt a man of M.
-Felix's disposition from his cosy fireside on such a night. Constable Wigg
-suggested that he should go up-stairs to M. Felix's rooms, and ascertain whether
-he was in and safe, but Mrs. Middlemore would not listen to the suggestion, and
-of course without her consent Constable Wigg could not carry his proposition
-into effect. In a casual examination of those parts of the premises which Mrs.
-Middlemore allowed him to enter he saw nothing to excite his suspicions, and he
-decided to wait for the return of Constable Nightingale before he proceeded
-further.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We break off here for a moment for the purpose of making
-brief mention of one or two peculiar features in this singular affair, leaving
-Constable Wigg and Mrs. Middlemore standing in the passage or the kitchen--(<i>they</i>
-say the passage, we presume to say the kitchen, where doubtless a cheerful fire
-was blazing; policemen are human)--at half-past twelve or a quarter to one in
-the middle of the night, waiting for Constable Nightingale to report progress.
-Curiously enough, the time cannot be exactly fixed, because the kitchen clock
-had stopped, because Constable Nightingale's watch had stopped also, and because
-Constable Wigg did not wear one. In an affair of this description it is as well
-not to lose sight of the smallest details. We arrive at the time, half-past
-twelve or a quarter to one, approximately. Even in such a storm as was then
-raging through the streets, Big Ben of Westminster made itself heard, and it
-transpires, from a statement volunteered by Constable Wigg, that the great bell
-was proclaiming the hour of midnight when, tramping half-frozen on his beat, he
-heard a cry for help. Three times was this cry sent forth into the night, and,
-faithful guardian as he was, according to his own averment, he endeavored to
-ascertain the direction from which the appeal proceeded. It may well be believed
-that, with the wind blowing seemingly from all points of the compass at once, he
-failed to make the necessary discovery; but it strikes us as singular that when
-he was talking matters over with Mrs. Middlemore it did not occur to him that
-the cry for help may have proceeded from the very house in which he was
-standing. We make no comment upon this singular lapse of memory. It strikes us
-also as by no means unimportant that in the statements of Mrs. Middlemore and
-the two constables there is something very like contradiction and confusion.
-Mrs. Middlemore gives an answer to a question as to her movements in connection
-with those of the constables, and presently, being pressed to be definite, says
-something which throws doubt upon her first answer. She excuses herself by
-saying that she was upset and worried, but to us this explanation is not
-satisfactory, if only for the reason that her subsequent correction throws doubt
-upon certain answers given by the two constables to certain questions put to
-them. However, in the present aspect of the matter, these contradictions may
-simply point to some dereliction of duty on the part of the constables which
-they may wish should not be known, and perhaps to some agreement on the part of
-these three witnesses to an invented story which, believed, would exculpate the
-constables from any such dereliction. This is mere supposition, and we present
-it for what it is worth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is difficult to ascertain the precise time at which
-Constable Nightingale returned to the house in Gerard Street after his fruitless
-search for the man who had alarmed Mrs. Middlemore by his sudden rush from the
-premises. Truly he must have had the greatest difficulty in making his way
-through the streets. In explanation of our remark that in the statements of Mrs.
-Middlemore and the two constables there is something very like contradiction and
-confusion, we append their answers to a few of the questions put to them. We
-will deal with Constable Nightingale first:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When you left the house in Gerard Street in pursuit of the
-man what direction did you take?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I went in the direction of Oxford Street.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is, you went to the right?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Why not to the left?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That would have led me to Leicester Square and Charing
-Cross.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you choose the Oxford Street route at haphazard?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What induced you to take it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I was told by Constable Wigg that the man went that way.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you meet any person on the road?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Absolutely no one?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Absolutely no one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How long were you engaged upon your search for the man?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't exactly fix it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'May we say an hour?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That would be near the length of time.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will now deal with Constable Wigg. He was asked--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How did you summon Constable Nightingale to your
-assistance?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I blew my police whistle.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Many times?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not many. He must have been very near.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But he did not make his appearance immediately?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No; not immediately.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Shall we say that two or three minutes elapsed before he
-joined you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'About that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You explained to him what had occurred?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, with the assistance of Mrs. Middlemore.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You both explained it together?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, first one spoke, then the other.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you tell Nightingale that the man had fled in the
-direction of Oxford Street?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In point of fact, you did not see the man come out of the
-house?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And? therefore, could not have given Nightingale the
-direction?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, of course I could not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now for Mrs. Middlemore:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When the man rushed by you from the house, you screamed
-loudly for the police?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As loud as I could.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How many times did you call?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I kep' on calling till Constable Wigg came up.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He did not come the moment you raised your voice?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, not immediate. Per'aps in two or three minutes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If we say two minutes we shall be within the mark?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you inform Constable Nightingale that the man ran away
-in the direction of Oxford Street?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No; I was so flustered that I didn't see which way he run.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;These are all the extracts we need give for the purpose of
-our illustration, merely asking the reader to bear in mind that each witness was
-examined without the others being present. Is it quite unreasonable to infer
-that, had they been examined in each other's presence, their answers would not
-have been exactly as they are reported in the public prints?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Constable Nightingale has since given an explanation of this
-discrepancy by the admission that he must have made a mistake in supposing that
-he received from Constable Wigg the information of the route the man took when
-he scurried off; but we submit that this explanation is not entirely
-satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another thing. Constable Nightingale states that he was
-engaged in the search for an hour, and that during the whole of that time he did
-not meet a single person on the road. How is that statement to be received? He
-was hunting in some of the busiest thoroughfares in London, and it bears the
-form of an accusation that he did not for a whole hour observe one policeman on
-his beat. He was on his, he declares, at the time he heard Constable Wigg's
-whistle. Constable Wigg was on his beat, according to his own declaration, when
-he blew it. Were they the only two constables in a thronged locality who were
-faithfully performing their duty? Doubtless the other constables on duty would
-indignantly repudiate the allegation, but Constable Nightingale distinctly
-implies as much. We do not wish to be hard on this officer, who bears a good
-character in the force. His movements and proceedings between the hours of
-twelve and two on the night of the 16th may have been innocent enough, or, if
-not quite blameless, excusable enough on such a tempestuous night, but we
-unhesitatingly say that his evidence is suspicious, and that we are not inclined
-to accept it as veracious.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Still another thing. We have ascertained from persons
-acquainted with Constable Nightingale, that he was very proud of his silver
-watch, which he was lucky enough to win in a raffle, and that he was in the
-habit of boasting that it never stopped, and never lost or gained a minute. It
-is singular, therefore, that on this eventful night it should have stopped for
-the first time, and at a time when it might be most important to fix the
-occurrence of events to a minute. Perhaps Constable Nightingale's watch stopped
-in sympathy with the stoppage of Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen clock.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We are anxious to do justice to the parties, and we hasten to
-say that at our request they have allowed a competent watchmaker to examine
-Constable Nightingale's watch and Mrs. Middlemore's clock; but this watchmaker
-reports that they are in perfect order, and that he can find no reason why they
-should both have stopped almost at the same moment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If any of our readers consider that we are straining too hard
-on trifles, we reply that the importance of so-called trifles cannot be
-over-estimated. The world's greatest poet has said, 'Trifles light as air are in
-their confirmation strong as proofs of Holy Writ.'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_08" href="#div1Ref_08">CHAPTER VIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A STARTLING PHASE IN THE MYSTERY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We hark back now to the point at which we left Constable
-Nightingale. He had returned to Gerard Street without having found the man.
-During his absence nothing further had occurred to alarm the housekeeper and the
-constable who kept her company, and they were in doubt as to what was best to be
-done. There was no evidence that the man had entered the house with the
-intention of robbing it, but he might have done so, and being disturbed before
-he effected his purpose, thought it expedient to make his escape as quickly as
-possible. They were debating this view when they were startled by what they
-declare was an 'apparition.' It was the apparition of a half-starved cat, which
-in some way must have found an entrance into the house before Mrs. Middlemore
-came back with her supper-beer. The cat did not belong to the house, for M.
-Felix had a horror of such creatures, and would not allow one to be kept on the
-premises. It was not the cat that startled them, but the color of the cat, which
-seemed to have been rolling itself in blood. They saw it only for an instant,
-and then it disappeared, and has not since been seen again; but it left its
-marks behind it. On the oil-cloth were marks of blood, made by the cat's paws.
-These signs decided their course of action, and they proceeded upstairs to the
-apartments occupied by M. Felix. They knocked and called out loudly to him, but
-received no answer. By an ingenious arrangement, devised presumably by M. Felix
-himself, the keyhole of the door by which they stood was masked by a brass
-plate, the secret of which was known only to M. Felix. The silence strengthened
-their apprehensions of foul play, and they determined to force the door open. To
-effect this it was necessary to obtain the assistance of a locksmith, and
-Constable Nightingale issued forth once more, and brought back with him not only
-a locksmith, but a doctor in the neighborhood, Dr. Lamb, who was coming home
-late from a professional visit. With some difficulty the door was forced open,
-and the first thing that met their eyes was a pool of blood on the floor of the
-sitting-room. They describe it as such, although subsequent examination proved
-that there was a decided exaggeration in calling it a pool, the quantity of
-blood which had fallen not being very serious. M. Felix was not in this room,
-but when they entered the bedroom adjoining they discovered him in an arm-chair,
-bearing the appearance of a man who had fallen asleep. He was not asleep,
-however; he was dead. The natural presumption was that he had been murdered, and
-that the blood on the floor was his, but Dr. Lamb very soon declared that this
-was not the case. M. Felix was dead, certainly, but his death was produced by
-natural causes, heart disease. In this conclusion Dr. Lamb was supported by
-other medical evidence which was sought on the following day, and this being
-supposed to be sufficiently established, the necessity of a post-mortem was not
-immediately recognized. The body was lifted on the bed, and there lay, dressed,
-as it had fallen into the arm-chair.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Accounts of these strange occurrences did not appear in the
-morning newspapers of January 17th, and the first intimation the public received
-of them was through the evening papers of that date. Even in this initial stage
-we scented a mystery, and we despatched our reporters to Mrs. Middlemore to
-obtain such information as would prove interesting to our readers. Our
-reporters, however, were not able to see Mrs. Middlemore; neither were they able
-to get access to the house; some absurd orders on the part of the police were
-being carried out, which converted the house into a kind of safe. But such
-ridiculous methods are not difficult to circumvent, and we determined that the
-public should not be robbed of their privileges. On January 18th, that is, some
-thirty-four hours after the death of M. Felix, we inserted the following
-advertisement in the first edition of the
-<i>Evening Moon</i>, and repeated it in all our subsequent editions. We printed
-it in such bold type, and placed it in such a prominent position, that it could
-not fail to reach the eyes of persons who were interested in the case:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The Strange Death of M. Felix in Gerard Street, Soho.
-Persons who had private or other interviews with M. Felix between the hours of
-eight in the morning and twelve at night on January 16th, or who are in
-possession of information which will throw light upon the circumstances
-surrounding his death, are urgently requested to call at the office of the <i>
-Evening Moon</i> at any time after the appearance of this advertisement. Liberal
-rewards will be paid to all who give such information, and the best legal
-assistance is offered by the proprietors of this journal, entirely at their own
-expense, to all who may desire it and who are in any way interested in M.
-Felix's death.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Meanwhile, so far as the police were concerned, matters
-remained in abeyance. They seemed to do nothing, and certainly discovered
-nothing. One of our contemporaries, in a leading article, has suggested that the
-insertion of this advertisement in our columns was an attempt to tamper with
-justice, or, if not to tamper, to defeat its ends. We can afford to smile at
-such an insinuation. There was no case before the public courts, and no person
-was accused of anything whatever in connection with the strange affair. The
-action we took was taken in the cause of justice, to arouse it to action and
-assist it. In the lighted torch of publicity there is an irresistible moral
-force. It would be well if material light were thrown upon the black spaces in
-this mighty city--upon the black spaces in which crimes are committed, the
-perpetrators of which are enabled to escape because of the convenient darkness
-in which they carry their horrible plans to a successful issue. If old-time
-officialism refuses to stir out of the old routine of useless and pernicious
-methods, forces which are not amenable to red tapeism must take the reins, must
-take into their own hands the plain duties of lawful authority, duties which
-they neglect and evade to the injury of society at large. We do not preach
-socialism, we preach justice--and light.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thus far in our narrative we have brought matters up to the
-night of January 18th. The house in Gerard Street is dark and silent; the body
-of M. Felix is lying on the bed to which it was lifted from the arm-chair in
-which it was discovered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The night was unusually dark. The snow-storm had ceased on
-the previous day, and the reflected light of white thoroughfares no longer
-helped to dispel the pervading gloom.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The morning newspapers of the 19th contained no items of
-particular interest in connection with the death of M. Felix. We were the first
-to announce an extraordinary and apparently inexplicable move in the mystery. In
-order to do this we published our first edition two hours earlier than usual.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At nine o'clock on this morning one of our reporters, in the
-exercise of his duty, was outside the house in Gerard Street, looking up at the
-window of the sitting-room which M. Felix had occupied. He had exchanged a few
-words with a policeman in the street.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am on the staff of the <i>Evening Moon</i>,' he said to
-the policeman. 'Is there anything new concerning M. Felix?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing,' replied the policeman, quite civilly, and passed
-on.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter remained outside the house. Patient and
-persevering, he hoped to pick up some item of interest which he might be able to
-weave into a paragraph.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Suddenly the street door was opened from within, and Mrs.
-Middlemore appeared. Her face was flushed, and in her eyes was a wandering look
-as she turned them this way and that. The moment our reporter observed these
-symptoms of distress he came to the conclusion that there was some interesting
-item of which he could avail himself. He stepped up to Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What is the matter?' he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He's gone!' gasped Mrs. Middlemore, wringing her hands.
-'He's vanished!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Who has gone? Who has vanished?' inquired our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'M. Felix,' said Mrs. Middlemore, in a faint tone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'My good creature,' said our reporter, 'you must be
-dreaming.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm not dreaming,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'He's vanished. If
-you don't believe me, go up and look for yourself. Where are the police. Oh,
-where are the police?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't make a disturbance,' said our reporter, soothingly.
-'Let us see if you're not mistaken.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Gladly availing himself of the invitation to go up and look
-for himself, our reporter entered the house, and ascended the stairs, followed
-by Mrs. Middlemore, moaning in a helpless, distracted fashion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The door of the sitting-room was open, and also the inner
-door, leading to the bedroom. There was no person, living or dead, in either of
-the rooms.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where was he?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There, on the bed,' moaned Mrs. Middlemore. 'He was there
-last night before I locked the door; and when I looked in a minute ago he was
-gone.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was undeniably true. The bed bore the impression of a
-human form, but that was all. The body of M. Felix had, indeed, disappeared!&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_09" href="#div1Ref_09">CHAPTER IX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>INTRODUCES SOPHY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter gazed at the bed in astonishment, while Mrs.
-Middlemore continued to move her hands and eyes helplessly around, and moan for
-the police. Our reporter is a man of resource, quick-witted, ready-minded, and
-ever ready to take advantage of an opportunity. He took advantage of this.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'My good creature,' he said, 'what is the use of crying for
-the police? Have they assisted you in any way in this mysterious affair?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, they 'aven't,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, adding
-inconsequentially, 'but where are they--Oh! where are they?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What have they done already for you?' continued our
-reporter. 'Brought you into trouble with the newspapers because of their
-evidence contradicting yours; and whatever other people may say, I am sure you
-spoke the truth.' Our reporter observed something frightened in the look she
-cast at him as he made this assertion. 'The best thing for you is to confide in
-a friend who is really anxious to serve you, and whose purpose is to get at the
-truth of the matter.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That's all I want. But where's the friend?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Here. I am on the staff of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, which is
-ready to spend any amount of money in clearing the innocent and bringing the
-guilty to justice. They haven't any interested motives to serve; they didn't
-know the dead man, who some people say was murdered, and some people say wasn't.
-If you are an innocent woman you would jump at the chance I offer you; if you're
-guilty, it's a different pair of shoes, and I wash my hands of you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The threat cowed Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm innocent, you know I am,' she gasped.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of course I know you are, and I should like the opportunity
-to silence the wretches who speak of you in a suspicious way.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What 'ave they said of me? What 'ave they dared to say?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What you wouldn't like to hear; but never mind them just
-now. We'll soon take the sting out of their tails. Besides, while you are
-working in the cause of innocence your time will not be wasted. You will be well
-paid for the information you give.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This appeal to her cupidity settled the point.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll do it,' she said, 'whatever it is. I'm a innocent
-woman, and I want the world to know it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The world shall know it,' said our reporter, with inward
-satisfaction at the success of his arguments; 'and when the whole thing is made
-clear through you you'll be looked upon as a heroine, and everybody will be
-running to shake hands with you. People will say, &quot;There, that's the woman that
-brought to light the truth about M. Felix. If it hadn't been for her we should
-never have known it. She's a real true woman; no nonsense about her.&quot; Why, I
-shouldn't wonder if they got up a subscription for you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">(&quot;We have no doubt, when this meets the eyes of our
-contemporaries, that some of them will be ready to take us severely to task for
-the tactics adopted by our reporter. Let them. We are thoroughly satisfied with
-the means he employed, and we offer him our sincere thanks. There is not a move
-we make in this mystery which is not made in the interests of justice, and that
-we are not ashamed of our methods is proved by the absolutely frank manner in
-which we place before our readers every word that passes.)</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What is it you want me to do?' asked Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Merely,' replied our reporter, to answer a few simple
-questions. I have my reasons for believing that the police have advised you to
-say nothing to anyone but themselves.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They 'ave, sir, they 'ave.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What better are you off for it? Here are people ready to say
-anything against you, while you are advised to sit in a corner without uttering
-a single word in your own defence. It's monstrous. Upon my word, my dear Mrs.
-Middlemore, it's nothing less than monstrous.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So it is,' said Mrs. Middlemore, all of whose scruples
-seemed to have vanished. 'I'll answer anything you put to me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall ask you nothing improper. You say that you locked the
-door before you went to bed last night. Which door? There are two, one leading
-to the first floor landing, one communicating between the bedroom and
-sitting-room. Which of these doors did you lock? Or did you lock both?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I won't tell you a lie, sir. When I said I locked the door I
-thought you'd understand me. I mean that I fastened both of 'em. I couldn't lock
-'em because the bedroom door key's been taken away, and the door on the
-landing's been cut into.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That was done by the locksmith. Who took away the key of the
-bedroom?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't know. Perhaps the police.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Without your knowledge?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't know nothing of it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How badly they are behaving to you! Anyway, the two doors
-were closed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I saw to that myself. I ain't in the house without
-company, don't you think that. I wouldn't stop in it alone if you was to offer
-me Queen Victoria's golden crown. My niece is downstairs abed, and once she gets
-between the sheets she's that difficult to rouse that it's as much as a regiment
-of soldiers can do to wake 'er.' (This, our reporter thought, was comic,
-implying that Mrs. Middlemore had engaged the services of a regiment of soldiers
-to get her niece out of bed every morning.) 'Come up-stairs by myself in the
-dark,' continued Mrs. Middlemore, 'is more than I dare do. In the daylight I
-venture if I'm forced to, as I did a minute or two ago, because, though I shook
-Sophy till I almost shook 'er to pieces, and lifted 'er up in bed and let 'er
-fall back again, it had no more effect on 'er than water on a duck's back. All
-she did was to turn round, and bring 'er knees up to 'er chin, and keep 'old of
-the bedclothes as if she was a vice. She's that aggravating there's 'ardly any
-bearing with 'er. So as I couldn't get 'er out of bed, I come up 'ere without
-'er. And that's 'ow I found out Mr. Felix was gone.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You were speaking of what took place last night?' said our
-reporter. 'Your niece, Sophy, came up with you, I understand?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, she did, though she had 'old of me that tight I could
-'ardly shake myself free.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did she come into this room with you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, she didn't; she wouldn't put her foot inside it. I left
-her in the passage while I peeped in. She ain't got the courage of a mouse.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then she cannot corroborate your statement that the body of
-M. Felix was here before you went to bed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ain't my word enough?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'For me it is, but it's different with the police and the
-public. It is a good job you've put yourself in our hands; there's no telling
-what trouble you might have got into if you hadn't.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll do anything you want me to, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore,
-in great distress. 'It's a providence you come up when I opened the street
-door.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is. You are positive the body was on the bed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If it was the last word I ever had to speak I'd swear to
-it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I believe you without swearing,' said our reporter, opening
-a cupboard door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What are you looking in there for?' asked Mrs. Middlemore.
-'Do you think a dead man 'd be able to get up and put 'isself on one of the
-shelves?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' said our reporter, with a smile, 'but let us make sure
-the body is not in either of the rooms.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He looked thoroughly through the apartments, under the bed
-and the couches, and in every cupboard. Mrs. Middlemore followed his movements
-with her eyes almost starting out of her head.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Even up the chimneys,' he said genially, and he thrust the
-poker up, and then lit some paper in the stoves to see that the smoke ascended
-freely and that there was no obstruction.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The thoughts you put in one's 'ead,' remarked Mrs.
-Middlemore, in a terrified voice, is enough to congeal one's blood.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'My dear madam,' said our reporter, 'I am only doing what
-prudence dictates, so that there may be no possible chance of your getting into
-trouble. Suppose the body should be found in any other part of the house----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But 'ow could it get there?' interrupted Mrs. Middlemore,
-excitedly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is more than either you or I can say, any more than we
-can say how it got out of this room; but out of it it has got, hasn't it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nobody can't say nothing different,' assented Mrs.
-Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This is altogether such a mysterious affair,' proceeded our
-reporter, 'that there's no telling what it will lead to. I don't remember a case
-like it ever occurring in London before. Where was I when you interrupted me?
-Oh, I was saying, suppose the body should be found in any other part of the
-house, what would the police say? Why, that for some reason or other--and you
-may be sure they would put it down to a bad reason--you had removed it for the
-purpose of concealing it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Me!' gasped Mrs. Middlemore. What would I do that for?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You wouldn't do it at all, but that's the construction the
-police would put on it, and after that you wouldn't have a moment's peace. My
-dear madam, we'll not give them a chance to take away your character; not a
-stone shall be left unturned. There are rooms above these?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, a lot.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We will have a look through them, and, indeed, through the
-whole house. It's what the police would do, with the idea that you were a party
-to some vile plot; it's what I will do, knowing you to be perfectly innocent.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He put his design into execution. Accompanied by Mrs.
-Middlemore, who always kept in the rear, he made a thorough examination of the
-entire house, from attic to basement, but, as he anticipated, discovered
-nothing. The last rooms he examined were at the bottom of the house, and it was
-there he made acquaintance with Mrs. Middlemore's niece Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is that you, aunt?' the girl called out, from a room
-adjoining the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, it's me,' answered Mrs. Middlemore, irascibly. You're a
-nice lazy slut, you are, to be 'ulking in bed this time of the morning.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I ain't abed, aunt,' said Sophy, making her appearance, 'I'm
-up; but oh, I'm so sleepy!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She came into the kitchen rubbing her eyes, and presenting a
-general appearance of untidiness which did not speak well for her social
-training. Her short hair was uncombed, her face unwashed, her frock open at the
-back, and she had no boots on. She stared hard at our reporter, but was not at
-all abashed at his presence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm a friend of aunt's,' said our reporter. 'You had better
-finish dressing, light the fire, and give yourself a good wash, and then get
-breakfast ready. You needn't come upstairs till you're called.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He beckoned Mrs. Middlemore out of the room, and they
-proceeded upstairs to the apartments on the first floor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It will be as well to say nothing before Sophy,' he said.
-'Now, if you please, we will go on. It is plain that the body of M. Felix is not
-in the house; but it must be somewhere. The question is--Where, and how it got
-there? These rooms were fairly secure before you went to bed last night. Is
-there a chain on the street door?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you put it up before you went down to your bedroom?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I puts it up regularly every night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you did so last night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And turned the key?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was the door locked and the chain up the first thing this
-morning?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes--no!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What do you mean by that?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I mean I can't remember. I must be sure, mustn't I, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You must be sure, there must not be the possibility of a
-mistake; this putting up of the chain is one of the points upon which a great
-deal may hang. Do you mean to tell me that you have any doubt on the subject?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't say for certain. I was that upset and bewildered
-when I found M. Felix gone that I don't remember nothing till you came up to me
-at the street door. 'Ow I opened it, or 'ow I got it open, I don't remember no
-more than the dead.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Think a little; it is not longer than half-an-hour since I
-saw you. Your memory cannot have deserted you in so short a time.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I've got no more memory about it than the babe unborn.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But you must try to have. It is a fact that the chain either
-was or was not up, that the door either was or was not locked. Sit down and
-think about it for a minute or two; I will keep quiet while you think.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But though the woman obeyed our reporter, and sat down and
-thought of the matter, or said she did, she declared she could make nothing of
-it, and had to give it up in despair.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is awkward,' said our reporter, 'to say the least of it.
-There is no telling what construction may be put upon your loss of memory.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm a honest woman, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, looking
-imploringly at our reporter; 'you'll put in a good word for me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You may depend upon that, for I am convinced you are honest
-and innocent, but it is unfortunate. If you <i>should</i> happen to remember,
-you had best let me know before you tell anyone else.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, I'll promise that. I don't know what I should do
-without you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Get yourself into serious trouble, for a certainty, Mrs.
-Middlemore. You go out for your supper-beer every night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, every night; I can't do without it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Beer is a wholesome beverage, if taken in moderation, which
-I know is the case with you. Did you go out for it last night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I did.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Before or after you paid your last visit to these rooms?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Before, sir, before. You think of everything.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It shows that I am doing the best I can for you. Before you
-came up to these rooms, you had your supper?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sophy had some with you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes. She's got a twist on her has Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A twist?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'An appetite. She eats as much as a Grenadier.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All growing girls do. How old is Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Fourteen.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then, when you went downstairs, you and Sophy went to bed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You both sleep in the same room?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In the same bed, most likely?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, we do; and the way that girl pulls the clothes off you
-is a caution.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you both go to bed at the same time?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I sent 'er before me, and when I went in she was as
-sound as a top.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Are you a sound sleeper yourself?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I was before this dreadful thing 'appened, but now I pass
-the most fearful nights.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Dreams?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Awful.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How about last light? Don't answer hastily. This is another
-important point.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thus admonished, Mrs. Middlemore took time to consider; and
-no doubt it was with a certain regret that she felt constrained to say, 'I think
-I must 'ave slept better than ordinary. I was that tired that my legs was fit to
-drop off me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You slept very soundly?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I must 'ave done, mustn't I, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is for you to say. You see, Mrs. Middlemore, the body
-of M. Felix could not have been removed without a certain noise. Now, if you
-were awake you must have heard it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't 'ear nothing. I'll take my Bible oath of it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'At what hour did you wake this morning?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'At 'alf-past eight, and I got up at once.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Isn't that rather late for you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is, sir, but I've got no one to attend to now.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You were not in any way disturbed in the night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You positively heard nothing?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing at all.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Love your 'eart, sir! Sophy wouldn't wake up if cannon-balls
-was firing all round her!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As a matter of fact, has she told you she heard nothing last
-night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I won't say that. I ain't 'ad time to arks her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll ask her myself if you've no objection. Stop here for
-me; I shall not be gone long.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't stop 'ere alone, sir. I'll come down, and keep in
-the passage while you speak to Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They went down together, and Mrs. Middlemore remained outside
-while our reporter entered the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;His entrance aroused Sophy, who had been sitting in a chair,
-apparently asleep, in the same state of untidiness as he had left her. She fell
-on her knees with a guilty air, and began to rake out the stove, making a great
-rattle with the poker.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Fire not lit yet, Sophy?' said our reporter, much amused.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She looked up with a sly look, and seeing that he was not
-going to scold her, rubbed her nose with the poker and smiled boldly at him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not yet, old 'un,' she replied, making no attempt to
-continue her work.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To be addressed as 'old 'un' must have been especially
-humiliating to our reporter, who is a good-looking fellow of eight-and-twenty,
-but he did not resent it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Wood won't catch, I suppose,' he said. 'Too damp, eh?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Soppin',' said Sophy, though as a matter of fact there was
-no wood before her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What are you looking so hard at me for?' asked our reporter.
-'You'll make me blush presently.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'<i>You</i> blush!' laughed Sophy. 'I like that, I do. Look
-'ere, old 'un. When you wants to blush, you'd better 'ire somebody to do it for
-you.
-<i>I'll</i> do it for tuppence a time.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You would have to wash your face first,' said our reporter,
-entering into the humor of the situation.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I wouldn't mind doing that,' said Sophy, staring harder than
-ever at him, 'if you'd make it wuth my while. As for lookin' at you, a cat may
-look at a king.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm not a king,' observed our reporter, 'and you're not a
-cat.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Call me one, and you'll feel my clors. I'm reckonin' of you
-up, that's what I'm doing of.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And what do you make of me, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I sha'n't tell if you're going to act mean. 'Ansom is that
-'ansom does.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter took the hint, and gave the girl a
-sixpenny-piece.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I say,' cried Sophy, greatly excited, as she tried the coin
-with her teeth. 'Stow larks, you know. Is it a good 'un?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Upon my honor,' said our reporter, placing his hand on his
-heart, with a mock heroic air.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Say upon your soul.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Upon my soul, if you prefer it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Change it for me, then. I'd sooner 'ave coppers.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter had some in his pocket, and he counted out six
-into Sophy's grimy palm. A seventh, by accident, fell to the floor. Sophy
-instantly picked it up.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Findin's keepin's,' she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm agreeable. And now what do you make of me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Wait a bit,' said Sophy. Unblushingly she lifted her frock,
-and tied the coppers in her ragged petticoat, tightening the knots with her
-teeth, which were as white as snow. 'That's my money-box, and I've got some more
-in it. What do I make of you? Oh, I knows what you are. You can't gammon me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What am I?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You belong to the <i>Perlice Noos</i>, that's what you do.
-You've come to make pickchers. Pickcher of the 'ouse where the body was found.
-Pickcher of the room where the body was laid. Pickcher of the body's bed.
-Pickcher of the body's slippers. Pickcher of Mrs. Middlemore, the body's
-'ousekeeper. Oh, I say, make a pickcher of me, will you? I'll buy a copy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Perhaps, if you're good. But you must answer a question or
-two first.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All serene. Fire away!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You went upstairs last night with your aunt after you had
-your supper?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I did.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You did not go into the rooms?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I didn't.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Because you were frightened?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Gammon! It'd take more than that to frighten Sophy.' She
-added, with a sly look, 'Aunty's easily kidded, she is.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah,' said reporter, somewhat mystified, 'then you came down
-and went to bed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I did, and precious glad to get there.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You like your bed, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Rather.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you sleep well?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You bet!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you sleep better or worse than usual last night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No better, and no wus.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you wake up in the night?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not me!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then you heard no noise?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Anywhere.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't 'ear nothink. 'Ow could I?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank you, Sophy. That is all for the present.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I say,' cried Sophy, as our reporter was about to leave the
-kitchen, 'you'll take my pickcher, won't you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll think about it. I'll see you another time, Sophy; and
-look here,' added our reporter, who is never known to throw a chance away,
-'here's my card; take care of it, and if you find out anything that you think
-I'd like to know about M. Felix, come and tell me, and you shall be well paid
-for it. You'll not forget?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I won't forgit. Anythink about M. Felix, do you mean?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, anything.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All right, old 'un. I'll choo it over.' Here Sophy dropped
-her voice, and asked, 'Is Aunt outside?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes. Can you keep a secret?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Try me,' said Sophy, holding out the little finger of her
-left hand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What am I to do with this?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Pinch my nail as 'ard as you can. Never mind 'urting me. As
-'ard as ever you can.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter complied, and Sophy went audibly through the
-entire alphabet, from A to Y Z.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There,' said Sophy, 'did I scream when I came to O?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You did not,' said our reporter, remembering the child's
-game. 'You bore it like a brick.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't that show I can keep a secret?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It does. Well, then, don't tell your aunt that I gave you my
-card, or asked you to come and see me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm fly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Giving him a friendly wink, Sophy went on her knees, and made
-a pretence of being very hard at work cleaning the grate. The last words he
-heard were:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Pickcher of Sophy wearin' 'erself to skin and bone. Ain't I
-busy?'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_10" href="#div1Ref_10">CHAPTER X.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>OUR REPORTER GIVES MRS. MIDDLEMORE SOME SENSIBLE ADVICE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Rejoining Mrs. Middlemore, our reporter informed her that he
-was satisfied that Sophy had heard nothing in the night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of course she didn't,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'Once she's in
-bed she lays like a log.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She's a sharp little thing,' observed our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sharp ain't the word, sir. What's going to be the end of her
-is more than I can fathom.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Has she a mother?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Father?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If he can be called one. Drunk half his time, in trouble the
-other half.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So that poor Sophy has to look after herself?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Pretty well. She does odd jobs, and picks up a bit 'ere and
-a bit there. When M. Felix first come to live 'ere I'd made up my mind to 'ave
-'er altogether with me, though she'd 'ave worrited the life out of me, I know
-she would; but he wouldn't let me 'ave nobody in the house but 'im, and wouldn't
-let nobody sleep in it a single night, so I 'ad to disappoint the child. I did
-take 'er in once or twice when she came round to me almost black and bloo with
-the way 'er brute of a father had served 'er, but I 'ad to be careful that M.
-Felix shouldn't see 'er--smuggling 'er into the kitchen when he was away, and
-letting 'er out very early in the morning--or I should never 'ave 'eard the last
-of it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are the only friend the girl has, it seems?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She ain't got many more.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mind what I tell you, Mrs. Middlemore,' said our reporter,
-with the kindest intentions, 'there's capital stuff in Sophy. Now that M. Felix
-is gone it would be a charity to adopt her, if you haven't any of your own.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I ain't got none of my own,' said Mrs. Middlemore, shaking
-her head dubiously, 'but since I arksed 'er whether she'd like to live with me,
-and she said she would, she's got into ways that I don't think I could abide.
-You see, sir, she wasn't so old then, and I might 'ave moulded her. I don't know
-as I could do it now.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What ways do you refer to?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, sir, I've seen her selling papers in the streets----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That's not a crime,' interposed our reporter; 'especially if
-she does it for food.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If you won't mind my saying so,' said Mrs. Middlemore, with
-considerable dignity, 'I consider it low; but that's not so bad as selling
-matches, which is next door to begging.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But she doesn't beg?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I don't think she goes as low as that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nor steal?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, with spirit, 'she'll take
-anything that's give to her, but's as honest as the sun, I'll say that of her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All that you've told me of Sophy, Mrs. Middlemore, is in her
-favor, and I have already a sneaking regard for her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Lord, sir!' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, misconstruing the
-sentiment, 'and you the gentleman that you are!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes,' repeated our reporter, complacently, 'a sneaking
-regard for her. Hawking papers and matches is not the loftiest occupation, but
-it is a form of commerce; and commerce, my dear madam, has made England what it
-is.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not entirely without a selfish motive, although he was
-favorably disposed toward the poor waif, that our reporter wandered for a few
-moments from the engrossing subject of M. Felix's disappearance to the less
-eventful consideration of Sophy's welfare. By one of those processes of
-intuition which come to observant men by inspiration, as it were, he was
-impressed with the idea that Sophy might be useful to him and to us in the
-elucidation of the mystery concerning M. Felix. We will not weaken the interest
-of what is to follow by divulging whether this idea was or was not justified by
-results; our readers will be able to judge for themselves later on. His views
-regarding Sophy had their weight with Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I mean to keep Sophy with me,' said that lady, 'for a little
-while at all events, and if she'll only keep away from the theaytres I'll do
-what I can for 'er.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Does she frequent theatres?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Does she?' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, and immediately
-answered herself after a favorite fashion with certain of her class. 'Doesn't
-she? Why she saves every copper she can get to go to the galleries, and when she
-ain't got no money she hangs round the stage doors to see the actors and
-actresses go in and out. I don't believe she could stay away if it was to save
-her life.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Persons in a much higher social position than ourselves,'
-said our reporter, turning every point to Sophy's advantage, 'are in the habit
-of hanging round stage doors. The stage is a great institution, Mrs. Middlemore,
-greater than ever it was before, and is courted--yes, my dear madam, courted--by
-the highest as well as the lowest in the land, from the Prince of Wales at the
-top to poor little Sophy at the bottom. Every fresh thing you tell me of Sophy
-makes me think better of her. But let us return to M. Felix. He would not allow
-you to have any person in the house, you say. What was his motive?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't say, sir, except that he wanted to keep 'isself to
-'isself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you expostulate with him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did I what, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you tell him you would feel lonely without a companion
-occasionally?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not me, sir. M. Felix wasn't the kind of gentleman you could
-cross. He 'ad a way of speaking, when he was giving orders you couldn't mistake.
-His word was lore, and he meant it to be. You ain't forgetting, sir, that he was
-master 'ere?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I'm not forgetting that. His orders, then, were to be
-obeyed without question?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They was, sir. He said to me, &quot;When people don't do as I
-tell 'em, Mrs. Middlemore, I get rid of 'em.&quot;'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A very dictatorial gentleman.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only when he was saying, &quot;This is to be,&quot; or, &quot;That is to
-be.&quot; At other times he was as smooth as marble, and always passed a pleasant
-word.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He had visitors occasionally, I suppose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes, sir, but I scarcely ever sor them. Nearly always he
-let 'em in and out 'isself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In a manner of speaking, then, he led a secret life?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Some might call it so. Gentlemen living in chambers do all
-sorts of things.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So I believe,' said our reporter, dryly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And it ain't for the likes of us to question 'em. We've got
-our living to make, and if it pays us to be mum, mum we must be.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I understand that. From what I can gather, Mrs. Middlemore,
-M. Felix had no family?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not that I know of, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As to his visitors, now, were they mostly ladies or
-gentlemen?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mostly ladies, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have any of them been here to see his body?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not one, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is strange. He might almost as well have died on a
-desert island.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir. That's the reason why we've been all at sea what
-to do. There was nobody to give directions.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is certainly a perplexing situation, unprecedented in my
-experience. Should you happen to meet any of the persons who were in the habit
-of visiting him, would you be able to identify them?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't think I should, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Supposing that he came by his death in a violent way--I
-don't say it is so, because the medical evidence does not favor that
-conclusion--but supposing that this evidence was misleading, and was proved to
-be so, there is nobody to take up the matter authoritatively, to take measures,
-I mean, to bring the guilty party to justice?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nobody, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only the police?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, only the police?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And all they have succeeded in doing is to make things
-uncomfortable for you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir,' sighed Mrs. Middlemore, 'that's all they've done.
-I said to Mr. Nightingale, &quot;A nice friend you've been,&quot; I said. I couldn't 'elp
-saying it after all I've gone through.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is it Constable Nightingale you are speaking of?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, it is.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is he an old friend of yours?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He was on the beat 'ere before Mr. Wigg.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah; and that is how you got to know him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He knew M. Felix, probably?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mr. Felix made a point of being always friendly with the
-policemen on the beat.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sensible man. Tipped them, I daresay?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They'd best answer that theirselves. He never give <i>me</i>
-nothing to give 'em.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What did Constable Nightingale say when you made that remark
-to him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing,' replied Mrs. Middlemore, with sudden reserve.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Surely he must have made some remark, to the effect that he <i>
-was</i>
-your friend, or words bearing the same meaning?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He didn't say nothing.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter gave up the point; it was his cue to keep Mrs.
-Middlemore in a good humor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll have one more look in the bedroom,' he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At first his scrutiny was not rewarded by any discovery, but,
-passing his hand over the pillows on the bed, he felt something hard beneath
-them, and upon lifting them up he saw a six-chambered revolver, loaded in every
-barrel.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Lord save us!' cried Mrs. Middlemore, starting back.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you not know it was here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir, this is the first time I ever saw it. I never knew
-he kep' one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do the police know?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They didn't mention it, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, we will leave it where it is. Don't touch it, Mrs.
-Middlemore; it's loaded.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before he replaced it, however, he made the following note in
-his pocket-book: 'A Colt's double-action revolver, nickel plated, six shots, No.
-819.' And, unseen by Mrs. Middlemore, he scratched on the metal with his
-penknife the initial F. Then he looked at his watch, and said--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is nearly ten o'clock. My advice now is that you go and
-give the alarm to the police that the body of M. Felix has vanished.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You'll go along with me, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, for your sake I had better not be seen. Give me two
-minutes to get away, and then go for the police at once. I will come and see you
-again, and help you in every way I can.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Shaking her hand, and leaving half a sovereign in it, our
-reporter, accompanied by Mrs. Middlemore, went to the street door, and left her
-standing there.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_11" href="#div1Ref_11">CHAPTER XI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE &quot;EVENING MOON&quot; IS INUNDATED WITH CORRESPONDENCE CONCERNING THE
-DISAPPEARANCE OF THE BODY OF M. FELIX.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As was to be expected, the news of the disappearance of the
-body of M. Felix caused the greatest excitement. In small villages trifling
-incidents are sufficient to create an interest; in great cities events of
-magnitude are required to stir the pulses of the people; and in both village and
-city, to arouse the public from their normal condition of apathy, it is
-necessary that the incidents must have local color. Soho was sufficiently
-central, and, it may be added, sufficiently mixed and mysterious in the
-character of its population, to fulfil this imperative condition of popularity.
-Every resident in London knows the locality, and is to some extent familiar with
-it; it is contiguous to the most fashionable thoroughfares; it is within a
-stone's throw of theatres of magnificent proportions; it gives shelter to
-foreign princes deposed for a time from their high estate, and to foreign
-votaries of vice of both sexes who, being outlaws, cannot pursue their infamous
-courses in their native lands. If we were asked which part of London contains
-the most varied material for the weaving of modern romance we should
-unhesitatingly point to the region of Soho. A careless stroller through those
-thoroughfares little dreams of the strange and wondrous life which beats beneath
-the apparently placid, the undeniably squalid, aspect of this pregnant locality.
-The elderly woman, poorly clad and closely veiled, who glides past him is a
-prominent member of a Royal family who for a long period held the reins of power
-in one of the greatest European nations; she lives now in a garret upon dry
-bread and German sausage, and makes her own bed and fire. Yesterday she wore a
-crown of diamonds, to-day she wears a crown of sorrow. The attenuated man, whose
-worn-out garments hang loosely upon his spare body, and who is now studying <i>
-carte du jour</i>
-in the window of a low French restaurant, nervously fumbling at the same moment
-the few loose coins in his pocket, was, in years gone by, one of the greatest
-financiers in the world; yesterday he dealt in millions, had scores of carriages
-and hundreds of servants, paid fabulous prices for rare gems and pictures, and
-provided funds for mighty wars; to-day he is debating whether he can afford an
-eighteen-penny dinner. The man with an overhanging forehead, who strides onward
-with teeth closely set, and the fingers of whose hands are continually clinching
-and unclinching, is the head of a secret society whose members number hundreds
-of thousands, and whose deed of blood shall next week convulse the world with
-horror. We could dwell long upon this fascinating theme, but our business is
-with M. Felix, and we must not wander from him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As we have already stated, we were the first to give the
-public the intelligence of his strange disappearance, and so intense was the
-interest the news excited that our printing-machines could not supply one-fourth
-of the demand for the various editions of our journal. The letters we received
-upon the subject would form a curious chapter in a new 'Curiosities of
-Literature.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Dear sir' (wrote one correspondent), 'you speak of the
-disappearance of the body of M. Felix as an unparalleled incident. Allow me to
-correct you, and from my own experience to furnish your readers with an
-identical case. It is now ten years ago since I formed the acquaintance of a
-gentleman of great attainments and peculiar habits, and whose nationality was
-always a matter of curiosity with me. Once or twice I delicately approached the
-subject, but he skilfully evaded it, and I did not feel warranted in pressing
-it. He was a wonderful chess-player, an accomplished linguist, and his knowledge
-of the niceties of every new discovery in science was simply marvellous. He had
-only one failing--he drank and smoked too much. In those days I also was a free
-liver. We were both single men, I certainly, he presumably; there are topics
-upon which it is good breeding to preserve a friendly delicacy. We met
-frequently, and dined together at least twice a week, at my expense. He was a
-good judge of wine and liquor, and very choice in his food. Being much superior
-to me in this respect, I invariably left it to him to decide where to dine and
-to arrange the courses. Perhaps occasionally we took half a bottle of wine too
-much, but that is neither here nor there. It was no one's business but our own.
-He took a peculiar interest in all new inventions, and was in the habit of
-throwing out hints of an extraordinary invention of his own which one day was to
-revolutionize the world. He told me very little of his discovery of which anyone
-could make use, but he was so jealous of his secret that he bound me down to
-solemn secrecy on the point; and I trust I am too much of a gentleman to violate
-the confidence he reposed in me. I may, however, without scruple, reveal that
-his invention related to combustion. One evening, when we had arranged to dine
-as usual together at the Royal, in Regent Street, he confided to me that he was
-in temporary want of funds, and I lent him all the money I had about me, some
-fifteen or sixteen pounds. Then we dined, and he paid for the dinner. Over the
-meal he talked more frequently than he was in the habit of doing of his
-invention. &quot;It is near completion,&quot; he said, &quot;and before I go to bed I intend to
-make some experiments which I am in hopes will put the finishing touch to it.&quot;
-Then he looked at me searchingly and thoughtfully, and said I might accompany
-him home if I liked, and assist in the experiments. Burning with curiosity, and
-delighted at this mark of his confidence, I gladly consented, and we issued
-forth and proceeded to his rooms, which, singularly enough, were in Glasshouse
-Street, at no very great distance from the house in which M. Felix lived. On our
-way he purchased two bottles of brandy, remarking that even when the soul was in
-its highest state of exaltation the body required nourishment and sustaining. I
-acquiesced. He lived on the second floor, in two rooms, one his bedroom, the
-other the room in which he conducted his experiments. There was no evidences of
-the nature of these experiments visible, and he explained this to me by stating
-that, distrusting his housekeeper, he kept them in his cupboard. The first thing
-he did was to light a large fire; then he brought forth a brass frying-pan, upon
-which he emptied a packet of powder. &quot;You must not be frightened at what I am
-about to do,&quot; he said. &quot;There is no very great danger in it, but it needs
-courage.&quot; Being already primed with the wine we had at dinner, and with three
-glasses of the brandy he had purchased, I told him I was prepared for anything.
-Then he informed me that his experiments must be made without light from candle
-or lamp; so that, with the exception of the fire, we were in darkness. Then he
-put the brass frying-pan on the fire, and a blue vapor floated through the room.
-I felt a little nervous, but I would not confess it, and I helped myself to
-another glass of brandy, and puffed away at a very large and very strong cigar
-with which he presented me. He bade me sit in a particular chair by a little
-table (upon which he considerately placed the two bottles of brandy, one by this
-time half empty), and he drew around me upon the floor, which was destitute of
-carpet, a circle with a piece of billiard chalk, and said that as long as I did
-not move outside that charmed circle I should be safe. &quot;Help yourself to some
-more brandy,&quot; he said, &quot;and do not be frightened.&quot; I obeyed him as to the
-brandy, but I must confess I was in great trepidation, more especially as the
-dim objects in the room appeared to be going round and round. He threw some more
-powder into the brass frying-pan, and this time the vapor was green. He then
-asked me if I had anything in the shape of metal upon my person, and I answered
-yes, of course; upon which he stated that I might be in danger unless I divested
-myself of them, as he was about to do. At a little distance from me, between me
-and the fire, he drew upon the floor a smaller circle with his piece of billiard
-chalk, and within it placed a trinket or two of his own. I handed him my gold
-watch and chain, my diamond ring, my pearl and ruby pin, and a valuable charm of
-gold which I kept in my pocket for luck. These he placed with his own trinkets
-within the smaller circle, and said that now no harm could befall me. The
-objects in the room went round more and more as he muttered some cabalistic
-words, and to prevent myself from being overcome by terror I took some more
-brandy. Then he threw about half a dozen little packets of powder into the fire,
-one after another, and all sorts of colors appeared, and filled the room with a
-peculiar smell, which so affected me that I helped myself to brandy. I must not
-forget to mention that he had locked the door and put the key in his pocket. &quot;If
-what I am doing alarms you,&quot; he said, &quot;you may close your eyes. You have great
-courage, and to prove my friendship for you I shall present you with half the
-profits of my invention.&quot; I tried to thank him, but to my surprise my words were
-not very clearly spoken. Presently my eyes began to close, and I fell asleep.
-When I awoke the room was in darkness. I called to my friend, but he did not
-answer me. Fearful lest he himself should have fallen a victim to his hazardous
-experiments, I rose unsteadily to my feet and felt around till my hands reached
-the door, which, of course, was locked. Luckily I had in my pocket a box of
-matches, and striking one I lit the candle. My friend was gone; I was alone in
-the room; but upon the floor was a small heap of ashes. Not only was my poor
-friend gone, but all his trinkets as well as my own were also gone. But there
-upon the floor was the fatal heap of ashes. I could arrive at but one
-conclusion, namely, that the combustion which was the kernel of his great
-invention had reduced him to ashes and destroyed him. There could be no other
-explanation of the extraordinary occurrence, because the door was still locked.
-Fearful lest I might be accused of his death, I forced the door open and fled,
-and from that day to this the affair has remained wrapped in mystery. This is
-the first time I have mentioned it, and I do so now in the interests of justice,
-lest some unfortunate person should be accused, as I might have been in the case
-of my friend, of spiriting M. Felix away. May not his disappearance be set down
-to combustion? Are there any charred marks upon the floor of the room where his
-body lay? Were any ashes left? Was he given to dangerous experiments? My own
-experiences may lead you, sir, to the proper solution of the mystery which hangs
-around his fate. I shall follow the further developments of the case of M. Felix
-with interest, and am, Yours, etc.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another correspondent wrote:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sir--I am a Spiritualist, and I possess the power of
-summoning from the Caverns of the Unseen and Unknown the spirits of any
-individual upon whom I may call. There is but one way of arriving at the truth
-of the disappearance of the body of M. Felix, and I offer to you the exclusive
-privilege of revealing this truth to an anxious and eager public. My fee will be
-five guineas. Upon your remitting to me this sum I undertake to summon the
-spirit of M. Felix, and to ascertain from his own lips what has become of his
-body. The power I possess is worth considerably more than the sum I name, and
-you, with this exclusive information in your possession, will obtain an
-advertisement for your valued newspaper which you could not otherwise obtain for
-five hundred times the amount. I enclose you my name and address, which you may
-or may not publish as you please, and upon the receipt of the five guineas I
-will set to work at once. If you decline my offer the disappearance of this
-particular body will forever remain a mystery. I urge you, in your own
-interests, not to neglect this opportunity.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another correspondent wrote:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Honored Sir--I have been reading all about M. Felix, and now
-comes the cruel news of his disappearance. Just as I was going to see his body
-and identify it! Just as I was going to realize a life-long dream! Will you
-allow me to explain, and will you render an inestimable service to a poor widow?
-I feel that you will, for you have a heart. Thirty-two years ago my husband left
-me suddenly. We were having tea, and in the middle of it he got up and said,
-&quot;I'm off, and you'll never see me again.&quot; We had had a dispute about something
-(I beg you not ask me what; it was a private matter), when he acted thus. He was
-a most overbearing man, and I had enough to do to bear with him. He left the
-house there and then, and I have never set eyes on him since. His name was not
-Felix, but are you sure that was M. Felix's proper name. I advertised for him,
-and said all would be forgiven and forgotten, but he didn't turn up. I heard he
-had gone to Australia, and no doubt he made his fortune there, and came home to
-England to enjoy it; and as <i>he</i> was a man who never forgot and never
-forgave, he took the name? of Felix, and lived the lonely life he did. It was
-only yesterday the idea flashed across me that he was my long lost husband, and
-that, if he did not make a will disinheriting me, his lawful wife, his fortune
-belongs to me by every legal and moral right. I would put two or three questions
-to you, sir, to you who are always ready to help the oppressed. Did the supposed
-M. Felix make a will? If he did, where is it? Is there any portrait of him
-extant? I have a portrait of my poor husband--alas! much faded--but it stands to
-reason that it must differ considerably from the late portraits taken of the
-deceased. Show me M. Felix's portrait and I am ready to swear to my husband. I
-put only one more question. In the absence of any evidence whatever, and failing
-the discovery of the deceased's mortal remains, is it not competent for me to
-make oath that he was my husband, and thus establish my claim to any property he
-may have left behind him. In deep grief, I am, honored sir, your obliged and
-obedient servant, A LONELY WIDOW.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We could fill pages with letters of this description, but the
-three we have given are a sufficient indication of the interest excited by the
-incident. Among all these letters there was only one which offered any
-suggestion likely to be of practical value, and that was the letter we have
-printed, signed 'A LONELY WIDOW.' Her interesting hypothesis that M. Felix was
-her long lost husband was, of course, ridiculous, but she made mention of two
-subjects worthy of consideration. The first was did M. Felix make a will; the
-second, was there any portrait of him extant. If a will were in existence, it
-would probably be in the care of a firm of lawyers who could have no good reason
-for keeping it in the background. We set to work at once upon this trail, but it
-led to nothing. No lawyers were found in possession of such a document, and it
-was not forthcoming from other quarters. Nor were we more successful with
-respect to a portrait of M. Felix. Mrs. Middlemore had never seen one, and a
-private search through his rooms was futile. Indeed, it is a further proof of
-the strange secrecy in which M. Felix's life was conducted that not a document
-or written paper of any description was discovered in his apartments, not even a
-letter. Some important statements upon this head will be presented further on.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In pursuance of the advice our reporter gave Mrs. Middlemore,
-she communicated to the police the fact of the disappearance of the body of M.
-Felix. There the matter rested, and would have been likely to rest but for the
-initiatory steps we had already taken to throw a light upon the mystery. It is
-all very well to say that nobody's business is everybody's business; it is not
-the case. People talked and wrote letters, but we acted. It must be admitted
-that the police were not in a position to move actively in the affair. No
-definite charge had been offered for their investigation; no person was accused
-of a crime; it had not even been proved that a crime had been committed.
-Conjecture was theirs, and that was all. The law cannot move, cannot act upon
-conjecture; facts of a crime, or even of a supposed crime, are necessary before
-the administration of justice can be called upon to adjudicate. Suggestions were
-thrown out as to the advisability of offering a reward for the discovery of the
-body, but who was to offer it? Even in the case of a deliberate and ascertained
-murder where the criminal is at large, the Government is notoriously slow in
-issuing such a proclamation, and the full weight of public opinion has
-frequently failed in inducing the authorities to offer a reward. It was not,
-therefore, to be expected that they would do so in this instance. Meanwhile
-there was one feature in the case which we desire to emphasize, and of which we
-never lost sight. Between the hours of twelve and one o'clock on the night of
-the 16th-17th January a man with a red scarf round his neck was seen to issue
-from the house in Gerard Street, in which M. Felix resided. The man still
-remained undiscovered. It matters not who saw him, whether Mrs. Middlemore, or
-Constables Wigg or Nightingale, or all three together. The fact seemed to be
-established that he had been in the house for some purpose, and had been seen to
-issue from it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where was that man, and what motive had he for not coming
-forward?&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_12" href="#div1Ref_12">CHAPTER XII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE REPORTER OF THE &quot;EVENING MOON&quot; MAKES A DISCOVERY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the evening of the 19th our reporter paid a visit to Mrs.
-Middlemore. Sophy opened the street door for him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Hallo, old 'un,' said the girl, 'it's you, is it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, Sophy,' said our reporter, 'here I am again.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As large as life,' remarked Sophy, vivaciously, 'and twice
-as--no, I won't say that; you ain't arf a bad sort. What's yer little game this
-time, old 'un?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is Mrs. Middlemore in?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, aunt's at 'ome. Do you want to see 'er?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That's what I've come for, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Who's that, Sophy?' cried Mrs. Middlemore, from the bottom
-of the basement stairs.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It's the old 'un, aunt,' screamed Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't be absurd,' said our reporter, pinching Sophy's cheek.
-'It is I, Mrs. Middlemore, the reporter from the <i>Evening Moon</i>.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Come down, sir,' cried Mrs. Middlemore, 'if come you must.
-Don't stop talking to that 'uzzy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy put her tongue in her cheek, and whispering, 'Ain't she
-a treat?' preceded our reporter to the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-evening, Mrs. Middlemore,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-evening, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'Sophy, 'ave you
-shut the street door tight?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As tight as a drum,' replied Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mrs. Middlemore sank into a chair with a heavy sigh, and our
-reporter took a seat opposite her. There was a jug of beer on the table.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will you 'ave a glass, sir?' asked Mrs. Middlemore,
-hospitably.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, thank you; I have just dined, and I thought I would come
-and have a chat with you in a general way.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank 'eaven it's about nothing particular,' said Mrs.
-Middlemore, in a tone of manifest relief.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It may lead to something particular,' observed our reporter,
-genially. 'We're only on the threshold as yet.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Stop a bit, sir, please. Sophy!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, aunty dear,' responded the girl, in a tone of simulated
-sweetness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If I let you go out for a walk, will you come back in arf an
-hour?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy hesitated. Between her longing for a run in the streets
-and her longing to hear what our reporter had to say, she felt herself in a
-difficulty.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, now,' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, sharply.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, aunty dear,' said Sophy, pressing the bosom of her
-frock, and pretending to be greatly startled at her aunt's sharp voice, you send
-my 'eart into my mouth.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will you promise not to stop out longer than an hour?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore's anxiety to get rid of her decided the girl.
-For once she would forego the temptations of the streets.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't want to go out,' she said, shortly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But you've got to go,' said Mrs. Middlemore, resenting this
-opposition to her authority, 'or I'll bundle you out for good, neck and crop.
-Promise, like a good girl.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Shan't promise,' said Sophy, rebelliously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, dear, oh, dear,' moaned Mrs. Middlemore. 'What am I to
-do with her? And after all the nice things you said of her this morning, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you say nice things of me?' asked Sophy, of our
-reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I did, Sophy,' he replied, 'and I'm sure you will do as your
-aunt tells you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That settles it. I'll go. 'Ow long for, aunty?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'An hour. Not a minute more.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I say'--to our reporter--'you might lend us yer watch. Then
-I shouldn't make any mistake.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Get along with you,' said our reporter, laughing. 'The shops
-are full of clocks.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank yer for nothing,' said Sophy, proceeding to array
-herself. Spitting on the palm of her hand, she made a pretence of smoothing her
-hair. Then she looked at herself in a piece of looking-glass that was hanging on
-the wall, and turned her head this way and that, smirking most comically. Then
-she shook out her skirts, and looked over her shoulder to see that they hung
-becomingly. Then she tied a piece of string round one yawning boot. Then she put
-on her head something in straw that once might have been called a hat, but which
-had long since forfeited all claims to respectability. Then she fished out a
-poor little scarf, about six inches square, and pinned it round her shoulders
-with a coquettishness not devoid of grace. Her toilette completed, she asked--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will I do?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Very nicely, Sophy,' said our reporter. But although he
-spoke gayly he was stirred by a certain pity for this little waif, who was so
-conspicuously animated by a spirit to make the best of things--a spirit which
-might with advantage be emulated by her betters--and who made a joke even of her
-poverty and rags.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Much obliged,' said Sophy. 'Give us a kiss, aunty. Now I'm
-off.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And off she was, but not without saluting our reporter with
-an elaborate courtesy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore waited till she heard the street-door slam,
-and then said,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you ever see the likes of her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I declare to you, my dear madam,' said our reporter, 'that
-the more I see of Sophy the more I like her. What have the police done?
-Anything?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing, sir. I went and told 'em what 'ad 'appened, and two
-policemen came and looked at the bed, looked under it, looked in every room as
-you said they would, looked at me, and went away.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And they have not been here again?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mrs. Middlemore, may I have another peep in M. Felix's
-rooms?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Certainly, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They went up together, Mrs. Middlemore breathing heavily,
-perfuming the air with a flavor of beer. There was an escritoire in the
-sitting-room, and our reporter examined it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll tell you what I'm looking for,' he said. 'I see pens,
-ink, and paper, denoting that M. Felix was occasionally in the habit of using
-them, but there is not a scrap of paper about with his writing on it. There is
-not even a monogram on the note paper. If we could find something, it might
-furnish a clue. He received letters, I suppose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And the presumption is that he answered them. Did you ever
-post any of his letters?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Never once, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Here is a waste-paper basket; there must have been in it, at
-odd times, scraps of the letters he received and spoilt sheets of his own. Has
-your dust bin been emptied this week?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir, but you wouldn't find anything of Mr. Felix's in
-it. It was one of his orders that whatever was in the waste-paper basket should
-be burnt here in his own fireplace. I used to sweep this room in the morning
-when he was in bed, and he always said I did my work so quietly that he was
-never disturbed by any noise.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Look round the room, Mrs. Middlemore, and see if you miss
-anything. You would be pretty well acquainted with everything in it. What is the
-meaning of that gasp? You <i>do</i> miss something?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There was another desk, sir, and I don't see it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What kind of desk?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A small one, sir, that used to smell quite nice.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, made of cedar wood, no doubt. Did M. Felix keep his
-papers in this desk?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Some of his papers, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How do you know that?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I've come into the room when he's rung for me, and saw the
-desk open.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ocular proof, Mrs. Middlemore.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What sort's that, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Visible to the eye--<i>your</i> eye, my dear madam.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, dubiously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Now, Mrs. Middlemore, can you inform me whether those papers
-you saw in the missing desk were private papers?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It ain't possible for me to say, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Neither can you say, I suppose, whether M. Felix set any
-particular store upon them?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, sir, now you bring me to it, things come to my mind.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Exactly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Whenever I come into the room,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'and
-the desk was open, Mr. Felix used to shut it up quick.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Lest you should see them too closely?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm sure I shouldn't 'ave made no use of 'em; least of all,
-bad use.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is not the point. He closed the desk quickly when
-another person was by, with an evident wish to keep all possible knowledge of
-them to himself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It looks like that. You <i>do</i> push a thing close.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter accepted this as a compliment, and continued:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That appears to establish the fact that this desk--which
-probably was brought from India, Mrs. Middlemore--contained M. Felix's private
-papers?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It do, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, admiringly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And, therefore, papers of importance. The desk was inlaid
-with silver, Mrs. Middlemore.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Lor', sir!' exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore, doubtless regarding
-our reporter as a man who dealt in enchantments. 'How did you find out that?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It was, was it not?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, it was.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When M. Felix had visitors, was this desk ever allowed to
-lie carelessly about?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir. At them times he used to keep it in 'is bedroom, on
-a little table by the side of 'is bed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Let us look through the bedroom, and see if it is there.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They searched the bedroom thoroughly, without finding it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is undoubtedly gone,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It do look like it, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mrs. Middlemore, when M. Felix was found dead in his chair,
-was this desk in either of the rooms?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't see it, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You could not swear it was not here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I shouldn't like to, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The probability, however, is that it had gone when the door
-was forced open?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The police could scarcely take it away without your
-knowledge?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They'd 'ave been clever to do it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Had they done so, they would certainly have been exceeding
-their duties. Now, do not answer the questions I put to you too quickly. Were
-you in these rooms on the day before M. Felix's death?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I were, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was the desk here then?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It were; I can swear to that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You saw it with your own eyes?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I couldn't see it with no others,' replied Mrs. Middlemore,
-smirking, in approval of her small wit.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of course, you could not. Is there any particular reason why
-you are so positive of this?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, sir, Mr. Felix wanted something, and rung for me; and
-when I come into the room he was sitting at this table with the desk open before
-him, and all the papers scattered about.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That fixes it. Did he seem to be searching for, or examining
-with more than usual interest, any special document?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He seemed flustered and excited, sir. I can't say no more
-than that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He was not generally of an excitable temperament?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not at all. He was easy going, and always with a pleasant
-word.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A model man. I observe that you call him Mr. and not
-Monsieur?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't bring myself to foreign languages, sir. My tongue
-gits into a knot.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He <i>was</i> a foreigner, I suppose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I suppose so, sir. I ain't the best of judges.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A Frenchman?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So I thought, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Or an Italian?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Perhaps, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, wavering.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Or a Spaniard?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Perhaps, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, growing more undecided.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Or a Russian?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How <i>can</i> I say, sir?' said Mrs. Middlemore, now quite
-at sea as to M. Felix's nationality.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He spoke the English language well?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As well as me, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So that, after all, he might have been an Englishman?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He might,' said Mrs. Middlemore, declining to commit
-herself, 'and he mightn't.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter did not press the point, as to which Mrs.
-Middlemore had evidently disclosed all she knew.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If we could find the missing desk, Mrs. Middlemore, it might
-throw a light upon the mystery.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Again did Mrs. Middlemore decline to commit herself; again
-did she answer, 'It might, and it mightn't, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I presume there was nothing in the desk that attracted your
-attention besides the papers?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only one thing, sir--a curious sort of knife.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A paper knife, most likely.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It was more like a dagger,' said Mrs. Middlemore. 'It 'ad a
-'andle like a twisted snake, with a' open mouth and a colored stone in its eye.
-It 'ad a sharp pint, too?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How did you become aware of that? Did you ever try it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not me, sir; but once I come in when Mr. Felix 'ad it in 'is
-'and, playing with it, and all at once he dropped it like a 'ot pertater. He
-pricked 'isself with it, and there was blood on 'is 'and.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have furnished me with a valuable piece of evidence,
-Mrs. Middlemore. Papers are easily burnt, and a desk broken up and destroyed. It
-would not be so easy to get rid of that knife, which, from your description,
-must be a foreign dagger, and the identification of which would be a simple
-matter. For instance, you could swear to it, and so could I, who have never seen
-it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Anybody could swear to it, sir; it couldn't be mistook.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did M. Felix keep this dagger always in his desk?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I should say he did, sir. I never saw it laying about loose,
-and never saw it at all unless the desk was open.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you see it on the last occasion you saw the desk open, a
-few hours before M. Felix's death?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, it was among 'is papers.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have you any suspicion, Mrs. Middlemore, who at this present
-moment has possession of the desk and the dagger?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not the least, sir. 'Ave you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have. A suspicion amounting to a certainty. Have you
-forgotten the man with a red handkerchief round his neck who escaped from the
-house on the night of the eventful discovery?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm not likely to forget 'im,' said Mrs. Middlemore, and
-then added, in an excited tone, 'do you think it was 'im as took it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Him, and no other. Now we arrive at the motive of his visit;
-it was robbery. Not a vulgar robbery such as an ordinary thief would have
-committed, but one of a particular nature, and committed with a knowledge that
-M. Felix's Indian desk contained a secret or secrets of value, which no doubt he
-could turn to good account. We are getting on, Mrs. Middlemore, we are getting
-on,' said our reporter, rubbing his hands in satisfaction. 'In these affairs
-there is nothing like patience.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You're as good as a detective, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore,
-'and you've got the patience of Job. You won't mind my saying that I've thought
-lots of your questions foolish, and only put for the sake of saying something. I
-don't think so now, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank you for the compliment. I assure you I have not asked
-you one idle question. Recall to mind whether the man with the red handkerchief
-round his neck carried anything away with him that looked like a desk as he
-escaped from the house.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't believe, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, with evident
-reluctance, 'as that will ever be known.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes, it will. Answer my question.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't notice nothing,' replied Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We pause a moment here to observe that it was these reserved
-replies, when any question relating to this man was asked, as well as the
-conflicting testimony of the constables Wigg and Nightingale, that led us to the
-conclusion, already recorded, that the precise truth was not revealed as to
-which one of the three witnesses actually saw the man. Having committed
-themselves to a certain statement for the purpose of exonerating the constables
-from official blame, they could not afterward contradict themselves, because
-such a contradiction would have thrown grave doubt upon the whole of their
-evidence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He could not,' said our reporter, 'very well have carried
-away an article of this description without its being noticed by any one who saw
-him.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ain't it excusable, sir,' observed Mrs. Middlemore,
-nervously, 'when you think of the storm and the confusion we was in?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, perhaps, but it is a pity we cannot obtain definite
-information on the point. Isn't that a knock at the street door?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, making no attempt to move
-from the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You had better go down and see who it is. I will remain
-here. There is really nothing to be frightened at. It might be Sophy come back.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At this suggestion Mrs. Middlemore left the room, and went to
-the street door. Being alone, our reporter looked about him, and almost
-immediately made an important discovery. Against the wall, on the right hand
-side of the door as he entered, stood a massive sideboard, a very handsome piece
-of furniture. The lower part of this sideboard was close against the waistcoat,
-above which there was a space between the back of the sideboard and the wall of
-about an inch in width. Happening to glance at the back of the sideboard, the
-light of the candle which our reporter held in his hand fell upon something
-bright. Stooping, he drew the object out, and was excited to find it was the
-identical dagger about which he and Mrs. Middlemore had been conversing. There
-could not be the possibility of a mistake. Its handle, as Mrs. Middlemore had
-described, resembled a twisted snake; the mouth was open, and in its head was a
-ruby to represent an eye. A dangerous instrument, with a very sharp point, the
-metal of which it was composed being bright steel. But it was not the peculiar
-shape of the handle, nor the bright steel of the blade, nor the ruby eye, which
-excited our reporter. It was the fact that there was rust upon the blade, and
-that this rust was caused by blood, of which there were light stains plainly
-visible on the handle of the dagger.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_13" href="#div1Ref_13">CHAPTER XIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE REPORTER OF THE &quot;EVENING MOON&quot; GIVES SOPHY A TREAT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In the elucidation of a mystery there are facts which have to
-be slowly and laboriously built up; there are others which need no such process
-but establish themselves instantly in the analytical and well-balanced mind. Our
-reporter is gifted with such a mind, and certain facts connected with the case
-of M. Felix took instant form and order. We will set these facts before our
-readers briefly and concisely:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is necessary to premise--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;First, that M. Felix kept a loaded revolver beneath the
-pillows of his bed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Second, that when Constables Wigg and Nightingale, Mrs.
-Middlemore, and Dr. Lamb entered M. Felix's sitting-room after the door was
-forced open, the window was open.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We now proceed to the sequence of events.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Shortly before his death M. Felix, being alone in the house
-in Gerard Street, received a visitor. Whether expected or unexpected, whether
-welcome or unwelcome, we are not prepared to state; nor are we prepared to state
-how this visitor obtained entrance to the house. Obtain entrance by some means
-he undoubtedly did, and mounting the stairs, he knocked at the door of M.
-Felix's sitting-room. At the moment M. Felix heard the knock he had his Indian
-desk open before him, and it was in connection with a secret which this desk
-contained, or to which a document in the desk could afford a clue, that the
-visit was made. M. Felix, supposing that it was his housekeeper who knocked,
-opened the door and admitted the intruder. A stormy scene ensued, and M. Felix,
-throwing open his window, screamed for help. The appeal was sent forth into the
-wild night more from the fear that he was about to be robbed of this secret than
-from the fear that his life was in danger. The hypothesis is strengthened by the
-fact that there were no marks of personal violence on the body of M. Felix. The
-visitor laid hands upon the desk, and as he did so M. Felix turned from the
-window, snatched up the dagger, and hurled it with all his force at the robber.
-The sharp point struck into the flesh of the intruder, and it was his blood
-which was discovered on the floor of the room. The agitation produced by the
-scene brought on the attack of heart disease which caused M. Felix's death. The
-blind and momentary delirium which ensued did not prevent M. Felix from thinking
-of the revolver beneath his pillows; he staggered into his bedroom, but before
-he reached his bed he fell lifeless in a chair. While this was going on the
-robber had seized the desk, and, conscious that to carry away with him the
-evidence of a dagger dripping with blood might lead to his detection, he threw
-it swiftly from him behind the sideboard. He threw it with his right hand, his
-back being toward the door, which accounts for the place and position in which
-our reporter found the weapon. Then, with the desk in his possession, he escaped
-from the house--ignorant of the tragedy that had occurred, ignorant that M.
-Felix was lying dead within a few feet of him. He left the door open, but the
-fierce wind through the window blew it shut. It was while it was open that the
-cat which alarmed Mrs. Middlemore and the two constables crept into the room,
-became besmeared with blood, and crept out.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The departure of the thief was like the falling of the
-curtain upon a pregnant act in an exciting drama. Imagination follows the man as
-he flies with his stolen treasure through the deserted streets; imagination
-wanders to the dead form of M. Felix lying in the chair by the bedside. When the
-curtain rises again, what will be disclosed?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;These thoughts came to the mind of our reporter with
-lightning rapidity. Mrs. Middlemore had opened the street door, had closed it
-again, and was now ascending the stairs. What should he do with the dagger?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To retain it would be an unwarranted act, and might be
-construed into a theft. To take Mrs. Middlemore into his confidence might thwart
-his operations in the future. He put his hand behind the sideboard, and let the
-dagger fall. It was now safely hidden from sight, and its presence behind the
-sideboard could only be discovered, by any other person than himself, by the
-shifting of that piece of furniture.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore re-entered the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It was a runaway knock,' she said, 'The boys and girls take
-a pleasure in it. If I could ketch one of 'em I'd bang their head agin the
-wall.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you see no one at all?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only some people staring up at the winders,' replied Mrs.
-Middlemore. 'The 'ouse 'as become a regular show since that dreadful night. What
-do they expect to see?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Perhaps the ghost of M. Felix,' suggested our reporter,
-with, it must be confessed, a rather feeble attempt at humor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't mention sech a thing, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore,
-piteously. 'It makes my flesh creep.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I only said it in joke; there are no such things as ghosts
-and spirits.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Some people believe otherwise sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The more fools they. Well, Mrs. Middlemore, there is nothing
-more I wish to ask you just now; I must get back to my duties. But I must not
-waste your time for nothing.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He pressed into her willing palm another half-sovereign,
-making the second he had given her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm sure you're very kind, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, after
-furtively glancing at the coin, to see that it was not a sixpence. 'Shall I see
-you agin?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes. Good-night, Mrs. Middlemore.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-night, sir,' she responded, as they went down-stairs.
-'I 'ope Sophy won't be gone long.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She'll be back soon, I daresay.' He paused in the passage.
-'Mrs. Middlemore, are you satisfied that I am your friend?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, I am.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then, if anything new occurs, you will let me know at once.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And if it should happen,' said our reporter, 'that you
-remember anything you have forgotten to tell me, you will come and let me know
-it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll be sure to, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wishing her good-night again, he left the house, and heard
-her close the street door behind him with a bang.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not without a motive that our reporter had addressed
-his last words to her. He had an idea that she had not been quite frank with him
-respecting M. Felix's visitors feeling assured that she could not be so entirely
-in the dark regarding them as she professed to be. His visit had not been
-fruitless; he had become acquainted with the loss of the desk, and he had
-discovered the dagger with its curiously shaped handle. Two steps advanced in
-the mystery, which might lead to something of importance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He walked slowly on, revolving these matters in his mind, and
-debating whether he could make any present use of them when his coat was plucked
-by a small hand. Looking down, he saw Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, Sophy,' he said, 'what do you want?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I've been waiting for yer,' said Sophy. 'I've got somethink
-to tell.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good. Where shall we talk?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy's reply was a strange one. 'I know,' she said, where
-they sells fried fish and fried 'taters.' She smacked her lips.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You would like some?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Wouldn't I? Jest?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Lead the way, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You're a brick, old 'un, that's what you are.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She walked close to him, rubbing against him after the
-fashion of a friendly cat, and conducted him toward the purlieus of Drury Lane.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You're going to stand treat, ain't yer?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, Sophy, to as many fried potatoes and as much fried fish
-as you can comfortably tuck away.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No gammon, yer know?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I mean what I say, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then there's stooed eels?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All right; you shall have some.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't say afterwards as I took you in. My inside's made of
-injer rubber. The more I puts in it the more it stretches.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't mind, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You're somethink like a gent. I say, was aunty riled at the
-runaway knock?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, it was you, was it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, it was me; I was gitting tired of waiting for yer.
-She's close, ain't she?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Who? Your aunt?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes; but I'm closer, I am. I could tell 'er somethink as 'd
-make 'er 'air stand on end.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you are going to tell it to me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Per'aps. If yer make it wuth my while.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You shall have no reason to complain, Sophy. Is it about M.
-Felix?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You wait till I've 'ad my tuck out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Burning as he was with curiosity, our reporter wisely
-restrained his impatience. They had now arrived at the fried-potato shop, and
-Sophy stood before the open window with eager eyes. The potatoes were frizzling
-in the pan, and were being served out hot by a greasy Italian. His customers
-were of the very poorest sort, and most of them received the smoking hot
-potatoes in the street, and went away to eat them. You could purchase a
-half-penny's worth or a penny's worth the paper bags in which they were
-delivered being of different sizes. On the open slab in the window were pieces
-of fried plaice, tails, heads, and middles, the price varying according to the
-size. A few aristocratic customers were inside the shop, sitting upon narrow
-wooden benches, and eating away with an air of great enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't they smell prime?' whispered Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter assented, although the odor of fat which floated
-from the pan left, to the fastidious taste, something to be desired.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will you eat your supper outside or in, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Inside, old 'un,' said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They went into the shop and took their seats. There were no
-plates or knives or forks, but there was a plentiful supply of salt and pepper.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can you manage without a plate?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With her superior knowledge of the ways of this free-and-easy
-restaurant, Sophy replied, 'Plates be blowed!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But you will certainly want a knife.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No I shan't,' said Sophy, 'fingers was made before knives.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With two large middle slices of fried fish and a penny's
-worth of fried potatoes spread upon a piece of newspaper before her, Sophy fell
-to with a voracious appetite. In his position of host our reporter was compelled
-to make a sacrifice, and he therefore toyed with a small heap of fried potatoes,
-and put a piece occasionally into his mouth. His critical report is that they
-were not at all bad food; it was the overpowering smell of fat that discouraged
-this martyr to duty.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I say,' said Sophy, 'ain't yer going to 'ave some fried
-fish? Do 'ave some! You don't know 'ow good it is.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am eating only out of politeness, Sophy,' said our
-reporter, watching the child with wonder; she had disposed of her first batch
-and was now busy upon a second supply. 'I have not long had my dinner.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ain't we proud?' observed the happy girl. '<i>I</i> like <i>
-my</i> dinner--when I can git it, old 'un--in the middle of the day, not in the
-middle of the night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You eat as if you were hungry, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm allus 'ungry. You try and ketch me when I ain't!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Doesn't your aunt give you enough?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She 'lowances me, and ses I mustn't over-eat myself. As if I
-could! I ses to 'er sometimes, &quot;Give me a chance, aunt!&quot; I ses; and she ups and
-ses she knows wot's good for me better than I do myself, and all the while she's
-eating and drinking till she's fit to bust. She's fond of her innards, is aunt.
-Never mind, it'll be my turn one day, you see if it won't. There, I'm done. Oh,
-don't you stare! I could eat a lot more, but there's stooed eels to come, I <i>
-do</i> like stooed eels, I do!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter had no reason to complain of Sophy's
-extravagance; though she had disposed of four slices of fried fish and two
-helpings of fried potatoes, his disbursement amounted to no more than tenpence
-half-penny. Upon leaving the shop Sophy again assumed the command, and conducted
-our reporter to the stewed-eel establishment, where she disposed of three
-portions, which the proprietor ladled out in very thick basins. The host of this
-magnificent entertainment was somewhat comforted to find that although fingers
-were made before knives (and presumably, therefore, before spoons), Sophy was
-provided with a very substantial iron spoon to eat her succulent food with. As
-in the fried-potato establishment there was a plentiful supply of salt and
-pepper, so here there was a plentiful supply of pepper and vinegar, of which
-Sophy liberally availed herself. At the end of her third basin Sophy raised her
-eyes heavenward and sighed ecstatically.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have you had enough?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Enough for once,' replied Sophy, with a prudent eye to the
-future. 'I wouldn't call the Queen my aunt.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter did not ask why, Sophy's tone convincing him
-that the observation was intended to express a state of infinite content, and
-had no reference whatever to Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Now, Sophy,' he said, 'are you ready to tell me all you
-know?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'll tell yer a lot,' said Sophy, and if you ain't
-sapparized--well, there!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another colloquialism, which our reporter perfectly
-understood.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What will your aunt say?' he asked--they had left the shop,
-and were walking side by side--'to your coming home late?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Wot she likes,' replied Sophy, with a disdainful disregard
-of consequences. 'If she don't like it she may lump it. Don't frighten yerself;
-she's used to it by this time. Where are you going to take me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter had settled this in his mind. 'To my rooms,
-where we can talk without interruption.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, but I say,' exclaimed Sophy, 'won't they stare!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There will be no one to do that, Sophy, and you will be
-quite safe.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy nodded, and kept step with him as well as she could. It
-was not easy, by reason of her boots being odd, and not only too large for her
-feet, but in a woful state of dilapidation. In one of the narrow streets through
-which they passed, a second-hand clothing shop was open, in the window of which
-were displayed some half-dozen pairs of children's boots. A good idea occurred
-to him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your boots are worn out, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There's 'ardly any sole to 'em,' remarked Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Would a pair of those fit you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, come along. I don't want to be made game of.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am not doing so, Sophy,' said our reporter, slipping three
-half-crowns into her hand. 'Go in, and buy the nicest pair you can; and mind
-they fit you properly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy raised her eyes to his face, and our reporter observed,
-without making any remark thereon, that they were quite pretty eyes, large, and
-of a beautiful shade of brown, and now with a soft light in them. She went into
-the shop silently, and returned, radiant and grateful, shod as a human being
-ought to be.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do yer like 'em?' she asked, putting one foot on the ledge
-of the shop window.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They look very nice,' he said. 'I hope they're a good fit?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They're proper. 'Ere's yer change, and I'm ever so much
-obliged to yer.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The words were commonplace, but her voice was not. There was
-in it a note of tearful gratefulness which was abundant payment for an act of
-simple kindness. Utilitarians and political economists may smile at our
-statement that we owe the poor a great deal, and that but for them we should not
-enjoy some of the sweetest emotions by which the human heart can be stirred.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_14" href="#div1Ref_14">CHAPTER XIV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>SOPHY IMPARTS STRANGE NEWS TO THE REPORTER OF THE &quot;EVENING MOON.&quot;</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The chambers occupied by our reporter are situated at the
-extreme river end of one of the streets leading from the Strand to the
-Embankment. They are at the top of the house, on the third floor, and a
-capacious bow-window in his sitting-room affords a good view of the river and
-the Embankment gardens. He describes his chambers as an ideal residence, and
-declares he would not exchange it for a palace. In daytime the view from his
-bow-window is varied and animated, in night-time the lights and shadows on the
-Thames are replete with suggestion. From this window he has drawn the
-inspiration for many admirable articles which have appeared in our columns, in
-which his play of fancy illumines his depiction of a busy city's life.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He let himself in with his latch-key, and Sophy followed
-close on his heels up the silent stairs. On the third floor another latch-key
-admitted them to the privacy of his chambers.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It will be dark for a moment, Sophy,' he said; 'you are not
-frightened, I hope?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not a bit,' replied Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It may not be unworthy of remark that she never again
-addressed him as 'old 'un, which he ascribed to the little incident of the
-purchase of the pair of boots. It had raised him to an altitude which rendered
-so familiar an appellation out of place.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In less than a minute he had lit the gas in his sitting-room,
-and Sophy stood gazing around in wonder and delight. Our reporter is a gentleman
-of taste, no mere grub working from hand to mouth. He entered the ranks of
-journalism from choice, and possesses a private income which renders him
-independent of it; thus he is enabled to surround himself with luxuries which
-are out of the reach of the ordinary rank and file of his brother workers, who
-one and all have a good word for him because of the kindnesses they have on
-numerous occasions received at his hands.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy looked round on the books and pictures and valuable
-objects with which the room was literally packed, and her appreciation--little
-as she understood them--was expressed in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This is my den, Sophy,' said our reporter. 'What do you
-think of it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As he spoke he applied a lighted match to a couple of
-bachelor's wheels in the stove, and in an instant a cheerful fire was glowing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, I never!' exclaimed Sophy. 'It's magic.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, Sophy, sober fact. Single life nowadays is filled with
-innumerable conveniences to keep a fellow from the path of matrimony. This
-little bachelor's wheel'--holding one up--'is a formidable foe to anxious mammas
-with marriageable daughters. But I am talking above you, Sophy; pardon the
-flight. Go to the window there; you will see the river from it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He stood by her side while she gazed upon the wonderful
-sight, too little appreciated by those who are familiar with it. The moon was
-shining brightly, and the heavens were dotted with stars; long lines of lights
-were shining in the water, animated as it were with a mysterious spiritual life
-by the shifting currents of the river. It was at this moment that Sophy gave
-expression to a remarkable effort at grammar.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I say, 'ow 'igh the Thames are!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter was amused, and did not correct her. 'Yes,
-Sophy, the river has reached an unusual height. And now, little one, as time is
-flying, let us proceed to business.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy, brought down to earth, retired from the window, and
-stood by the table, at which our reporter seated himself. He could not prevail
-upon her to take a chair.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can talk better standing,' she said. 'Before I tell what I
-got to tell, I'd like to know wot aunt said of me when you and 'er was up in Mr.
-Felix's rooms this morning. You know. When I'd jest got out of bed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing very particular, Sophy,' said our reporter, 'except
-that you were a sound sleeper.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You arksed 'er that?' said Sophy, shrewdly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, You see, Sophy, I was naturally anxious to learn all I
-could of the strange disappearance of M. Felix's body. It was there last night
-when you and your aunt went to bed; it was not there this morning when you got
-up.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Aunt couldn't tell yer much.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She could tell me nothing. She went to bed, and though she
-has passed bad nights this week----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, she sed that, did she?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Meaning that she don't sleep much?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, that undoubtedly was her meaning.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, go on, please,' said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Though she has passed bad nights lately, it was a fact that
-last night she slept very soundly. Then the idea occurred to me to come down and
-ask you whether you had heard anything in the night--because, you know, Sophy,
-that M. Felix's body could not have disappeared from the house without some
-sound being made. We do not live in an age of miracles. The body could not have
-flown up the chimney, or made its way through thick walls. There is only one way
-it could have been got out, and that was through the street door.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Right you are,' said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Now, Sophy, I am sure you are a sensible little girl, and
-that I can open my mind freely to you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You can that. I ain't much to look at, but I ain't quite a
-fool neither.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am certain you are not. I cannot tell you how deeply I am
-interested in this mysterious affair, and how much I desire to get at the bottom
-of it. Whoever assists me to do this will not repent it, and somehow or other I
-have an idea that you can help me. If you can, I will be a real good friend to
-you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've been that already, the best I ever sor. I took you in
-once this morning, and I ain't going to do it agin.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How did you take me in, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I told yer I didn't wake up last night, didn't I?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You did, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And that I didn't 'ear no noise?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They was crammers. I did wake up in the middle of the night,
-and I did 'ear a noise.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sophy,' said our reporter, repressing his excitement as well
-as he could, 'I feel that you are going to do me a good turn.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Aunt's a awful liar,' said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is she?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She ses she sleeps light, and I sleep sound. It's all the
-other way. She goes to bed and drops off like the snuff of a candle, and she
-snores like a pig. I sleep on and off like. I don't let aunt know it, 'cause I
-don't want to be rushed out of bed till I've a mind to git up, so I pretend to
-be fast asleep, and I let her shake me as much as she likes. I do not lay
-snuggled up; and I was laying like that last night all the while aunt was
-snoring fit to shake the 'ouse down, when I 'eerd wot sounded like somethink
-movin' upstairs. I wasn't scared--yer don't know Sophy if yer think that. &quot;I'll
-see what it is,&quot; thinks I, &quot;if I die for it.&quot; So I creeps out of bed, and stands
-quiet a bit in the dark, without moving.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are a brave little girl, Sophy, and I am proud of you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I stands listening and wondering, and the sound of somethink
-moving upstairs goes on. Moving quite soft, sir, jest as if it didn't want to be
-'eerd. &quot;Blowed if I don't go up,&quot; thinks I, &quot;and find out wot it's all about.&quot; I
-wouldn't light a candle, 'cause that might wake aunt, and I wanted to 'ave it
-all to myself. Well, sir, I creeps to the door in my bare feet and opens it, and
-goes into the passage. Sure enough, I ain't deceived; there is somethink on the
-stairs. Up I creeps, as soft as a cat, feeling my way by the bannisters, till I
-git to the passage that leads to the street-door. Then somethink 'appens to me
-that upsets the applecart. I ketches my toe agin a nail, and I screams out. But
-that's nothink to what follers. A 'and claps itself on my mouth, and somebody
-ses, &quot;If yer move or speak out loud I'll kill yer!&quot; If I sed I wasn't frightened
-at that I'd be telling yer the biggest crammer of the lot, but I pulls myself
-together, and I whispers under my breath, &quot;Wot is it? Burgulers?&quot; &quot;Yes,&quot; ses the
-voice, &quot;burgulers, as'll 'ave yer blood if yer don't do as yer told.&quot; &quot;I'll do
-everythink yer want,&quot; I ses, &quot;if yer don't 'urt me. My blood won't do yer a bit
-o' good; it ain't much good to me as I knows on. Is there more than one of yer?&quot;
-&quot;There's a band of us,&quot; ses the voice. &quot;Who's downstairs?&quot; &quot;Only aunt,&quot; I ses.
-&quot;Ain't there nobody else in the 'ouse?&quot; arsks the voice. &quot;Not a blessed soul,&quot;
-ses I, &quot;excep' the corpse on the fust floor.&quot; &quot;Take yer oath on it,&quot; ses the
-voice. &quot;I 'ope I may never move from this spot alive,&quot; ses I, &quot;if it ain't the
-truth I'm telling of yer!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now jest listen to me,&quot; ses the voice. &quot;You do as yer told,
-or you'll be chopped into ten thousan' little bits. Set down on the stairs
-there, and shut yer eyes, and don't move or speak till you 'ear a whistle; it
-won't be a loud 'un, but loud enough for you to 'ear. Then you git up, and shut
-the street-door softly--you'll find it open--and lock it and put up the chain.
-Then go downstairs without speaking a word, and if yer aunt's awake and arsks
-yer wot's the matter, say nothink; if she's asleep, don't wake her. When she
-gits up in the morning don't say nothink to 'er, and don't answer no questions
-about us. You understand all that?&quot; &quot;Every word on it,&quot; I ses. &quot;And yer'll do as
-yer ordered?&quot; ses the voice. &quot;Yes, I will,&quot; I ses. &quot;Mind yer do,&quot; ses the voice,
-&quot;or somethink orful 'll 'appen to yer. You'll be watched the 'ole day long, and
-if yer let on, look out for yerself. Now set yerself down on the stairs.&quot; I did,
-sir, and though I was froze almost to a stone, I never moved or spoke. It was
-that dark that I couldn't see a inch before my nose, even when I opened my eyes
-slyly, but I couldn't 'elp 'earing wot was going on. There was a creeping, and a
-bumping, and the sound of the street-door being unlocked and the chain being
-took down. Then everythink was quiet agin inside, and all I 'eerd was a
-policeman in the street outside, trying the doors as he passed on. When he'd got
-well out of the street, as near as I could tell, the street-door was opened
-without as much as a creak, and in another minute I 'eerd a low whistle. Then I
-got up; it was all a job, sir, 'cause I was cramped, but I managed it, and I
-crep' to the street-door, and shut it, and locked it, and put the chain up. I
-was glad enough to do it, I can tell yer, and I felt my way downstairs and got
-into bed. Aunt 'adn't as much as moved, and nobody knew nothink but me and the
-burgulers. That's all I know about last night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was enough, in all conscience; a strange story indeed, and
-related by such a common little waif as Sophy. Our reporter had not interrupted
-her once, but allowed her to proceed, in her own quaint and original way, to the
-end.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you have told nobody but me, Sophy?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It ain't crossed my lips till this minute,' replied Sophy.
-'I don't know wot I might 'ave done if I 'adn't seed you this morning. You spoke
-civil and nice to me, and I took to yer in a minute. Yer might 'ave knocked me
-down with a feather when I 'eered arter you'd gone wot the burgulers' little
-game was, and it come to me in a jiffy that you'd like to know wot 'ad become of
-Mr. Felix's body. &quot;I'll wait till I see 'im agin,&quot; ses I to myself, &quot;and then
-I'll tell 'im all about it.&quot; If you 'adn't come to aunt's to-night I should 'ave
-come to you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am infinitely obliged to you,' said our reporter, 'We'll
-keep the matter to ourselves at present, and if there's any reward offered for
-the recovery of the body, or for any information that may lead to its recovery,
-it shall be yours, Sophy, every farthing of it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy's eyes glistened as she said, 'If they arsks me, then,
-why I adn't spoke before, I'll tell 'em I was too frightened by wot the burguler
-sed he'd do to me if I sed anythink about it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That excuse will do nicely. Did you hear the sound of many
-feet?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I think it was only one man as was moving about,' replied
-Sophy, after a little consideration.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How do we account, then, for there being more than one man
-concerned in this singular robbery?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Per'aps there wasn't more than one,' suggested Sophy
-quickly, 'and in course he 'ad to carry the body. It couldn't walk of itself,
-being dead.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Quite so, my young logician--a compliment Sophy. Before you
-put up the chain, did you look out into the street?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I didn't dare to.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then you don't know if there was a cab or a cart waiting at
-the door?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you hear the sound of wheels moving away after the door
-was secured?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, I didn't. Everythink was as still as still can be,
-inside and out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There must have been a vehicle of some sort, however,
-stationed near. A man couldn't carry a dead body through the streets very far
-without being caught. Perhaps he would not allow it to stand too near your
-aunt's house for fear of suspicion being excited. The natural conclusion is that
-a growler was engaged, and that it walked slowly to and fro in a given direction
-till he came up to it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That must 'ave been it, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If I give you five shillings, Sophy, can you take care of
-it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Rather! But you've done enough for me to-night, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not half enough, my girl. Here's the money.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;From the expression on Sophy's face she would have liked to
-resist the temptation, but it was too strong for her, so she took the two
-half-crowns, saying gleefully as she tied them in her money-box, I shall soon
-'ave enough to buy wot I want.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What is it you desire so particularly, Sophy? A new frock?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' she replied. 'I want a pair of tights.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In heaven's name, what for?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'To see 'ow I look in 'em.' Sophy glanced down at her legs,
-then stood straight up and walked a few steps this way and a few steps that, in
-glowing anticipation of the delights in store for her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You would like to be an actress, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Wouldn't I? Jest! I can do a lot of steps, sir. Would you
-like to see me dance?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not to-night, Sophy,' said our reporter, thinking of the
-proprieties; 'I haven't time, and you had best get back as quick as you can to
-your aunt. I'll see you part of the way. I don't know what excuse you will give
-her for being absent so long.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Let me alone for that. It ain't the fust time, and won't be
-the last.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, come along, my girl.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They left the house without being observed, and our reporter
-saw Sophy as far as St. Martin's Lane, and then bade her good night. Before
-returning to his chambers he walked in the direction of the Embankment with the
-intention of taking a stroll there. It was a favorite promenade of his on fine
-nights, and on this night in particular he desired it, in order that he might
-think in the quietude of that grand avenue of the information he had gained.
-Elated as he was at the progress he was making in the elucidation of the
-mystery, he could not but be conscious that every new discovery he had made
-seemed to add to its difficulty. What he wanted now was a tangible clew, however
-slight, which he could follow up in a practical way. Little did he dream that
-everything was working in his favor, and that time and circumstance were leading
-him to the clew he was so anxious to possess.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There was one thing in the story related to him by Sophy
-which greatly perplexed him. The child could not have assisted him to a
-satisfactory solution, for he was satisfied that she had disclosed all she knew
-of the events of the night, and he therefore had made no mention to her of the
-perplexing point. It was this. Sophy had told him that while she was sitting on
-the stairs with her eyes closed she heard the man unlock the street door and
-take the chain down. That being so, the question remained--how had he got into
-the house? Scarcely through the street door, for it was hardly likely that,
-having got in through it, he would have locked it and put the chain up, and thus
-created for himself a serious obstacle to his escape in the event of his being
-discovered before he had accomplished his work. Our reporter could think of no
-satisfactory answer to this question, and it had to take its place among other
-questions to which, in the present aspect of the case, no answers could be
-found.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He had turned on to the Embankment by way of Westminster
-Bridge, and passing under the arch of the Charing Cross Railway bridge, was
-proceeding onward toward Waterloo when he saw something that caused him to
-quicken his steps in its direction. Fate or chance was about to place in his
-hands the link for which he was yearning--a link but for which the mystery of M.
-Felix might forever have remained unravelled.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_15" href="#div1Ref_15">CHAPTER XV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A SINGULAR ADVENTURE ON THE THAMES EMBANKMENT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He saw before him, at a distance of some thirty yards, as
-nearly as he could judge, the figure of a woman standing upon the stone ramparts
-of the Embankment, close to Cleopatra's Needle. The light of a lamp was shining
-upon her form, which was stooping forward in the direction of the river.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It had already been mentioned that the tide on this night was
-unusually high, and our reporter was apprehensive, from the position of the
-woman, that she was contemplating suicide. If so she had chosen a favorable
-moment to put her sad design into execution, for there was no person near enough
-to prevent her had she been expeditious. She looked neither to the right nor to
-the left, but down before her on the rolling river. Our reporter hastened his
-steps, in fear least he should be too late to arrest her purpose.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Unseen by them another man was approaching the woman, but not
-so rapidly as our reporter. This was a policeman who had emerged from the
-shadows of the Waterloo steps on the opposite side, and as, when he started, he
-was nearer to her than our reporter, they both reached her at the same moment.
-Each becoming aware of the other's presence, they would have shown recognition
-of it had not their attention been diverted by a sufficiently startling
-proceeding on the part of the woman. Still unaware that there were witnesses of
-her movements, she leaned forward at a perilous angle, and with all her strength
-threw some heavy object into the water. The force she used destroyed her
-balance, and she would have fallen into the river had not the policeman and our
-reporter laid violent hands upon her, and dragged her from her dangerous
-position on the ramparts.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Just in time, thank God!' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Just too late,' retorted the policeman. 'A moment sooner,
-and we should have saved her baby.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Her baby!' exclaimed our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes. Didn't you hear the poor thing give a scream?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You must be hard of hearing. First a sob, then a scream.
-Now, then, own up!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He shook the woman roughly, but obtained no response from
-her. She was cowering to the flagstones, her face hidden in her hands.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter is not the stamp of man to stand idly by while
-the life of a human being is in danger. He stripped off his coat and waistcoat
-with the speed of lightning.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That's your sort,' said the policeman. 'I can't swim; you
-can.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not a stroke,' said our reporter, and was about to plunge
-into the river when the woman sprang up and caught his arm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'For God's sake,' she said, trembling with agitation, 'do not
-risk your life for nothing.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your baby is drowning,' cried our reporter. 'Let me go!' He
-strove vainly to extricate himself from her clutch.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You shall not, you shall not!' said the woman. 'As Heaven is
-my judge, I have done no wrong. I have no baby; I came out alone. You are a
-gentleman. By all that is sacred I speak the truth!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The policeman says he heard a scream.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He is mistaken. I beg you to believe me. Oh, unhappy woman
-that I am? Have I not one friend in all the wide world?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not alone her words that carried conviction with them,
-it was her deep distress, and the evident sincerity with which she spoke.
-Moreover, now that our reporter had the opportunity of observing her closely, he
-saw that she was not of a common stamp. There was a refinement in her voice and
-manner which impressed him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I believe you,' he said, and slowly put on his waistcoat and
-coat.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The chance is lost,' said the policeman, with a scornful
-smile; 'the poor thing is dead by this time. A put-up job, my man. I wasn't born
-yesterday.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He had noted the dialogue between the woman and our reporter,
-some portion of which had escaped him, and his suspicions were aroused. He was
-not entirely without justification. Seeing upon one side of her a policeman, and
-on the other side a gentleman, the woman, being undoubtedly of the better class,
-had gravitated naturally toward our reporter. Thus at once was established,
-without premeditation, a conflict of interests in the eyes of the policeman. He
-represented the Law, which is invariably more suspicious than sympathetic.
-Opposing him were two strangers who might be in collusion. Hunting in couples,
-one of either sex, was a common trick of the criminal classes, with which every
-policeman is familiar. The officer with whom we are dealing was not of an
-analytic turn; he jumped rather at conclusions than motives; therefore, he
-pronounced the verdict first and examined the evidence afterward, or left it to
-others to examine. All that he was honestly concerned in was the performance of
-his duty.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you not hear her say,' said our reporter, 'that she was
-alone, and no baby with her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I heard something of the sort,' replied the policeman,
-candidly, believing it is another matter. 'I believe in my own ears. Are you a
-confederate of hers?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter laughed, and his laugh strengthened the
-policeman's suspicions and excited his ire.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Perhaps you will both deny,' he said, 'that something was
-thrown into the river.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I certainly heard a splash,' said our reporter, and he
-looked at the woman for confirmation, but she said nothing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We'll fish it up, whatever it is,' said the policeman. 'If
-it isn't a baby--which I say it is, as I heard it cry--it's stolen property.
-Pretty nigh as bad.' So saying, he blew his whistle.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The sound terrified the woman; she clung to our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What need is there to summon assistance?' asked our
-reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I know what I'm up to,' replied the policeman. 'I'll trouble
-you to come to the police station.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I intend to do so. Are you going to charge this lady?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A grateful sob escaped the woman, produced by the reference
-to her as a lady no less than by the considerate tone in which it was made.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If you're particularly anxious to know,' said the policeman,
-'I am going to charge you both.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Much amused, our reporter asked, 'What do you charge her
-with?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'First, with drowning her baby; next, with attempting to
-commit suicide.' He paused in the middle of the sentence to blow his whistle
-again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And what is your charge against me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Aiding and abetting. Come,' he said to the woman, putting
-his hand under her chin and attempting to raise her face to the light, 'let me
-have a look at you. A hundred to one I've seen you before.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He was so rough that the woman cried out.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Be very careful,' said our reporter, in a warning tone. 'If
-you use violence it will go against you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It will go against you,' retorted the policeman, who was
-losing his discretion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is to be seen,' said our reporter, gravely, 'when we
-reach the police-station. Meanwhile, you are acting outside your right in
-compelling this lady to look you in the face.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Very well,' said the policeman, surlily, beginning to be
-shaken by the temperate conduct of our reporter, 'I hear assistance coming; I'll
-wait.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The measured tread of another policeman was heard in the near
-distance. Our reporter stood still, perfectly calm and self-possessed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The woman, now sobbing bitterly, drew her handkerchief from
-her pocket, and a piece of paper, which she undesignedly and unwittingly drew
-forth with it, fluttered to the ground. Only the sharp eyes of our reporter saw
-it, and he stooped and picked it up. He glanced at it without attracting the
-attention of the policeman, and what he saw both greatly astonished him and
-influenced his future course with respect to the woman. He felt instinctively
-that he held in his hand a thread, however slight and slender, in the Mystery of
-Monsieur Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our readers will remember that in certain editions of the <i>
-Evening Moon</i> we inserted an advertisement referring to the death of M.
-Felix, but lest the precise terms of that advertisement should be forgotten by
-them we reprint it here, to refresh their memory. The advertisement ran as
-follows:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The Strange Death of M. Felix, in Gerard Street, Soho.
-Persons who had private or other interviews with M. Felix between the hours of
-eight in the morning and twelve at night on the 16th of January, or who are in
-possession of information which will throw light upon the circumstances
-surrounding his death, are urgently requested to call at the office of the <i>
-Evening Moon</i>, at any time after the appearance of this advertisement.
-Liberal rewards will be paid to all who give such information, and the best
-legal assistance is offered by the proprietors of this journal, entirely at
-their own expense, to all, who may desire it and who are in any way interested
-in M. Felix's death.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Up to the present time the advertisement had been productive
-of no result of any value. A great many persons had called at our office
-respecting it, but they knew nothing that was likely to be of assistance to us;
-their aim was to obtain money without giving an equivalent for it. That the step
-we took, however, was not useless was proved by what our reporter now held in
-his hand. It was the advertisement, cut carefully from our journal, pasted upon
-a sheet of note-paper, and framed, as it were, in clear lines of red ink. Surely
-it was not without reason that the woman had been thus painstaking with this
-extract. Surely there must be some connecting link between her and M. Felix,
-whose death and subsequent disappearance were still enveloped in mystery. Thus
-thought our reporter the moment his eyes fell upon the advertisement.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The approach of the second policeman afforded him an
-opportunity of speaking to her concerning it. While the two policemen were
-talking, the second asking for information, the first giving it, he exchanged a
-few words with the woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have dropped something,' he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She put her hand hastily in her pocket and discovered her
-loss.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have it,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is only a piece of paper,' said the woman; 'give it back
-to me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You had better let me keep it,' he said. 'You will be
-charged and searched at the police-station----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She interrupted him, saying, in a pitiful voice, 'Will they
-not let me go--oh will they not let me go?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They will not,' replied our reporter, 'and they are not to
-be blamed. They are merely doing their duty. You have acted in a way which
-throws suspicion upon you----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have done nothing wrong,' she said, interrupting him
-again; and that she regarded him as being well disposed toward her was proved by
-her speaking in a low tone, notwithstanding her anguish of mind, 'indeed, indeed
-I have not!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I believe you; they will not. I will not ask you what you
-have done; if you confide in me it must be of your own free will; but you may
-truly believe that I am desirous and willing to be your friend, your sincere and
-earnest friend. Something more; I may be able to assist you in a manner you
-little dream of. The paper you have dropped is an advertisement from the <i>
-Evening Moon</i>, referring to the death of M. Felix.' She shivered at the name,
-raised her eyes, and dropped them again. This gave him an opportunity of
-observing that they were of a peculiar and beautiful tinge of blue, and the soft
-pathetic light they shed touched him deeply. 'Be patient a moment,' he
-continued; 'I must have a little private talk with you before we get to the
-police station, and I think I can manage it.' He had seen and recognized the
-face of the second policeman, who now, as he came forward, greeted him
-respectfully. 'Your comrade here,' said our reporter, jocosely, 'believes that I
-am engaged in some unlawful conspiracy. You know who I am. Set his mind at
-rest.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It happened fortunately that this second policeman and our
-reporter were old acquaintances, and had spent many an hour together in the
-still watches of the night. A few words whispered in the ear of the first
-policeman settled his doubts.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I beg your pardon, sir,' he said, apologetically, 'but
-mistakes will happen in the best regulated families.' A remark which denoted
-that the worthy and zealous officer was not deficient in a sense of humor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A mistake has happened here,' said our reporter. 'I presume
-that you do not now intend to charge me with aiding and abetting.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not a bit of it, sir. It was only my joke.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have a queer way of airing your jokes, but I cannot
-reasonably complain; you had grounds for suspicion. And now about this lady.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't ask me to neglect my duty, sir. I must take her to the
-station.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She denies that she has done anything wrong.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They all do that, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do you persist in your charges against her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, sir, about the baby I won't be sure now; it's as
-likely as not I was mistaken in thinking I heard it scream; but we'll try to
-prove the rights of the thing. I don't give way, sir, in my belief that she
-attempted to commit suicide.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am a properly qualified solicitor,' said our reporter,
-'and I shall appear for her, and shall also offer myself as an eye-witness of
-the affair. I shall support her in her statement that she had no intention of
-committing suicide.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't help that, sir,' said the policeman, with respectful
-pertinacity, 'I can only report what I saw, and I must do my duty. She nearly
-fell into the river; I hope you won't deny that, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will not deny it. You are speaking now quite fairly and
-temperately, and I hope to bring you round to my view.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'To let her off, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't do it, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But listen to reason. She accidentally lost her balance----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And,' interposed the policeman, 'would have fallen in had it
-not been for us.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That does not establish a charge of an attempt at suicide.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It must be looked into, sir,' said the policeman, stiffly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It seems to me,' said the second policeman, 'that it all
-depends upon what it was she threw into the river.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Without asking permission our reporter stepped aside with the
-woman, and spoke privately to her. She had listened to the conversation in an
-agonized state of mind, turning her eyes alternately to her accuser and her
-defender with the air of one who was being hunted down. Helpless, despairing
-innocence was depicted in her face, and the favorable impression she had
-produced upon our reporter was strengthened. Had she not in his belief been
-connected in a manner yet to be explained with the Mystery of M. Felix he would
-have been inclined to champion her cause, and because of this belief he would
-have ranked himself on her side even if he had supposed that the charges brought
-against her were true. Without a shade of doubt she was a lady; her attire,
-although it bore no indications of worldly prosperity, her manners, her speech,
-unmistakably proclaimed the fact. She was apparently a little over forty years
-of age, and there were traces of long-endured suffering on her features. In her
-youth she must have possessed remarkable beauty, which even now could not fail
-in attracting attention; her figure was slight and graceful, her movements
-gentle and refined. These signs rendered her appearance at such an hour and
-under such circumstances sufficiently perplexing, but our reporter was satisfied
-to trust to the future for a satisfactory explanation of what at present, to a
-vulgar mind, was full of suspicion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In stating that he was a properly qualified solicitor our
-reporter stated a simple fact. He had served articles in a solicitor's office,
-and had abandoned that profession for one which possessed greater attractions
-for him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It occurred to him to test her, and he addressed her in
-French. She replied to him in the same language, but with an accent which put
-his to the blush. We shall, however, give what passed between them in our native
-tongue, for the sake of perfect clearness, and in the interests of those of our
-readers who may not be familiar with any other language than their own.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have not deceived me?' he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Indeed, indeed, I have not,' she replied, earnestly. 'I have
-spoken the truth. You will not desert me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will not. You may count upon me as a sincere friend; but
-you must confide in me implicitly. I will serve you honestly and faithfully. You
-have met with misfortunes?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Great misfortunes. I am a most unhappy woman!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have you any other friends in London in whom you would
-confide in preference to me? If you have and will give me their names and
-addresses, I will bring them to you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have no other friend in this city in whom I can confide.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not one who can assist you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Are you quite unknown here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But surely you are not entirely alone?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She made an effort to speak, but words failed her; she raised
-her imploring eyes to his face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Strive to master your agitation,' he continued, 'and bend
-your mind upon the position in which you stand. You heard what the policeman
-said?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will you tell them what it was you threw into the river?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I cannot tell them. It might injure--it might ruin me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was it property of your own?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It was.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'To which no person but yourself has a claim?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It was my own; no person but myself has a claim to it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The loss or recovery of which would injure no one?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No one but myself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Now, consider. You will be taken to the police station and
-charged.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But they will let me go until to-morrow?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They will not. If I, a stranger to you, offered bail, it
-would not be accepted. You will be locked up till the morning.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'My God!' cried the woman. 'What will become of her--oh, what
-will become of her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of her? Then you are not entirely alone in this city?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have a daughter,' she said, in a low, despairing tone.
-'She will be distracted if I do not return to her to-night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As I have explained to you, that is out of the question. If
-you are not unwilling, I will go to her and explain matters.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, no!' cried the woman. 'She must not know the truth! What
-have I done that this misfortune should fall upon me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I feel deeply for you. If I knew how I could inspire you
-with confidence in me I should be glad. Look at me and say whether you cannot
-trust implicitly in me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They gazed at each other in silence for many moments. The
-policemen, standing apart, did not interrupt them, and as they spoke in French,
-could not have understood if they had heard what was passing. The woman put out
-her hand timidly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will trust you,' she said. 'It may be that the good Lord
-has sent me a friend when I most needed one. By the memory of all that is
-dearest to you, do not betray me!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I swear solemnly that I will not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The pressure of her hand seemed to instil faith in her. All
-the earnestness of her soul was expressed in the words she now spoke.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I give into your charge what is infinitely more precious
-than life--my honor, and my dear daughter's happiness. May Heaven so deal by you
-as you deal by me!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am content,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At this juncture the first policeman thought he had allowed
-sufficient time for a decision.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Time presses, sir,' he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then we had better go to the station,' said our reporter,
-'if you persist in your ridiculous charge.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There is nothing else for me to do, sir,' said the
-policeman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have no objection to my walking by the side of this
-lady, keeping yourself out of hearing. I wish to receive instructions from her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Give me your word, sir, that there will be no attempt at
-escape.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There shall not be.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It's all right,' said the second policeman, 'you may take
-the gentleman's word for a good deal more than that. You won't want me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He left them, and our reporter and the woman, preceded by the
-policeman, who occasionally looked over his shoulder to see that they were
-following him, walked to the Bow Street Police Station.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_16" href="#div1Ref_16">CHAPTER XVI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>AT THE BOW STREET POLICE STATION.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We have but little time for uninterrupted conversation,'
-said our reporter, still speaking in French, 'and must make the best of it. At
-the station we shall not be private, as we are now. An explanation is due from
-me first. I am, as you have heard, a properly qualified solicitor, and can
-therefore defend you legally, although at present I see little to defend. But
-the fact that I am your authorized legal adviser should strengthen your
-confidence in me, for whatever information of a secret nature I receive from you
-I am bound professionally to respect. You see, therefore, that your interests
-are safe in my hands.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am truly grateful to you,' said the woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Intended for the Law,' continued our reporter, 'I do not
-follow it as a profession. I am a journalist, engaged upon the <i>Evening Moon</i>.
-You start. The fact of my being so engaged should still further increase your
-confidence in me. Now, perhaps, you can understand why I am so much interested
-in the advertisement cut from our paper which you carry about with you. May I
-accept it that you have read what has been published in the <i>Evening Moon</i>
-concerning the death and strange disappearance of M. Felix?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have read all that has appeared in the paper,' said the
-woman, who was paying the closest attention to what he was saying,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank you for the frank admission. To my hands has been
-entrusted the task of clearing up this strange affair, and of bringing it
-forward to the full light of day. That is only a portion of my mission. I have
-taken it upon myself to so sift the matter to the bottom, that, if any innocent
-person has been wronged, his innocence shall be made clear, and also to punish
-the guilty. Where there is mystery there is generally crime, and where there is
-crime the presumption is that innocent beings have been brought to sorrow.
-Whether right Or wrong, I have the firmest conviction that there is some story
-of wrong-doing underlying this mystery, and if I am right--which time and good
-fortune can alone establish--this wrong-doing must have inflicted suffering upon
-innocent persons. In opening my mind to you upon these issues I may be, in your
-estimation, speaking at random of details of which you are ignorant, and indeed
-of details which exist only in my imagination, and have no foundation in fact;
-but I take the chance of that, believing that no harm can be done by a perfectly
-open confession of the motives which are urging me on in the elucidation of a
-mystery which has caused, and still is causing, a great deal of excitement. You
-will now understand why the discovery surprised me that you should have taken
-the trouble to so carefully preserve the advertisement which slipped from your
-pocket. It would scarcely have been done by one whom it did not in some way
-concern, and it remains to you to enlighten me upon this point. Let me assure
-you that the advertisement was inserted in good faith, and that its terms will
-be scrupulously observed. Legal assistance is offered, and will be given, and
-money will be spent if any good purpose can be served by it. That is all I have
-time to say in explanation of the interest, to you in all probability the
-singular interest, I have taken in our meeting to-night. The whole of this
-evening I have been engaged in following up a clew connected with the
-disappearance of the body of M. Felix, of which, as you read the <i>Evening Moon</i>,
-you are doubtless aware.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes,' said the woman, 'I have read of it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am on the track, and I venture to affirm that I shall
-eventually succeed in my purpose. I have already more than one ally. May I hope
-that I have gained another?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I do not know,' said the woman, and though they were walking
-now through unlighted spaces and he could not see her face, our reporter divined
-from her broken tones that she was crying. 'I cannot say. All is dark before me;
-there is not a star in the future to light me on my way.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do not give up hope,' said our reporter. 'I am by your side
-to help you. You and your daughter, two women, alone in London as I understand,
-without a friend, can do very little, but an earnest, willing man, who has
-influence and means to back him up, may do much.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In his sincere sympathy our reporter pressed the woman's arm,
-and she uttered an exclamation of pain.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have I hurt you?' he asked, hurriedly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'My arm has been injured,' replied the woman, biting her lip
-so that she should not repeat the cry; 'it has been cut to the bone.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am very sorry. Is it your left arm?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was it recently done?--but I beg your pardon for questioning
-you so closely.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have the right to question me. It was done a few days
-ago.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are unfortunate in more ways than one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Truly, truly,' sighed the woman. 'Your voice, your words are
-kind, but I can think of nothing but my dear child. She is waiting for me,
-expecting me, listening for my footsteps on the stairs. If I could escape--if I
-could get away unseen!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You must not dream of it; you would plunge yourself into
-deeper trouble; and my word is pledged.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, yes, I forgot; I am ungrateful.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will do all I can for you at the Police Station; if it is
-possible, you shall in a few minutes go to your daughter; but I must not
-disguise from you the chances are very small.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But you will try--you will try?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I will try; I will stand bail for you; I can do no more
-just now.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have done much, more than I can repay. If they are cruel
-enough to detain me, how long shall I have to wait?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Till to-morrow morning. You will be brought up before a
-magistrate.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is a terrible disgrace, a terrible, terrible disgrace!
-But they cannot punish me if I have done nothing wrong?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, they cannot punish you unless they can prove something
-against you which will render you liable.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can they upon suspicion?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Upon mere suspicion, no.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When I appear before the magistrate, will you be there?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You may rely upon me. I shall be there to represent you
-legally, as I am willing now to assist you privately. We are near the station.
-Have you nothing more to say to me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you tell me that I should be searched at the station, or
-is it only my fear?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is almost certain you will be searched.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They must find nothing upon me; they must not know who I am,
-or my daughter's happiness is wrecked.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Hastily and stealthily she extracted from her pocket a key, a
-purse and a handkerchief, and slipped them into his hands. As hastily and
-stealthily he slipped them into his own pocket. The policeman had not observed
-the proceeding.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Will you not require you handkerchief?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I must do without it. My initials are worked upon it, and it
-might lead to my identification. They must not, they must not know!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This remark would have seriously disturbed our reporter if he
-had not made up his mind to believe thoroughly, for the time being, everything
-the woman told him, and to leave it to the future to decide whether she was or
-was not deceiving him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Should I be detained,' said the woman, 'you will go to my
-daughter and assure her I am in no danger?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will go with pleasure.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You will not wait till morning? You will go at once?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will go straight from the station.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Heaven reward you! Believe a suffering, much-wronged woman,
-sir, your confidence is not misplaced.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They had not time to exchange another word; they were at the
-station door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Inspector was within, taking the night charges, and our
-reporter saw with satisfaction that it was an officer with whom he was
-acquainted.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-evening, Mr. Jealous,' he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Inspector Jealous looked up. 'Hallo,' he said, 'what brings
-you here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I come on behalf of this lady,' replied our reporter,
-'against whom a policeman on duty on the Thames Embankment has a groundless
-charge to make.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Inspector's eyes wandered from our reporter to the lady.
-The policeman came forward and laid his charge in a temperate manner. Inspector
-Jealous listened in silence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I thought at first,' said the policeman, 'that it was a
-child she had thrown into the river, but the gentleman here thinks the other
-way, and he is as likely to be right as I am. Of her attempt at suicide I am
-certain.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is a distinct charge,' said Inspector Jealous, dipping
-his pen in the ink. 'The bundle, whatever it is, can, I dare say, be recovered.'
-He called a constable, and gave him some whispered instructions; after which the
-man left the office. 'You can join him presently on the Embankment. Do you know
-the woman?' Pinned to formula, Inspector Jealous ignored our reporter's
-reference to her as a lady.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Look up,' said our reporter to the woman; 'you have nothing
-to be ashamed of.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thus assured and comforted the woman raised her face, so that
-everyone in the office could see it clearly. Tears were hanging on her eyelids,
-and there was a piteous expression upon the trembling mouth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't know her,' said the policeman, honestly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The constables in the office craned their necks, then shook
-their heads.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She's no better than she ought to be! She's no better than I
-am! I'm as good as her any day of the week! Go to blazes, the lot of yer!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The interruption came from a tipsy woman sitting on a bench.
-Inspector Jealous made a slight motion with his head, and the tipsy creature was
-taken away. Then Inspector Jealous turned to our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have nothing to say against the constable making the
-charge,' said our reporter; 'he has performed his duty conscientiously, only he
-is mistaken. I was an eyewitness of the affair, and I say that there was nothing
-thrown in the river that the lady had not a right to throw into it--the property
-being her own--and that she did not attempt to commit suicide. Under these
-circumstances I trust you will not subject her to the indignity of being locked
-up. She will appear in the morning; I will be her recognizance.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Inspector Jealous nodded his head, and began to dissect.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What was in the bundle?' he asked of our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have told you,' replied our reporter, feeling himself
-immediately at a disadvantage; 'her own property.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What was its nature?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Manifestly this was a question which our reporter could not
-answer.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You must excuse my asking,' said the Inspector, 'how you
-come to know it was her property?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She told me as much.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This time, instead of nodding his head, Inspector Jealous
-shook it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am afraid I cannot accept that. What is her name?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another question which our reporter could not answer.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where does she live?' pursued the logical and inexorable
-Inspector.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter felt the ground slipping from under him. These
-two or three simple questions were like sledge-hammer blows, and he was
-staggered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Surely,' he said, lamely parrying, 'you do not question my
-honesty in the matter?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not for a moment,' said Inspector Jealous, with perfect good
-temper, 'but you must see yourself how it stands. Here is a direct charge
-made----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And denied,' interposed our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Exactly,' assented Inspector Jealous; 'but it is usual, you
-know, to deny such charges, and the authority to decide which side is right is
-not vested in me. There is not only the charge of attempted suicide, but there
-is that bundle that was thrown into the river. I am very sorry, but----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He did not finish the sentence, but there was no
-misunderstanding his meaning.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You must submit,' said our reporter to the woman, and then
-turned to Inspector Jealous. 'I may have a few private words with her, I
-suppose, out of hearing of the officers present?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Certainly,' replied Inspector Jealous, 'after I have entered
-the charge; and although I shall be compelled to detain her here, I promise to
-make her as comfortable as possible for the night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank you,' said our reporter; 'I was about to ask you to do
-so.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Only one charge was entered in the book, that of attempted
-suicide, the constable's suspicions as to the bundle the woman threw into the
-river being deemed of too vague a nature to frame an accusation upon.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your name?' asked the Inspector of the woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At this question she was seized with a sudden trembling; her
-white face grew whiter; her hands wandered feebly, aimlessly around, and had it
-not been for the support afforded her by our reporter, who held her up, she
-might have fallen insensible to the ground.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do not give way,' he whispered, 'think of your daughter.'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_17" href="#div1Ref_17">CHAPTER XVII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE SLEEPING BEAUTY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;These words strengthened her, and she drew herself up.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your name?' again asked Inspector Jealous.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mrs. Weston,' she replied, with a certain hesitation, and a
-sudden color in her face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Christian name?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mary,' said the woman, with a similar exhibition of
-unreadiness and confusion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mary Weston,' said Inspector Jealous. The equivocal signs
-were not lost upon him, but he made no comment. 'Married?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I decline to answer.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Inspector Jealous merely nodded, and entered her reply in the
-book.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where do you live?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will not tell you. You cannot compel me.' No defiance was
-expressed in her tone; it was imploring and appealing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' said Inspector Jealous, 'we cannot compel you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then she was taken away to be searched, the report being that
-she had no property of any kind upon her person; 'not even a handkerchief,' was
-the remark.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That is all,' said Inspector Jealous to our reporter. 'She
-will be brought up to-morrow morning. If you are going to appear for her, eleven
-o'clock will be early enough.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With his consent our reporter then took the woman aside.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Tell me now what I can do for you,' he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You will find my address on a card in my purse,' she
-replied. 'It is a long distance, two or three miles, think----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't mind that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You need not knock or ring at the street door; the key I
-gave you will open it. But the passage will be dark when you enter it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have matches with me. I shall find my way all right.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Our rooms are on the first floor. My daughter will be awake.
-Do not alarm her by knocking loudly on the door.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will tap very gently. Go on.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I do not know what you will say to her at first. A
-stranger--and at this late hour of the night----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do not agitate yourself. I will use my best skill and all my
-kindness to assure her that I come as a friend.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am sure you will, I am sure you will,' said the woman,
-taking his hand and kissing it. 'Heaven has been good to me to send me such a
-friend!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Look at it in that light. What shall I say to your daughter
-after her first surprise is over? Do you not think you had better give me a few
-lines to her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can I write them here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I think so; I will ask the Inspector.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He had no difficulty in obtaining permission, and was
-supplied with a sheet of note-paper and an envelope. Then the woman wrote:</p>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">quot;'<span class="sc">My Darling Child</span>,--The gentleman
-who brings this is a friend, a true friend, and I send this note by his hand to
-allay your fears at my absence. I cannot explain now why I do not come home
-to-night, but I will do so to-morrow when I return. Do not expect me till the
-afternoon, and do not be in the least alarmed about me. All is well, and there
-is hope in the future. God bless you, my darling. With fondest love,</p>
-
-<p style="text-indent:50%">;&quot;'Your Devoted Mother.'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She gave the note to our reporter to read, and then put it in
-the envelope. On the envelope she wrote simply the name, 'Constance.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She will be certain to question me,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have only to tell her that I desired you to say nothing,
-and that I wished to have the pleasure myself of communicating good news to her
-upon my return to-morrow. That will satisfy her. She loves me, has faith in me.
-Good news! Alas, alas!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Keep up your courage. They will treat you kindly here for my
-sake, and you will see me in the morning. The few hours will soon pass.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It will seem an eternity.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Feeling that it would be useless to prolong the interview,
-and anxious to go upon his errand, our reporter bade her good-night with a
-friendly pressure of the hand, commended her to the care of the kind Inspector,
-and left the station. He walked a little way into the Strand before he stopped
-to look at the card in the woman's purse; had he done so in Bow Street, a
-policeman might have seen him and reported the action, as he had just left the
-police station. By the light of a street lamp he read the address, 21 Forston
-Street, Kentish Town. There was no name on the card, but as there was no other
-writing in the purse he knew that this must be the address to which he was to
-go. He hailed a cab, and bade the man drive quickly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;His compulsory examination of the purse had led to a
-knowledge of its contents--a small key and two pounds four shillings in gold and
-silver, in addition to the card. He thought himself justified in looking at the
-handkerchief which the woman had given him. It was of fine cambric, and in one
-corner were the initials E. B. According to the woman's statement, these were
-the initials of her name which she wished to keep from the eyes of the
-policeman, so that they might not lead to her identification. Then the name she
-gave to Inspector Jealous was false; she was not Mary Weston.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This discovery would have damped the ardor of a less
-sympathetic and enthusiastic man than our reporter, and would have instilled in
-him a feeling of distrust. But our reporter is made of exceptional stuff, and
-the discrepancy did not weaken his faith in her. She had been frank with him;
-she had told him that she desired to keep her name from the knowledge of the
-police; the hesitation with which she had given the false name in the police
-station proved that she was not an adept in duplicity; and in addition, his
-brief association with her had inspired him with so much pity and confidence
-that it would have needed stronger evidence to shake him. The longer he thought
-of her, the firmer was his conviction that she was a lady of gentle culture, who
-had by some strange means been thrown into a cruel position, in which she had
-suffered some deep wrong. This in itself might not have been powerful enough to
-induce him to champion her cause, but what wooed and fixed him irresistibly was
-the strong impression that there existed between her and M. Felix a link which,
-found, would lead to the clearing up of the mystery.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As the cab drew up at 21 Forston Street, Kentish Town, our
-reporter looked at his watch. It was two o'clock.&quot; Paying the cabman and
-dismissing him, our reporter paused a moment to consider his position and its
-surroundings.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The street was very quiet; not a soul was visible. The houses
-in it struck the mean between rich and poor; some were two, some were three
-stories in height, and the rents (our reporter is a judge in such matters) would
-vary between forty and sixty pounds a year. This was sufficiently respectable,
-and he was pleased that his errand had not landed him in a poorer locality.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But two o'clock in the morning. A strange hour to present
-himself for the first time, and under such suspicious circumstances, to a young
-lady waiting in anxious suspense for the return of her mother. It must be done,
-however, and the sooner done the better. He took out the latch key, opened the
-street door, closed it behind him, and stood in the dark passage. He did not
-wait now; he knew that he must go straight on with his task. Therefore he lit a
-match, and by the aid of its light made his way to the first floor landing.
-There were two doors, one a side door which he supposed led to the smaller room,
-the other a larger door facing him, through the crevices in which he saw the
-gleam of a lamp or candle. He knocked gently, and waited, holding in his hand
-the purse, the latch key, the handkerchief, and the letter which the woman had
-given him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Expedition now did not rest with him; it rested with the
-occupant of the chamber to which he desired admittance. But his gentle tapping,
-repeated again and again, met with no response. What should he do? To continue
-tapping, or to knock aloud, would arouse other inmates, and would subject him to
-an awkward examination. There was nothing for it but to try the handle. It
-turned in his hand, and the door was open.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Still he paused upon the threshold, and said in his softest
-tones, 'Miss Constance! Miss Constance!' He received no reply, but heard a
-gentle breathing. Boldly he entered the room, and pushed the door behind him,
-but did not quite close it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There was a lamp alight on the table, and before it a book,
-the pages of which were divided and held apart by a miniature in a gold frame.
-Leaning back in a chair, one arm hanging listlessly down, the other resting on
-the table, the fingers just touching the miniature, was a young girl, the beauty
-of whose face was positively startling. Rather dark than fair, with features cut
-in the Greek mould, and long eyelashes veiling the sleeping eyes, with lips
-slightly parted, the picture was one upon which an artist would have loved to
-dwell. Her loosened hair, which was of a rich brown, hung upon her shoulders,
-but did not hide the exquisitely shaped ears; her hands were small and white,
-and the foot in a worked slipper which peeped beneath her dress was as
-beautifully formed. In silence our reporter gazed and admired.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Truly puzzled was he how to act in a dilemma so bewildering.
-It was a contingency for which he had not mentally provided. Here he stood, a
-stranger, at two o'clock in the morning, in the presence of a young and lovely
-girl whose eyes had never rested on his face. What on earth was he to do?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Her age could not have been more than seventeen or eighteen,
-and her likeness to the woman he had left in the Bow Street Police Station, left
-no room to doubt that she was her daughter, the Constance he had come to see. He
-coughed, and shuffled his feet, and shifted a chair, but these movements did not
-arouse the sleeping beauty. She slept calmly on, her bosom gently rising and
-falling as she breathed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He ventured to approach close to the table. The book the
-young girl had been reading was Scott's 'Ivanhoe,' and the miniature lying on
-the page was that of a young man, presumably of the better class. There was
-something singular in the aspect of this young man's eyes; they were open, but
-there was a vacant expression in them which, upon examining them more closely,
-led our reporter to suppose that the possessor was blind.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As his movements were ineffective in arousing the young girl
-to consciousness, our reporter, without any distinct idea as to how he should
-proceed with his task, laid the purse, the key, and the handkerchief on the
-table close to the girl's hand. He retained the letter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Every moment that passed increased the awkwardness of his
-position, and he now ventured to touch the sleeper's arm. She moved slightly in
-her chair, and shifted the hand that rested upon the table so that it reached
-the miniature. Her fingers closed upon it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Again our reporter touched her arm, and in a low tone he
-called her by her name. The arm that had been hanging down was raised, and
-clasped his hand. 'Mamma!' she murmured, and she held his fingers with a tender
-clasp.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Really,' thought our reporter, 'this is growing more and
-more perplexing.' Presently, to his relief, her fingers relaxed, and he drew his
-released hand away. By this time he felt that bolder measures were necessary.
-Retreating to the door he overturned a chair, and hastily stepped into the
-passage. The ruse was successful; the young girl started to her feet, and called
-out Mamma! Is that you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The answer she received was a tap at the door. Timidly she
-approached and opened it, but flew back into the room at the appearance of a
-stranger.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do not be alarmed,' said our reporter, standing on the
-threshold; 'I come as a messenger from your mother.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As a messenger from my mother!' she stammered, gazing at him
-from a safe distance in evident distress, 'I do not understand you, sir. Do not
-come nearer to me, or I shall call for assistance.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I assure you there is no occasion,' said our reporter. 'I
-will not move a step into the room without your permission. Let me assure you
-that I feel my presence here as awkward as you must yourself; but I come, as I
-have said, from your mother, who has given me a letter for you. I am her friend,
-and she would be annoyed if you called unnecessarily for assistance. I sincerely
-apologize for my intrusion, but there was no help for it. Strange as is my
-appearance here, I come only in your mother's interests and yours.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Indeed it is strange,' said the young girl, 'and I cannot
-help feeling alarmed and distressed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is natural you should,' said our reporter, speaking, as
-he had spoken all through in his most respectful tone, as a gentleman would
-speak to a lady; 'but read your mother's letter. See--I throw it as close to you
-as I can, and if you wish me to enter after you have read it, I will do so; not
-otherwise, upon my honor as a gentleman.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He threw the letter into the room, but it did not quite reach
-her. With timid steps, keeping her eyes fixed upon our reporter, the young girl
-reached the letter, and quickly retreated to the position she deemed safe, from
-which she read what her mother had written.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You may enter, sir,' she said, 'but do not close the door.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will leave it open,' said our reporter, and entered the
-room, but kept a little apart from the young girl, whom we will now call by her
-proper name, Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I have been waiting up for my mother's return, sir,' she
-said, 'and I cannot even now understand her absence. Where did you leave her?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I may not answer your questions,' replied our reporter. 'It
-is at her own request I do not do so. She desired me to say that she wishes to
-communicate the good news to you herself when she returns to-morrow. You see my
-lips are sealed, and I cannot, as a gentleman, violate the confidence your
-mother reposed in me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have nothing more to say, sir, and will leave me now, I
-hope.' Then she murmured softly, 'Good news? Oh, if I dared to hope it!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will leave you this instant,' said our reporter, and was
-about to do so when Constance's eyes fell upon the purse, and the key, and the
-handkerchief which he had deposited on the table.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A moment, sir, I beg,' she said. 'How came these here? They
-are my mother's.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, she gave them to me,' said our reporter, with
-pardonable duplicity, 'to hand them to you, in order that you might be satisfied
-I came from her, and that I am here only as a messenger.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I understand that, sir, but how came they here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I must speak frankly,' said our reporter, smiling. 'After
-admitting myself into the house by means of the latchkey, I came upstairs and
-knocked at your door, but could not make myself heard. As I did not wish to
-arouse other people in the house I took the liberty of trying whether the door
-was locked. It was not, and I entered. Seeing you asleep I endeavored by some
-slight sounds to awake you, but did not succeed. Then I placed the articles on
-the table, and overturning this chair, retreated from the room, to lessen any
-alarm you might feel at my appearance. It is the truth, believe me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I do believe you, sir, and I thank you for your
-consideration, but it's all very strange and distressing to me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It would be stranger were it not. And now, having fulfilled
-my mission, I will take my leave.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only one more question, sir,' said Constance, imploringly.
-'My mother is in no danger?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She is not. You will see her to-morrow, and I hope myself to
-see you again, so that I may be justified in your eyes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are justified already, sir, and I beg you to pardon me
-for my doubts. I must wait till the morning. My mother will come, will she not,
-in the morning?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Does she not say in her letter that it will not be till the
-afternoon?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes, I forgot, but I am confused and troubled. Will you
-see her before then?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I have an appointment with her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I must not tell you. Remember the injunction your mother
-laid upon me. I have no alternative but to respect it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are right, sir. Pardon me.' She held out her hand, and
-our reporter advanced to take it; but she withdrew it before he touched it. Even
-now her doubts and fears were not dispelled. 'Good-night, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-night,' said our reporter, and turned to go.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But now it was his turn to linger. Something, in the room
-which he had not before observed attracted him. It was a simple article enough,
-a red silk handkerchief which might be worn around the neck.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-night, sir,' repeated Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Good-night,' he said. 'Excuse me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then he left the room. As he descended the stairs he heard
-the key turned in the door of Constance's room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He did not call a cab when he reached the street; he had
-subject for thought, and like most men he could reflect with greater freedom and
-ease when his limbs were in motion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A red silk handkerchief--merely that. Why should it have made
-so strong an impression upon him? The explanation might be far-fetched, but
-since he had pledged himself to the elucidation of the mystery of M. Felix, he
-had become microscopical in his observation of trifles which might by some
-remote possibility have a bearing upon it. On the night of the death of M. Felix
-a man was seen escaping from the house in Gerard Street in which M. Felix lived;
-and this man wore round his neck a red scarf. It was this coincidence which now
-occupied his thoughts. The possession of a red silk scarf was common enough;
-thousands of persons in London could produce such an article, and shop windows
-abounded with them; but this particular scarf, in connection with the exciting
-incidents of the night, and in its indirect relation to the advertisement from
-the <i>Evening Moon</i>, which Constance's mother had preserved with such care,
-suddenly assumed immense importance in the eyes of our reporter. His thoughts
-wandered to the scene on the Thames Embankment, and he felt himself becoming
-morbidly anxious to know what it was that Constance's mother had thrown into the
-river. That it had some connection with the mystery upon which he was engaged he
-had not the least doubt. Would its discovery, by throwing direct suspicion upon
-Constance's mother, assist or retard the progress of his mission? To-morrow would
-show, and he must await the event with patience. One reflection afforded him
-infinite satisfaction; his hand, and his alone, of all the millions of persons
-who had no absolute direct interest in it, was on the pulse of the mystery, and
-every step he took strengthened him in his resolution to run it to earth without
-the aid of the officials of Scotland Yard.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_18" href="#div1Ref_18">CHAPTER XVIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>HOW THE CHARGE WAS DISPOSED OF.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the following morning, at half-past ten, our reporter
-presented himself at the Bow Street Police Court, and was allowed a private
-interview with Constance's mother, whom we must for the present designate by the
-name she had assumed, Mrs. Weston. She looked worn and pale, but beneath these
-traces of physical fatigue our reporter observed in her an undefinable
-expression of moral strength which surprised him. He had yet to learn, as our
-readers have, that this woman's delicate frame was ennobled by those lofty
-attributes of endurance and fortitude and moral power which in human history
-have helped to make both heroes and martyrs.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have passed a bad night,' said our reporter,
-commiseratingly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In one sense I have,' said Mrs. Weston, 'but hope and prayer
-have sustained me, and the Inspector has been very kind to me. Tell me of my
-daughter.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He briefly related the particulars of his interview with
-Constance, but made no mention of the red silk scarf. She thanked him with great
-sweetness for the trouble he had taken, and said that she had been wonderfully
-comforted by the belief that she had providentially met with so true a friend.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Time will prove,' said our reporter, 'that you are not
-deceived in your belief, but the manifestation of this proof will depend greatly
-upon yourself. To speak more precisely, in your hands appears to me to rest the
-power of accelerating events and of setting wrong things right. I am speaking
-partly in the dark, from a kind of spiritual intuition as it were, but when I
-strike a trail I have something of the bloodhound in me; innocence will find in
-me a firm champion, guilt I will pursue till I track it to its threshold.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The words were grandiloquent, it is true, but it was scarcely
-possible to doubt their sincerity.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In resolving to confide thoroughly in you,' said Mrs.
-Weston, gazing earnestly at him, 'I am risking more than you can possibly
-imagine. I am like a shipwrecked woman to whom a prospect of deliverance has
-suddenly appeared. I ask for no professions; I will trust you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You will live to thank the chance which has thrown us
-together,' said our reporter. 'I do not hesitate to say that you have aroused in
-me a strange interest; I devote myself to your cause heartily, in the conviction
-that I am championing the cause of right and innocence.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tears sprang in her eyes. 'Shall I be released today?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am confident of it. I want to say a word to the
-Inspector.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To Inspector Jealous, who was standing near, he expressed his
-thanks for the kindness he had shown Mrs. Weston.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well, you see,' said the inspector, in the first place it
-was enough that she is a friend of yours; in the second place, it was enough
-that she is a lady. I can read signs; she does not belong to the classes we are
-in the habit of dealing with.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She does not,' said our reporter. 'The whole affair is a
-mistake, excusable enough on the part of the policeman, but regrettable because
-of the distress it has caused an innocent lady. I shall make no complaint
-against the policeman, on the score of over-officiousness; he was within his
-rights, and on abstract grounds is perhaps to be commended for his mistaken
-zeal.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was a wise and prudent speech, and the Inspector, already
-kindly disposed, conveyed it, before the case was called on, to the ears of the
-policeman who had made the charge. Assured that no attempt would be made by our
-reporter to bring him into disrepute, he toned down his evidence considerably,
-and himself assisted in the dismissal of the case, the brief particulars of
-which we extract from our police columns:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Groundless Charge.--Mary Weston, a woman of respectable
-appearance, was charged with attempting to commit suicide. Constable 382 C said
-that he was on duty on the Thames Embankment last night, about twelve o'clock,
-when he saw the woman standing on the stone parapet close to Cleopatra's Needle.
-Drawing near to her he heard a splash in the water, and the woman was falling
-forward when he seized her and pulled her away. A gentleman in court laid hold
-of the woman at the same time, and assisted him in preventing her from carrying
-out her purpose. The gentleman referred to, Mr. Robert Agnold, one of the
-reporters upon the <i>Evening Moon</i>, and also a properly qualified solicitor,
-said he appeared for the accused, who distinctly denied that she had any
-intention of committing suicide. He was himself a witness of the occurrence, and
-was convinced that the constable, who had behaved very well throughout the
-affair, had acted under a mistaken impression. The magistrate asked the
-constable what caused the splash? The constable replied something the accused
-threw into the river. The magistrate: 'Did you see what it was?' The constable:
-'No.' Mr. Agnold: 'I should state that the accused admits throwing something
-into the river, and that in the act of doing so she overbalanced herself and so
-aroused the constable's suspicions. Whatever it was that she threw away, it was
-her own property and presumably valueless, and, although her action was open to
-an eccentric construction, it could go no farther than that. She had a perfect
-right to do what she pleased with what belonged to her.' The constable said that
-search had been made for it, but it had not been found. The woman went quietly
-to the station, but refused to give her address. She was not known to the
-police, and there was no evidence of her having been charged before. The
-magistrate, to the accused: 'Have you any trouble that urged you to put an end
-to your life?' The accused, whose speech was distinguished by great modesty and
-refinement: 'I have troubles, as other people have, but none that could impel me
-to an act so sinful. Nothing was farther from my thoughts than the attempt with
-which I am charged. I have done no wrong.' Mr. Agnold: 'Apart from my position
-as her professional adviser, I will answer for her in every way.' The
-magistrate: 'She is discharged.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was half-past twelve when Mrs. Weston and our reporter
-issued from the police court. They walked in silence toward Leicester Square,
-which, in contrast to the thronged thoroughfares immediately adjoining it, is at
-this time of the day comparatively quiet. Mrs. Weston looked around inquiringly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do you know where we are?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' she replied.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then you are not well acquainted with London?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not very well.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This is Leicester Square. We are not far from Gerard street,
-Soho, where M. Felix was found dead.' A tremor passed through her, and the hand
-which rested upon our reporter's arm pressed it convulsively. He did not pursue
-the subject, but said, 'All's well that ends well. Your daughter will see you
-earlier than she expects. You will go straight home, I suppose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not straight. I am fearful of being followed. Heaven knows
-whether I shall be able to accomplish the task that lies before me, but whatever
-I do must be done without drawing notice upon myself. I will not disguise from
-you that I have innocently placed myself in a false position, and that I am in
-danger. I cannot explain my words at this moment; I am anxious to see my beloved
-child; but I must repeat what I have said to you before, that no sin or guilt
-lies at my door.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I understand that, and I will bide your time. You are afraid
-that we are being watched. I see no one in sight that can be dogging us, but I
-can provide against the remotest possibility if you will allow me to accompany
-you part of the way.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She accepted his services gratefully, and he hailed a cab,
-the driver of which he directed to proceed in an opposite direction to Forston
-Street, Camden Town. When the cab had gone a couple of miles they alighted and
-walked the length of two or three streets, our reporter keeping a sharp lookout;
-then another cab was hailed, which drove them to Camden Town, about a quarter of
-a mile from Forston Street. They walked together to within fifty yards of No.
-21, and then Mrs. Weston paused.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You wish me to leave you here,' said our reporter. 'Shall I
-see you again soon?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This evening, at eight o'clock,' she replied, 'if you will
-call upon me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will be punctual.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I ought to tell you before you go,' she said, in a low tone,
-'that the name I gave at the police station is not my own. I was justified in
-giving a false name; otherwise the knowledge of my--my disgrace might have
-reached my daughter.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You use a wrong term,' said our reporter, 'no disgrace
-whatever attaches to you. Good-by till this evening.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He shook hands with her and walked briskly away. He had
-nothing of importance to attend to in the office of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, but
-he was expected to present himself there, and it was necessary that he should
-arrange to have the afternoon and evening free. This being settled, he turned
-toward Gerard Street, with the intention of calling upon Mrs. Middlemore, to
-ascertain whether anything fresh had transpired. He knocked vainly at the door,
-however, Mrs. Middlemore was not in the house. At the bottom of Gerard Street he
-encountered Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, Sophy,' he said, 'I have just been to your house.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;''Ave yer?' said Sophy, sidling up to him. 'Aunty ain't at
-'ome.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So I discovered. Where is she?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'At the perlice station,' answered the girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Anything wrong?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't know.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But what has she gone for?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It's about Mr. Felix.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'About Mr. Felix!' he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So she ses.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But what is the meaning of it, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't tell yer. All I know is I meets aunty with a face
-like pickled cabbage, running and blowing and 'olding 'er sides, and I arks 'er
-what she's in sech a 'urry about. 'It's about poor Mr. Felix,' she ses, as well
-as she could speak; she was that out of breath she could 'ardly git 'er words
-out. 'They've found out somethink, and they've sent for me to the perlice
-station. You go 'ome at once and wait till I come back.' 'Ow shall I get in?' I
-arks; aunty never gives me the door-key; ketch 'er doing that! 'Ow shall I get
-in?' 'There's a gent there,' ses aunty, as 'ill open the door for yer.' 'I goes
-and knocks, and as no gent comes and opens the door for me, I takes a walk.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is that all you know, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That's all. I don't keep nothink from you--not likely.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can you tell me the name of the police station?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes, I can tell yer that. Bow Street.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter did not wait to exchange any further words, but
-hastened as fast as he could to the Bow Street Police Court. He was close to it
-when a constable accosted him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I was coming for you at the <i>Evening Moon</i> office,
-sir,' said the constable. 'The Inspector sent me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What does he want?' asked our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'They've fished up something from the river. He thought you
-would like to see it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I should.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As he entered the doors his coat was plucked by Mrs.
-Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, Mrs. Middlemore,' he said, hastily, 'I will speak to you
-presently. Don't go away; I will be out in a minute or two.'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_19" href="#div1Ref_19">CHAPTER XIX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>WHAT WAS FOUND IN THE RIVER.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Inspector conducted our reporter to a small room
-adjoining the court, in which the previous day's charges were still being tried,
-and pointing to a bundle on the table, said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This was found in the river, near Cleopatra's Needle. It has
-been opened and tied up again, in order that you might see it in its original
-form.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In what way do you suppose it concerns me?' asked our
-reporter, with an assumption of indifference, but moving nevertheless to the
-table and proceeding to undo the knots in the bundle.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The presumption is,' replied the Inspector, 'that it was the
-bundle which Mrs. Weston, your client, threw into the river last night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Being found,' contested our reporter, 'close to the place of
-the adventure, the more probable conclusion is that it was deposited in the
-river some distance off, the direction of which might be calculated from the
-flow of the tide.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ordinarily, yes,' said the Inspector, 'but there are
-surroundings not favorable to such a conclusion. In the centre of the bundle you
-will find a large stone, which would prevent it from dragging far. Then again,
-it was discovered caught in a snag, and our men say it must have fallen plumb
-into its position.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter shrugged his shoulders, and remarked, 'Evidence
-of that kind is in my opinion absolutely valueless in getting at the truth of a
-criminal charge.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By this time he had untied the knots and the contents of the
-bundle lay exposed. They consisted of a large stone and a suit of man's
-clothes--trousers, coat, and waistcoat.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well?' he said to the Inspector.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well?' said the Inspector, in return.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do you seriously ask me to believe that a lady would
-deliberately go to a lonely part of the Thames Embankment at a late hour of the
-night, for the purpose of throwing trumpery articles like these into the river?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What else can you believe?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Anything but that,' said our reporter. 'In the first place
-it has to be proved that the clothes are hers--an absurd idea, to say the least
-of it. In the second place, what motive could she have had in disposing of them
-in such a manner?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have hit a nail on the head,' said the Inspector. 'A
-motive she must have had, and a strong one, too. It is a singular affair, and I
-confess that I don't see my way through it. You see, the suit is new; being but
-a short time in the water, that is not hard to prove. It is of a rather good
-description of tweed, and must have cost thirty or thirty-five shillings. To my
-eyes it has been worn very little, not more than half a dozen times, perhaps not
-more than three or four, perhaps not more than once. Supposing it to have been
-worn once only, it must have been worn for a certain purpose, which being
-carried out rendered its possession dangerous. Therefore it must be got rid of.
-Now, why throw it into the river? Fifty shopkeepers in fifty neighborhoods would
-be ready to purchase it for six or seven shillings. Why not sell it, then? I
-answer, because it would not do for the suit to be still in existence; because
-the person who disposed of it might be traced. Then would come the
-question--&quot;Why did you purchase a new suit of clothes for thirty shillings, and
-sell it immediately afterward for five?&quot; But the clothes may still be traced to
-the original purchaser. It happens that the name of the firm of which it was
-purchased is stamped on the lining of each garment; we go to that firm and make
-inquiries. Unfortunately the firm does a very large business, and this will
-increase the difficulty of discovering the purchaser.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your theories are very interesting,' said our reporter, 'but
-I do not see what they will lead to. Is there anything in the pockets?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing; not so much as a scrap of paper, or a shred of
-tobacco, or a morsel of biscuit. I mention tobacco because whoever wore the
-clothes was not a smoker.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is it possible to fix that?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Quite. Do you observe that the clothes are of a small size?
-They must have been worn, therefore, by a person of proportionate build. In
-these facts we have a starting-point.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'A starting-point, I presume, in some important
-investigation.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There you have me,' said the Inspector, with a smile. 'I
-have been merely airing my views. I know of no case which can possibly be
-connected in any way with this suit of clothes, and we have too much to look
-after already without making much ado about nothing. If there were any grounds
-for supposing that it bore some relation to, say such a mystery as that of M.
-Felix, we should set to work at once, of course. No such luck, however. I sent
-for you really in the hope that you could throw a light upon the bundle of
-rubbish.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you see that I cannot. I refuse to believe for one
-moment that it was thrown into the river by the lady I appeared for this
-morning.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well,' said the inspector, 'there is no harm done.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not the least. By the way, you made mention of the case of
-M. Felix. Has any progress been made in it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We're not a step more forward than we were. Rather the other
-way, I should say, for in such cases every day in which an advance is not made
-marks a point backward. The strangest feature in M. Felix's case is what has
-become of the body. We have made every inquiry, and are still making them, all
-over the country, and can't find the slightest trace of it. Taking it
-altogether, it is about the strangest case in my experience.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And in mine,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, yes,' said the inspector, with a keen look at our
-reporter, 'we know you have taken great interest in it, and I suppose have been
-about as successful as ourselves.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Just about as successful.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your amateur detective,' observed the Inspector, with a
-certain scorn, 'considers himself a mighty clever gentleman, but he finds
-himself compelled in the end to take a back seat.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As I shall have to do,' said our reporter, good humoredly,
-'but, as you say, there is no harm done; and you must remember that I am working
-in the interests of a great newspaper. I had an object in asking you whether you
-had made any progress in the case of M. Felix. A person of my acquaintance
-informed me that there was something being done in it to-day.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Whoever it was,' said the Inspector, 'must be dreaming.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing has been found out?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothing.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And there is no inquiry in the police court relating to it?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'None.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thanks. Good-morning.'&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_20" href="#div1Ref_20">CHAPTER XX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>MRS. MIDDLEMORE IS VICTIMIZED.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Outside the court-house our reporter found Mrs. Middlemore
-still waiting. He took her by the arm, and led her unceremoniously away.
-Stopping on the opposite side of the road, he said to her:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Now, Mrs. Middlemore, what brought you here?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I was sent for, sir,' she answered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'By whom?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'By the magerstate.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Where is the paper?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What paper, sir?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The summons.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I ain't got none. The perlice orficer comes to me and ses,
-&quot;Mrs. Middlemore,&quot; he ses, &quot;you must go immediate to the Bow Street Perlice
-Station, and wait outside till yer called.&quot; &quot;But what about?&quot; I arks. &quot;About Mr.
-Felix,&quot; he answers; &quot;somethink's been found out, and they can't git on without
-yer. Yer'll have to wait a longish time per'aps, but if yer move away till yer
-called it'll be worse for yer.&quot; &quot;But what am I to do about the 'ouse?&quot; I arks.
-&quot;Sophy's out, and there's no one to mind it.&quot; &quot;I'll mind it,&quot; ses the perlice
-orficer, &quot;and when Sophy comes back I'll let her in. Off yer go, and don't tell
-nobody at Bow Street what yer've come about. It's a secret, and the Government
-won't stand it being talked of. Yer'll be paid for yer trouble.&quot; So off I
-starts, and 'ere 'ave I been waiting for nigh upon two hours, and nobody's made
-a move toward me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I've heard something of this,' said our reporter, pushing
-Mrs. Middle more into a cab, and giving the driver instructions to drive quickly
-to Gerard Street. It was not without difficulty he succeeded in this, for Mrs.
-Middlemore, with the fear of the 'Government' upon her, wanted to remain in Bow
-Street. 'I met Sophy before I came here, and she told me you had been sent for
-to the police Station. Now be quiet, will you? Have you not promised to be
-guided by me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But the Government, sir, the Government! I shall be clapped
-in prison!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You'll be nothing of the sort. The Government and I are
-friends, and you are perfectly safe if you do as I tell you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I must, I serpose, sir. There's nothink else for it, but I'm
-being wore to a shadder. If this goes on much longer I sha'n't 'ave a ounce of
-flesh on my bones. Yer sor Sophy, sir, did yer? Yer've been at the 'ouse, then?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I have been at your house, but it was not there that I
-saw your niece. I met her in the street, and she informed me that you were at
-Bow Street Police Station.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What was the 'uzzy doing in the streets?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can't say, but in the streets she was forced to remain.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Why, sir, the 'ouse was open to 'er. I met 'er and told 'er
-to go 'ome and wait till I come back.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Exactly. And she did go, and knocked at the door, as I did,
-but she was as unsuccessful as I was. She did not get in.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;''Ow can that be, sir? The perlice officer was there, waiting
-to open the door for 'er. The lazy slut! She's been telling yer a parcel of
-lies.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'How about myself, Mrs. Middlemore? Am I telling you a parcel
-of lies when I say that I knocked pretty loudly at your door, and that no one
-came to open it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I wouldn't dispute your word, sir, but I can't make it out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can, and I will explain it to you presently, inside your
-house, if we can manage to get in. Here we are. Jump out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The cab being discharged, Mrs. Middlemore knocked and rang,
-but knocked and rang in vain.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Allo, anty!' said Sophy, coming up. ''Ave they found Mr.
-Felix's body?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;''Ush, you 'uzzy,' said Mrs. Middlemore, clapping her hand on
-the girl's mouth. 'What do yer mean by being outside instead of in?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What do I mean?' retorted Sophy, with an air of great
-enjoyment. 'Why, 'cause I couldn't git in. I knocked and knocked, jest as you're
-doing of now, but nobody answered.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I understood,' said our reporter to Mrs. Middlemore, 'that
-you generally carry your latchkey with you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So I do sir, but I didn't 'ave it in my pocket when the
-perlice officer come; it was downstairs on the kitchen table. I wanted to go
-down and fetch it, but he wouldn't let me wait a minute. &quot;If yer ain't quick,&quot;
-he said, &quot;yer'll git yerself in trouble;&quot; and he bundled me out of the 'ouse.
-That's 'ow it was, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The question is,' said our reporter, 'how we are to get in.
-Is there a back way?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then we must get in by the front door or window. The window
-will be the easiest. It is fastened inside in the usual way, I suppose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The easiest plan will be for me to break one of the panes in
-such a manner as to attract as little notice as possible, and then put my hand
-through and undo the fastening. Then we can lift the sash, and Sophy can get in
-and unlock the street door for us.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm game,' said Sophy, to whom any task of this kind was
-especially inviting.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter was about to put his plan into execution when
-Mrs. Middlemore clutched his arm. He instantly withdrew it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of course, Mrs. Middlemore,' he said, coldly, 'it is your
-house, and I can't commit a trespass without your permission.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It ain't that, sir,' said Mrs. Middlemore, piteously.
-'Sophy's a plucky little thing, and though I do give 'er a 'ard word now and
-then, I mean well by 'er, I do indeed, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yer a good sort, aunty,' said Sophy. 'I don't mind yer 'ard
-words, not a bit.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;''Old yer saucy tongue, and let me speak to the gentleman.
-Yes, sir, I mean well by Sophy, and I should never 'ave another minute's peace
-if anythink was to appen to 'er.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What do you think will happen to her if I do what I
-propose?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There's been one sudding death in the 'ouse, sir----.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Go on, Mrs. Middlemore. Don't stop in the middle of a
-sentence; finish what you have to say. Time is very precious just now.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's been one sudding death in the 'ouse, and now there's
-a man in there as won't or can't answer.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You fear he might be dead. If so, he cannot do Sophy any
-harm. Eh, Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not 'im. It'd take more nor one dead man to scare Sophy.
-Jest you open the winder, and I'll be in like a shot.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have I your permission now, Mrs. Middlemore?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But if he shouldn't be dead, sor. If he was laying in wait
-with a crowbar to knock Sophy on the 'ead----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, you are beginning to think the man who called upon you
-was not a police officer, after all?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm beginning to have my doubts, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I never had any. He is as much a police officer as you are.
-He told you a cock and bull story, and got rid of you. He was left in the house
-alone, and, more for your sake than my own, I want to find out what he has been
-up to. Decide quickly, please.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do what you like, sir. You've been right in everything; but
-things are getting more and more mysterious.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Without wasting more words our reporter pushed his elbow into
-a pane, and putting his hand through, undid the fastening and raised the sash.
-Sophy climbed in like a cat, and the next minute the street door was open. They
-entered and closed the door behind them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We will proceed systematically,' said our reporter. 'The man
-spoke to you in the passage here.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir; and sed he'd wait.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you tell him to wait in the kitchen, or the parlor, or
-in any particular room?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir; I left it to 'im.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Doubtless he has been into every room in the house. We will
-go into the kitchen first.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing had been disturbed there; the key of the street-door
-was on the kitchen table. Our reporter took it up and examined it closely.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'As I imagined,' he said. 'He has taken an impression of the
-key in wax.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What for, sir?' asked Mrs. Middlemore, in great trepidation.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'To enable him to enter the house again secretly, if he
-wished. When I am gone send for a plumber and a locksmith. Let the plumber put
-in the pane of glass, and have another lock put on the street door. Your visitor
-must have been in a hurry, or he would have cleaned this key more carefully.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;From the kitchen they went into the parlor, and apparently
-nothing had been disturbed there. Then they proceeded upstairs to the rooms
-occupied by M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Look carefully round,' said our reporter, 'and tell me if
-anything has been taken away.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothink, sir, that I can see.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But there may have been papers, or money, or something of
-which he wishes to obtain possession, secreted somewhere, and it is quite likely
-he may have found them.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I won't dispute you, sir. You see further than I do; but it
-don't seem as if anythink's been took.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Or moved? The ornaments on the mantelshelf--are they all
-there?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't miss one, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'But they have been shifted. Here is this vase; observe the
-circle upon which it stood. The vase has been lifted and put down again, but not
-on the exact spot it occupied when he took it up. This proves the object for
-which he came; he has been searching for something, and has probably found it
-and taken it away. How could you have been so foolish as to leave him in the
-house alone?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore sank helpless into a chair, and moaned. 'What
-else could I do, sir, what else could I do? It'll be the death of me, I know it
-will!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not at all. It only proves that we have cunning persons to
-work against. I am all the more determined to track this mystery down.' He
-opened the bedroom door, and exclaimed, 'Here is direct evidence. The fellow has
-not been so careful in this room. Chairs have been moved, the bedclothes are
-disturbed. Why, where is the revolver?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He referred to the revolver which he had found beneath the
-pillows, and which he had replaced. It had been abstracted. Inwardly he
-congratulated himself that he had not only taken a full note of the description
-of the weapon, but had also scratched the initial,'F.' on the metal. He took,
-out his pocketbook and turned to the page upon which he had made an entry.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Listen to this, Mrs. Middlemore, and be thankful that you
-have a friend like me on your side: &quot;A Colt's double action revolver,
-nickel-plated, six shots, No. 819.&quot; I can swear to that revolver, and moreover
-can swear that it was loaded. Are you satisfied now that you have been imposed
-upon, and that the man who visited you came upon a bogus errand?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Of course I am, sir, but what could 'ave been 'is
-objec'--'Oh, what could 'ave been 'is objec'?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That has yet to be discovered, and discovered it shall be.
-The abstraction of this revolver may assist us. The fellow does not dream that I
-have its description here, and that it can be sworn to. Surely he was not
-dressed as a policeman?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, sir, he sed he was a private officer.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'And you believed him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Again Mrs. Middlemore moaned, 'What else could I do, sir?
-what else could I do? He spoke that confident and easy that an angel would 'ave
-believed what he sed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't be taken in again. Be just a little more careful in
-your dealings with strangers.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will, sir, I will.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I don't see that I can do any good by remaining here. I
-should like, though, to take down from your lips a description of the man. You
-can give it to me, I hope?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can, sir. A tall man, very thin, with a long thin face and
-thick black eyebrows.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is that all?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'All I can remember, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our reporter wrote the words in his pocketbook, and asked,
-'Can you tell me how he was dressed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Only that he had dark clothes on.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You would know him again if you saw him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I could swear to him, sir.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Come, that is a satisfaction. You can swear to the man, and
-I can swear to the revolver. Two direct pieces of evidence, if we can lay hands
-upon them.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy unexpectedly presented herself as an additional
-witness. 'I can swear to 'im too,' she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, Sophy, you are invaluable,' said our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Didn't I say the slut was telling us a parcel of lies?'
-cried Mrs. Middlemore, making a movement as though she were about to fall upon
-the girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Easy, Mrs. Middlemore, easy,' said our reporter, holding the
-housekeeper back. 'Let us hear what Sophy has to say.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But Sophy, firing up, diverged a moment. 'Jest look 'ere,
-aunty,' she said, with spirit. 'Don't yer be so fast with yer sluts and yer
-'uzzies. I'm gitting tired of it, I am. I ain't told one lie yet, and if yer
-don't mind what yer about I'll keep my mouth shut.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No, Sophy, my girl,' said our reporter, 'you will do nothing
-of the sort. You will tell me all you know about this man.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Jest you make 'er be civil, then,' said Sophy. 'She does
-nothink but bully me day and night. She don't pay me no wages, and I ain't going
-to stand it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Be reasonable Sophy,' said our reporter. 'Your aunt is
-worried, and you must make excuses for her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ain't I flesh and blood the same as she is?' continued the
-irate girl. 'I've a good mind to run away from 'er, that I am, and never come
-back no more. I'll do it. Tata, aunty, and thank yer for nothink.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Had it not been for our reporter, she would have run out of
-the house. He laid his hand gently on her arm, and said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Don't forget your promise to me, Sophy.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I won't; I'll keep it, never fear. I'll wear myself to skin
-and bone for yer--yes, I will, if it'll do yer any good; but I won't be bullied
-by 'er no more.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy's threat terrified Mrs. Middlemore; the prospect of
-being left in the house alone was appalling, and she straightway fell to on
-humble pie.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'm sorry for what I sed, Sophy, and I beg yer parding, and
-I'll give yer sixpence a week. There, now, be a good gal. But yer did tell us
-yer couldn't git into the 'ouse.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No more I could. I knocked and rattled and kicked the door,
-and nobody come. 'Ow should I know that a tall, thin man, with a long face and
-thick black eyebrows, was the feller as took yer in?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You saw him, then?' said our reporter, observing that Mrs.
-Middlemore's apology and, the promise of sixpence a week had mollified the girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I sor 'im before I got to the 'ouse, but I didn't know
-he come out of it. He was jest what aunty sed he was, and what's more, he 'ad
-large flat feet.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'If you saw him again you could swear to him?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I'd pick 'im out of a thousan.' He run agin me, he did, and
-I sed, &quot;Who are yer pushing of?&quot; He didn't say nothink, but walked off forty to
-the dozen.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Looking as if he did not wish to attract notice?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, he did look like that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was he carrying anything?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not that I sor. He 'ad 'is coat buttoned up.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When he come to me,' said Mrs. Middlemore, 'it was
-unbuttoned.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Proving that he took something away with him. Anything else
-Sophy?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Nothink else.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You and your aunt are friends now, are you not?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Oh, I don't bear no malice.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore kissed Sophy, and her anger was entirely
-dispelled. Once more our reporter, having made peace between them, attempted to
-leave, but Mrs. Middlemore said, imploringly:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Would yer mind looking all over the 'ouse fust? He might be
-'iding in it to murder us in the night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sophy saw him walking away,' said our reporter; 'but to
-satisfy you I will go into every room; and I'll do something more, if you are
-agreeable. Could you make me up a bed?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, sir, I could, in any room you like.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'M. Felix's bedroom will do for me. Don't look startled; I am
-almost as brave as Sophy. Put the bed straight, and I'll come some time between
-eleven and twelve o'clock, and pass the night here.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mrs. Middlemore was profuse in her thanks, and our reporter
-searched the house from top to bottom. Assuring the housekeeper that she was
-quite safe, he succeeded in making his escape.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_21" href="#div1Ref_21">CHAPTER XXI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>CIRCUMSTANTIAL EVIDENCE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He had taken mental note of the name of the firm at which the
-suit of clothes which had been found in the river was purchased, and he went
-direct to that establishment in Tottenham Court Road. It happened, fortunately,
-that business was slack at that time of the day, and as customers were few and
-far between he had little difficulty in obtaining an interview with the manager,
-who, when he heard that our reporter was engaged upon the <i>Evening Moon</i>,
-gave him his entire attention.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It's the smartest paper in London,' said the manager; 'I
-take it in regularly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I should like you to treat the matter I have come upon as
-private between you and me. We are interested in a certain case which may or may
-not be made public, and in which, perhaps, you can assist us in an indirect way.
-If it prove to be so your establishment will get an advertisement for nothing.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We shall be glad to get it,' said the manager. 'A good word
-from you gentlemen of the press is always acceptable. I dare say you notice we
-advertise in your paper. Tell me what I can do for you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I wish to ascertain, confidentially, under what
-circumstances a certain suit of clothes was purchased in your establishment. All
-the clothing you sell is marked with your name, is it not?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, wherever we can get it in. There are some things that
-cannot be marked, but suits of clothes can; coats on the bands they are hung up
-by, waistcoats on the inner lining, trousers on the waistbands. What kind of a
-suit was it, and on what day was it purchased?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I cannot name the day exactly, but say within the last two
-or three weeks. It was a suit of tweed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can you identify the pattern?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, if you will let me see samples of your stock.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will show you what we have.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They looked through a wonderful assortment of men's clothing,
-but our reporter saw none exactly similar to the pattern he wished to identify.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was it a suit for a large or a small man?' inquired the
-manager.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'For a small man; almost what you would call a youth's suit.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What you have seen is principally our new stock; we have
-some others which our salesmen endeavor to get rid of; we don't like to keep old
-stock too long on our hands.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They went through other departments, and at length, on one of
-the upper shelves, our reporter pointed to a pattern he thought he recognized.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That seems to be it. I shall know on a closer inspection.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The suit was taken down, and our reporter saw that he had
-reached the first stage of his inquiry.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'This is the pattern,' he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It narrows the matter,' said the manager. 'There is only
-this one suit left of this particular pattern. Three weeks ago there were two,
-so that within that time one has been sold. The salesman in this department is a
-man with a good memory.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The salesman being called, our reporter explained what he
-wanted. The man considered a little, and said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I remember something of it, because of a circumstance. I
-will look up my sale book and compare it with the day book, to fix the date.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He departed to make the investigation, and, returning, said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I can tell you all about it now. I served the lady myself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The lady!' exclaimed our reporter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, it was a lady who made the purchase. I served her first
-with a suit which she paid for, and which she brought back later in the day,
-saying it was too large. I changed it for one of this pattern.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did she say for whom she required the clothes?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'For a young man of about her own size. I supposed they were
-for a son or for a brother much younger than herself.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What should you judge her age to have been?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Forty or so.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I told you he had a good memory,' said the manager, with an
-approving smile at his salesman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You speak of her as a lady,' said our reporter. 'Are you
-certain she was one?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'She spoke and conducted herself as one. She was not a
-workingman's wife, or she would have been more particular as to price, and might
-have haggled a bit, though all our clothes are marked in plain figures. I could
-see she wasn't used to purchasing men's clothing from the remarks she made. All
-that she was particular about was the fit.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What did she pay for the suit?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Fifty-five shillings. She handed me a five-pound note, and I
-gave her the change. Working women don't pay for their purchases in bank notes.
-Would you like the number of the note?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Can you give it to me?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes; we always take down the numbers.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Again he departed and returned, and gave our reporter the
-number of the note, written on a bill-head.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I am under a great obligation to you,' said our reporter.
-'Is this suit you have left the only one of the same pattern you have in your
-establishment?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The only one, sir, and we are not likely to have any more.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I will take it with me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The account was made out, settled, and receipted, and our
-reporter, thanking the manager, left the shop--which, in accordance with modern
-ideas, was called an 'Emporium'--with the suit of clothes under his arm. He had
-a distinct motive in making the purchase. The inspector might take it into his
-head to make inquiries at the establishment, and our reporter had removed the
-only evidence of direct identification it could furnish.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was now six o'clock. His appointment with Mrs. Weston in
-Forston Street was fixed for eight. He had an hour and a half to spare,
-sufficient time to take a chop and a pancake and to arrange his ideas. Selecting
-a quiet-looking restaurant, he took a seat at an unoccupied table, ordered his
-chop and pancake, and began to write in the convenient reporter's book which he
-always kept about him. He did this for clearness; he felt that he was
-approaching an important point in the mission he had taken upon himself, and
-that his interview with Mrs. Weston was destined to be pregnant in results. It
-would be of assistance to him to set things down in writing instead of trusting
-entirely to memory. The memoranda he made are now set forth:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Heads of circumstantial evidence which lead me to the belief
-that Mrs. Mary Weston, otherwise E. B. (initials worked in lady's handkerchief),
-is directly connected with the incidents which happened in Mrs. Middlemore's
-house in Gerard Street, Soho, on the night of the death of M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;First--On that night a man was seen making a hurried escape
-from the house at the moment (presumably) M. Felix was drawing his last breath.
-The only description, if description it can be called, that has been given of
-this man is that he wore round his neck a red scarf.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Second--Last night, or rather early this morning, on the
-occasion of my visit to Mrs. Weston's lovely daughter, I observed, before I left
-the young lady, a red silk scarf. Query: Might not this red scarf be the same as
-that which the man who escaped from the house in Gerard Street wore round his
-neck?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Third--There was blood on the floor of M. Felix's room. There
-was no wound on the body of M. Felix. The blood, therefore, proceeded from a
-wound inflicted on the person of M. Felix's visitor. My discovery in M. Felix's
-room of the dagger, with a handle resembling a twisted snake and a ruby in its
-head to represent an eye, led to the incontrovertible conclusion that it was the
-weapon with which this wound was inflicted. The blood stains on the blade prove
-it. M. Felix, snatching up the dagger, flung it at his visitor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Fourth--Mrs. Weston has on her left arm a wound which is not
-yet healed. When I inadvertently grasped her arm she cried from pain. Inquiring
-whether I had hurt her she replied that her arm had 'been cut to the bone.'
-Query: Might not this be the wound that was inflicted by M. Felix's dagger?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Fifth--In that case Mrs. Weston must have paid a visit to M.
-Felix on the night of his death. Query: Might she not have paid this visit
-disguised in a man's clothes?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sixth--The circumstantial evidence upon which this assumption
-is based: In the first place, Mrs. Weston last night, believing herself to be
-unobserved, threw a bundle into the River Thames. She refused to state what this
-bundle contained. I asked her. 'Will you tell them' (the policemen) 'what it was
-you threw into the river?' She replied, 'I cannot tell them. It might injure--it
-might ruin me.' Deduction--that if it were proved that the suit of clothes found
-in the river this morning belonged to her she would be placed in a position of
-extreme danger. The second piece of circumstantial evidence in connection with
-this suit of man's clothing comes from the establishment in Tottenham Court Road
-at which it was purchased. The salesman says that the purchaser was a lady. Mrs.
-Weston is a lady. She paid for it with a bank note, the number of which can be
-traced. The suit would fit a person of her height and build. In the third
-place--She gave a false name. This circumstance, supposing that she has
-committed a wrongful act, would weigh heavily against her. In the fourth
-place--She carried about with her an advertisement relating to the death of M.
-Felix, in which the proprietors of the <i>Evening Moon</i> pledged themselves to
-give the best legal assistance to any person or persons who are in any way
-interested in the death of M. Felix. Reasonable deduction--That this lady,
-having taken the trouble to cut out and preserve the advertisement with such
-conspicuous care, must be interested in his death.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There are other items which I will set down and consider
-later on. Meanwhile----</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do I believe Mrs. Weston, otherwise E. B., to be guilty of
-any wrongful act in connection with M. Felix? I do not. I believe her to be a
-perfectly innocent woman. Upon what grounds? Upon the grounds of sympathy--which
-would not count with such weighty circumstantial evidence against her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do I believe that she paid a visit to M. Felix on the night
-of his death, disguised in man's clothes? I do; and I believe that the visit was
-paid without the slightest intention of doing him a personal injury. She is
-delicate and fragile, destitute of the strength necessary to carry out a deed of
-violence. M. Felix must have possessed at least to some slight extent a man's
-strength, more than amply sufficient to successfully oppose any design of
-violence on the part of a lady of Mrs. Weston's feeble frame.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For what object, then, was this visit paid? To right some
-wrong which Mrs. Weston was suffering at his hands. I declare myself to be her
-champion, and the champion of her lovely daughter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In conclusion: The most extraordinary feature in the case
-remains still without any light being thrown upon it. Where is his body, and for
-what reason was it stolen from the house in Gerard Street?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At eight o'clock precisely our reporter arrived at No. 21
-Forston Street, Camden Town, and was ushered into the room occupied by Mrs.
-Weston and her daughter Constance. Lovely as had been the young girl's
-appearance last night, she was even lovelier now. Then her face was darkened
-with anxiety, now it was free from care, and the most careless observer could
-not have failed to know that a perfect and most beautiful love existed between
-the mother and her child. The young lady blushed as our reporter entered, and
-rose and offered him her hand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I beg you to forgive my rudeness last night,' she said. 'I
-did not know then.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your conduct was perfectly natural, he said, taking her
-hand, 'such as I should have approved of in a sister of my own.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She bowed gracefully, and retired to an inner room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'It is my wish,' explained the elder lady, 'that our
-interview should be private. What have you there?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He had brought the new suit of clothes with him, and he had
-placed the brown paper parcel on the table and was now untying it. Her face
-turned to a deadly whiteness when the suit was exposed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have nothing to fear,' said our reporter. 'I have
-brought this with me to convince you how necessary it is that you should have by
-you a friend as sincere as I.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He then related to her what had passed between him and the
-inspector with reference to the suit which had been found in the river, and also
-the particulars of his visit to the clothing establishment in Tottenham Court
-Road.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In the interests of our readers we withhold a categorical
-account of the conversation which ensued. Sufficient for the present to state
-that the lady placed in this reliable gentleman the most implicit confidence.
-Our narrative now assumes another shape. A strange and pathetic drama is about
-to be unfolded. The veil which enshrouds the past will be uplifted, and we owe
-our reporter our grateful thanks for the manner in which he has chosen to
-narrate as touching a story as has ever been presented to the readers of
-fiction. It links the past with the present, and it is true to the life. For a
-little while our reporter and ourselves disappear from the scene. We may revert
-hereafter to our original plan--indeed we may be compelled to revert to it in
-this way because the matters of which we shall have to speak are public
-property. What follows is a literal copy of the manuscript supplied by our
-reporter; not an incident is exaggerated, not a passion disfigured. Step by
-step, with unswerving zeal and untiring devotion, the Mystery of M. Felix is
-being unravelled and brought to light.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h3><a name="div0_02" href="#div0Ref_02"><i>BOOK SECOND</i>.</a></h3>
-
-<h3>A LIFE DRAMA: LINKS IN THE MYSTERY.</h3>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_22" href="#div1Ref_22">CHAPTER XXII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE HALF-BROTHERS.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is better to be born lucky than rich&quot; is one of the few
-proverbs to which the lie cannot be given by a proverb in the opposite
-direction. If Gerald Paget had had the choice, and had he been blessed with
-wisdom, he would have chosen luck in the place of riches, but he could not be
-credited with either of these conditions. He was born to riches, and he was too
-amiable and easy-natured to ripen into wisdom. When he first met Emilia Braham
-he was twenty-four years of age; she was eighteen, and in a position of
-dependence; Gerald was wealthy, and to a certain extent his own master. His
-father had died three months before this meeting with the beautiful young girl,
-whose association was to bring into his life both happiness and woe. He had only
-one close relative, a half-brother, a few years older than himself, who was then
-absent in Australia; the name of this brother was Leonard, and it was he who was
-destined to hold in his hands the skeins of Gerald's fate.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Their father had been twice married, and Leonard was the son
-of his first wife. She brought him no fortune, and he himself had but little.
-Shortly after Leonard was born she died, and the widowed husband went with his
-child to Switzerland, where he met with the lady who was to replace the wife he
-had lost. She possessed a large fortune in her own right, of which with her
-husband's full approval, she kept control. Although they had met and were
-married in Switzerland, they were both English, and to England they returned,
-and set up their home there. One child blessed their union, Gerald, whom they
-idolized and did their best to spoil. They did not neglect their duty to
-Leonard; they performed it cheerfully and lovingly, but it was nevertheless the
-fact that Gerald was the magnet to which their hearts more constantly turned.
-The difference between the ages of the half-brothers was a bar to that close and
-sympathetic association of interests which frequently exists between children of
-equal age. The child of six and the child of fourteen have little in common;
-still less when one is twelve and the other twenty. But despite this disparity
-and these unfavorable conditions, Gerald adored his big brother, and bowed down
-before him as a being of a very superior order. Leonard's tastes was for travel,
-and as a young man he spent much of his time on the Continent, picking up
-foreign ways, and also foreign vices, which he kept very carefully concealed
-from the knowledge of his father and step-mother. When he came home from these
-Continental jaunts he always brought with him remembrances for little Gerald,
-whose affectionate, grateful heart magnified their value, and invested with rare
-qualities the spirit which animated the giver. Leonard was supplied with ample
-funds to indulge in his whims and pleasures, and he took life easily, accepting
-it as his right that his purse should be always well filled. Presently, however,
-a change came over the spirit of his dream, a change which caused the evil
-forces within him to spring into active life. His stepmother died, and left a
-will. Its terms were as follows:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">To her stepson, Leonard, she left an income of four hundred
-pounds, and expressed a hope that he would adopt some profession or pursuit in
-which he might attain fortune and distinction. His father was empowered to
-further in a practical way any step in this direction. To her son Gerald she
-also left an income of four hundred pounds, but there was this difference
-between the bequests. Leonard's remained always the same--four hundred pounds,
-no more and no less; whereas Gerald's, when he reached the age of twenty-one,
-was increased to one thousand pounds. Moreover, upon the death of his father,
-all that Mrs. Paget devised to her husband was to revert to her son, whose
-income would then amount to nearly four thousand pounds. Leonard, studying the
-will, reckoned this up, and said, &quot;I am the elder son, and I have exactly
-one-tenth of the younger son's fortune.&quot; There was another clause in the will.
-As upon the death of the father the income that was left to him was to fall to
-Gerald, so, should it happen that both Gerald and his father died before
-Leonard, the entire fortune would fall to the elder son. In the event of Gerald
-marrying this would not be the case; Gerald could devise to his wife and
-children, if he had any, all that he possessed, thus, as it were, disbarring
-Leonard. For the soured and disappointed young man there were, then, these
-chances: First, that his father should die. Second, that Gerald should die.
-Third, that he should die unmarried. These conditions fulfilled, Leonard would
-become the master of four thousand pounds a year. It occurred to Leonard that
-the sooner all this occurred the better, and the thought having obtained
-lodgement in his mind, remained there.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Safely hidden, safely concealed. He was not a man who wore his
-heart upon his sleeve. He was one who could present a smiling face while he was
-concocting the cunningest of schemes. He had but one view of life, the pursuit
-of pleasure. There was a certain similarity between him and Gerald; they were
-both easy-natured outwardly, but there was no guile in Gerald's disposition,
-while guile was the very essence of Leonard's.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't very well live on four hundred a year,&quot; he said to
-his father, after the death of his step-mother. &quot;You never led me to expect that
-I should have to do so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will double it, Len,&quot; said the indulgent father; &quot;but you
-are a man now, and understand things. The fortune which has enabled us to
-maintain our position was strictly my wife's and she had a right to do what she
-pleased with it. Had it not been for her money you and I would have been poor
-gentlemen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is all very well,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;but the reflection
-comes too late, father. To bring up a person in the expectation of fortune, and
-then to suddenly let him down to poverty, is not what I call just or fair. That
-is all I want--justice, and I have a right to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Every person has a right to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then you agree with me that I am hardly treated.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Eight hundred a year is not a bad income, Len.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But, if you will forgive me for mentioning it, father--I am a
-man, as you say, and can't help thinking of things--that is only during your
-lifetime. Heaven forbid that anything should happen to you, but we are all
-mortal, and down I should drop to a miserable seven or eight pounds a week.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Gerald has the sweetest disposition in the world,&quot; said Mr.
-Paget; &quot;you can always depend upon him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Depend upon him, depend upon him!&quot; repeated Leonard,
-fretfully. &quot;Is it right, is it just, that the elder should depend upon the
-younger?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mr. Paget sighed; he was not strong in argument.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will make it a thousand,&quot; he said, &quot;and you must look out
-for a profession which will treble it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll see what Gerald will do toward it,&quot; said Leonard; and he
-actually went to the lad, who ran to his father, and said that poor Len must
-have two hundred a year more; so that subtle Leonard managed to obtain an income
-of twelve hundred pounds, a very fair slice of the fortune left by Mrs. Paget.
-He did not trouble himself to look for a profession, but carried out his view of
-life with zeal and ability. He spent his money on himself, but he did not
-squander it. He generally managed to obtain his money's worth, and he was wise
-in his liberality. Nevertheless, pleasure ran ahead of him, and in racing after
-it he came to grief, and had to mortgage his own private income of four hundred
-pounds to such an extent that it presently passed out of his hands and became
-the property of the money-lenders. His father and half-brother never failed him;
-they were living quietly and modestly in England, and every appeal Leonard made
-to them was promptly and affectionately responded to. He was not thankful for
-the assistance; there gathers upon some natures a crust of selfishness so thick
-as to deaden the sentiment of gratitude for kindness rendered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus matters went on till the father died. Leonard, as has
-been stated, was in Australia at the time. It was not a spirit of enterprise
-that took him there, nor any idea of business; he was enamoured of a pretty
-face, and he followed, or accompanied it, to the antipodes--it matters not
-which. When he received news of his father's death, the enchantment was over,
-and another chapter in his book of selfish pleasures was closed. He cabled home
-for money. Gerald cabled him back a thousand pounds. &quot;By jove,&quot; thought Leonard;
-&quot;he must be richer than I thought.&quot; It was so. Mr. Paget had saved half his
-income and had invested it well, so that, upon his death, Gerald found himself
-in possession of a handsome sum of money in addition to the income which now
-fell to his share. Leonard remained in Australia long enough to spend
-three-fourths of the thousand pounds--it did not take long--and then he took
-ship to England, with the firm resolve to milk his cow, his half-brother Gerald,
-who received him with open arms. But between the day of Mr. Paget's death and
-the day of Leonard's return to England, Gerald met Emilia Braham. That made all
-the difference.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_23" href="#div1Ref_23">CHAPTER XXIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>TWO HEARTS THAT BEAT AS ONE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">There is no position in the world more cruel than that of a
-young girl, born in a good condition of life and delicately brought up, who
-suddenly finds herself bereft of means, of home, of love. Into this position was
-Emilia Braham thrust on the day her father was carried dead to the house in
-which he and his only child had passed many happy years. A scaffolding, loosely
-constructed, had given way as he passed beneath it, and he lay under the ruins
-with the life crushed out of him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It had been a home of love, and the anxieties of the father
-had not been shared by the gentle, beautiful girl whose presence brightened it,
-whose pure spirit sanctified it. For it was indeed a sanctuary to the loving
-father, whose only aim had been to provide for his daughter, so that she might
-be spared the pangs which poverty brings in its train. In this endeavor he would
-almost certainly have succeeded had he been spared; but the fatal accident
-nipped his hopes in the bud, and she was left penniless and alone. Mr. Braham
-had kept up his head, as the saying is, and none who knew him had any idea of
-the clever man&#339;uvring he had practised to keep him and his daughter from falling
-out of the ranks in which they had moved all their lives. A rash speculation had
-brought him to this pass, and for years he had been struggling to extricate
-himself from its consequences. Another year and all would have been well; but
-death came too soon, and his daughter lived to reap what he had sown.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Even the home had to be sold to satisfy the creditors, and
-when this was done Emilia, a child of eighteen, faced the world with a shrinking
-heart. She had in her purse barely £5; the few trinkets she had possessed had
-been sold; she had set great store upon them, and was amazed to discover that
-their value was so small. For the last, last time she walked through the
-familiar rooms, and touched the walls, and knelt by her bed; and then she crept
-out of the house and proceeded to the two rooms she had taken in a street hard
-by. It would have quite broken her heart to go out of the neighborhood in which
-she and her dear father had lived.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon the first news of the dreadful loss she had sustained
-friends came and sympathized with her, but when it was known that her father
-died a ruined man, the sympathy expressed proved to be mere vaporing; those who
-had spoken so softly and kindly came no more. Emilia did not appeal to them;
-when they met her in the streets, and passed by with hasty nods, she did not
-stop and ask the reason why. Her heart was sorely wounded, but her pride also
-was touched. The offence and the slight were more against the dead than the
-living, and she suffered chiefly for the dear lost father's sake. She went to
-her lodgings, and looked around at the cold walls until she could look no more
-for the tears in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She lived quietly and sadly for two weeks, at the end of which
-time she had but a guinea left of her £5. A terrible fear took possession of
-her. What would become of her when her purse was empty? She had not been
-entirely idle, but had made some efforts to obtain a situation as governess. She
-could speak French and German fluently; she could draw, she could paint, she was
-a good musician, she could dance, and her manners were refined. But with all
-these advantages she was unsuccessful. And now she had but a guinea to her
-fortune, and the future was before her. She took refuge in prayer; it comforted,
-but it was of no practical assistance to her. Sunrise and sunset, sunrise and
-sunset again, and again, and again; and now her purse was empty. But she was
-saved from absolute despair. At the supreme moment a visitor knocked at her
-door, and entered without waiting to be bidden.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Call her a lady if you will, our business with her will last
-but a brief space. Her name was Seaton.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I hear, Miss Braham, that you require a situation,&quot; said Mrs.
-Seaton, unceremoniously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam,&quot; said Emilia, her hand at her heart. This
-hard-featured, hard-voiced visitor had surely been sent from heaven to succor
-her. &quot;Will you be seated?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Seaton took a chair without a word of thanks. &quot;Have you
-been out before?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Out, madam?&quot; says Emilia. Unused to worldly ways and idioms,
-she did not catch the meaning of the phrase.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I suppose you have had other situations,&quot; explained Mrs.
-Seaton, with ungracious condescension.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, madam.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is not encouragement. You have no character, then.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My character,&quot; faltered Emilia, &quot;is well known. My dear
-father and I have lived in this neighborhood many years.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not like evasions. You know the kind of character I
-mean. Fitness to teach young children, capacity, willingness, experience,
-cheerfulness, readiness to make yourself useful in any way.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I would be willing to make myself useful, madam, to do all I
-was told. I think I could teach young children. Will you try me? I beg of you to
-do so. I am in a dreadful position; I have not a shilling in the world, and not
-a friend, I am afraid. Try me, madam. I will do everything you wish.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Umph! Not a shilling in the world! And not a friend! Still
-more discouraging, because, Miss Braham, we generally get what we deserve.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think I deserve friends, madam,&quot; said Emilia, striving to
-keep back her tears, &quot;but I have been unfortunate. I think you would be
-satisfied with me. I would try very, very hard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She held out her trembling hands; to a tender hearted woman
-the affecting appeal would have been irresistible.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A lady,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, &quot;has to be careful whom she takes
-into her home. I have six young children. What can you teach?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In timid accents Emilia went through her accomplishments.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have only your word for it,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am telling the truth, indeed, madam.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;People are so deceitful, and what is almost as bad, so,
-ungrateful. I'll take you on trial, Miss Braham, will you promise to teach my
-sweet children and do everything that is required of you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam,&quot; replied Emilia, eagerly, &quot;everything; and you
-will find me very grateful--indeed, indeed you will.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will wait to convince myself of that. When can you come?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At once, madam. To-day, if you wish.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not to-day; to-morrow, early. Servants invariably come at
-night, which shows their unwillingness and the spirit in which they accept a
-situation. Here is my address. You understand? I take you on trial only.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam, I understand, and I thank you with all my heart.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course, in these circumstances I can give you no wages for
-the first month. If we suit each other we will arrange terms afterward. Is that
-agreeable to you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite agreeable, madam. I will come to-morrow morning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very well; I shall expect you before twelve.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">That night Emilia went to bed without food; but her week's
-rent was paid and she left her lodgings without disgrace.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then commenced a life of torture. The children she had to
-teach were quarrelsome and vicious, and no taskmaster could have been harder
-than Mrs. Seaton was to the servants in her house. Two had left; two had given
-notice to leave. The consequence was that Emilia's mistress called upon her to
-do every kind of menial office, and willing as Emilia was, she found herself
-unequal to them. She sat up late at night, and rose early in the morning, played
-the part of nurse, schoolmistress, lady's maid, and housemaid, never receiving a
-word of thanks, until existence became unbearable. Driven to despair, without a
-home, without a friend, without money, she did not know which way to turn.
-Delicately nurtured, a lady by instinct and education, refined in her manners,
-and unused to menial work, no more deplorable position could be imagined. It was
-while she was in this sore strait that she made the acquaintance of Gerald
-Paget.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Twice in each week she had the privilege of walking out alone
-for an hour in the afternoon. Gerald, passing her, was attracted by the gentle
-beauty of her face, and blessed his good fortune when he met her for the second
-time. On this second occasion chance assisted him to an introduction. She was
-crossing the road, engrossed in sad thought, when warning shouts aroused her
-from her musings. There were cabs coming one way, carts another, and between
-them she was in danger of being run over. She slipped and fell, and Gerald,
-rushing forward, caught her up and bore her to the pavement. But fright and
-weakness had prostrated her, and she lay in his arms in a fainting condition. He
-carried her into a chemist's shop, where she revived. The words of kindness and
-sympathy which fell upon her ears when she opened her eyes, the tender
-consideration expressed in Gerald's voice, overpowered the suffering girl, and
-she burst into a passion of hysterical tears. With difficulty he soothed her,
-but every word he uttered rendered more profound the impression he had already
-produced upon the young girl. The unaccustomed notes of tenderness touched
-Emilia's heart, and that night as she lay in bed she recalled the words and the
-voice and dwelt with infinite gratitude upon the image of the young gentleman
-who had treated her with so much gentleness and consideration. But he did not
-leave her before he saw her safely to Mrs. Seaton's door; she would have had it
-otherwise, but he would not allow her to have her way, and on their road he
-heard from her lips the pitiful story of her misfortunes, He made inquiries, and
-learnt that her story was true, and this increased his pity for her. As she
-dwelt upon his image on that night, so did he on hers, and thus from their first
-meeting was established a spiritual connection between them. On the following
-day he called at Mrs. Seaton's house to inquire how Miss Paget was after her
-accident, and as this was the first time that lady had heard of it she was not
-in the most amiable of moods when she next spoke to the young lady she had
-engaged, and whom she was treating as a slave.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot,&quot; she said, &quot;have young gentlemen calling at my
-house after my domestics.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But Emilia's spirit had been roused by the adventure. The
-consciousness that she was not entirely friendless gave her confidence and
-courage.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not improper that he should call to inquire,&quot; she
-said. &quot;He would have done so had I been living at home with my father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The cases are different,&quot; observed Mrs. Seaton, loftily. &quot;Not
-entirely, madam,&quot; said Emilia, with a certain firmness. &quot;Mr. Paget is a
-gentleman, and I am a lady.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You! A lady!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Seaton, in great astonishment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam. Poverty does not degrade one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon this Mrs. Seaton commenced to storm and use bad language,
-and was so violent that Emilia was glad to escape from the room. From that day
-the unkind woman practised a system of oppression which almost drove Emilia mad.
-Had she possessed sufficient means to keep herself for even a week she would
-have fled from the house; but although she had now been in Mrs. Seaton's service
-for longer than the stipulated month not a word had been said about salary, nor
-had she received a shilling from her mistress. She remained because she was
-compelled to remain, and because she was powerless. Had Gerald been a lady
-instead of a gentleman she would have mustered courage to ask assistance from
-him, but as it was such a request was impossible. Mrs. Seaton's character,
-however, was well known to her neighbors, and from one with whom he had a slight
-acquaintance Gerald obtained information which made him unusually serious and
-grave. He had continued to call at the house, and had contrived to meet Emilia
-upon her afternoon walks; but Mrs. Seaton had received him with unbending
-stiffness, and he could not fail to observe Emilia's unhappiness. He loved the
-young girl, and it was not long before he made his sentiments known to her, but
-she, contrasting their positions, hardly dared to listen to him. For this he had
-partly to thank Mrs. Seaton, who, seeing that Gerald was strongly inclined to
-Emilia, treated the young girl to long and bitter dissertations upon the &quot;infamy
-&quot;--it was the word she used--of encouraging his attentions. She declared that
-such conduct was indelicate, unwomanly, disgraceful, and heaven knows what;
-there was no limit to her vituperation, and the unhappy girl, conscious that she
-loved Gerald and was not his equal, passed long nights in tears and sighs. When
-he commenced to speak upon the theme which was nearest his heart, she said, &quot;I
-must not listen to you. I must not, I must not! If you have any respect for me,
-do not continue.&quot; Having more than a respect for her, having now a love as
-honest as it was profound, he obeyed her for a time; but still when he parted
-from her at the door he said, &quot;Good-by, Emilia,&quot; as he pressed her hand, and she
-did not chide him for the familiarity. This gave him what he lacked, courage,
-and he did not lose hope. At length he resolved to put an end to this
-uncertainty, and as she begged him not to speak, he did the next best thing. He
-wrote, and entreated her to reply. But no reply came; and on the next occasion
-of her hour's holiday he did not see her at the accustomed place. What was the
-reason? Had he offended her? Had he been mistaken in believing that she loved
-him? Why did she not write to him? Why did she keep away from him? Lovers only
-who have gone through the stages of doubt and uncertainty can understand what he
-suffered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But on the next occasion she did appear. He hastened to her
-side.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia!&quot; he cried.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh! hush,&quot; she sighed. &quot;It is not right--it is not right!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It cannot be wrong,&quot; he said, tenderly, leading her to a
-sequestered spot. &quot;You are unhappy, Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very very unhappy. And I am born to make others so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not hear you say that and be silent. You were born to
-make me happy, and can--if you only will, Amelia; if you only will!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His ardor, his impetuosity, his sincerity, made her weak. She
-clung to him for support, and the next moment released herself and stood
-upright, inwardly reproaching herself, for being so foolish. Had she been the
-most artful of her sex she could not, all through, have acted more cunningly to
-fasten the chains which bound him to her; but she was only a weak and innocent
-girl, and when one such as she meets with a genuine, honest soul like Gerald,
-love is more powerful than cunning.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia, why did you not reply to my letter?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What letter?&quot; she asked, in surprise.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The letter I wrote to you. Five days I sent it, and I have
-counted the minutes. It is not like you, Emilia, to make me suffer so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She turned her sweet face to him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have received no letter, Mr. Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have received no letter from me--and you will not call me
-Gerald!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have received no letter,&quot; she repeated, &quot;and I cannot call
-you--what you desire.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well,&quot; he said, with hot impatience, &quot;let that rest awhile;
-we will speak of it again, and you will make me happy, I am sure, by doing such
-a very little thing as that. But my letter? I sent it to you--posted it with my
-own hands. Do you think I would entrust it to another?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How can I say? I do not even know what was in it. Five days
-ago! And why did you write to me? Oh, Mr. Paget, have you no regard for my
-helpless position?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can you ask me such a question, Emilia?&quot; he said,
-reproachfully. &quot;Do you think there lives in the world a man who has a more
-sincere respect and esteem for you than I have?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, no,&quot; she cried. &quot;I did not intend to do you an injustice.
-I beg you to forgive me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Freely,&quot; he said, and spoke now with less impetuosity.
-&quot;Whenever I have approached the subject of my love for you--do not stop me,
-Emilia; the words are spoken--whenever I have done that, you have begged me to
-desist. Well, I obeyed you; not for all the wide world, Emilia, would I cause
-you one moment's pain. But you did not tell me not to write, and so I
-wrote--what was in my heart, what is in it now, and I implored you to send me an
-answer soon. I am sure you would have done so had you received it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not know. The letter never reached me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I addressed it to the care of Mrs. Seaton.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it was delivered to her, she did not give it to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It must have been delivered to her; it must have been left at
-her house, and to keep it from you is a crime. She shall be punished for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, Mr. Paget, do not make things harder for me than they are
-already!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was an involuntary confession, the first she had made to
-him, and it opened his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are not happy with her?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She did not reply. To have admitted it would have been almost
-like asking protection from him. Her sensitive nature shrunk from such an
-indelicacy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must go back now,&quot; she said, presently. &quot;I have been away
-too long.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will go with you, Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I entreat you not to do so. It will subject me to further
-indignity.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In this was conveyed a second involuntary confession; he noted
-it with burning indignation against Mrs. Seaton, but made no open comment upon
-it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I obey you,&quot; he said, &quot;in this as in everything else. You are
-suffering, and I pity you from my heart of hearts. I am also suffering. Will you
-not give me a little pity?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am very sorry for you, Mr. Paget; indeed, indeed I am. It
-would have been better for you had we never met.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can you utter such a heresy--you, the soul of truth and
-honesty? I bless the day on which I met you; it will live forever in my memory
-as the happiest in my life. Give me your hand. Why do you shrink? You would give
-it to the commonest friend, and I am at least that. Thank you. There! I merely
-press it, as an ordinary friend would do--only you must feel the pulses of my
-heart in my fingers. That is not my fault. I cannot help it beating, and beating
-for you, Emilia. May I walk with you a little way?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not far. You will not come with me to the door?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, if you insist. I will leave you before we reach it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before we are in the street, Mr. Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, before we are in the street. But I give you fair
-warning, Emilia. I must have an answer to my letter, and I must find out what
-has become of it. Is not that right?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I suppose it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not a matter of supposing. It is or it is not. Be as
-frank with me as I am with you, Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is right that you should ascertain what has become of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course. It is mine or yours. No one else's. We have
-something that is ours, in which no other person has any business to interfere.
-I shall think of that with satisfaction.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A simple letter, Mr. Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A simple letter,&quot; he said, very gravely, &quot;in which the
-happiness of an honest gentleman's life is enclosed. There! Do not tremble. I am
-not going to say anything more serious just now, but said it must be soon,
-Emilia, and then I shall know what the future will be for me. And even if I were
-dumb and that letter was never recovered, another can be written which shall
-reach its destination. Why do you stop? Oh, yes, you wish me to say good-by
-here. Well, good-by, Emilia!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good-by, Mr. Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Will you not call me Gerald? Such a little word, Emilia!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She fled; but not before she had given him a sweet and timid
-look which caused his heart to throb with hope, as it was already throbbing with
-love.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_24" href="#div1Ref_24">CHAPTER XXIV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>SLANDER.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Later in the day Mrs. Seaton was informed that a gentleman was
-waiting to see her. Entering the room she saw Gerald Paget. She received him as
-usual with a frown, of which he took no notice. By this time he was hardened to
-the coldness of her receptions of him. Besides, he had prepared himself for the
-interview, and knew pretty well what he intended to say to her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought, Mr. Paget,&quot; she said, &quot;that I had made you
-understand it is not my wish to encourage your visits to any of my servants.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did not inquire for any of your servants,&quot; he said, very
-politely, &quot;but for you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What have you to say to me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Something to the point--presently. First, however, I must
-correct you in a misconception into which you appear to have fallen. My visits
-to this house have been quite open, and have not been made to a servant.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Indeed! To whom, then?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To a lady who accepted the position of governess to your
-children. It is not usual to call these gentlewomen servants.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I decline,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, &quot;to enter into any argument
-with you on the point. I know the exact position of persons in my employ and the
-proper titles to give them. You are a young man, and have much to learn.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am aware of it, Mrs. Seaton; you, also, have something to
-learn. But I would impress strongly upon you the fact that Miss Braham is a
-lady, and--your equal.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By no means--but I shall not argue. Oblige me by coming at
-once to the purport of your visit to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The purport is a grave one, Mrs. Seaton, and I shall be sorry
-if the result is not satisfactory to you. A few days ago I addressed a letter to
-Miss Braham, which has not reached her hands.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What has that to do with me?&quot; Mrs. Seaton asked this question
-without flinching. She had received the letter, read it, and if she had any fear
-of consequences she did not show it. Her manner was rather scornful than guilty.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A great deal I should say,&quot; replied Gerald. &quot;It is no light
-matter to purloin a letter addressed to another person.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Purloin, sir!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is the word I have used, and intended to use. I wish to
-know what you have done with that letter?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have done nothing with it. No such letter was ever left at
-this house to my knowledge.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What if I set afoot an inquiry which would prove that to be
-not the truth?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Seaton rang the bell. &quot;I must request you to leave the
-house,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will do so in a minute or two. I happen to know that your
-letter-box is kept locked, and that no one opens it but yourself. I regret to be
-compelled to say to a lady that it is a wicked and cowardly action to
-appropriate a letter not addressed to herself. Of such an action you have
-undoubtedly been guilty. May I inquire if the letter I refer to is still in
-existence?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You may inquire what you please, sir, but I shall make no
-reply to your insults. I presume you have obtained certain information from Miss
-Braham.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, she informed me that she had not received a letter I
-wrote to her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She informed you,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, with a venomous look.
-&quot;When?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This afternoon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I understand. You and she are in the habit of meeting in
-secret outside my house. Such conduct is infamous, and now that I have positive
-knowledge of such proceedings I shall know how to act. Mr. Paget, we are
-speaking here in private, with no listeners to report what is said. Let me
-advise you to be careful as to what you say or do about this imaginary letter of
-yours. The young person you refer to may have a good name to lose, and it will
-be foolish on your part to set a lady of my standing in society against her. Mud
-will stick, Mr. Paget, never mind, by whom it is thrown, but when it is thrown
-by a lady or gentleman of repute it will stick all the closer. I learn, too
-late, that you have used my house as an assignation house----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are stating what is false,&quot; cried Gerald, indignantly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As an assignation house,&quot; repeated Mrs. Seaton, with a
-malicious smile. &quot;Having discovered your baseness--for you are no gentleman, Mr.
-Paget, and the other person implicated is no lady--there is only one course open
-to me. That course I shall pursue. If you do not leave my presence instantly I
-shall send for the police to remove you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With that, the venomous woman threw open the door, and Gerald
-Paget, dismayed and discomfited, took his departure.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A nice mess I have made of it,&quot; he thought, as he walked
-ruefully from the house, without venturing to look back. &quot;What on earth made me
-beard the lioness in her den? The lioness! Not at all. There is something of
-nobility in that breed, and Mrs. Seaton hasn't a particle of nobility about her.
-She is a serpent. Her fangs are poisonous. How will she act toward Emilia? Mud
-will stick, she says. But what does it matter if Emilia loves me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He allowed himself to be carried away by his enthusiasm. He
-was young, impulsive, honest, and straightforward. Grand weapons in honorable
-warfare, but when is war honorable? The world, with its hidden snares and
-pitfalls, lay before him and Emilia, in whose pure souls faith and love shone
-radiant. How would it fare with them when pitted against envy, greed, and
-malice? Here was Mrs. Seaton, ready to defame and blacken; and travelling
-swiftly toward them was the beggar and spendthrift, Leonard, the man of selfish
-pleasure.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_25" href="#div1Ref_25">CHAPTER XXV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>LOST, OR SAVED?</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Some three hours after Gerald's departure from the house,
-Emilia was summoned into the presence of Mrs. Seaton. When she received the
-message she was preparing for bed; it was night, and a heavy rain was falling.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have sent for you,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, gazing at the young
-girl with pitiless eyes, &quot;for the purpose of putting an immediate end to a
-disgraceful state of affairs. On the day I consented to take you upon trial, I
-informed you that I could give you no wages until I was satisfied that you would
-suit me. Is that correct?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You said,&quot; replied Emilia, &quot;that you could give me none for
-the first month, and that, if we suited each other, you would arrange terms
-afterward.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have been here nearly seven weeks, and no terms have been
-arranged.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is true, madam.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The fact being that we do not suit each other.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I fear it is so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In which case--the basis of any terms whatever being
-suitability--no wages are due to you up to this date. Legally you are entitled
-to nothing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You know best, madam.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have allowed you to remain in my house in the hope that
-certain doubts I entertained would be dispelled. I regret to say they are not
-dispelled. However, I shall not charge you for your board and lodging.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia bowed her head. Utterly inexperienced as she was, she
-had not the least doubt that Mrs. Seaton was putting the case fairly, and that
-she could really be called upon to pay for the food and shelter she had
-received.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ordinarily,&quot; continued Mrs. Seaton, &quot;one would expect
-gratitude for such kindness. I do not. Be kind enough to sign this paper.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon the table lay a written document which, with Emilia's
-signature to it, would free Mrs. Seaton from any possible liability. In the last
-sentence of the artfully-worded release, Emilia acknowledged that she left Mrs.
-Seaton's house and service of her own accord. The young girl took the pen which
-Mrs. Seaton held out to her, and was about to sign when the elder lady said,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wish you to read and understand what you are signing. I
-shall not put it in your power to say that I took advantage of your youth and
-inexperience--for that is the way you would put it, I expect.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia's eyes were blurred with tears, and although she took
-the paper in her trembling hands, she could not read what was written thereon.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is perfectly correct, is it not?&quot; asked Mrs. Seaton.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam,&quot; replied Emilia, faintly, glad of the opportunity
-of hiding her distress of mind, &quot;if you say it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course. You will observe that it places you in an
-unexpectedly favorable position. Leaving my service of your own accord will make
-it easier for you to obtain another situation, if such should be your desire.
-Wait a moment. I should like your signature to be witnessed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She rang the bell, and a maid appeared, a new servant who had
-arrived only that evening.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I rang for you, Jane, to witness Miss Braham's signature to
-this paper. You can write?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, yes, ma'am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Miss Braham has read the document, and perfectly understands
-its terms. That is the truth, is it not, Miss Braham?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, madam,&quot; said the helpless girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You hear, Jane? Now, Miss Braham, you can sign it if you
-wish.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia wrote her name, and Jane wrote hers as witness, proud
-of the confidence reposed in her. Then Mrs. Seaton gave the new servant some
-whispered instructions, and she left the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Had Emilia's agitation allowed her, she could not have failed
-to notice that while Jane was in the room Mrs. Seaton's voice was kind and
-considerate, in striking contrast to the tone in which she spoke when they were
-alone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And now, Miss Braham,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, folding up the paper
-and pocketing it with an air of triumph, &quot;you will leave my house at once.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At once, madam!&quot; exclaimed the bewildered girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This instant. I will not allow you to remain in it another
-hour. As the mother of a family I have a duty to perform. Your presence here is
-a contamination.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not answer your insults, madam,&quot; faltered Emilia, &quot;but
-it is night and rain is falling----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is not my affair. You are well known, and can easily
-find lodgement with some of your friends----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have none. You surely cannot be so cruel as to drive me
-away at such an hour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am prepared for anything you may say. The paper you have
-signed fully protects me from any base statements you may make when you are no
-longer under my roof. You have no friends? Why, there is Mr. Paget. Do you think
-I have been blind to your goings on? Assignations, secret meetings, under my
-very eyes. Go to him. I have no doubt you know where to find him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Madam!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, you may madam me as much as you like; it will not alter
-my determination. Ah, Jane&quot;--to the new servant who entered the room--&quot;have you
-locked the door of the room which Miss Braham occupied?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, ma'am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And brought her box down?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, ma'am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Give me the key of the room. That will do, my good girl; I do
-not require you any more. Go down-stairs and get your supper. Leave the door
-open.&quot; The merciless woman waited until Jane had reached the basement and was
-out of hearing; then she spoke again. &quot;If you cannot take your box with you
-to-night, you can send for it in the morning, but once out of my house you do
-not enter it again. Go immediately, or I will send for the police.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She advanced toward Emilia, who retreated in affright; step by
-step she hounded the poor girl to the street door, which she threw open. The
-next moment Emilia was standing alone in the dark and gloomy night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dazed and horrified, she felt as if her senses were leaving
-her; she pressed her hands over her eyes, and cowered to the walls for
-protection. But a friend was near.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Restless with love's fever, Gerald, heedless of the rain--for
-what is so slight a thing to one who loves as he did?--was hovering about the
-house in which his darling lived. He looked up at the windows, and choosing one
-as the window of Emilia's room, gazed at it with fervor, making of it a very
-heaven--a heaven to be glorified by her presence. &quot;To-morrow,&quot; he mused, as he
-paced slowly up and down on the opposite side, &quot;I will ask her plainly to be my
-wife. She is unhappy--she told me so--and it must be because she is living with
-such a wicked woman. Yes, I will ask her to-morrow. She loves me, I am sure of
-it. It is only that she is poor and I am rich. What of that? It will make it all
-the better for us--a thousand times better than if she were rich and I were
-poor. Then we might never come together. Dear Emilia, sweet Emilia, the
-sweetest, dearest, most beautiful on earth! I love her, I love her, I love her!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus ecstatically musing, he saw the street-door suddenly
-opened and as suddenly and violently shut, and a figure thrust forth, as if in
-anger. He had no idea that it was Emilia; the thought was too barbarous to be
-entertained; but out of curiosity he crossed the road and went up to it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good God!&quot; he cried; &quot;Emilia!&quot; and caught her up in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, Gerald, Gerald!&quot; she sobbed, and lay there, helpless and
-almost heartbroken, and yet with a sweet sense of comfort stealing upon her
-great grief.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">What mattered rain and darkness? She had called him Gerald,
-and he knew for a surety that he was loved. He kissed her, and she did not
-resist, but lay, sobbing more quietly now, within the sanctuary of his loving
-arms.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Ecstasy at being permitted to embrace her enthralled him for a
-time, but presently he begged her to explain the meaning of her being thrust at
-such an hour from Mrs. Seaton's house. Before she could render it the
-street-door was opened quietly and slowly, and a woman's face peered out--Mrs.
-Seaton's.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought as much,&quot; cried the stony-hearted woman, with a
-laugh. &quot;A pretty pair!&quot; and then the door was closed again, and only the sound
-of the falling rain was heard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With a feeling of burning indignation Gerald looked down upon
-the white face of his dear girl. Her eyes were closed; her arms hung loose at
-her side; she had fainted.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was thankful that the street was deserted and that there
-were no witnesses near, for he had sense enough to know that Emilia's reputation
-was at stake.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You fiend,&quot; he muttered, with a dark glance at Mrs. Seaton's
-house. &quot;You abominable fiend!&quot; And then he called softly, &quot;Emilia, Emilia! Look
-up, my darling. We are safe now, and we will never part.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His voice, but not the words he spoke, reached her senses. She
-opened her eyes, and clung more closely to him, murmuring,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For Heaven's sake, take me from this place.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come, then,&quot; he said, supporting her. It was not until they
-had traversed two or three streets that Gerald began to feel perplexed. Where
-should he take her? He had no lady friend to whom he could apply and who would
-be willing to receive Emilia. It would be dangerous to her character to go to an
-hotel. The hour, the circumstances, Emilia's agitated state, were all against
-them. She was too weak to speak for herself; upon him devolved the
-responsibility of providing for her, of protecting her, and he was conscious
-that anything he might say to strangers would do her more harm than good. There
-was already a danger that she was being compromised. Some persons had passed
-them in the streets, and dark as was the night, they could scarcely fail to see
-that his arm was round her waist and that she was clinging to him. Now and then
-sobs escaped from her overcharged heart. A few of the people they met turned and
-looked after them, and Gerald heard one laugh. It went through him like a sharp
-knife. If he could only get her safely housed before she was recognized! But he
-was by no means sure that this danger had been averted. Certainly two men who
-had passed them were men he knew.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">As for Emilia, happily or unhappily for herself, she noticed
-nothing. This terrible crisis had completely prostrated her, and all that she
-was conscious of was that she was under the protection of an honorable man, and
-had escaped from the oppression of a vile woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Something must be done, and done soon. They could not walk the
-streets the whole night. Every moment added to the dangers of the position.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia, will you listen to me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am listening, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was as if she had called him so all her life; and, indeed,
-in the purest innocence, she had often murmured his name in secret to herself.
-He was thrilled with ineffable happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You understand what I am saying to you, Emilia?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is very late.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With sudden terror she cried, &quot;You will not leave me, Gerald?
-You will not desert me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, indeed. Do not be afraid. I am yours forever, in truth
-and honor. But we must be prudent.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will do whatever you bid me, Gerald. I have no friend in
-the world but you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In his honor and honesty lay her safety. Well was it for her
-that she had by her side a man like Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where did you live before you went to Mrs. Seaton?&quot; She
-shuddered at the name, and answered, &quot;In Grafton Street,&quot; and mentioned the
-number.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They were nearly a mile from the house, and in Emilia's weak
-state it took them more than half an hour to get there, but weak as she was she
-did not complain of fatigue. She was content so long as Gerald was with her.
-There was no cessation in the rain, which still fell steadily.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was not a light to be seen in any of the windows of the
-house. Gerald knocked, but knocked in vain. In despair he turned away, and
-Emilia walked patiently with him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then it forced itself upon him that there was still the
-alternative of endeavoring to obtain a room for her in a respectable hotel. To
-conduct her to one of doubtful repute was not to be thought of. It was close on
-midnight when they reached the hotel he had in his mind. He did not venture to
-take her inside the building with him. Her swollen eyes, her death-white face,
-her dishevelled hair, her clothes soaked with rain, would have ensured failure.
-Besides, until he was sure of a shelter for her, he did not care to expose her
-to the prying eyes of strangers.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He explained to her what he was about to do, but he was
-doubtful whether she quite understood him. All she said was:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do whatever you bid me, Gerald. I have no friend in the
-world but you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had spoken these words many times, and no appeal could
-have been more plaintive. The pity of it was that every time she uttered them
-her voice had grown fainter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wait here for me, Emilia. I will not be gone long. If anyone
-speaks to you do not answer them.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will come back to me, Gerald?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, surely, my darling.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was fated not to succeed. His lame explanations, his
-stumbling words, his references to &quot;a young lady in an unfortunate position,&quot;
-his statement that it would be rendering him a personal obligation, ensured
-failure. The lady manager of the hotel shook her head, and said she could not
-accommodate his friend &quot;under such circumstances,&quot; adding that she was surprised
-he should ask her to do so.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He rejoined Emilia, whose fingers tightened upon his arm as
-she murmured:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have come back!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They had not walked fifty yards before her strength gave way.
-Again she fainted, and but for his support would have fallen to the ground.
-Hailing a passing cab he, with the assistance of the driver, lifted her into it,
-and gave the man instructions to drive to his house. With a covert smile the man
-mounted to his box, and drove in the given direction.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The house in which Gerald lived was that his parents had
-occupied. He had been loth to leave it until the arrival of his half-brother
-Leonard, when he had decided to discuss their future movements with him. He had
-had a sincere affection for Leonard, and relied greatly upon his judgment. Most
-of the servants had been dismissed; only two remained, a housekeeper and a maid,
-and these attended to the young gentleman's wants. They were in the habit of
-retiring early to bed; Gerald had a latchkey with which he let himself in when
-he came home late. Thus, in the present emergency, a certain privacy was
-ensured.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Under no other circumstances than these would Gerald have
-dreamed of taking Emilia to his house, but he was driven to a course of which he
-inwardly disapproved. He had no time now to consider consequences; Emilia
-demanded all his attention. She was still unconscious when they arrived at the
-house, and he was compelled to ask the assistance of the driver to carry her in.
-This being accomplished, he paid the man liberally and dismissed him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They had entered without being observed; the housekeeper and
-the maid occupied rooms below, and Gerald supposed them to be both asleep at the
-time. The room into which Emilia had been carried was his favorite apartment, on
-the ground floor, and was somewhat daintily furnished. From a sideboard he took
-wine and biscuits, and from an inner room he brought towels and a basin of cold
-water. The fire in the grate had burned low, but he threw wood and coals on it,
-and it was soon in a bright blaze. Then he drew the sofa upon which Emilia was
-lying close to the fireplace, and stood debating with himself what he should do.
-Had the housekeeper been the only servant in the house he would have called her
-in to attend to Emilia; she had been many years in the service of his family,
-and he thought he could trust her; but he was sure he could not trust the maid,
-who was an inveterate chatterbox. Before he had decided what to do Emilia
-revived; struggling to her feet she gazed around in stupefaction. In as few
-words as possible Gerald explained what had occurred; she listened to him in
-silence, then sank upon the couch, and burst into a passion of tears.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you angry with me, Emilia?&quot; he asked, in deep concern. &quot;I
-could do nothing else. To have kept you in the streets any longer would have
-been your death. Listen to the rain; it is coming down harder than ever. Here at
-least you are safe for a few hours. The housekeeper is asleep down-stairs. I
-will call her up if you wish, but there is another servant who cannot be
-trusted, I fear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If anyone sees me here I shall die of shame,&quot; said Emilia, in
-a low tone. &quot;What will become of me--oh, what will become of me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is nothing to fear,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;and no one need be
-aware that you are in the house. Do you not know already that I love you with
-all my heart and soul, and that by consenting to become my wife you will make me
-the happiest man in the world? The position in which we are placed has been
-forced upon us. No one shall have the power of placing an evil construction upon
-it. I will see to that. Your happiness, your honor, are in my keeping. Can you
-not trust me, Emilia?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With these and other words as true and tender, he succeeded in
-calming her. With innate delicacy he did not press her to answer him at such an
-hour; he would wait till to-morrow; meanwhile he explained his plan to her. She
-was to occupy the room till the morning, and to lock herself in. He would find a
-bed elsewhere. Before the servants rose he would return to the house and make a
-confidant of the housekeeper; the younger servant should be sent upon a distant
-errand which would keep her from the house till eleven or twelve o'clock. Before
-that time Emilia would be settled elsewhere. Thus the secret would be preserved
-and the tongue of scandal silenced.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And then, Emilia,&quot; he said, gazing upon her with ardent
-affection, &quot;I will ask for my reward.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was impossible, even if her heart were not already his,
-that she should fail to be touched by his delicacy and devotion. Tenderly and
-humbly she thanked him, and intended to say that she would give him his answer
-on the morrow, but love broke down the barrier of reserve. Involuntarily she
-held out her hands to him, and he clasped her in his arms and kissed her on her
-lips, and said that the embrace was a pledge of truth and constancy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;From you, Emilia, as well as from me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Gerald,&quot; she sighed; &quot;I love you!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So through the clouds of this dolorous night broke the sun of
-faithful mutual love. It might have been excused him had he lingered, but for
-her sake he would not.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall wait in the passage,&quot; he said, &quot;to hear you turn the
-key. No one will disturb you. The housekeeper does not enter this room till I
-ring in the morning, and I am not always an early bird. Good-night, dear love.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good-night, dear Gerald. Are you sure you will be able to get
-a bed?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can get a dozen. God bless and guard you!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They kissed each other once more, and then he left her. He
-waited in the passage to hear the key turned, and with a lover's foolish
-fondness kissed the door which shut his treasure from his sight. He listened in
-the passage a moment or two to assure himself that all was still and safe, and
-then he crept to the street-door, which he opened and closed very softly. He did
-not seek a bed elsewhere, having come to the determination that it would be a
-better security from slanderous tongues that it should be supposed he slept in
-his own house that night. So he made pilgrimages through the streets, ever and
-anon coming back to the house which sheltered his darling. But once it fatefully
-happened that he was absent for some thirty or forty minutes, during which
-period a startling and unexpected incident occurred, the forerunner of as
-strange a series as ever entered into the history of two loving hearts.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_26" href="#div1Ref_26">CHAPTER XXVI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>SLANDER'S FOUL TONGUE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The young servant whose loquacious tongue Gerald did not dare
-to trust was not asleep when he brought Emilia home. She was in bed, it was
-true, but wide-awake, with a candle alight at her bedside. It was against the
-rules of the house, but she did not care for that, being deeply engrossed in a
-thrilling story which set rules at defiance and drove sleep away. She heard the
-street-door opened and closed, then a murmur of voices, like the distant murmur
-of the sea, and then the second opening and closing of the street-door. The
-sounds did not arouse her curiosity, she was so profoundly interested in the
-fate of the hero and heroine that nothing short of a miracle could have diverted
-her attention. So she read on with eager eyes and panting bosom, long after
-Gerald had left the house, and would have continued to read, had she not come to
-those tantalizing words, &quot;To be continued in our next.&quot; Then, with a long-drawn
-sigh, she turned in her bed--and forgot to blow out the candle.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia had intended not to sleep; she would keep awake all the
-night, and wait for Gerald in the morning--the morning of the day which was to
-be for her the herald of a new and happier life. She bore Mrs. Seaton no malice
-for the indignities she had suffered in her house. There was no room in Emilia's
-heart for anything but love. With what heartfelt gratitude did she dwell upon
-the image of Gerald, the noblest man on earth. &quot;I thank God for him,&quot; she
-sighed. &quot;Dear Lord, I thank Thee that Thou hast given me the love of a man like
-Gerald. My Gerald! Is it true? Can it be real? Ah, yes; I see his dear eyes
-looking into mine; his dear voice sinks into my heart. Make me grateful for the
-happiness before me!&quot; It stretched out into the future years, a vista of peace
-and love and joy. Insensibly she sank upon her knees and prayed, and when she
-rose the room, the world, and all that it contained, were transfigured. How
-fair, how sweet was life! She had prayed for Gerald and for herself, had prayed
-that she might prove worthy of him, and might be endowed with power to brighten
-his days. Then she sat before the fire, and clasping her knee with her hands,
-imagined bright pictures in the glowing points of lights. She felt herself
-sinking to sleep. &quot;I will just close my eyes for a few minutes,&quot; she thought.
-There were warm rugs about the room. Loosening her dress, she threw herself upon
-the couch, and covering herself with the rugs, fell asleep with joy in her heart
-and a smile on her lips.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At half-past three in the morning Gerald, after an absence of
-half an hour or so, was returning to the street in which his house was situated,
-when he saw an angry glare in the sky, and heard sounds of confusion in the near
-distance. Almost instantly A fire-engine raced past him. He hastened after it,
-partly from instinct, but chiefly because it was going in his direction. He had,
-however, no idea that the danger personally concerned him. Long before he
-reached his street he was undeceived. Crowds of people encompassed him, and he
-found it difficult to proceed. Three or four fire-engines were at work; firemen
-were risking their lives in the enthusiasm of their noble work; policemen were
-keeping back the excited lookers-on.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My God!&quot; he cried, as he turned the corner; &quot;it is my house,
-and Emilia is there!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Frantically he strove to force his way through the crowd,
-which would not give way for him at first, but he redoubled his efforts, and
-running under or leaping over firemen, policemen, and the men and women who were
-surging round, he tore off his coat, and rushed toward the burning building. He
-was pulled back, and escaping from those who held him, darted forward again with
-despairing cries, and was caught in the arms of one who knew him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's all right,&quot; cried this man to the firemen. &quot;Mr. Paget
-has escaped from the house.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He who spoke thought that Gerald, instead of striving to enter
-the house, had just emerged from it, and his idea was strengthened by the
-circumstance that Gerald was in his shirt sleeves. One in authority came up to
-Gerald and said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We were getting frightened about you, sir. We got out a young
-lady and your two servants----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A young lady!&quot; gasped Gerald, and inwardly thanked God that
-Emilia was saved.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, sir. There's some mystery about her, because your
-housekeeper said there was no young lady there, but out she came, or was
-carried, insensible----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For God's sake,&quot; cried Gerald, &quot;don't tell me she is
-injured!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think not, sir; but she was in an insensible condition, and
-some people took her away. Your housekeeper said you were the only one left. Now
-that we know no lives are lost we can get on with our work. Your house is a
-wreck, sir; there'll be very little saved out of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where was the young lady taken to?&quot; asked Gerald, in a state
-of indescribable agitation, detaining the officer by the sleeve.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't tell you, sir. Excuse me, I must attend to my duty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Releasing himself from Gerald's grasp, he plunged among his
-men. Gerald, in his eager anxiety for information of Emilia, asked a dozen
-persons around him, and obtained a dozen different answers. One said one thing,
-one said another, and each speaker contradicted the one who had previously
-spoken. At length he saw on the outskirts of the crowd his housekeeper talking
-to a lady, and running toward them, he saw that the lady was Mrs. Seaton.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am glad you are saved, Mr. Paget,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, with
-freezing politeness. &quot;I was just asking your housekeeper who is the young lady
-who was carried out of your house barely half dressed, and she insists that no
-such person was there. But as a hundred people saw her, there is, of course, no
-disputing a fact so clear. Perhaps you can tell us who she is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A number of neighbors gathered around, some who knew both
-Gerald and Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And I said, sir,&quot; said the housekeeper, &quot;that their eyes
-deceived them----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, that is very likely,&quot; interposed Mrs. Seaton, in her most
-malicious tone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Because,&quot; continued the housekeeper, &quot;when we went to bed
-last night there was nobody but me and that little wretch of a Susan in the
-house. It was her who set the place on fire, sir, with her novel reading. I hope
-she'll be put in prison for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But enlighten us, Mr. Paget,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton. &quot;Who was the
-young lady?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are a malicious scandal-monger,&quot; cried Gerald, and tore
-himself away, feeling that he had made for himself and Emilia a more bitter
-enemy in calling Mrs. Seaton by that name.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He continued his inquiries for Emilia, but could obtain no
-satisfaction. So many different stories were related to him that he could not
-tell which was the true one.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The truth was that Emilia, being aroused from sleep by the
-fire, unlocked the door of the room in which Gerald had left her, and rushed
-into the passage. The place was strange to her, and she might have been burned
-to death had not a fireman, who was making his way past her, pulled her into the
-street. There she was taken up by one and another, striving all the while to
-escape the prying eyes of those around her, until, overcome by the complicated
-horror of her position, she swooned away. Two compassionate maiden ladies,
-sisters, pitying her state, said they would take care of her, and conveyed her
-to their home.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There they tended her, wondering who she was, for she was a
-stranger to them, as they were to her. But the terrors through which Emilia had
-passed had completely prostrated her; the whole of the succeeding day she fell
-from one faint into another, and the doctor who was called in said it would be
-best to wait awhile before they questioned her too closely. &quot;She has had a
-severe mental shock,&quot; he said, &quot;and if we are not careful she will have an
-attack of brain fever.&quot; On the evening of the following day she was somewhat
-better, but her mind was almost a blank as to what had transpired during the
-past twenty-four hours. The image of Gerald occasionally obtruded itself, and if
-he had appeared, all would have been well; he was her rock, her shield, and,
-incapable as she was of coherent thought, his absence weighed upon her as a
-reproach, and she felt as if God and man had forsaken her. An experience still
-more cruel was in store for her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was night, and she heard a voice in the adjoining room that
-smote her with terror, the voice of Mrs. Seaton speaking to the ladies who had
-befriended her. More successful than Gerald, Mrs. Seaton had hunted her down.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's a neighborly duty,&quot; Mrs. Seaton was saying, &quot;to prevent
-kind-hearted ladies like yourselves from being imposed upon. I have suffered
-from her artfulness and wickedness myself, and there was no one to warn me; but
-if you allow yourself to be taken in by her you will do it with your eyes open.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is very gentle-mannered,&quot; said one of the two ladies who
-had befriended her, &quot;and we have a great pity for her. Surely she cannot be so
-bad as you paint her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Facts are facts,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton. &quot;You do not even know her
-name.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is too weak to enter into particulars,&quot; said the lady,
-&quot;and we forbore to press her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Too weak!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Seaton, with a derisive laugh.
-&quot;Fiddlesticks! Excuse me for speaking so, but I hardly have patience with her.
-Her weakness is put on; you are no match for the creature. Of course if you do
-not mind being disgraced by association with such a character it is no business
-of mine; but I ought to know her better than you do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You use strong words,&quot; said the lady very gravely.
-&quot;Disgraced! It is too dreadful to think of. What is her name?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia Braham. Her father died deeply involved, and would no
-doubt have swindled his creditors if he had lived; fortunately for them he died
-suddenly, and they were able to step in and save something from the wreck. I
-will tell you the whole story if you care to hear it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We ought to hear it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall. After her father's death she came to me and begged
-me to give her a situation. I took her out of pity. 'I will give you a trial,' I
-said to her. So she came into my house, and I treated her as a daughter. After a
-time I had my suspicions, and I do not mind confessing that I set a watch upon
-her. Then I discovered that she was carrying on a disgraceful intimacy with Mr.
-Gerald Paget, meeting him regularly and secretly, and keeping out at all hours.
-When she found that all was known she told her gentleman friend, who came to me
-and bullied me. In return for his insults I showed him the door, and forbade his
-ever entering my house again. Then in the evening I sent for the creature and
-informed her that she must leave my service the following morning--that is,
-to-day. The language she used to me was dreadful, and she said she would go at
-once. I told her I would not allow it; badly as she had behaved, I felt that it
-was not right for her, a single girl, to leave the house at night. However, she
-insisted, and I had to give way. To protect myself from her malicious slanders,
-I wrote out a paper which she signed in the presence of another servant, who is
-ready to testify that the creature knew perfectly well what she was doing. Here
-it is; you can read it. The other servant witnessed her signature, as you see.
-Then she left the house, and I soon found out why. She had arranged a
-clandestine meeting with Mr. Paget that very night--I saw her with my own eyes
-in his embrace. An hour or two afterward they got into a cab--I can give you the
-number of the cab and the name of the driver--and drove to Mr. Paget's
-residence, he being a bachelor, mind you, and living alone with only two female
-servants in his employ. When he took the creature home he knew quite well that
-his domestics were abed and asleep, and that there was no risk of his scandalous
-doings being discovered. But he reckoned without his host. There is a
-Providence--yes, happily there is a Providence. The fire occurred, and the
-creature you are harboring rushed out of Mr. Paget's house. Ask her how she got
-into it. In the middle of the night, too. I ask you, as ladies of common-sense,
-what construction does it bear? No artfully-invented tale can explain it away.
-You should be thankful to me for putting you on your guard. Oh, you don't know
-these creatures!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a dreadful story,&quot; said the lady.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I hope you will do your duty, as I have done mine. Have I put
-it too strongly in saying that her presence here is a disgrace?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. We are obliged to you for the unpleasant task you have
-performed. To-morrow, if she is strong enough, I will request her to take her
-departure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Too lenient by far. In your place I should bundle her out,
-neck and crop. If you wait till she says she is well enough to go you will wait
-a precious long time. I shall take care, for my part, that everybody knows the
-truth.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it not strange,&quot; asked the lady, &quot;that Mr. Paget has not
-called to inquire after her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all; he wishes to keep his name out of the disgraceful
-affair if he can. It is perfectly clear that he is ashamed of the connection,
-and wants to be rid of it. So long as it could be kept quiet he didn't mind, but
-now that it is made public--I can't help repeating, in the most providential
-manner--it is another pair of shoes. Why, the whole town is talking of it. When
-the creature shows her face, if she has the hardihood to do it, she will meet
-with a proper reception. I shouldn't at all wonder if it gets into the papers.
-Good-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then there was a rustling of skirts, and Emilia knew that her
-cruel persecutor had taken her leave. She pressed her hands upon her eyes, and
-the scalding tears ran down her fingers. The horror of the situation was almost
-more than she could bear. She could not think clearly, but through her aching
-brain one conviction forced itself. She was disgraced, irretrievably disgraced.
-Her good name was lost forever. Nothing could restore it, nothing. If an angel
-from heaven were to declare it, no man or woman would hereafter believe in her
-purity and innocence. What should she do? Wait till the morning to be turned
-from the hospitable house of these kind sisters? Go forth into the broad light
-of day, and be pointed at and publicly shamed? No, she would fly at once,
-secretly and alone, into the hard, cold world, far, far from the merciless men
-and women who were ready to defame her. The story which Mrs. Seaton had related
-to the maiden sisters was false and malignant, but it was built upon a
-foundation of truth. If she herself had to give evidence in her own defence she
-would be pronounced guilty. She had been turned from Mrs. Seaton's house late in
-the night, but she had signed a paper saying that she went of her own free will.
-She and Gerald had been together in the streets--for how long? She could not
-remember, but it seemed to be hours. And as if that were not shame enough she
-had taken refuge in his house and had accepted his hospitality at an hour that
-would make virtuous women blush. He had pledged his faith to her, he had asked
-her to be his wife, and now, when she most needed a defender, he was absent. It
-was true, then, that he had deserted her. Had it been otherwise would he not
-have sought her long before this, would he not have been present to cast the
-malignant lie in Mrs. Seaton's face? She had believed so fully in his faith and
-honor, in his professions of love! But he was false, like all the rest of the
-world, from which sweetness and life had forever fled.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, God!&quot; she moaned. &quot;In your Divine mercy, let me die
-to-night!&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_27" href="#div1Ref_27">CHAPTER XXVII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>LEONARD RETURNS HOME.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">A revulsion took place within her which, for a few moments,
-imbued her with strength. Upon a piece of blank paper she wrote the words, &quot;I am
-innocent, as Heaven is my judge. God bless you for your kindness to me--Emilia
-Braham.&quot; Dark as it was she managed to form the letters fairly well, and she
-laid the paper upon the dressing-table. Then despair overtook her again. What
-had Mrs. Seaton said? &quot;The whole town is talking of it. When the creature shows
-her face she will meet with a proper reception.&quot; But she would not give her
-revilers the opportunity of publicly hounding her down.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With stealthy steps she crept into the passage. No one was
-near. Softly she glided to the door. The next moment she was in the street,
-flying she knew not whither. All that she was conscious of was that the
-direction she was taking led her away from the town. It was her wish; no person
-who knew her must ever look upon her face again. First solitude, then
-death--that was her prayer. She reached the outskirts of the town and plunged
-into a wood. A part of her desire was accomplished. In her flight no one had
-recognized or noticed her, and now she was alone with her shame and her despair.
-For the consciousness of her innocence did not sustain her. Judgment had been
-pronounced; she was condemned.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Meanwhile the maiden ladies, believing that Emilia was asleep,
-sat in their room overcome with grief. The revelation which Mrs. Seaton had made
-to them was a great shock to these simple ladies, who were almost as ignorant of
-the world's bad ways and of the worst side of human nature as Emilia herself.
-They did not hear the young girl's footfall in the passage, and Emilia had made
-no noise in opening the street door, which she left open, fearing that the sound
-of its closing would betray her. They were silent for many minutes after
-Emilia's departure, and when they spoke it was in whispers.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a frightful story,&quot; said the younger lady. &quot;Can it be
-true?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Her sister did not reply immediately; she was thinking of the
-sweet and innocent face of the hapless girl, and of the impossibility that it
-could be a mask to depravity. Presently she clasped her sister's hand and said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will not judge, dear, till we hear what she has to say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are always right,&quot; said the younger sister, and both
-experienced a feeling of relief. &quot;Let us go to her; she may be awake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They stole into the adjoining room, and one said gently, &quot;Are
-you awake?&quot; Then, presently, &quot;We do not wish to disturb you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They listened in the darkness and heard no sound of breathing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will get a candle,&quot; whispered the elder sister. Returning
-with it they looked around in alarm. &quot;She is gone! Poor child, poor child! She
-must have heard what the lady said, and would not wait to be thrust forth. Oh,
-sister, is it innocence or guilt?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Innocence, dear sister, innocence!&quot; replied the younger lady,
-snatching up the paper upon which Emilia had written. &quot;See sister; 'I am
-innocent, as Heaven is my judge. God bless you for your kindness to me.--Emilia
-Braham.' She speaks the truth. She is innocent, she is innocent!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said the elder sister, solemnly. &quot;She is innocent.
-Thank God!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Tears ran down their cheeks; their faith in goodness was
-restored.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But where has she gone? Oh, sister, so young, so sweet, so
-helpless!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They threw shawls over their shoulders, and ran to the street
-door, observing that Emilia in her flight had left it open. As they stood there,
-looking anxiously up and down the dark street, two gentlemen approached and
-accosted them. They were Gerald and his half-brother Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In explanation of their presence a retrospect of a few hours
-is necessary.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard, having been absent upon his selfish pleasures for the
-better part of a year, had returned home upon the morning of the fire. It was a
-startling reception for the wanderer; regarding Gerald's money as his own his
-first concern was whether the house and furniture were insured. Ascertaining
-that they were, and that there would be no pecuniary loss, his next business was
-to find Gerald. But in his quest he heard something more; &quot;slander, whose edge
-is sharper than the sword,&quot; was already doing its horrible work, and from one
-and another he heard for the first time of the existence of Emilia and of her
-having been found in Gerald's house in the middle of the night. &quot;So,&quot; thought
-he, &quot;Gerald is no saint. Well, that sort of thing is better than marrying. I
-must keep him from that, at all hazards. It seems I have come home just in
-time.&quot; Soon afterward he met with Gerald, who was striving vainly to discover
-where Emilia was. Despite Gerald's agitation he greeted Leonard with much
-affection.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a stroke of good fortune,&quot; he cried, &quot;that you have
-arrived to-day. I need a friend. You will help me to find Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia!&quot; echoed Leonard, pretending not to have heard her
-name before.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then Gerald began to confide in him, but his story threatened
-to be long, and Leonard drew him away from the curious people who thronged about
-them. They went to an hotel, Leonard insisting that it would be best, for Gerald
-wished to continue his inquiries for Emilia in the streets.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be guided by me,&quot; said Leonard; &quot;I can do what you want in
-half the time that you would do it yourself. Can you not trust me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, with my life, Len,&quot; replied the warm-hearted young
-fellow, and allowed himself to be persuaded. In a private room in the hotel
-Leonard heard the whole story, and saw that Gerald was very much in earnest.
-This did not please him, but he said not a word to Emilia's disadvantage; he was
-a cunning worker, and he knew which roads were the best to compass any designs
-he had in view. He no more believed in Emilia's innocence and purity than the
-worst of her detractors, but he was not going to tell Gerald this. Gerald was
-trying to throw dust into his eyes, but that was a game that two could play at.
-With his own cynical disbelief in womanly purity he laughed at the idea of
-Emilia innocently occupying Gerald's house for a whole night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You must not be too angry with people,&quot; he said, &quot;for
-speaking against the young lady. We live in a frightfully ill-natured world.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know, I know,&quot; groaned Gerald, &quot;and it makes it all the
-harder for my poor girl. It was I who thrust her into the position; she was
-insensible when I took her into the house. Can you not see there was nothing
-else to be done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I see it of course, my boy, and I am sincerely sorry for the
-pair of you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She must be suffering agonies&quot;----</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be reasonable, Gerald,&quot; said Leonard with affectionate
-insistance; &quot;it's a hundred to one she knows nothing of it. I must exercise my
-authority as an elder brother over you, and as more of a man of the world than
-you are. Now, what is it you want to do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To find out where she has been taken to, and to insist upon
-her marrying me at once. That is the surest way to silence the slanderer. I have
-done her a wrong--not wilfully, Len, you know me too well for that--and I must
-repair it at the very earliest moment. Thank God she believes in me, and knows
-that I am faithful and true. Oh, Len, she is an angel, the sweetest, dearest
-woman that ever breathed! No man could help loving her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;From what you tell me of her, Gerald, we must proceed
-carefully. A nature so sensitive as hers must be dealt with delicately. You see,
-my boy, there is no disguising that if people are speaking against her, you are
-the cause of it. I was wrong in saying that it's a hundred to one she knows
-nothing of it; I ought to have put it the other way. Very well, then. Your
-Emilia is an angel--granted; I believe every word you say of her. But she is a
-woman, nevertheless, and you are responsible for dragging her name through the
-mud.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good God!&quot; exclaimed Gerald. &quot;You put it strongly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am bound to do so, as the sincerest friend you have. I hope
-you give me credit for being that, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Len, if you were not here I should go distracted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am only too glad I have come in good time to assist you. To
-continue about Emilia. What does such a woman as she value most in the world?
-Her good name. You have jeopardized hers, Gerald, with the best intentions I
-admit, but jeopardized it is. Hearing the scandal she will naturally ask
-herself, 'Why did Gerald take me into his house when I was in a fainting
-condition, and unable to have a voice in the matter? Could he not have waited
-till I recovered? And now see what people are saying of me? He has degraded me;
-I shall never be able to look honest people in the face again.' Is it entirely
-unnatural, my boy, that she should not rush into your arms when you present
-yourself? Just think a bit.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have not thought of it in that light,&quot; said Gerald
-ruefully.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Because you have considered it from your point of view, not
-from hers. Answer me candidly. If she had been in possession of her senses would
-she have consented to enter your house clandestinely with you at such an hour
-last night--you, a single man, and her lover?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I see it now. Wretch that I am! I deserved to be
-pilloried for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't rush into the other extreme. You acted unwisely, but
-honestly.&quot; (Leonard had no more belief in the professions he was making than
-Mrs. Seaton would have had, but he knew the nature of the man he was playing
-upon.) &quot;Now, what you want in this crisis is a friend like myself, who, a
-stranger to your Emilia, can explain everything to her in a considerate,
-sensible way. Otherwise she may refuse to have anything more to say to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This suggestion frightened Gerald. &quot;What do you advise me to
-do?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To place yourself entirely in my hands, and let <i>me</i>
-bring this unfortunate matter to a satisfactory conclusion.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will do so, Len. Thank you a thousand, thousand times. I am
-eternally grateful to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nonsense. I love you, Gerald; our interests are one. Look at
-yourself in the glass; you are a perfect scarecrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have had no sleep since the night before last.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is that a fit condition in which to set about a task so
-delicate? It would be inviting failure. First, you must have some breakfast.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't eat, Len.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You must. A devilled bone and a glass or two of champagne.&quot;
-He rang the bell, and gave the order, and ordered also a warm bath to be
-prepared. &quot;Now, Gerald. The bath first, the devilled bone and a pint of
-champagne next, and then to bed for two or three hours. When you awake,
-refreshed and with a clear mind, I will tell you all about Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will find out where she is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will--if it is to be found out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you will explain everything to her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you will tell her I love her more devotedly than ever?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will; and that your only wish is to hear the wedding bells
-ring.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're a good fellow, Len. I can never repay you. You are my
-good angel. But what a selfish brute I am, to talk only of myself and my
-troubles. You cabled for money, Len, and it was sent to you. How's the
-exchequer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you for the inquiry, dear boy. It never was lower. I
-have been deucedly unfortunate; plunged into a land speculation which I thought
-was going to make my fortune, but which cleaned me out to the last sovereign.
-How on earth I made my way home I don't know. I was consoled by one reflection,
-that I was coming home to the dearest brother an unfortunate devil ever had.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald took out his check-book and put his name to a check.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Here is a blank check, Len. Fill it in for what you like.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good boy. I am in debt, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never mind; there's a balance of over two thousand in the
-bank.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;May I fill in for a thou----?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And welcome. I've a lot of money in securities.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I won't thank you, Gerald,&quot; said Leonard, handing the pen to
-his step-brother; &quot;you know what my feelings are toward you. Write the sum in
-yourself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald wrote, and gave the check back. Leonard just glanced at
-it, and saw that it was drawn out for twelve hundred pounds, payable to bearer.
-He passed his hand over his tearless eyes, and turned his head. A very skilful
-actor indeed was Leonard Paget; he knew to a nicety the value of a light touch.
-The waiter entered and said the bath was ready.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't bring up breakfast till I ring for it,&quot; said Leonard to
-the man. &quot;Off with you, Gerald. I give you just twenty minutes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald gone, he looked at the check again. &quot;It is only an
-instalment,&quot; he murmured. &quot;Every shilling he has belongs to me; and I mean to
-have it. As for this girl--bah! They must never come together again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon Gerald's appearance from the bath he greeted him with a
-smile. &quot;You look twice the man you were. Now for breakfast. Tuck in, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In any other circumstances Gerald would not have been able to
-eat, but with such a friend and counsellor by his side he made a tolerably good
-meal. Then Leonard saw him to his bedroom, and did not leave it till the honest
-fellow was in bed, and had drank another glass of champagne into which Leonard
-had secretly poured a dozen drops Of a tasteless narcotic which he was in the
-habit of carrying about with him to insure sleep.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That will keep him quiet for six or seven hours,&quot; he said. &quot;I
-must have a little time to myself to settle my plans.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The first thing he did when he went from the hotel was to cash
-the check. He was a man again, his pockets well lined, and he was ready for any
-villainy. He had little difficulty in discovering where Emilia was, and in
-ascertaining the character of the ladies who had given her shelter. This
-knowledge conveyed with it a difficulty; the character for kind-heartedness
-which he received of the maiden sisters was not favorable to his schemes, and he
-deemed it best to take no definite step on this day. But he was not idle; he
-learned all there was to be learned of Emilia, and, reading between the lines,
-found himself confronted with fresh difficulties. It would not be easy to
-deceive such a girl--a girl who might have committed an imprudence, but who was
-not the artful creature he had supposed her to be. He came to the conclusion
-that the love which existed between her and Gerald was a genuine, honest love.
-&quot;I must trust a little to chance,&quot; he thought. In the afternoon he returned to
-the hotel. Gerald was still asleep; he waited till the evening, and then heard
-Gerald moving. He went into the bedroom as Gerald jumped out of bed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At last!&quot; he exclaimed, before the young man could utter a
-word. &quot;I have been trying these last three hours to rouse you. How thoroughly
-dead beat you must have been to have slept so long!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald looked round in dismay; evening was fast deepening into
-night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What time is it, Len?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nearly eight o'clock. Do you feel refreshed?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm a new man. How about Emilia? Have you seen her? Can I go
-to her?&quot; He dressed rapidly as he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sorry to say,&quot; continued Leonard, &quot;that I can obtain no
-news of her. Wait yet a little while; I will go out again and endeavor to find
-her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot wait I will go with you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I forbid it, Gerald. You will spoil all if you don't mind. I
-should not be here now, but I was getting alarmed about you. I will return in an
-hour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He hastened away before Gerald could reply. &quot;What am I to do
-now?&quot; he thought. &quot;If Gerald makes inquiries himself he will be certain to learn
-where she is. I have twelve hundred pounds in my pocket. If the devil would
-range himself on my side I would give him half of it with pleasure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He little knew how near he was to the accomplishment of his
-wishes. At that moment Mrs. Seaton was making her way to the house of the maiden
-sisters. He himself was wending his course toward the house, moodily debating
-how he could drive Emilia from it, and from the town forever. He knew all about
-Mrs. Seaton and her animosity against Emilia; the woman had been pointed out to
-him early in the day, and her face was familiar to him. He walked slowly, she
-quickly; thus she overtook and passed him, but he had seen and recognized her.
-He quickened his steps, and paused as she paused, before the house of the maiden
-sisters. With unerring intuition he guessed her errand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you going to see the ladies who live here, madam?&quot; he
-asked in his most respectful tone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am, sir,&quot; she replied with asperity. &quot;Who are you, may I
-inquire?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am a stranger in the town, madam,&quot; he said, speaking with
-the greatest deference. &quot;Is it not to this place that the young person was taken
-who was found in Mr. Gerald Paget's house last night?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is, and my business is to expose her. Have you any
-objections?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not the slightest, madam. I think you are performing a
-Christian duty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am not obliged to you, sir,&quot; said Mrs. Seaton, haughtily.
-&quot;I am in the habit of doing my duty without being prompted. The creature who is
-harbored there shall be turned adrift before many hours are over. She is a
-disgrace to the neighborhood, and I will see that she is hunted out of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Madam,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;the whole town will be in your debt if
-you rid it of the person in question, and I myself shall be deeply grateful to
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He raised his hat and walked away, thinking, with a blithe
-laugh, &quot;The devil <i>is</i> on my side and I have the twelve hundred pounds safe
-in my pocket.&quot; After this agreeable reflection he idled an hour, singing little
-snatches of song to himself, and then returned to the hotel with a plausible
-tale which he had invented to put Gerald off the scent till the following day,
-by which time he hoped that Emilia would be gone and all traces of her lost. He
-was a keen judge of human nature, and knew what effect Mrs. Seaton's calumnies
-would have upon a young and sensitive girl. Her first impulse would be to fly
-from a spot where she was known--to hide her face anywhere so long as it was
-among strangers. With a strong, determined woman it would be different; she
-would brazen it out, and, give back scorn for scorn, and although she could not
-hope for victory she would have the satisfaction of saying bitter things to her
-revilers. Emilia was not this kind of woman; Gerald's descriptions of her had
-enabled Leonard to gauge her correctly, and to forecast how she would act in the
-face of an accusation so vile and degrading. Believing firmly in the judgments
-he formed of matters in which he was personally concerned, he had, therefore,
-reason to congratulate himself upon the course which events had taken, and he
-skipped up the steps of the hotel with a mind at ease. Its balance, however, was
-disturbed when he was informed that Gerald was gone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did he say where he was going?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, sir,&quot; was the reply.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nor when he would return?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But he left a message for me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can you tell me which direction he took?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">These unsatisfactory iterations produced no outward effect
-upon Leonard; he was a man who never showed his hand. With a pleasant smile he
-left the hotel thinking, &quot;Now where the devil has the young fool gone? To make
-inquiries for his goddess, no doubt. Does that indicate impatience merely, or
-that he cannot trust me? I must no lose my hold on him. If it is necessary to
-humor him, humored he shall be. There is more than one way out of a wood.&quot; As a
-measure of precaution he walked in the direction of the house of the maiden
-sisters, and reaching it, walked slowly back toward the hotel. This was done
-with the intention of intercepting Gerald, and learning whether the young man
-had discovered Emilia's refuge--in which event he was prepared to disclose that
-he himself had at length discovered it, and was hurrying to his dear brother to
-communicate the welcome intelligence. &quot;By the Lord Harry,&quot; he muttered, as he
-stood at the corner of the street, &quot;here comes the young fool! It is lucky I am
-prepared.&quot; He strode rapidly toward Gerald, and almost upset him in his haste.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_28" href="#div1Ref_28">CHAPTER XXVIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE FALSE FRIEND.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Hallo, Gerald!&quot; he cried. &quot;I meet you by the most fortunate
-chance. I have been hunting for you everywhere.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I could not wait for you at the hotel,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;and had
-to go out and make inquiries for myself. What is the name of this street?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never mind the name of the street,&quot; said Leonard, jumping at
-the safe conclusion. &quot;The house is the important thing, and I have discovered
-it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where my Emilia is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, where your Emilia is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I also have been told where she was taken to, and I was
-hurrying to her. Have you seen her, Len, have you seen her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have not, and have not attempted to do so. You see, Gerald,
-it is night, and I am a stranger to her and to the people who have taken care of
-her. It will be best, after all, for you to go first, especially as you are no
-longer the scarecrow you were, and will not alarm her by your haggard
-appearance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am quite fresh now. Are we going to the house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I am taking you there. Oh, Gerald, how I have hunted for
-your Emilia! If I had been in love with her myself, if she were my sweetheart
-instead of yours, I could not have worked harder to find her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sure you could not. You are a true friend. Forgive me
-for leaving the hotel; I could not bear the suspense.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You acted naturally, Gerald--as I should have done in your
-place. I am something more than a friend, I am your loving brother, dear boy,
-ready to go through fire and water to serve you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;God bless you, Len! Are we near the house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There it is, Gerald, on the opposite side, just beyond the
-lamp-post.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come, then, come!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They had scarcely started to cross the road when the
-street-door was opened, and the maiden sisters appeared on the threshold,
-peering up and down the street.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Which is Emilia?&quot; asked Leonard, grasping Gerald's arm,
-detaining him a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Neither. Let us go to them.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is hard to say to so devoted a lover,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;but
-be a little prudent. Any appearance of violent haste might cause them to shut
-the door in our faces.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus advised Gerald curbed his impatience, and crossed the
-road in a more leisurely manner. The maiden sisters started back as the two
-gentlemen halted before them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I beg your pardon,&quot; said Leonard, raising his hat; Gerald was
-so agitated that he could scarcely speak; &quot;but we have been directed here to see
-a young lady who was rescued from the fire last night, and who found a refuge in
-your hospitable house.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We brought Miss Braham home with us,&quot; said the elder lady,
-&quot;and are now in great distress about her. I presume you are friends of hers.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We are her most devoted friends,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;and have
-been searching for her the whole of the day. My name is Leonard Paget; this is
-my brother Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The sisters were standing hand in hand, and at the mention of
-these names their fingers fluttered, then tightened in their clasp. Gerald found
-his voice.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is she ill?&quot; he exclaimed. &quot;Do not hide anything from me, I
-beg!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The sisters looked nervously at each other; the elder was
-first to speak.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you aware that we have received a visit from a lady well
-known in the town?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;Who is the lady and what has her visit to
-do with Miss Braham?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was a ring of genuine honesty in his voice, and it made
-its impression. The elder lady touched his arm gently.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tell me,&quot; she said, &quot;In what special manner are you
-interested in Miss Braham?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Madam,&quot; replied Gerald, &quot;I hope very soon to have the
-happiness of calling her my wife.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The sisters gave each other a bright look, and the younger
-lady said, &quot;It is cold standing here, and my sister is not strong. Will you not
-walk into the house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They accepted the invitation, Gerald gladly, Leonard with
-curiosity as to what the sisters meant when they said they were in great
-distress about Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Excuse my impatience,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;but I implore you to
-allow me to see Miss Braham at once.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Their pity for him would not admit of Emilia's departure being
-immediately communicated to him; it must be led up to gently. But Gerald's
-indignation would not be restrained; before the conclusion of Mrs. Seaton's
-visit was recounted he interrupted the maiden sisters with the truthful version
-of Emilia's misfortunes and of the unhappy circumstances which compelled him to
-take her to his house a few hours before the fire. He blamed himself bitterly
-for the indiscretion, but asked them what else he could have done; and they,
-completely won over by his indignation and by the manifest honesty of his
-professions, threw aside for once all reserve and hesitation, and boldly
-declared that he could not have acted otherwise.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sister,&quot; said the elder to the younger, &quot;the sweet young lady
-deserves our deepest pity, and is worthy of our love. Mr. Paget&quot;--turning to
-Gerald--&quot;Miss Braham will find a home here, and if she will consent, shall be
-married from our house.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are angels of goodness,&quot; said the young man, &quot;but do not
-keep her from me any longer. If you do not think right that I should see her
-alone, let me see her in your presence.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Alas!&quot; said the elder lady; &quot;she must first be found.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Found!&quot; echoed Gerald, in bewilderment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do not alarm yourself. The dear child cannot have gone far.
-We have not finished what we have to tell you. Listen patiently to the end.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">When all was related Gerald stood stupefied for a few moments,
-holding in his hands the pathetic vindication of her innocence which Emilia had
-left behind her. Leonard was secretly exultant. Emilia was gone, and if he
-assisted in the search for her she should never be found. He was confident that
-she had flown from the neighborhood, and that her one desire would be to hide
-herself and her shame among strangers. It was not in his nature to believe in
-womanly purity, and it was not likely that he would make an exception in
-Emilia's favor. She was his enemy; she stood in his path; she barred his way to
-affluence; let her sink into the obscurity she was seeking.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">These sentiments were not expressed in his eyes, which were
-full of sympathy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come, Gerald,&quot; he said, passing his arm around the young
-man's neck, &quot;be a man. As these good ladies say, it will not be difficult to
-find Emilia. Let us seek her; in an hour or two all your troubles will be over.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your brother is right,&quot; said the elderly lady, &quot;no time
-should be lost, for the poor child must be suffering. We rejoice that you have
-so true a friend to assist you. Do not desert him, sir; he is not fit to be left
-alone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Desert Gerald!&quot; cried Leonard. &quot;Desert my dear brother in the
-hour of his distress! No, indeed. He will find me true to the last.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The ladies pressed his hands, and gazed at him approvingly and
-admiringly. His face beamed with earnestness and enthusiasm. He had in him a
-touch of the actor's art; he was playing a part in a fine comedy of manners and
-intrigue, and he thoroughly enjoyed it, and commended himself for his masterly
-performance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The maiden sisters saw the brothers to the street door, and
-impressed upon them that Emilia should be brought to their house at the earliest
-opportunity, and that her room would be ready for her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then commenced Gerald's search for Emilia, a search not only
-without a clue to guide him, but with a cunning man at his elbow, suggesting
-that they should go here and there, where he was certain there was chance of
-finding her. There were times, however, when Gerald himself said he would go to
-such and such a house and make inquiries, and Leonard never opposed him. It was
-his one wish to keep Gerald in the town, and he breathed no hint of his
-conviction that Emilia had flown from it. Everything was against Gerald; it was
-late when the search commenced, and at an hour past midnight he and Leonard
-stood in the quiet streets, gazing at each other, Gerald helplessly, Leonard
-inquiringly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where now, Gerald?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;God knows! I think I am losing my mind.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;May I make a suggestion, dear boy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Len.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not think it treason; you will not blame me for
-importing a little common-sense into our sad position?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How can I blame you, Len--you, the truest friend that a man
-ever had? Do not think me ungrateful. I have only one desire in life--to find
-Emilia. I can think of nothing but her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then I may make my suggestion?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Understand, Gerald, that I make it entirely in Emilia's
-interests.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do, Len.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our best plan will be to go to the hotel and jump into
-bed----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Len!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There, I knew you would storm at me; but just be reasonable.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't be reasonable. I must find Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All right, dear boy. I'll stand by you till I drop. Which way
-shall we turn?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald, in response to this heartless question, led the way
-aimlessly down one street, up another, and on and on, Leonard trudging by his
-side, and neither of them speaking a word. At last Gerald stopped, and gazed
-pitifully around; his eyes fell upon Leonard, who, conscious that the gaze was
-coming, and timing it, closed his with an air of pathetic weariness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are tired, Len.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard instantly opened his eyes, and said briskly, &quot;Tired,
-dear boy! Not a bit of it. What should make me tired? Come along, old fellow.
-Let's be moving.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, Len, I don't see much use in it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not I who say that, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, it is myself. What o'clock is that striking?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard put up his finger, and they listened to the chiming of
-the bells.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Two o'clock, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is Emilia doing now?&quot; murmured Gerald, more to himself
-than to his companion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is asleep, I should say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, Len. I know her better than you do. She is awake,
-thinking of me, as I am thinking of her. You are some years older than I, dear
-brother; have you ever been in love?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Gerald,&quot; replied Leonard, quietly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you are still unmarried,&quot; said Gerald, pityingly. &quot;How
-did it end?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do not ask me, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Forgive me; it is a painful remembrance. She is dead?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard did not reply, and Gerald repeated,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is dead? I am sorry, very sorry.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You need not be. She lives.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How did it happen? You were true to her, I am sure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For heaven's sake, Gerald, do not force me to answer you. Let
-us talk of something else.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I open my heart to you,&quot; said Gerald, with sad insistence,
-&quot;and you close yours to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You cut me to the quick. Yes, I was true to her, but she was
-not true to me. There is the tragedy or the comedy--which you like,
-Gerald--related in less than a dozen words. It is a story which all men live to
-tell--all men, I mean, with the exception of yourself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am a selfish brute, to compel you to expose your wounds.
-Poor Len! If she had been like my Emilia you would not have had to tell the
-tale. We can do nothing more to-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing that I can see.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am so full of my own grief that I forget to sympathize with
-yours, but I am truly sorry for you. At this moment Emilia is thinking of me;
-there is a spiritual whisper in the air which assures me of this. Would it be
-really best to go back to the hotel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It would be wisest, both for your sake and for Emilia's.
-Early in the morning we can commence again. Gerald, to stop out any longer would
-be folly. You would not dare to knock at the door of any house at this hour and
-inquire for Emilia; it would be the ruin of her. You have her honor to guard, as
-well as your own happiness to look after.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am blind, and utterly, utterly selfish. Heaven has sent you
-to guide and counsel me. Yes, we will go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They returned to the hotel, and Gerald gave directions that he
-should be called early in the morning. He and Leonard wished each other
-good-night, and retired to their separate rooms. As Leonard undressed he
-chuckled at the successful progress he had made. Everything had worked in his
-favor, and would so work to the end. He had no doubt of that, with his hand on
-the wheel. So he closed his eyes, and went to sleep contented and happy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald stood by the window and thought of Emilia. To-morrow
-they would be together; to-morrow all would be well. He threw the window open
-and looked out. Could his sight have reached the distance he would have seen a
-pitiful figure staggering on through country roads, stopping ever and anon to
-recover her breath, then starting feverishly on again, with panting bosom and
-streaming eyes, mournfully grateful for the darkness that encompassed her, and
-dreading the coming day. Slander's foul work was being accomplished. Dark as it
-was, Emilia saw the malignant eyes; silent as it was, she heard the hard voices.
-On and on she stumbled, praying for rest. Gerald was false; she did not care to
-live.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_29" href="#div1Ref_29">CHAPTER XXIX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>ON THE TRACK.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">As early, as practicable in the morning Gerald was astir,
-continuing his inquiries for the missing girl. Leonard, of course, accompanied
-him, with the pretence of being very busy and as anxious as Gerald for the
-success of the search, but inwardly fuming at his step-brother's activity. His
-spirits rose as hour after hour passed fruitlessly by; his hopeful anticipations
-were being realized; Emilia was gone, never to return again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At three o'clock in the afternoon Gerald came to a standstill.
-The tortures he was suffering were reflected in his face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Poor boy, poor boy!&quot; said Leonard, in his gentlest tone. &quot;I
-can truly sympathize with you, Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know, Len, I know,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;Let me think quietly;
-don't speak to me. Something must be done; something shall be done. It weighs
-like a sin upon my soul that I have driven my dear girl to misery. What must she
-think of me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">All at once an inspiration fell upon him; his face lighted up;
-he spoke with hope and animation.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Fool that I am,&quot; he cried, &quot;to trust myself. I am going to my
-lawyers; if you care to come with me, Len----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course I care to come with you,&quot; interrupted Leonard. &quot;But
-why to your lawyers? They cannot assist you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They can,&quot; said Gerald, in a decided tone; and they proceeded
-to the office arm-in-arm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a private interview with the head of the firm, at which
-Leonard was present, Gerald explained what he wanted. The firm was to set all
-their machinery to work at once to discover where Emilia had flown to;
-everything was to be done very quietly, and no expense was to be spared. When
-the young girl was found she was not to be informed that a search had been made
-for her, but she was to be carefully and secretly watched, and Gerald was to be
-immediately communicated with. That done, and Gerald conducted to the house in
-which Emilia had sought refuge, the business entrusted to the lawyers was
-concluded. Gerald left with the head of the firm a check for a large amount, in
-proof that he was thoroughly in earnest; and it was arranged that he or Leonard,
-or both of them, should return to their hotel and wait for news.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it is in the middle of the night,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;let me
-know. Not a moment must be lost.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then the step-brothers left the office and walked to their
-hotel. Leonard inwardly gave Gerald credit for being much more practical than he
-had imagined, but still hoped that his good luck would follow him, and that the
-business would fail. To Gerald the misery of entrusting the task to other hands
-lay in the necessity of his remaining inactive himself; but although he would
-not leave the hotel for fear that a messenger from the lawyers might arrive in
-his absence, he could not endure to remain idle. He sent a note to the kind
-maiden ladies who had sheltered Emilia, and received one in reply, to the effect
-that they had heard nothing of the lost girl; and at least once in every hour he
-despatched a communication to the lawyers, to which the invariable answer was
-that the inquiry was proceeding, but no clue had yet been discovered. Gerald did
-not undress that night; he slept fitfully in an arm-chair. Leonard prepared for
-any sacrifice in the furtherance of his own interests, took off his coat and
-waistcoat, and made himself as comfortable as he could with wraps and rugs on a
-sofa in the same room in which Gerald passed the night. Gerald urged him to go
-to bed, but he would not.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not right,&quot; said the unhappy young man, &quot;that you
-should share my fatigue and troubles. Go and have a good night's rest.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I distinctly decline,&quot; replied Leonard, in an affectionate
-tone. &quot;Your troubles are my troubles, and I feel them almost as deeply as
-yourself. My name is Thorough.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is no other man like you, I believe,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;I
-will try and repay you one day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall repay me one day,&quot; thought Leonard, &quot;and whatever I
-get will be richly earned.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Aloud, he said, &quot;The only repayment I ask, my dear boy, is to
-see you happy with your Emilia. There, let us say no more about it. If you want
-me in the night you have only to call me, you will find me ready for anything.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald woke a dozen times before daylight, and moved gently
-about so that he should not disturb his noble friend. He stole down to the night
-porter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No one has come for me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No one, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If anyone calls send him to me instantly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was a fortunate night for the porter, the tips he received
-from the distracted young man making a very handsome total. Gerald was grateful
-when morning broke. It would not be long before Emilia was in his arms. He made
-an effort to repair the disorder in his clothes and appearance, and long before
-the door of the lawyers' office was open one of his messengers was waiting for
-tidings. Still the same answer, always the same answer; no traces of Emilia had
-been found. He paced the room with the restlessness of a wild animal.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Once he stopped, and leaning heavily on Leonard's shoulder,
-whispered, &quot;If she should be dead! Good God, if she should be dead!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So much the better for everybody,&quot; thought Leonard, as he
-passed his arm round Gerald's waist and endeavored to soothe him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At noon the lawyer paid Gerald a visit.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have brought me news?&quot; cried Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None of a satisfactory nature,&quot; replied the lawyer. &quot;We have
-ascertained for certain that the young lady is not in the town.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But when she left the house in which she was sheltered,&quot; said
-Leonard, for Gerald was too overpowered to speak, &quot;someone must have seen her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If so,&quot; said the lawyer, &quot;we have not discovered the person,
-who has a good reason for coming forward, as we have offered handsome rewards
-for definite information of any kind concerning her. However, we have now taken
-other steps, and it is for the purpose of making Mr. Paget acquainted with them
-that I have paid this visit.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He paused, and Gerald motioned to him to continue.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Being convinced that Miss Braham has left the town, we have
-despatched agents in every direction to track her down. These agents understand
-that they are to pursue their mission in the most delicate manner, and they are
-instructed to keep in regular telegraphic communication with us. My errand here
-is to communicate these proceedings to you, and to advise patience and&quot;--with a
-significant look at Gerald--&quot;peace of mind.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not know peace,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;till she is found.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All that is humanly possible is being done; we can do no
-more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was poor comfort, and it did not diminish the young man's
-distress. The lawyer remained for a few minutes longer, and then took his
-departure. The day waned, and the night, without any tidings, and on the
-following morning despair seemed to have reached its height in Gerald's mind.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Upon my soul,&quot; thought Leonard, &quot;I think he is going mad.
-Well, that would not be a bad ending to this insane hunt. I should be his
-guardian, and should know how to take care of him--and his money. His? No, mine,
-by the laws of nature.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">During this day copies of telegrams received by the lawyers
-were sent to Gerald, but not one of them satisfactory.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is lost to me forever,&quot; groaned Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Amen!&quot; thought Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Early the next morning, however, a telegram was handed in with
-these words, &quot;On the track.&quot; The lawyer hastened to Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is from one of our best men,&quot; he said. &quot;Something will be
-known in the course of the day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But it was not till another night had passed that Gerald
-learned where Emilia was.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_30" href="#div1Ref_30">CHAPTER XXX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE FLIGHT AND THE RESCUE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The terrors of the night on which Emilia fled to escape from
-her traducers produced an indelible effect upon her mind. Often in afterlife,
-when the brief gleam of sunshine she was destined to enjoy had died away, did
-she reflect with shudders upon the experiences of those few pregnant hours. From
-the moment of her departure until sunrise flooded the land with light, but
-brought only a deeper anguish to her soul, there was an interval of darkness
-lasting barely seven hours, but it seemed to her that it might have been seven
-times seven, so heavily charged were the minutes with black woe. Feeble as she
-was, and fragile as was her frame, she travelled a surprising distance during
-these interminable hours. When, compelled by exhaustion to rest, she had so far
-recovered as to be able to proceed, she ran with fleet foot to make up for lost
-time, until, breathless and panting, she came to a standstill, and caught at the
-nearest object for support, generally a fence or the branch of a tree. Sometimes
-she caught at shadows and fell, and lay supine awhile, to rise again in
-ever-growing despair and continue her flight; but moral forces are powerless
-against the forces of physical nature, and shortly after sunrise her strength
-gave way, and now when she fell she was unable from exhaustion to rise. She
-might have been able to continue her flight for still a brief space, had she not
-been climbing a hill, the exertion of which completely overpowered her. The spot
-upon which she fell commanded a view of a river. It stretched to the north and
-south of her, and in its waters were mirrored the gorgeous splendors of the
-rising sun. She did not see it at first, for it came into view only at the point
-she had reached; lower down the hill it was not visible to sight.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Presently, opening her eyes, she saw the jewelled shadows
-playing on the surface, and they so distressed her--yearning as she was for
-peace and rest--that her eyelids drooped, and she turned her head to avoid a
-picture which in happier circumstances she would have gazed upon with delight.
-But she knew the river was there.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">For full half an hour she lay with her eyes closed, struggling
-with a horrible temptation. Then she turned to the water, struggled into a
-sitting posture, and gazed with wild eyes upon it. Not voluntarily and of her
-own free will; some evil spiritual power within her compelled her to do so.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was quieter now. The gorgeous colors had died out of the
-skies and the river was in repose. &quot;Come,&quot; it whispered, &quot;come to my embrace,
-and end your woes.&quot; But the strong religious instinct within her enabled her to
-struggle with the frightful suggestion. &quot;No, no!&quot; she murmured, feebly putting
-her hands together. &quot;Help me, dear Lord, to avoid the crime!&quot; Her appeal did not
-banish the silent voices which urged her to seek oblivion, and, in oblivion,
-peace. How the struggle would have ended it is difficult to say, had not her
-fate been taken out of her own hands.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There came to her ears the crack of a whip and the sound of a
-human voice urging horses up the hill. She bowed her head upon her lap to hide
-her face from the stranger who was approaching her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was an old man in charge of a wagon and a team of horses.
-The cattle were willing enough, and fresh for their day's work, and it was only
-from habit that their driver was shouting words of encouragement to them. They
-reached the summit of the hill, and the wagoner, merciful to his beasts, eased
-them a bit. It was then his eyes fell upon the form of Emilia. He approached her
-and laid his hand upon her shoulder. She shivered and shrank from his touch. At
-this human contact, the first she had experienced since her flight from the
-house of the maiden sisters, there seemed to come upon her a more complete
-consciousness of the shame and degradation into which she had been thrust. That
-it was unmerited mattered not. It clung to her, and was proclaimed in her face.
-How, then, could she raise her head to meet the gaze of any human being?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In trouble, my lass?&quot; asked the wagoner, kindly. With but an
-imperfect observation of her, he knew that she was young.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia made no reply, but let her shoulder droop, so that his
-hand might not touch her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can I help you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">No sound, and now no further movement, from the hapless girl.
-He lingered a moment or two longer, and then slowly left her. Giving the word,
-his team began to descend the hill. But at the bottom of the descent, with a
-level road before him, he pulled up his cattle again, and turned with sad eyes
-to the spot where he had left Emilia, who was hidden from his sight.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This man had a history--as what man has not?--and it is
-probable that Emilia was saved from suicide by the remembrance of the most
-dolorous experience in his life. He was nearer seventy than sixty years of age,
-but he was strong and lusty still, and his heart had not been soured or
-embittered by trouble. The story of his special grief is a common one enough,
-and can be narrated in a few words. He was a married man, and his old wife was
-waiting at home for him, five and thirty miles away. Children had they none, but
-thirty years ago they had a daughter, who left them secretly upon the persuasion
-of a scoundrel. The villain took her to London, and after she had enjoyed a
-brief spell of false happiness she found herself deserted and friendless. In her
-despair she crept back to the home of which she had been the joy, but she had
-not the courage to enter it and beg for forgiveness. Her body was discovered in
-a river hard by, and in her pocket a letter to her parents, relating her story,
-and praying them to think kindly of her. That is all.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was the memory of this daughter that caused the wagoner to
-turn toward Emilia. Perhaps the poor girl was in a strait similar to that of his
-own lost child. Had <i>she</i> met a kind heart, had a helping hand been
-stretched out to her, she might have been saved to them, might have been living
-at this very day to comfort and cheer her aged parents. He would make another
-effort to ascertain the trouble of the lonely girl who had shrunk from his
-touch. Up the hill he climbed, having no fear for his horses, who would only
-start again at the sound of his voice.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia had risen to her feet, and her trembling hands were
-extended to the river, as though to push it from her, while her form swayed
-toward it. He saw her face now, and his heart beat with pity for her. It may
-have been fancy, but he fancied he saw in her a resemblance to his lost child.
-So engrossed was Emilia in the terrible struggle that was raging in her soul
-that she was not aware she was observed until the wagoner seized her arm, and
-said,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My dear, let me help you in your trouble.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was like the voice of an angel who had come to her rescue.
-She threw her arms about him, and cried, in a voice of exhaustion:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Save me, save me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's what I've come for, my dear,&quot; said the wagoner, holding
-her up. &quot;Where is your home?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Home!&quot; she echoed, hysterically, &quot;I have none! I am alone in
-the world--alone, alone!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No father or mother?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No friends?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None--not one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What can I do for you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Take me from the river. Hark! Do you not hear what it is
-whispering to me? I am exhausted; my strength is gone, and I can no longer
-resist. If you leave me here I shall die!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But you do not know where I am going.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It does not matter. Anywhere, anywhere, so that I can have
-rest. Hide me--hide me! Oh, my heart, my heart!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon this she burst into a passionate fit of weeping, and the
-good wagoner saw that she was not in a fit state to answer further questions.
-Endeavoring to calm her, he assisted her down the hill to where his team was
-standing, but before they reached it she swooned. It was not an easy task to
-lift her into the shelter of his wagon, but he managed it, and made up a bed of
-straw upon which he laid her. Then he started his horses again, and was careful
-to avoid ruts, in order not to jolt his fair guest too roughly. He had the whole
-day before him, and it would do if he reached his home before night. Now and
-again he mounted the wagon to look at Emilia, and was concerned that he could
-obtain no coherent words from her. The poor girl's trials had produced their
-effect upon her weak frame, and she was fast relapsing into delirium. All that
-he could distinguish in her feverish mutterings were the words, &quot;I am innocent,
-I am innocent! I have done no wrong. God will speak for me!&quot; Even these pathetic
-utterances came from her at intervals, and he had to piece them together. Her
-youth and beauty deeply impressed the kind-hearted man, and he did not regret
-the course he had taken. In the middle of the day he arrived at a village, and
-gave his horses two hours' rest. He utilized these two hours by hunting up a
-doctor, who, feeling Emilia's pulse and putting his hand on her hot forehead,
-said, &quot;She is in a high state of fever. The only thing you can do is to get her
-home as quickly as possible.&quot; He believed her to be the wagoner's daughter, and
-he gave the old man a draught which Emilia was to be persuaded to take, should
-she have an interval of consciousness before they reached their journey's end.
-The wagoner's anxiety now was to get home as soon as possible, and the roads
-being good he put his horses to a trot. At six o'clock in the evening the
-journey was over, and the team stood at the door of his cottage. His old wife
-ran out to greet him, and he rapidly explained to her what he had done, and why
-he had done it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Was it right, mother?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The tears rushed to her eyes. It was thirty years since he had
-addressed her by that endearing term, and she thought, as he had thought, of the
-daughter they had lost in the time gone by. There are memories that never die.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite right, John,&quot; murmured the old woman, and together they
-carried Emilia into their cottage and laid her upon a bed. There the wagoner
-left his wife to attend to the young girl; he had his horses to look after, and
-when this was done he returned to the cottage, to find Emilia undressed and in
-bed, with the old woman standing by her side.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We must have a doctor, John,&quot; she said, and away he went for
-one.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The report was not favorable; Emilia was prostrate, and now
-that the strain was over a dangerous reaction had set in. The doctor gave it as
-his opinion that she would not be well for weeks, and so it proved. But long
-before she was convalescent Gerald, accompanied by Leonard, made his appearance,
-and thus the unfortunate girl had near her one enemy and three friends. Which
-side would triumph in the end?</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_31" href="#div1Ref_31">CHAPTER XXXI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>LIGHT SHINES THROUGH THE DARK CLOUDS.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard cursed his ill luck, cursed Gerald for his
-infatuation, cursed Emilia for stepping in to spoil his plans, cursed the
-wagoner and his wife for their kindness toward her--in short, cursed everything
-and everybody except himself, whom he regarded as the person who was being
-wronged in the affair. But he wore a constant smile upon his lips, his words
-were honey, and the consideration he expressed for Emilia was perfect in its
-way. Sometimes when he spoke of her it was in a choked voice, and he was
-certainly successful in deceiving everyone around him. His one hope now was that
-Emilia would die, and could he have done so without risk to himself, he would
-cheerfully have given her a cup of poison to bring about that consummation.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald's great grief was that Emilia did not recognize him.
-Indeed, she knew no one. Even when she was able to move about her mind was a
-blank. She allowed him to take her hand in his, and to retain it, but to the
-tender pressure of his fingers she made no response. They took woodland rambles
-together, hand in hand, and she gathered wild flowers which she arranged
-afterward in the cottage. She listened to all he said, nodding her head gently
-from time to time in a manner which made his heart beat with hope that she
-understood what he was speaking of. Of course the subject-matter, when
-originated by Gerald, was personal. He dilated upon his love for her, and
-explained again and again how it was that he had not come to her the day after
-the fire; and when he finished she gazed at him with a pitiful smile on her lips
-and a vacant look in her eyes, which proved too well that his words had fallen
-upon ears insensible to their meaning. Upon abstract matters she was more
-intelligent. She loved the animals about the cottage, and the dumb creatures
-loved her and obeyed her least motion; she loved the flowers that were gathered,
-but Gerald observed with pain that she tended with care only those she gathered
-herself. When he gave her any she accepted them gently, but presently they
-dropped from her hand, and she made no effort to pick them up. &quot;I have wrecked
-her reason,&quot; he groaned. &quot;Monster that I am, I have ruined my dear girl's life!&quot;
-As for Leonard, he derived some satisfaction from what was transpiring. &quot;She is
-drifting into a confirmed idiot,&quot; he thought. &quot;It is not so good as getting rid
-of her altogether, but I am grateful for small mercies.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It had been arranged between Gerald and Leonard that a certain
-secrecy should be observed in their proceedings. Leonard did not exactly know
-how this would be to his advantage, but he had a dim idea that it might be so
-turned, and that at all events it would be better than making a full disclosure
-of all that had transpired. When Leonard mooted the plan Gerald asked what would
-be the good of it, and Leonard answered:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My poor boy! What a simpleton you are, and how little you
-know the world. It is the publicity of the thing that has driven Emilia to the
-injudicious course she has pursued, for I do not disguise from you that it would
-have been far better for her had she remained to face matters boldly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was impossible she should do so,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;My dear
-girl's nature is far too sensitive and delicate to cope with such snakes in the
-grass as Mrs. Seaton.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Granted; but although there would have been suffering, I
-still maintain it would have been the better course. I repeat that it is the
-publicity of the unfortunate affair that has directed her movements. Would she
-have run away, had she not been found in your house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, she would have had no motive for doing so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Exactly; and the motive that urged her on was the publicity
-of the thing. You would only be adding to her unhappiness by making affairs
-still more public. Scandal is a feminine bird with a thousand pairs of wings, my
-boy, and she would fly here, and render Emilia's life intolerable. There is
-nothing that people enjoy so much. Every man's door flies open when she knocks,
-and if it should chance to remain shut the jade creeps in through the crevices.
-Emilia would not thank you if she discovered that it was through you she was
-being pursued by the wretched innuendoes circulated by Mrs. Seaton. Let sleeping
-dogs lie. And bear in mind that Emilia has made things a hundred times worse by
-running away from her enemies.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How so?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She has left them in possession of the field, and therefore
-in the position of victors. I am not speaking from my heart, but with the usual
-worldly tongue, which I most heartily despise, when I say that Emilia's flight
-is in itself an admission of guilt. It is really so, Gerald. She has piled
-difficulty upon difficulty, and you must not assist her in the work. Her
-sensitive nature, yes, I grant you all that, but it is for the man to be strong
-and wise, and to let his actions be guided by a cool brain.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are a true counsellor, Leonard. But for you Heaven knows
-to what a pass we should be driven. Still it sounds cruel.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We must be cruel only to be kind, dear boy. The people in
-these parts are like people in our own town, like people all over the world.
-There isn't a pin to choose between them. So for your Emilia's sake we will be
-mum.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So it was settled. Had Leonard had his wish, their names would
-have been concealed and they would have adopted others; but to this Gerald would
-not consent. Leonard was secretly exultant, although, as has been said, he did
-not exactly know how it would be of advantage to him. But he did know that
-secrecy would make matters worse for Emilia instead of better, and that when her
-acquaintances became aware of the plan adopted--as become aware they should if
-the necessity arose--it would place another weapon in their hands against her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus six weeks passed, and Emilia remained in the same
-condition. Leonard wondered for how much longer they were going to stop. The
-quietude of the place palled upon him; there were no amusements, no society, and
-Gerald being with him, he was compelled to be on his best behavior. He longed
-for the busy world and its pleasures and excitements. He ventured to speak to
-Gerald about their stay.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not leave,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;until Emilia is better, or
-until we are married.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This staggered Leonard. &quot;Surely,&quot; he said, &quot;you have no notion
-of marrying her while she remains as she is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it were possible,&quot; said Gerald, very seriously, &quot;I should
-not hesitate. Leonard, my dear brother, you are my superior in every way, but at
-least in this affair I know what is right. Leave me here to myself, then. Why
-should I condemn you to a life which must be intolerably dull to you? You have
-already assisted me in a manner which no other man in the world could or would
-have done, and to my last hour I shall be grateful to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not leave your side,&quot; said Leonard, pressing his
-hand, &quot;until you drive me from you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That will be never,&quot; said Gerald, affectionately. &quot;Leonard,
-with your worldly wisdom, can you suggest any plan by which Emilia's mind could
-be restored to her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None, my dear boy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The doctor who attends her,&quot; said Gerald, in a musing tone,
-&quot;is a worthy gentleman, but there may be cleverer than he to be found in
-cities.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So far as I can see,&quot; said Leonard, much disturbed by this
-observation, &quot;he has done all that is possible in such a case.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There will be no harm in my having a conversation with him. I
-shall go at once.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am with you, Gerald, if you want me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I always want you, my dear brother. Let us go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They found the doctor, an elderly gentleman, at home, and he
-received them politely, but not exactly with cordiality. They fell immediately
-into conversation about Emilia, but both Leonard and Gerald observed that the
-doctor expressed himself with marked reserve. At length he seemed to arrive at a
-certain resolution, and, with a significant look at Leonard, he said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Would you mind leaving your brother and me in private a
-while?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all,&quot; replied Leonard, somewhat startled. &quot;If there is
-any particular reason for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have a particular reason,&quot; said the doctor, &quot;or I should
-not request it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you say, Gerald?&quot; asked Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The doctor wishes it,&quot; said Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard rose, and went to the door. Gerald ran after him into
-the passage and whispered, &quot;I will tell you everything that passes, Leonard. You
-must not be hurt.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing can hurt me that is for your good,&quot; said Leonard. &quot;I
-will walk up and down the street, and wait till you come out.&quot; He was furious
-with the doctor. &quot;Officious fool!&quot; he muttered when he was outside. &quot;What
-mischief will he be up to?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now,&quot; said the doctor, when Gerald rejoined him, &quot;I can speak
-more freely. I have nothing whatever to say against your brother----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing can be said against him,&quot; interrupted Gerald, warmly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is pleasant to see the affection that exists between you,&quot;
-remarked the doctor; &quot;but he is not the young lady's lover.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;I am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is for that reason,&quot; said the doctor, with a slight frown,
-&quot;that I desire to confer with you alone. Young gentleman, it is my intention to
-speak very plainly to you. You are the young lady's lover, you declare. Her
-honorable lover, may I ask?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Her honorable lover,&quot; replied Gerald, &quot;as I am a gentleman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Declared and accepted?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Declared and accepted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you any objection to my saying what is in my mind?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not the slightest.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You love her honorably. Therefore you would do much to
-restore her to health?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I would give all I possess in the world. I would sacrifice my
-life for her dear sake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are rich?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am very well-to-do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you a thousand a-year?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Three, at least, and funds in hand besides.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is the young lady's income?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She has none.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is poor, then?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And friendless?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With the exception of ourselves and two good maiden ladies
-who have known her only for a day, she has no friends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nor family--parents, I mean, brothers and sisters?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She has none.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your frank answers make my task easier, but at the same time
-do not remove my doubts. I am taking the liberty of an old man, for I am old
-enough to be your grandfather. The young lady interests me greatly, and all that
-I know of her I have learned from the good people who, perfect strangers to her,
-have taken her to their bosoms with as much sincerity and almost as much
-affection as if she were a child of their own.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;God bless them for it!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They have told me all they know. It is very little. Shortly
-after being taken into their hospitable house, you and your brother present
-yourselves. You are not related to her in any way--interrupt me if I am
-wrong--and you at once place yourself on terms of loving intimacy with her. You
-walk with her, hand in hand, you conduct yourself as a lover toward her. Your
-behavior places her in an equivocal position--I have no hesitation in saying so
-much--and I, an old-fashioned gentleman, with old-fashioned notions of honor,
-regard your proceedings with disfavor. The restoration of her health is placed
-in my hands, and I, a physician of some experience, find in the patient herself
-obstacles which it is out of my power to surmount. You two gentlemen do not
-assist me in the least; you give no information concerning her which may assist
-me in the duty devolving upon me as a professional man. For there is here some
-mental disturbance, the result of a severe shock, I judge to her heart and
-feelings, of which I am in complete ignorance, and which renders me practically
-powerless. Nevertheless, the interest she has created in me causes me to make a
-study of the case, and I have a vague notion that I could find a road to a cure
-if I were in possession of the particulars of her history. Control your
-excitement.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But Gerald was not to be restrained. He started to his feet,
-and bending toward the doctor, said, in his most earnest tone:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Doctor, there is no fee you can name which I should deem too
-high if you can restore the mind of my dear girl.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My fee,&quot; said the doctor, dryly, &quot;is half-a-crown a visit,
-medicine included, and the poor young lady is in no position to pay even so
-small a bill.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am responsible for everything.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;From you, as matters stand, I should decline to accept a
-penny. You are acquainted with the story of the young girl's life?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have no right to force your confidence. If you choose to
-confide in me, I may be able to do as I have said.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will tell you everything unreservedly,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;on
-the understanding that it does not pass your lips to another person.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let it be so,&quot; said the doctor, after a little pause, &quot;for
-the young lady's sake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is for her sake,&quot; said Gerald, &quot;that I exact the pledge of
-secrecy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then he began the story, and related it faithfully, down to
-the smallest detail. It occupied him some time, but the doctor did not once
-interrupt him, but kept his eyes fixed upon Gerald's face, his own growing
-brighter and brighter as the young man proceeded. The story finished, there was
-silence for a minute or two, during which the doctor sat with his head resting
-in his hand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is there hope, doctor?&quot; cried Gerald, the first to speak.
-&quot;Tell me, is there hope?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is,&quot; replied the doctor, removing his hand. &quot;The road
-is open to you if you will take it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does it, then, depend upon me?&quot; exclaimed Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Upon you, and upon no other man. It is my firm belief that
-from the moment you take her in your arms and whisper the word, 'Wife,' the cure
-will be commenced. The windows of her mind, of her heart, will be opened for the
-light, and it will shine upon her soul, which will leap up exultant in the
-knowledge that she stands purified in her own eyes and in the eyes of the world.
-The stain that now lies upon her, the heartless, merciless, unjust degradation
-which has been forced upon her, have weighed her down, have clouded her mind.
-And let me tell you that God has been merciful in this visitation. Had she
-recovered her reason, and with her reason, the consciousness of her shame, she
-might have gone mad from the horror of it. She is in your hands now, not in
-mine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He spoke solemnly, but no less solemnly than Gerald when he
-said, &quot;As I deal by her, may I be dealt by! how can I atone quickly for the
-unconscious suffering I have inflicted upon her? Is a marriage in church
-possible?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In her present state I fear not,&quot; said the doctor, &quot;and I
-consider it vital that there should be no delay, for she is sinking into
-melancholia, from which she would never emerge. The registry office is open to
-you, and a marriage there is as binding as a marriage at the altar.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald's joy at the suggestion was unutterable. All he could
-do was to seize the good doctor's hands and press them convulsively, and mutter
-incoherent words of gratitude. The doctor understood him, however, and smiled
-brightly upon him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;One word more of advice,&quot; he said. &quot;On the day you and my
-patient are married, take her away immediately. Do not tarry here an hour. Have
-all your preparations made, and start at once for France, or Italy, or
-Switzerland. Let her move among new scenes--they will help her to forget her
-misery, and will bring back memories of a happiness she believes is lost to her
-forever. There, there. Go now, and see about it. A gentleman offers you his
-hand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They shook hands cordially, and Gerald hastened away.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard banished the gloomy look from his face when Gerald
-came from the house, but when he heard what Gerald had to tell him he was seized
-with consternation. All his fine plans were about to be upset, and he was
-powerless. He recognized instantly that nothing he could say would stop the
-marriage, and that there was no alternative but to keep Gerald bound to him, and
-to do whatever was required. But fair as was his face, smooth as were his words,
-his heart was as the heart of a demon, and he was already at work, scheming for
-the future, scheming for the destruction of honest love and happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald found no difficulties in the way. The doctor's
-assistance rendered everything easy. In fifteen days from that on which he had
-made a confident of the good doctor Gerald and Emilia were on their way to the
-registry office.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You understand, Emilia,&quot; he said. &quot;We are to be married this
-morning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Gerald,&quot; she said softly, &quot;I understand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was Gerald's wish that no one should accompany them to the
-office. The witnesses, of whom there were three--Leonard, the doctor, and the
-old wagoner--were to wait for the couple, and to make no demonstration whatever.
-The ceremony was to be perfectly quiet, and the registrar with a twenty-pound
-fee, managed this so perfectly that not a soul in the place with the exception
-of those present at the marriage, was aware that it was being performed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">When Emilia said to Gerald, &quot;Yes, Gerald I understand,&quot; he
-looked with heartfelt hope and gladness into her face. There was already a new
-note in her voice; her soul was struggling to the light. They passed a poor
-woman with a baby in her arms and some withered violets in her hand. Emilia
-turned and gazed at the poor creature and the infant. Gerald took some gold
-pieces from his pocket and pressed them into Emilia's hand. She gave him a sweet
-look. The light was coming.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Will you sell me two bunches of your violets?&quot; said Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Take them, my lady; two bunches for a penny.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The woman held out her hand, but Emilia, before she paid for
-the flowers stooped and kissed the little child. Then she dropped the gold
-pieces into the woman's palm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, my God!&quot; cried the woman, with a bewildered look, her
-fingers closing tightly on the gold.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">As they walked along Emilia gave Gerald one of the bunches of
-the withered violets, which he put into his buttonhole, and she pinned the other
-bunch to the bosom of her dress. Then she lowered her head and touched Gerald's
-hand with her lips.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My darling, my darling,&quot; murmured Gerald, with moist eyes,
-&quot;may I live to brighten all your future life!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The ceremony was performed. Gerald placed the ring on Emilia's
-finger. She caught her breath, and pressed her bosom with her right hand,
-holding out her left.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be brave!&quot; whispered Gerald. &quot;My dear wife!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The light had come: It shone in her eyes, in her face, it
-irradiated her whole form. For the second time she lowered her head, and kissed
-the hand of her faithful lover.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a sequestered spot, at some distance from the registry
-office, two carriages were waiting, one for Emilia and her husband, one for
-Leonard. There had been a brief parting between Emilia and the wagoner and his
-good wife, who had kissed her and bade her farewell. Then came Gerald's parting
-from those friends and from the doctor. He left with that worthy man two checks,
-the first being for the exact amount of the doctor's account, calculated at
-half-a-crown a visit--he would accept no more--the second for a substantial
-amount, to be given to the wagoner when the newly-married couple had departed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will join us at Interlaken to-day fortnight,&quot; said Gerald
-aside to Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Depend upon me,&quot; said Leonard; and so for that brief space
-they parted from each other.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My wife!&quot; said Gerald, as they rode away in the bridal
-carriage, &quot;my darling wife!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She lay in his arms, quiet and happy. Heaven's light was never
-sweeter than that which shone within her wakened soul.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_32" href="#div1Ref_32">CHAPTER XXXII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>LEONARD MEETS WITH A FELLOW-SCOUNDREL.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The few months that passed were the happiest period in
-Emilia's life. Gerald's love, his care and devotion, his wonderful
-thoughtfulness, were in their effect something like divine revelations to the
-tender-hearted and confiding young girl, who was enjoying a very heaven upon
-earth. Leonard joined them in Interlaken, as had been arranged, and accompanied
-them through the loveliest parts of Switzerland and Italy. Gerald's plan was not
-to rush from place to place, but to proceed leisurely from one scene of
-loveliness to another, and to linger and dawdle wherever the fancy seized them.
-It suited Leonard, who could make little detours to neighboring cities which
-offered greater attractions to him, and he never went away from them without
-making it understood that it was for their sake, and not for his own, that he
-left them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know what young people like yourselves enjoy most,&quot; he
-said, &quot;their own society. I am like the fifth wheel in a coach.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gerald did not dispute with him on this point. Much as he
-loved Leonard he loved Emilia more, and his greatest happiness was derived from
-that delicious intercourse of soul and soul which can only be made manifest when
-lovers are alone together.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Leonard is the dearest fellow in the world,&quot; he said to
-Emilia, &quot;and I don't know what we should do without him. You do not know what we
-owe him. If it had not been for him I doubt if you would be with me at the
-present moment.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia was only too willing to subscribe to this affectionate
-estimate of Leonard's character; she grew, like Gerald, to have never one
-moment's doubt of the sincerity of his affection. From this it will be seen how
-thoroughly the villain had succeeded in deceiving them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Giving himself up entirely to the blissful enjoyment of the
-present, Gerald, at the instigation of Leonard, had delivered over to him the
-management of his monetary matters. Leonard thus became a kind of steward to
-Gerald's estate, and so absolutely did he succeed in getting matters into his
-hands that he now drew all the checks for the current expenses of the tour,
-supplying Gerald with loose cash as the young man required it. Ostensibly,
-therefore, Leonard, was the master and Gerald the dependent.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In this manner five months of happiness passed, and then it
-was that Emilia, with burning blushes and a palpitating heart, whispered to
-Gerald the solemn, joyful news that a new life was born within her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If anything was needed to complete my happiness,&quot; said
-Gerald, pressing his wife fondly to his heart, &quot;it was this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard, ever on the watch, knew that some fresh spring of
-happiness had been found, and he wormed the news out of Gerald. It drove him
-almost mad. If a child was born to them he might bid farewell forever to every
-chance of stepping into possession of the fortune which Gerald possessed, and
-which ought by right to have been his. &quot;I must find a way,&quot; he thought, with
-burning hatred in his heart, &quot;I must find a way, and soon, or it will be too
-late.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My dear boy,&quot; he said to Gerald, &quot;I am overjoyed at the
-tidings. Heaven bless you, and Emilia, and the little one--my nephew or my
-niece, Gerald; which!--who is going to cheer our hearts!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was evening when this confidence passed between Gerald and
-Leonard. They had been travelling for a few days in the Valais, and were making
-for the village of Vissoye, where they intended to remain a little while if they
-could find accommodation, and make it the starting-point of idle excursions in
-the romantic neighborhood. They had mules and guides; Emilia was riding in
-front, alone for a few minutes, while the step-brothers, walking in the rear,
-were conversing. Gerald was too enamoured of Emilia to leave her long alone, and
-presently he was walking by her side, with his hand in hers. The guides took no
-notice, being well accustomed to these loving exchanges on the part of foreign
-tourists.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you hear Leonard singing?&quot; asked Gerald. &quot;I wish he could
-meet some one like you--but that, I think, is impossible, Emilia--to make him
-happy as you have made me. He deserves everything that is good.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">While he uttered these words, Leonard, who was carolling a
-mountain song to show how light of heart he was, gazed at the precipice over
-which they were passing, and thought, even in the midst of his singing, &quot;If she
-would only topple over! Things would be so much easier then. Such accidents have
-occurred. Now, if the guides were absent, and Gerald had gone on a little ahead,
-just round that turn where he could not see what was going on, I daresay it
-could be managed. It would not take a moment. A bold sweep, a scream, and all
-would be over.&quot; He stopped singing, to give full play to his thoughts, and he
-mentally acted the tragic scene, from its initiatory stage to the point where he
-stood with his arms round the distracted Gerald, endeavoring to console him for
-the horrible loss. It did not appear so difficult; he was a clever fellow, and
-he ought to be able to manage it. But it would have to be done very, very
-carefully; no shadow of suspicion must rest upon him. Corrupt as was Leonard's
-nature, he would go only to a certain length; he stopped short where there was
-fear of danger to himself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They found rough but clean accommodation in the village, and
-after the evening meal Leonard left the lovers alone, and went out to smoke and
-think. So far as a full purse and creature comforts went he was in clover. He
-had plenty of money, and was enjoying the best of everything. The cigar he was
-smoking was of the finest brand that could be obtained; when they stopped at
-good hotels every luxury that could be obtained was his; the largest rooms with
-the grandest views, the most famous vintages, the most delicate dishes--nothing
-was spared. But how long would it last? When the child was born a new interest
-would be created which was certain to be injurious to him. Curse them! He was
-but a pauper, after all, and what he enjoyed was at the will of another, to be
-continued or taken away at a moment's notice. And he did not trust Emilia. He
-trusted no woman. They were a false, selfish lot, thinking only of themselves,
-with no sense of justice. It was intolerable that he should be at the mercy of
-one of the falsest and most selfish of the crowd.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was out of the village now, and stood smoking and musing,
-facing a tremendous range. The evil thoughts by which he was animated were
-expressed in his face; being alone, as he thought, there was no reason for
-concealment, and although he generally kept perfect control over his features,
-there were rare occasions upon which he indulged in the luxury of frankness.
-This was such an occasion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was mistaken in believing himself to be alone. A man, also
-smoking a good cigar, was sitting on a jutting rock, observing him. Leonard
-threw away the end of his cigar, and took another from his case. Then he took
-another from his case. Then he took out his matchbox, and found that it was
-empty. &quot;The devil take it!&quot; he muttered. &quot;The whole world is against me!&quot; Low as
-was the tone in which the words were spoken, the stranger heard them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Allow me to offer you a light.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard started, and his countenance became instantly
-composed. The stranger laughed aloud. Irritated by the laugh, in which there was
-a malicious, if not a sinister note, Leonard turned on his heel.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why so fast?&quot; said the stranger, stepping to Leonard's side.
-&quot;A match is a very simple offering for a friend to make.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A friend!&quot; exclaimed Leonard, and looked the stranger full in
-the face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Allow me to introduce myself anew,&quot; said the stranger. &quot;Your
-memory is not good. Dr. Peterssen, at your service.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What, Peterssen!&quot; cried Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The same.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should never have recognized you,&quot; said Leonard, taking the
-lighted match and applying it to his cigar.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Small wonder. When we last met I was in low water, and my
-face was bearded. You remember me now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I remember you now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Voices do not change. Let me see. It is eighteen months ago
-since we saw each other. Ballarat I think the place was.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, it was on Ballarat.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A marvellous gold field, though we got none of the precious
-metal, partly from indolence, partly from ill luck.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen and Leonard had met in Australia, and had struck
-up an acquaintance there. <i>Arcades ambo</i>. It would not have been to their
-credit if some of their mutual experiences were known. Leonard was painfully
-conscious of the fact, and could not just at this moment make up his mind
-whether the meeting was one to be hailed with satisfaction, or the reverse. He
-knew Dr. Peterssen to be ripe for any villainy, and at this juncture it might be
-handy to have such a friend near him; but how far would it be safe to trust the
-man?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What brings you here, Peterssen?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Business, Royce, business. I have a mission.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You remind me,&quot; said Leonard, with an awkward smile. &quot;When I
-was at the antipodes I thought the name of Royce an easy one to go by.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But it was not your own.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not my own.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What I always admired in you,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, &quot;was your
-candor. The soul of truth, upon my honor! I used to ask of myself, 'Can Royce
-lie?' Excuse my sticking to the name till you supply me with another. Yes, I
-used to ask of myself, 'Can Royce lie?' There was but one invariable answer,
-'No, he cannot.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The laugh with which he accompanied his words was so
-distinctly opposed to their sense that Leonard's face flushed, and Dr. Peterssen
-laughed still louder when he observed this sign of emotion. Of all the men whom
-Leonard had met in the course of his varied experiences Dr. Peterssen was the
-only one whom he was conscious he could not deceive. Peterssen spoke good
-English, with just a touch of foreign accent. He was by descent a Dane, and was
-a past-master in every species of craft and villainy. It would not have been
-easy to find his match in a scheme of evil cunning. Leonard was smooth-spoken,
-suave, and persuasive; Dr. Peterssen was brutally outspoken, calling a spade a
-spade, and, if it served his purpose, something worse--never something better.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't be a fool, Peterssen,&quot; said Leonard. &quot;You are lying
-yourself, and you know it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;True, true, Royce--but really this is awkward, addressing a
-friend by a name he has no right to bear. What name do you pass by now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My own,&quot; replied Leonard, convinced that Dr. Peterssen would
-bring him to the proof through other persons; &quot;Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Christian name?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Leonard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Leonard Paget. Rather nice-sounding. When did you arrive
-here?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This evening.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When do you leave?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You can, Leonard, you can.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I tell you I cannot.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let us test it. I have something of the breed of your English
-mastiff in me. Do you go away to-morrow?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the following day?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is uncertain.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your movements, then, do not depend entirely upon yourself?
-You are not alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Am I in the witness-box,&quot; demanded Leonard, beginning to lose
-his temper.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are. And when I have done with you, you shall place <i>me</i>
-in the witness-box, and I will be frank with you. It is best for men like
-ourselves to be friends, Leonard. Who knows? We may be able to serve each other.
-Allow me to remind you that you are in my debt. Our last transaction in Ballarat
-was when we laid a snare to sell a man of substance a golden claim. The price
-was five thousand pounds. The stuff at the bottom of the shaft was salted--with
-gold purchased with my money. At that time you had none--that is, you said you
-had none; so I expended my last fifty pounds in the purchase of twelve ounces,
-which we distributed cunningly in the wash-dirt below. The plant almost came
-off, but it was discovered one moment too soon. We had only to fly; and then we
-lost sight of each other. You did not wait to pay the half of the fifty
-pounds--a shabby trick.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">From his pocket-book Leonard extracted twenty-five pounds in
-bank notes, which he handed to Dr. Peterssen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am out of your debt.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all. There is the interest, which I shall not exact
-to-night, but in the future, from time to time. You pay so readily that you are
-worth sticking to; you think so lightly of twenty-five pounds that you must be
-rolling in money. Back to my questions. You are not alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Shall we say, a lady? Ah, fortunate man! Susceptible heart!
-Forever putting itself into chains. There was a lady on the other side. And
-there is a lady on this. I see it in your face.&quot;,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is none of mine; she is one of our party.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How many in all?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sick of your questions. Here is the plain truth. I am
-travelling with my brother and his wife. They are on their honeymoon. There, you
-have the whole thing in a nutshell.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Apparently. But how about the kernel? I have an odd idea
-there is a maggot inside. How arrived at? Easily. It is you yourself who have
-engendered the suspicion. You come to this spot to think and smoke, leaving your
-brother and his bride to their honeymooning. That is considerate, and as a
-tender-souled man I commend you for it. You believe yourself to be alone, but I
-am here, communing with Nature. Looking up, I see you, and on your face I see
-that which you would not like your friends to see. There is a convulsive twitch
-in your features. What is the cause? Do you love your brother's wife?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The tone in which you speak that little word convinces me
-that you hate her. Do you remember we used to congratulate each other in
-Australia that we could read men's faces and voices? Why do you hate her? There
-must be a reason.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Peterssen, you are going a little too far.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Between friends? No, Leonard, I have not yet gone far enough.
-Give ear, Leonard, to something analytical--not very deep, only in a superficial
-way. You and I are alike in our aims but not in our methods. We are both
-adventurers--why disguise it? The supreme motive-power in our natures is
-self-interest. To serve that we would go any lengths--except, perhaps, that I
-would go a little farther than you. We have no honest regard for each other, it
-is only our self-interest that draws us together. Why, Leonard, if I could
-profit largely by it I would have no more compunction in pushing you over that
-precipice than I have in flinging away this cigar. Give me another, will you? I
-warrant yours are better than mine. Thank you. And the compunction on your side,
-should it be to your advantage to serve me the same, would be as small as my
-own. Commend me for being an honest man, for I take it the quality of sincerity
-is vital to honesty--and my sincerity cannot be disputed. What reason have you
-for hating your brother's wife?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Could not the agitation you observed in my face spring from
-some other cause than love or hate?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, one--money; and you have proved to me that money is not
-the cause by paying me the twenty-five pounds so readily. For really it is a
-debt that I could not have enforced in a court of law.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, let the matter bide, Peterssen. Your searching
-questions have exhausted me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will suspend it, then. There is time before us. Meanwhile
-I attach myself, and with myself another, to your party.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you mad?&quot; cried Leonard. &quot;Why that would ruin all!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen's previous laughter was tame in comparison to
-the sounds of merriment he emitted now. He made the echoes ring again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So there <i>is</i> work to be done,&quot; he said when his
-merriment ceased. &quot;Good. Two things to be kept always in view--personal safety
-and the reward to be earned for the work. Still I attach myself to your party,
-but now secretly. I follow you wherever you go, but I do not mix with you. Our
-parties may meet, but it shall be in a casual, accidental way, and there shall
-be no close intimacy. I do not affect disguise, Leonard. I follow you for the
-purpose of making money out of you. I have very little; I want some. I put a
-question to you, to which I must have an answer. Without encroaching further on
-your confidence, I wish you to inform me what the end you are scheming for is
-worth, supposing I accomplish it in safety. I do not ask what that end is, but
-how much it would be worth to me? You are silent. Shall we say a thousand
-pounds?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; replied Leonard, slowly, &quot;say a thousand pounds.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Much obliged to you. The subject is now dismissed. Have you
-any questions to ask me? I put myself in the witness-box.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When did you come here?&quot; asked Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yesterday.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When do you go away?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To-morrow if I like; the next day if I like; next week, or
-month, if I like. It depends absolutely on myself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I remember, you said you were here on business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What business?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Professional. I am a doctor: I have a patient in my care.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Male or female?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Male.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The disease?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Madness.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_33" href="#div1Ref_33">CHAPTER XXXIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A FOUL DEED.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard gazed fixedly at Dr. Peterssen, doubting for the
-moment whether the man was in earnest. There was no doubt of it, however. Dr.
-Peterssen was speaking the truth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will enlighten you,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, &quot;I am not quite a
-pretender. I am a doctor with a diploma, and I have practised in all parts of
-the world. My specialty is diseases of the mind. I do not say I am fond of the
-study, but when needs must, the devil drives. Returning home--that is, to
-England, which I look upon as home--chance throws me in the way of a patient
-with a rich father. The father cannot keep his son at home, and he shrinks from
-sending him to a regular madhouse. Can he find a capable man who, for a
-consideration, will take charge of the young man and devote himself to him? I
-present myself; I am ready to do anything for a consideration. Between
-ourselves, my diploma is not exactly what it should be, and I could not practise
-regularly in England; there would be difficulties in my way, there are so many
-censorious people about. I have no difficulty in convincing the father of my
-patient that I am what I represent myself to be, and a bargain is struck. The
-young man, whose name is George Street, is given into my charge, and away we go.
-One reason that the father wishes to obtain without delay a guardian for his son
-is that he himself is compelled to leave England for a year or two for his
-health; another reason is that about twice a year he has a dangerous fit upon
-him. It lasts for two or three days, and he has to be carefully watched. While
-the father is absent I have to write to him on the first of every month,
-acquainting him with the condition of his son. I am to do what I like with the
-young man, to the extent of indulging in foreign travel for the purpose of
-diverting his mind. My expenses are paid, but I have to render a strict account,
-and though I garble them a little I cannot make much out of it. Then I am, like
-yourself, naturally extravagant, and I am also at heart, I am afraid, a bit of a
-gambler. I have not been very fortunate hitherto, but my turn will come. In
-addition to the trifle I make out of cooked accounts--shockingly mild cooking,
-Leonard, my patient's father being the soul of meanness--I receive three hundred
-a year. Of course, all my personal expenses are paid, but what can a man do with
-three hundred a year? It is a miserable pittance. My patient is now asleep; he
-is perfectly harmless, and he sleeps fifteen hours out of the twenty-four. I
-have no difficulty with him. He is as tractable as a lamb. 'Get up.' He gets up.
-'Come out.' He comes out. 'Read for an hour.' He reads for an hour, or pretends
-to. 'Sit still till I return.' He sits still till I return. Thus all is plain
-sailing, and I have nothing to complain of except the salary. However, there is
-a better prospect before me, perhaps.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard did not respond to the sharp look which Dr. Peterssen
-gave him. He was revolving things in his mind, groping for a crooked path by
-which he could reach his goal.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, friend of my heart?&quot; said Dr. Peterssen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is nothing more to be said at present,&quot; said Leonard.
-&quot;It is time for me to join my friends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will go with you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We agreed that you were not to intrude upon us.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not intend to. I merely wish to see where you put up.
-Don't try to give me the slip, Leonard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why should I? You may be of use to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They walked together to the little inn in which they had
-rooms, and there Dr. Peterssen wished Leonard good night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was not as good as his word. The next day he contrived that
-the parties should meet, but he was clever enough to make it appear as if it
-were an accidental meeting, and Leonard, being to some extent in his power, did
-not quarrel with him. His patient, George Street, was a quiet young gentleman,
-whom no person, without foreknowledge, would have supposed to be mad. Upon
-certain subjects he spoke rationally, but as a rule he was silent and reserved,
-with the air of one who had some deeply-rooted cause for melancholy. He seemed
-to fear Dr. Peterssen, and a dog could not have been more obedient to the least
-motion of its master. He was of about the same age as Gerald, and their statures
-differed very slightly. In accordance with the advice of Dr. Peterssen, Leonard
-informed Gerald and Emilia that the young man was not exactly in his right mind,
-and that they were to be under no apprehension concerning him, as he was as
-tractable and docile as a child. Emilia conceived a great pity for him, and
-occasionally walked with him, accompanied by Gerald; for Dr. Peterssen evinced
-no immediate intention of leaving their society.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The presence of a lady so gentle as yourself,&quot; he said to
-Emilia, &quot;is good for the poor fellow; he is benefiting by your kindness
-already.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He will get well, I hope,&quot; said Emilia, solicitously. &quot;There
-is no doubt of it,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen. &quot;In less than twelve months his cure
-will be perfect.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Some three weeks passed, and they were now in the Engadine,
-located in a comfortable inn in the valley of Roseg. For some reason of his own
-which he disclosed to not one of the party, not even to Leonard, Dr. Peterssen
-gave out that he expected from day to day to be called home by his patient's
-father, and that he might be compelled to leave them suddenly. His mind was busy
-with a diabolical scheme, which, however, he might not have succeeded in
-carrying out had not circumstances favored him. During the time they had been
-together he had extracted cleverly from one or the other information relating to
-the positions the step-brothers held toward each other, by which he learnt that
-the fortune enjoyed by Gerald would revert to Leonard if Gerald were out of the
-way. Leonard was annoyed by his pertinacious desire for details and particulars,
-but Dr. Peterssen, with his hand on the plough, never turned back. The fatality
-which assisted him to the cruel end he had in view was the indisposition of
-Emilia, who, in the Roseg Valley, exhibited signs of fatigue and depression. The
-local doctor prescribed rest, and Gerald gave up the mountain excursions which
-afforded him so much pleasure.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When you are quite strong,&quot; he said to her, &quot;we will return
-to England.&quot; And whispered, &quot;Our child shall be born there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia, whose head was reclining on his shoulder, kissed him
-softly, and hid her face in his breast.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before we leave these beautiful scenes, my darling,&quot; he said,
-&quot;I shall pluck some edelweiss for you with my own hands. That will insure you
-good luck all your life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A woman in one of the villages had told Emilia that purchased
-edelweiss lost its charm, and that its potency could only be preserved if
-plucked and presented by the man one loved. Emilia had told this to Gerald, and
-he had set his heart upon finding the white flower for Emilia. Hitherto he had
-been unsuccessful. It was no secret between Gerald and Emilia; the whole of the
-party were acquainted with the wish of the loving couple; and it was this simple
-and innocent desire which was to bring a woful tragedy into the lives of Gerald
-and Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was afternoon, and Emilia was sitting at the window, gazing
-upon the wondrous vista of snow mountains which lined the horizon. Gerald came
-to her with excitement in his face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Street and the doctor are below,&quot; he said. &quot;They are
-going in search of the edelweiss, and they know where it is to be found.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You wish to go with them,&quot; said Emilia, with a smile. &quot;Go,
-love.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But you will be alone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall be very happy and contented, Gerald. Go and pluck me
-the magic flower with your own dear hands.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">How often in after life did these fatal words recur to her.
-&quot;Go and pluck me the magic flower with your own dear hands!&quot; Ah, if the effect
-of words were known before they were uttered, how many breaking hearts would at
-this moment be filled with happiness!</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I may not have another opportunity,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;I shall be
-home before sunset. Good-by, dear love. God bless you!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was gone, and Emilia waved her handkerchief to him from the
-window. He looked back and smiled, and waved his hand gayly, and soon was lost
-to sight. &quot;My darling!&quot; she murmured, and leaned back in her chair, and thought
-with ineffable bliss of the time soon to come when she would hold out her babe
-to him for a father's kiss. One arm rested upon a table which Gerald had drawn
-close to her side. Upon the table was an open cedar-wood desk of Indian
-workmanship, inlaid with silver, and Emilia's fingers touched a dagger which
-Gerald was in the habit of using as a paper-knife, its handle resembling a
-twisted snake, the mouth open, and in its head a ruby to represent an eye. For a
-few moments she toyed with it idly, thinking of words Gerald had spoken to her
-with reference to the desk. &quot;There is a secret drawer in this desk, Emilia, and
-in the desk something which concerns you nearly.&quot; He had said it smilingly, and
-she had merely nodded, but now, between sleeping and waking, she dwelt upon the
-words, and indolently resolved to ask Gerald when he came home what it was the
-secret drawer contained which concerned her nearly. With these thoughts in her
-mind she fell asleep.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">George Street turned to Dr. Peterssen when they were at some
-distance from the village. Dr. Peterssen nodded, and the four men--for Leonard
-was with them--paused.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This foolish fellow,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen to Gerald, laying
-his hand kindly on his patient's shoulder, &quot;has a great wish to lead you himself
-to where the edelweiss is to be found--you and he alone, and I am almost
-inclined to humor him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why not?&quot; asked Gerald, who had never yet detected any sign
-of insanity in his young companion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen took Gerald aside. &quot;He knows the road to take,
-but he is in my care. Between you and me he is as sensible as we are, but still
-I feel somewhat anxious. I am responsible for him to his father you know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We shall be able to take care of ourselves,&quot; said Gerald.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then go. We will await your return at the inn.&quot; Away went the
-young men, and Dr. Peterssen and Leonard were left together.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What does it all mean?&quot; asked Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Simply that you can compass your wishes if you desire it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do desire it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come with me, then.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They turned in another direction, but not toward the valley.
-They continued to ascend the rocky ranges.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We shall get there half an hour before them,&quot; said Dr.
-Peterssen. &quot;I have carefully studied the route, and have traversed it twice--in
-your interests.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Explain yourself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will, as we walk along. There is nobody in sight, is
-there?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a living being.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We must be sure of that, as we proceed. Answer me, Mr.
-Leonard Paget. If I remove your step brother from your path--he is, after all,
-no relation to speak of--what will you give me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You said something about a thousand pounds,&quot; said Leonard,
-his face growing white.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not enough. Not half enough.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is his wife also in the way, remember.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Rubbish! She may die; the shock will probably kill her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But if it should not?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If--if--if--!&quot; exclaimed Dr. Peterssen, impatiently. &quot;There
-is no if in the case when two clever scoundrels like ourselves are in the game.
-Has he made a will?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sure he has not.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Make a clean breast of everything if you want to succeed. I
-know only half the story. I must know the rest, and I will stake my future that
-I show you a dozen ways to conquer her, even if she lives. Don't lag. It is hard
-work mounting these ranges, but the reward is worth it. Did you observe that
-they took the tracks to the left. We are taking those to the right; and we are
-both making for the same point. Now, Leonard, out with every detail of this
-romantic story, which is as yet only half finished. It is your last chance, old
-fellow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus urged, Leonard related everything he knew concerning
-Gerald and Emilia. Dr. Peterssen laughed, and instilled into Leonard's ear
-certain counsel which Leonard was only too ready to follow. It was a risk, but
-as Dr. Peterssen said, the reward was worth it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a couple of hours they had reached the spot they had been
-making for. They had not met a soul on the way, and they saw nothing of Gerald
-and George Street.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They will come into view in half an hour or so,&quot; said Dr.
-Peterssen, &quot;and if not we will go and hurry them up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They had halted on a wild spot. They were surrounded by
-enormous glaciers, and all around them lay dangerous precipices. At a dozen
-points an unsuspicious man might be pushed without effort into abysses where he
-would be almost certain to meet with death. It was this infernal plan which Dr.
-Peterssen had conceived, and which Leonard guessed at, but was too timid to ask
-about. Easy to carry out a bloody deed in such a place, without a living witness
-to bring evidence against them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sit down,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He pulled out a flask of brandy, and gave it to Leonard. The
-treacherous friend took a long drink. Dr. Peterssen also drank, but more
-sparingly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If I don't mistake,&quot; he said, &quot;you have a check book in your
-pocket.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What if I have?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Everything. Answer my questions. You are acting as your
-brother's treasurer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With full authority, as I understand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With full authority.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The bank in which his money is deposited has written
-instructions to that effect.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It has--but what are you driving at?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Easy, Mr. Paget, easy. Do you know that I am about to lose a
-patient?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your own doing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But for your ends. Now, I want a guarantee. I had a little
-private conversation with your step-brother yesterday, in which I skilfully
-pumped him. What do you think I learned? That you had been realizing a quantity
-of valuable securities for him lately, and that there was a very considerable
-balance at the bank to his credit.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are an infernal meddler.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All in your interest, Leonard, and a little, a very little,
-in my own. You will give me here, and now, a check for two thousand pounds.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are out of your senses.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Most absolutely and positively in them, my dear fellow. What
-I am about to do for you is worth ten times the sum, so I am not hard on you. In
-brains, Leonard, you have the best of me--I am a very candid and honest
-scoundrel, you must admit--but when the pinch comes you lose your nerve. Take
-another pull at the brandy. Down with it, man. It will bring some color to your
-cheeks, and perhaps some false courage to your chicken heart. We--fellows like
-myself--are the real men. If I had lived three or four centuries ago I should
-have been a man of mark. Produce your check-book.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is the use? I have no pen and ink.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ha ha, my honest comrade, I have provided for that. I had
-just enough brains to think of the contingency. Here are the requisites. Now,
-fill in and sign. Date it two days ago.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was a brute ferocity in Dr. Peterssen which compelled
-and overawed Leonard, and with a sullen look he wrote the check and signed it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I warrant,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, examining the check narrowly
-and carefully pocketing it, &quot;that you have feathered your nest pretty well. In
-the event of Gerald Paget leaving a widow behind him--though that will not be so
-in this case, Leonard, for there can be no widow where there was no wife--you
-could strip her of every farthing of ready cash by drawing the entire balance
-from the bank, dating the check yesterday, as a measure of precaution.
-Hush--they are coming! Behind this rock--crouch down, and don't so much as
-breathe!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Almost breathless Gerald and George Street halted within two
-feet of them, standing side by side on the edge of a precipice.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It makes me dizzy looking down,&quot; said George Street. &quot;Does it
-not you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; said Gerald. &quot;And we have not found the edelweiss after
-all. It is a great disappointment to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It grows on the edge of the precipice,&quot; said George Street.
-&quot;Let us kneel and look over. I am sure this was the spot Dr. Peterssen pointed
-out to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The young men knelt down and looked over the precipice, Gerald
-keeping tight hold of his companion. As they bent their heads there came a
-fierce and sudden movement behind them, and with a loud cry the two young men
-sank into the abyss.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_34" href="#div1Ref_34">CHAPTER XXXIV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>DR. PETERSSEN EXPLAINS HIMSELF.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What have you done?&quot; exclaimed Leonard, starting to his feet
-in irrepressible excitement, but cooling immediately as Dr. Peterssen turned to
-him with a smile on his lips. It was seldom, indeed, that Leonard was taken off
-his guard, but the suddenness of this foul deed startled him. When engaged in a
-scheme of villainy he was in the habit of being more deliberate.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be more careful with your pronouns,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen,
-inclining toward the abyss, and putting his hand to his ear. &quot;You mean what have
-<i>we</i> done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did not stir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You lie,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, with a brutal laugh. &quot;With my
-own eyes I saw you hurl your step-brother over the precipice. In the attempt to
-save himself he caught hold of my poor patient, but he was just one little
-minute too late. Instead of saving himself he destroyed his companion, and thus
-at one fell swoop I was robbed of three hundred a year. I, with a record at
-least as spotless as your own--we are a fine pair of white doves, you and I--am
-ready to take my Bible oath to this version of the catastrophe; and I'll bet you
-a hundred to one, my buck, that I swear you down in any court of justice you can
-name. A likely thing, isn't it, that I should wish to get rid of my poor
-patient, when by doing so I lose a sure income? You, on the contrary, have
-everything to gain by your step-brother's death. Dying unmarried--you
-understand?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have only to be firm with Emilia and the point is
-carried. After what she has gone through, and plunged into despair as she will
-be, she can be made to believe anything, especially when she learns that you are
-prepared to behave generously to her. To resume, Gerald, dying unmarried, you
-come into all the property. Therefore his death is a distinctly desirable event
-in your eyes. Do not, therefore, my dear comrade, in this little affair, attempt
-to shirk your share of the responsibility, or I will throw it all upon your
-shoulders, and send you to the gallows. Mr. Leonard Paget, I should be inclined
-to call you a fool if I did not know you better. What is done cannot be undone,
-nor, with all your cant, would you wish it undone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But,&quot; said Leonard, inwardly acknowledging the weight of his
-companion's arguments, &quot;we are in danger.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We are in none. Your step-brother Gerald, ardently desiring
-to gather with his own hands some edelweiss for his lady love, is informed by my
-unfortunate patient that he knows where the flower is to be found. Unwilling
-that they shall go alone, we express our intention to accompany them. Off we
-start with merry hearts. But we have not gone far before the young gentlemen beg
-to be allowed to enjoy their excursion without our society, and we, two fond and
-indulgent guardians, yield to their implorings, and leave them to themselves.
-Lured by the balmy weather, we stroll up the mountains, scarcely noting in which
-direction we are wandering. We stop and dilate upon the sublime beauty of the
-scenery, our souls exalted by the thoughts it inspires, when our ecstatic
-musings are rudely interrupted by screams of anguish. We hasten to the spot from
-which they proceed, and see--nothing. But our ears, ever open to the calls of
-humanity, cannot have deceived us. No, that is impossible. So we hunt and look
-about, calling out all the while to the poor souls who may be in peril to give
-us some indication how we can assist them. At length our attention is attracted
-by signs of a disturbance at the edge of this precipice, and kneeling&quot;--he
-suited the action to the word, and Leonard knelt by his side--&quot;we observe marks
-in the soil which engender the suspicion that a human creature has fallen over.
-We call out loudly, and are answered by a groan and scarcely distinguishable but
-undeniably pathetic appeals for help.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not hear them,&quot; interrupted Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then you ought to. Are you quite devoid of imagination? Our
-hearts are rent by these appeals. We are not practised mountaineers, and are
-unable to render assistance. Therefore we hasten to the nearest village, and
-return with men and ropes to the rescue. But by that time it is too late.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By that time,&quot; said Leonard, in a questioning tone, &quot;they are
-dead?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By that time,&quot; repeated Dr. Peterssen, &quot;they are dead.
-And&quot;--with a steady look at Leonard--&quot;of this fact we must convince ourselves
-before the introduction of other characters into the melancholy scene.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How is that to be done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen rose to his feet, and cast sharp glances around.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We are quite alone, I think.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a person is in sight,&quot; said Leonard, watching his
-ruthless companion with curious eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be silent a minute or two.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They stood perfectly still, all their senses on the alert.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is no doubt,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, &quot;that we are the only
-witnesses of the unhappy occurrence, and, thus far, safe. Now to make sure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He divested himself of coat and waistcoat, and unwound a rope
-which he had adjusted round his waist.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not very thick,&quot; he said, &quot;nor very long, but it will
-help to steady us. See, I wind and fasten it about this slim trunk which
-providence has grown here to further our ends. Try it; you will find it quite
-secure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, it can hardly get loosened of itself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The descent, as you will observe, is not very difficult after
-all. All that is required is steadiness and confidence. About 30 feet down--I
-reckon it is not more than that--you see a broad plateau of rock upon which half
-a dozen men can stand easily.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But neither Gerald nor your patient is there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They have rolled over it, and we must ascertain their
-position, if it is possible to do so. Descend.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Descend!&quot; cried Leonard, retreating.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Descend,&quot; repeated Dr. Peterssen, calmly. &quot;I will follow
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But why do you not go first?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Because, cherished idol of my soul, I do not trust you. You
-above and I below, you might easily finish me off, and have the game entirely in
-your own hands. You are quite safe with me, dear friend. It is to my advantage
-to keep you alive; I intend to get money out of you in the future. It would be
-to your advantage if I were in the same plight as our friends below, for then
-you would save the money you will have to pay me. Even as a lad I was
-distinguished for frankness. Descend.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He was master of the situation, and Leonard was compelled to
-submit. Steadying himself by the rope he descended, and reached the plateau. Dr.
-Peterssen climbed down after him with the agility of a cat.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I see them,&quot; he said, &quot;though not very distinctly. They seem
-to be lying side by side. Luckily it will not be at all difficult to get to
-them. Between being hurled down these rocks unaware and descending them
-voluntarily there is a great difference. We will go together. Careful, Leonard,
-careful; I must not have my milch cow injured.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They reached the spot where the bodies lay. The violence with
-which they had been dashed over the precipice had told its tale. Of the two Dr.
-Peterssen's patient was the more injured. In his descent his features had been
-so dreadfully cut and lacerated that they were scarcely distinguishable.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My poor ward is done for,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, adding, with
-eyes sanctimoniously raised to heaven, &quot;he is now in a better world.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And Gerald?&quot; whispered Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was some time before Dr. Peterssen replied, and when he
-spoke there was a strange note in his voice.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Gerald lives.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then what has been done,&quot; cried Leonard, in a tone of mingled
-despair and fury, &quot;has been done in vain!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Easy to finish the job,&quot; remarked Dr. Peterssen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But, hardened as he was, Leonard shrank from the ruthless
-suggestion. Had he been alone he might have nerved himself to the desperate
-expedient, but in the presence of a witness----</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you certain be lives?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite certain,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen. &quot;His head is badly cut,
-and there is no saying in what condition he will be when he opens his eyes. He
-has a long illness before him, which may terminate fatally.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But, before the end he may be able to assure Emilia that they
-are legally married. Before the end he may make his will!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He may. It would be bad for both of us&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is there no road but one out of it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have a strong gift of invention,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen.
-&quot;There is another road, a hazardous one, the risk and trouble of which will be
-mine; but I don't mind, so long as I am properly paid for it, and you will be
-rich enough to arrange that to my satisfaction.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Speak plainly, in the devil's name.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In the name of that august myth I will endeavor to do so.
-What hazards and what personal inconvenience will not such a sacred friendship
-as ours incur for a quid pro quo! The two men lying helpless before us, one dead
-and one living, are about the same height. Perhaps you have observed that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have. And not only about the same height but about the same
-build. The color of their hair is not dissimilar, and it really seems to have
-been ordained by fate that neither of them should wear mustache or beardeek.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For the life of me I can't see your drift.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The quality of your mental powers is not generally opaque,
-but you are remarkably dense at this moment. Dressed in each other's clothes,
-who is to distinguish them? Thus attired, my poor patient, whose features are
-battered beyond recognition, is carried back to the village as your luckless
-brother Gerald. As Gerald he is buried; the tombstone you lovingly erect over
-his remains proclaims it. Thus attired, he is carried back to the village as my
-patient, and I attend on him; no one else sets an eye upon him, though that risk
-might be run with safety. To-morrow comes a summons from his father, which I
-invent, to take him back to England. It grieves me to leave you in your grief,
-to leave the bereaved Emilia in her sorrow--but what can I do? Duty is my
-watchword, and I set it before me unflinchingly, and perform it. Without delay I
-return home, bearing my patient with me. Do you see the drift of my plan now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do,&quot; replied Leonard, setting his teeth close. &quot;But will
-you be able to carry it out?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To the bitter end--till Gerald is dead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They exchanged glances; the compact was made.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If he should recover consciousness while we are changing
-their clothes!&quot; whispered Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Accept my professional word. The injuries he has received are
-so severe that he will not recover his senses until he is on the road to
-England. Not even then, perhaps. Trust me to manage him. I am responsible to no
-one, and there are potent drugs which I can use to any end I wish. As a matter
-of fact my poor patient's father is thousands of miles away, and will learn just
-as much as it pleases me to impart, and at the time I choose to impart it. What
-kind of friend am I?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The best of friends. Let us set to work.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen laughed internally; in this villanous scheme he
-saw what was hidden from Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">An hour afterward they stood again on the edge of the
-precipice, and the rope they had used was once more concealed round Dr.
-Peterssen's body. He had forced down Gerald's throat ah opiate which insured
-insensibility for many hours to come. Leonard hoped that his step-brother would
-die under its influence, but Dr. Peterssen did not share the hope. He wanted
-Gerald to live--at least for the present.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_35" href="#div1Ref_35">CHAPTER XXXV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>EMILIA AND LEONARD.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">On the evening of the following day a closed carriage was
-waiting at the door of the inn to convey Dr. Peterssen and Gerald to the nearest
-railway station. The plot he and Leonard had hatched had been cruelly
-successful. Strangers in the little village, and living during their stay upon
-terms of affectionate intimacy, their movements and actions were absolutely
-untrammelled, and not a shadow of suspicion had been aroused. Emilia,
-overwhelmed by the shock, was attacked with brain fever, and was lying in a
-dangerous condition. Dr. Peterssen declared it likely that she would never rise
-from her bed, and his opinion was shared by the village doctor. Gerald's
-condition was not less perilous. Dr. Peterssen had devoted the greatest
-attention to him, and Leonard learned from his partner in villainy that there
-was something more than a possibility that even if Gerald recovered his health
-he might never recover his reason. Their simulation of grief was perfect, and
-every person in the village spoke in praise of their devotion, and sympathized
-with them. Leonard, of course, was to remain behind to attend to Emilia, and to
-perform the last sad offices for his dearly beloved brother.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a state of unconsciousness Gerald was carried out of the
-inn and placed in the carriage, and Dr. Peterssen and Leonard stood a little
-apart, conversing privately. The landlord and all the attendants quite believed
-that it was Dr. Peterssen's patient, and not Gerald, who was about to be taken
-to England.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Up to this point,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, &quot;there has not been a
-hitch. We could not hope to have succeeded better, and should Emilia recover,
-there is no chance of a mishap if you play your cards properly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not fail to do that,&quot; said Leonard, gazing at Dr.
-Peterssen with a certain mistrust. &quot;I am in hopes that I shall be spared the
-awkwardness of an explanation.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Meaning that you are in hopes she will die. Well, there is an
-even chance of that, but it is as well to be prepared. And now, friend of my
-soul, you and I must come to terms.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will leave all that till we meet in England,&quot; said
-Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There will be plenty to talk of there,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen.
-&quot;We will settle preliminaries here, before we part.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you want?&quot; asked Leonard, with a dark look.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A clear understanding, and an undertaking in writing. You
-see, old comrade, I am doing <i>your</i> dirty work, not my own. I don't object
-to your enjoying the lion's share of the spoil, but I must have some guarantee
-of a sure and certain income.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is already agreed that you are to have three hundred a
-year, which with the three hundred you will receive from the father of your
-patient, makes you very comfortable.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not as comfortable as I ought to be,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen,
-placidly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What the mischief do you want? You have got a check for two
-thousand out of me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A retainer, my dear Leonard, merely a retainer. I should have
-stuck out for more, but I am always sacrificing myself for others. The three
-hundred must be six. Don't look black; a heart-stricken expression is advisable,
-with strangers observing us. The eyes of half-a-dozen are fixed on us at the
-present moment, and there would be the devil to pay if they suspected there was
-the smallest difference of opinion between us. Remember the stake you are
-playing for.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You seem to hold the winning cards.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I never play a game without them, dear old chum, but you must
-admit that my winnings are small in comparison with yours. Notice the smile of
-sad resignation on my face, with which I cajole our friends the simple
-villagers. Yes, Leonard, the three hundred must be six.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I carry your brother Gerald from the carriage back to the
-inn. He is not in a fit state to travel, I say in reply to questions; I will not
-risk his life. I nurse him into health, I restore his senses--quite possible, I
-believe. I keep a watchful eye upon Emilia also, in order that you shall play no
-tricks, and she, too, gets well. Then I bring the two together, and leave you,
-noble captain, to your own devices. All very beautifully arranged, is it not,
-sweet child?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall have the six hundred, curse you,&quot; said Leonard,
-careful to follow Dr. Peterssen's advice as to the play of expression on his
-features.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A million million thanks. And now be kind enough to sign this
-paper binding you to the arrangement. Go into the inn, and affix your signature
-in a bold, clear hand. No arguments, Leonard, but do it. If you delay we shall
-miss the train, and I shall have to return with your brother to the enjoyments
-of your society.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard had no choice; he went into the inn and presently
-reappeared with the document, which he handed to Dr. Peterssen, who examined and
-pocketed it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Farewell, old comrade, farewell,&quot; he said, with his
-handkerchief to his eyes. &quot;This is a dramatic moment; deeply do I feel the
-parting. Adieu, till we meet in England. By the way, I have informed Father
-Anselm, the good priest, that I have left five hundred francs in your hands
-which you will give him in my name for the relief of the poor. He blessed and
-thanked me. He will remind you of the benediction if you need reminding, but
-your best plan will be to give him the money soon, with a cheerful heart. Once
-more, farewell. Speak well of me when I am gone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With profound sighs and melancholy looks he wrung Leonard's
-hand and entered the carriage, bidding the driver to proceed gently. Leonard and
-a few of the villagers watched the carriage till it was out of sight, and then
-the remaining actor in the vile plot entered the inn, enraged at the
-extortion--for so he inwardly declared it to be--that Dr. Peterssen had
-practised upon him. But he felt that he was in this man's power, and that it was
-advisable to submit with as good grace as possible. What was done could not be
-undone, nor would he have had it undone. The future was before him with all its
-possibilities of pleasure; a life of ease was his when the scheme was carried
-out to its bitter end. Even were he willing to forego his ruthless design he had
-gone too far now to retract. In the event of Emilia's recovery to health, his
-next move was to impose upon her and reduce her to silence, and he did not doubt
-his ability to achieve his purpose.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There were certain official formalities to go through with
-respect to the fictitious death of Gerald. He testified that the body was that
-of his brother, and he was supported by the independent testimony of witnesses,
-who identified the clothes of the deceased. The official record of the death of
-Gerald Paget was duly made, and in a few days the funeral took place, Leonard
-being the chief mourner. Over the grave was placed a flat tombstone, with the
-inscription--&quot;To the memory of my dear brother Gerald.&quot; Nothing more.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Throughout the whole of these proceedings Emilia lay between
-life and death, and consequently knew nothing of what was going on. But her
-ravings proved that she was at least conscious of the fatal blow her happiness
-had received. She called upon her dear Gerald in Heaven, and implored to be
-taken to him; and then, and then--stirred by the mysterious promptings of
-approaching maternity--she as earnestly implored to be spared for the sake of
-her child yet unborn. For six weeks she lay in a dangerous condition, and then
-youth and a sound, though delicate, constitution triumphed, and her health began
-to improve. Another fortnight, and she was convalescent.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Before this took place Leonard, who was sedulously employed in
-earning a character for charity and kindness, had succeeded in blasting her good
-name. The simple priest of the village was shocked at the disclosure that Emilia
-had no right to wear the wedding-ring on her finger.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Alas,&quot; he said, &quot;that one so fair should be so frail!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Unhappily,&quot; said Leonard with a hypocritical sigh, &quot;it is
-frequently so with the fairest of women. Weak as they appear, they are strong in
-vice.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The priest nodded his head sadly. How could he disbelieve a
-man so charitable and sweet-mannered as Leonard? How could he mistrust one who
-consecrated the memory of a beloved brother by donations to the little church
-and by constant benefactions to the poor and suffering among his flock? In the
-total it was not a large sum that Leonard parted with, but it was magnificent in
-the eyes of the poverty-stricken priest, who had never experienced such
-free-handed generosity. Leonard, was looked upon as a benefactor, and his false
-benevolence gave weight to every word that fell from his lips. He explained to
-the priest that the reason of his accompanying his brother Gerald and the young
-woman who had led him into vice was his earnest desire to break the guilty tie
-which bound them. &quot;Death has done that for me,&quot; he said, covering his eyes. &quot;A
-good man,&quot; thought the priest, &quot;a good and noble man!&quot; He inquired of Leonard
-how he intended to act when Emilia regained her health.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not desert her,&quot; replied Leonard; &quot;Heaven forbid that
-I should do so! She has sinned, but the door of repentance shall not be closed
-upon her--she shall not lose the chance of leading a better life. I will insure
-her a small income, sufficient for any woman's wants, upon which she can live in
-comfort. She will be able to do so, will she not, upon two thousand francs a
-year?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The priest raised his hands in astonishment. Two thousand
-francs! It was affluence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;May your kind intentions be fruitful,&quot; he said. &quot;May the
-erring woman lead in the future a virtuous life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His flock were distinguished by a singular morality, and he, a
-simple-minded man, regarded with horror any backsliding from the straight path.
-On the following Sabbath he took the theme for his text, and without mentioning
-names, referred to two strangers in their midst, one distinguished for his noble
-deeds of charity, the other degraded by her vicious conduct. Every one in the
-chapel knew to whom he referred, and were prepared to receive Emilia with
-something more than coldness. The first knowledge of this state of feeling came
-to her on a day she was able to sit at her window to breathe the sweet air. The
-innkeeper's daughter had grown fond of her, and had performed many kindly
-offices for the hapless woman. The whole of this day the young girl had not made
-her appearance in Emilia's room, and yearning for female companionship she rang
-the bell for her. It was answered by the innkeeper.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wish to see your daughter,&quot; said Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She will not come,&quot; said the innkeeper. &quot;She shall not come.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why?&quot; asked Emilia, in wonder at his rough tone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Answer the question yourself,&quot; replied the innkeeper. &quot;When
-you are strong enough to leave my house I must request you to seek a shelter
-elsewhere.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He left the room without another word.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was a significance in his manner as well as in his words
-which brought a flush into Emilia's face. &quot;She will not come! She shall not
-come!&quot; What fresh misery was in store for her? A terrible fear stole upon her.
-The undeserved shame she had passed through in her native town glided from the
-past and hovered like a spectre over her. She turned with a sob toward Leonard,
-who a short time afterward made his appearance. He pretended not to notice her
-agitation, and did not afford her an opportunity of opening a conversation with
-him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Would you like to come into the open air?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Leonard,&quot; she said, noting also the coldness of his
-voice. &quot;Will you assist me down?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He nodded, and she took his arm; but she missed the gentle and
-considerate guidance which she had a right to expect.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He placed a chair for her in front of the inn, and stood a few
-paces from her. Not a soul spoke to her. Men and women whom she remembered,
-whose faces she recognized, and with whom she was upon friendly terms when
-Gerald was with her, passed to and fro, and exchanged cordial words with
-Leonard, but did not address a single word to her. If by chance their eyes met
-hers, which, after a little while, were turned appealingly toward them, they
-turned abruptly from her, with looks of displeasure and aversion which chilled
-her heart. Even the innkeeper's daughter came near her, but did not approach
-close enough to speak to her. Yet she spoke to Leonard. Emilia beckoned to him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot remain here any longer,&quot; she said. &quot;I must go to my
-room.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She did not ask for his arm, nor did he offer it. Weak, and
-beset with torturing doubts, she clung to the wall as she ascended the stairs.
-In silence they entered the room. Leonard stood mute by the door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you nothing to say to me?&quot; she asked presently.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing,&quot; he replied, &quot;until you are stronger.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have borne so much in the past,&quot; she said, &quot;that I can bear
-anything you have to tell.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will wait,&quot; he said, and left the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Long did she ponder over the strange conduct of those who were
-once her friends, but she could not account for it. She felt herself alone in a
-strange land. Gerald was lost to her, and she was without a friend. She did not
-give way to despair; she nerved herself to strength and fortitude; another life
-would soon be dependent upon her; for the sake of her unborn child it was her
-duty to keep up her heart.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Some days passed, and not a friendly word was spoken to her,
-not a friendly hand was held out. She suffered without remonstrance; dark as was
-the present there was a sweet light in the future. She would have her child in
-her arms before many weeks elapsed, Gerald's child. Spiritual baby eyes looked
-into hers; spiritual baby hands were stretched toward her. &quot;For your sake, my
-darling, for your sake!&quot; she murmured.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She was now able to walk alone, without assistance, and one
-day she walked to the village churchyard, to visit the grave of her beloved. She
-read the inscription, &quot;To the memory of my dear brother Gerald.&quot; Should not her
-name have been there? She was nearer to him than any other human being. She
-resolved to seek without delay an explanation from Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">On her way to and from the churchyard she met with many
-persons, and was avoided by all. A woman and her young daughter, a girl of
-sixteen, passed close to her; the mother drew her child away from Emilia so that
-their dresses should not come in contact. She met the village priest, who looked
-at her reprovingly, and then turned in an opposite direction. Was she, then, a
-pariah? What crime had she committed?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Once more in her room in the inn she forced herself to a
-practical examination into a matter which had surprised her. Certain articles of
-jewellery had been given to her by Gerald. They were gone. All that she
-possessed in remembrance of her dear husband were her wedding-ring and a ring
-set with diamonds, which had never left her fingers. Possibly if these had been
-lying loose they would have shared the fate of her other mementos. Quite as
-strange was the circumstance that everything belonging to Gerald had been
-removed during her illness from the rooms she and her husband had occupied. Her
-purse, too, was empty; there was not a coin in it. She could not remember
-whether she had any money before she received the terrible news of Gerald's
-death; indeed, with reference to past events, her memory was in the same state
-as it had been after the good old wagoner had taken her to his home in England.
-During that period she was not in a condition to gain any knowledge of her
-surroundings, and she did not even know the name of the place in which she and
-Gerald had been married. Up to the morning of that day her mind had been a
-blank, and Gerald, out of consideration for her, had made no attempt to revive
-memories which in their inception had brought so much suffering to his dear
-girl. The only thing that was clear to Emilia was the memory of the shame into
-which she had been plunged by Mrs. Seaton's calumnies, and when her mind
-reverted to the experiences of those dark days she strove shudderingly to thrust
-them from her. But there was something in her present position which seemed, in
-some dread manner, to be connected with that shame and with the horror of the
-slanders which had ruined her good name, and strive as she would she could not
-banish the remembrance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She sent for Leonard and he came at her bidding.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have visited my husband's grave,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My dear brother Gerald's grave,&quot; he said in correction. &quot;I
-said my husband's grave,&quot; she repeated.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And I replied, my dear brother Gerald's grave.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was a dark, stern look in his eyes, and she did not have
-the courage to come straight to the point.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I believe you to be my friend,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did not wish to distress my poor brother,&quot; he rejoined.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then you deceived me by professing what you did not feel?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have no explanation to give.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yet you have remained here with me during my long illness.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I had a duty to perform.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Was it not out of love that you have stayed with me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She strove to look at him steadily, but her eyes wavered; his
-were unflinching.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the last day I saw my dear husband--What is the meaning of
-that gesture?&quot; For Leonard had put up his hand with scornful motion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your assumption of innocence and indignation does not deceive
-me; it will deceive no one who knows you. Go on. On the last day you saw my dear
-brother----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I had reason to believe,&quot; she continued, &quot;that I had won the
-respect, if not the affection, of those around me, strangers though they were. I
-passed through a dangerous illness, and have been mercifully spared. I thank God
-humbly for it. Recovering, I am met with coldness whichever way I turn. People
-avoid me. Why?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Search your own heart for the answer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have questioned my heart, and find none. I have done no
-wrong.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have singular ideas of morality. Is living with a man as
-his mistress a virtuous act?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Great God! How dare you speak those words to me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Because they are true. People avoid you because the truth is
-known. Spare hysterics; they will not help you. You are not fit to associate
-with virtuous women.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How dare you, how dare you? Gerald and I were man and wife.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You never were. You and my dear, fond brother--dear to me,
-weak though he was--were never married. With his death ended your life of
-deceit. You were Gerald's mistress, not his wife.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_36" href="#div1Ref_36">CHAPTER XXXVI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>&quot;ONLY YOU AND I, DARLING, ONLY YOU AND I.&quot;</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The horror of this infamous statement so completely
-overwhelmed her that she lost the power of speech. The room swam before her; in
-her excitement she had risen to her feet, and her slight form swayed like a reed
-in the throes of a pitiless storm. Presently Leonard spoke again, and his voice
-brought some clearness to her distracted mind; but every word he uttered cut
-into her heart like a sharp knife.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If you are not sufficiently composed to hear what it is my
-duty to say, I will leave you and come again in an hour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She motioned to him to remain, and her trembling hands then
-stretched themselves toward a bottle of water on the table. He poured some into
-a glass, which he placed close to her. Rallying a little she managed to raise
-the glass to her lips, and to drink, the cold draught revived her fainting
-senses.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Speak,&quot; she said. &quot;Say what you have to say.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Had my brother lived,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;the time would have
-come when he would have been compelled to make the disclosure himself. Being
-gone, the duty which was his devolves upon me. It may be that he would have
-righted the wrong he did you, for he was weak and easily prevailed upon. I do
-not seek to excuse him, and it is certain that he acted as he deemed best when
-he deceived you. Are you attending to me? Shall I go on?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; she gasped, &quot;go on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When you were lying at death's door in the village to which
-you had flown, the name of which you probably remember--&quot; He purposely paused
-here, to afford her an opportunity of answering him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not remember it,&quot; she said. &quot;If I heard it, it has gone
-from me. My mind was a blank.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He was informed by the doctor,&quot; continued Leonard, with
-guilty satisfaction, &quot;who attended you that there was only one means of
-restoring your reason, and that was to make you his wife. It was then he
-conceived the idea of a sham marriage ceremony. It must be clear to you, as it
-is to every person gifted with common-sense, that it was not possible for you to
-marry him or any man in your state of mind. No minister would have sanctioned
-such a marriage, and you could not, therefore, be married in church. It was easy
-for Gerald to devise a mock civil marriage, and to carry you away immediately to
-a foreign country in order that you should not discover the deception. You have
-been witness of the love which existed between him and me; his death is to me an
-irreparable loss. I endeavored to dissuade him from his purpose, but he would
-not listen to me: weak and amiable as he was, he had a soul of obstinacy when
-his mind was strongly set, and my words of counsel fell upon ears which were
-deaf to all the arguments I could use. I saw that there was a danger that the
-strong love we had for each other might be sapped if I thwarted him, and I could
-bear anything but that. My dear, dear brother! His spirit is with me day and
-night, and I forgive him for the action, although many would condemn him for it.
-Now, perhaps, you can understand why you are looked upon with disfavor here in
-this place--with something more than disfavor, indeed, with repugnance. They
-regard your presence as a shame and a scandal, and young girls are enjoined by
-their parents to avoid you. Since my dear Gerald's death the true story of your
-relations with him has in some way become known. It is not unlikely that he
-himself confided it to some person, perhaps to the village priest; and, to speak
-plainly, your position here is a little worse than it was in your native town in
-England, from which you had to fly. It is out of a feeling of kindness to you
-that I tell you it will be best for you to leave as soon as possible. The simple
-people will not tolerate you among them, and they may show their feelings toward
-you in a more practical manner than they have yet done. To enable you to escape
-I have a proposition to make to you, if you care to listen to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">To escape! Had it come to that? Was it to be ever her fate to
-fly from unmerited shame, to be oppressed and hunted down? But it was not of
-herself alone she thought; her unborn babe appealed to her. A life of duty lay
-before her. It was merciful that this view of the position in which she stood
-came to her aid; otherwise her great despair might have driven her to the last
-desperate expedient of those wretched mortals to whom life has become a burden
-too hard to be longer endured.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is your proposition,&quot; she asked, faintly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My brother had a regard for you,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;and when the
-time had arrived when, supposing that he had lived, he would have been compelled
-to separate himself from you, he would most likely have made some provision for
-you. I stand in his place, and I do loving honor to his memory by acting as he
-would have done. You shall not face the world in poverty, and besides, you shall
-not have the power to say that you have been first betrayed and then cast forth
-penniless. I will provide for you, and will undertake to pay, through a lawyer
-whom I shall appoint, a sum of two pounds a week so long as you lead a
-respectable life and say nothing to my dear brother's hurt. You may live where
-you like, but I would advise you to choose some other country than England.
-There the story of your shame would cling to you, would follow you everywhere.
-Away from England no one would know, and life would be easier for you. Do you
-accept?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Leave me to myself,&quot; said Emilia. &quot;I will send for you
-presently.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will wait below,&quot; said Leonard; &quot;but do not be long in
-deciding, or I may change my mind.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Alone with her grief and her shame, Emilia, by a supreme
-effort of will, forced herself to calmness. The solemn sense of responsibility
-imbued her soul with strength. She was no longer a girl, dependent upon others
-for counsel, for guidance, for love. Not a friend in the world had she, but a
-helpless being would soon be lying at her breast who would claim from her all
-that it was in the power of a loving woman to give. A new life lay before her.
-How would she commence it?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She strove for a few minutes to bring the past back to her
-mind, but it presented itself to her in pictures so blurred and indistinct that
-she relinquished the effort. Up to the point of her being driven from Mrs.
-Seaton's house everything was clear, but her memory was gone upon all that had
-occurred afterward until she found herself with Gerald in a foreign land. The
-names of places, the names of people with which and whom she had been associated
-within that interval were completely blotted out. She did not doubt the base
-story which Leonard had related. Had she and Gerald been legally married he
-would have placed in her hands the certificate which proved her a lawful wife.
-The fatal omission proved Leonard's story to be true. Not a word about their
-marriage had ever passed between Gerald and herself during their honeymoon. He,
-with his careless easy nature, living with Emilia a life of sweetest happiness,
-left everything to the future; he had thought it wisest, too, to allow a long
-time to elapse before reviving memories which had brought Emilia so much sorrow;
-she would regain her full strength, she would be better able to think of the
-past. This was not known to Emilia; she could only decide upon her future action
-by what was within her cognizance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She felt no bitterness toward Gerald. He had, no doubt, acted
-for the best, and had imposed upon her by a mock ceremony of marriage, in order
-that she might be restored to health and reason. Would it have been better that
-she had died? No. Her child would soon be in her arms, bringing with it hope,
-and light, and peace perhaps. But the child must not open her eyes among those
-who knew her unhappy mother's story. The duty to the unborn which Emilia had to
-perform must be performed elsewhere. Gerald's brother was right in advising her
-to choose some other country than England in which to reside. But she had to
-think of his offer to provide for her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The moment she set her mind upon the subject she indignantly
-rejected the offer. It was too late to remedy the errors of the past into which
-she had been unwittingly led, but there should be no bridge between the past and
-the future. Even had she been willing to entertain the offer, it had been made
-in terms so insulting that no woman of decency could have accepted it without
-covering herself with shame. &quot;You shall not have the power to say that you have
-been first betrayed and then cast forth penniless.&quot; The provision, then, assumed
-the shape of a bribe. And it was to be paid so long as she led a respectable
-life--a tacit admission that hitherto her life had been disreputable within her
-own knowledge. No, she would reject the offer, and would, with the labor of her
-own hands, support herself and child.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At this point of her musings the landlord of the inn
-unceremoniously entered the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wish you to leave my house to-day,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She smiled sadly. This was the second time in her young life
-that she had been undeservedly thrust forth upon the world. But she ventured a
-gentle remonstrance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Give me till to-morrow,&quot; she pleaded, &quot;and I will go. It is
-so sudden, and I am not prepared.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have nothing to do with that,&quot; he said roughly. &quot;You must
-go to-day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it must be,&quot; she said, resignedly, &quot;I must submit. Will
-you kindly ask Mr. Leonard Paget to come to me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Needless to say that this cruel move had been prompted by the
-villain with whom Emilia was presently once more face to face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you reflected upon my offer?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; she replied. &quot;I cannot accept it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He shrugged his shoulders, but not exactly at his ease. Did
-the rejection mean that she intended to fight for her rights? This might prove
-awkward. Her next words reassured him and made him jubilant again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I prefer to depend only upon myself, and to get my own
-living.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How? Where?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am well educated, and may be fortunate enough to obtain a
-situation as governess in a family or school where a knowledge of English is
-desirable. I thank you for your advice as to my future place of residence, and I
-shall remain abroad. I have no friends in England--nor, indeed, anywhere,&quot; she
-added, with a pitiful sigh, &quot;and I never wish to see it again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The landlord informs me,&quot; said Leonard, &quot;that he has given
-you notice to leave the inn immediately.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He has been here with the same unkind order. Of course I must
-go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course: He has a right to send people away of whom he does
-not approve. What will you do? No one else in the village will give you shelter.
-I have made myself responsible for the expenses you have incurred since my dear
-brother's death.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is hardly just,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;as I have no claim upon
-you; but my purse is empty. I must go away before night.&quot; She paused a moment or
-two before she resumed. &quot;Things have been removed from my room during my illness
-which I might sell, and thus be enabled to take my departure. I am not strong
-enough to go away on foot.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Everything belonged to my brother.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not dispute that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Would it not be sensible on your part to reconsider your
-determination. Accept the offer I have made to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot.&quot; Her eyes fell upon the rings on her finger--the
-wedding ring which Gerald had placed there, and the diamond ring which he had
-given her. With a lover's extravagance he had purchased one of considerable
-value. Leonard knew the price he had paid for it, one hundred guineas. &quot;These,&quot;
-said Emilia, pathetically, &quot;are my own.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I lay no claim to them,&quot; said Leonard, ungraciously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But they are really my own?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Consider them so.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She removed the diamond ring from her finger. &quot;Is there any
-person in the village who will purchase this of me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No one rich enough. I will do so, if you wish.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I humbly thank you. Give me what you like for it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will give you a thousand francs,&quot; said Leonard, with a
-sudden fit of generosity.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But I do not want more than it is worth,&quot; said Emilia, with a
-joyful flush. A thousand francs! It meant a safe escape from a place where she
-was avoided; it meant sufficient to pay for a few weeks' board and lodging.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will say it is worth that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are most kind,&quot; said Emilia, giving him the ring. &quot;And I
-can pay what I owe the landlord.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You cannot do that out of a thousand francs. Try and be a
-little sensible, and say nothing more about it. After all, it was Gerald who
-brought you here, and the responsibility, which was his, is now mine. Here is
-the money. You will give me a receipt for it? Otherwise I should not be able to
-account for my possession of a ring you have always worn upon your finger.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Kindly write out the receipt,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;and I will sign
-it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Leonard wrote the receipt, which Emilia signed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This will not do,&quot; he said. &quot;You have signed it in a name
-which does not belong to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had signed &quot;Emilia Paget.&quot; She shuddered at Leonard's
-remark.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How else should I sign it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In the name which is your own,&quot; said Leonard, tearing up the
-paper, and writing another; &quot;Emilia Braham.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He placed the fresh receipt before her, and with trembling
-fingers she affixed the name, &quot;Emilia Braham.&quot; Leonard exulted. Here was a proof
-which he had not thought of obtaining. Being dated, it might serve as an open
-admission that Emilia, living with his brother, was quite aware that she was not
-his wife. The confession and the renunciation were of her own doing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can I do anything more for you?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes. Get me a carriage, and accompany me out of the village.
-I need protection from insult.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall not be insulted. I promise it. How long will you be
-getting ready?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall be ready in less than an hour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Her preparations for departure helped to divert her mind from
-the grief which oppressed it. Into one trunk she packed what belonged to her.
-She would have liked to take the desk, inlaid with silver, of Indian
-manufacture, which she had regarded as her own, but it had been removed with
-other articles which she believed were hers. She made no complaint; even to
-herself she did not repine; she submitted to everything, her only wish being to
-find herself in a place where she was unknown. All was ready when Leonard came
-to tell her that the carriage was waiting.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where do you wish to go?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It does not matter,&quot; she replied, &quot;so long as I am among
-strangers.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He named a town at a distance of eighteen or twenty miles, and
-she said it would do as well as any other. Soon they were at the door of the
-inn, about which were assembled the usual idlers. The carriage which Leonard had
-procured was a closed one, and he assisted Emilia into it, saying that he would
-sit by the driver. She appreciated the act, and believed it proceeded from
-thoughtfulness; it was her desire to be alone with her thoughts.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The driver was a long time starting; he fidgeted with his
-horses, with his reins, with the harness, and then he fortified himself with
-half a bottle of red wine. No one approached Emilia while he was thus employed;
-no one breathed &quot;farewell,&quot; or gave her a kind look. But when at length the
-driver took his seat on the box, with Leonard beside him, and was gathering up
-his ragged reins, the landlord's daughter passed the open window of the
-carriage, and furtively threw something in. It fell into Emilia's lap, and she,
-with eyes suddenly overflowing, and lips convulsed with emotion, covered it with
-her handkerchief, lest it should be taken from her. Then with a shout, the
-driver set his horses in motion, and they commenced their journey.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia lifted her handkerchief. In her lap lay a little bunch
-of flowers, tied together with string, attached to which was a piece of paper,
-and written upon the paper the words, &quot;From his grave.&quot; She pressed the flowers
-to her breast, to her lips, and murmured a prayer of thankfulness. The sense of
-the deep and irreparable wrong which Gerald had inflicted upon her passed away,
-and she thought of him only as one to whom she had given her heart and the full
-measure of her love. He was her child's father; better to think of him with love
-and kindness, which would soften her heart, than with harshness and bitterness,
-which would harden it. It would help to smooth the roads of the future she was
-to pass in the loving companionship of her child. &quot;Only you and I alone,
-darling,&quot; she murmured; &quot;only you and I!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">How kind of the young girl to send her away with this token of
-pity and sympathy. &quot;Heaven bless her for it!&quot; thought Emilia. &quot;Heaven brighten
-her life, and save her from misery!&quot; Had Emilia possessed a nature which would
-have hardened under such sufferings as she was enduring, the young girl's simple
-offering would have humanized and softened it. No wonder, then, that with a
-nature as sweet as ever woman was blessed with, she looked upon the flowers from
-Gerald's grave as an angel's gift, sent to her as a divine solace and
-strengthener. &quot;I <i>will</i> be strong,&quot; she thought. &quot;A duty of love is mine to
-perform, and I will perform it in humbleness and gratitude.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">From time to time Leonard came to the door of the carriage and
-asked if he could do anything for her. She gently declined his offers of
-refreshment, and said she needed nothing. He did not press his attentions upon
-her, and she gave him credit for a kindness of heart to which he had no claim.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was ten o'clock at night when they reached the town to
-which Leonard was conveying her. The carriage drew up at the door of at hotel of
-some pretension, and there Leonard had no difficulty in obtaining accommodation
-for Emilia. He told her he did not intend to pass the night at the hotel, and
-she was grateful to him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To-morrow I shall return,&quot; he said. &quot;Shall I say good-by to
-you now or then?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now,&quot; she replied.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very well. Good-by.&quot; He hesitated a moment, and then offered
-her his hand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She hesitated, also, before she accepted it. From him she had
-received information of the blow which had dishonored her; could she touch his
-hand in friendship? No, not in friendship, but why should she be sullen and
-churlish? He had done her no direct wrong, he had even shown her consideration
-and kindness. To refuse his hand would be a bad commencement of the new life.
-She held out hers, and he took it in his cool palm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are still resolved not to accept my offer?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am resolved.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not endeavor to prevail upon you, for I see your mind
-is made up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is. You cannot turn me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He gazed at her in surprise. There was a firmness in her,
-voice, a new note he had not heard before.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it your intention,&quot; he asked, &quot;to come back to England?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall never set foot in England again,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Neither from that determination can anything turn me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a wise resolve. I promise to keep your secret.&quot; She
-turned from him, saying in a low tone, &quot;I shall be grateful if you never speak
-of me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I promise not to do so. And you on your part should never
-mention my name or my dear brother's.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will never do so. He is dead to me. You will be, when you
-pass out of this room.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should tell you,&quot; he said, lingering still a moment, &quot;that
-I have entered your name in the hotel book as Emilia Braham.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should have done so myself. It is the name I shall bear for
-the future.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Being your right one. Well, good-by.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good-by,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So they parted, to meet again--when?</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_37" href="#div1Ref_37">CHAPTER XXXVII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>A GOOD WOMAN.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">As briefly as possible must now be sketched the story of
-Emilia's life during the next eighteen years. To her resolution not to return to
-England she remained firm during that period. Two days after Leonard left her
-she quitted the town to which he had brought her, and twelve months afterward
-she found herself settled in Geneva. It was her good fortune to meet an elderly
-lady who required a companion. The name of this lady was Madame Lambert, and she
-was attracted by the gentleness of Emilia's manner. These two ladies happened to
-be staying at the same hotel for a few days, and Emilia was enabled to render
-Madame Lambert some slight service. Like Emilia, the elder lady was travelling
-alone, and one evening Madame Lambert was seized with a sudden faintness at the <i>
-table d'hôte</i>. Emilia, who was sitting next to her, assisted her to her room,
-and remained with her during the night, sharing her bed by invitation. In her
-situation Emilia was compelled to register her name as Mrs. Braham, and Madame
-Lambert, questioning her, was told by Emilia that she was a widow. Emilia did
-not attempt to justify herself to her conscience; she knew that the duplicity
-was necessary for the credit of her unborn child.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you quite alone?&quot; asked Madame Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; replied Emilia. &quot;My husband died poor, and left me very
-little. My intention is to seek a situation as governess.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In England?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, here in Switzerland. I shall be happier here. I have no
-friends in England, and my knowledge of the English language will perhaps enable
-me to obtain a situation more easily here than there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will soon,&quot; said Madame Lambert, in a tone of kindly
-significance, &quot;be compelled to rest a while. For a little time at least you will
-not be able to fill a situation as governess.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia blushed and sighed. &quot;I have thought of that,&quot; she said,
-&quot;with fear and trembling.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Because you are poor?&quot; questioned Madame Lambert, speaking
-still with the utmost kindness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Emilia, softly. Frankness was best under the
-circumstances.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My dear,&quot; said Madame Lambert, &quot;I am sure you are a lady.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My father was a gentleman,&quot; said Emilia. &quot;He fell into
-misfortune, and when he died I was penniless.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you married a penniless gentleman. Ah, how imprudent is
-youth! But I have been young myself, and have loved and lost. My dear, neither
-am I rich, but I have a life income which is sufficient. It dies with me, I
-regret to say. I have a reason for telling you this. Like yourself, I am alone
-in the world. I was born in Geneva, and when a course of travel, which my doctor
-recommended for my health, is over, shall return there to live. Will you travel
-with me as my friend and companion? I can offer you very little in the shape of
-salary, but it will be enough to provide you with clothes, and perhaps a little
-more. Then you will have a lady with you when your baby is born. What do you
-say?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What can I say,&quot; replied Emilia, in a voice of gratitude that
-completed the conquest she had began, &quot;but thank you from my inmost heart for
-your kind offer? I can scarcely believe it real.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is real, my dear. Heaven is very good, and sends us
-friends when we least expect them. I am sure we shall get along very well
-together. You accept, then?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I accept with gratitude.&quot; She raised the hand of the kind
-lady to her lips, and her tears bedewed it. &quot;Yes, God is very good to me. I will
-prove worthy of your kindness. You shall never repent it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If thought otherwise I should not press it upon you, my dear.
-You will really be rendering me a greater service than it is in my power to
-render to you. It is miserable to travel alone, without a kindred soul to talk
-to and confide in. So it is settled. We shall be true friends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">From that day Madame Lambert and Emilia travelled together,
-not as mistress and companion, but as friends, until the time arrived when
-Madame Lambert saw that it was imperative that Emilia should remain for a few
-weeks quiet and free from the fatigues of a wandering life. Thus faith and
-goodness were rewarded.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a picturesque and retired village Emilia's baby, a girl,
-was born, and baptized in the name of Constance, Madame Lambert's christian
-name. Sweet and profound was the happiness with which the young mother's heart
-was filled when she held her baby to her breast. A sacred joy was hers, in which
-she found a holy consolation for the troubles through which she had passed.
-Madame Lambert was delighted, and drew from the mother and child a newborn
-pleasure. She never tired of showing them kindness; had they been of her own
-blood she could scarcely have been more considerate and thoughtful. She called
-Constance &quot;our child,&quot; and was as nervous over the little one's trials as Emilia
-herself. In such sympathetic companionship, and with such a sweet treasure as
-she now possessed, Emilia could only be happy. She never dwelt with sorrow upon
-the past. With rare wisdom she destroyed the bridge behind her, and buried the
-memories which had threatened to utterly wreck and ruin her life. Constance was
-a child of love, not of shame. Emilia's pure soul exonerated her from
-self-reproach, and shame could never be her portion now that there was no link,
-except the loving link of a baby's hands, between the past and the future.
-Wherever she turned she met looks of kindness; no longer was she avoided and
-repulsed. The world once more was sweet, and bright, and beautiful, and when she
-prayed to our Father in Heaven it was in the happy consciousness that He knew
-her to be a pure and innocent woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Baby, baby, baby!&quot; she whispered to the child in her &quot;You
-have restored me to life, to joy, to happiness. Oh, my baby, my baby! Can I ever
-be sufficiently grateful to you? Dear Lord in Heaven, give me strength and
-wisdom to guide her aright, to keep her from pitfalls, to see her grow in purity
-and innocence to a happy womanhood! Do not take her from me. Let her remain with
-me as a shield and protector. Through her I see goodness and light. Oh, my
-angel, my angel!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She wiped her happy tears away, and sang and crooned and
-worshipped as only a good mother can. Ah, the little fingers, the childish
-prattle, the pattering of little feet, what would the world be without them?
-Religion would be dead, and faith a mockery not to be indulged in without a
-sneering devil creeping close to lay its icy hands upon hearts in which sweet
-thoughts are harbored. Flowers of the human garden, let us be humbly grateful
-for the light they shed upon the dark spaces which at one time or other every
-mortal has to tread. In the midst of the gloom which surrounds us shines a star
-illumining a fair face and a head with flowing curls. In the midst of the
-stillness by which we are encompassed steals a musical voice, with its divine
-melody of childish laughter. What is that light in the distance? A bright cloud
-shining on a little bed, by the side of which kneels a small form clad in white.
-The pretty hands are clasped, and from the lovely lips issue the words, &quot;Our
-Father which art in Heaven, hallowed be Thy name!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was impossible that Emilia could forget Gerald, but her
-thoughts of him were ever gentle and kind and forgiving. &quot;You see our child,
-dear Gerald&quot;--thus ran her thoughts--&quot;watch over her. I forgive you for the
-wrong you committed. Do not trouble and sorrow over it. It is done and gone, and
-only sweetness remains. You have given me a flower which makes my heart a garden
-of love. God bless you, dear Gerald!&quot; So from the bitterest woe in which a human
-being could be plunged uprose a heavenly light.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We must not spoil our child,&quot; said Madame Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We cannot spoil her,&quot; said Emilia. &quot;Is she not beautiful?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The loveliest baby that ever drew breath, my dear. You happy
-woman! If I were as young as you are I should be jealous of you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The good lady was amazed at the new beauty which now dwelt in
-Emilia's face. The young mother was transfigured. A holy radiance shed its light
-upon her. Madame Lambert found herself presently worshipping the mother almost
-as much as she worshipped the child.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If you were my own daughter, my dear,&quot; she said, &quot;I could not
-love you more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are the best woman in the world,&quot; responded Emilia.
-&quot;Heaven guided my feet when it led me to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now it is time,&quot; said Madame Lambert, &quot;to think of returning
-to Geneva. There is our baby's education to be attended to.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Emilia, gravely. &quot;She must be taught everything
-that is good.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">And baby was only four months old! But mothers let their
-thoughts run ahead.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They did not, however, return at once to Madame Lambert's
-home. They lingered for two or three months in the valleys and mountains, and
-gathered garlands and posies for their child, which they pressed and preserved
-as though they were jewels of inestimable value. And, indeed, there are no
-jewels to compare with memories so sweet and pure. At length the happy rambles
-were over, and they were in Geneva.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Welcome home,&quot; said Madame Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Her apartments, in a good position in the city, consisted of
-five rooms and a kitchen. Two of these rooms Madame Lambert gave to Emilia, one
-a sitting-room, the other a bedroom for her and the baby. During Madame
-Lambert's absence the apartments had been taken care of by an old servant, who
-acted as cook and general domestic, to whom Madame Lambert had sent certain
-written instructions. When Madame Lambert said to Emilia, &quot;Welcome, home,&quot; she
-conducted Emilia to the rooms set apart for her, and the young mother's eyes
-overflowed as they fell upon the flowers which welcomed her and at the other
-evidences of a loving friendship which the thoughtfulness of Madame Lambert had
-provided.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How good you are to me!&quot; she murmured.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We are going to be very happy here,&quot; said Madame Lambert.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should be undeserving, indeed,&quot; said Emilia, kissing her
-kind friend and putting the baby into her arms, &quot;if I were not happy with you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Madame Lambert was well known in Geneva, and had many friends
-there, to all of whom she introduced Emilia. It was through these introductions
-that Emilia was enabled to obtain employment as a governess, which occupied her
-four or five hours a day, and her sweetness and gentleness soon made her loved
-by all who knew her. In this way passed five happy years, and then a calamity
-occurred. Madame Lambert fell ill, and the doctors said that she could not
-recover. When this verdict was imparted to Madame Lambert, she received it with
-resignation.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have only one regret, my dear,&quot; she said to Emilia, &quot;that I
-must say farewell to you and our child. But my spirit will be with you always.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Dear friend, dear friend!&quot; murmured Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's a great comfort to me to know,&quot; said the dying woman,
-&quot;that you are well established here, and can get a living. You are so much loved
-that I have no fears of your future. I am truly sorry that I cannot leave you
-and our Constance a fortune. There is a little money, very little, but it will
-be useful; and in my will I have left the furniture of our home to you. Then I
-have been clever enough to pay the rent in advance for the next three years, so
-that you will be able to put by a little more. God bless you, my dear; you have
-brightened the last years of an old woman's life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In a voice choked with emotion Emilia thanked and blessed the
-good lady, who smiled and fondled her hand. She saw little Constance frequently,
-but she would not allow the child to be saddened by keeping her too long in the
-room of a dying woman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Childhood should be bright,&quot; she said. &quot;I want our child to
-remember me in my cheerful moods.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She will remember and pray for you all her life,&quot; sobbed
-Emilia, &quot;as I shall, dearest and best of friends.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The end came a little after midnight.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you think,&quot; she whispered, with a pause between each word,
-&quot;that you could let me kiss our dear child without awaking her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will bring her,&quot; said Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Kiss me first, dear,&quot; said the dying lady.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia kissed her, and lay a few moments with her face
-nestling to that of her friend. Then she went and brought the child in her arms.
-Constance was asleep. Emilia had lifted her very lightly from her bed, and now
-she laid her by Madame Lambert's side, and covered her with a warm shawl. The
-child's fragrant breath flowed upon the dying lady's face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Our little angel is the sweetest flower the world contains,&quot;
-murmured Madame Lambert. &quot;Good-by, sweet one. Heaven guard and protect you!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She closed her eyes, and did not open them again. And so the
-good soul passed away, with the child's breath fanning her face.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_38" href="#div1Ref_38">CHAPTER XXXVIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>CONSTANCE AND JULIAN.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The tide in Emilia's affairs which had led her to Geneva
-proved to be most auspicious and fortunate. Her home with Madame Lambert was
-happy and peaceful, and when that good friend had passed away there was no break
-in the even tenor of her days. The connections she had formed were lasting and
-endurable, and she was never without pupils. One family recommended her to
-another, and she was constantly employed, meeting respect everywhere. Her
-earnings were not large, but they were sufficient for her modest wants. Blessed
-with the companionship of a child whose loveliness and sweet disposition won the
-hearts of all who came into association with her, the life led by Emilia and her
-daughter may be likened to a peaceful lake nestling in a valley beyond the reach
-of storm and tempest. The love Emilia bore for Constance was deep and profound,
-and represented for the devoted mother the light and joy of the world. So years
-passed until Constance was seventeen.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">All these years Emilia had heard no news from England, and had
-not seen a face she had known in her youth. The past was buried in a grave
-destined, as she believed, never to be disturbed, and there was not a cloud in
-the horizon to warn her of a coming storm. It was the happiest time of her life.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constance had many young friends, and among them, as was
-natural--being a beautiful and accomplished girl, with winning and amiable
-manners--an unreasonable number of young gentlemen who adored her. Of these the
-favored one was Julian Bordier.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Bordier, his father, was the head of an important watch
-manufactory, a concern the reputation of which was world wide. The name of
-Bordier was famous; his sign-manual engraved on the back-plate of a watch was a
-guarantee of excellence. Consequently the Bordiers--father, mother, son, and two
-daughters--were rich.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Social grades are not so unfairly marked in Geneva as in other
-cities. To have been well introduced, to be well educated, to live a reputable
-life, to have good manners, form the open sesame to polite society. Emilia and
-her daughter supplied all these requirements, and their circle of acquaintance
-was large and reputable. It was through the young people that Emilia was
-introduced to the house of the Bordiers, and once admitted she was always
-welcomed with cordiality. In all respects Julian Bordier was a gentleman and a
-man of refined instincts; unhappily his sight was failing him, and the Genevese
-specialists seemed to be powerless in their efforts to arrest the affliction of
-blindness which threatened him. The effect which this had upon the love which
-grew between Constance and Julian was to instil into her feelings for him a
-sentiment of divine pity. Before they were absolutely aware of it their hearts
-were engaged.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia watched the progress of this mutual affection with
-solicitous eyes, but she did not speak of it to her daughter. It was for
-Constance to introduce the subject, and that she had not done so was a proof
-that there had been no love-making between the young people. Constance believed
-her secret was not known, but the insight of a mother's love is keen and strong,
-and Emilia knew it almost before her daughter. The knowledge disquieted her.
-They were poor, the Bordiers were rich. But it was not in her power to guide the
-current; she must wait and hope for the best.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">One night Emilia and Constance came home later than usual.
-They had been spending a musical evening at the Bordiers' house, and Emilia had
-noticed for the first time that Julian's attentions to her child were more than
-ordinarily marked. Now and again she looked apprehensively at M. Bordier, who
-was sitting in his usual corner, and seemed to be taking notice of his son's
-attentions to Constance; the father's face was grave and observant, but there
-was no trace of disapproval on it. This was comforting, but it did not remove
-Emilia's apprehensions. It was a fine night, and Julian walked home with them.
-It needed not a loving mother's insight to detect the newborn tenderness of
-Julian's manner when he bade Constance good-night and held her hand in his.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mother and daughter derived delight from attending upon each
-other, but on this night Emilia dispensed with Constance's services. She brushed
-her own hair quickly, and then pressed Constance gently into a chair, and busied
-herself over the abundant tresses of her beloved child. With what loving care
-did she comb out the flowing locks, her heart beating with infinite love for
-this sweet and only treasure of her life! Then she coaxed Constance into bed,
-and knelt by the bedside and prayed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mamma!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia rose from her knees, and bent her face down to
-Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, dear child.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am almost afraid to speak, mamma.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it about Julian Bordier, dear?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tell me, my darling.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not be angry, mamma?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Angry, darling--with you!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is coming to speak to you to-morrow, mamma.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He loves you, Constance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, mamma.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you love him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The young girl hid her face on her mother's neck.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are not sorry, mamma, are you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think only of your happiness, darling. I have no other
-object in life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, mamma, you are the sweetest, dearest mother in the world.
-It is ungrateful of me; but, mamma, I cannot help it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know, I know, my darling. What does his father say?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He dues not know--no one knows. Are you not surprised,
-mamma?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think I have seen it for some time past, my sweet.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you never mentioned it, mamma--never even whispered it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was for you to speak first, Constance, and I waited.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can scarcely believe it. Oh, mamma, mamma, I love him, I
-love him!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Dear child! When does he intend to speak to his father?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;After he has seen you. He did intend to speak to both of you
-first before he said a word to me, but somehow, mamma--I don't know really how
-it happened, nor does he--Mamma, you are crying!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot help it, dear. You are my only one, my only one----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But, mamma, we shall still be together. Julian says so. We
-shall never, never be separated.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia smiled sadly. &quot;I have always liked Julian, dear, and if
-all should turn out well I am sure he will make you happy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He loves you dearly, mamma. I shall be glad when to-morrow is
-over.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will soon be over, dear child. Time passes quickly. Now go
-to sleep, my dear, dear child!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They kissed and embraced again and again, and then Constance's
-head sank upon the pillow, and she fell asleep with her mother's arm encircling
-her neck. Emilia lay awake for hours. Her daughter's confession had revived
-memories of the past, and she could not banish forebodings. Of all the young men
-whom she knew, Julian Burdier was the one she would have chosen for Constance,
-but she dreaded the coming meeting with his father. She could not explain her
-fears, but she was haunted by threatening shadows. Daylight was dawning when she
-fell asleep, and she rose unrefreshed from her bed. Constance, dressed, was
-sitting by her side when she awoke. Never had she seen her daughter look so
-beautiful; love made her radiant with angelic loveliness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I want you to look very, very bright, mamma,&quot; said Constance.
-&quot;I will help you dress.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Engrossed in her own happy dreams she did not notice the tired
-expression on her mother's face, which, after a little while, wore away beneath
-the influence of Constance's gentle ministrations.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Julian will be here early, mamma,&quot; she said, when breakfast
-was over. &quot;I don't know what to do with myself. Shall I go out, or remain at
-home? Hark! Yes; that is his step?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Go to your bedroom, darling,&quot; said Emilia, with fond kisses,
-&quot;and wait till I call you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constance obeyed, and Emilia admitted the young man, who
-entered the room with flowers for Constance and her mother. She motioned him to
-a seat; she was palpitating with emotion, but she succeeded in preserving an
-apparently calm demeanor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You expected me,&quot; he said, after she had accepted the flowers
-and laid them aside.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Constance told me you would come,&quot; said Emilia, gravely.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is she well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite well.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then there was an awkward pause, but soon the young man took
-heart of grace, and in modest, manly fashion laid his petition before Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot hope to be worthy of her,&quot; he said; &quot;no man could
-be, but I can promise sincerely to do all in my power to make her happy. I love
-her very dearly. What can I say more? You will not refuse me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it depended upon me,&quot; said Emilia, speaking very slowly,
-&quot;I should be contented to place my daughter's happiness in your keeping, for I
-believe you to be worthy of her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How can I thank you?&quot; said Julian, impetuously. &quot;It does
-depend upon you. Then all is settled. May I see Constance?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She gently shook her head. &quot;Not yet. I could have wished you
-had consulted me before you said anything to Constance. I am not blaming you--I
-know there are feelings it is difficult to keep in check, but I think it would
-have been better if you had confided in me first. I could then have advised
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To do what? You have no objection to entrusting me with her;
-and indeed, indeed, your trust shall not be misplaced. Perhaps you are right,
-but it can make no difference now that I know you approve.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is one,&quot; said Emilia, steadily, &quot;to whom you should
-have spoken even before you addressed me or Constance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My father?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, your father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Again, I daresay you are right. But I am sure of my father.
-He loves me, and will not thwart me----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia held up her hand. &quot;Have you considered the difference
-in our position?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No--except that I have always felt that Constance is far
-above me, if that is what you mean.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not what I mean. Parents are compelled to view such
-matters in a different light. I can give Constance no dowry.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I want none. I want her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And with your father's approval, you shall have my consent.
-It is my duty to say this to you, and as you have consulted me first I should
-wish him to know that I have so expressed myself, and that my answer is in his
-hands.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very well, I will go to him at once. There is not the least
-doubt of his answer, and I have yours already.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; interrupted Emilia, firmly, but with a tender inclining
-toward the young man, &quot;you have not mine already. I cannot give it to you
-definitely until I have seen or heard from your father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How precise you are,&quot; said Julian, in a gay tone; &quot;but my
-dear Constance's mother cannot be wrong in anything she does.&quot; He raised her
-hand to his lips and kissed it. &quot;You will not turn me away without allowing me
-to see her?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not turn you away at all, but I cannot sanction
-anything more than kind friendship between you and my child till your father has
-spoken. Julian, do you not see that I am striving to perform a duty which I
-consider right?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course I do, and I am greatly to be blamed for worrying
-you. But let me see her for one moment. It is only to say good-morning and to
-shake hands. You would not have refused me yesterday.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nor will I now. I rely upon your honor, Julian.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You may, implicitly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She called her daughter, and turned from them while they
-spoke. They exchanged only a few words, but Constance's hand remained in
-Julian's and that was happiness enough for the present. Then Julian called out
-to Emilia:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good-morning. I shall be here again very soon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She accompanied him to the door, and sent him away with a
-bright smile, but there was a fear at her heart which she could not have defined
-had she endeavored to set it clearly before her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">An hour afterward M. Bordier was announced.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Constance,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;I think you had best take a walk
-while I speak to Julian's father.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constance kissed her mother in silence, and was leaving the
-room as M. Bordier entered it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you going for a walk?&quot; he asked, holding out his hand.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His voice and manner were so affectionate that her heart was
-filled with joy. Emilia's heart also throbbed with hope.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, sir,&quot; replied Constance, raising her eyes timidly to his
-face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a bright morning, my dear,&quot; he said. &quot;I am glad for
-your sake and for Julian's.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She wiped away the happy tears as she descended the stairs and
-out into the sunshine.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought I would lose no time,&quot; said M. Bordier to Emilia,
-&quot;although really it seemed as if I were not master of my own movements. Julian
-was so impatient that he almost thrust me from the house. We will not beat about
-the bush, my dear madam. Julian is my only son, and that which affects his
-happiness affects me almost as nearly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then you have no objection to the engagement?&quot; said Emilia,
-eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None. Julian has related to me all that passed between you
-and him, and said you chided him for not coming to me first.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I considered it the right course.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perhaps, but young people in love are impetuous, and do not
-reflect. We ourselves were young, and can recall the time when we were in their
-position.&quot; A shiver passed through Emilia at this allusion. &quot;You made some
-reference to Julian about the difference in our circumstances. I intend to speak
-very plainly, you see, because I want the ground cleared once and for all, for
-all our sakes. Well, there is a difference, I admit, but it is not to be taken
-into account. You can give your daughter no dowry. It is not needed; I am rich
-enough to make the future easy for them. My son is a gentleman, your daughter is
-a lady. I approve of her, and I shall be proud to receive her into my family.&quot;
-Emilia gazed at him with swimming eyes; the fear at her heart was fading away.
-&quot;She is a great favorite in our home, and we are all very fond of her. I am glad
-that the matter has come to an issue before Julian leaves Geneva----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is he going away, then?&quot; asked Emilia, startled at the news.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For a short time only, I hope, and I shall go with him. His
-failing sight has caused us great anxiety, and the doctors here can do nothing
-for him. We intend to go to Paris, to consult an eminent specialist, and I trust
-he will come home quite cured. So that it is as well he has spoken to Constance.
-Indeed I suspect his projected departure caused him to open his heart to her
-earlier than he intended. Some persons are opposed to early marriages; I am not;
-and to judge from your looks you must be of my opinion. You married young?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; replied Emilia, faintly. Her fears revived; her
-undefined apprehension of evil was beginning to take shape.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your name Braham, might belong to any nationality. Was your
-husband French?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He was English.&quot; Her throat was dry; she could scarcely
-articulate her words. M. Bordier looked at her in concern. &quot;You are not well.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A sudden faintness, that is all,&quot; said Emilia, in a firmer
-tone. She must not give way; her daughter's happiness was at stake. &quot;It has
-passed off now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;English? And you are English also?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I remember when the good Madame Lambert brought you here,
-that there was some curiosity felt as to your nationality, but Madame Lambert
-silenced it by saying that you would prefer not to refer to the past. That was
-woman's talk, and it soon ceased. Your daughter bears Madame Lambert's name,
-Constance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Madame Lambert wished it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Were you and she related--excuse my interminable questions,
-but now that we are about to become closely connected we should know more of
-each other's antecedents.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We were not related.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah, well. While I am away I may run over to England. I should
-not be sorry for the opportunity of calling upon your friends there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have no friends there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Some relatives surely.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, your late husband's relatives.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;M. Bordier,&quot; said Emilia, summoning all her courage to her
-aid, &quot;there are in the world persons whose past is so fraught with unhappy
-memories that it is painful to revive them. Such has been my past, and the
-simple references you have made have opened wounds I hoped were healed. Pray
-question me no more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not,&quot; said M. Bordier, kindly, but also with a certain
-gravity which impressed itself strongly upon Emilia, &quot;we will say nothing more
-about it at present, and I ask your pardon for causing you pain. But still, when
-the formal preliminaries to the marriage between Constance and Julian are
-prepared--which cannot be done until Julian and I return to Geneva--some
-necessary information of your past will have, of course, to be given to make the
-contract legal and binding. Until then we will let the matter drop. And now
-allow me to assure you that I give my consent to the engagement with
-satisfaction and pleasure. Julian's mother and I have often discussed the future
-of our children, and shall be quite satisfied if they marry into families of
-respectable character. That is all we ask, and all we consider we have a right
-to demand. As to worldly prospects, we will make that our affair, being, I am
-thankful to say, able to provide for our children and the mates they may
-choose.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He held out his hand to Emilia, and with old-fashioned
-courtesy kissed her, saying, &quot;You and your daughter will make our house your
-home while Julian and I are absent.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How long do you expect to be away?&quot; asked Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It depends upon what the specialists say of Julian's sight.
-But under any circumstances we shall be absent for at least three months, I
-expect. Of course the young people will correspond. The first part of their
-courtship will have to be done by correspondence.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Soon after M. Bordier's departure Constance returned, and was
-made happy by the account of the interview. Emilia said nothing of M. Bordier's
-references to the past, a theme which had only been dropped to be taken up again
-when M. Bordier and Julian came back to Geneva. The evil day was postponed, but
-Emilia would not darken the joy of the lovers by speaking of it, or by hinting
-at her fast-growing fears of what the final issue would be. M. Bordier had made
-it clear to her that it was absolutely necessary that those who formed
-matrimonial connections with his children must be persons of respectable
-character. What was she? What was her darling Constance? Unknown to all in
-Geneva, where they were both respected and loved, they bore the maiden name of
-the mother. Let this fact be revealed, let the story of her life be made public,
-and they would be irretrievably disgraced, their position lost, their happiness
-blasted. Julian remained in Geneva two days after Emilia's interview with M.
-Bordier, and now that there was no restraint upon the relations between the
-young lovers, Emilia recognized how irrevocably Constance's happiness was linked
-with Julian. Was it to be left to her, the fond, the suffering mother, to wreck
-the future of the child she adored? Was it fated that she should be compelled to
-say to Constance, &quot;You cannot wed the man you love. He is a gentleman, with an
-unstained record. You are a child of shame, and are not fit to associate with
-respectable people. Take your rightful place in the world--in the gutters--and
-look at me and know that I have put you there.&quot; Yes, this, in effect, was the
-judgment she would have to pronounce. The agony she endured during those two
-happy days of courtship is indescribable; but she schooled herself to some
-semblance of outward composure, and successfully parried the solicitous
-inquiries of those by whom she was surrounded. As to what was to be done, she
-would not, she could not think of it till Julian and his father were gone. They
-were to be away at least three months; within that time much might be
-accomplished--she did not know what or how--but she would pray to God to guide
-her. So she suffered in silence, and kissed Julian good-by, and sat quiet in her
-room while the lovers were exchanging their last words of affection. Were they
-to be indeed the last? Were they never to meet again, to fondly renew their vows
-of unchangeful love? It was for her, the tender mother, to answer these
-questions. She was the Sibyl who held in her hands the skeins of fate. It was
-for her to shed light or darkness upon the future of her darling child.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_39" href="#div1Ref_39">CHAPTER XXXIX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>IN ENGLAND ONCE MORE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The whole of that night Emilia spent in prayer and thought.
-She sought for guidance, and her prayers were answered. With one exception the
-events of the past came clearly before her. The death of her father, her life in
-Mrs. Seaton's house, her first meeting with Gerald, what occurred on the night
-she was turned by the cruel woman into the streets, the kindness of the maiden
-sisters, her flight after overhearing the vile calumnies which Mrs. Seaton
-uttered against her, her meeting with the good old wagoner--and then a blank.
-She could not remember where the wagoner's cottage was situated, and she knew it
-would be impossible to find it without some practical clue. The marriage at the
-registrar's office she now distinctly recalled, and although she had never held
-the marriage certificate in her hand, she was certain the ceremony had been
-performed. Then came the memory of the happy honeymoon, and with that memory
-certain words which Gerald had spoken to her with reference to the desk of
-Indian workmanship which he had said was her property, but which his brother
-Leonard retained with other articles which rightfully belonged to her. The words
-were these: &quot;There is a secret drawer in this desk, Emilia, and in the desk
-something which concerns you nearly.&quot; It flashed upon her with the power of a
-divine revelation that what he referred to was the marriage certificate, which,
-if she could obtain it, would insure her daughter's happiness and save them both
-from disgrace. She placed credence no longer in the infamous statement made by
-Leonard, that she had gone through a false ceremony; she had believed it at the
-time because of her wish to escape from her persecutors and defamers, because
-Gerald was lost to her, because she thought only of the present. The image of
-Gerald, with his truthful eyes, rose before her; she heard his voice, the voice
-of truth and honor, say mournfully, &quot;And could you believe that I could be so
-unutterably base and infamous as to deceive you so shamefully, that I could plot
-and lie for your ruin, whom I loved so faithfully?&quot; No, she would no longer
-believe it. Gerald had behaved honorably toward her, and she had allowed herself
-to be tricked by the specious tale of a villain whose object was to obtain
-possession of the fortune which would have fallen to her. He was welcome to
-that, but she would at least make an effort to rescue her darling child from
-despair. She would go to England and endeavor to find Leonard. That done she
-would boldly confront him, and tell him to his face that he had lied to her, and
-that she would expose him if he did not furnish her with the opportunity of
-establishing her marriage with Gerald. She would not confide in Constance, for
-the present, and for as long as it was in her power to do so, she would preserve
-her secret. Time enough when she was compelled to reveal it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She acted as she was inwardly directed. The following day she
-told Constance that business of a private nature necessitated her going to
-England. Constance was to go with her, and they would be away from Geneva
-probably some six or seven weeks.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We shall be back before Julian returns,&quot; said Constance, and
-then was seized with consternation. &quot;But his letters, mamma, his letters!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We can leave directions,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;that they shall be
-forwarded to the London Post-Office. It will only be a delay of a day or two,
-and you can make your letters to Julian longer, as a recompense.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia named London, a city she had never visited, because she
-had often heard Leonard say that it was the only place in England worth living
-in. With money at command that would be the most likely place in which to find
-him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Julian's family were surprised at this sudden departure, but
-Emilia easily explained it by saying that it was upon private business of
-importance. By her directions Constance wrote to Julian at once, informing him
-of their movements, and bidding him address his future letters to her to the
-General Post-Office in London. Then Emilia made arrangements for a lady to take
-her place with her pupils during her absence, and all her preparations being
-completed, she and Constance started for England.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">What would have embarrassed her had Constance been of a less
-sweet and confiding disposition was the necessity of her conducting her
-inquiries alone, without the knowledge of her daughter. She explained this to
-Constance as well as she was able.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not mind being left a good deal alone, dear?&quot; she
-said, when they were established in lodgings in London.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, mamma, if you wish it,&quot; said Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is necessary, darling. I have some business of a very
-private nature to look after; if you were with me it would hamper me. I cannot
-tell you now what it is, but it is for your good and mine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And Julian's,&quot; said Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course, and Julian's. You will not mind, will you?&quot; &quot;No,
-mamma, not at all. I can get books, and I can write to Julian.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You think only of him, dear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And of you, mamma,&quot; said Constance, reproachfully.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, my dear, yes. I think I must be growing jealous.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is no reason, mamma dear. I love you both with all my
-heart. And Julian loves us both with all his. And you love us both with all
-yours. So it is really equal all round.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Constance,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;if it were ever to happen that you
-had to choose between Julian and me----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mamma,&quot; cried Constance, &quot;you frighten me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Forgive me, darling, forgive me,&quot; said Emilia, hastening to
-repair her error by caresses, &quot;but all sorts of notions come into a foolish
-mother's head when she is about to lose her child.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now, mamma,&quot; said Constance, forcing her mother into a chair
-and kneeling before her, &quot;I am going to be very severe with you. How, can you
-talk of my choosing between Julian and you? Why, mamma, it is impossible, it
-would break my heart! And how can you talk of losing your child? You will never
-lose her, darling mamma. Instead of losing me you will have another to look
-after as well as me; you will have Julian, who loves you nearly, not quite--I
-will not have that--as much as I do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never, Constance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And you will never think it again?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never, dear,&quot; said Emilia; and she was careful from that hour
-to keep a more jealous guard over her tongue.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At this period of Emilia's life there entered into her soul a
-surprising strength. She became strong, morally and physically. All her
-energies, all her intellectual faculties, were braced up almost abnormally in
-the momentous mission upon which she was engaged. Feeling the importance of a
-starting-point, she determined to visit her native town, and to visit it alone.
-She learnt from the time-tables that a train started at 5 P.M. and arrived at
-10. On the following day a train from London started at 4 P.M. and was due some
-six hours after, so that she need be absent from Constance for one night only.
-It was her first separation from her child, but she nerved herself to it, and
-instilled the same spirit into Constance, who consented without a murmur.
-Constance was to have her meals at home, to keep her doors locked and not stir
-out, and to wait up the second night for her mother's return.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall be quite safe, mamma,&quot; said Constance, &quot;and I shall
-not be dull. Nearly all the time you are away I shall be writing to Julian.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">That night Emilia was once more in her native town. Eighteen
-years had passed since she left it, and it was with sadness she recognized
-familiar landmarks with which her childhood had been associated. She had taken
-the precaution of effecting a change in her appearance. She darkened her
-eyebrows and arranged her hair in a fashion so strange as to be startled when
-she looked into the glass. Moreover, she wore a thick veil. &quot;No one will know
-me,&quot; she thought. But when she issued from the hotel the next morning she was a
-little afraid, for among the first persons she met was Mrs. Seaton. The cruel
-woman was but little altered; her features were more pinched, her eyes more
-stern than of yore, but Emilia knew her instantly. Mrs. Seaton, however, did not
-recognize Emilia, although she looked at her sharply, as was her wont with
-strangers. There was in the town a gossip who kept a small shop, and thither
-Emilia went, and, entering the shop, was greeted by the same woman who used to
-serve her in former years. Making some purchases and bargaining for others,
-Emilia drew the woman into conversation, and learned all she wished to know. Oh,
-yes, the woman remembered the brothers Paget very well, very well indeed. They
-were not brothers, no, they were stepbrothers. There was a fire in their house,
-and it was burned down, how many years ago? Eighteen or twenty, she could not
-quite say to a year or two; and a young lady, Miss Braham--Emilia Braham, that
-was her right name--rushed out of the house in the middle of the night while the
-fire was raging. There was a lot of talk about it. Miss Braham's father died
-suddenly--was killed by the falling of a scaffold--and Emilia was left alone,
-without a shilling in the world. Then she got a situation with Mrs. Seaton--Oh,
-everybody knew Mrs. Seaton; she had a sharp tongue, and had more enemies than
-friends--and she left her mistress' house at a moment's notice. Late at night,
-too. Mrs. Seaton said she had planned a secret meeting with Mr. Gerald Paget--he
-was the handsomest and the youngest of the step-brothers--and that was the
-reason of her going away so suddenly. It did look suspicious, didn't it? And it
-looked more than suspicious when she rushed out of Mr. Gerald's house in the
-middle of the night to save herself from being burned alive. That is often how
-people are found out in a way they little expect. But there were some people
-afterward who took Miss Braham's part, and said she wasn't guilty, though
-appearances were so much against her. That was because two ladies--old maids
-they were, and sisters--stood up for her, and went about saying all sorts of
-kind things about Miss Braham. What is that you say? God bless them for it! Yes,
-they deserve all that; they were kind-hearted ladies. They're in the churchyard
-now, and know more than we do. Well, these old maids took Miss Braham home on
-the night of the fire, when she was in a high fever, and no wonder, with what
-was on her mind; and Mrs. Seaton went there and told them they were being
-imposed upon by a shameless young woman. It was a hard thing to do, and she
-might have held her tongue, but that is not Mrs. Seaton's way. Once she takes a
-grudge against a body she don't let them alone, not she. While she was, with the
-old maids talking against Miss Braham, the young lady herself heard it, it
-seems, and she ran away, no one knew where to. Mr. Gerald, who must have been
-very much in love with her, was in a dreadful way about her, and the lawyers
-were busy trying to find her; and his step-brother, Mr. Leonard, who had come
-home from Australia that very morning, helped him, too. Then the two brothers
-went away together, and nothing was heard of them, or of Miss Braham, for months
-and months, till it got about that poor Mr. Gerald had been killed by falling
-over a precipice in foreign parts. Then Mr. Leonard came home, and took
-possession of the property, which all fell to him. What did he do with it? He
-sold it all off, and went to London to live, and that's where he is now, for all
-she knew. It was a lot of money he came into; some say as much as five or six
-thousand pounds a year, but he was just the sort of gentleman to make ducks and
-drakes with it. That was the whole story of the two brothers and Miss Emilia
-Braham. You would like to know something more! What is it? When Mr. Leonard
-Paget came home didn't he say anything about Miss Braham? No, not a word, so far
-as she knew, and she would have been sure to hear of it if he had. No, she was
-positive he never said one single word about her. She did not suppose he knew
-what became of her, and most likely, after a time, he forgot her altogether.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then the garrulous shopwoman, having exhausted her budget,
-reckoned up the purchases which Emilia had made, and having received payment,
-bade her customer good day.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia's next visit was to a flower shop, where she bought
-some loose flowers; then to the churchyard, where she was directed to the grave
-of the maiden sisters. She knelt and prayed there, and left the flowers on their
-grave.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had learned that Leonard was in London, and as there was
-no occasion for her to remain any longer in the town she took an earlier train
-than that she had marked, and arrived home four hours before Constance expected
-her. Reflecting upon her situation during that night, she felt how powerless she
-was. Leonard, she had every reason to believe, was in London, but to look for
-him in that vast city in the hope of finding him was scarcely within reason.
-And, indeed, had she not been befriended by some strange chance she might have
-remained in London for years without meeting the man for whom she was seeking.
-But it happened so, and an important stage was reached in her inquiry.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The weather was bitterly cold, and snow was falling heavily,
-but this did not keep her at home. In a kind of fever she traversed the streets
-of the city, selecting those which a man of fashion and fond of pleasure would
-be most likely to frequent. On the fourth day of her search she was walking in
-Regent Street, when she suddenly stopped with her hand at her heart. It was as
-much as she could do to prevent herself from screaming aloud, for walking
-leisurely before her, with a light step and jaunty air, was Leonard Paget
-himself. By a powerful effort she controlled her agitation, and set herself the
-task of following him. She had caught a glimpse of his face, and she could not
-be mistaken. He looked older and thinner, but his expression was that of a man
-who was enjoying the pleasures of the world and making the most of them. Having
-thus providentially tracked him down, Emilia determined not to lose sight of
-him. Her desire was to ascertain where he lived, and in the doing so to keep
-herself from his sight. To accost him in the open street would be madness. No,
-she must speak to him in a place where he could not easily escape from her,
-where he could not thrust her off. &quot;If he takes a cab,&quot; she thought, &quot;I will
-take another and follow him. If he walks all day and night, I will walk after
-him. He shall not, he shall not, evade me now.&quot; No detective could have been
-more determined and wary than she, but her present task did not occupy her very
-long. The cold day was no temptation to the man before her, and it happened
-fortunately for Emilia, that his face was homeward turned. He walked to the
-bottom of Regent Street, and plunged into the narrow tangle of thoroughfares on
-the left. The numbers of people favored her pursuit, and she was not noticed.
-True, the man did not know he was being followed, and only looked back when a
-pretty girl passed him. Presently he was in Soho, and in one or two of the
-streets through which she passed Emilia feared detection, there being fewer
-persons in them; but still he had no suspicion, and walked carelessly, gayly on.
-At length he stopped before a house in Gerard Street, took a latch-key from his
-pocket, opened the door, entered, and closed it behind him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia drew a long breath. It was there he lived; but she
-would make sure.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A boy with a basket of bread slung across his shoulders had
-stopped at the next house to deliver a loaf. Leonard Paget had passed the boy,
-who looked at him while he was opening the street door. Then the boy, having
-received some money, lounged on to the house which Leonard had entered, and
-knocked and rang. The housekeeper, Mrs. Middlemore, answered the summons, and
-took in a loaf. When the street door was closed again Emilia crossed over to the
-lad, and asked him if he would like a shilling, to which the boy facetiously
-replied that he would like two, but would put up with one if he could not get
-more.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will give you two,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;if you answer a few
-questions.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Off we start,&quot; said the boy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I want to know who that gentleman is who went into the house
-you have just left?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That gent as let himself in with his latch-key. Oh, that's
-Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's not true,&quot; said Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, you're going to cry off, are you? I call that mean, I do.
-I tell you it's Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia considered a moment. What more likely than that Leonard
-Paget was living there under an assumed name?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you sure? Here is the first shilling.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Cock sure. Why, he's lived there years and years, and there's
-nobody in the house but him. There's a housekeeper, Mrs. Middlemore; she took in
-a loaf from me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does this Mr. Felix live there regularly?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I see him regularly, so he lives there regularly. Anything
-more I can do for you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, thank you; here is your other shilling.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you.&quot; And the boy walked off, whistling.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_40" href="#div1Ref_40">CHAPTER XL.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>DR. PETERSSEN REAPPEARS ON THE SCENE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">For the unexpected good fortune of this discovery Emilia was
-very grateful, and her mind was now occupied in considering how to make the best
-use of it. She did not linger in Gerard Street lest she should be seen by
-Gerald's brother, but before she left it she ascertained that he was known not
-as Mr., but as Monsieur Felix. For what reason had he concealed his right name?
-For what reason had he assumed that of a foreigner? It was perhaps because she
-had but one subject to think of, but one supreme end to attain, that she
-mentally decided that she herself was not unconnected with his motive for
-concealing his identity. If that were the case it would be difficult indeed to
-obtain an interview with him. If she presented herself in person, or sent up her
-name, he would refuse to receive her; if she forced herself upon him he would
-not listen to her, and the next time she went to him she would find that he had
-flown. Thus her mission would be a failure and the unhappiness of her daughter
-insured. It behooved her to be very careful in her movements; the least slip
-would be fatal.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The whole of that day and the whole of the next she bent her
-mind to the consideration of the peculiar position in which she was placed. She
-did not remain at home; she spent many hours in the vicinity of Soho, making
-inquiries of M. Felix's habits and character, in such a manner as to draw no
-suspicion upon herself. Small tradesmen of whom she made purchases were the
-medium of these inquiries, and they were able to give her much information
-because of the gossiping disposition of Mrs. Middlemore, the housekeeper. It was
-at this time that she developed a talent for intrigue. To insure that she should
-not be recognized by M. Felix in a chance meeting in the streets, she took a
-room that was to let midway between Soho and the apartments occupied by herself,
-stating that she was an actress; and at one shop in the Strand, and at another
-in a street running out of that thoroughfare, she purchased a box of &quot;make-up&quot;
-and a wig of a different color from her own hair. It was a short wig, and when
-her own locks were concealed beneath it, and she had used certain pigments on
-her face, no one who knew her as Emilia Braham could possibly recognize her.
-These changes were made in the room she had taken unknown to Constance, and she
-gave no person in the house an opportunity of observing her. Independent,
-however, of these changes she was no further advanced at the end of the second
-day than when she met M. Felix in Regent Street, and she could think of no means
-of obtaining the interview she desired.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">On the third day she went out again in the direction of Gerard
-Street, drawn thither, as it were, by a magnetic current. But indeed all her
-hopes, and the future of herself and child, were centred in the house in which
-Gerald's brother lived under the name of M. Felix. Snow was still falling
-heavily, but she did not shrink from the chill blasts which swept through the
-narrow spaces of Soho. She had struck up an acquaintance with the mistress of a
-shop in which foreign provisions were sold, and she was now standing before the
-counter conversing with the woman, and picking up further information of the
-domestic habits which reigned in M. Felix's house. She learnt that it was Mrs.
-Middlemore's custom to go out every night for her supper-beer at half-past
-eleven, and that she was generally absent for not less than half an hour. A wild
-plan instantly suggested itself; she felt that something must be done, and that
-she must be bold. At eleven o'clock this very night she would be on the watch
-outside the house in Gerard Street, waiting for the housekeeper to go upon her
-usual nightly errand. Then she would go up to her, before she closed the
-street-door, and say she came by appointment to see M. Felix. She had already
-ascertained that he occupied apartments on the first floor; she had seen on the
-previous night the lights shining through his windows, and she would know in the
-same way on this night whether he was at home. If she played her part well, and
-controlled her voice so that it did not betray her, the housekeeper would
-doubtless take her word, and thus she would obtain entrance to the house without
-M. Felix being aware of it. As to what she should do when she confronted him she
-was as yet undecided, but certain unformed ideas loomed in her mind which seemed
-to give her hope that this nocturnal visit would not be fruitless. It would be
-necessary, however, that she should not present herself to the housekeeper
-dressed as a woman, for that would almost certainly bring suspicion upon her. In
-the disguise of a man her story would be more credible. Well, she would buy a
-suit of male clothing, and so disguise herself. The moral energy by which she
-was supported caused her to accept any suggestion, however daring and bold, by
-means of which she could attain success.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She went out of the provision shop full of the scheme, but had
-not gone ten yards before she made a discovery which occasioned her as much
-surprise as her meeting with Gerald's brother a couple of days ago. A man
-brushed quite closely to her, and this man was none other than Dr. Peterssen.
-Another fateful thread in her sad story. What did his presence in that locality
-portend?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He took no notice of her as he passed, but lingered before the
-window of the provision shop, looking through the panes, not at the goods
-displayed, but into the shop to see who was there. Throughout this series of
-adventures Emilia's senses were preternaturally sharpened, and nothing escaped
-her which seemed to bear upon her sad story. Presently Dr. Peterssen entered the
-shop, and without a moment's hesitation Emilia followed him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He had already commenced a conversation with the mistress of
-the establishment, who, saying to him, &quot;I beg your pardon,&quot; went to Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have forgotten something I wanted to buy,&quot; said Emilia, in
-a low tone, &quot;but I can wait till you have attended to that gentleman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She took care that her voice should not reach his ears, and as
-the woman stepped toward him she turned her back, with the air of a person who
-was not in the least interested in his business. The first words she spoke
-caused Emilia's heart to beat violently; but she still kept her face from him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, sir, M. Felix lives very near here, in the next street.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen. &quot;It was very careless of me
-to lose the letter he sent me containing his address. Would you mind writing it
-down on paper for me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The woman wrote the address, and Dr. Peterssen, thanking her,
-left the shop. Then she asked Emilia what she wished; it was common enough for
-people to come and ask the address of persons living in the neighborhood, and
-she attached no importance to it. Emilia made another small purchase, and again
-took her departure.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Instead of leaving Soho, as was her original intention, to buy
-the suit of man's clothing necessary for the carrying out of her scheme, she
-walked slowly through Gerard Street. Dr. Peterssen was on the opposite side of
-the road to that on which M. Felix's house was situated, and he was gazing up at
-the windows with an expression of triumph on his face. There had been a note of
-triumph also in his voice when he had thanked the shopkeeper for the information
-she gave him, and Emilia judged from those signs that he, as well as herself,
-had been hunting for M. Felix. For what reason, and why, had M. Felix hidden
-himself from a man he knew so well? Here again Emilia did not stop to reason. In
-the selfishness of the task upon which she was engaged she jumped at
-conclusions, and the conclusion she formed now was that Dr. Peterssen's search
-for M. Felix was in some way connected with herself and the husband she had
-lost.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">No detective could have acted more warily than she. With
-extreme caution she watched Dr. Peterssen's movements. He stood for a few
-moments looking up at the windows, then he crossed the road, and noted the
-number of the house, and then, with an exulting smile, he slowly walked away.
-Emilia was now more than ever resolved to carry out her scheme on this night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had observed that there were large clothing establishments
-in Tottenham Court Road, and at one of these she purchased a suit of clothes for
-a small-made man. Hastening to the room she had taken she tried them on and
-found them too large. She went back to the shop and exchanged the suit for a
-smaller one, which fitted her fairly well. Then leaving the clothes behind her,
-she joined Constance, and remained with her till eight o'clock.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Must you go out to night, mamma?&quot; asked the girl.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Constance,&quot; replied Emilia, &quot;and I may not be home till
-late. You had better go to bed soon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, mamma,&quot; said Constance, &quot;I will wait up for you.&quot; She
-went to the window. &quot;Mamma, you cannot possibly go out. The snow will blind you.
-There is not a person in the streets.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must go, dear child,&quot; said Emilia, firmly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But, mamma, dear--look!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was the night of January 16th, and a terrible snowstorm was
-raging. For over two weeks now the snow had been falling in London, and many of
-the thoroughfares were blocked with drift, which the efforts of great numbers of
-laborers could not remove; and on this night the tempest had reached its height.
-So engrossed had Emilia been in the task which had brought her from her happy
-home in Geneva that she thought little of the storms of nature which she had
-encountered as she trudged through the white-carpeted thoroughfares of the city.
-What physical sufferings was she not prepared to bear, and to bear cheerfully,
-for the sake of her beloved child? Only when her strength gave way would she
-yield, and she was sustained now by an abnormal strength which enabled her to
-endure that from which on ordinary occasions she would have shrunk. During this
-trying period of her life her powers of endurance were astonishing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not go out in such a storm, mamma!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do not try to dissuade me, darling, I must go. Do not fear
-for me; God is watching over me. I shall be quite safe.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let me go with you,&quot; pleaded Constance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Impossible. You know, dear child, I always do what I believe
-to be right; I am doing it now, and you must not thwart me, nor make things more
-difficult for me than they are.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are they difficult, mamma!&quot; asked Constance, in a tone of
-tender solicitude. This was the first time her mother had hinted at
-difficulties, and the admission had slipped from Emilia unawares.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, dear, but I cannot tell you what they are. Perhaps the
-time may come when I shall tell you all, but for the present trust in me, have
-faith in me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The solemnity of her voice had its effect, and Constance no
-longer attempted to prevail upon her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you warm enough, mamma?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, dear child, and my boots are dry and thick. God bless my
-darling, and shield her from harm.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constance tied a red silk scarf round her mother's neck, who
-left her with bright smiles and cheering words. Then Emilia made her way to her
-other lodging of one room, and effected the change in her garments. There was no
-other lodger in the house but herself, and she had a latchkey to let herself in;
-she experienced little difficulty in preserving the secrecy necessary for her
-operations, and she entered and left the house always without being observed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She surveyed herself in the little bit of broken looking-glass
-which rested on the deal chest of drawers against the wall. &quot;It is not possible
-for anyone to recognize me,&quot; she thought, and was about to leave the room, when
-her eyes fell upon the red scarf which Constance had tied round her throat. With
-a tender smile she took it up and put it on. She looked at her watch; it was a
-quarter to ten. &quot;I have still a few minutes,&quot; she said, and she knelt by the
-side of the bed she had not yet occupied, and prayed for strength and for a
-successful issue of her dangerous errand. Then she went out into the streets.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They were almost deserted; all the better for her task. On
-such a night who would notice her? As she turned into Gerard Street the church
-clocks chimed a quarter to eleven. She had three-quarters of an hour to wait.
-But the hot blood rushed over her face and neck as she saw, three or four paces
-ahead of her, the form of a man proceeding in the direction she was taking--and
-that man no other than Dr. Peterssen. He knocked--a peculiar knock seemingly by
-pre-arrangement--and Emilia timed her steps so that she reached and passed the
-door as it was opened by someone from within. She stooped just beyond the
-street-door, and while she was pretending to tie her shoestring heard what
-passed, which may fitly be given here in dramatic form:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen: &quot;Ah, my dear friend, at last we meet!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix (starting back): &quot;You!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">(His voice, although it had spoken but one word, was to Emilia
-a confirmation. It was the voice of Gerald's brother, Leonard.)</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen (airily): &quot;I, sweet comrade in the shady paths,
-I, Dr. Peterssen--nu ghost, flesh and blood. You received my note.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix: &quot;Written in a woman's hand, signed in a woman's
-name!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen: &quot;I knew that was the best bait to hook my fish.
-And the knock, too, that you yourself and no one else--no prying housekeepers or
-servants--must answer. Still the same Don Juan as ever. But it is biting cold
-here. Let us get into your cosy room and talk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix: &quot;Not to-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen: &quot;I am not to be put off, friend of my soul. We
-will have our little say to-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix: &quot;I have friends with me. I cannot receive you now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen: &quot;A lie. You have no friends with you.&quot; (His
-tone changing to one of undisguised brutality.) &quot;If you keep me waiting here one
-minute longer I will ruin you. Do you forget our pleasant partnership in
-Switzerland nineteen years ago? Do you forget your brother Gerald?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix: &quot;Hush! Come in. Step softly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">That was all. The door was closed, and all was still.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia stood upright, with a face as white as the falling
-snow. The words with their hidden meanings, the voices with their varying tones,
-the trick by which Dr. Peterssen had found it necessary to obtain admission to
-the presence of M. Felix, the veiled threats, the allusions to the partnership
-in Switzerland and to her dear Gerald--what did all these portend? What but a
-secret plot, unknown to her, unknown to all but its accomplices, a plot in which
-Gerald had been involved, and therefore she? Oh, for some beneficent gift to
-pierce those walls, to hear what those villains were saying! But it was idle and
-might be hurtful to indulge in vain, impracticable wishes. She summoned all her
-fortitude. Scarcely now could she hope to obtain speech to-night with the man
-whom she believed had ruined her life, and who could ruin it still further. But
-she would not desert her post; she would wait and hope. She heeded not the
-bitter, piercing cold; she seemed to be divinely armed against physical
-suffering. So she tramped slowly up and down the street through the deep snow,
-keeping her eyes fixed ever on the windows of the room in which the conspirators
-were conversing, walking backward with her face to them when she went from the
-house. Visions of the past rose before her; the white snow falling even in this
-narrow street brought back the snow mountains of Switzerland, where last she had
-seen the two enemies within hail of her. &quot;Strengthen me, oh, God of the
-universe!&quot; she murmured. &quot;Endow me with power to fulfil my task, so that I may
-keep shame and sorrow from my beloved child.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_41" href="#div1Ref_41">CHAPTER XLI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>DR. PETERSSEN BRINGS M. FELIX TO BOOK.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">When Dr. Peterssen entered M. Felix's sitting-room he sank
-into a chair, and gazed around upon the luxurious furnishings with an air of
-scornful approval. A cigar-case was on the table, and without invitation the
-unwelcome visitor helped himself to a cigar, which he lighted and smoked in
-silence for two or three minutes. Meanwhile M. Felix looked on and said nothing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are comfortably lodged here,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, at
-length, &quot;and your cigars are very fine; but you were ever a man of taste in the
-matter of your own enjoyments; the best were always good enough for you. By the
-by, the friends you were entertaining? Where are they?&quot; M. Felix smiled sourly,
-and Dr. Peterssen laughed aloud. The next moment, however, he became grave. &quot;Let
-us proceed to business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With all my heart,&quot; said M. Felix. &quot;I shall be rid of you all
-the sooner.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will never be rid of me, dear comrade. I am curious to
-learn for what reason Mr. Leonard Paget has transformed himself into M. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are curious to learn nothing of the sort; you are
-acquainted with the reason. It was to escape from your rapacity, which in
-another year or two would have beggared me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A good reason, from a purely selfish point of view, but you
-lost sight of a most important element. You and I are one, sweet boy; our
-fortunes are one; if I swim, you swim; if I sink, you sink. I am not at all
-sure, as to the latter, whether I could not save myself and bring you to
-destruction at the same time. Why did you cut and run from the tender-hearted
-individual upon whom your safety depends? I asked you now and then for a trifle
-of money to help me through difficulties; you always objected, I always
-insisted. I put the matter before you plainly. If I did not discharge certain
-obligations----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Brought about by your mad gambling,&quot; interrupted M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Granted, dear boy, but men with minds are never free from
-weaknesses of one kind or other, and I freely admit I like a little flutter
-occasionally.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You would have bled me,&quot; said M. Felix, with a dark frown,
-&quot;till I had lost every shilling of my fortune.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of <i>our</i> fortune, comrade, of <i>our</i> fortune. It is
-in my power to strip you of it at any moment, therefore, in common equity, the
-money is as much mine as yours.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We made a bargain, and I adhered to it--have adhered to it up
-to this day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite correct. Every quarter-day I find paid into my bank the
-sum of one hundred and fifty pounds. Woe to you if there had been a single
-omission. I might have advertised for you, in terms which would have drawn
-unpleasant notice upon you; I would have left no stone unturned to unearth you.
-I think it is five years ago since we last met. It was not an amicable meeting;
-angry words passed between us. You gave me the money I asked for and insisted
-upon having, but you declined to accept the view I presented for your
-consideration, that you were but the treasurer of a common fund. We parted, not
-the best of friends, and the next thing I heard of you was conveyed in a letter
-you wrote to me from Brindisi--it was actually posted from there--informing me
-that you had left England never to return, and that the six hundred a year would
-be paid regularly into my bankers in quarterly instalments, as usual. My dear
-friend, that letter naturally did not please me, and I did not propose to submit
-patiently to the desertion. I was working for you, for your ease, for your
-safety; I had an establishment to keep up. My little private asylum in the
-country, with its patients and keepers, entails upon me a great expense. I am
-getting tired of it; it chains me down; I have to be very watchful and careful;
-I have to wheedle and bribe, and, besides, I have to live. I knew that you lied
-when you wrote that you had left England never to return; I knew that it was the
-only country in the world you cared to live in, and I set to work to discover
-your hiding place. For five years I have been hunting for you; I have been in
-London a dozen times; I have searched everywhere. Oh, the money you have cost
-me, every shilling of which you shall refund. You shall; I have kept an account,
-and you shall pay me not only what I am out of pocket, but so much a day for my
-personal labor. But you are extraordinarily cunning, and it is only now I have
-succeeded in tracking you down. And being tracked, I mean to keep my hold upon
-you; I mean to have my due; I mean to share equally with you. It was by the
-merest chance that I obtained a clue, and I followed it up, until, behold, in
-the person of M. Felix, who passes as a foreigner, I discover my dearest friend,
-Mr. Leonard Paget, a partner with me in a conspiracy which, if it were made
-public, would insure, for you, certainly, for me probably, penal servitude for
-life. Now, what is it you propose to do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you want?&quot; demanded M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have already stated--an equal share of the fortune for
-which we both conspired.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What if I told you that it was pretty well squandered, and
-there was but little left?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should not believe you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a fact.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is a lie.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you think I should be living in such seclusion as this if
-it were not the truth?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I think what I please. What more can a man desire than what I
-see around me? You must be enjoying your days, Leonard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I repeat,&quot; said M. Felix, &quot;that I have lost the greater part
-of the money. You can prove it for yourself if you like. I have speculated
-unluckily; I have lost large sums at Monaco. You can't get blood out of stone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If you are the stone I will have either blood or money.
-Understand me; I am quite resolved. You see, dear friend, you have unfortunately
-roused a feeling of animosity in me by your bad treatment. I was to have all the
-kicks, you all the ha'pence. Unfair, monstrously unfair. Whose was the immediate
-risk in the conspiracy? Mine. Over whose head has hung, at any chance moment,
-the peril of discovery? Over mine. Who has done all the work? I. And you, living
-your life of ease and pleasure, laughed in your sleeve all the time, and thought
-what an easy tool it was who was doing all the dirty work for you, while you
-posed as a gentleman of immaculate virtue. Leonard, do not mistake me you will
-have to do as I command; I am not your slave; you are mine. I hold you in the
-hollow of my hand. You have escaped me once, you shall not escape me again.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You speak bravely,&quot; said M. Felix, with an attempt at
-bravado. &quot;What would you do if I defy you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What would I do if you defy me?&quot; repeated Dr. Peterssen,
-musingly. &quot;I would have my revenge, most certainly. I would bring destruction
-upon you, most certainly. I would make a felon of you, most certainly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You forget that you would be implicated in these unpleasant
-consequences.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I forget nothing; but you are mistaken, friend of my soul.
-There are roads open to me which are closed to you. I could turn Queen's
-evidence. I could do better than that. I could hunt up your brother Gerald's
-wife, who deems herself a dishonored woman. I could say to her that I was a tool
-in your hands, that you bribed me and played upon my poverty. I could say that
-the tale you told her of a mock marriage was false, and that she was truly
-Gerald's wife. I could inform her that her husband was at this moment alive, and
-was to be found at----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Hush!&quot; cried M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why? I am not afraid. Having revealed the plot to her I
-should disappear. She would come to England, if she were not here already; she
-would lose not a moment in ascertaining whether I spoke the truth; and then, my
-very cunning and clever friend, where would you be, I should like to know? Not
-only would you be brought to the bar of justice, but you would have to make
-restitution. You would be beggared and irretrievably disgraced; your life of
-ease and pleasure would be at an end. As I am a living man, I would bring you to
-this pass; and I have little doubt, when I wrote to Gerald's wife from my chosen
-place of exile, that she would listen to the tale of pity I should relate, and
-would reward me for restoring her husband to her arms, and for restoring the
-good name which you filched from her by the basest of tricks.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Enough of this,&quot; said M. Felix, &quot;I capitulate. Nothing can be
-done to-night. Come to me to-morrow, and we will make terms. I can say no more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perhaps not,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen. &quot;You will be here
-to-morrow?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will be here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At noon?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At noon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then we will go into accounts.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As you will.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Attend to me, dear friend. By my blood, by my life, if you
-deceive me, if you attempt to evade me, if you try once again to escape, I will
-make the story public through Gerald's wife! Then you may say your
-prayers--which will be a novel thing for you to do.&quot; He raised his hand and
-swore a frightful oath that he would do as he threatened if he did not find M.
-Felix at home at the time he had named.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will find me at home,&quot; said M. Felix, sullenly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What noise is that?&quot; asked Dr. Peterssen, as the sound of the
-shutting of the street-door came to his ears.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is the housekeeper going out for liquor. She does so every
-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She must have a passion for liquor to go out on such a night.
-An obliging housekeeper, no doubt, dear friend.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She does as she is directed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have a commanding way with you which goes down with the
-weak. Are there other lodgers in this house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am the only one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As I have heard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have been making inquiries of me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have. So, we two are alone. Not a soul on the premises but
-ourselves. One of us might murder the other, and have time to escape before
-discovery was made.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It would not pay either of us to proceed to such an
-extremity.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It would not. You are not an affectionate brother, Leonard.
-You have never inquired after Gerald.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is still alive, then?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is still alive.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You might be deceiving me. He may have died years ago.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That might have been, but it is not so. Would you care to
-convince yourself? Come down and see him. He might recognize you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; said M. Felix, with a shudder. &quot;I will take your word.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you not wish to know how he is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How is he?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In bodily health, better than you would suppose; but his
-mind&quot;--Dr. Peterssen did not complete the sentence, but watched with some
-curiosity the effect of his words upon his companion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is really mad?&quot; exclaimed M. Felix, eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By no means. It is merely that he is plunged into a chronic
-melancholy. He passes days in silence, speaking not a word. I give him books,
-and sometimes he reads, but I am not sure whether he understands what he reads.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No one sees him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No one but myself and those about me, who know him, as you
-are aware, as George Street, possessed with an insane idea that he is somebody
-else.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Street's father--does he not come to see his son?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He does not. Long ago he took the advice I gave him, that it
-would be best and most merciful for him not to attempt to see his son. Had he
-not agreed with me, it might have been awkward. Once he came; and I fortunately
-happened to have in the house a patient absolutely mad, one given to loud
-raving. It was curious, was it not, that at the time of Mr. Street's visit this
-patient was in one of his strongest paroxysms? Mr. Street turned pale when he
-heard the shouts. 'Is that my poor son?' he asked. 'That is your poor son,' I
-answered. 'I will not answer for the consequences if his eyes fell upon you.'
-The father went away, with sighs, saying before he went, 'Nothing better can be
-done for him than you are doing?' 'Nothing better,' I answered. 'He is receiving
-every kindness here. In another establishment he would be worse off than he is
-with me.' He came no more, but I send him regular reports, and occasionally go
-to see him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He pays you regularly?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes; he is a prosperous man.&quot; Dr. Peterssen rose.
-&quot;Good-night. I will be here at noon. I must make my way through this awful storm
-as well as I can.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;May you perish in it!&quot; thought M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It occurs to me,&quot; continued Dr. Peterssen, &quot;that I ought to
-have some guarantee with me. You have some money about you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not much.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Give me what you have.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix took his pocketbook from his pocket, which Dr.
-Peterssen seized before he could open it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall have it back to-morrow, minus the cash.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He caught sight of the desk of sandal-wood which Emilia would
-have remembered so well. It was open, and by its side lay the dagger with its
-handle representing a twisted snake and its ruby eye. With a swift motion Dr.
-Peterssen closed the desk and lifted it from the table. &quot;I will take this with
-me as a guarantee.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not allow you,&quot; cried M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is not for you to allow,&quot; said Dr. Peterssen, coolly.
-&quot;With me it goes, and to-morrow shall be returned. It contains private papers
-perhaps; all the better.&quot; The key being in it, he turned it in the lock, and
-threw it to M. Felix. &quot;You cannot object now, and it would make no difference if
-you did. My locking it proves that I do not intend to pry into your secrets
-unless you force me. Good-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He spoke with an air of fierce determination, and M. Felix
-felt himself powerless. Sitting almost helpless in his chair, he saw the man who
-held his fate in his hands pass out of the door, and heard his steps descending
-the stairs.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_42" href="#div1Ref_42">CHAPTER XLII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>EMILIA AND M. FELIX.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia, watching in the snow-clad street, saw Mrs. Middlemore
-issue from the house with a large jug in her hand. She dared not go up to the
-housekeeper while Dr. Peterssen was in the house, and with a sinking heart she
-recognized that the hope she had entertained of obtaining entrance by means of
-the story she had mentally rehearsed was lost. But she would not leave the spot
-until Dr. Peterssen appeared. She had no intention of accosting him, for that
-she felt would be disastrous, but she would follow him, if she could do so
-safely, to see where he lived or lodged. It might be a point gained, although
-she did not at that moment see how it could be used to her advantage. She had
-not long to wait. About ten minutes after Mrs. Middlemore left the house, the
-street-door was opened again, and Dr. Peterssen appeared. He carried beneath his
-right arm that which would have sent a thrill of passionate emotion to Emilia's
-heart, but she was too deeply observant of his personal movements to see the
-desk which he had taken away with him as a guarantee. He made no pause, but
-plunged immediately into the snow, and Emilia was about to follow him when she
-suddenly observed that he had not closed the door behind him. Her attention was
-instantly diverted from the man. Here was the opportunity for which she had
-disguised herself, for which she had been waiting. Without thinking of the
-consequences, she glided into the house and shut the door. Emilia would have
-scarcely known how to proceed now had it not been that M. Felix, hearing the
-street-door closed, rose to close his own, which Dr. Peterssen had left ajar.
-Before putting his intention into execution he opened it a little wider, and
-inclined his head to the stairs, as if in the act of listening. The stream of
-light which this action threw into the passage was a guide to Emilia, who,
-without hesitation, ran up the stairs and confronted him. Startled by her
-appearance he fell back a step or two, which afforded Emilia space to enter the
-apartment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who are you? What do you want?&quot; gasped M. Felix, dreading at
-first whether this was not part of a plot which Dr. Peterssen had devised for
-his injury. But his doubts were immediately dispelled.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am Emilia Paget,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;and I want justice.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">With a face of terror he retreated farther into the room, and
-Emilia followed him. His heart almost ceased to beat, and a singular numbness of
-sensation came over him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Through all these years,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;I have left you in
-peace, if peace can ever be the portion of a man like yourself. I come now to
-force a confession from your lips. I want nothing from you in the shape of
-money. All that you have, and that once was your brother Gerald's, is yours, and
-shall remain yours. I do not desire it; if I have any right to it I renounce it;
-I am here to demand justice.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This speech gave M. Felix time to recover himself somewhat.
-Though still conscious of a strange deadness of feeling at his heart, he saw the
-situation, and asked in a faint voice--</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What kind of justice?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia put a wrong construction upon the low tone in which he
-spoke. Deeming it a sign of relenting on his part, the defiant air she had
-boldly assumed gave way to one of imploring.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When we last met in Switzerland,&quot; she said, bending toward
-him, &quot;you told me that your brother, my dear Gerald--who, in my innermost heart,
-I believe never did harm to woman--had imposed upon me by a mock ceremony of
-marriage. At that time I was so overwhelmed by despair and so persecuted by
-injustice, that I did not dispute your statement. I thought only of the present;
-I wished only to escape from the cruel eyes and tongues of those to whom I had
-been maligned; I wished only to fly to a spot where I was unknown, and where I
-might live out my days in peace. What I yearned for was accomplished. God was
-good to me; He raised up a friend who took me to her bosom, and who conducted me
-to a haven of rest. For eighteen years I have lived in a foreign land,
-contentedly, even happily, with my child, Gerald's child. But circumstances have
-occurred which render it vitally necessary for our happiness that the proof
-should be forthcoming that I am a married woman. To obtain this proof I have
-come to England to find you, and by a happy chance have so far succeeded. I beg,
-I entreat of you, to give me means to establish my marriage with your brother.
-That done, I will leave you in peace, as Heaven is my judge. I will bind myself
-to this in any way you wish. I will swear the most solemn oath, I will sign any
-document you may draw up. Give me the means of preventing a shameful exposure
-which will ruin my child's life and mine. Think of what I have silently
-suffered, and have pity for me. I will pray for you--I will bless you----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But her voice was broken by emotion, and she could not
-proceed. M. Felix gazed at her sternly; as she grew weak, he grew strong.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot give you what is impossible,&quot; he said. &quot;You and
-Gerald were never married.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will not use hard words,&quot; said Emilia, restraining herself.
-&quot;It may be as you say; but give me at least the information that will enable me
-to establish the truth. You cannot deny me this--you cannot, you cannot!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What kind of information do you desire?&quot; asked M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When I was ill and very near to death,&quot; she replied; &quot;when
-reason had forsaken me and I was lying stricken down, Gerald and you came to me
-in the place where afterward a civil ceremony was performed which I had every
-right to believe made me an honorably married woman. Tell me the name of that
-place. It is little to ask, but I ask no more. If you have a spark of compassion
-in you, tell me this, and I will go away blessing you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You do not remember it?&quot; said M. Felix, with triumph in his
-eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;God help me, I have not the least remembrance of it, nor of
-the roads I took which led me to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix stepped to the window and threw it open. Then he
-cried in as loud a voice as he could command:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why do you cry for help?&quot; asked Emilia, advancing toward him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do not come nearer to me,&quot; he replied, &quot;or I will strangle
-you. Why do I cry for help? To bring the police here--to give you into
-custody--to expose and brand you as you deserve to be exposed and branded. How
-you forced your way into this house I do not know: perhaps you have been in
-hiding until you were assured I was alone. You come here to rob and murder. I
-will swear to it.&quot; Again he called from the window,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Frozen with terror Emilia stood like a statue, white with the
-fear of a horrible exposure which would blast her and her child forever in this
-world.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You talk of ruin,&quot; snarled M. Felix. &quot;It is upon you now.
-Disguised as a man you steal upon me here for a vile purpose. You will go away
-blessing me, will you? What do I care for your blessing or your curse? I will
-make your name a byword of shame, as it has been made before!&quot; For the third
-time he sent out into the night his cry for &quot;Help!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia's strength returned to her; she was able to speak once
-more.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will go,&quot; she said. &quot;You shall not have the opportunity of
-still further disgracing me. But I will not rest till the truth is made clear to
-me--not with your help, but with the help of&quot;----</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of whom?&quot; asked M. Felix, with a sneer.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had intended to say &quot;with the help of God,&quot; but an
-inspiration fell upon her which impelled her to utter a name almost as hateful
-to her as that of Leonard.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;With the help of Dr. Peterssen. If you can ruin me, he has it
-in his power to ruin you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah!&quot; cried M. Felix, and in a sudden frenzy he snatched the
-snake dagger from the table and hurled it at her. It struck her in her left arm,
-and she caught it in her right hand. As she held it thus, dazed with pain, for a
-moment, M. Felix was struck with partial blindness. He saw, through the mist
-which fell upon him, the dagger with blood dripping from it, and thought that it
-was Emilia's intention to use it against him. He had a revolver in his bedroom.
-Blindly he staggered thither, and fell, motionless, into a chair by the side of
-the bed. The pain of the wound and the horror of the situation deprived Emilia
-of her senses, and she sank to the ground. How long she remained in that
-condition she did not know, but when she opened her eyes all was silent. M.
-Felix was not present. Had he gone to carry out his threat and to bring the
-police to his aid? The dagger was still in her hand and the wound in her arm was
-still bleeding. Shudderingly she threw the weapon behind the sideboard, and
-intent now only on escaping from the shame with which she was threatened, she
-bound her handkerchief tightly round the wound, and fled down the stairs.
-Constables Wigg and Nightingale were outside the door as she threw it open, but
-she scarcely saw them, although she knew that they were the forms of men. Terror
-lent wings to her feet, and in a moment she was out of sight, flying for her
-life.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h3><a name="div0_03" href="#div0Ref_03"><i>BOOK THIRD</i>.</a><br>
-<br>
-WHAT BECAME OF M. FELIX, AS RELATED IN THE FIRST PERSON BY ROBERT AGNOLD, ON THE
-REPORTING STAFF OF THE &quot;EVENING MOON.&quot;</h3>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_43" href="#div1Ref_43">CHAPTER XLIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>ROBERT AGNOLD TAKES UP THE THREADS OF THE STORY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">In setting forth the incidents narrated in Book Second of this
-story, under its heading &quot;A Life Drama--Links in the Mystery,&quot; I have had no
-occasion to speak of myself, my acquaintance with Emilia beginning after the
-16th of January, on which night the Book fitly ends. In what has now to be told,
-however, I played a not unimportant part, and it is proper, and will be more
-convenient, that I should narrate what followed in the first person. I think my
-name, Robert Agnold, has been mentioned only once or twice in these pages, and
-it is not for the purpose of making myself better known to the public, but
-simply for the sake of clearness, that I depart from the journalistic method
-(with which in other circumstances I am very well contented) in what I am about
-to write. I do so with the full approval of the conductors of the newspaper with
-which I have the honor to be connected. It is perhaps unnecessary for me to
-state that in the preparation of Book Second I have been guided both by what I
-have heard from the lips of its heroine, Emilia herself, and by what
-subsequently came to my knowledge; but it is as well to state this, in order to
-prove that I have not drawn upon my imagination.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I now take up the threads of the story.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">When Emilia made her escape from M. Felix's house on the night
-of the 16th of January, she was, as may be supposed, in a state of extreme
-agitation. Her errand had failed, and she had nothing to hope for at the hands
-of Gerald's brother, whom I shall continue to speak of as M. Felix. She hardly
-dared to think of the future, and indeed the pain of her wound and the personal
-danger in which she stood were sufficient occupation for her mind at that
-juncture. As quickly as she could she made her way to the one room she had taken
-unknown to her daughter, and there she bathed and dressed the wound--throwing
-the stained water out of the window, so that it might not betray her--and
-effected the necessary change in her attire. In woman's clothes she left the
-house, and proceeded to her lodgings in Forston Street, Kentish Town. She was
-thankful that her daughter was asleep when she reached home; it saved her the
-necessity of an immediate explanation, and gave her time to make more plausible
-the story she had thought of to account for the injury to her arm. Creeping into
-bed without disturbing Constance she lay awake for hours, and sank into slumber
-only when daylight was beginning to dawn. She slept till past noon; fortunately
-for her, Nature's claims were not to be resisted, and she arose strengthened if
-not refreshed, and with still a faint hope that she might yet succeed. She would
-make one more appeal to M. Felix, this time in daylight. She would go to him
-this very afternoon, and endeavor to soften his heart by offering to bind
-herself to any terms he might dictate, if he would but furnish her with the name
-of the place in which the marriage ceremony had been performed. The echo of the
-statement he had made in Switzerland that she and Gerald were never married,
-although it struck a chill to her heart, found no lodgement therein. Most firmly
-did she believe that she had been honestly and honorably married, and until she
-was convinced to the contrary by absolute evidence she would continue to believe
-it. If M. Felix failed her she would set a watch upon Dr. Peterssen's movements,
-and endeavor by some means to gain her end through him. She had not the remotest
-idea how she should proceed with this man, but she trusted in God to guide her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Constance, as was natural, was in great distress at the wound
-her mother had received, but Emilia made light of it, although it caused her
-exquisite pain. It was an accident, Emilia said; she had slipped, and fell upon
-some broken glass; and Constance did not dream that the story was untrue. The
-young girl was very anxious on this morning; she expected a letter from her
-lover, Julian Bordier, and she told her mother that in her last letter to Julian
-she had given him the address of their lodgings in Forston Street. Emilia could
-not chide her for doing so, but she was inwardly distressed by the idea that the
-Bordiers might present themselves at any unexpected moment. M. Bordier would
-almost certainly make some inquiries as to the nature of the business that
-brought her to England. How should she reply? He was a penetrating man, and she
-could foresee nothing but calamity from a renewal at present of close relations
-with him. She could do nothing, however, to avert the dangers by which she was
-threatened. All she could do was to wait and hope.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She went to the post office for letters, and received one for
-Constance and one for herself. She rode back immediately to Forston Street to
-give Constance her lover's letter, and in the cab she read her own. It was short
-but most affectionate and tender, and it confirmed her fears. There was every
-likelihood that the Bordiers would be in London within the next few weeks.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Delivering Julian's missive to the eager girl, Emilia left her
-once more with the intention of proceeding to Gerard Street. She rode only part
-of the way, getting out of the cab at Regent's Circus. It was bitterly cold, but
-in this city of startling contrasts there are wheels that never stop. Though
-darkness enveloped the streets for weeks together the newspaper boys would still
-perambulate the thoroughfares with the last editions of the newspapers; would
-still bawl out at the top of their voices the tempting news they had to dispose
-of. Emilia had scarcely alighted from the cab when her ears were assailed by
-cries from these venders of the afternoon journals: &quot;Murder! murder! Sudden
-Death in Gerard Street, Soho! Mr. Felix Murdered! Escape of the Murderer!&quot; The
-shock which these startling announcements caused her was so great that she
-stumbled and would have fallen had not a policeman caught her by the arm.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be careful how you walk,&quot; said the officer. &quot;The streets are
-awful slippy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She murmured a frightened inarticulate expression of thanks
-and staggered on, the iteration of the news-venders' dreadful cries sounding in
-her ears like the clanging of a thousand bells proclaiming her doom. Her terror
-was so great that she would have succumbed under it if there had not risen in
-the white space before her the vision of a young girl at home reading her
-lover's letter. She saw the lovely lips form the words, &quot;Mamma, listen to what
-Julian says.&quot; This fancy was her salvation. Her daughter was in this terrible
-city, dependent upon her, with no supporter, with no friend but the mother whose
-heart was charged with woe and despair. She must be strong for her child's sake.
-Her strength came back to her; the policeman who had saved her from falling was
-still looking at her, and now, seeing that she had recovered, passed on.
-Controlling her agitation, she bought a copy of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, and
-walked mechanically toward Gerard Street. When she was within a short distance
-of it she wavered in another direction. Dared she go there? Dared she be seen
-there? Why not? It was hardly likely that she would be noticed; it would depend
-upon herself whether she attracted attention. She turned her face toward Gerard
-Street. A magnetic current drew her on, and she could no more have effectually
-resisted it than she could have changed day into night by closing her eyes. She <i>
-must</i> go and see for herself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The street was busy with people, drawn there as she was drawn,
-but, as she shudderingly confessed to herself, with a different knowledge of the
-truth. Outside the house in which M. Felix had lived there was a throng of
-people gazing up at the windows.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's the window of his sitting-room. Is he there now? Yes,
-stretched out, dead and done for. He was a gentleman, wasn't he? Yes, with heaps
-of money. He always kept a pile of gold and bank notes in his room. What's
-become of it? Ah, what? When was it done? About midnight, when there was no one
-but the murderer and the murdered gentleman in the house. The housekeeper had
-gone out for her supper beer. They forced the door open, and there he was,
-murdered. Who did it? A man, of course? Maybe--maybe not. Just as likely it was
-a woman. It doesn't matter to him now. He's dead, and won't come back to tell.
-Have they caught the murderer? Not yet, but they've got a clew, they say. Ah,
-they always say that. But it's true this time. They'll catch him, never fear,
-and when he's caught, the Lord have mercy on him!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Thus the chatter ran, and for a time Emilia, glued to the
-spot, stood and listened. Then a spiritual whisper fell on her senses and set
-her in motion again. &quot;The suit of clothes you dressed in last night. Get rid of
-it. Destroy it.&quot; She walked swiftly from the street and proceeded in the
-direction of her room. She did not waver now; suggestions of a frightful nature
-came to her, but she walked on, as if impelled by a hidden force. She reached
-the street in which the room was situated. It was quiet and deserted. There was
-comfort in that. Then the police had not been there. If they had there would
-have been as many people there as in Gerard Street. With desperate courage she
-opened the street door with her latch-key, and went up the stairs unobserved.
-She turned the key in the lock and entered the room. The clothes she had worn
-were in a corner, where she had left them the previous night. She breathed more
-freely. All this time she had kept in her hand the copy of the <i>Evening Moon</i>
-she had purchased, and now, in the solitude of her chamber, she nerved herself
-to read the particulars of the tragedy in which she was involved. Gerald's
-brother was dead; that was the end; all hope was gone. She no longer thought of
-appealing to Dr. Peterssen; she felt instinctively that by so doing she would be
-digging a pit for herself. She could throw herself on the mercy of M.
-Bordier--that course was open to her. She could tell him her story,
-strengthening her statements by most solemn assurances of their truth, and leave
-it to him to decide. She had but little hope in the result. She knew it was
-exactly the kind of tale which a guilty woman would relate, and that, without a
-shadow of proof, few men would accept it. There was no time, however, to
-determine upon any definite course at present. The suit of clothes she had worn
-when she visited M. Felix must be destroyed; until that was done her position
-was one of extreme danger. She folded them carefully, and inclosed them in the
-copy of the Evening Moon, and with the bundle under her arm proceeded to Forston
-Street. She went at once to her bedroom, and locked the clothes in her box.
-Already the plan had suggested itself of throwing the clothes into the river in
-the dead of night, when she could make sure that she was not being watched.
-After that she would come to some decision as to her future movements. What
-transpired on the night she made the attempt is known to the reader, and I now
-take up the sequence of events of which I may claim to be the originator.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_44" href="#div1Ref_44">CHAPTER XLIV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>EMILIA RETRACES THE OLD ROADS.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">After I had learned all that Emilia had to tell me, I informed
-her that I would take a day or two to decide upon my plan of action. In the
-meantime she was to make no movement whatever, but to keep herself and daughter
-in absolute privacy. She placed herself entirely in my hands, and promised not
-to deviate by a hair's-breadth from the instructions I gave her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Be sure of that,&quot; I said, &quot;and I feel that I shall be able to
-further your heart's wishes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">On the third day certain ideas had taken some kind of
-practicable shape, and I determined to set to work. I must mention that I
-visited Mrs. Middlemore regularly during my deliberations, and had taken the
-rooms which had been inhabited by M. Felix. She had no news of the slightest
-importance to communicate to me although she was in the mood to make mountains
-out of molehills. Nothing further had transpired in the Gerard Street house; no
-person had called to make inquiries, and she had not been upset by any more
-false messages. I saw my little friend Sophy also. She was as cheery and sharp
-as ever, and she informed me that &quot;Aunty was ever so much nicer than she used to
-be,&quot; and I expressed my delight at the good report.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But I say,&quot; remarked Sophy, &quot;ain't yer got nothink to give me
-to do for yer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not just yet, Sophy,&quot; I replied. &quot;Presently, perhaps.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The sooner the better,&quot; said Sophy. &quot;I likes to be busy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not go away, Sophy? I may want you at any moment.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall be ready for yer. I'll do anythink for yer, never
-mind what it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I explained to her on my last visit that I should not see her
-for a week or so, as I was going out of London upon particular business, and
-that while I was away she was to keep her eyes open. If she happened to see the
-man who had sent her aunt on a false errand to the Bow Street Police Court she
-was to follow him secretly and find out where he lived, and upon my return to
-London she was to tell me everything that had happened. Satisfied with her
-assurances of obedience I left the grateful little creature, and an hour later
-was closeted with Emilia. I had not yet informed her of the trick which had been
-played upon Mrs. Middlemore, and of the disappearance of the revolver; I did so
-now, and asked if she had any suspicion who the man was.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; she replied, &quot;I cannot imagine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Describe Dr. Peterssen's appearance to me,&quot; I said, &quot;as you
-last saw him.&quot; She did so, and I continued, &quot;It is as I supposed. He is the man
-who gave Mrs. Middlemore the false message, and got her out of the house to
-afford him the opportunity of obtaining what he wanted. Money, of course, if he
-could lay his hand on any, but chiefly papers and documents which might be
-valuable to him in the future--documents probably connected with your story.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why should he wish to obtain possession of such things?&quot;
-asked Emilia. &quot;They can be of no use to him he dare not appear.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Publicly he dare not; privately he may. You know of his visit
-to M. Felix; he does not know of yours. Say that he succeeded in obtaining
-possession of something which would establish your marriage.&quot; Emilia clasped her
-hands. &quot;He would surely conceive the plan of discovering where you were, and
-coming to you privately for the purpose of making a bargain for these proofs.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I would give him anything--everything,&quot; exclaimed Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is certain,&quot; I said, &quot;and it might be worth while to
-come to terms with him; but I should not allow him to rob you. M. Felix, so far
-as we know, did not make a will. Doubtless he has left property of some kind,
-and should your marriage be proved the property would be yours. Indeed, in that
-case it would be yours if M. Felix were living and in this room at the present
-moment.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia shuddered, and looked around timorously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you any idea what can have become of his body?&quot; she
-asked in a whisper.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No; I can form no theory upon that mystery. I would give a
-great deal to unravel it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it possible that Dr. Peterssen can have taken it away?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is more than possible, it is probable; but his motive for
-doing so is as great a mystery as the disappearance of the body without his
-intervention. A deliberate act of that kind is done with a deliberate motive,
-and I can think of none which would prompt him to carry into execution a scheme
-so full of risk. And now listen attentively to what I say. Setting aside the
-danger attendant upon your nocturnal visit to M. Felix--a danger which I trust
-will in time entirely disappear--it is of the highest importance to you that you
-should obtain proof of your marriage with Gerald Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is all I desire,&quot; said Emilia. &quot;That obtained, I should be
-content to die.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will be better to live, to draw happiness from the union
-of your daughter and Julian Bordier. My plan is this: That you and I go to your
-native town, and starting from the house of the maiden ladies who were so good
-to you on the night of the fire, endeavor to trace the road you took when you
-flew from the shelter they gave you. You remember the river----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can never, never forget it,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;nor the fearful
-thoughts which seemed to force me toward it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There will be little difficulty in ascertaining your route
-thus far on your journey. From that point we will make inquiries, and it may be
-that we shall succeed in discovering the road the kind old wagoner took toward
-his home. That done, all the rest is easy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Dear friend,&quot; she said, pressing my hand, &quot;how can I thank
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank me when success crowns our efforts. Are you ready to
-take the journey? We will start to-morrow morning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But Constance!&quot; she exclaimed. &quot;She cannot go with us. She is
-ignorant of my sad story.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let her remain so. I have provided for her comfort while we
-are away. I have spoken to my mother--a lady in whom you can place implicit
-confidence--and she will be glad if your daughter will accept her hospitality
-during our absence. You may trust her; your daughter will be well cared for.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know that, I know that,&quot; said Emilia, her tears
-overflowing. &quot;But what have I done to merit such goodness? What claim have I
-upon you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The claim of a helpless, persecuted lady,&quot; I replied, gently.
-&quot;What I do is willingly, cheerfully done. Accept my offer, and you will make me
-your debtor. It will be ample reward if I succeed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;God is very good to me,&quot; she murmured. &quot;Thankfully,
-gratefully do I accept it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is well. You had better arrange to retain these rooms,
-and we will leave my mother's address with the landlady, in case the Bordiers
-should come and make inquiries.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You think it right that they should see us?&quot; inquired Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will be acting injuriously to yourself if you affect any
-secrecy. Certainly they must see you and your daughter; their first inquiries
-will be for you and you will lay yourself open to the worst construction if you
-keep out of their way. Be advised by me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will, in all things.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My sister will accompany us on our journey. It will be
-pleasant for you to have a lady companion, and it will leave me free to make any
-inquiries that may suggest themselves.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She appreciated the delicacy of the act and it was arranged
-that I should call for her and Constance in the evening to conduct them to my
-mother's house. This was done, and in the morning Emilia, my sister, and I
-started on our journey.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I will waste no words in a description of our proceedings.
-There was no difficulty in finding the house in which the kind maiden sisters
-had resided, and from the street in which it was situated there was but one
-outlet to the open country. From the time occupied by Emilia in her flight on
-that never-to-be-forgotten night I judge that she must have walked some eleven
-or twelve miles, and at about that distance from the town lay the river Arbor.
-There we halted on the second day of our journey, and from that spot our real
-difficulties began. There was the hill Emilia had mounted, on the crown of which
-she had fallen in a state of exhaustion, with the river stretching to the left
-of her. It was inevitable that my sister should be taken into our confidence,
-and in the distressing reminiscences which the scene recalled to Emilia she was
-a true solace to the poor lady. I gently wooed her to describe the impressions
-of that terrible night's wanderings, and had any doubts been in my mind as to
-the truth of her story the pathos of that recital would have effectually
-dispelled them. But I entertained no doubts, and more strongly than ever did I
-resolve to champion her cause and not to relinquish it till success rewarded me,
-or absolute failure stared me in the face. As Emilia's suffering tones fell upon
-my ears I could almost hear the tinkling bells of the horses in the wagon and
-the driver's kindly exhortations to his cattle. He came in view, in my fancy,
-and spoke to Emilia, and receiving no encouraging answer, passed down the hill
-with his team. He returned and addressed her again, and she implored him to save
-her from the river. Supported by him, she descended the hill, and was lifted
-into the wagon, where she lay in a blind stupor of forgetfulness and
-insensibility. I declare that I saw the pictures of this human agony as if they
-were actually presented to my sight. As for my good sister, she was continually
-wiping the tears from her eyes, and when we reached the bottom of the hill, and
-Emilia said, &quot;It was here the wagon stood, I think,&quot; she pressed the unfortunate
-lady in her arms, and they mingled their tears together.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was at this spot, I repeat, that our real difficulties
-began, for at about a couple of hundred yards along the road the wagon must have
-taken (there being no other) it branched out in three directions, north, south,
-and east. Now, which road led to the wagoner's home?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Emilia could not inform us. We took one, the broadest--though
-why he should have selected the broadest instead of the narrowest I cannot
-explain, all three roads being equally available for horse traffic--and pursued
-it for a mile or so, and were confronted by four cross roads, which multiplied
-our difficulty. I will not enlarge upon the labor of this perplexing enterprise.
-It is sufficient to say that at the end of the twelfth day I was compelled to
-confess that we were as far from success as on the first day of our journey. Of
-course I made innumerable inquiries, but I was speaking of eighteen years ago,
-and I could not elicit the slightest information of a reliable nature to guide
-me in the search we were prosecuting. I spared no labor, and although I was
-greatly discouraged I did not allow my companions to observe my despondency. At
-length I came to the conclusion that it would be useless to employ further time
-in the quest, and I told Emilia and my sister that we should return to London on
-the morrow. Emilia looked at me mournfully.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't feel down-hearted,&quot; I said, with a cheerful smile.
-&quot;This is the smallest arrow in my quiver. I have a surer one to adjust when we
-reach town.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was touching when we arrived at my mother's house, to see
-the meeting between Emilia and her daughter. We left them to themselves awhile,
-and when they joined us I conveyed to Emilia a pressing request from my mother
-that they would stop with her as long as they remained in London. It needed
-persuasion to induce Emilia to comply, but she saw that Constance wished her to
-accept, and she did so with much grace, but with a humbleness of manner which
-powerfully affected me. Constance had some news to communicate. The Bordiers had
-arrived in London, and had visited her. I was impressed by a certain
-tremulousness in her voice as she spoke of them, but I made no comment upon it,
-not feeling myself warranted to intrude upon her confidence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My mother's house is open to your friends,&quot; I said. &quot;They
-will be always welcome here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She thanked me, and shortly afterward I was hurrying to the W.
-C. district, first to present myself at the office of the <i>Evening Moon</i>,
-and afterward to go to my chambers, where, in response to a telegram I had
-forwarded from the country, I expected a visitor.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_45" href="#div1Ref_45">CHAPTER XLV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>DR. PETERSSEN IS TRACKED.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">The name of the visitor I expected, and who hopped up the
-stairs which led to my chambers half an hour after I entered them, was Bob
-Tucker. He is a friend of mine, with plenty of money at command, and has no need
-to work for a living; but he has a fad, if I may so express it. This fad lay in
-the detective line, and to give him a job in that direction was to bestow a
-favor upon him. He entered upon it <i>con amore</i>, and pursued it with a zest
-never to be found in the professional, who works by the job, or the hour, or the
-day. He has often said to me that if he were to lose his money he would start an
-office of his own and lead a jolly life. Whether that meant a jolly life to
-others is a doubtful point. Anyway, he is an enthusiastic young fellow of about
-six and twenty, and is never so happy as when he can adopt a disguise and hunt
-something or somebody down. He objects to be called Robert, which he insists is
-not his proper name. He distinctly remembers, he avers, being christened Bob, so
-Bob Tucker he is to all his friends. So far as I am personally concerned, this
-is convenient to me, my name being Robert, which I prefer to Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I had foreseen the likelihood of the failure of the search
-upon which I had entered with Emilia, and the surer arrow in my quiver to which
-I referred when I spoke to Emilia about returning to London was Dr. Peterssen.
-It was my intention, if all else failed, to break a lance with him, directly or
-indirectly, and with this object in view I had instructed Bob Tucker to find out
-where he lived, what kind of establishment he kept, what his neighbors thought
-of him, the character he bore, and, in short, anything and everything about his
-establishment which could possibly be learned. Bob was delighted with the task,
-and undertook it eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does he live in London?&quot; he asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't know,&quot; I answered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This increased Bob's delight, and he said he would show me
-something when he made report to me. Of course I told him all I knew of the man,
-and that he had charge of at least one patient who was not in his right mind.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, Bob?&quot; I said, on this evening.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Give me a drink first,&quot; was Bob's rejoinder.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I gave him one, and took one myself. We clinked our glasses
-and emptied them. Then Bob lit a cigar, and so did I.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ready?&quot; said he.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite ready,&quot; said I.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Keeps a private madhouse,&quot; said Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Queen Anne's dead,&quot; said I.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Has more than one patient.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Has three. A man, or gentleman, and two children.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Children?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Children. Prefers them. Less trouble. Besides, longer
-expectations with young 'uns. More time for them to grow old.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;True,&quot; said I. It will be observed that it was a speciality
-of Bob's to speak in short sentences.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Man, or gentleman,&quot; continued Bob, &quot;harmless. Gentle as a
-dove. Greengrocer's boy told me. Sees him sometimes. In the grounds. Pities
-him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How old is this poor gentleman, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Forty, perhaps. Forty-five, perhaps. Not more than fifty at
-the outside. Hair quite gray, but youngish face.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where is this private madhouse, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sheldon. Forty-three miles from London. Population seven
-hundred and thirty. Two beerhouses. Shut at ten.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Has the establishment a name?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tylney House. Enclosed. Stone wall all round it. Easy to get
-over in one part. All the other parts, broken glass at top.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Character?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Difficult to get at. Population has no opinions. I should
-say, damned scoundrel.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why should you say so?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Impression.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is Dr. Peterssen always at home?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Seldom. Away for days together. Comes back. Stops for a day
-and a night. Goes away again next morning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who takes care of Tylney House in his absence?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Keeper, with only one idea. Liquor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does he take it at the beershops?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. Private stock. Keeps a dog. Savage.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is anyone admitted to the house?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No admittance except on business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do many people go there upon business?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None. House like a prison.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it a large house, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Largish. Room for more.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;More patients?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Look here, Bob. I want to tackle this Dr. Peterssen in some
-way as yet unthought of, but before I do so I should like to make sure of a
-certain point. How is it to be done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't understand you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, this is how it is. I am morally convinced he has
-something in his house to which he has no claim, and which I would pay a good
-price to get hold of.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Property?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Portable?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Any objection to say what it is?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We're tiled in, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Honor bright and shining. Unless you give consent, not to be
-mentioned outside this room.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you, Bob. The property is a desk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Buy it of him. My opinion he would sell anything. His own
-mother if he had one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He would not dare to sell it. He would deny that he had ever
-seen it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Might bring him into trouble?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes. There are a lot of things hanging to the possession of
-this desk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Spirit it away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Get a patient in--a friendly patient. A child for choice. A
-sharp one it would have to be.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By Jove, Bob, you put an idea into my head.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Glad to hear it. Act on it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You wouldn't mind assisting me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Anything in my power.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are a trump. But you have been making personal inquiries
-in the village. If you went down again--supposing you consent to do what I
-want--you would be recognized.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all. Disguise. I'd take Old Nick himself in, much less
-Dr. Peterssen and a parcel of clod-hoppers.&quot; (This was a long sentence for Bob.)
-&quot;Try me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Supposing I could find such a friendly patient--a smart
-little girl who knows her way about--would you go down and arrange that she
-should be taken care of in Tylney House?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Delighted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've not heard of any cruelties being practised there?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. Besides, I should be on the spot. Could arrange a system
-of signals. Piece of white paper, with a stone in it, thrown over wall. All's
-well. Piece of blue paper, with a stone in it, thrown over wall. Getting
-frightened. Come and take me away. No paper at all thrown over wall. Ring the
-bell and demand to see friendly patient.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bob, you're a genius.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thanks. When shall it be?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come and see me to-morrow at one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall be here; to the minute.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He gave me a wink, and after another drink took his departure.
-He would have stopped longer had I not told him that I had business of
-importance to attend to, to which he responded, &quot;A wink's as good as a nod,&quot; and
-hastened to say good-night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The idea he had put into my head was that he should take Sophy
-down to Sheldon as a relative of his own, and arrange for her admission to
-Tylney House, and the desk I wished to get hold of was the Indian desk of
-sandalwood, inlaid with silver, which Mrs. Middlemore had informed me was in M.
-Felix's apartment on the morning of the 16th of January, but which was not there
-when we searched the rooms a couple of days after. The housekeeper was positive
-that she saw it on the 16th, and was almost as positive that the police had not
-removed it. If not they, who? Why, Dr. Peterssen in his interview with M. Felix,
-on the night of the 16th, leaving behind him the snake-shaped dagger which M.
-Felix had thrown at Emilia a few minutes later. Emilia had repeated to me
-Gerald's words to her with reference to this desk, during their honeymoon in
-Switzerland--&quot;There is a secret drawer in this desk, Emilia, and in the desk
-something which concerns you nearly.&quot; What if this should mean the copy of the
-marriage certificate? In my mind I set it down as meaning it, and I thought,
-also, that there was a fair chance of finding it in the desk even at this length
-of time. The secret drawer was known to Gerald; Emilia, who had used the desk,
-was not aware of this secret drawer until Gerald spoke of it. It might be that
-Gerald's brother did not know of it, and that it had remained all these years
-undiscovered. Granted that the chance was a slender one, still it should not be
-neglected. I had no compunction in enlisting Sophy in the plan I had devised. My
-moral sense was not blunted, and I felt myself perfectly justified in fighting
-Dr. Peterssen with his own weapons. Before I sought Sophy I thought it necessary
-to have a few private words with Emilia, and I drove at once to my mother's
-house for that purpose.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can stop only five minutes,&quot; I said, in excuse of my
-hurried arrival and departure; &quot;I have a hundred things to attend to to-night.&quot;
-I beckoned to Emilia, and she followed me to an unoccupied room. &quot;I wish you,&quot; I
-said to her, &quot;to bend your mind most earnestly on the night of the 16th of last
-month. Don't tremble; there is nothing to be frightened at; I am hard at work in
-your interests, and I am full of hope. Are you quite calm?&quot; She nodded, and I
-continued. &quot;You saw Dr. Peterssen go into the house in Gerard Street; you saw
-him come out of it. When he went in did he carry a parcel with him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are sure of it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sure I should have noticed it. I had perfect control
-over myself, and nothing escaped my attention.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When he came out of the house did he have a parcel with him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, now you mention it, I remember that he did. I attached
-no importance to it at the time, my mind being bent upon my own errand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is all I wish to know at present. Keep a stout heart.
-All may yet be well.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So, with a bright smile, I left her, and bade the cabman drive
-to Gerard Street, Soho.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_46" href="#div1Ref_46">CHAPTER XLVI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>I ENTER INTO AN ARRANGEMENT WITH SOPHY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">At the corner of the street I dismissed the cab, and hurried
-after a familiar figure. It was Sophy, who seemed to be literally flying along
-the pavement, now on one leg, now on the other, and had she not suddenly wheeled
-round in my direction I should have had to run at the top of my speed to catch
-her. Seeing me she pulled up, and, with her face scarlet with excitement,
-greeted me boisterously.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why, what on earth are you doing, Sophy?&quot; I asked, laughing
-and wondering at her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She lifted her feet, one after another, for my inspection; she
-was skating on wheels.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm the champion skater,&quot; she said, triumphantly; &quot;I shall
-git a turn at the music halls before long. Look 'ere; I can beat the lot of
-'em.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Away she flew with marvellous swiftness for a space of fifty
-yards or so, then wheeled round and round and reached my side by executing a
-series of circles in the cleverest manner possible. I have no doubt that there
-are technical terms to describe her feats, but I am not acquainted with them.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There!&quot; she cried. &quot;What do you think of that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You'll break your neck if you don't mind,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Break my neck!&quot; she exclaimed. &quot;Not me! That's nothink to
-what I can show yer. I <i>am</i> glad to see yer back, I am? Aunty sed you'd
-give us up. 'Not 'im,' sed I; 'he ain't one of the giving-up sort.' You look
-tired out; ain't yer been well?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Quite well, Sophy, but, like you, very busy. Is your aunt at
-home?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Sophy, bursting into a fit of laughter; &quot;she's
-down in the kitching, with a pore man's plaster on 'er side. I got 'er to put on
-the roller-skates--leastways I put 'em on for 'er--and the minute she stood up
-in 'em she toppled over and fell agin the dresser. She ain't 'urt much, but she
-likes to make a lot of a little. I'm all over bruises, I am, but I don't fuss
-over 'em.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shouldn't play tricks on her,&quot; I said gravely; &quot;she has
-been a good friend to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, I don't know about that,&quot; said Sophy, with a rebellious
-toss of her head. &quot;She makes me pay for it, nagging at me morning, noon, and
-night. But there, I ain't going to say nothink agin 'er. She's got a temper, and
-so 'ave I.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She has been greatly worried, Sophy; you must be gentle with
-her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll do anythink <i>you</i> tell me; you don't bully a gal,
-you don't. If you told me to go and jump off the top of the Monument I'd do
-it--yes, I would, though you mightn't believe me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall not ask you to do anything so stupid, but you can
-render me a service, if you have the will and the pluck.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can I?&quot; she exclaimed, eagerly. &quot;I ain't much to look at, but
-I've got the pluck of a big 'un. Only you tell me what it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will first depend upon whether your aunt can spare you. We
-will go in and see her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She'll 'ave to spare me, and if she don't like it she may
-lump it. Now I know yer want me, I ain't going to let yer off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You appear anxious to serve me, Sophy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm going to serve yer,&quot; she said, with emphatic nods.
-&quot;There's nothink mean about <i>you</i>. When a gent makes a promise he sticks to
-it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A promise, Sophy!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Didn't yer promise yer'd give me somethink to do for yer--and
-didn't yer say jest now it depends upon whether I've got the pluck to do it?
-That settles it. I've got the pluck, and the thing's as good as done. Nobody in
-all the world 'as been as good to me as you've been, and it ain't likely I shall
-ever forgit it. You'll see. One day when I'm Somebody,&quot; and here the grateful
-girl gyrated round me gently, and really with grace--&quot;yer'll be proud of 'elping
-me on, and then I'll show yer I can remember.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your aunt can't be left alone,&quot; I said, after a moment's
-consideration. &quot;Do you know of any girl or woman who would take your place here
-while you are away for a week or two?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know twenty that'll be glad of the job. I'm to go away, am
-I?&quot; Her eyes glittered at the prospect of an adventure. &quot;I'm ready this minute
-Where to?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll tell you all about it after I've spoken with your aunt.
-It isn't an easy task I shall set you, Sophy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The 'arder it is the better I shall like it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you think you could play a part?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the stage?&quot; she cried, eagerly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No; off the stage.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On or off,&quot; she said, with a shade of disappointment, &quot;it
-don't matter. I'm game for anythink. Let's git aunty settled fust.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy, being now provided with a latch-key, opened the street
-door, and taking off her roller skates in the passage, preceded me down-stairs.
-Mrs. Middlemore was darning stockings, and seemed cheerful enough, but when she
-looked up and saw us her face assumed a colorless expression, and she pressed
-her hand to her side. Sophy winked at me, and said, in a whisper, &quot;She's putting
-of it on; she ain't 'urt a bit, no more than you are.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, good evening, sir,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore, mournfully.
-&quot;What are yer whispering about, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Only telling the gent,&quot; replied the unblushing girl, &quot;not to
-speak too loud, 'cause of yer nerves, aunty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's all Sophy's doings, sir,&quot; moaned Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;She
-made me put on a pair of rollers that's going to break 'er legs afore she's done
-with 'em. She's a double 'andful, sir; I can't manage 'er.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She has told me of the accident,&quot; I said, &quot;and is very sorry
-for it. Sophy means well, Mrs. Middlemore.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I won't dispute with you, sir, but she'll be the death of me
-if she goes on as she's a-doing of now. You've been away a long time, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not so very long; I had important business in the country to
-attend to. Nothing has happened, except your accident, during my absence, I
-suppose?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothink as I can think of, sir.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No more visitors in disguise; no more false summonses to the
-police court?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, sir--only I've got my fancies.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What kind of fancies?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Mrs. Middlemore looked timorously around, and Sophy answered
-for her. &quot;There's a sperrit in the 'ouse, she ses. She 'ears it moving about,
-and she's ready to swear in the middle of the night that it's a-standing at the
-foot of the bed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you also hear and see it, Sophy?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not me,&quot; replied Sophy, contemptuously. &quot;It's a wide-awake
-sperrit, and makes itself scarce when I'm about.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah, well,&quot; I said, &quot;there's no accounting for fancies. Let us
-get to business, Mrs. Middlemore. I intend to rob you of Sophy for a little
-while.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Rob me of Sophy, sir!&quot; exclaimed Mrs. Middlemore. &quot;What on
-earth am I to do without 'er?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, you will get along very well without her----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But you don't know what a 'elp she is to me, and 'ow good
-she's been. I've got that fond of 'er that I don't like 'er to be out of my
-sight. You're joking, sir, ain't yer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all,&quot; said I, smiling at this sudden display of
-affection. &quot;I have something for Sophy to do, and if she undertakes it she will
-get well paid for the job.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never mind about my being paid for it,&quot; interposed Sophy;
-&quot;I'm going to do it, whatever it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And leave me 'ere all alone!&quot; whimpered Mrs. Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not be alone. The first thing in the morning a girl
-shall be engaged to keep in the house with you, and I will pay her wages; and
-you shall have an allowance while Sophy's away. Remember what I have done for
-you, and don't make any further objections.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm sure you've been very good, sir,&quot; said Mrs. Middlemore,
-her trouble lessened by the prospect of gain; the virtues of golden ointment are
-not to be excelled. &quot;Might I take the liberty of arksing whether it's got
-anythink to do with Mr. Felix?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot answer you,&quot; I said. &quot;What Sophy will do will be a
-secret between her and me for the present. By and by, perhaps, she will tell you
-all about it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've got a way with you, sir, that nobody can't resist.
-You'll come back to me, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Course I will, aunty,&quot; said the girl, &quot;when the job's done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And now, Sophy,&quot; I said &quot;if you will come upstairs with me we
-will have a little chat. Then you can decide.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I've decided already,&quot; said Sophy, and she followed me to the
-sitting-room which had been occupied by M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Everything apparently was the same as on the night of the
-disappearance of M. Felix's body. I was aware of only one article which was
-missing after Dr. Peterssen's visit to the house, and that was the revolver
-which M. Felix kept under his pillow. I had no doubt in my mind that Dr.
-Peterssen had taken advantage of his being alone in the house, on the occasion
-of Mrs. Middlemore's unnecessary visit to the Bow Street Police Station, to
-appropriate other articles, but only the revolver and the desk--which he had
-taken away on the night of his interview with M. Felix--were within my
-knowledge. It is true that even this knowledge was gained by means of
-circumstantial evidence which would scarcely have been admitted in a court of
-law, but I was quite satisfied on the point, and I had the strongest moral
-conviction that time would prove the correctness of my conclusions.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sit down, Sophy,&quot; I said, &quot;and think of nothing else but what
-I am about to say to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm a-doing of it,&quot; said Sophy, with a look of absolute
-concentration that strengthened my confidence in her, and spoke volumes in favor
-of her being, as she hoped, somebody one day.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You remember the day on which your aunt was sent to Bow
-Street Police Court by a man whom she left in the house alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You said you saw the man. Would you know him again?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'd swear to 'im.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;On the night that Mr. Felix's body disappeared you were the
-only person in the house who knew anything at all of the matter. You behaved
-like a little heroine on that occasion, Sophy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's something good, ain't it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Something very good. There is no possibility, I suppose, of
-your being able to give me a description of the man who, by some strange means,
-got into the house on that night?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't tell you nothink more about 'im. It was in the dark,
-yer know, and when he spoke it was under 'is breath.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The question was an idle one, but I was bound to ask it. It
-may or may not have been the same man who deceived your aunt. Sophy, the man you
-saw and can swear to is an infernal scoundrel, and I look upon him as my enemy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's enough for me; he's mine, too, and I'm 'is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You can keep a secret, Sophy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You tell me one, and wild 'orses sha'n't tear it from me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are a faithful little soul, and I put great trust in you.
-Everything I am saying to you is a secret.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's enough,&quot; said Sophy, touching her lips with her
-fingers. &quot;Red 'ot pinches shouldn't git it out of me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The man you saw was in this house, to my certain knowledge,
-once before--while M. Felix was alive. Your aunt did not know it; M. Felix
-opened the street door for him. It was the night M. Felix was found dead, and
-when the man went away he took a desk with him that belonged to M. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy nodded. &quot;Aunty's spoke to me about that desk. She never
-could make out, she ses, what 'd become of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will describe it to you, Sophy.&quot; I did so, and she listened
-attentively, nodding from time to time with surprising intelligence. &quot;If you
-happen to see this desk in the possession of the man whom I look upon as my
-enemy, do you think you could identify it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Know it again? Yes, I should. But 'ow am I to git to the
-man?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have thought of a plan, or rather a friend of mine has,
-which requires courage to carry it out successfully. It requires something more
-than courage; without great good sense and coolness the plan would fail. The
-question is whether you possess those qualities.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It ain't no question at all; I've got what you want, and can
-do what you want.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is something in the desk, Sophy, that is of the utmost
-importance to me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And I'm to git it for yer. All right. Smuggle me into the
-'ouse, and consider it done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But you don't know what kind of a place it is, my girl. It's
-a private madhouse.&quot; Sophy did not blench; she simply nodded, and fixed her
-large brown eyes on my face. &quot;The man's name,&quot; I continued, &quot;is Peterssen, Dr.
-Peterssen. If he wanted a young girl as a servant you should apply for the
-situation, but I don't think there is a vacancy in his establishment. He is
-ready to take more patients, though, and he likes young patients better than old
-ones.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're going to put me in there as a mad gal,&quot; cried Sophy,
-in a tone of irrepressible excitement, which lasted, however, only for a moment.
-She cooled down instantly, and said in her usual tone, &quot;Crikey! That's a good
-move. I'm game! It's a good part to play, and no mistake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You'll do it, then?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do it? Won't I do it? Why, I never thought I'd 'ave sech a
-chance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will have to be respectably dressed, Sophy, hands and
-face nice and clean, and hair very tidy. How long in the morning will it take
-you to do that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You git me the clothes and I won't keep yer waiting. I'll
-give myself a good scrub to-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I've only one fear for you,&quot; I said, &quot;which you won't mind my
-mentioning. Going as a girl in a respectable position, your language might draw
-suspicion upon you. I can't see a way out of that difficulty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can,&quot; said Sophy, with a merry twinkle. &quot;Why should I speak
-at all? Let me go as a dumb gal. It'll be more than ever they can manage to git
-a word out of me if I was there for a year.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I looked at her admiringly. Her sharp wits had solved a
-problem which had greatly perplexed me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are sure you will not be afraid, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit afraid; I shall enjoy it. It'll be a reg'lar game.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very well, then. You can sleep upon it to-night, and if you
-alter your mind you can let me know. I shall sleep here myself, and shall be up
-early in the morning. There will be a great deal to do, and no time must be
-lost. Goodnight. Say nothing to your aunt.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She nodded smilingly, bade me good-night, and left me to my
-reflections.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_47" href="#div1Ref_47">CHAPTER XLVII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>I RECEIVE A STRANGE VISITOR.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Before I went to bed a little incident occurred which it may
-be as well to mention. It will be in the remembrance of the reader that when I
-discovered the dagger which M. Felix had thrown at Emilia on the occasion of her
-visit to him, I placed it behind the massive sideboard in the sitting-room, my
-purpose being to conceal it from prying eyes. Curious to see whether the weapon
-had been disturbed I took a candle and looked. It was still there, and I was
-about to move away when my attention was attracted to another object which lay
-edgewise by its side. This object was a photograph, which had evidently dropped
-behind the sideboard, and had lain there neglected for some time. Thinking it
-might be the photograph of M. Felix I managed to nick it forward, and presently
-was able to reach it with my hand. It was covered with dust, which I blew away,
-disclosing the picture of a young man with a handsome, prepossessing face. &quot;If
-this is a likeness of M. Felix,&quot; I mused, &quot;it proves how little the features of
-a man are an index to his character.&quot; There was something peculiarly winning in
-the expression of the face; and there was a smile in the eyes and on the lips.
-The picture had faded with time, but was still distinct and clear in its
-outlines. I determined to ask Mrs. Middlemore in the morning whether it was a
-likeness of M. Felix, and I put it on the table and retired to bed. I had had a
-long and tiring day, and I slept soundly. At eight o'clock I jumped up, ready
-and eager to resume the task upon which I was engaged. I had almost finished
-dressing when my eyes fell upon the picture I had found upon the previous night,
-and I took it again in my hand and examined it by the morning's light. Looking
-at the back of the card I saw some writing there, the name of a man and a date
-which fixed the time at nineteen years ago. The name was &quot;Gerald Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I was inexpressibly relieved. The picture, then, was not that
-of M. Felix, but of Emilia's husband. I was glad to possess it, and glad also of
-the mute evidence it presented, denoting that the original must have been of a
-frank and honest nature. I put it in my pocket without scruple; intrinsically
-the portrait was of no value, and I considered myself entitled to appropriate
-it. To make sure, however, that the likeness was not that of M. Felix, I showed
-it to Mrs. Middlemore, without informing her how I had become possessed of it.
-She had never seen it, she said, and it was not a portrait of M. Felix, who was
-a different kind of man. Satisfied on this point I went out with Sophy to hire a
-servant to take her place in her absence. We had no difficulty in obtaining one;
-as Sophy had said, we could have obtained a score, and we picked out the nicest
-and most amenable, the choice being Sophy's, upon whose judgment in this
-selection it was safest to depend. The new domestic being officially installed
-in Mrs. Middlemore's kitchen, I gave that worthy woman &quot;something on account,&quot;
-and bade her good-morning, and told her that Sophy and I would probably be
-absent for two or three weeks.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You'll take care of 'er, sir, I'm sure,&quot; said Mrs.
-Middlemore.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You need have no anxiety,&quot; I replied. &quot;She will be quite safe
-with me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Before these words were exchanged I had asked Sophy whether
-she was still of the same mind as she had been on the previous evening.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Course I am,&quot; said Sophy. &quot;I wouldn't give it up for nothink
-you could orfer me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had given herself &quot;a good scrub,&quot; and had tidied her hair,
-and I was surprised at the difference this made in her appearance.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Now, Sophy,&quot; I said, after I had bidden Mrs. Middlemore
-good-by, &quot;here are four sovereigns. Go to some wardrobe shop where you are not
-known, and buy a complete outfit of second-hand decent clothes, stockings,
-petticoats, boots, and everything you wear, and come to my rooms in them at
-half-past one. Be careful that you choose neat clothing, nothing showy or
-conspicuous; the way you are dressed the next time I see you will prove whether
-you understand what it is I wish you to do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You sha'n't find fault with me,&quot; said Sophy, with tears in
-her eyes. &quot;I never thought I should 'ave sech a slice of luck as this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At noon I was in my chambers, having arranged with the editor
-of the
-<i>Evening Moon</i> for another absence from duty. Bob Tucker was to come at
-one, and I employed the intervening minutes in setting things right in my rooms.
-I should have liked to go to Emilia for the purpose of showing her the picture I
-had found, and of receiving confirmation that it was a portrait of her husband,
-but I had not the time. The chimes of Westminster had just proclaimed the
-half-hour when I heard a knock at the outer door of my chambers. &quot;Bob is early,&quot;
-I thought, and I went and opened the door. A stranger confronted me, a
-middle-aged man, with sandy hair and light fluffy whiskers, and of a rather
-ponderous build.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have come to see Mr. Agnold,&quot; said the stranger.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is busy,&quot; I replied, testily, &quot;and cannot be seen.&quot; I did
-not know the man, and the business I had to transact was too important for
-interruption.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will wait,&quot; said the stranger, coolly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will be useless waiting,&quot; I said. &quot;Mr. Agnold cannot be
-seen to-day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will wait till to-morrow,&quot; said the stranger, pulling his
-fluffy whiskers, and gazing at me with more than warrantable attention.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; I said, &quot;call to-morrow, and unless your errand is
-urgent and personal do not call at all. Mr. Agnold's time is valuable.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I closed the door unceremoniously in his face and re-entered
-my sitting-room. My behavior is open to an unfavorable construction, I admit,
-but bachelors living in chambers in the houses roundabout are much annoyed by
-persons who intrude at all unseasonable hours, and who for the most part turn
-out to be commercial travellers desirous to show you samples of goods you do not
-want. But there was another reason in this particular instance for my
-unceremonious treatment of the uninvited visitor. All the time he was speaking
-to me I was conscious that he was observing me in a manner which I resented.
-There was an intentional rudeness in his pertinacious scrutiny which aroused in
-me a certain anger, which, reasonably or unreasonably, was a guide in my conduct
-toward him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I resumed my employment, but my mind was disturbed by the
-incident, and I could not drive it away. The man could not be a commercial
-traveller, I reflected, for those individuals are models of pleasantry and
-politeness, and do everything in their power to win your good graces. What,
-therefore, could be his object in paying me a visit? Had I done wrong in sending
-him away without inquiring its nature?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Confound the fellow!&quot; I said. &quot;He has got into my head and is
-likely to remain there, a fixture. I suppose he has gone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I went to the door and threw it open. On a little bench in the
-lobby outside sat the man, quietly and patiently.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not gone!&quot; I cried.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not gone,&quot; he replied.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You heard what I said, did you not?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perfectly. You said Mr. Agnold cannot be seen today. Upon
-which I replied that I would wait till to-morrow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To wait here?&quot; I exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, to wait here till to-morrow, or the next day, or the
-next. In point of fact, to wait till I have had a few minutes' chat with Mr.
-Agnold.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am Mr. Agnold,&quot; I said, angrily.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I knew that all along,&quot; he said, with irritating politeness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is it you want with me? Will you detain me long?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not very long; it will depend upon yourself. I come on behalf
-of Dr. Peterssen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">My anger instantly subsided; I became as cool as my visitor.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Enter,&quot; I said, &quot;and let us get it over. Who is Dr.
-Peterssen, and what has he got to do with me, or I with him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">These last words were spoken when my visitor and I were
-standing face to face in my sitting-room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, I am not here to answer questions,&quot; said my visitor. &quot;I
-have a commission to execute, and a question or two myself to ask on behalf of
-Dr. Peterssen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Which I shall answer or not, as I please.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course it is entirely within your discretion; I cannot
-force you; I am merely an instrument.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must know with whom I am conversing,&quot; I said, &quot;before we
-proceed further.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He handed me a card, on which was printed, &quot;Mr. Nettlefold,
-The Elms, Ealing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I never heard of you,&quot; I said, putting the card on the table.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't help that,&quot; he responded. &quot;Perhaps it will expedite
-matters if I inform you that I do not come from Dr. Peterssen direct. Before
-presenting myself to you I paid a visit to Mr. Bob Tucker.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I was confounded. Was the cunning scheme suggested by Bob, and
-to carry out which I had enlisted Sophy's services, to be nipped in the bud?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Tucker,&quot; continued Mr. Nettlefold, &quot;refused all
-explanations, and referred me to you, who, it seems, are the prime mover in this
-affair.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In what affair?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As you are aware, Dr. Peterssen resides at Tylney House,
-Sheldon. He desires this fact to be widely known, having no motives for secrecy.
-Mr. Bob Tucker has been prowling about this neighborhood lately, making
-inquiries concerning Dr. Peterssen, and prying into his private affairs in a
-manner to which Dr. Peterssen does not propose to submit.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A nice mess Bob has made of it,&quot; I thought. &quot;What a fool I
-was to trust to him!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I beg your pardon,&quot; said Mr. Nettlefold, &quot;did you speak?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did not.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I thought I saw your lips move. To continue. Mr. Bob Tucker
-could not have been aware that while he was thus clumsily playing Paul Pry, he
-was himself being watched, and that all the information given to him of Dr.
-Peterssen's affairs was false. When Mr. Tucker left Sheldon he was followed and
-his address in London discovered. He paid you a visit last night, and your
-address was discovered. I am commissioned by Dr. Peterssen to inquire your
-motive for your proceedings?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I shall answer no questions. Finish your commission, and go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very well. I am instructed to say that should Mr. Bob Tucker,
-or you, or any person in your employ, come again to Sheldon for the purpose of
-making injurious inquiries, he, you, or the other person will receive a sound
-horsewhipping, and after that a ducking in a convenient pond. That is all. Have
-you anything to say?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Just one observation. You can tell Dr. Peterssen in the
-plainest possible terms that I know him to be an infernal scoundrel, and that it
-is my intention to expose him. I shall visit Sheldon very soon, and he will have
-an opportunity of putting his threats into execution; it will then be seen who
-has the most to fear, he or I. There is the door, Mr. Nettlefold. Remove
-yourself quickly, if you do not wish to be removed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">To my astonishment, my visitor, instead of hurrying to the
-door, threw himself into my most comfortable arm-chair, and burst into a loud
-fit of laughter. I had not recovered from my astonishment before he spoke.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Capital. Capital. Settled my disguise last night. Carried it
-out this morning. Took me about an hour. Altered my voice. Altered the way I
-speak as Bob Tucker. Changed my clothes. And my hair. And my manner. Rather good
-isn't it? Compliment me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">And there in my chair sat, not Mr. Nettlefold, but my old
-friend Bob Tucker, laughing and wagging his head at the trick he had played me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Upon my word, Bob,&quot; I said with a feeling of great relief,
-&quot;you gave me a turn. I should never have known you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thought you wouldn't. When I looked in the glass didn't know
-myself. Thought I was another fellow. Thought I'd try it on you first, to make
-sure, you know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bob,&quot; I said, shaking hands heartily with him, &quot;you're
-splendid. Scotland Yard's a fool to you. I would trust you with my life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You might. It would be quite safe with me. So long as you
-kept your breath. Think I'm a match for Peterssen?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For a dozen Peterssens. You're a gem of the first water. I've
-hardly got over it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't think any more of it. Plenty of time by and by. Always
-knew I was cut out for this sort of thing. Let's to business. You see what I've
-done. What have you done?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have got the girl.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good. Sharp! Clever! Cool!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall see her; she will be here soon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then I related to him everything I knew of Sophy, and dwelt
-especially upon her behavior on the night of the disappearance of the body of M.
-Felix, which I could see made a powerful impression upon him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By Jove!&quot; he exclaimed. &quot;Got pluck, that girl. Seems just the
-article we want.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His admiration increased when I told him of the expedient
-suggested by Sophy to keep her lack of education from the knowledge of Dr.
-Peterssen's people.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She's a nugget,&quot; he said. &quot;Take quite an interest in her
-already. Possibilities in that girl. She will come through this affair with
-flying colors.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is my opinion, Bob. She will be a relation of yours, I
-suppose.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Step-daughter,&quot; he said, with a wink. &quot;By my first wife. The
-girl in the way then. Much more in the way now. Why? Her mother's dead, and I'm
-married again. Conundrum. What relation is she to my second wife? Work it out.
-Name, Maria. A perfect encumbrance. Dumb from her birth. And silly. Horrible
-nuisance. No vice in her. Not dangerous in the least. Therefore, friendly
-patient. No restraint or punishment. To be allowed to go about the house and
-grounds. Do as she likes. Must sleep in room by herself. Will give no trouble.
-Quarter paid in advance. Make her happy, and she shall remain for years. Must be
-kindly treated. Will programme do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is excellently arranged.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I go down as Mr. Nettlefold, The Elms, Ealing. Cousin of mine
-lives there. Should letters addressed Nettlefold arrive, will forward them on to
-me wherever I am. As I say, go down as Mr. Nettlefold. Leave Sheldon as such.
-Return to Sheldon as another man. To watch over Sophy, otherwise Maria. Got
-danger signals ready.&quot; He produced a number of small pellets, some blue, some
-white, weighted, and attached to thin cords. &quot;Sophy,&quot; he continued, &quot;otherwise
-Maria, ties these to underclothing. Stays. String of petticoat. Anything.
-Detaches one when required. I'll instruct her. Every day one thrown over wall.
-None thrown, go in and see her. Quite safe. Will she remain long?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I answered that I thought she would be able to get hold of the
-desk in less than a week, and that under no circumstances should she remain
-longer than a fortnight. If she could not accomplish her task in that time it
-would be useless to keep her there. We continued talking about the arrangements
-till half-past one, when my faithful and punctual Sophy made her appearance. She
-looked the picture of neatness, and her eyes beamed when I expressed approval of
-her attire. Bob gazed upon her with satisfaction.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She'll do,&quot; he said. &quot;You keep quiet. I'll take her in hand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I left it to him to explain matters and to teach her her
-lesson. He could have had no apter pupil; in less than half an hour she was
-proficient.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We start, the three of us,&quot; said Bob, &quot;at three o'clock. Not
-for Sheldon. Four miles from there is a large village, Nutford. We put up there.
-Arrive six-twenty. Have dinner. Dark night. Walk to Sheldon. Reconnoitre. Show
-you the wall, where you can get over. If you want to. Show you where to throw
-pellets. Four o'clock every afternoon. Convenient time. Dr. Peterssen probably
-away. Feel all right?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As right as a trivet,&quot; said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You're a girl--after my own heart. Have something to eat
-before we start. Tuck away.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At three o'clock we were in the train which was to convey us
-to our destination.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_48" href="#div1Ref_48">CHAPTER XLVIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>SOPHY ENTERS DR. PETERSSEN'S ESTABLISHMENT AS A FRIENDLY PATIENT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Having engaged comfortable quarters at the Bell and Horns,
-Nutford, we had a tea-dinner, and started to walk to Sheldon. It was a fine
-night, and Sophy distinguished herself as a pedestrian; the four-mile walk was
-accomplished in an hour and twenty minutes by the watch. The one narrow street
-of which the village could boast was still and quiet; not a soul was to be seen
-in it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;After seven o'clock at night,&quot; said Bob, &quot;place like a
-churchyard. Sleepy Hollow a paradise compared to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was something inexpressibly depressing in the aspect of
-the street; the two or three poor shops were closed, and neither in them nor in
-the cottages was there a sign of life. The suggestion of a grave came to my
-mind.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Remember Eden?&quot; asked Bob, who was in the best of spirits.
-&quot;Mark Tapley would have grown fat here.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At the end of the street we crossed a common, and then
-traversed an avenue of mournful trees, bounded by a stone wall.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The outskirts of Tylney House,&quot; said Bob, with the air of a
-professional guide. &quot;House can't be seen from this point. Nor from any point in
-particular. Lies in a valley. Observe the jagged glass at top of wall. Just here
-there's a bare spot. Think you could climb over it, Sophy, otherwise Maria?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Git over it like a bird,&quot; said Sophy. The conversation was
-carried on in low tones, Sophy's voice being sepulchral, in view of the part of
-the dumb patient she was presently to enact.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good girl. Prove yourself. There's a tree. Show us a climb.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was a branchless tree, with scarce a knob on its straight
-trunk, and with nothing to hold on by, but Sophy tackled it unhesitatingly, and
-was a dozen feet above our heads in a twinkling. There she perched, peering over
-the wall into the grounds of Tylney House. Presently she scrambled down, and
-nudging Bob, said,</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Will that do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've got the heart of a lion,&quot; said Bob, admiringly. &quot;I've
-no fears for you. Can you read?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Write?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tell the time?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, I can do that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's a blessing. Here's a silver watch. A stem-winder. When
-we get back to Nutford I'll show you how to wind it up. What's the time now?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Arf past eight.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Correct. That tree is thirty feet high. Or thereabouts.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What of that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should say it could be seen by anybody inside that stone
-wall. By you, when you're inside them. Now, Sophy, otherwise Maria, you have
-peculiarities. One, that you're dumb.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Inside them walls,&quot; said Sophy, &quot;I am. Dumb as a fish.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another, that you've an unconquerable habit of shying
-stones.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm a dab at that,&quot; said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As a friendly patient,&quot; continued Bob, &quot;you must be indulged.
-When you get it into your head to shy stones you're to be let alone. That's one
-of the conditions of your becoming a friendly patient.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I twig. I'm to shy stones at that tree.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are. At certain times of the day. At twelve o'clock by
-the silver watch. At four o'clock by the same.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Crikey!&quot; exclaimed Sophy. &quot;Yer don't mean to say I'm to have
-the ticker?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do. Bought it for the special purpose. And it's not to be
-taken from you. When you shy stones at hours already stated I shall be outside.
-You don't shy many. Three, or four, or five. One of the stones is made of lead.
-I supply you with them. Here they are.&quot; He produced the pellets. &quot;I give you
-some paper that you'll keep in your pocket. Lead stone wrapped in white paper
-means that you're quite comfortable. Lead stone wrapped in blue paper means you
-want to be taken away. Things not as they ought to be. That provides for your
-safety. We'll see you're not hurt, Sophy, otherwise Maria. I shall understand
-signals. An idea. Can you whistle?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Rather.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Another of your peculiarities. As a friendly patient you're
-to be allowed to whistle. At twelve o'clock and at four I shall be in this
-neighborhood. I hear you whistle. I see the stones you shy, <i>and</i> the bit
-of lead wrapped in white paper. She's safe, I say to myself. Sophy, otherwise
-Maria, is quite comfortable with her weather eye open. Do you take all this in?
-Or shall I go over it again?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know it by 'eart,&quot; replied Sophy. &quot;It's a reg'lar game,
-that's what it is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Here I thought it necessary to say a word.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Suppose no stones at all are thrown, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In that case,&quot; said Bob, &quot;without one minute's delay I ring
-the bell. I insist upon seeing my stepdaughter, Sophy, otherwise Maria. Leave it
-to me. I'll undertake that she comes to no harm. Time to get back to Nutford.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">We left Sheldon without having been observed, I a little
-doubtful now that the adventure was to be seriously commenced, Bob very
-confident, and Sophy very bright. Before we went to bed we had a great deal of
-conversation, and Sophy convinced us that she perfectly understood Bob's
-instructions; then the silver watch was delivered to her as a prospective gift
-in the event of her success, and we retired to rest. Bob and I had each brought
-a Gladstone bag down with us, and Bob gave me another instance of his
-thoughtfulness by producing from his a small handbag, furnished with certain
-necessaries for a girl of Sophy's age, which he had purchased in London.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have really no fears for her, Bob?&quot; I said as we
-undressed. He and I occupied a double-bedded room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not the least,&quot; replied Bob. &quot;She's a gem. Of the first
-water. Wash and comb her regularly--dress her decently--teach her to read and
-write--give her two or three years to grow up in--and there's no telling what
-she may become. Much obliged for the introduction. Much obliged also for the
-business in hand.&quot; He said this with perfect sincerity. Bob Tucker was in his
-element.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">On the following morning he and Sophy set off for Tylney
-House. By Bob's advice I remained behind in Nutford. It would be best, he said,
-that Dr. Peterssen should not see me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I waited in great anxiety for his return, and at three o'clock
-in the afternoon he was with me again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All arranged,&quot; he said. &quot;Sophy is now a friendly patient in
-Tylney House. Did not tell you, did I, that I telegraphed to Peterssen from
-London yesterday afternoon?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; I replied, &quot;I was not aware of it. You lay your plans
-well, Bob.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No use undertaking a job unless you do. I sent him
-telegram--'Coming to your establishment to-morrow with young patient. SILAS
-NETTLEFOLD.' We arrive in a fly--ring the bell--man appears. I ask, 'Dr.
-Peterssen at home?' 'Name?' inquires the man. 'Silas Nettlefold,' I answer. 'Dr.
-Peterssen is at home,' says man. 'Walk in.' I do. Sophy slouches by my
-side--good actress, that girl. Man eyes her. She doesn't notice him apparently.
-All the same she sees him--and reckons him up. In the grounds she picks up
-stone--looks at it--turns it over in her hand--shies it over the wall. 'A way
-she's got,' I say to man. Slip two half-crowns into his hand. He grins, and
-leads the way. Peterssen--damned scoundrel--receives us. I introduce myself--and
-my stepdaughter Maria. He shakes hands with me--no suspicion in his manner. I
-was looking out for that. Puts his thumb under my step-daughter's chin--raises
-her face. She gives a silly laugh, and turns away. I explain matters, saying
-first, 'Can I speak plainly to you?' 'I am a man of the world,' he says. 'So am
-I,' I respond. I give him a sly look; he gives me one. I motion Sophy, otherwise
-Maria, out of the room. He rings for man to take her into the grounds. 'Not my
-daughter,' I say; 'my first wife's. Widow when I married her. Now, dead. Six
-weeks ago I married again. Second wife wants her out of the house. So do I. More
-comfortable for all parties. Dumb from her birth; quite silly, but has, or will
-have when she's of age, property. Meanwhile I am her guardian. Willing to pay
-well to have her well taken care of. Must not be ill-treated. Am a Christian--so
-are you.' Peterssen smiles; I smile. I continue: 'It is to my interest that she
-shall be happy. I wish her to live a long life--in such an establishment as
-yours--at so much a year, paid in advance. I should like her to get fat. The
-longer she lives, the better for me. If she died her property would pass out of
-my control.' And so on, and so on. Peterssen comprehends--grasps the situation.
-Promises everything I ask. Shall be treated as friendly patient, but of course
-the charge will be proportionate. 'Quite so,' I say. Everything then is
-arranged. She will have perfect liberty inside the stone walls. Will be kindly
-treated. Will be allowed to walk freely about the grounds, and to indulge her
-harmless habit of occasional stone-throwing. So far, all plain sailing. Then
-comes question of terms. 'Two hundred a year,' says Peterssen, rather stiff.
-'We'll not haggle,' I say. Peterssen much relieved. He's devilish hard up. Saw
-it with half an eye. His hand stretched out to clutch the money. Took advantage
-of his eagerness. Gave him twenty pounds on account of first quarter. Promise to
-pay the other thirty in a month. After that, regular quarterly payments in
-advance. Peterssen made lame attempts to hold out for larger sum down on the
-nail. I stood my ground. Peterssen gave way. If he'd been flush of money would
-have seen me further first. Interview terminated. We go out to Sophy, otherwise
-Maria. Girl very happy, playing with two stones. 'Let her have her way,' I say,
-'won't give you a bit of trouble.' I wish her good-by. She takes not the
-slightest notice of me. Begins to whistle. Clever girl, Sophy. Gives me a silly
-look, that's all. I speak to man, otherwise keeper, aside. 'Don't bother her,' I
-say, 'and she won't bother you. Treat her kindly, and you get a crown a week.
-Here's first fortnight in advance.' Keeper promises to be good to her, and not
-to interfere with her. A crown a week buys him body and soul. Sophy all right.
-Shake hands with Peterssen, pat Sophy on the head, and make my way here. Not in
-a straight line. Hired fly some distance off in another direction. Leave Bob
-Tucker alone for putting people off the scent.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was nothing to find fault with in Bobgs description; all
-that I had wished for had been cleverly carried out, and everything seemed now
-to depend upon whether the desk of Indian wood was in Dr. Peterssen's
-establishment and whether Sophy would be able to obtain possession of it. But it
-was not without an uneasy feeling that I thought of Sophy being at the mercy of
-such a man as the master of Tylney House. Bob did his best to dispel my
-uneasiness. He was positive that Sophy was quite safe. Dr. Peterssen was seldom
-in the house, his inclinations and pleasures lying elsewhere, and the management
-of the establishment was left almost entirely in the hands of the keeper who Bob
-said he had bought for five shillings a week.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Doesn't get a tip once in a blue moon,&quot; said Bob. &quot;That was
-evident from his manner of accepting mine. It was such a novelty that it almost
-knocked him over. Doesn't get too well paid, either. There's a tumbledown air
-about Tylney House which made me think of a man on his last legs. One thing is
-certain. Peterssen's heart is not in it. Mind occupied by matters more
-engrossing. Generally savage look upon his face. The fellow's ripe.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For what, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For any kind of villainy, from pitch and toss to
-manslaughter. Wouldn't stop short of manslaughter. Oh, I know my customer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you see any of the other patients?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; answered Bob. &quot;Kept out of the way, most likely. Looked
-about for harmless patient green-grocer's boy spoke of. Didn't catch a glimpse
-of him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">We left Nettlefold that evening, and went to another village
-on the other side of Sheldon. This was done to enable Bob to assume a different
-disguise, in which he was to pay his daily visits to the tree outside the stone
-walls of Tylney House, which was to serve as a target for Sophy's stones twice a
-day; and he told me that he had given Sophy explicit instructions how to reach
-us at our new address. It seems that he had the removal in view when we were at
-Nettlefold, and had let Sophy into the secret; and I commended and admired his
-thoughtfulness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The change of quarters safely made, I had nothing to do but to
-await the course of events. I considered it expedient to keep Bob company, so as
-to be on the spot in case Sophy should make an unexpected appearance. Bob's
-proceedings and methods afforded me some amusement. At a quarter to eleven every
-morning he started for Sheldon, returning at a quarter to two. An hour afterward
-he started again for the same place, returning at a quarter to six. He was
-punctuality itself, and his movements resembled those of a well-regulated clock.
-Every time he returned he said, &quot;Sophy quite safe. Three stones, and a pellet
-wrapped in white paper. Whistling like a bird. Sophy getting fine markswoman.
-Two of the stones hit tree. Capital exercise for muscles this stone-throwing.
-Pity Sophy can't write. She would be able to tell us news.&quot; He kept an exact
-record of all his proceedings, and devoted a separate page, more than one, if
-necessary, to each entry. &quot;In matters like this,&quot; he said, &quot;avoid confusion. Be
-precise. My diary saves a world of trouble in deciding absolutely what was done
-at such an hour on such a day.&quot; The time, I must confess, hung heavily on my
-hands, and I would much rather have been an active worker in the task upon which
-we were engaged. However, I had no choice. I wrote regularly to my people at
-home and to Emilia, who thus became acquainted with my country address, and it
-was to Emilia's knowledge of my whereabouts which led to unforeseen diversions
-in the plans I had so carefully mapped out.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_49" href="#div1Ref_49">CHAPTER XLIX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>M. BORDIER JOINS THE HUNT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">On the twelfth day I said:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bob, I think I shall run up to London.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By all means,&quot; said Bob, cheerfully, a sign that my society
-was not indispensable to him, and that he was not wearying of his task. &quot;Should
-anything occur I will telegraph to you. To which address, though?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Repeat your telegrams,&quot; I said, &quot;to my chambers and my
-mother's house. I shall be back in two days, and if by that time things are
-still in the same position I think you should pay a visit to Sophy, and contrive
-somehow to speak to her. This inaction is intolerable.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have no patience,&quot; said Bob. &quot;The train is laid. What
-more do you want?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Movement, Bob, movement.&quot; I looked at my watch. &quot;Mustn't lose
-the train. I'm off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">And off I was, and in a few minutes whirling toward London. It
-was destined, however, that I should not reach there as early as I expected. We
-were midway when the train slackened, crawled along a few hundred yards, then
-came to a standstill.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What's the matter?&quot; I called to the guard, thrusting my head
-out of the window.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Engine broke down, sir,&quot; was the answer. &quot;Can't get on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Confound it!&quot; I cried. &quot;How long shall we have to wait?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's no knowing, sir. Not till to-morrow morning,
-perhaps.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But it is impossible for me to remain here all night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Very sorry, sir. It doesn't depend upon me. Accidents will
-happen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Fretting and fuming would not mend matters, and I was
-compelled to submit. It turned out as the guard had indicated. Something else
-had occurred on the line which rendered it out of the question that another
-engine could be sent to our aid, and we did not arrive in London till the
-afternoon of the following day. I hastened at once to my chambers, then visited
-the office of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, and then proceeded to my mother's house,
-which I did not reach till six o'clock in the evening. The moment the street
-door was opened Emilia ran into the passage to greet me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have seen him,&quot; she cried, &quot;and he has explained all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Seen whom?&quot; I asked, very much astonished, &quot;and what is there
-to explain?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have not met M. Bordier, then,&quot; she said, falling back.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; I replied. &quot;I left the country suddenly yesterday, and
-an accident happened to the train. I was detained all night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I sent you a letter also,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;it was posted
-yesterday morning.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That accounts for my not receiving it. It must have arrived
-after my departure.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I saw that she was agitated, and I led her to the
-sitting-room, where, after exchanging a few words with my mother, we were left
-alone. Then I learnt what had taken place.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Bordier, it appears, had visited Emilia every day during my
-absence, and had observed in her signs of suppressed excitement which had caused
-him deep concern. At first he made no comment upon this change in her, but at
-length he questioned her, and, receiving no satisfaction, told her with delicate
-pointedness that he deemed it her duty to confide in him if she were in any
-trouble. Still she evaded his inquiries, and this with marks of such extreme
-distress that he became more pressing in his desire that she should be candid
-and straightforward with him. I will give what afterward transpired in Emilia's
-own words.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He came the night before last,&quot; she said, &quot;and asked to speak
-privately with me. I could not refuse him; it appeared to me as if my refusal to
-appease his natural curiosity had aroused suspicions which might be fatal to my
-daughter's happiness. He spoke very kindly, but very firmly. Considering the
-relations in which we stood to each other, he had come to a decision which it
-was right should be communicated to me. Before doing so he would ask me a
-question or two to which he expected frank answers. He asked me how long I had
-known your family. I replied, about two weeks. Had I any previous knowledge of
-them? I said no. Through whom had I become acquainted with them? I said, through
-you. He then asked who and what you were; I told him, trembling all the time,
-because his questions were leading straight to the secret I was hiding from him.
-Had I any previous knowledge of you, he asked; were you related to me in any
-way? I answered that you were not related to me, and that I had made your
-acquaintance only since my arrival in London. Were you acquainted with the cause
-of my trouble, he asked. I said yes, you were, and that you were endeavoring to
-befriend me. He reflected a little before he continued, and when he spoke it was
-in the same kind and gentle voice, but more firmly than before. 'It amounts to
-this,' he said, 'that you have a secret which has brought grief upon you, and
-that you confide this secret to a stranger and deny it to me. I draw from this a
-reasonable inference--that you have a trouble of a private nature which you are
-deliberately concealing from those who have a right, if anyone has the right, to
-share it with you. Is it a pecuniary trouble?' I answered that it was not, and
-he said that he regretted it, as then it might be easily got over. He then
-referred to the conversation we had in Geneva, when he came to speak to me about
-Julian's attachment to my dear child, and to a remark he had made that the time
-would arrive when it would be necessary that he should become acquainted with
-certain particulars of my past life. My heart fainted within me when he bluntly
-inquired whether my secret was in any way connected with my past history. I
-could make but one reply, yes. 'Do you not see,' he said, 'that you are creating
-suspicions in my mind, and that I am beginning to ask myself whether I should be
-doing my duty as a father if I allowed the engagement between our children to
-continue? Be advised for your own sake, for theirs. Tell me everything; accord
-to me at least the privileges you have accorded to a stranger. I have the
-reputation of being a just man, and I know that I have none but kindly feelings
-toward you. There are difficulties, I admit, in many human lives which need the
-skill of a strong man to surmount. I place my knowledge of the world and my
-goodwill at your service, and if you refuse to avail yourself of them your
-conduct will inspire me with very grave doubts.' Thus driven, what could I do?
-It seemed to me that it would be the wisest course to confide implicitly in him,
-and I did so. I laid bare the story of my life, from my earliest remembrance to
-the hour the disclosure was made. The errand upon which I came to England, my
-adventures here, my meeting with you, my interview with Gerald's
-brother--nothing was concealed; I even searched my mind to be sure that not a
-detail was omitted. And then I threw myself upon his mercy. I swore solemnly to
-the truth of my story, and to my belief that the marriage ceremony was genuine.
-'To part from your son now,' I said, 'will break my daughter's heart. In mercy
-to her, have pity!' 'From my inmost soul I pity you,' he said. 'I believe your
-story; I believe you to be honestly married; but it must be proved; we must be
-able to hold up our heads in the face of the world. You say there is a chance of
-the copy of your marriage certificate being hidden in the secret drawer of the
-writing-desk you have described, and that a scheme is in operation which holds
-out a hope that the desk may be found. Julian loves your daughter; his happiness
-is bound up in her; and because I am his father and love him most sincerely I
-will do all that lies in my power to set this crooked matter straight. I will go
-down to your friend Mr. Agnold as your representative and champion. Give me a
-letter to him which will confer upon me the right to act for you. There are
-means in my hands which Mr. Agnold may not possess, or would not naturally be
-willing to employ, by which we can attain our object. I can go myself to this
-Dr. Peterssen, and offer to purchase the desk from him, supposing it to be in
-his possession. To such a man a large sum of money would be a temptation; I
-would not stop short of five thousand pounds; and this, with a guarantee that he
-shall not be molested, and time afforded him to reach another country, may be
-the crowning inducement. Even if he has not the desk, he is pretty sure to have
-learnt from Mr. Gerald Paget the name of the place in which the marriage
-ceremony was performed, and would be willing to sell the information for the sum
-I have named. The proof then would be easy. Write a letter at once; I will start
-to-morrow.' His words, his voice, gave me hope. I wrote the letter, and yesterday
-he left London to present it to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This was the story which Emilia narrated to me, and I could
-not blame her for acting as she had done. Only I was angry with myself for
-leaving Bob; had I remained I should have seen M. Bordier, and we might have
-discussed matters and brought them to a head. In view of what Bob had said of
-his impression that Dr. Peterssen was very hard up, the temptation which M.
-Bordier was ready to offer would be too strong for him. Five thousand pounds was
-a grand bait, and Dr. Peterssen would have accepted it and fled the country.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have done right,&quot; I said to Emilia.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How thankful I am that you approve!&quot; she exclaimed. &quot;It
-seemed to me ungrateful that I should take a step so important without
-consulting you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You had no choice,&quot; I said, &quot;and M. Bordier is a gentleman.
-Did his son accompany him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Poor Julian! I do not know. I fear he is scarcely in a fit
-state.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I inferred from this that Julian Bordier was ill, but before I
-had time to make an inquiry my mother entered the room.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A telegram for you,&quot; she said, and handed it to me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I tore it open and read it. &quot;I have strange and important news
-for you. Sophy is with me. Come down at once. Bob.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There was an A B C in the house, and I turned over the pages
-feverishly. I had just twenty-two minutes to catch a train, the last of the day,
-which would enable me to get to Bob at about eleven o'clock. Late as it would be
-I knew that he would expect me. I rapidly explained to Emilia the necessity of
-my immediate departure, and ran out of the house. Fortunately a cab was passing.
-&quot;Drive as if Old Nick was at your heels,&quot; I said to the cabby, jumping in.
-&quot;Treble fare.&quot; The driver cracked his whip, and away we rattled.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_50" href="#div1Ref_50">CHAPTER L.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>CLEVER SOPHY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Bob was waiting for me on the platform. He was smoking a
-cigar, and did not appear the least flurried. His calm demeanor, being somewhat
-antagonistic to the tone of his telegram, annoyed me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, Bob?&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, old man?&quot; said he. &quot;Knew you would come down by this
-train.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course you did,&quot; I said irritably. &quot;Now for your news.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No hurry,&quot; he said, phlegmatically. &quot;Plenty of time before
-us.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't trifle, there's a good fellow. Have you seen M.
-Bordier?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have seen a gentleman of that name. Introduced himself to
-me. Showed me a letter from your lady friend. It was addressed to you, but he
-made free with it. He had a right to do so perhaps, as it was in an unsealed
-envelope. Who is the gentleman? Has he anything to do with this affair?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is an important person in our inquiry, Bob,&quot; I replied,
-&quot;and is intimately connected with it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah,&quot; said Bob, dryly. &quot;If I'd been in your place I should
-have mentioned him earlier. He came like a bombshell upon me, and vanished, so
-to speak, like a flash of lightning. Any better, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then for the first time I noticed the girl. She was crouched
-up on a bench, with her cloak over her head. The words Bob and I had exchanged
-were uttered at a little distance from her, and she had not heard my voice. I
-stepped close to her and removed the cloak from her head.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy,&quot; I said, &quot;are you ill?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She jumped up and took the hand I held out to her, but did not
-answer. Her face was very white, and there was a look of fear in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good God!&quot; I cried, with a pang. &quot;Have they been ill-treating
-her? What's the matter with you, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not afore 'im,&quot; she said. Her throat seemed to be parched,
-her voice was so choked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, they have not ill-treated her,&quot; said Bob; &quot;I can answer
-for that. When she came with the desk----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You've got the desk!&quot; I cried. Notwithstanding my anxiety for
-Sophy the news excited me, and my attention was diverted from her for a moment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Bob, with a laugh in which I detected a shade of
-bitterness, &quot;we've got the desk. For all the good it's worth. When she hopped
-into my room with it she was as bright as a cricket. Later on sent her to bed.
-Supposed her to be asleep, when she tumbled into the room again with a face
-like--well, look at it. Thought she'd have a fit. She'd had a nightmare.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I hadn't,&quot; gasped Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll take your word for it,&quot; said Bob. &quot;Anyway, she wouldn't
-open her lips to me. Very mysterious. She will to you, most likely.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I will,&quot; said Sophy, still clinging to me; she was
-trembling all over.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thought as much,&quot; said Bob, who seemed to feel this lack of
-confidence in him very acutely. &quot;There are things to tell. My proposition--if I
-may be allowed to make one--is that we begin at the beginning, else we shall get
-muddled.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It's the properest way,&quot; said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you. Even this slight mark of approval appreciated by
-yours truly. Do I gather that we are friends, Sophy, no longer Maria?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In course we are; but I ain't 'ad no nightmare, I've 'ad a
-scare.&quot; She offered him her hand, and it really put life into him. He spoke more
-briskly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let us get back to the hotel,&quot; he said. &quot;Everything down
-there in black and white--except Sophy's scare--the reason for which I shall be
-glad to hear, if permitted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If he likes,&quot; said Sophy, &quot;he can tell yer everythink when he
-'ears it 'isself. It's best it should be led up to.&quot; She addressed these last
-words to me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For which purpose,&quot; said Bob; &quot;march.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I listened to all this in amazement, but I fell in with their
-humor to have Sophy's scare properly led up to, and we walked to the inn in
-comparative silence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When did you have your last meal, Sophy?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Two o'clock. Biled beef and cabbage.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You oaf,&quot; I said good-humoredly to Bob, &quot;that's the reason of
-her being so white. She has been ten hours without food.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Bob clapped his hand to his forehead. &quot;I am an ass,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You ain't,&quot; said Sophy, promptly, &quot;and it ain't what made me
-white. But I shouldn't turn my back on a bit of grub.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And a bit of grub you shall have,&quot; said Bob, &quot;the moment we
-are in our room. I've got the right side of the landlady. Cold meat and pickles
-always on tap for Bob Tucker.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In the room Bob was as good as his word. A cold supper was
-spread before Sophy, and a glass of weak brandy and water mixed for her. She ate
-with avidity, and while she was thus employed Bob turned his attention to me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My diary comes in handy here,&quot; he said, and he pushed the
-book toward me. &quot;You will find everything entered, saves a world of talk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I skimmed through the pages till I reached yesterday's date,
-under which I found my departure for London duly recorded, the brief entry
-being:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Agnold restless. Gone to London. For no particular
-reason--but gone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Further on the record of the present day:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Six P.M. Just returned from Tylney House. A surprising number
-of stones thrown by Sophy, otherwise Maria. She usually throws three or four,
-never more than five, including pellet in white paper, denoting happiness and
-safety. But this afternoon, quite a shower, including four pellets in white
-paper. Counted altogether eighteen. Does it mean anything? Wait till to-morrow.
-Logical interpretation, that things going on more satisfactorily than ever.
-Something discovered, perhaps. A thousand pities Sophy, otherwise Maria, cannot
-read or write. If the latter, could obtain positive information. When this
-particularly clever girl comes out she must begin to learn immediately. Talents
-must have a fair chance. Cruel they should be wasted. See to it. Singular no
-letter from Agnold. But did not promise to write.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Following this was a revelation:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sent telegram to Agnold, advising him to come down at once.
-This is putting cart before horse--in this instance allowable. Begin now at the
-beginning of exciting chapter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At half-past seven was sitting alone, smoking and ruminating.
-Door suddenly burst open, and Sophy, no longer Maria, rushes in. I cry--'What,
-Sophy!' 'Yes,' she says, out of breath, 'it's me. I've got it; I've got it.
-Where's the other?' (meaning Agnold). I briefly explain that he has gone to
-London, but will return the moment telegraphed for. 'Do you mean to tell me,' 'I
-said,' as excited as herself, 'that you've brought the desk?' 'It's 'ere,' she
-says, and she plumps it on the table, also a large door-key. She had carried the
-desk wrapped in her cloak. There is no doubt about the article; it exactly
-answers description given by Agnold. Remarkable girl, Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This is her tale--and glad she was to set her tongue going
-after the lock it has had on it for so many days. At Tylney House one day is so
-like another that a lengthy experience of it must be perfectly appalling. Sophy
-says it is like a long funeral. As a friendly patient Sophy had the run of the
-house, and she knows every room in it except one--Dr. Peterssen's private
-apartment, which he occupies when he is in evidence. He is seldom in evidence.
-Absent six days out of seven. As there was no sign of desk in any other part of
-the house, Sophy decides that it is in Peterssen's room, if in the house at all.
-She was right.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Peterssen only been at home two days during Sophy's residence
-as friendly patient. The first time last week. The second time, this. In point
-of fact, this very day. Last week Peterssen stopped about two hours in private
-room. Sophy passed door, through passage, while he was within. Couldn't get a
-peep. Consequently knew nothing of desk. Peterssen came out of room, locked
-door, went away. Most girls would have been discouraged at the prospect of such
-small chance of success. Not Sophy. She had made up her mind that the desk was
-there. There's nothing like moral conviction. To-day at one o'clock Peterssen
-puts in an appearance. After dinner, Sophy, on her way into the grounds, passes
-private room. Door ajar. She gets a peep. On the table sees desk, cedar-wood,
-inlaid with silver. Heart beats. Time not wasted. Discovery made, but not yet
-utilized. Watches like a cat. Hears keeper say Peterssen going to stop all
-night. Heart beats faster. Now or never. But how is this to be accomplished.
-This explains meaning of such a number of stones thrown over wall. Symbolical,
-but at the time undecipherable to present writer. Quite clear now.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;At ten minutes past five by Sophy's silver watch (her own
-property now), letter arrives for Peterssen. Delivered to him by keeper.
-Evidently unexpected. Evidently of an exciting nature. He reads it, and hurries
-out of house. What has he done with the key of the private room? Sophy hears a
-bunch rattle in his pocket as he rushes past her. Almost despairs, but not
-quite.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy creeps into passage again. The door is closed. She
-tries to peep through keyhole, but it is blocked. By what? A key. The key being
-inside, Peterssen in haste must have forgotten to lock the door. It proves to be
-so. Sophy has only to put her hand on handle, to turn it softly round, and
-presto! she is in the room. But the desk is not on table. Where, then? Under the
-bed. Before you can say Jack Robinson Sophy seizes it, creeps out of room. But
-first a stroke of genius. She removes key of door from inside to outside, turns
-it in lock, removes it from keyhole and retains it. Sublime! When Peterssen
-returns he will find door locked. Will naturally think he has locked it himself.
-Will feel in his pocket for key, without finding it. Will spend time in
-searching for it. All in Sophy's favor. Bravo, little one!</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy reconnoitres. Keeper in grounds. Presently enters
-house, goes up to his bedroom--for private nap, of course. Coast clear. Like a
-shot Sophy is in the grounds. Like a shot she is over the wall, where there is
-no broken glass. How she did it she does not remember.. She does not know.
-Neither do I. But it is done. There she is, over the wall, outside Tylney House,
-instead of inside, with the key of the door in her hand, and the precious desk
-under her arm. It takes my breath away.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Getting here to me takes hers away, She makes mistakes in the
-roads, and comes seven miles instead of four. But she runs the distance, and
-here she is.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Sophy,' I say, 'you are a treasure.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I done it all right, didn't I?' she says.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You did, my girl, and you deserve a medal.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I formally make over the silver watch to her, and promise her
-a silver chain to match. She is in ecstasies, but not quite happy because Agnold
-is not here. I tell her he will be here to-morrow, and then I examine the desk.
-An intense desire seizes me to open it. Right or wrong, I determine to do so.
-I'll chance what Agnold may say when he comes back. He should have remained.
-What made him go to London? He had no immediate business there. His immediate
-business was here.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not one of my keys will open the desk. But I can pick a lock,
-and I have some delicate tools with me. For an ambitious man, in the line to
-which I have devoted myself, they are necessary and invaluable.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I set to work, and very soon, without injuring the lock in
-the least, the desk is open. There are papers in it, but no copy of a marriage
-certificate. Agnold said it would be most likely in a secret drawer, but no
-secret drawer could I discover.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I was so much engrossed in the examination I was making that
-I did not hear the door opened. But open it was, and the shadow of a man fell
-upon me. Sophy's eyes were closed. She was tired. I looked up. A stranger stood
-before me.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_51" href="#div1Ref_51">CHAPTER LI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>SOPHY MAKES A STRANGE STATEMENT.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I had never seen Dr. Peterssen, and I imagined it was he who
-had so unexpectedly presented himself. In that case I was in a quandary. The
-desk had been stolen from Dr. Peterssen's house, and the clever little thief was
-dozing in the room. I was implicated in the theft, and had forced the lock with
-burglar's tools. Without counting the cost we had taken the law into our own
-hands--usurped its functions, so to speak. Bringing such a man as Dr. Peterssen
-to book might prove an awkward fix for us. However, I determined to brazen it
-out.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The desk being open, the wood of which it was made and the
-silver with which it was inlaid were not so apparent as they would have been had
-it been closed. The stranger's eyes did not rest upon it, but wandered to Sophy.
-My gaze followed his, and I was surprised to observe that there was no sign of
-recognition in his face. But he may be acting a part, I thought.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I soon discovered that all my conjectures were wrong.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Am I right in supposing that I am addressing Mr. Agnold?' he
-asked. He spoke with a foreign accent.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' I said, 'my name is not Agnold.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mr. Tucker, then?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are right there.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mr. Agnold mentioned your name in his letters to Mrs.
-Braham,' said the stranger. 'Both you and Mr. Agnold are working in that lady's
-interests. It is exceedingly kind of you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I stared at him. This was not the language that Dr. Peterssen
-would have used, and my first doubts being dispelled, I saw that my visitor was
-a gentleman--which Dr. Peterssen is not. But who could he be? I thought it best
-to hold my tongue; I wished to avoid compromising myself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'I, also,' continued the stranger, 'am here in Mrs. Braham's
-interests. My business admits of no delay. It is necessary that I should see Mr.
-Agnold immediately.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'He is in London,' I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This information appeared to discompose him; but only for a
-moment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You represent Mr. Agnold?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes, I think I may say as much.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank you. I have a letter here addressed to him, but it is
-in an open envelope, and as Mr. Agnold's representative there can be no
-objection to your reading it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I read the letter, and now in my turn I must have exhibited
-some sign of discomposure. Without being able to recall its contents word for
-word, I can sufficiently explain its nature. It was to the effect that the
-gentleman who presented it, M. Bordier, was empowered by the lady we were
-working for to join us, if he desired, or to take the affair entirely in his own
-hands, and assume the direction of it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are M. Bordier?' I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He bowed. 'I am M. Bordier. The position in which Mrs. Braham
-and I stand to each other warrants my presence here at this untimely hour. It is
-due to Mrs. Braham that I should say it was at my urgent request she has given
-me authority to act for her. I am acquainted with all the circumstances of your
-proceedings, so far as they have been disclosed in Mr. Agnold's letters.' Again
-his eyes wandered to Sophy, and he moved a step or two toward her with a look of
-sympathetic eagerness. 'Is that the young girl who was taken to Dr. Peterssen's
-establishment as a patient?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Yes,' I replied.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Her task, then, is ended. She was in search of a desk. She
-is a brave little girl, and shall be rewarded. A desk of cedar-wood, inlaid with
-silver.' He turned suddenly to me, and approached the table. 'She has
-succeeded,' he said, laying his hand upon the desk and raising the lid. 'Yes, it
-is the desk. How did you open it? Did you have the key?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'No,' I said, with a guilty glance at the tools with which I
-had picked the lock.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Ah, I see. There is a secret drawer in this desk, and you
-have been seeking for it. Allow me. When I was a young man I had some knowledge
-of this kind of thing, and was acquainted with the tricks employed by ingenious
-makers to construct a receptacle in which important papers might be safely
-concealed. This is no common piece of work, and the so-called drawer may be
-merely a false panel, with little space behind, but sufficient for the purpose.
-I will take the liberty of making use of your tools. This dumb shape of wood,
-Mr. Tucker, may be the arbiter of the happiness of human lives, may be the means
-of bringing a foul wrong to light.' While he spoke he was busy measuring the
-thickness of the sides and back and every part of the desk, putting down figures
-on paper to prove whether any space was not accounted for. He knew what he was
-about, and I followed his movements with curiosity, learning something from them
-which may be useful in the future. 'There is no actual drawer,' he continued;
-'it must be a panel.' He completely emptied the desk of its papers, and then
-began to sound the bottom and the sides, listening for signs of a hollow space.
-'It is a clever piece of workmanship, but if there is a panel I will find it. I
-would rather not destroy the desk, but I will do it before I give up the hunt,
-if I do not succeed in a legitimate way. Ah, I have it! There is a panel. A man
-might have this desk in his possession a lifetime and not suspect it. See, it
-moves in a groove, and there is a paper behind.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sure enough, M. Bordier succeeded in sliding a panel in a
-cunningly made groove, and in drawing forth a paper which had been carefully
-folded and flattened and inserted in its hiding-place. There was an eager light
-in his eyes, and his fingers trembled as he unfolded the paper and read what was
-written thereon. A long sigh of satisfaction escaped him, and he murmured:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Thank God! Poor lady, poor lady! But your sufferings are
-ended now!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'M. Bordier,' I said, will you allow me to read the
-document?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He folded it up again, preserving its original creases, and
-put it in his pocket.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Mr. Tucker,' he said, speaking with great politeness; but
-this he had done all through; the document I have found relates to a private
-matter of exceeding delicacy, and I cannot show it to you. It is, indeed, a
-family secret, and none but those directly interested have a right to see it.
-Thanks for your courtesy, and good-night.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before I had time to remonstrate with him for his high-handed
-proceeding he was gone. I was dumfounded. It is not often that I find myself
-unable to act on the spur of the moment, but M. Bordier had deprived me of my
-self-possession. In a moment or two, however, I recovered myself, and ran out of
-the room after my visitor. I saw no signs of him. He had vanished. I made my way
-immediately to the telegraph office, and sent Agnold a telegram--which brings me
-back to the commencing words of this entry.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I returned to my room in the inn. Sophy was still dozing. I
-began to be beset by doubts. What if the stranger who had introduced himself to
-me as M. Bordier should turn out not to be M. Bordier, after all? What if the
-letter he gave me to read from Mrs. Braham should be a forged letter? I am
-greatly to blame. I deserve to have my head punched.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">By the time I came to the end of this strange story Sophy had
-finished her supper, and now came nearer to us.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, Bob,&quot; I said, &quot;you have made a mess of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Admitted,&quot; said Bob. &quot;Take your share of the blame. You
-should not have run away to London. Relieve my doubts. Was it, or was it not, M.
-Bordier who came here?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was certainly M. Bordier,&quot; I replied. &quot;The lady you call
-Mrs. Braham gave him such a letter as you have described, and it is scarcely
-possible any other person could have obtained possession of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is some satisfaction. All the same, I have behaved like
-a fool. I ought not to have allowed him to escape me. I ought to have laid
-violent hands on him, and detained him till your arrival.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You would not have succeeded, Bob. From the opinion I have
-formed of him he would not have submitted, and you would have found yourself
-worsted. If the document he discovered is what I hope it is, he has a better
-right to it than you or I. And now, Sophy,&quot; I said, turning to the girl, &quot;what
-is this scare of yours which has taken all the blood out of your face?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Stop a bit,&quot; said Bob. &quot;It is Sophy's desire that things
-should be led up to. Let us lead up to this.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy nodded, and I said, &quot;Go on, Bob.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well,&quot; said he, &quot;I woke Sophy up when I got back here, and
-told her it was best she should go to bed. Her room was ready for her, and she
-was dead tired. She refused, and said she would wait up for you--I had told her
-I had sent you a telegram to come down immediately. I would not let her wait up,
-but insisted upon her going to bed. She gave in, and I took her to her room.
-Imagine my surprise. An hour before your arrival she rushed into this room with
-a face as white as a sheet, and fell down all of a heap into the corner there. I
-thought she must have had a nightmare, but I could get nothing out of her. She
-was too frightened to be left alone, and when I started to meet you at the
-station she came with me. Tried to pump her on the road. Useless. Offers of
-bribes thrown away. Not a word would she say of the cause of her fright. She
-promises to be more communicative to you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Speak out, Sophy,&quot; I said. &quot;I have no secrets from Mr.
-Tucker, and he must hear what you have to tell.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You'll never believe me,&quot; said Sophy, in a low, fear-stricken
-tone, &quot;but if it's the last I ever speak it's the truth, and the 'ole truth, and
-nothink but the truth. I sor it as plain as I see you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Saw what?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The ghost of Mr. Felix,&quot; she replied.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_52" href="#div1Ref_52">CHAPTER LII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE GHOST OF M. FELIX.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">She put her hand on my arm as if for protection as she uttered
-these words, and I took it in mine to reassure her; it was cold as ice. It was
-clear that she had received a shock, and I was disposed to ascribe it to the
-strain she had undergone during the past fortnight. But this view was shaken
-when I thought of her courage and daring.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What did I tell you?&quot; said Bob, sticking to his guns.
-&quot;Nightmare.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's somethink yer must be in bed to 'ave, ain't it?&quot; said
-Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Bob, &quot;and asleep.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I wasn't neither,&quot; said Sophy; &quot;I was as wide-awake as you
-are.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, you didn't go to bed when I put you in your room?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I didn't. I waited a minute or two, and then I went out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What made you do that, Sophy?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't know, 'xcep' that I wanted to go to the
-mad'ouse--outside, yer know--to see if they'd found out about the desk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was a dangerous thing to do,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, I didn't do it. I 'adn't got 'arf way there when a
-sperrit crep' past me. I told Aunty I didn't believe in sperrits, but I do now.
-I didn't think it was a sperrit at fust, I thought it was a man; and I sed to
-myself, If you can creep, so can I,' and I crep' after it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But why, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't know why. I did it 'cause somethink made me. All at
-once it stopped and turned, and the moon lit up its face. It was the ghost of
-Mr. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She was speaking more quietly now, and there was a note of
-conviction in her voice that startled me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is that what you call a nightmare?&quot; she asked of Bob, whose
-eyes were fixed intently upon her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; he replied, &quot;but you were mistaken. It was only a
-fancied resemblance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It wasn't nothink of the sort, and I wasn't mistook. I'm
-ready to take my dying oath on it. There ain't two Mr. Felixes, there's only
-one, and it was 'is ghost I sor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What did you do, Sophy?&quot; I inquired.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I stood like a stone, and couldn't move. But when it looked
-at me, and when I 'eered its voice, and when I sor it moving up to me, I give a
-scream, and run away. But I fell down over the stump of a tree, and it caught
-'old of me and lifted me up. Then it wrenched my face to the light, and poked
-it's 'ead for'ard, and I sor clearer than ever that it was Mr. Felix's ghost. I
-don't know 'ow I managed it, but I twisted myself away, and run as I'd never run
-in my life before till I got 'ere.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is that all, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's all I can tell yer. Ain't it enough?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If there is any truth in it, my girl, it is more than enough?
-You cannot say whether it followed you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I never look behind. It was more than I dared do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You heard it speak, you say. What words did it utter?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It said, 'What the devil!'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing more?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothink as I 'eerd.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She had told all she knew, and it was useless to question her
-farther upon the subject, so I put it aside for a moment, with the intention of
-talking it over with Bob when we were alone. But I had not yet done with Sophy;
-before I parted with her for the night I was desirous of obtaining fuller
-information of Dr. Peterssen's establishment than she had given Bob. She was
-perfectly willing to tell everything she knew, and seemed to be relieved to have
-her attention turned to other matters.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You had the run of Dr. Peterssen's house, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I 'ad.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How many servants are there in it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Only one--the keeper.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is his name?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Crawley.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did no woman come to do the cleaning or cooking?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nobody come. Crawley did everythink.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You were not ill-treated?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, no.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you have your meals alone?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No; the three of us 'ad 'em together.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The three of you. Dr. Peterssen, Crawley, and you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No; Dr. Peterssen never 'ad nothink with us. I mean the other
-patient.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But there was more than one?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There wasn't while I was there. There was only one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I turned to Bob. &quot;You said there were children, Bob?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;So I was informed, but I may have been misled.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I 'eerd Crawley say the young 'uns were took away the day
-before I come,&quot; said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That explains it. So there was only one patient left?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Only one.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A man?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A gentleman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How did you find out he was a gentleman?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yer can't be mistook between a man and a gent. You're a gent;
-Mr. Tucker's another.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Much obliged, Sophy,&quot; said Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is the name of the gentleman patient, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He didn't 'ave none that I know of. I 'eered the
-greengrocer's boy say to Crawley once, 'Ow's Number One, Mr. Crawley?' That's
-how I got to know 'ow he was called, and what the keeper's name was. I couldn't
-arks nothink, of course, 'cause I was deaf and dumb. 'Same as ever,' said
-Crawley to the boy, 'mem'ry quite gone.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Poor fellow! There is no doubt, I suppose, about his being
-mad?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't know about that. He never did nothink, and 'ardly
-ever spoke a word. But he was very kind to me, and I was very sorry for 'im.
-He'd put 'is 'and on my 'ead, and smooth my 'air, and look at me pitiful like,
-with tears in 'is eyes which made 'em come into mine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A case of melancholia, Bob,&quot; I said. Bob nodded. &quot;Was no
-effort made, Sophy, to bring his memory back to him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nobody did nothink; he was let alone, the same as I was. I
-did want 'ard to talk to 'im, but I didn't dare open my lips, or I should have
-been found out. I do wish somethink could be done for 'im, that I do. Look 'ere,
-you're rich, ain't you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not exactly rich, Sophy, but I am not poor.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, then. Crawley's to be bought.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How do you know that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I 'eerd Crawley say to 'isself, 'If I 'ad a 'underd pound I'd
-cut the cussed concern, and go to Amerikey.'&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ah! We'll think over it. A hundred pounds is a large sum.
-It's late, Sophy. I've nothing more to ask you to-night. Get to bed, like a good
-girl.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">But Sophy began to tremble again; her thoughts reverted to M.
-Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I daren't go to the room Mr. Tucker took me to; Mr. Felix's
-ghost'd come agin. Let me sleep 'ere, please.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's no bed, my girl. I tell you what you shall do. There
-are two beds in the next room--see, this door opens into it--which Mr. Tucker
-and I were to occupy. We'll bring a mattress and some bedclothes in here, and
-we'll manage for the night; I'll lie on the sofa. You shall sleep in there,
-where no ghost can get to you. It would have to come through this room first.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy busied herself at once in bringing the mattress and
-bedclothes from the adjoining room, and after extemporizing a couple of beds for
-Bob and me wished us a grateful good-night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Bob and I were alone. &quot;Now, Bob,&quot; said I, &quot;what do you think
-of her story?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's more in it than meets the eye,&quot; said Bob. &quot;Agnold, if
-any other person had related it I should set it down to an overwrought mind. But
-Sophy is an exceptional being; she is sharp, she is clever, she is brave, she is
-clear-witted. Naturally it is a puzzling affair, and I think it is worth arguing
-out.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let us do so, Bob,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is always a mistake,&quot; said Bob, &quot;in matters of conjecture,
-to pin one's self to a fixed point. This mistake, in my opinion, has been
-committed in all inquiries relating to the mystery of M. Felix. Having accepted
-a certain conclusion every person privately or professionally interested in the
-mystery started from that fixed point and branched out in all directions, north,
-east, south, and west, utterly ignoring the possibility--in this case I should
-say the probability--of the conclusion they accepted being a false one, as
-misleading as a will-o'-the-wisp.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Am I included in this sweeping condemnation?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are. The police I can excuse, but not a man of your
-discrimination and logical power.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What fixed point, Bob, did I, in common with everyone else,
-start from in wild directions?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The fixed point,&quot; replied Bob, &quot;that M. Felix is dead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But he was proved to be dead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing of the sort. There was no post-mortem, there was not
-even an inquest. He is said to have died of heart disease. He lies inanimate on
-a bed for an inconsiderable number of hours, and then he disappears. My dear
-Agnold, have you ever heard of such a thing as suspended animation?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course I have.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you ever heard of a person falling into a trance, and
-remaining to all appearance dead for three or four times as many hours as M.
-Felix lay before he disappeared? People have been buried alive in such
-conditions; others have been happily rescued at the moment the lids of their
-coffins have been about to be nailed down. I can furnish you with scores of
-instances of this kind of thing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is no need; I know that they have occurred. Your theory
-opens out a wide field of possibilities. Then you believe that Sophy was right;
-that she did see, not M. Felix's ghost as she supposed, but M. Felix himself in
-the flesh?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is my belief. Sophy is no fool; she has the nerve of a
-strong and healthy man; she does not believe in the supernatural; she has a
-heart susceptible of such kindness as you have shown her, but she is at the same
-time practical and hard-headed. Agnold, M. Felix is alive.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do you argue that he simulated death in the first instance
-for the purpose of carrying out some plan?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. His apparent death was not a trick devised by himself. He
-had a seizure undoubtedly, to which he was compelled to succumb. After a time he
-recovered, and for his own ends resolved to take advantage of the opportunity to
-disappear, whether permanently or not I cannot say. He had a perfect right to do
-as he pleased with his own body, and he had good reasons for the device. He was
-threatened on two sides. Choosing for certain motives to drop his proper name of
-Leonard Paget and to adopt that of M. Felix, he finds himself suddenly standing
-on a rock with a precipice yawning on each side of him. A bold movement on the
-part of his sister-in-law hurls him into one; a desperate movement on the part
-of Dr. Peterssen hurls him over the other--either way, destruction. Of the
-special power which Dr. Peterssen holds over him I am ignorant, but it must be
-very potent. We are acquainted, however, with the power his sister-in-law holds
-over him. Her marriage proved, his life has been one long fraud, and he could be
-made to pay the penalty. Her unexpected presence in London confounds him, and he
-sees before him but one means of escape--flight. On the night of his supposed
-death he has had two agitating interviews, one with Dr. Peterssen, the other
-with his sister-in-law. She, waiting in the street to obtain an interview with
-M. Felix, overhears words which unmistakably prove that Peterssen has him at his
-mercy. Peterssen threatens to ruin M. Felix; he refers to a pleasant partnership
-in Switzerland nineteen years ago; he asks M. Felix if he has forgotten his
-brother Gerald. Then he goes into the house with this precious Felix, and when
-he issues from it he has in his possession the desk which is now on the table
-before us. After that, the lady in whose behalf we have been working obtains
-admission to the house and confronts the villain who has ruined her happiness.
-We know what passed between them; we know that M. Felix was worked up to
-desperation. The excitement was too much for the plausible scoundrel, who saw
-the sword about to fall upon him. He staggers into his bedroom with the
-undoubted intention of getting his revolver; he presses his hand to his heart;
-he sinks into a chair and becomes insensible. He is to all appearance dead, and
-is so pronounced. On the following night when he recovers his senses, he hails
-the mishap as a fortunate chance; he resolves to disappear, and so put his
-enemies off the scent. Now, follow me. Sophy is below in bed. She hears a noise
-in the upper part of the house; the brave girl creeps up-stairs from the
-basement as M. Felix creeps down-stairs from his apartments. He dare not betray
-himself. He seizes her, disguises his voice, and works upon her fears. Exit M.
-Felix; for as long or as short a time as he pleases, he is dead to the world. It
-is a wonder he does not take his revolver with him, but that is an oversight. In
-such a crisis one cannot think of everything. It may happen--for there is work
-for us to do, Agnold--that this oversight will work in our favor. I do not
-despair of tracing the revolver, and you did a good stroke when you wrote down
-such a description of the weapon as will enable you to identify it. There is no
-room for doubt that the man who presented himself to Mrs. Middlemore as a police
-official, and who sent her on a false errand to Bow Street Police Station, was
-Peterssen. Alone in M. Felix's room he appropriates the revolver; other things
-as well, perhaps; but of the revolver we are morally convinced. What is his
-object in going there? I will tell you. He has doubts of M. Felix's death; he
-believes it to be a trick, and he thinks he may find something in M. Felix's
-room which will put him on the track of the man who had slipped out of his
-power. Reasoning the mystery out in this open way is very satisfactory, Agnold.
-Mists disappear; we see the light. How does it strike you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have convinced me, Bob,&quot; I said. &quot;We will pursue the
-matter a little further. M. Felix is a man who is fond of pleasures which can be
-purchased only with money. Do you think he would voluntarily deprive himself of
-the means of obtaining it--for this is what his disappearance would lead him to,
-so long as he chose to conceal himself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not at all likely,&quot; replied Bob, with a knowing look. &quot;I can
-enlighten you on the point. It happens that I am acquainted with the manager of
-the branch bank at which M. Felix kept an account. After you had enlisted me in
-the present cause I became interested in everything concerning M. Felix, and in
-a confidential conversation with the bank manager I asked him whether M. Felix
-had a large balance standing to his credit. I learnt that he never had a large
-balance at the bank, and that he had certain bonds and shares of which he
-himself was the custodian. Ordinarily one entrusts such securities to the safe
-custody of the bank which transacts his business, but it was not so with M.
-Felix, and this fact leads to the presumption that it was his habit to keep
-himself personally possessed of negotiable property in preference to entrusting
-it to other keeping. From time to time checks from stock-brokers were paid in to
-the credit of M. Felix. In every instance the money was not allowed to lie in
-the bank for longer than a day or two. M. Felix invariably drew his own check
-for something near the amount of the last deposit, receiving payment in gold and
-bank notes. Two days before his supposed death a check for six thousand pounds
-odd was paid in to his credit, and on the following morning he went to the bank
-and drew out six thousand pounds in notes of various denominations, the numbers
-of which of course are known. Thus, unless he paid this money away, which is not
-at all likely, he must have been in possession of it when he disappeared. I am
-of the opinion that he had much more than the amount I have named, and if so he
-was well provided for. The peculiar position in which he stood would predispose
-him to keep always by him a large available sum of money in case of some
-emergency arising; an emergency did arise, and he could snap his fingers at the
-world, so far as money was concerned.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This is a piece of valuable information, Bob. Do you know if
-any of these last bank notes have been presented for payment?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not. There was nothing to call for special investigation
-into the matter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But the notes can be traced.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perhaps. The habit of a man to keep large sums by him is
-generally of long standing, and Peterssen was probably acquainted with M.
-Felix's peculiarity in this respect. The visit he paid to Mrs. Middlemore and
-the plan he carried into effect for being left alone in the house may have been
-inspired by the hope that he would discover one of M. Felix's hiding-places for
-his money. I conclude that he was disappointed; on the night of M. Felix's
-disappearance he left no money behind him. Too old a bird for that.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The earnestness with which Bob had set forth his views had
-caused him to forget his cultivated method of speaking in short sentences. Now
-he relapsed into it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Adopting your theory,&quot; I said, &quot;that M. Felix is living, do
-you think that he and Dr. Peterssen have met?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Should say not. To-night--when Sophy saw his ghost--was
-probably on his way to Tylney House. For what purpose, to us unknown.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bob, you said there was work for us to do. I confess myself
-at a loss how to proceed. M. Bordier's visit to you and his appropriation of the
-document hidden in the secret drawer have snapped the threads of my plans. Have
-you anything to suggest?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have. Early to-morrow morning endeavor to find M. Bordier.
-Then consult with him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You do not propose that we should leave this spot at once?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. If M. Bordier not in the village do something else before
-leaving. Pay a bold visit to Tylney House.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For what purpose?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Confront Peterssen. Ascertain if M. Felix has been there.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Psha! We can get nothing of Peterssen.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not so sure. He is hard up. Offer of a good reward too
-tempting a bait not to nibble at.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why, Bob, those are very nearly the words M. Bordier used to
-Emilia, and your scheme is the same as that which he suggested.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Proves it a good one. M. Bordier a wealthy man, I judge?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Wouldn't mind expending money to bring matter to a
-satisfactory conclusion?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He has said as much.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Word to be depended upon?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thoroughly.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Depend upon him, then, for the needful. Peterssen will bite.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And if he does not?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Crawley, the keeper. Remember what Sophy overheard him say.
-If he had a hundred pounds he would cut the cursed concern, and go to America.
-Emphatic--and doubtless true. Two birds to shoot at. Peterssen missed, Crawley
-remains. Aim well, bring him down.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To-morrow morning, early, we will resume work, Bob.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The earlier the better. Good-night.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_53" href="#div1Ref_53">CHAPTER LIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE PORTRAIT OF GERALD PAGET.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">At nine o'clock next morning Bob, Sophy, and I breakfasted
-together. Sophy's fears were abated, although she had not quite got over her
-fright. During breakfast I succeeded in dispelling it completely by imparting to
-her, in confidence, the opinion we had formed that M. Felix was alive, and that
-it was his veritable self, and not his ghost, she had seen on the previous
-night. She listened with her mouth and eyes wide open.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You heard him speak, Sophy?&quot; She nodded. &quot;Ghosts can't speak.
-He caught hold of you; he lifted you up; you felt his touch?&quot; She nodded again.
-&quot;Ghosts can't touch; they can't make you feel them; they are made of air, Sophy;
-you can walk right through them. Be easy in your mind. If it <i>was</i> M. Felix
-you saw&quot;--she nodded again two or three times--&quot;then he is alive, and we intend
-to hunt him down.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I gave her time to revolve the matter over in her mind, and
-conversed with Bob while she went through the process.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Crikey!&quot; she exclaimed presently. &quot;What a game it is! Then it
-must 'ave been 'im as scared me in the night when I left aunty asleep in the
-kitchen. I never could make out 'ow it was he knew 'is way about in the dark as
-he did. He's a deep 'un, he is, and no mistake. Well, of all the moves! But what
-did he do it for?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It would take too long to explain,&quot; I said, &quot;and then you
-might not understand. We are going out soon, and you may as well come with us.
-It would not be safe, perhaps, to leave you here alone.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Bob and I had debated the advisability of sending Sophy back
-to London, and had agreed to keep her with us, at least for a time, as there was
-a likelihood of her being useful.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Our first task when we sallied forth was to endeavor to obtain
-some information of M. Bordier, but in this we were unsuccessful. Not a person
-of whom we inquired could give us the slightest satisfaction, and we were
-reluctantly compelled to abandon our quest. I discussed with Bob whether I
-should write an account of what had occurred to Emilia, and we decided I should
-not do so.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It would take too long to give her a description of all
-circumstances, and anything short of a full description would only agitate her.
-Then, in all probability, M. Bordier had returned to London, and had seen her. I
-dispatched a telegram to her, to the effect that if she had anything of
-importance to communicate to us she had better do so by telegraph. This done we
-walked to Tylney House. Our search for M. Bordier had occupied us three or four
-hours, and when we reached the gloomy-looking building it was two o'clock. To
-our surprise, the gate was open. Without hesitation we entered the grounds, and
-there we saw a van, and three men piling furniture on it. This furniture was of
-the commonest kind, and the men appeared to be in a hurry. We looked at each
-other in amazement. What did it all mean?</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A break-up, I should say,&quot; suggested Bob. &quot;Peterssen giving
-up business.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There's Crawley, the keeper,&quot; whispered Sophy, pulling my
-coat.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The man had lounged from the house, and was regarding the
-removal of the furniture with dissatisfaction. Bob stepped to his side and we
-followed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Hallo, Maria,&quot; said Crawley; &quot;you've been up to some fine
-tricks, you have. But I'm hanged if I can make head or tail of it.&quot; Bob motioned
-to Sophy not to speak. &quot;Have you two gentlemen come on business?&quot; continued
-Crawley. &quot;Well, you've come too late. The brokers are in, and we're sold up.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Then we cannot see Dr. Peterssen,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, you can't,&quot; replied Crawley. &quot;He's gone for good.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I owe you,&quot; said Bob, in a bland voice, &quot;ten shillings.
-Here's the money. Do you want to earn a ten-pound note, which might swell into
-fifty? There's a gentleman friend of ours who would stand that, and more
-perhaps, for services rendered.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What kind of services?&quot; inquired Crawley, pocketing the ten
-shillings.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Information. Truthful and accurate information. The ten pound
-note sure. That much we guarantee, and wouldn't mind giving half on account. The
-fifty-pound almost as sure. Here, let me speak to you aside.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">They walked a little way from us, and I did not interrupt
-their conversation, which lasted some twenty minutes. At the end of that time
-Bob left Crawley to say a few words to me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Go back to the inn,&quot; he said, &quot;you and Sophy, and wait for
-me. Will join you there in an hour or so. Crawley and I going to have a drink.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I obeyed him without wasting time in asking questions, and
-Sophy and I returned to the inn. It was a disappointment that a telegram from
-Emilia had not arrived. But before Bob made his appearance an incident occurred
-which profoundly agitated me. I was sitting at the table, making, as was usual
-with me, a record of what had happened, in the doing of which I had occasion to
-take some papers from my pockets. Among these papers which I placed on the table
-was the photograph of Gerald Paget which I had found in M. Felix's room, his
-name being written on the back. While I wrote, Sophy remained quiet. The girl
-has a discretion; she knows when to speak and when to hold her tongue. My
-writing done I took up the papers to put them in my pocket, and in doing so the
-photograph dropped to the ground. Sophy stooped and picked it up, and was about
-to give it to me, when her eyes fell on it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Well, I never!&quot; she exclaimed. &quot;If it ain't the pickcher of
-Number One!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What?&quot; I cried.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is,&quot; she said, looking at it with absolute tenderness.
-&quot;It's the image of 'im, though he's older now than when it was took; but it's
-'is face as clear as clear can be.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy,&quot; I said, rising in my excitement, &quot;are you mad? Do you
-know what you are saying?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Course I do. It's Number One I tell yer. I'll take my Bible
-oath on it!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You must be dreaming,&quot; I said. &quot;This is the portrait of a
-gentleman who died many years ago.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If he's dead,&quot; she persisted, &quot;he's come to life agin, like
-Mr. Felix. It's Number One's pickcher, and nobody else's.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She was so positive that I was confounded by the possibilities
-her statement opened up, supposing her not to be mistaken. Nothing that I said
-could shake her conviction.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I know 'is face as well as I know your'n,&quot; she said. &quot;I can't
-be mistook. It's the pickcher of Number One.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At this juncture Bob entered the room. Anxious as I was to
-hear his news I first explained the incident to him, and it was an additional
-surprise to me when he ranged himself on Sophy's side.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I accept everything,&quot; he said. &quot;No villainy too monstrous for
-Peterssen. Corroborative evidence handy. Crawley!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The man was outside in the passage, and at the summons he came
-in.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Know this portrait?&quot; asked Bob, handing it to him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Of course I do. It's Number One. How did you get hold of it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never mind. Are you positive it is his portrait?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll swear to it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That will do. Go and get something to eat, and be ready when
-I call you. Mind, no drinking.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Crawley gone, Bob turned his attention to me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Before I tell you arrangements entered into with Crawley,
-finish about this picture. Sophy says, portrait of Number One. Crawley will
-swear it. I believe it--name of Gerald Paget back of picture.
-Deduction--portrait of Gerald Paget. Further deduction--Number One and Gerald
-Paget same person. Startling--but Peterssen and M. Felix, damned scoundrels,
-pair of them. No villainy too monstrous for them. In circumstance of Number One
-and Gerald Paget being same person, his solution of Peterssen's power over M.
-Felix. What does lady we are working for overhear? Overhears Peterssen threaten
-to ruin M. Felix; overhears him refer to a pleasant partnership in Switzerland
-nineteen years ago. Overhears him ask M. Felix if he has forgotten his brother
-Gerald. Not idle words. On the contrary, deeply, darkly significant. To my mind,
-quite clear--and convincing. Splendid links of circumstantial evidence. Gerald
-Paget alive instead of dead, additional reason for M. Felix's disappearance.
-Threatened not on two sides, but on three. Peterssen--Gerald Paget--Gerald
-Paget's wife. Desperate fix for M. Felix. Your opinion, Agnold?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Coincides with yours, Bob. Light is truly breaking in upon
-this mystery.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Right you are. Now to explain Crawley. Have taken him in our
-service--for one month, certain--thirty shillings a week. Matters brought to
-satisfactory conclusion, promise of passage to America, with few pounds in his
-pocket. No doubt M. Bordier will do what we wish, and indemnify us. If not,
-won't ruin us. Agreed?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Agreed.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I come now to Peterssen and Tylney House. Briefly. Things
-been going wrong for some time past. Peterssen in pecuniary difficulties. Dunned
-on all sides for money owing. Tradesmen threaten to stop supplies. Last night,
-Peterssen in frightful rage. Door of private room locked. Key missing. Door
-forced open. Something stolen from room. Crawley doesn't know what. We do.
-Sophy, otherwise Maria, nowhere to be found. Row between Peterssen and Crawley.
-Peterssen accuses Crawley of treachery. Crawley calls him another. At midnight
-Crawley hears bell ring. Peterssen answers it--admits visitor. Crawley doesn't
-see him. Visitor sleeps there--is there this morning--but Crawley can't catch
-sight of him. Keeps himself dark. Crawley sent on bogus errand. Occupies him
-three hours. Returns to find visitor gone, Peterssen gone, Number One gone. Note
-left for Crawley from his master. Concern burst up. In note, small sum for wages
-due. Not half what is due. Crawley furious, but helpless. I have enlisted him.
-He is to assist us to track Peterssen. That's all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bob,&quot; said I, &quot;Peterssen must be hunted down and brought to
-justice.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He must,&quot; said Bob, &quot;and shall be.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There is some fresh villainy hatching,&quot; I said. &quot;If possible
-we must prevent it. You will stand by me?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To the end,&quot; said Bob.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_54" href="#div1Ref_54">CHAPTER LIV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>OBTAIN AN EXPLANATION FROM EMILIA.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">It was now between five and six o'clock, and we did not wait
-for the night to pass before we commenced the task of hunting Dr. Peterssen
-down. The immediate result, however, was unsatisfactory. Indefatigable as we
-were we learnt nothing, and Crawley proved to be rather in our way than
-otherwise. Dr. Peterssen's movements must have been cunningly made indeed to so
-baffle us. We went to the railway station, but the station-master was positive
-that three such men as we described had not taken tickets for any place during
-the day. He could have identified Dr. Peterssen; of Peterssen's patient or of M.
-Felix he had no knowledge.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There isn't much traffic here,&quot; he said, &quot;and we know pretty
-well who comes and goes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But strangers sometimes pass through,&quot; I observed.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That goes without saying,&quot; he responded.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They might have travelled separately,&quot; suggested Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They might,&quot; said the station-master.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is hardly likely,&quot; I said aside to Bob, &quot;that this would
-be the case. If Peterssen and M. Felix have come together again, Peterssen would
-not lose sight of his villainous partner; and neither of them would lose sight
-of the gentleman they have wronged.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I consulted the time-table. There was no other direct train to
-London that night, but a train passed through, without stopping, at 11.40. I
-inquired of the station-master whether it was possible for the train to stop a
-few seconds to take me up to London, and he answered that it could be managed.
-Having arranged the matter with him I left the station, accompanied by Bob and
-Sophy. Crawley lingered behind; he had a flask with him, out of which he took
-frequent drinks. I had already arrived at the conclusion that he would be of
-little assistance in tracking Dr. Peterssen, but as his evidence might be
-valuable in the event of our hunting Peterssen down I thought it advisable to
-keep him about us.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is your idea?&quot; asked Bob, as we walked from the station
-to the inn.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If I do not receive a satisfactory letter or telegram from
-London before eleven o'clock,&quot; I replied, &quot;I shall go on to London to see
-Emilia.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For what purpose?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To gain some information of M. Bordier. Something may come of
-it--I cannot say what; but to remain inactive would be fatal to our chances.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Peterssen has a good start of us,&quot; said Bob. &quot;He has given us
-check.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But not checkmate, Bob. I have hopes that it remains with us
-to score the game.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Neither telegram nor letter had arrived for me at the inn, and
-a little after eleven I was at the station, awaiting the train. It was punctual
-to time, and stopped just long enough to enable me to jump in. Then we whirled
-on to London, which we reached at three o'clock in the morning. At such an hour
-a visit to Emilia was out of the question, and I had perforce to bide till
-morning. The delay gave me opportunity for a few hours' sleep, and at nine
-o'clock I was in the presence of Emilia. Although she received me with signs of
-perturbation I observed a change in her. Her eyes were brighter, and there was a
-certain joyousness in her manner which I was glad to see.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have had good news,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have,&quot; she replied, &quot;the best of good news. But what brings
-you again to London so unexpectedly, dear friend?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I thought of the secret in my possession which identified Dr.
-Peterssen's patient, Number One, as Gerald Paget, whom she had mourned as dead
-for nineteen years. But I did not dare to whisper it to her lest I should
-inspire delusive hopes. The proof had yet to be established, and until that was
-done it would be best and most merciful to preserve silence.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I come entirely upon your business,&quot; I said, &quot;and I wish to
-get back at once.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How good you are to me!&quot; she murmured. &quot;Never, never can I
-repay you for all your kindness.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We will not speak of that. But you can give me some return
-now. I think I may truly say that I deserve your confidence.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Indeed, indeed you do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I sent you a telegram yesterday.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I received it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I expected one from you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am sorry,&quot; she said, &quot;but I had nothing to communicate, and
-M. Bordier desired me neither to write nor telegraph to anyone till he saw me. I
-was bound to obey him with so much at stake.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, I understand all that. He is aware that I am a reporter
-on a newspaper, and he fears I shall make improper use of information. I cannot
-blame him, but he is mistaken. Did not M. Bordier return to London yesterday?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He gave you instructions, then, by letter.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;By letter and telegrams.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She took from her pocket a letter, and two telegrams in their
-familiar buff-colored envelopes, and, after a little hesitation, handed me the
-latter.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot think I am doing wrong in letting you see them,&quot; she
-said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The first telegram ran: &quot;I have good news, the best of news.
-Keep a good heart. Julian unites with me in love to you and Constance.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;His son is with him?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; she replied. &quot;Poor Julian!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">In my last interview with her, two days since, she had
-referred to Julian Bordier in the same pitying tone. I had not then asked for an
-explanation, and I had not time now. The moments were too precious to waste in
-questions which did not bear immediately upon the matter in hand. I read the
-second telegram: &quot;We may be absent a day or two. Meanwhile send no letters or
-telegrams to any person whatsoever. I particularly desire to avoid publicity of
-any kind. To Mr. Agnold, who has so generously and kindly befriended you, I will
-give a full explanation when we meet. Our united love.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">For a moment or two I was nettled, but I very soon got over
-the small feeling. Had I been present when M. Bordier surprised Bob Tucker in
-the inn and found the document in the secret drawer of the desk, he would
-doubtless have taken me into his confidence. It was natural that he should look
-upon Bob in a different light, for the probable reason that he supposed him to
-be a professional detective.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;M. Bordier,&quot; said Emilia, &quot;repeats the injunction in his
-letter. I could not but obey him.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She read from the letter words to the same effect as the
-second telegram.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You infer,&quot; I said, &quot;from these communications that M.
-Bordier places no obstacles in the way of your daughter's union with his son.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; she replied; &quot;it is my happy belief. My heart is
-lighter than it has been for months. I have endured what seemed to me an
-eternity of sorrow, but that has passed, and Heaven's light is shining upon my
-life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She was transfigured. There was indeed a heavenly light in her
-eyes, and her manner was as that of one who had been raised from deepest woe to
-supreme happiness.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I rejoice with you,&quot; I said, cordially. &quot;Is it a breach of
-confidence for me to ask from what part of the country M. Bordier has written to
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;His letter bears no address,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does he give you no information of what he has done and is
-about to do?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nor of any discovery that has been made?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She looked at me wistfully; I took her hand. As to certain
-matters there was on my part no motive for secrecy. Why should I withhold from
-her even for an hour that which would strengthen the new-born hopes which
-animated her? To a heart so sorely bruised as hers had been, to one who had
-borne suffering so sweetly and patiently, it would be cruel to keep back the
-least word of comfort, and I narrated to her all that had taken place between M.
-Bordier and Bob. She was greatly excited when I told her of the recovery of the
-desk, of M. Bordier's search for the secret drawer, and of his subsequent
-discovery of the hidden document.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is the copy of the marriage certificate,&quot; she cried.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is my impression, and now I can relieve your mind of
-another discovery. It is our firm belief that the man who assumed the name of M.
-Felix lives.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I gave her our reasons for this belief, and made her
-acquainted with Bob's theory of the seizure which threw M. Felix into a state of
-unconsciousness and insensibility, and which was simply pronounced to be death.
-She was profoundly agitated, and the grateful tears flowed down her face.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have been distracted by a horrible fear,&quot; she said, &quot;that I
-was the indirect cause of his death. Surely Heaven sent you to my aid on the
-night we first met. Without you I should not have dared to move, and indeed
-whatever steps I might have taken must have proved futile. Through you and your
-friends, Dr. Peterssen is unmasked, and my honor established. How I long to
-embrace that brave girl, Sophy! No reward can be too great for her, and M.
-Bordier, I am sure will do all in his power to advance her. Dear friend, dear
-friend! My words are weak--my heart is full.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She pressed my hand and kissed it, and she promised to let me
-know everything upon M. Bordier's return. I did not tell her why I was anxious
-to return to the village with as little delay as possible, but I incidentally
-showed her the photograph which I had found in M. Felix's rooms. Her tears
-bedewed it, she kissed it again and again.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is my dear husband's portrait,&quot; she sobbed. &quot;His name is
-in his own handwriting. Dear Gerald! They would have had me believe you false.
-Heaven forgive them for their treachery to you, to me!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She begged me to leave the picture with her, but I was
-compelled to refuse; I needed it to track Dr. Peterssen and his patient. Of
-course I kept my reasons to myself, and I promised her that I would only retain
-the portrait a short time, and that it should soon be hers.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not exactly know,&quot; I said, &quot;where I shall be during the
-next few days; I may be travelling from place to place, but I shall continue to
-telegraph to you wherever I am; in order that you may communicate with me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But why do you go away again?&quot; she asked; &quot;you have
-discovered what you wished; nothing more remains to be done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">If she but knew, I thought, how different would be her
-desire--how she would urge me to fly, how she would implore, entreat, and urge
-me on!</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Much remains to be done,&quot; I said, &quot;Dr. Peterssen must be
-found; he must not be allowed to escape.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Leave him to Heaven's justice,&quot; she said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That will overtake him; but man's justice shall also be meted
-out to him. Would you leave Leonard Paget also in peace?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I would,&quot; she replied.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He has squandered your fortune, but there may be some small
-portion left. It must be recovered; it will serve as your daughter's dowry.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She needs none. M. Bordier and Julian will be content to take
-her as she is; and for me--has not happiness shone upon me in the darkest hour
-of my life? Let both those men go their way.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No,&quot; I said, firmly, &quot;my mission is not yet ended, and you,
-if you knew all, would not seek to restrain me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She looked at me questioningly, and I accounted for my rash
-remark by saying, &quot;There are public as well as private duties, my dear madam,
-and I should be false to my trust if I neglected the one for the other. I should
-like to shake hands with your daughter before I go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She went from the room and returned with Constance, who
-received me cordially. As they stood side by side, their lovely countenances
-irradiated by thoughts of the bright future in store for them, I was glad to
-know that I had had some small share in their better fortune.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is something to have done,&quot; I said to myself as I hastened
-to the station, &quot;to have assisted to bring joy to the hearts of two good women;
-this in itself is ample reward. Then, old fellow, you have gained two earnest
-and sincere friends. One of these fine days you shall go to Switzerland, and be
-witness of the happiness to which you have contributed. And if you can restore
-to the one a husband, to the other a father----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I rubbed my hands and stepped on gaily. The mystery of M.
-Felix had engaged and engrossed me for a considerable time, but I was never more
-interested in it than I was at the present moment. &quot;I will not desist,&quot; thought
-I, &quot;till the end is reached. A bitter ending for the snarers, a sweet ending for
-the snared.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_55" href="#div1Ref_55">CHAPTER LV.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>TREACHERY.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;News, Agnold!&quot; cried Bob, when I joined him in the country.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bravo!&quot; I said, &quot;out with it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Three men answering to the description of those we are
-seeking were seen yesterday on the road to Monkshead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Where is that?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thirty-two miles from here, as the crow flies.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who gave you the information?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Crawley. The fellow is of some use, after all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I was not so sure, but when I questioned Crawley he was so
-precise and circumstantial in his account that I saw no valid reason to
-discredit him. He had received the news from a teamster, he said, who had passed
-the men on the road. Were they walking? Yes. How did the teamster know they were
-going to Monkshead? They were on the high road. How far from Monkshead? About
-ten miles.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have asked questions,&quot; said Crawley, &quot;of every stranger who
-has passed through the village, and this was the only one who could tell me
-anything at all.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you describe Dr. Peterssen's appearance to him?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, and he said it was something like another of the men.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you describe the third?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How could I, when I never saw him?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I had put the last question as a test of Crawley's
-truthfulness; if he had answered otherwise, the doubts I had of his veracity
-would have been strengthened.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You believe he is speaking the truth, Bob?&quot; I asked my
-friend, Crawley being out of hearing.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What reason has he to tell lies?&quot; asked Bob, in return.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To show that he is doing something toward earning his wages.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's cutting it rather fine,&quot; said Bob. &quot;You are giving
-Crawley credit for intellect; I think he is not overstocked in that respect.
-Can't afford to throw away a chance, Agnold.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Certainly not, and this chance shall not be slighted. But we
-will not risk everything upon the hazard. My plan is this. Crawley, Sophy, and I
-will go to Monkshead on a voyage of discovery. You shall remain here to take
-advantage of anything that may turn up. I will keep you posted as to our
-movements; you will keep me posted as to yours. Blessings on the electric
-telegraph. You will repeat all telegrams that arrive for me to such places as I
-shall direct, retaining the originals in case of miscarriage. Do you agree to
-all this?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must,&quot; said Bob, &quot;though I would rather go with you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There would then be no one left in command here, and we
-should be burning our ships.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All right. You are welcome to Crawley. Must you take Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I must. She is the only one in our party who is familiar with
-M. Felix. If we hunt Peterssen down, M. Felix will most likely be with him, and
-Sophy is at hand for the purpose of identification. Should I have reason to
-believe we have struck the right trail, I will wire to you, and you can come on
-to us. Say agreed, old fellow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Agreed, old fellow.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">After that Bob and I were closeted together for an hour,
-setting down all our arrangements in black and white; then I prepared to depart.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good luck, Agnold,&quot; said the faithful Bob. &quot;Send for me
-soon.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;As soon as I can. I want you to be in at the death.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I spoke these words lightly, with no notion of their ominous
-significance, and a carriage and pair having been got ready for us, Crawley,
-Sophy, and I took our seats in it, and bowled along to Monkshead. We arrived
-there at noon on the following day, and at the post-office I found two telegrams
-sent by Bob, one from himself saying that stagnation was the order of things,
-the other a copy of one forwarded from Emilia in London, in which she said that
-she had not heard from M. Bordier, and expected that he was on his way to her.
-The whole of the afternoon I was engaged in the attempt to discover whether any
-persons answering to the description of Dr. Peterssen and his companions had
-made any stay in Monkshead. I learnt nothing of a satisfactory nature, and,
-thoroughly exhausted, I was discontentedly refreshing the inner man, Sophy
-sitting at the same table with me, when Crawley, who had been out making
-inquiries, came in with a man who looked like what he was--a tramp.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Here's a fellow,&quot; said Crawley, &quot;who can tell us something.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If I'm paid for it,&quot; said the tramp.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You shall be paid for your trouble,&quot; I said, giving him a
-shilling. &quot;This is on account. You shall have another if your information is
-satisfactory.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He has tramped from Deering,&quot; said Crawley, &quot;and passed the
-parties we are looking for.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How far off?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A matter of forty miles,&quot; replied the tramp.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Were they riding or walking?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Two was riding, one was walking.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What was the conveyance?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What do you mean?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Were they riding in a carriage?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, in a cart; top of sack of hay.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is the man who was walking like?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">His description enabled me to recognize Dr. Peterssen; it
-tallied with that given to me by Emilia, Bob, and Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;And the two men riding on the hay?&quot; I asked. &quot;Can't be so
-sure of them,&quot; said the tramp; but his description warranted the belief that
-they were Dr. Peterssen's patient and M. Felix. As to the latter I consulted
-Sophy, and she said it was something like M. Felix.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How do you know,&quot; I inquired, &quot;that these men were travelling
-in company?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Cause two of 'em--one as was walking and the other as was
-riding--was talking to one another.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you hear what they said?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I didn't.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He had nothing more to tell me, and he took his departure
-after receiving his second shilling.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I turned to Crawley and asked him how he had picked up the
-tramp.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I was having half a pint at the Staff's Head,&quot; replied
-Crawley, &quot;when he came in. Seeing he was a tramp, stood him a pint, and asked
-him where he'd come from. From Deering, he said. Then I asked him whether he'd
-met anybody in particular on the road, and he said nobody; but when I spoke of
-three men in company, and gave him an idea of what Dr. Peterssen was like, he
-brightened up and told me what he told you. I thought you had better see him, so
-I brought him along.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I nodded and said we would start for Deering in the morning,
-and Crawley went to the bar to refresh himself. Now, whether I was influenced by
-my original latent suspicions of Crawley, or by the non-success I was meeting
-with, one thing was certain. I was not entirely satisfied with Crawley, and my
-dissatisfaction was not lessened by the fact that I could find no valid reasons
-for mistrusting him. Later on it will be seen whether I was right or wrong in my
-impressions, but, as will also presently be seen, the trail I was following up,
-whether it were true or false, led to important results, the mere remembrance of
-which will abide with me as long as I live.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">We did not reach Deering till late the next night. The
-post-office was closed, and I could not obtain the telegrams which I had
-directed Bob to forward till the morrow. As on the previous day, there were
-two--one from Bob with no news, the other from Emilia expressing anxiety
-regarding the continued silence and absence of M. Bordier. I myself considered
-it strange, and I sympathized with Emilia's unexpressed fears that she had been
-buoyed up by false hopes. Things altogether were looking gloomy; we seemed to be
-drifting without a rudder, and my experiences in Deering tended still further to
-discourage me. There were no traces of the men I was seeking, and after
-dispatching letters and telegrams to Bob and Emilia, I seriously discussed with
-myself the advisability of returning to London and awaiting news of M. Bordier.
-Sophy broke in upon my cogitations.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I've found 'em out,&quot; she said, with a flushed face. &quot;That
-there Crawley is taking of us in, you see if he ain't. He's been telling a pack
-of lies with 'is 'ay cart and 'is tramp. He's got 'old of another cove, and is
-bringing of 'im 'ere. I 'eerd 'im telling the chap what to say to yer. I'm mum.
-'Ere he is.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sure enough there entered Crawley with another tramp, who told
-me a plausible story of having met Dr. Peterssen and his companions some thirty
-miles off. The fellow played his part fairly well, and when I refused to give
-him money, began to bully. I soon silenced him, however, by threatening to give
-him into custody on a charge of conspiracy, and he slunk away without another
-word, but with a secret sign to Crawley, which I detected. Crawley would have
-followed him, but I had got between him and the door.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You miserable sneak,&quot; I said, &quot;your game's at an end. So,
-you've been coached by your scoundrelly employer, Peterssen, to deceive us, and
-I was fool enough to be taken in by you. What have you to say about it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He looked at me slyly, but did not speak.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are frightened that you may criminate yourself, but you
-have done that already. I can prove that you have robbed us of money under false
-pretences; I can prove that you have entered into a conspiracy against us. Do
-you know the punishment for conspiracy? It is penal servitude, my friend. You
-wince at that. Honesty would have served your interests better, my fine fellow.
-Had you not behaved treacherously you would have been made for life. And now you
-will find that you have fallen between two stools. You think that Dr. Peterssen
-will reward you. You are mistaken. He has promised you a sum of money for
-misleading us. You will not get a penny of it. You fool! Better for you to have
-trusted straightforward gentlemen who had the means, and had the will, to richly
-reward you, than a scoundrel like your master, who has used you as a tool. You
-are to report the success of your treachery to him personally. Where? In London?
-Go to him there, go to the address he gave you, and try and find him. As he has
-rogued others, he has rogued you. Before you are many hours older, you will
-learn that honesty would have been your best policy.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The play of his features proved to me that all my shots were
-faithful and had struck home. I gave him a parting one.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will put the police on your track. You are a marked man
-from this day, and you and your master will have to answer in the criminal dock
-for the crimes of which you are guilty.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I had moved from the door, and he, seizing the opportunity,
-darted through it and was gone.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Fine words!&quot; I exclaimed. &quot;Much good they will do!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never mind,&quot; said faithful Sophy. &quot;You gave it 'im 'ot, and
-no mistake. You frightened 'im out of 'is life; he'll shy at every peeler he
-meets.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will not help us,&quot; I said, in a rueful tone. &quot;We are at a
-dead-lock.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Never say die,&quot; said Sophy, cheerfully. &quot;That ain't a bit
-like yer.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon my word her encouragement put fresh life into me, and I
-grew less despondent. Determined to leave Deering as quickly as possible, I went
-to see about a trap, and here I met with another disappointment. I could not get
-a trap till the following day.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We shall have to wait until to-morrow, Sophy,&quot; I said. &quot;So
-let us make ourselves comfortable. I wonder if there's a local newspaper about.
-I will read you the news if there is; it will help to pass the time.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Upon what slender foundations do momentous issues hang! A
-pregnant proof of this truism was at hand. There was no newspaper printed at
-Deering, but at Fleetdyke, the nearest place of importance, was published a
-small daily sheet called the <i>Fleetdyke Herald</i>. The landlord at the inn at
-which we put up did not take in the paper, but it happened that a traveller,
-making pause there, had left behind him two copies of as recent date as
-yesterday and the day before. These the landlord brought in to me, and I sat
-down to entertain Sophy, who prepared herself for an hour of great enjoyment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What things in a newspaper do you like best, Sophy?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Perlice Courts,&quot; she replied, &quot;when I gets the chance of
-anybody reading 'em out--about once in a bloo moon, yer know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Police Courts it shall be,&quot; I said. &quot;I have a fancy for them
-myself.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So evidently had the Editor of the <i>Fleetdyke Herald</i>,
-who seemed to make it a special feature of his paper to gather the police-court
-news of a rather wide district around his locality as an attraction to his
-subscribers. I had read aloud to Sophy four or five of the most entertaining
-cases when I was startled by the heading, &quot;Tampering with a registrar's book.
-Strange case.&quot; I read the report under this heading rapidly to myself, and
-Sophy, observing that something had startled me, sat in silence and did not
-speak a word. The case was not concluded in the paper I was reading from. The
-last line ran: &quot;Adjourned till to-morrow for the production of an important
-witness from London.&quot; I looked at the date of the newspaper--it was the day
-before yesterday. The other paper which I had not yet taken up was of
-yesterday's date, and I found in it the conclusion of the case. The first day's
-report, with its pregnant heading, startled me, as I have said. The second day's
-report startled me still more. By the merest accident my fingers were on the
-pulse of the torture of Emilia's life. I ran down to the bar; the landlord stood
-behind it, wiping some glasses.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is the village of Glasserton at a great distance from here?&quot;
-I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, no,&quot; replied the landlord, &quot;about eleven miles. You can
-shorten it by two miles if you cut through Deering Woods.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I glanced at the clock--half-past four. &quot;It's a melancholy
-walk through the woods,&quot; remarked the landlord, &quot;but to be sure the moon will
-rise at ten.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can anyone show me the short cut?&quot; I asked. &quot;I wish
-particularly to go to Glasserton to-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My daughter will put you in the way of it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Thank you. Ask her to get ready. I will give her half-a-crown
-for her trouble.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I called to Sophy, and asked her if she was ready fur a long
-walk.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am ready for anything,&quot; she said, &quot;along o' you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ten miles there, and ten miles back, Sophy,&quot; I said, for it
-was my intention to return to the inn that night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'll walk all night if yer want me to.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Come along, then, my girl.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I settled my account with the landlord before I left, and
-then, accompanied by his daughter, a girl of fourteen, we walked to Deering
-Woods.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There!&quot; said she, &quot;keep on this track and it will take you
-right through the woods till you reach the road for Glasserton. When you come to
-two tracks keep to the left.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The directions she gave were clear, and I made her happy with
-the promised half-a-crown.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;How far do the woods extend?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You'll have to walk six or seven miles,&quot; she replied, &quot;before
-you get out of 'em--and mind you take care of the cliffs. They're dangerous.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;We shall see them, I suppose, before we come on them?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, you'll see 'em right enough, but nobody goes nearer to
-'em than they can help.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">She stood looking after us till thick clusters of trees hid us
-from her sight.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Step out, Sophy,&quot; I said, &quot;we've got a long walk before us.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">An explanation of the motive for my sudden visit to Glasserton
-will be found in the following extracts from the <i>Fleetdyke Herald</i>:</p>
-<br>
-
-<h5>THE FIRST EXTRACT.</h5>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;<i>Tampering with a Register Book. Strange Case</i>.--M.
-Bordier and his son, Julian Bordier, of Swiss extraction, were charged with
-erasing a name, and writing another over it, from a marriage entry in the
-register book of marriages in the parish of Glasserton. Mr. Hare, the registrar,
-stated that the accused visited him yesterday afternoon, for the purpose, as
-they said, of verifying a copy of a marriage certificate which they brought with
-them. The marriage in question was solemnized over nineteen years ago, and,
-according to the entry as it now stands, was between Gerald Paget and Emilia
-Braham, The elder of the accused made the examination, and professed himself
-satisfied. He then requested the registrar to step out of the office with him,
-saying that he wished to make some private inquiries of him. The registrar
-consented, and the two went outside for a few minutes, the questions which M.
-Bordier asked relating to the witnesses to the marriage, Julian Bordier
-meanwhile remaining alone in the office with, the register book. Mr. Hare, who
-has been registrar for nine or ten months only, answered the questions to the
-best of his ability, and then M. Bordier summoned his son from the office, and
-the accused departed. In the evening Mr. Hare had occasion to consult the
-register book, and as a matter of curiosity he referred to the entry which his
-visitors in the afternoon had called to verify. To his astonishment he
-discovered that the name of the bridegroom had been erased, and the name of
-Gerald Paget written over the erasure. His suspicions fell immediately upon M.
-Bordier and Julian Bordier, and learning that they had left the village, he
-obtained a warrant for their arrest, and, with a policeman, started in pursuit.
-The accused were greatly agitated when told to consider themselves under arrest,
-and the elder of the two commenced an explanation, to which, however, Mr. Hare
-and the constable refused to listen. He then begged to be permitted to write and
-telegraph to London for legal and professional assistance which, he said, would
-establish their innocence, and his request being granted, he wrote and
-despatched both letters and telegrams. The registrar having finished his
-evidence, the magistrate said the case was quite clear, and asked the accused
-what they had to say in their defence. M. Bordier, who assumed the office of
-spokesman, his son preserving a somewhat scornful silence, handed the magistrate
-two telegrams he had received from London in reply to those he had despatched.
-M. Bordier said that he refrained from putting any questions to the registrar,
-giving as a reason that he was ignorant of the procedure in English Courts of
-Justice. The magistrate, having read the telegrams, remarked that the names
-attached to them were those of eminent and renowned gentlemen whose time must be
-very valuable. As they promised to attend the court on the following morning and
-were anxious to return on the same day the accused were therefore remanded till
-to-morrow for the production of these important witnesses from London.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-
-<h5>THE SECOND EXTRACT.</h5>
-
-<p class="normal"><i>Tampering with a Register Book. Strange and Important
-Evidence.--Result</i>.--M. Bordier and his son, Julian Bordier, were brought up
-on remand on the charge of altering a signature in a marriage entry in the
-register book of the parish of Glasserton. Upon the case being called Mr.
-Lawson, of the well-known firm of Lawson &amp; Lawson, St. Helen's, London, who said
-he appeared for the defence, asked that Mr. Shepherd, the eminent expert in
-caligraphy, should be allowed to examine the register book, and the application
-was granted. The clerk read the evidence given yesterday by Mr. Hare, the
-registrar, who stated, in reply to a question from the magistrate, that he had
-nothing to add to it. Mr. Lawson then proceeded to cross-examine the witness:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You state that the register book was examined in your
-presence?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was there any possibility of the signature being tampered
-with while you were by?'--'It could not possibly have been done in my presence.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was M. Bordier left alone in the office with the
-book?'--'No.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In point of fact, you did not lose sight of him during the
-whole of the visit?'--'I did not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Not even for a moment?'--'Not for one moment.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then he could not have made the erasure or have written the
-name over it?'--'He could not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You do not accuse him?'--'Of actually committing the
-offence, no. Of being an accessory, yes. He called me out of the office to give
-his accomplice time to do what he wished.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'We shall see. Only M. Julian Bordier could possibly have
-altered the entry?'--'Only him.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson (to the Magistrate): 'This proves that M. Bordier
-could not have made the erasure.'--Magistrate: 'Exactly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Cross-examination resumed: 'It is not important to the case,
-but are you familiar with the record of the marriage of Emilia Braham and Gerald
-Paget, or between her and any other person?'--'No, I never had occasion to refer
-to this particular entry.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Were M. Bordier and his son the only visitors you received
-on that day who wished to verify an entry in the register book?'--'The only
-visitors.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'After they left you did you leave your office?'--'For an
-hour in the evening.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Before you discovered that the entry had been tampered
-with?'--'Yes, before that.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Who was in charge of the premises while you were
-away?'--'The servant, Jane Seebold.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'When you made the discovery of the erasure, did you ask Jane
-Seebold if anyone had called in your absence?'--'I did not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you at any time inform her that the book had been
-tampered with?'--'I did not.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You jumped at the conclusion that the gentlemen you accuse
-must be guilty?'--'There is no other conclusion.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'That will do. Call Mr. Shepherd.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Shepherd stepped into the witness-box.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'You are an expert in handwriting?'--'Witness: I
-am; it is my profession.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You have given evidence in many celebrated cases?'--'I
-have.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'Mr. Shepherd's name and reputation are well
-known.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Have you examined the entry of the marriage between Emilia
-Braham and Gerald Paget?'--'I have.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'There is an undoubted erasure of the signature of the
-bridegroom?'--'There is.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'The name, Gerald Paget, as it now appears, has been recently
-written?'--'Quite recently, within the past week. The state of the ink in which
-the name is freshly written proves it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You put a marked emphasis upon the words &quot;freshly written.&quot;
-Have you a reason for doing so?'--'I have. Upon a careful examination of the
-entry I am of the firm opinion that the name erased is the same as the name
-written above the erasure. The letters have been very cleverly traced.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'That sounds very strange.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'It does; but it is a puzzle that may be solved.
-Say that there is here a question of property which would fall to the Emilia
-Braham who is married according to this entry. To become possessed of this
-property, she must prove her marriage with Gerald Paget. Some one interested on
-the other side gets hold of the register book, and erases the name of Gerald
-Paget. What name shall be substituted in its place? What but that of Gerald
-Paget? This opens up the suggestion that a friend of Emilia Braham (speaking of
-her in her maiden name) has also paid a visit to the register, book, has erased
-the bridegroom's name, and written in its place that of Paget, to prove the said
-Emilia's marriage with him. A formidable suspicion is thrown upon her, and the
-very entry upon which she relies is weighty evidence against her.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'It is an ingenious theory, but I cannot see
-that it has any bearing upon the present case.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'It has an indirect bearing. I have here a copy
-of the marriage certificate, which I must ask you to compare with the entry in
-the register book. You will see in the copy that the name is Gerald Paget, and
-you cannot doubt that the copy is genuine.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'There can be little doubt of that. The state
-of the paper is a proof.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'If the copy had been lost, it would have greatly
-strengthened those whose interests are opposed to Mrs. Paget's. I have nothing
-further to ask you, Mr. Shepherd. Call Jane Seebold.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Jane Seebold was shown into the witness-box.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Your name is Jane Seebold?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are in the service of Mr. Hare?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Do you remember the day before yesterday?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In the evening Mr. Hare went out for an hour?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Was the office in which the official books are kept
-open?'--'Yes, it was, and I was sweeping it out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did anybody call while you were so employed?'--'Yes, a
-gentleman.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did he inquire for any one?'--'Yes, my master.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Well?'--'I told him he was out.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What did he say to that?'--'He said he would wait for him.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You allowed him to wait?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'In the office?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What did you do while he waited?'--'I had work in other
-parts of the house, and I went and did it.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'For how long was the gentleman left alone in the
-office?'--'Half an hour, perhaps.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Then you went in to him?'--'Yes, and he said he was going,
-and he went.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Did you tell your master of the gentleman's visit when he
-returned?'--'No, I didn't.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Why didn't you?' The witness hesitated. 'Why didn't you?
-Remember that you are on your oath, and that if you prevaricate or speak falsely
-you may get yourself into serious trouble. Why did you not tell your master of
-the gentleman's visit?'--'Well, he gave me five shillings, and told me to say
-nothing about it. I don't see that I've done any harm.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You can step down.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'Stop a moment. Where were the official books
-while the gentleman was in the office?'--'In their proper place--the desk.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'Was the desk locked?'--'The lock's been broke
-all the time I've been in the place.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'So that all a person had to do to get hold of the books was
-to lift the lid?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'Your conduct was very reprehensible.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The witness then left the box.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'We have brought the inquiry now to this point.
-Supposing the erasure to have been made on the day in question, the commission
-of the offence lies between M. Julian Bordier and the person who visited the
-registrar's office in his absence.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'Quite so. I think the registrar should keep
-these important public books in a more secure place--in an iron safe.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Registrar: 'I am not supplied with one, your Worship, and
-I cannot afford to buy one. My servant's evidence comes upon me as a surprise.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'I repeat what I said. These official records
-should be kept in safer custody. The authorities should provide proper
-receptacles for them.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'I shall proceed now to prove that it is an utter
-impossibility that M. Julian Bordier can be guilty of the offence with which he
-and his father are charged. Call Mr. Wordsworth.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This gentleman, whose name and fame are world-renowned, then
-gave his evidence, which was short, conclusive, and surprising.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are an oculist?'--'I am.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'You are attending M. Julian Bordier?'--'Yes.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Is that the gentleman?'--'That is the gentleman.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'What are you attending him for?'--'For his sight.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Could he the day before yesterday have erased a name from
-the register book and written another name above it?'--'It is utterly
-impossible.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Why?'--'Because he was blind. He is blind now; His eyes are
-open, but he cannot see. It is against my express wish that he left London. If
-he does not return immediately and abide by my instructions, I shall despair of
-restoring his sight.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;M. Bordier: 'May I say a word?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'Certainly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;M. Bordier: 'I came to Glasserton to compare the copy of a
-marriage certificate with the original entry. My son's happiness hung upon this
-proof, and he insisted upon accompanying me. He would not be dissuaded, and
-although I feared there was a risk, I yielded to his wish. When we were arrested
-I endeavored to explain matters to the registrar and the officer, but they would
-not listen to me. Ignorant of the methods of English courts of justice, I
-thought it wisest to obtain counsel and assistance from London. That is all I
-have to say.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Lawson: 'Is it necessary, your worship, for me to address
-you?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Magistrate: 'No. The gentlemen are discharged, and I
-regret that they have had to submit to this trial. I trust, Mr. Wordsworth, that
-you will be able to cure M. Julian Bordier.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Mr. Wordsworth: 'If he will be guided by me, I hope to
-restore his sight.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The parties then left the court.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_56" href="#div1Ref_56">CHAPTER LVI.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>NIGHT IN DEERING WOODS.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">I had a twofold object in going to Glasserton. In the first
-place I wished to see for myself the original record of the marriage in the
-register book; in the second place I wished to obtain from the registrar's
-servant, Jane Seebold, a description of the visitor she allowed to remain in the
-office while her master was absent from the house. It was evident that she had
-no knowledge of the purpose of the visit which M. Bordier and his son Julian
-paid to the registrar in the morning; and it was equally evident that the man
-who bribed her to silence was the man who erased the signature. I had no doubt
-that it was either M. Felix or Dr. Peterssen, who by this artful trick hoped to
-pave the way to a doubt of the genuineness of Emilia's marriage with Gerald
-Paget. The scoundrels had no idea that the copy of the marriage certificate had
-been found, or that M. Bordier and his son were in the village on the same day
-as themselves. All that they wished to do was to make some provision for a
-possible contingency in the future. If, as was very likely, they read the case
-in the newspaper, they must have been confounded by the conviction that they
-were hoist with their own petard. Another thing, I was now satisfied that when I
-left Bob I had started on a true trail, despite the knavish devices of Dr.
-Peterssen's tool, Crawley.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The walk through Deering Woods was a dreary one, but it would
-have been much more dreary had it not been for Sophy, who was always
-entertaining and original, and never more so than on the present occasion. I let
-her partly into my confidence, and she was delighted to know that she had been
-the direct means of throwing light on a cruel injustice. We trudged along side
-by side, the most amicable and agreeable of companions.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It'll wake aunty tip when she 'ears everything,&quot; said Sophy.
-&quot;She'll think me good for something now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You are the best and brightest little girl in my
-acquaintance, Sophy,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I didn't take <i>you</i> in, did I?&quot; she asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, indeed,&quot; I replied. &quot;It was a lucky day for me when I
-first met you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not so lucky for you as for me,&quot; she said. &quot;I've got a silver
-watch.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It will turn into a gold one by the time you're a woman.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Will it?&quot; she exclaimed. &quot;Shan't I be proud!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">About half way through the woods I saw the cliffs of which the
-landlord's daughter had warned me. In the dark they would have been dangerous
-indeed to one unfamiliar with them. At some time or other there had been a great
-landslip, which had opened up a chasm of great depth; in parts slight fences had
-been put up, but there were spaces entirely unprotected, and I was thankful we
-had been warned of the danger. It was half-past seven by my watch when we
-reached Glasserton, and I had no difficulty in finding the registrar's house. He
-was at home when I called, and did not receive me too cordially. He had been
-upset by the trial, and it was with the greatest difficulty I succeeded in
-obtaining a glance of the original entry of the marriage. It was only by bribery
-and threats that I effected my purpose, and I had to use extreme persuasion to
-induce him to grant me an interview with Jane Seebold. I elicited very little
-from her in consequence of the state of confusion she was in, but I was
-satisfied in my own mind that it was M. Felix who had tampered with the book.
-From her imperfect description of the man I judged that he must in some way have
-disguised himself for the purpose of the visit, and I was assisted to this
-conclusion partly by the height of her visitor, who she said was not a tall man.
-Dr. Peterssen was not less than six feet, and having to decide between him and
-M. Felix I decided unhesitatingly in favor of the latter. The registrar had been
-in Glasserton but three or four years, whereas Jane Seebold had been in it all
-her life, and I learned from her that two of the three witnesses to the
-marriage, the doctor and the old wagoner, had long been dead. At nine o'clock my
-inquiries were ended, and Sophy and I started back for the inn.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Tired, Sophy?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not a bit,&quot; she answered, cheerfully, &quot;I could walk all
-night.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Still we did not get along so fast as in the early part of the
-evening; it would have been cruel to take unfair advantage of Sophy's
-indomitable spirit; the girl would have walked till she dropped, and I had some
-consideration for her. Therefore it was that we did not reach the middle of
-Deering Woods till past ten, by which time the moon had risen. When I was not
-talking to Sophy my mind was occupied by the task upon which I had been engaged.
-Since my first introduction to the Mystery of M. Felix a great deal had been
-accomplished. The mystery has been practically solved, although the public were
-not yet in possession of the facts. Emilia's agony was over, as I believed, for
-my wildest dreams would not have compassed what was to occur during the next few
-weeks; she had been fortunate in gaining a champion so noble and generous as M.
-Bordier, and her daughter's happiness was assured. I could understand now her
-anxiety as to M. Bordier's silence since his discovery of the copy of the
-marriage certificate, and I divined his reason for it. With a horror of
-publicity, and out of regard for her, he did not wish her to become acquainted
-with his and his son's arrest until he himself informed her of it, and he
-entertained a hope that the report of the case would not get into the London
-papers. I also now understood her anxious references to M. Julian's state of
-health; they bore upon his failing sight, to restore which he and his father had
-come to London. The young man had been imprudent, but I trusted to Mr.
-Wordsworth's assurances that he could make a cure of him if Julian would abide
-by his instructions. I had no doubt, now that Emilia's good name was
-established, that Julian would submit to the guidance of this eminent oculist,
-whose heart was as kind as his skill was great.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">So far, all was well, but I was not satisfied; I could not
-consider my task accomplished till I had brought Dr. Peterssen and M. Felix to
-the bar of justice and restored to Emilia's arms the husband she believed she
-had lost in Switzerland.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy broke in upon my musings.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is there a man in the moon?&quot; she asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;They say so,&quot; I answered, lightly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I see 'is face,&quot; said Sophy, &quot;as plain as plain can be.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">We were near the fallen cliffs as these words passed between
-us, and before I had time to utter another my attention was arrested by the
-sound of a shot.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What's that?&quot; cried Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A gun or pistol fired,&quot; I replied, &quot;and not far off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I don't mean the firing,&quot; said Sophy, &quot;I mean the scream.
-Didn't yer 'ear it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, Sophy, no scream reached my ears.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It reached mine. I can 'ear anything, if it's in the next
-street.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Was it after or before the shot?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;About the same time, I think. They come both together.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Let us go and see what it is, if you're not afraid.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Me afraid,&quot; she said contemptuously, and she ran before me in
-the direction from which the sounds had proceeded. We had not gone fifty yards
-before we both stopped simultaneously, with an exclamation of horror on our
-lips. On the ground before us lay the body of a man, pressing his hand to his
-heart, from which the blood was flowing. He struggled into a sitting posture,
-and was endeavoring to rise to his feet, when he fell back with a groan, and
-moved no more.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I rushed to his side and bent over him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There has been murder done,&quot; I said. &quot;He is dead.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said Sophy in a low tone, as she stooped over the body.
-&quot;He's dead this time, and no mistake.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Dead this time!&quot; I repeated in wonder.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Don't yer see who it is?&quot; she asked. &quot;It's Mr. Felix!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">M. Felix! This, then, was the end of the ill-spent life. The
-evil record was thus suddenly snapped, and the man who was supposed to have died
-in Gerard Street, Soho, on the night of the 16th of January, lay dead before me
-in the lonely Deering Woods, his last breath but just drawn.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Are you sure, Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Ain't <i>you</i> sure?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I cannot be. I never saw him in life.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I can't be mistook. It's Mr. Felix--but oh, ain't it orfle!
-who could 'ave done it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who, Sophy? Who but his companion in crime, Dr. Peterssen?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At this moment, from an unseen hand behind, Sophy was struck
-to the ground. Her scream of pain was frozen on her lips, and she lay prone
-before me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You infernal villain,&quot; I cried, and turned.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The moon was shining brightly, and by its light I saw the form
-of Dr. Peterssen. In his upraised hands he held a heavy stake. I strove to avoid
-the blow, and received it on my arm. Before I could recover myself the stake was
-raised again, and again it descended upon me, this time upon my head. The earth
-swam round. Again I was struck with savage violence, and as I fell the last
-thing I saw was the moon with a face in it which smiled upon me in the likeness
-of Dr. Peterssen.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_57" href="#div1Ref_57">CHAPTER LVII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>THE CAVERN IN THE CLIFF.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">I opened my eyes in darkness. How long I had remained
-insensible I did not know, nor did I know where I was. All that I was conscious
-of at first was a dull pain in my head, but presently I was sensible of other
-facts. My hands were tied behind me, and my mouth was gagged, so that I could
-only utter unintelligible moans. To my astonishment my moans were answered by
-similar sounds at a short distance from me. Pain and suffering are selfish and
-dominant qualities, and some few moments passed before I thought of my brave
-Sophy. Then it occurred to me that the moans I heard proceeded from her, and
-that she was in the same condition as myself. My immediate feeling was one of
-thankfulness that she was alive. In vain did I strive to free my hands; in vain
-did I strive to speak intelligible words; in vain did I strive to pierce the
-black darkness in which we were enveloped. I did not know whether it was day or
-night, and I shuddered to think of the fate in store for us. Soon I found myself
-forgetting my own peril entirely, and dwelling only upon poor Sophy's. Bitterly
-did I reproach myself for bringing her to this pass, for it was I, and I alone,
-who was responsible for the doom which would surely overtake her. I had no doubt
-that we were imprisoned here to die, and it was I who had sealed her fate.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">My thoughts did not flow steadily and uninterruptedly. Every
-now and then I relapsed into unconsciousness, and when I revived it seemed to me
-as if I took up quite naturally the thread of my reflections at the point at
-which they were broken off. These intervals of insensibility may have been long
-or short for all I knew. I was starving; I was parched; I would have given the
-world for a drink of water; but I can say truthfully that if water had been
-available for only one of us, I would have set my lips hard and given the relief
-to my companion in misery. I have read of exquisite tortures inflicted upon
-unfortunate people by barbarous nations--aye, and by some civilized nations as
-well--but no tortures could have been keener than those I endured. Minutes were
-like hours, hours like days. It was impossible under such conditions to keep
-count of time.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">There were sounds of movement outside our prison house, if
-house it was, sounds of scraping feet and falling stones. I strained my ears.
-Nearer and nearer came these sounds, until they were within a few feet of me in
-my rear, but I was so securely bound that I could not turn my head. One word was
-spoken in the form of a question:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Alive?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The voice was that of Dr. Peterssen. I had never heard it, but
-I would have staked my hopes of release upon the issue. Not by the faintest moan
-did Sophy or I answer this ruthless question. A match was struck, a candle was
-lighted, and Dr. Peterssen stood between us, holding the candle above his head:
-With malicious significance he put the candle close to poor Sophy's face, then
-close to mine, and waved his left hand as though he were introducing us to each
-other. I gazed at Sophy, who was as little able to move as I was myself, and the
-tears came into my eyes as I noted the absence of reproach in her observance of
-me. Indeed, her expression was one of pity, and not for herself.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Touching, isn't it?&quot; asked Dr. Peterssen, and then cried
-savagely, &quot;You pair of beauties! You reap what you have sown!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">By the dim light I perceived that we were in a kind of cave,
-the entrance to which was at the back of us, and I judged that the cavity was
-low down one of the dangerous cliffs of which we had been warned. After his
-attack upon us Dr. Peterssen must have carried us here and buried us alive, as
-it were. I subsequently learned that my surmise was correct, and that I had hit
-upon the exact method of our imprisonment.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen stuck the candle, in a niche, and approached me.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Would you like to be free to speak?&quot; he inquired. &quot;If so,
-move your head.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I moved my head.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will not shout?&quot; he continued. &quot;You will not cry for
-help? Move your head again, and I accept it as your word of honor. You are a
-gentleman, and would not forfeit it.&quot; There was a frightful scorn in his voice
-when he referred to me as a gentleman.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I moved my head again, and he took the gag from my mouth.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Raise your voice above its natural tone, and I cut this
-beauty's fingers off.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He took a clasp-knife from his pocket and opened the blade. It
-was sharp, it was bright, and I knew he would keep his word.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A drink of water,&quot; I murmured.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I have it here. Drink.&quot; He held an uncorked bottle to my
-lips.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not for me,&quot; I said. &quot;For her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You will drink first,&quot; he said; &quot;then she shall have her
-turn. If you refuse neither of you shall touch it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I drank, and I saw that Sophy closed her eyes while I did so.
-Nectar was never so sweet as that long draught, for he did not stint me. Then he
-replaced the gag in my mouth, and removing Sophy's, went through the same
-process with her.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's jolly,&quot; said Sophy, faintly.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; said the scoundrel, &quot;you will be very jolly by the time
-I have done with you. Listen to me. You clever couple are as completely in my
-power as if we were on a desert island. Not a human being is within miles of us.
-To show you how little I care for your cries, I free both your tongues.&quot; Once
-more he took the gag from my mouth. &quot;Only if you speak too loudly, each shall
-suffer for the other. I will cut you to pieces before each other's eyes if you
-disobey me. So my clever little beauty, you came into my house as a dumb girl. <i>
-Are</i> you dumb? Answer--quick!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No, I ain't,&quot; said Sophy; &quot;you know that as well as I do.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;But you played your part well--I will say that of you--and
-went about like a sly mute, eyes and ears open, ready for treachery. If I had
-suspected, you would never have got out alive. Answer my questions, and answer
-them truthfully, if you do not wish to be tortured to death. Did you steal the
-desk?&quot; Sophy was silent; he laid the keen blade of the knife he held on her
-face. &quot;Answer!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Answer him, Sophy,&quot; I said, fearing for the child.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes,&quot; she said, &quot;I did steal the desk.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Who set you on?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did,&quot; I replied, quickly. &quot;She is not to blame. Upon me
-should fall the punishment, not upon her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It shall fall upon both of you, and upon your comrade who
-brought her to me, if only I can lay hands on him. There was a secret in that
-desk, was there not? Don't keep me waiting too long.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There was,&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Did you find it?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not I, but another found it.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Your friend, and that sharp-witted gentleman from
-Switzerland. A copy of a marriage certificate, was it not?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To think,&quot; he said bitterly, &quot;that that fool should have had
-the desk in his possession all these years, and never discovered it? He is
-rightly served. He can play no fool's tricks where he is now.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is dead?&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is dead. I killed him, as I intend to kill you, only yours
-will be a longer and more lingering death. Do you think my confession
-injudicious? You are mistaken. You will never more see the light of day; you
-will never more set eyes upon a human being but myself. You are here, in a tomb.
-This is your grave. I can afford to be candid with you. Open speaking is a
-luxury in which I can freely indulge. Here, eat.&quot; He fed us with hard dry bread,
-and we both ate ravenously, he watching us the while with malignant eyes. &quot;Am I
-not a merciful jailer? But I don't want you to die just yet. You shall suffer
-still more. Tell me why you have been hunting me down?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I was engaged in befriending a much-injured lady.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You had better have looked after your own business, and left
-me to manage my own unmolested. A much-injured lady? Christian name, Emilia?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes. I cannot injure her by answering you truthfully. She has
-powerful friends near her who are capable of protecting her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Doubtless. Something more was discovered through this little
-witch here, was there not? Remember what I have threatened you with. The truth I
-will have, if I have to cut it out of your heart. What more have you
-discovered?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;To what do you refer?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I had a patient--I speak in the past tense, because I have
-given up business--concerning whom you entertained some curiosity. You know who
-that patient was. His name? Quick!&quot; He touched Sophy's hand with the point of
-his knife, and drew blood. She never winced.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">To save the poor girl, I answered, &quot;Gerald Paget.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Good. These compelling measures are admirable. But do not
-think you are telling me news. I can find my way through a maze as well as most
-people. It is in my power to give <i>you</i> some interesting information. For
-instance as to where this Gerald Paget is at the present moment.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You have not disposed of him, then,&quot; I ventured to say.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Oh, no. Another kind of death is in store for him. He is in
-prison for the murder of a gentleman unknown to the law, but known to us as
-Leonard Paget, to many others as M. Felix.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I repressed the indignant words that rose to my lips. Dr.
-Peterssen smiled and continued: &quot;It is a remarkable complication. A man is found
-dead in Deering Woods, shot through the heart. This man is Leonard Paget, alias
-M. Felix. There is found upon his person nothing that can lead to his identity.
-The murder is perpetrated at a distance from London, and no one suspects there
-can be any connection between the murdered man and the M. Felix who so
-mysteriously disappeared from the purlieus of Soho. The last whose suspicions
-are likely to be roused are Emilia Paget--I am courteous enough, you see, to
-call her by her right name--and her friends. Wrapped up in their own concerns, a
-murder so remote has no interest for them. And murders are common. They occur
-all over the country. The housekeeper who attended upon M. Felix would be able
-to identify him, but what should bring her into this part of the world? So far,
-you must acknowledge, I have managed fairly well, and if it had not been for
-your meddling I should be safe. Curse you! But I am even with you now.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not expect you to answer me,&quot; I said, &quot;but how is it
-that the unfortunate gentleman whom you and your confederate have so sorely
-oppressed has to answer for a crime which you perpetrated?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why should I not answer you? What passes in this grave will
-never be known, and I can afford to be magnanimous. The fool you pity was found
-near the body, in possession of the pistol with which the deed was done. Give me
-credit for that little man&#339;uvre.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does he not declare his innocence?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He declares nothing. The small spark of reason which was left
-to him is extinguished, and he utters no word. His silence, his vacant looks,
-are proofs of guilt. They will make short work with him. He will be committed
-for trial; the assizes are near, and he will be tried and condemned. No living
-persons but ourselves can establish his innocence. If you were free you could
-accomplish it, but you never will be free. Fret your heart out. It will be a
-pleasure to me to witness your sufferings.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Retribution will fall upon you,&quot; I said. &quot;Your presence here
-convinces me that you are yourself in danger.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I should be if I walked abroad, but I have disappeared. In
-this charming retreat I propose to hide till Gerald Paget is done for. Then, the
-interest of the affair at an end, I can provide for my own safety. Meanwhile, I
-can manage, at odd times, to purchase food enough to keep things going. Already
-I have in stock a few tins of preserved provisions, a supply of biscuits, some
-bread, spirits to warm me, tobacco to cheer me--to be smoked only at nights.
-Trust me for neglecting no precautions. It is not a life a gentleman would
-choose, but I am driven to it--by you.&quot; He filled his pipe and lit it.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it night now?&quot; I said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is night now. I am fond of society; that is the reason I
-spare you for the present. When you have served my turn I will rid myself of
-you.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you no pity?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;None.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If we refuse the food you offer us, if we prefer to die, at
-once, we can deprive you of the pleasure of torturing us.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You can suit yourself. My experience is that life is sweet;
-hope lives eternal, you know. You can amuse yourself with the hope that you have
-still a chance. Do so; it is immaterial to me. I know what the end will be. Be
-silent now; you have talked enough.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He examined our fastenings to see that they were secure, and
-then he gagged us. Before he did so, however, I said to Sophy:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Can you forgive me, my dear, for bringing this upon you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;There ain't nothink to forgive,&quot; she replied. &quot;If I've got to
-die I'll die game.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Dr. Peterssen laughed sardonically, and did not give me time
-to say another word. The spirit of the child amazed me; she was of the stuff of
-which heroes are made. &quot;If by a fortunate chance,&quot; I thought, &quot;we escape the
-deadly danger which holds us fast she shall be richly rewarded.&quot; I saw no hope
-of escape, but I would cling to life to the last. Dr. Peterssen was right in his
-conjecture; I would not hasten the doom with which we were threatened, and which
-seemed inevitable. I slept fitfully, and in my intervals of wakefulness I judged
-from Sophy's regular breathing that she slept more peacefully than I. I was
-thankful for that. Where our gaoler took his rest I do not know. He did not
-disturb us for many hours. My eyes had grown accustomed to the darkness, and
-when I fully awoke I could dimly see Sophy's face. She could see me too, for
-when I smiled at her she smiled at me in return. Clearly it was Dr. Peterssen's
-intention to keep us alive for some time at least. He gave us bread and biscuits
-to eat and water to drink. Days passed in this miserable way and if I do not
-dwell upon them it is because I have little that is new to relate. Occasionally
-Dr. Peterssen allowed us to talk, and bandied words with us for his own
-malicious gratification. I asked him once whether we could purchase our release.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You would give a large sum for it,&quot; he said.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;All that I possess in the world,&quot; I answered.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;If it could be done with safety to myself,&quot; he said, &quot;I would
-entertain the offer; but you know as well as I do that it could not be so done.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Why not?&quot; I asked.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You would betray me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I will swear a solemn oath that your name shall never pass my
-lips.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;An oath that you would break at the first convenient
-opportunity. You are a man with a conscience, and you would hasten to prove the
-innocence of Gerald Paget. How would you accomplish that without mention of my
-name? Come, now--air your sophistry, and see if you can persuade me to act like
-an idiot. As for money, I am well supplied. When I am rid of you and this
-stubborn little witch I mean to enjoy myself in another country.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He pulled out a bundle of bank-notes, and flourished them
-before my eyes. I thought of Bob's words that M. Felix kept always a large sum
-of money on his person, and I knew that the notes had once been his. Our gaoler
-took pride in such like acts of ostentatious candor, to show how completely he
-had us in his power and how little he had to fear from us. I cannot say at what
-period of our imprisonment I fell into a stupor which would have lasted till the
-hour of my death had Dr. Peterssen's fell intentions succeeded. It seemed to
-last for an eternity of days and nights, and in the few intervals of
-consciousness which came to me I prayed that I might not grow mad. Sometimes I
-heard Dr. Peterssen's voice as he forced water and sopped biscuit down my
-throat. I had no desire to refuse the food, but my strength was gone, and it was
-with difficulty that I could swallow. I could have borne my fate better had it
-not been that Sophy was never absent from my mind. Sleeping or waking I thought
-of her, and my misery was increased tenfold. I remember an occasion when I
-whispered to Dr. Peterssen:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is she still alive?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She is still alive,&quot; he said with a brutal laugh. &quot;She has
-the pluck and strength of a dozen men.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Those were the last words he addressed to me, in my
-remembrance, nor do I remember speaking to him again. Delirious fancies held
-possession of me, and although I must have had periods of utter insensibility I
-do not recall them. I could not now distinguish the real from the unreal. I
-heard voices that did not speak; I saw pictures that had no existence; I passed
-through experiences as intangible as the gloom which encompassed us. All the
-people I knew, but chiefly those with whom I had been lately associated, played
-their parts in my wild fancies. The scene on the Thames Embankment with Emilia,
-my midnight visit to her daughter Constance, my adventures with Sophy, the
-episodes in the police court and M. Felix's chambers, my journeys to and fro in
-search of clews to the mystery, the introduction of Bob Tucker into the affair,
-all these and every other incident associated with my championship of a wronged
-and injured lady, took new and monstrous forms in my disordered imagination. I
-grew weaker and weaker. Surely the end must soon come.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It came. There were loud shouts and cries, and voices raised
-in menace, terror, and defiance. These sounds conjured up a host of confused
-forms struggling around me. A hand touched my face, an arm was passed round my
-neck; my head lay upon a man's shoulder.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Agnold!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">My mouth, my limbs, were free, but I could not speak, I could
-not move.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Agnold! Don't you hear me? It's Bob--Bob Tucker! I've found
-you at last--you're saved! Speak one word to me; move your head, to show you
-understand me.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I smiled feebly; I had had so many of these dreams; I did not
-open my eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Great God! Have I come too late? Oh, you black-hearted
-villain, your life shall pay for it!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Gentle hands raised my head. My eyes, my face, were bathed
-with cold water; a few drops of weak spirits were poured into my mouth, which I
-swallowed with difficulty. Surely there was here no delusion!</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That's right, Agnold; that's right old friend. We'll soon
-pull you round. You are too weak to speak--I see that. But don't you want to
-hear about Sophy?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy? I strove to struggle to my feet, and fell back into the
-friendly arms ready to receive me. I opened my eyes; they fell upon Bob, who
-smiled and nodded at me. If this was delusion then, indeed, I was mad.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;For God's sake don't deceive me, Bob!&quot; He must have followed
-my words in the movement of my lips, for sound scarcely issued from them. &quot;This
-is real. You are my friend, Bob Tucker?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am your friend, Bob Tucker, who ought to be whipped at the
-cart's tail for not having found you before. But I am in time, and I thank God
-for it!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;You spoke of Sophy?&quot; I did not dare to ask the question which
-was in my mind.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did. Your voice is getting stronger already. She's all
-right. Don't you fret about her.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I want to know the solemn truth, Bob. She lives?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She lives. It is the solemn and happy truth, dear friend. She
-is near you at the present moment.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Bring her close to me. Let me touch her hand.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">It was placed in mine and guided to my lips. I kissed it, and
-a weak voice stole upon my ears:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I am as well as well can be, Mr. Agnold! I'll dance yer a
-hornpipe if yer like!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My brave girl--my dear, brave Sophy! O God, I thank Thee!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Then everything faded from my sight and I heard nothing more.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_58" href="#div1Ref_58">CHAPTER LVIII.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>FRIENDS TO THE RESCUE.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">Sophy and I were lying on two couches placed so that my eyes
-could rest upon her face. A day and a night had elapsed since our rescue, and I
-had gained strength surprisingly. With the help of Bob I had dressed myself in
-the afternoon, and seeing that the exertion had nearly exhausted me he insisted
-upon my lying down on a couch. I, on my part, upon learning that Sophy had also
-with assistance dressed herself, in &quot;spick and span new clothes,&quot; as she
-afterwards informed me, insisted feebly but firmly that she should be brought
-into my room, so there we were, gazing at each other, and rapidly recovering
-from the terrible ordeal through which we had passed. Warm baths, an entire
-change of clothing, rest in a soft bed--surely the clean sheets were the most
-delicious that mortal ever lay between--nourishing food, and the blessed sense
-of safety, had done wonders for us. Bob had refused with stern kindness to give
-me any account of his movements until I was in a fit condition to listen to him,
-and it was not until this day that he consented to place me in possession of the
-facts. His statement, up to a certain point, will be best explained in his own
-words.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Two days having passed,&quot; he said, &quot;without hearing from you,
-I became anxious. The last letter I received from you was written in Monkshead,
-and in it you informed me that you were going farther on, but you did not
-mention the name of the place for which you were bound. As you had left
-Monkshead, it was useless my wiring or writing to you there, so I was compelled
-to wait your pleasure. Of course, in these circumstances, one always thinks that
-a letter has gone wrong, and as no other arrived I inferred that you had given
-me some information of your movements in the supposed missing letter, without
-which I had no idea what to do. At length I came to the conclusion that you had
-returned to London, and I determined to follow you. Even if I did not see you
-there, I might learn from your family or friends something which would enlighten
-me as to where you were, and what you were doing. Your family had not heard from
-you, and as they did not appear in any anxiety concerning you, I said nothing,
-you may be sure, that would cause them alarm. Then I sought an interview with
-the lady whose cause you espoused, and whom should I meet with her but M.
-Bordier. He was the soul of politeness, and I could not fail to be impressed by
-the radiant happiness which shone in the lady's face. I ascribed this joyful
-expression to the document which M. Bordier had found in the secret drawer of
-the desk, the particulars of which he had jealously concealed from me. Neither
-he nor the lady had heard from you. 'We hope to see him soon,' the lady said,
-'to thank him for his wonderful kindness to us.' Before I left them M. Bordier
-drew me aside, and expressed a hope that I would do nothing to make public what
-had transpired with respect to the purloining of the desk, and the discovery of
-an important document in it. 'I assure you,' he said, 'that it is entirely a
-private matter, and that publicity would cause the deepest pain to unoffending
-persons.' I replied that I should do nothing of my own accord, and that the
-matter rested with you, and you alone. He thanked me, and we parted.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I interrupted Bob here. &quot;Did M. Bordier make no reference to a
-trial in which he had been involved?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Nothing.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have you read of no trial in which his name appears?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;No. Let me finish first; you will have plenty to tell me when
-I have done. From M. Bordier I went to the office of the <i>Evening Moon</i>,
-and was equally unsuccessful in obtaining news of you. Somewhat puzzled I made
-my way back to the neighborhood of Tylney House, and thence went on to
-Monkshead. I had no particular fears for your safety, but I resolved, if
-possible, to track you. It was only on the second day of my arrival at Monkshead
-that I obtained news which led me to believe you had gone to Deering. Away I
-posted to Deering, and there I learned that you had gone to Glasserton, on what
-errand was not known. The landlord's daughter had shown you a short cut through
-the woods. I took the high road, as less likely to mislead me: but I may mention
-that before I started from Deering the girl who directed you informed me that
-only you and a young girl had gone to Glasserton. What, then, had become of
-Crawley? At Glasserton I heard that two persons answering to the description of
-you and Sophy had been in the village, that you had remained but a few hours,
-and had then started back toward Deering. I immediately returned to Deering, but
-you had not reappeared there. It was then that a fear of foul play flashed upon
-me; it was then and then only that I began to fear for your safety. There had
-been a mysterious murder committed in Deering Woods, and the murderer was
-committed for trial----&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;My God!&quot; I cried.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Strange as it may appear, I had not until this moment thought
-of the murder which had been perpetrated in the woods. Heaven knows it was not
-from indifference that this lapse of memory had occurred to me, and I can only
-ascribe my forgetfulness to the intensity of my misery for several days past,
-during which I had been completely and entirely engrossed in the frightful
-sufferings I had endured. But now Bob's reference to the foul deed brought
-Gerald Paget's peril to my mind. I was so terribly excited that Bob caught hold
-of me in alarm, for I had started from my couch and was swaying to and fro on my
-feet.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In Heaven's name,&quot; exclaimed Bob, &quot;what is the matter with
-you?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do not ask questions,&quot; I said, speaking with feverish haste,
-&quot;but answer mine, and follow any instructions I may give you. The murderer is
-committed for trial, you say. Has the trial taken place?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It is taking place now,&quot; replied Bob, speaking as rapidly as
-I did; the contagion of my excitement had seized him. &quot;The Assizes are on.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;What is the time?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Five minutes past four.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;When did the trial commence?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;This morning, I heard.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Is it over?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I do not know.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Will it take you long to ascertain how it is proceeding?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I might do it in half an hour.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Do it, in less time if you can, I am not mad, Bob; I am as
-sane as you are. This is a matter of life and death, and, God forgive me, I have
-allowed it to escape me. One more question. You have not spoken of Dr.
-Peterssen. Where is he?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;In prison, under arrest.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;That is good news. Go now, quickly--and send the landlord up
-to me immediately, with some telegraph forms.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He hastened from the room, and in a very short time the
-landlord made his appearance. The vital necessity of immediate action had
-inspired me with strength of mind if not with strength of body, and my mental
-powers were quickened and sharpened by the crisis. I had settled upon my plan of
-action, and when the landlord handed me the telegraph forms I wrote the messages
-I wished to send with celerity and clearness. The most urgent and lengthy of
-these telegrams was addressed to M. Bordier, and in it I implored him to come to
-me without a moment's delay, and to bring Emilia with him. I told him that the
-husband whose death Emilia had so long mourned was now on a trial for murder of
-which he was innocent, that I had been mercifully rescued myself from a cruel
-death and held in my hands proofs of Gerald Paget's innocence, and that my case
-would be strengthened by the presence of Emilia and himself. I requested him to
-acknowledge my telegram the instant he received it, and to say when I might
-expect him to join me; it was imperative that there should not be the least
-delay, and he was to spare no expense in attending to my instructions. In
-addition to this telegram I despatched messages to my mother, to the editor of
-the
-<i>Evening Moon</i>, and to Mrs. Middlemore. Without further detail I may say
-that I did everything in my power to bring the persons to my side whose presence
-I considered necessary for the work before me, and my despatches were winging to
-London before Bob returned. He reported that the case for the prosecution was
-not yet concluded, that it was expected that the defence would be brief, and
-that the summing up of the judge would occupy some time. It was almost certain
-that the verdict would not be delivered until to-morrow. Counsel had been
-deputed by the judge to defend the prisoner, who throughout the trial had
-maintained a strange silence, which some ascribed to obstinacy, and others to
-aberration of intellect. Having heard what Bob had to say, I addressed a letter
-to the counsel for the defence, urging him at the adjournment of the case, to
-call upon me immediately, as I had news to communicate to him of the highest
-importance to the prisoner. My letter despatched, there was nothing more to do
-for at least a couple of hours, and I consented to listen to the completion of
-Bob's narrative. When he heard that a murder had been committed in Deering Woods
-fears for my safety flashed upon him, and he went to see the body of the
-murdered man. He was greatly relieved to find that the body was that of a
-stranger--(it must be borne in mind here that he had never set eyes on M. Felix
-during that man's lifetime)--but it did not dispel his fears. I had started back
-to Deering through the woods, and from that moment neither I nor Sophy had been
-heard of. He determined to remain on the spot and keep watch about the woods, in
-the hope of discovering what had happened to me. The idea of foul play between
-Deering and Glasserton had taken morbid possession of him, and he did not
-attempt to banish it. Day after day he searched and watched without result,
-until one night he saw a man walking stealthily through the woods with
-provisions he must have purchased somewhere in the neighborhood. The stealthy
-movements of this man aroused Bob's suspicions, but although he followed him
-warily the man suddenly disappeared. This circumstance strengthened Bob's
-suspicions, and, with or without reason, he now came to the conclusion that the
-man, whose movements proclaimed that he was engaged in an unlawful proceeding,
-had something to do with my disappearance. He hired two men to watch with him,
-and at length his efforts were rewarded. The man was seen again at night
-creeping stealthily through the woods; again he disappeared at the same spot as
-on the previous occasion. It was at the edge of the fallen cliffs that this took
-place, and the men Bob had hired, who were more intimate with the locality than
-their employer, pointed out a downward track which bore marks of having been
-recently used. This track was noiselessly followed, with the result already
-recorded. Sophy and I were saved.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I did not come an hour too soon,&quot; said Bob, when he had
-concluded his story.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Not an hour, Bob. I believe I could not have lived another
-day.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A telegram was brought into me. It was from M. Bordier: &quot;We
-shall be with you to-night. Have not informed Mrs. Paget of the particulars. Not
-advisable to agitate her unnecessarily. Decide when we meet.&quot; Other telegrams
-were also brought to me, and I learned from them that my sister, a friend on the
-staff of the <i>Evening Moon</i>, and Mrs. Middlemore would also soon be with
-me. Bob had been thoughtful enough to arrange for the despatch of news from the
-court in which the trial was taking place. Seven o'clock, eight o'clock, nine
-o'clock, and the court was still sitting. The Judge was summing up, and had
-expressed a desire that the trial should be finished that night.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;He is of the opinion,&quot; I said to Bob, &quot;that the jury will not
-be long in giving their verdict.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It looks like it,&quot; said Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Does this strike you as guilty or not guilty?&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Guilty,&quot; replied Bob.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">A note was here delivered to me from the counsel for the
-defense: &quot;I cannot leave the court. The Judge will soon finish his summing up,
-which is unfavorable to the prisoner. He anticipates a rapid decision on the
-part of the jury, and a verdict of guilty. If your news is really of importance
-and, advantageous to the prisoner, come to the court immediately.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">I gave the note to Bob to read, and rose.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Sophy,&quot; I said, &quot;are you strong enough to come with me? I am
-going to the court.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;I'm ready,&quot; said Sophy.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Yes, Agnold,&quot; said Bob, &quot;you must go.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">He ran down, and by the time we reached it a trap was waiting
-for us.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Have a couple of traps in waiting,&quot; I said to him, &quot;and the
-moment the persons I expect arrive bring them to the court. Especially Mrs.
-Paget, M. Bordier, and Mrs. Middlemore, and send also any telegrams that may
-come.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Depend upon me, Agnold,&quot; said the good fellow. &quot;Not a point
-shall be missed.&quot; He waved his hand as we drove away, and called out, &quot;Good
-luck!&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">And now I must encroach upon the columns of the <i>Evening
-Moon</i> for a description of the events of this agitating night. A cooler head
-and a steadier hand than mine have made the record, and all that I have to do is
-to vouch for its accuracy.</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_59" href="#div1Ref_59">CHAPTER LIX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>FROM THE COLUMNS OF THE &quot;THE EVENING MOON,&quot; UNDER THE HEADING, &quot;THE MYSTERY
-OF M. FELIX SOLVED.&quot;</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The stirring incidents of a great city are so numerous, and
-so pressing in their demands upon the space of the local papers, that it
-occasionally happens that incidents as stirring and exciting which occur at a
-distance from the Metropolis are either overlooked or dismissed in a short
-paragraph at the bottom of a column. This happened in a trial for murder which
-took place in the Midland Circuit, and, were it not that this particular case
-bears directly upon the mystery known as The Mystery of M. Felix, its remarkable
-features would probably have escaped notice in the Metropolitan journals. The
-circumstances of the case, so far as they were known to the public on the day on
-which the trial took place, are as simple as they are singular. A man was found
-murdered in Deering Woods. He was a stranger in the neighborhood, and nothing
-was found on him which could establish his identity. His pockets were empty, and
-his underclothing was unmarked. He met his death by a shot fired from a
-revolver, and the bullet was extracted from his body. In the same woods on the
-same night a man suspected of the murder was taken into custody. He had in his
-possession a six-barrelled revolver, and one of the barrels had been discharged.
-Upon being questioned he refused to answer, but looked vacantly about him. The
-bullet which was extracted from the body of the murdered man fitted the
-discharged barrel, and was similar to the bullets, with which the remaining five
-barrels were loaded. The accused, who was properly committed for trial, was,
-like the victim, a stranger in the neighborhood, and bore about him nothing that
-could lead to his identification. His silence was a suspicious element in the
-charge against him, and the revolver with which the deed was done being found
-upon him, there was little room for doubt that he was the murderer. What the
-motive for the crime could have been it is impossible to say; if it were robbery
-the stolen property was carefully hidden away, for no traces of it were
-discovered. The evidence was simple, but appeared to be complete, and the
-accused lay in prison until the Assizes, which were held soon after he was
-committed. At the trial he preserved the same stubborn silence as he had
-maintained before the magistrate. Asked to plead, he made no answer, and a plea
-of not guilty was recorded. He had no counsel, and one was assigned to him. The
-young barrister to whom the defence was entrusted had a difficult task before
-him. He could obtain not the least assistance from the prisoner, who stood in
-the dock apparently unconcerned regarding his fate. But it is said that there
-could occasionally have been observed on his features a pitiful expression,
-which aroused the sympathy of the spectators. This expression has been described
-by an onlooker as that of a man who had borne the cruellest and bitterest of
-buffets in his course through life, and who had been brought to a pass in which
-he looked upon death as the kindest mercy which could be meted out to him. There
-were women in court who sobbed as they gazed upon his sad and hopeless face, and
-yet could not have accounted for their tears on any other ground than those of
-unreasoning sentiment. That this mute and unconscious appeal had a powerful
-effect upon the jury will be seen a little further on; it certainly led them to
-act in a manner which is perhaps unprecedented in a trial for murder in an
-English court of justice. It will be seen that there were very few witnesses.
-The surgeon who extracted the bullet, a gun-maker who testified that the barrel
-had been recently discharged, and that the bullet was one of six with which the
-weapon had been loaded, the constables who arrested the prisoner--these were all
-that were called for the prosecution. The Crown counsel elicited all the facts
-in a fair and impartial manner, and it was evident that he considered the case
-conclusive. The cross-examination was skilfully conducted, severe tests being
-applied to the evidence respecting the bullet; but the witnesses remained
-unshaken. The cross-examination of the constables was directed principally to
-the demeanor and conduct of the prisoner. Did he make any resistance?--No. When
-he was arrested, was he endeavoring to make his escape?--It did not appear so;
-he was wandering through the woods. Was it, to all appearance, an aimless
-wandering?--Yes. Did he make any excuses for, or give any explanation of his
-presence in the woods?--He did not utter a single word. Did he endeavor to hide
-or get rid of the revolver?--No. For the defence a physician who had examined
-the prisoner was called. His testimony was to the effect that the prisoner was
-afflicted with melancholia, and that his mind was in such a condition as to
-render him irresponsible for his actions. It was clear that the line set up for
-the defence was that the prisoner was insane. The cross-examination of the
-physician somewhat damaged the weight of his evidence. Did he base his belief
-that the prisoner was afflicted with melancholia and was not responsible for his
-actions on the circumstance of his refusing to speak?--Partly, but only to a
-slight extent. Had he not met in his professional experiences with cases in
-which persons accused of crime preserved an obstinate and dogged silence for the
-express purpose of being considered insane and irresponsible?--Yes, there had
-been such cases. Scanty as was the evidence it occupied several hours. Counsel
-for the defence made an eloquent and impassioned defence on the plea of
-irresponsibility and insanity, and then the prosecuting counsel addressed the
-jury. He dealt in hard and plain facts; he spoke coldly and without passion; he
-refused to entertain the line of the defence, and said it was more than likely
-that the prisoner's demeanor proceeded from a cunning nature, and that he hoped
-by this means to escape the consequences of a ruthless murder committed in cold
-blood. The Judge, who said that there was no reason why the trial should not be
-concluded that night, and that the Court would sit late to receive the verdict,
-summed up dead against the prisoner. Following in the train of the counsel for
-the Crown, he laid down the law in the clearest manner, and he directed the jury
-to consider certain issues and be guided by them, and to perform conscientiously
-the duty for which they were called together. At a quarter to ten o'clock the
-jury retired, and the Judge left the court, with directions that he should be
-called when the jury returned.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;It was at this stage of the inquiry that the case promised to
-assume a new aspect. Our reporter, Mr. Agnold, with whom our readers are
-acquainted, and to whom the public are indebted for the light thrown upon the
-Mystery of M. Felix, entered the court in the company of the young girl, Sophy,
-and immediately fell into earnest conversation with the counsel for the defence.
-Their conversation lasted a considerable time, during which the counsel took
-copious notes, breaking off occasionally to put questions to Sophy, who answered
-them readily. Once the counsel turned Sophy's attention to the prisoner, and she
-moved toward him. He, turning, saw her, and greeted her with a smile of much
-sweetness, to which she pitifully responded. This sign of mutual recognition,
-indicating as it did an acquaintanceship between the prisoner and the young
-girl, heightened to fever-pitch the interest and excitement of the spectators,
-but before any explanation of the incident could be given, the return of the
-jury was announced. Almost at the same moment the Judge made his appearance. The
-names of the jury were about to be called out, when the counsel for the defence
-rose for the purpose of making a remark, but was desired by the Judge to resume
-his seat until the verdict of the jury was given.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel for the defence: 'If your Lordship knew the
-importance of the observations I wish to make----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'I must request you to be seated until we have
-done with the jury. Then I will hear you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The jury having answered to their names, were asked if they
-had agreed upon a verdict; whereupon the following conversation took place:</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman of the Jury: 'My Lord, the jury wish me to say
-that they are morally convinced that the prisoner is not guilty.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'That is not a verdict. It is not a question of
-being morally convinced; it is a question of being legally convinced.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'But the jury have the strongest moral doubts,
-my Lord.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'They would not be sufficient to lead to a
-verdict. The doubts must be legal doubts. It is not for me to influence you one
-way or another. I have put the facts of the case before you, and it is upon
-those facts you must decide and pronounce your verdict.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman (after a brief consultation with his brother
-jurymen): 'Our verdict, my Lord, is Not guilty.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Upon what grounds have you arrived at your
-verdict?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'Upon the grounds of moral conviction, my Lord.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'It is my duty to tell you again that those
-grounds are insufficient. Sentiment has nothing whatever to do with a criminal
-case. I must request you to retire and reconsider your verdict.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'With all respect, my Lord, it is useless. We
-have resolved to return no other verdict than the one we have given, and upon
-the grounds I have stated.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Several of the jury gave audible assent to their foreman's
-words.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'I cannot receive your verdict, accompanied by
-your statement. You will retire and give the matter further consideration.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'If we are locked up all night, my Lord, we
-shall return no other verdict.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'I do not wish to be harsh or oppressive. Equally
-with yourselves I have a duty to perform. If you do not rightly comprehend any
-part of the evidence, say so, and I will explain it to you.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'We have no doubts, my Lord. We understand the
-evidence thoroughly.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Oh, if you cannot agree----'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'We are thoroughly agreed, my Lord.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'You will retire.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The jury were then conducted out of court.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge, addressing counsel for the defence: 'I am ready to
-hear you now.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'My Lord, during your Lordship's absence from court,
-while the jury were considering their verdict, the most important revelations
-have been made to me.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Bearing upon this case?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'Bearing directly upon this case. Two persons are
-present now, who, if I had been able to call them, would have thrown an entirely
-different light upon the case. One of them is personally acquainted with the
-prisoner, the other does not know him personally, but knows his name.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge 'The Crown is not represented. The learned counsel
-is not in court. I cannot now hear statements from other persons; but you can go
-on with your statement. His name is known, you say?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'Yes, my Lord. It is Gerald Paget.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">At this mention of his name the prisoner became violently
-agitated. His countenance was convulsed, and he stretched forth his arms, which
-trembled from excess of emotion.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'The prisoner appears to be ill. Is there a doctor
-in court?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The prisoner (speaking for the first time): 'I am not ill. I
-want to hear what he has to say.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'For nineteen years he has been supposed to be dead,
-and, in pursuance of a diabolical plot, has been confined in a private madhouse
-as another person. It is this cruel imprisonment which has reduced him to the
-condition in which we now see him.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Your statement is an extraordinary one.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'I shall be able, my Lord, to establish its truth,
-and the truth of other facts as extraordinary. The strange story which has been
-revealed to me is too lengthy and complicated to narrate at this hour, but if
-your Lordship will adjourn until to-morrow I undertake to prove the unfortunate
-prisoner's innocence, and also the guilt of the man who should now be standing
-in his place.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Is the man known? Can he be found?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'He is known, and is now in prison under another
-charge which is directly connected with the murder for which the prisoner has
-been tried.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'If your statements are true the case is
-unprecedented.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'It is, my Lord. The person who is guilty of the
-murder was the prisoner's keeper. There has hitherto been no identification of
-the murdered man; I am now in a position to prove who he was. He bore the name
-of Leonard Paget.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Paget is the name of the prisoner.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'They were half brothers. There is a question of
-property involved.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;An officer of the court here presented himself, and said that
-the jury wished to speak to the judge.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'Let them be brought in.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Upon this being done, the Judge asked the foreman what he had
-to say.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman: 'It is simply, my Lord, that there is not the
-remotest possibility of our returning any other verdict than that we have
-delivered, and in the precise terms in which we have delivered it. There is not
-the slightest difference of opinion between us; we are absolutely unanimous.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'As I have already told you, it is no verdict.
-Officer, what is that noise?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'Witnesses from London have just arrived, my Lord,
-who are ready to prove the truth of the statements I have made.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;An extraordinary scene ensued. One of the newly-arrived
-witnesses was a lady, whose eyes travelled round the court, and finally rested
-upon the prisoner. In this lady our readers will have no difficulty in
-recognizing Emilia Paget The moment she saw the prisoner a look of incredulous
-joy sprang into her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;'Merciful God!' she cried. 'Has the dead returned to life? Am
-I awake or dreaming?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Prisoner, with a wild scream: 'Emilia!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Emilia: 'It is his voice! Gerald! Gerald!'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She rushed to the prisoner, and no attempt was made to
-restrain her. Throwing her arms round his neck she drew his head down to her
-breast. Convulsive sobs shook their frames.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel, solemnly: 'My Lord, the prisoner is this lady's
-husband, whom she has mourned as dead for nineteen years.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Foreman of the Jury: 'My Lord, if anything was needed to
-prove the justice of our verdict, the proof is now supplied.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'You are discharged. The Court is adjourned.
-Remove the prisoner.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'My Lord, my Lord! May not this afflicted couple be
-allowed a few minutes' intercourse?'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'I leave it to the discretion of the officers in
-charge of the prisoner.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Counsel: 'Direct them my lord. Say that it may be allowed.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;The Judge: 'It may be allowed. But all the persons not
-directly concerned in this unparalleled case must retire.'</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;Slowly and reluctantly the spectators left the court in a
-state of indescribable excitement.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4><a name="div1_60" href="#div1Ref_60">CHAPTER LX.</a></h4>
-
-<h5>ROBERT AGNOLD'S LAST WORDS.</h5>
-<br>
-
-<p class="normal">I resume and conclude the Mystery of M. Felix in my own
-person. What transpired after the incidents of that exciting night is soon
-related. Before Gerald Paget was released Dr. Peterssen was put on his trial for
-the murder. The minor charge of his attempt upon Sophy's life and mine was set
-aside, and was only incidentally referred to in the evidence and speech of the
-prosecuting counsel. Guilt was never more clearly proved than his. The revolver
-with which the murder was committed was the same he had purloined from the rooms
-in Gerard Street, when he sent Mrs. Middlemore upon a false errand to the Bow
-Street Police Court. On this head Mrs. Middlemore's evidence was valuable; but
-my evidence on the point was still more valuable. The initial &quot;F.&quot; I had
-scratched on the metal, and the entry I had made in my pocket book, &quot;A Colt's
-double-action revolver, nickel-plated, 6 shots, No. 819,&quot; enabled me to swear
-positively to the weapon. Peterssen's own confession of guilt to me when Sophy
-and I were imprisoned in the cavern in Deering Woods was fatal, and Sophy, who
-was one of the two heroines of this celebrated trial, won the admiration of all
-England by the manner in which she gave her evidence. It was imperative that
-Emilia should be called, and she narrated with great feeling all the
-circumstances of her brief but fateful acquaintance with Peterssen during the
-honeymoon tour in Switzerland. There was found upon Peterssen a large sum of
-money in bank notes, and the manager of the bank in which the murdered man,
-under the name of M. Felix, kept his account, proved, by the numbers on the
-notes, that they had been paid to Peterssen's victim across the bank counter.
-Another witness called was George Street's father, upon whom Peterssen had so
-long and so successfully imposed. He testified that Gerald Paget was not his
-son, and said that on every occasion on which he desired to see the patient,
-Peterssen had declared that a fatal result would be the certain consequence of
-an interview. Gerald Paget was brought into court, but he was so weak and ill
-that his evidence could not be taken. The case, however, was complete without
-him. There was practically no defence; the jury debated for a few minutes only,
-and brought in a verdict of guilty; the villain was sentenced, and he paid the
-penalty of his crimes. For Leonard Paget, alias M. Felix, no pity was expressed;
-the fate he had met with was richly deserved.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">Needless to say that the case excited immense interest, and it
-was universally admitted that its sensational disclosures were without parallel
-in the history of crime. I may mention that Crawley was not traced; up to this
-day he has succeeded in concealing himself; but his hour will come.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">After all was said and done, I think that Sophy held rank as <i>
-the</i>
-heroine of the mystery. A daily paper suggested that a subscription should be
-got up for her; to this suggestion practical effect was given, and money flowed
-in from all ranks and classes of people. Close upon a thousand pounds were
-subscribed; so Sophy is rich. Fame has not turned her head. She said to me but
-yesterday, &quot;I ain't proud; not a bit of it. Whenever you want me, Mr. Agnold,
-you'll find me ready.&quot; In time she will improve in her language, and one day she
-may be really a lady.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">The words Sophy addressed to me were spoken in Geneva, where
-these lines are being written. The wedding of Constance Paget and M. Julian
-Bordier took place yesterday, and we were invited to it. The father of the bride
-was present. The rescue from his living tomb, the new and happier life, and the
-care and devotion of his wife Emilia, upon whose sweet face he never tires of
-gazing, has already brought about a great change for the better, and confident
-hopes are entertained that before long his reason will be permanently restored.
-It is pleasant to be able to record that the kind and skilful oculist who had
-given evidence in what I may call the marriage certificate case has made a cure
-of M. Julian Bordier. He can see, and the terror of blindness no longer afflicts
-him.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">This morning the oculist (who gave himself a week's holiday to
-attend the wedding) and I had a chat about M. Felix, whose supposed death in
-Gerard Street, Soho, caused so great a sensation. He has been hunting up cases
-of suspended animation, and he read to me half a dozen, each of which lasted for
-a much longer time than M. Felix's. Since Peterssen's trial there has been a
-great deal written in newspapers and magazines concerning these instances of
-apparent death, and wonder has been expressed that, upon M. Felix's
-disappearance, no one thought it was likely that he had gone through such an
-experience. My answer to this expression of wonder is that it is easy to be wise
-after the event.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">While we were engaged in our conversation, the oculist and I
-were sitting at a window of the house which Constance and her husband are to
-occupy when they return from their honeymoon. The window overlooks a garden in
-which Emilia and Gerald are walking.</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;A good and sweet woman,&quot; said the oculist, smiling at Emilia,
-who had looked up and smiled at us. &quot;She deserves happiness.&quot;</p>
-
-<p class="normal">&quot;She will have it,&quot; I said. &quot;The clouds have disappeared from
-her life. Her trials are over.&quot;</p>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-<h4>THE END.</h4>
-<br>
-<br>
-<br>
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-
-<pre>
-
-
-
-
-
-End of Project Gutenberg's The Mystery of M. Felix, by B. L. Farjeon
-
-*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE MYSTERY OF M. FELIX ***
-
-***** This file should be named 53263-h.htm or 53263-h.zip *****
-This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/5/3/2/6/53263/
-
-Produced by Charles Bowen from page scans provided by
-Google Books (The Ohio State University)
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
-specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
-eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
-for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
-performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
-away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
-not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
-trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country outside the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
- are located before using this ebook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
-Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
-mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
-volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
-locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
-Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
-date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
-official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-For additional contact information:
-
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
-spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-
-
-
-</pre>
-
-</body>
-
-</html>